Skip to main content

Full text of "Historical sketch book and guide to New Orleans and environs, with map : illustrated with many original engravings, and containing exhaustive accounts of the traditions, historical legends, and remarkable localities of the Creole city"

See other formats


BOOK    917.6335. C677H 

COLEMAN    #    HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK 

AND    GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS 


3    ilS3    OOElOmfl    2 


PLEASE  NOTE 


It  has  been  necessary  to  replace  some  of  the  original 
pages  in  this  book  with  photocopy  reproductions 
because  of  damage  or  mistreatment  by  a  previous  user. 

Replacement  of  damaged  materials  is  both  expensive 
and  time-consuming.  Please  handle  this  volume  with 
care  so  that  information  will  not  be  lost  to  future  readers. 

Thank  you  for  helping  to  preserve  the  University's 
research  collections. 


ILLUSTRATED 

euiBE 

TO 

NEW  ORLEANS. 


/  ' 


INTRODUCTION. 

fN  the  preparation  of  this  volume  we  are  indebted  to  many  brilliant  and  interesting 
sketches,  stories  and  descriptions,  written  at  different  times  during  the  last  thirty 
years  for  the  press  of  New   Orieans,  by  such  eminent   historians,  litterateurs  and 

journalists  as  the  following  :  Hon.  Charles  Gayarre,  Judge  Alexander  Walker,  Charies  E. 

Wliitney,  Mrs.   Field  ("Catherine  Cole  "),  John  and  Charles  Dimetry,  Lafcadio  Ilearn, 

Marion   A.    Baker,    Norman   Walker,    and    a  number  of  others  long  since  under  the  sod. 

We  make  this  acknowledgment  here,  instead  of  accrediting  the  matter  to  them  throughout 

the  book,  as  each  phrase  or  description  is  used  or  story  is  retold. 

Many  persons  who  visit  New  Orleans  find  difficulty  in  knowing  where  to  go  and  what 

to  see,  and  after  the  places  have  been  determined  upon  they  lose  considerable  pleasure  by 
not  knowing  the  traditions,  legends  and  incidents  surrounding  such  scenes.  New  Orleans- 
by  its  cosmopolitan  character,  and  having  been  so  far  removed  in  its  eariier  history  from 
the  rest  of  the  colonies,  and  during  its  occupancy  by  the  Spanish  and  French-took  to  itself 
usages,  customs  and  even  a  patois  of  its  own,  the  story  of  which  has  furnished  material 
for  romances  equaled  by  few  other  cities  in  this  country.  Some  of  these  stories  are  still 
preserved  and  hang  round  the  scenes  of  their  birth  like  the  Spanish  moss  clinging  to  the 
spreading  oak,  making  and  forming  a  part  of  its  grandeur  and  existence.  It  has  been  the 
endeavor  of  the  compilers  to  arrange  these  in  such  a  manner  as  to  facilitate  the  visitor  to 
New  Orleans  and  to  furnish  him  with  a  complete  Historical  Sketch-Book  and  Guide  to  New 
Orleans  and  the  Creole  Quarter. 

New  Vukk,  Av.  .5./,  .884.  '^'''^  WBUSHER, 


123838 


I  take  pleasure  in  recommending:  the  following  work.  The  pens 
from  which  it  comes  represent  not  only  as  careful,  trustworthy  and 
talented  effort  as  could  have  undertaken  it,  but  entirely  different 
lines  of  long  experience  and  acquired  knowledge  concerning  New 
Orleans,  that  together  quite  bound  the  whole  subject.  Some  of  the 
illustrations,  I  may  take  the  liberty  of  adding,  are  from  sketches 
made  under  my  own  supervision. 

GEO.   W.  CABLE. 

Simsbury,   Conn.,   Nov.    1,    1884. 


GUIDE  TO  NEW  ORLEANS, 


CHAPTER  I.— NEW  ORLEANS,  THE  CRESCENT  CITY. 

THE   EXTENT    AND    LIMIT    OF    NEW    ORLEANS— ITS    WARDS,    DISTRICTS,    AND    OTHER    SUB- 
DIVISIONS— THE    FOUNDING   OF  THE   CITY — A    BRIEF   REVIEW   OF   ITS   EARLY   HISTORY. 

New  Orleans  is  jmr  excellence,  the  city  where  one  can  amuse  himself  during  the  winter 
months.  In  no  other  on  this  continent  are  so  many  and  such  varied  attractions.  This  is 
peculiarly  the  case  just  now  during  "  The  World's  Industrial  and  Cotton  Centennial  Exposition," 
with  its  myriads  of  exhibits,  more  diverse  than  at  any  exhibition  heretofore.  The  Carnival,  or 
Mardi  Gras  festivities,  with  their  mid-day  and  nocturnal  pageants  surpassing  anj^thing  of  the 
kind,  will  this  year  be  a  feature  of  the  winter,  and  the  pen  fails  to  describe  their  splendor. 

While  all  the  country  north  of  the  Tennessee  river  is  locked  in  ice  :  its  trees  leafless  and  its 
homes  stormed  by  fierce  arctic  winds,  New  Orleans  smiles  through  the  green  of  orange  and 
magnolia  trees.  Her  gardens  are  bright  and  odorous  with  flowers  ;  the  streets  are  filled  with 
loungers  and  sight-seers  ;  all  the  open-air  resorts  are  crowded  ;  there  is  a  busy  hum  of  gaiety 
and  music  and  laughter  everywhere. 

The  city  boasts  three  waterside  resorts.  Each  has  a  hotel,  a  theatre,  a  fine  restaurant.  All 
of  them  are  on  Lake  Pontchartrain,  only  five  or  six  miles  from  the  heart  of  the  city,  by  steam 
cars  running  at  short  intervals.  To  him  who  has  lived  among  blizzards  and  hailstorms,  it  must 
be  a  sensation  to  dine  upon  an  open  balcony  in  January,  to  see  roses  blooming  in  the  garden,  to 
breathe  the  soft  south  wind  fanned  from  the  Gulf  of  Mexico,  and  feel  that  luxuriousness  peculiar 
to  tropical  latitudes.  He  can  take  his  choice  of  the  West  End,  Spanish  Fort  and  Milneburg,  at 
any  of  which  points  he  can  get  an  elegant  repast.  There  is  the  Jockey  Club  with  its  races,  the 
bayous  and  their  aquatic  sports,  the  base-ball  parks,  the  river-side  resorts  with  beer  and  music. 
In  town  are  many  restaurants,  theatres,  concert  halls  and  saloons,  where  the  stranger  can 
spend  his  evening  pleasantly.  Indeed,  one  must  be  strangely  hard  to  please  who,  commg  from 
the  bleak  and  wintry  North,  cannot  find  sufficient  enjoyment  rambling  about  the  bright  and 
crowded  streets,  peeping  into  places  of  amusement  and  tasting  the  luxury  of  the  wondrous 
climate  of  New  Orleans. 

The  city  is  situated  on  the  left  or  east  bank  of  the  Mississippi,  107  miles  from  its  mouth.  A 
small  portion— the  Fifteenth  ward,  generally  styled  "Algiers"— is  on  the  west  bank,  but  the 
great  bulk  of  it,  with  nineteen-t  wentieths  of  its  population,  is  east  of  the  river. 

The  Mississippi  here  is  1,500  to  3,000  feet  in  width,  being  much  narrower  than  above.  How- 
ever, it  makes  up  in  depth,  which  here  ranges  from  60  to  250  feet,  and  enables  the  largest  vessels 
to  land  at  the  bank  or  wharf.  The  speed  of  the  current  varies  greatly,  being  5  miles  an  hour 
iuringhigh  water,  at  other  periods  very  slow.  The  current,  moreover,  is  treacherous,  and  in 
nany  places  the  river  runs  up-stream.  Even  when  the  upper  current  is  moving  towards  the 
5ulf,  an  under-current  runs  in  a  different  direction.  Notwithstanding  the  power  of  the  river,  it 
;s  affected  by  the  Gulf,  and  the  latter's  tides  are  felt  at  New  Orleans.  Salt  water  often  forces 
Its  way  up  the  Mississippi,  making  the  river  water,  on  which  many  depend,  unfit  to  drink ;  salt 
vater  fish  are  often  caught  in  the  river  at  and  above  New  Orleans,  and  sharks  over  seven  feet  long. 

The  tendency  of  the  Mississippi,  at  the  city,  is  to  move  westward.  This  it  does  by 
depositing  its  alluvium  on  the  east  or  New  Orleans  bank,  and  washing  away  the  other  bank 
causing  large  cavings.  This  movement  is  rapid,  averaging  15  feet  a  year.  It  is  always  adding 
new  squares  and  streets  to  the  front  of  New  Orleans,  which  is  known  as  "  the  batture  "  When 
:  he  city  was  founded,  the  Custom-house  which  stood  160  years  ago  where  it  stands  to-day  was 
oQ  the  river  bank.  Now  it  is  three  squares  inland.  At  the  foot  of  St.  Joseph  street 'most 
itture  has  been  made,  the  river  havmg  travelled  westward  1800  feet  in  a  century  and  a  half 
Tiat  is  now  the  east  bank  was  then  the  west  bank.  During  that  period  the  Mississippi  has  filled  up* 


2  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

slowly  but  surely,  its  own  channel— which  is  now  well  built  up— and  has,  at  the  same  time, 
carved  out  an  entirely  new  channel  for  itself. 

"New  Orleans  is  specially  interesting  among  the  cities  of  the  United  States,"  remarks 
the  British  EncyclopcEdia  "from  the  picturesqueness  of  its  older  sections,  and  the  languages,  tastes 
and  customs  of  a  large  portion  of  Its  people.  Its  history  is  as  sombre  and  unique  as  the  dark 
wet  cypress  forest,  draped  in  long  pendant  Spanish  moss,  which  once  occupied  its  site  and 
which  still  encircles  its  horizon." 

It  was  founded  in  1718  by  Jean  Baptiste  Lemoyne  de  BienvlUe,  a  French  Canadian,  Governor 
of  the  French  colony  which  had  been  planted  nineteen  years  earlier  at  Biloxi,  on  Mississippi 
Sound.  A  few  years  after  its  founding  when  it  was  still  but  little  more  than  a  squalid  village  of 
deported  galley  slaves,  trappers  and  gold  hunters,  it  was  made  the  capital  of  that  vast  Louis- 
iana, which  loosely  comprised  the  whole  Mississippi  Valley.  The  names  remaining  in  vogue 
in  that  portion  of  the  city  still  distinguished  as  le  vieuxcarre,  or  the  old  French  quarter,  preserve 
an  interesting  record  of  these  humble  beginnings.  The  memory  of  the  French  dominion  is 
retained  in  the  titles  and  foreign  aspects  of  Toulouse,  Orleans,  Du  Maine,  Conti,  Dauphin6  and 
Chartres  streets  ;  while  the  sovereignty  of  Spain  is  even  more  distinctly  traceable  in  the  stuc- 
coed walls  and  iron  lattices,  huge  locks  and  hinges,  arches  and  gratings,  balconies  and  jalousies, 
corrugated  roofs  of  tiles,  dim  corridors  and  inner  courts,  brightened  with  portieres,  urns  and 
basins,  statues  half  hid  in  roses  and  vines,  and  musical  with  sounds  of  trickling  water.  There 
are  streets  named  for  the  Spanish  Governors,  Unzaga,  Galvez,  Miro,  Salcedo,  Casa  Calva  and 
Carondelet. 

The  site  of  New  Orleans  was  selected  by  Bienville  as  the  highest  point  on  the  river  bank  and 
consequently  safe  from  overflow.  The  second  year  of  its  occupation,  however,  the  entire  town 
was  submerged,  and  it  was  found  necessary  to  construct  a  dyke  around  it  to  protect  it  against 
inundation.  This  dyke  was  the  beginning  of  the  immense  system  of  levees  which  have  cost  the 
people  of  the  Lower  Mississippi  Valley  over  $150,000,000  to  erect  and  maintain.  The  site  selected 
by  Bienville  for  the  city  was  deemed  specially  favorable,  first  on  account  of  its  height— it  was 
ten  feet  above  the  level  of  the  ocean— and  secondly,  on  account  of  a  bayou  which  ran  just  back 
of  the  town  to  Lake  Pontchartrain,  thus  giving  the  city  communication  with  the  Gulf,  otherwise 
than  by  the  river  whose  strong  current  at  high  flood  rendered  it  difficult  of  ascent.  It  did  not 
prove  to  be  so  favorable  as  it  had  appeared  at  first  sight,  being  covered  by  a  noisome  and 
almost  impenetrable  cypress  swamp,  and  subject  to  frequent  if  not  annual  overflow.  Its  dis- 
tance from  the  mouth  of  the  river  was  also  a  great  disadvantage.  Bayou  St.  John,  known  to  the 
Indians  as  Choupich  (muddy),  and  Bayou  Sauvage,  afterward  Gentilly,  navigable  to  small  sea- 
going vessels  to  within  a  mile  of  the  Mississippi's  bank,  led  by  a  short  course  to  the  open  waters 
of  the  lake  and  thence  to  the  Gulf.  Here,  in  1718,  Bienville  landed  a  detachment  of  twenty-five 
convicts  or  galley  slaves,  twenty-five  carpenters  and  a  few  voyagmrs  from  the  Illinois  Country 
(Canadians)  to  make  a  clearing  and  erect  the  necessary  huts  for  the  new  city  which  he  proposed 
to  found,  and  which  he  named  in  honor  of  his  Highness,  the  Prince  Regent  of  France,  Louis 
Philippe,  Duke  d'Orleans,  one  of  the  greatest  roues  and  scoundx-els  that  ever  lived. 

The  original  city,  as  laid  off  by  Bienville,  comprised  eleven  squares  front  on  the  river, 
running  from  Customhouse  street  (rae  de  la  Douane)  to  Barracks  street  (rue  des  Quartiers), 
and  five  squares  back  from  Levee  street  (rue  de  la  Levee)  to  Burgundy  (rue  de  la  Bour- 
gogne).  These  limits  constituted  for  many  years  the  boundaries  of  New  Orleans.  During 
the  earlj  Fi-euch  days,  houses  were  built  back  of  this,  along  the  road  running  towards 
the  lake  and  Bayou  St.  John.  Plantations  were  established  on  the  river  bank,  both 
above  and  below  the  city.  When  the  city  was  transferred  from  Spain  to  France,  and  thence 
to  the  United  States,  the  great  bulk  of  the  population  still  lived  in  the  old  quarters.  The 
Americans,  however,  began  to  establish  themselves  above  on  what  was  of  old  the  Jesuits' 
plantation,  building  up  a  new  to^Ti,  which  became  known  as  the  faubourg  St.  Mary  or 
Sainte  Marie.    At  the  lower  end  of  town,  another  suburb  was  laid  out,  known  a8  faubourg  ' 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  3 

Marigny.  This  made  New  Orleans  a  perfect  crescent  in  shape,  for  the  river  just  in  front 
of  the  city  bends  gracefully  in  the  form  of  a  half  moon.  To  this  circumstance  is  due  the  title  of 
"Crescent  City,"  bestowed  upon  New  Orleans  fifty  years  ago,  and  which,  although  very  appli- 
cable then,  is  ridiculous  to-day.  The  city  has  spread  up  stream,  following  the  bank  of  the  river, 
annexing  innumerable  suburban  towns  and  villages,  until  it  is  now  in  shape  very  much  like  the 
letter  "  S,"  long  and  narrow,  while  a  portion  of  it,  the  Fifteenth  ward,  or  Algiers,  is  situated  on 
the  right  bank  and  cut  off  entirely  from  the  rest  of  the  city. 

In  this  movement  upstream  and  backward  towards  the  lake,  New  Orleans  has  swallowed  a 
large  number  of  towns  and  villages— almost  as  many  as  London  itself.  And  as  many  of  the 
districts  thus  devoured  still  retain  in  ordinary  parlance  their  old  titles,  it  is  very  confusing  to 
strangers.  Thus,  the  western  portion  of  New  Orleans  is  never  spoken  of  as  the  Fifteenth  ward, 
but  always  as  Algiers,  recalling  the  fact  that  fifteen  years  ago,  it  was  a  city  with  a  complete 
municipal  government  of  its  own,  mayor,  council  and  policemen.  The  extreme  upper  portion 
of  New  Orleans,  constituting  the  Sixteenth  and  Seventeenth  wards,  is  universally  knovm  as 
Carrollton,  while  another  portion,  that  bordering  on  Lake  Pontchartrain,  still  bears  the  title  of 
Milneburg,  in  honor  of  the  philanthropist  Milne. 

New  Orleans  comprises  to-day  what  originally  constituted  the  cities  of  New  Orleans,  Algiers, 
Carrollton,  Jefferson  City  and  Lafayette,  the  faubourgs  Treme,  Delord,  St.  Johnsburg,  Marigny, 
DeClouet.  Sainte  Marie,  Annonciation,  Washington,  Neuve  Marigny,  las  Communes,  and  the 
villages  of  Greenville,  Burtheville,  Bouligny,  Hurstviile,  Fribourg,  Rickerville,  Mechanicsville, 
Belleville,  Bloomington,  Freetown,  Metairieville,  Milneburg,  Feinerburg,  Gentilly,  Marley, 
Foucher  and  others. 

Of  these,  the  only  names  still  used  to  any  extent  are  Algiers,  Carrollton,  Jefferson, 
Greenville,  Gentilly,  Milneburg  and  Freetown. 

Algiers  is  that  portion  of  New  Orleans  on  the  right,  or  west  bank  of  the  river,  where  the 
Southern  Pacific  or  Louisiana  &  Texas  R.  R.  has  its  depot. 

Freetown,  is  a  negro  suburb  of  Algiers,  Ijang  directly  north  of  it,  and  between  It  and  Gretna. 
Carrollton  embraces  what  is  known  as  the  Seventh  district  or  the  Sixteenth  and  Seventeenth 
wards.  Upper  Line  street  divides  it  from  the  remainder  of  the  city.  It  extends  between  parallel 
lines  to  Lake  Pontchartrain  and  includes  the  lake  resort  or  pleasure  ground  known  as  West  End. 
Jefferson  City  constitutes  what  is  known  as  the  Sixth  district,  or  Twelfth,  Thirteenth  and 
Fourteenth  wards.  It  comprises  all  that  portion  of  New  Orleans  between  Toledano  and  Upper 
Line  streets. 

Greenville  is  that  portion  of  Jefferson  next  to  Carrollton  and  bordering  the  river,  and  in  the 
immediate  neighborhood  of  the  Upper  City  Park  or  Exposition  Grounds. 

Gtentllly  is  the  small  settlement  mainly  of  farmers,  dairy-men  and  vegetable  dealers  in  the 
Bayou  Gentilly,  a  corruption  of  Chantilly,  the  celebrated  estate  of  the  Condes  in  France,  just 
back  of  the  Third  district  on  the  line  of  the  Pontchartrain  Railroad. 

Milneburg  is  the  village  lying  at  the  terminus  of  the  Pontchartrain  Railroad  on  Lake  Pont- 
chartrain. The  terminus  of  the  New  Orleans  &  Lake  Road  is  similarly  known  as  West  End,  and 
that  of  the  New  Orleans  &  Spanish  Fort  Railroad  as  Spanish  Fort. 

New  Orleans  includes  the  entire  parish  of  Orleans,  the  gi-eater  portion  of  which  is  an  unin- 
habitable swamp.  All  the  land  between  the  river  and  lakes  Pontchartrain  and  Borgne  is  conse- 
quently a  portion  of  the  city  and  controlled  by  municipal  laws  and  ordinances.  The  total  area 
subject  to  municipal  government  is  187  square  miles  or  119,680  acres.  Of  this  only  a  very  small 
portion,  less  than  one-tenth,  is  built  upon  or  even  cultivated  in  farms  or  inhabited.  The  greater 
portion  of  New  Orleans  is  still  covered  by  tiie  primeval  cypress  forests  and  sea  swamp  and 
marsh.  Chef  Menteur,  the  Rigolets,  are  part  and  parcel  of  the  city,  although  thirty  miles  dis- 
tant from  a  house.  Within  the  municipal  limits  are  the  best  fishing  and  duck-hunting  resorts  in 
the  South,  and  there  are  probably  sections  of  the  Ninth  ward  of  New  Orleans  which  have  never 
been  visited  by  man,  and  as  unknown  as  the  centre  of  Africa.    One  can  easily  get  lost  in  these 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


morasses,  and  several  instances  of  quite  recent  occurreuce  are  on  record  of  men  having  beeu 
lost  for  days  and  weelis  in  the  cypress  swamps,  which  are  a  portion  of  the  municipality  and 
trom  which  they  were  rescued  when  very  nearly  expiring  from  starvation. 

A  short  time  agro,  a  writer  engaged  in  preparing  sketches  of  New  Orleans  scenes,  had  a  photo- 
f  t  •  '.  !^^"  *^^  ^'"'^"'P  ^^''''^'  "'  ^^'^  ^^^""^  geographical  centre  of  New  Orleans,  immediatelv 
behmd  the  Boys'  House  of  Kef  uge.  The  photograph  was  so  weird  and  gloomy  thai  the  magazSe 
declmed  to  print  it  confessing  that  it  was  a  fine  sketch,  but  declaring,  at  the  same  time,  that  no 
one  would  believe  for  a  second,  that  such  a  melancholy  spot  existed  in  the  centre  of  a  great 

nnnTJ^T'^'"''?  °^  ^^^^' ''  ^""^  ^'^  ^^^  necessity  of  placing  all  this  country,  between  the  river 
and  the  lakes,  under  the  control  of  the  city  authorities,  in  order  to  facilitate  and  improve  its 
system  of  drainage.  The  river  being  higher  than  the  city  and  Lake  Pontchartrain  lower,  it  has 
Deen  found  necessary  to  drain  backward  through  large  open  canals  into  the  lake 
w>.,-w7  ^i"^?''V'  divided  into  districts  and  wards.  The  wards  are  the  political  divisions, 
while  the  districts  are  mainly  used  for  describing  the  location  of  a  building.  Thus,  one  seldom 
speaks  of  living  in  the  Third  ward,  but  rather  says,  "in  the  First  district- 

The  First  district,  including  the  First,  Second  and  Third  wards,  is  the  old  faubourg  Ste  Marie 
factu'es.""  '"''''"    "  "  '''  — ercial  centre  of  the  city,  and  the  seat  of  most^f  Us  manu 

The  Second  district  includes  the  Fourth,  Fifth  and  Sixth  wards.  It  is  the  old  city  or  the 
norHnWH  ';  ^.^^  ^1^^^^  portion  is  well  built  up.  well  populated,  and  includes  the  greater 
portion  of  the  foreign  population  of  New  Orieans. 

The  Third  district  includes  the  Seventh,  Eighth  and  Ninth  wards.  It  is  the  old  faubourg 
fnTcrToles    ^  '''^^'^°'*'''''''^^^^*'''^'''  ^^  ^  Population  mainly  of  Germans 

The  Fourth  district  includes  the  Tenth  and  Eleventh  wards.  It  is  neariy  entirely  a  residence 
quarter,  and  the  location  of  the  finest  dweUings,  mainly  occupied  by  Americans. 

The  Fifth  district  constitutes  but  one  ward,  the  Fifteenth.  It  is  the  seat  of  the  railroad  repair 
^shops,  dockyards,  etc. 

The  Sixth  district  is  like  the  Fourth,  namely,  a  residence  quarter.  It  embraces  three  wards 
the  Twelfth,  Thu-teenth,  and  Fourteenth,  and  includes  the  Upper  City,  or  Exposition  Park 

The  Seventh  district,  or  Sixteenth  and  Seventeenth  wards,  known  generally  as  Carrollton  is 
thinly  settled,  and  mainly  given  up  to  dairies,  small  truck  farms,  etc. 

A  still  more  marked  di%ision  of  the  city  is  that  between  the  French,  or  Creole,  and  American 
quarters.  Canal  street,  which  separates  the  First  and  Second  districts,  is  that  dividing  line  and 
separates  two  towns  as  widely  different  in  race,  language,  customs  or  ideas  as  two  races  of 
people  living  close  to  each  other,  and  separated  only  by  an  imaginary  line,  can  well  be. 


DISTRICTS  AND  THEIR  BOUNDARIES. 

FiBST  District,  is  bounded  on  the  North  by  Canal  street.  South  by  Felicity  street.  East  by 
the  River,  and  West  by  Felicity  street  and  New  Canal. 

Second  District,  is  bounded  on  the  North  by  Esplanade  street.  South  by  Canal  street.  East 
by  the  River,  and  West  by  city  limits. 

Third  District,  is  bounded  on  the  North  by  the  Lake,  South  by  the  River,  East  by  city 
limits.  West  by  Esplanade. 

Fourth  District,  is  bounded  by  Felicity  and  Toledano  streets  and  the  River. 

Fifth  District,  comprises  all  the  city  on  the  West  bank  of  the  River,  formerly  Algiers. 

Sixth  District,  comprising  Jefferson  City,  Burtheville,  Greenville,  Bloomingdale,  etc.,  is 


etJtfiE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  »> 

bounded  on  the  North  and  West  by  the  lower  line  of  Carrollton  and  Marley  avenue,  South  by 
the  River,  and  East  by  Toledano  street  and  the  River. 

Seventh  District,  formerly  Carrollton,  comprises  all  that  portion  of  the  city  above  the  Sixth 
district  to  the  boundary  line  of  Jefferson  Parish. 

BOUNDARIES   OF  WARDS. 

First  Ward,  from  Felicity  street  to  Thalia. 

Second  Ward,  from  Thalia  street  to  Julia. 

Third  Ward,  from  Julia  street  to  Canal. 

Fourth  Ward,  from  Canal  street  to  St.  Louis. 

Fifth  Ward,  from  St.  Louis  street  to  St.  Philip, 

Sixth  Ward,  from  St.  Philip  street  to  Esplanade. 

Seventh  Ward,  from  Esplanade  street  to  Elysian  Fields. 

Eighth  Ward,  from  Elysian  Fields  street  to  Lafayette  avenue. 

Ninth  Ward,  from  Lafayette  avenue  to  lower  limits  of  the  city. 

Tenth  Ward,  from  Felicity  street  to  First. 

Eleventh  Ward,  from  First  street  to  Toledano. 

Twelfth  Ward,  from  Toledano  street  to  Napoleon  avenue. 

Thirteenth  Ward,  from  Napoleon  avenue  to  Upper  Line. 

Fourteenth  Ward,  from  Upper  Line  street  to  Lower  Line. 

Fifteenth  Ward,  all  of  the  Fifth  district. 

Sixteenth  Ward,  from  Lower  Line  to  Carrollton  avenue. 

Seventeenth  Ward,  from  Carrollton  avenue  to  Upper  Line  No.  2. 


Historical  sketch  book. 


CHAPTER  IL— EARLY  HISTORY. 

NEW  ORLEANS  UNDER  THE  FRENCH  AND  SPANISH  DOMINIONS — VICISSITUDES  OF  THE 
EARLY  INHABITANTS — ORIGIN  OF  THE  POPULATION — HOW  THE  CITY  LOOKED  IN 
1726. 

——/■  The  city  of  New  Orleans  was  founded  in  1718,  that  is  a  few  men  were  landed  there,  and  put 
-'  to  work  constructinsr  huts  and  warehouses.  In  1719  an  overflow  occurred  which  flooded  the 
entire  to-wm,  and  compelled  the  men  to  cease  work  on  the  buildings  and  beprin  the  erection  of  a 
levee  around  the  place  in  order  to  prevent  a  recurrence  of  the  calamity.  In  1720,  Xew  Orleans 
was  placed  under  the  military  command  of  M.  De  Noyau.  Bienville,  in  colonial  council, 
endeavored  to  have  it  declared  the  capital  of  the  colony  of  Louisiana,  instead  of  old  Biloxi,  (now 
Ocean  Springs),  but  was  outvoted. 

He  sent  his  chief  of  enjjineers,  however,  Sieur  Le  Blond  de  la  Tour,  a  Knight  of  St.  Louis,  to 
the  little  settlement,  with  orders  "  to  choose  a  suitable  site  for  a  city  worthy  to  become  the  cap- 
ital of  Louisiana."  Stakes  were  driven,  lines  drawn,  streets  marked  off,  town  lots  granted, 
ditched  and  palisaded,  a  rude  levee  thrown  up  along  the  river  front,  and  the  scattered  settlers  of 
the  neighborhood  gathered  into  the  form  of  a  town.  To  de  la  Tour,  therefore,  is  due  the  nam- 
ing of  the  streets  of  the  old  city. 

On  Bayou  St.  John,  near  this  little  town,  was  a  settlement  of  Indians,  called  Tchoutchouma , 
or  the  place  of  the  Houma  or  Sun,  a  title  which  has  been  often  poetically  applied  to  New 
Orleans. 

In  1721  warehouses  had  already  been  erected,  and  Bienville  (then  Governor  of  Louisiana) 
reserved  the  right  to  make  his  residence  in  the  new  city  on  certain  governmental  regulations. 
Finally,  in  June  of  the  following  year,  1722,  the  royal  commissioners  having  at  length  given 
orders  to  transfer  the  seat  of  government  from  Biloxi  to  New  Orleans,  a  gradual  removal  was 
begun  of  the  troops  and  effects  of  the  Mississippi  Company,  who  had  control  of  Louisiana.  In 
August,  Bienville  completed  the  transfer  by  moving  thither  the  gubernatorial  headquarters. 
In  the  January  preceding  these  accessions  the  place  already  contained  100  houses  and  300 
inhabitants. 

It  will  be  seen,  therefore,  that  it  was  entirely  due  to  Bienville's  perspicuity  and  obstinacy 
that  New  Orleans  was  finally  made  the  capital  of  the  French  possessions  in  America.  The  State 
of  Louisiana  and  city  of  New  Orleans  have  ill  requited  him.  In  the  LT.  S.  Custom  House  there  is 
a  basso-rilievo  in  marble  of  Bienville,  which  is  the  only  monument  ever  erected  to  him  in  New 
Orleans.  A  single  street  bears  his  name,  thanks  to  de  la  Tour,  his  own  engineer.  Beyond  this, 
New  Orleans  has  done  nothing  to  honor  the  man  to  whom  she  owes  her  foundation,  and  whom 
for  years  her  people  called  "father." 

The  buildings  in  the  little  city  must  have  been  very  unstable,  for  the  next  year,  on  Septem- 
ber 11th,  a  storm  destroyed  the  parish  church— the  predecessor  of  the  St.  Louis  Cathedral,  and 
standing  on  the  same  site  now  occupied  by  that  building— the  hospital,  and  thirty  of  the  one 
hundred  dwellings  the  town  contained. 

The  population  increased  with  wonderful  rapidity.  In  1723,  a  party  of  emigrants  from 
Germany,  who  had  crossed  the  ocean  to  settle  on  lands  in  Arkansas,  granted  to  them  by  the 
celebrated  Law,  being  disappointed  in  their  original  intention,  descended  the  river  to  New 
Orleans,  hoping  to  obtain  a  passage  back  to  France.  This  the  government  was  unable  to 
furnish,  but  small  tracts  of  land  were  given  to  them  on  both  sides  of  the  river  about  thirty  miles 
above  New  Orleans,  at  what  is  known  as  the  German  Coast,  where  they  settled  and  enga^-ed  in 
agricultural  pursuits,  supplying  the  city  with  vegetables  and  garden  products.  This  was  the 
commencement  of  the  German  element  In  the  population  of  New  Orleans. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  i 

Most  of  these  Germans,  however,  became  thoroughly  Gallicized  in  the  course  of  time,  and 
to-day  their  descendants  speak  nothing  but  French,  and  most  of  them  bear  French  titles,  having 
translated  their  Teutonic  names  into  French. 

In  1732,  the  population  of  the  little  city  had  grown  to  5,000.  A  few  civil  and  military  officials 
of  high  rank  had  brought  their  wives  with  them  from  France,  and  a  few  Canadians  had  brought 
them  from  Canada,  but  they  were  the  exceptions.  The  male  portion  of  the  population  consisted 
principally  of  soldiers,  trappers,  miners,  galley  slaves  and  redemptioners  bound  for  three  years' 
service,  while  the  still  disproportionally  small  number  of  women  was  almost  entirely  made  up 
of  transported  and  unreformed  inmates  of  houses  of  correction,  vnth  a  few  Choctaw  squaws 
and  African  slave  women.  Gambling,  duelling  and  vicious  idleness  were  indulged  in  to  such  an 
extent  as  to  give  the  authorities  great  concern.  The  Company  addressed  its  efforts  to  the 
improvement  of  both  the  architectural  and  social  features  of  the  provincial  capital,  and  the  years 
1726  and  1727  are  conspicuous  for  these  endeavors.  The  importation  of  male  vagabonds  and 
criminals  had  already  ceased,  stringent  penalties  were  laid  upon  gambling,  and  steps  were  taken 
for  promotion  of  education  and  religion. 

Though  the  plan  of  the  town  comprised  a  parallelogram  of  4,000  feet  on  the  river  by  a 
depth  of  1,800,  and  was  divided  into  regular  squares  of  300  feet,  front  and  depth,  yet  its  appear- 
ance was  disorderly  and  squalid.  A  few  board  cabins  of  split  cypress  (pieux)  thatched  with  cypress 
bark,  were  scattered  confusedly  over  the  swampy  ground,  surrounded  and  isolated  from  each 
other  by  willow  brakes,  reedy  ponds  and  sloughs  bristling  with  dwarf  palmettos  and  swarming 
with  reptiles. 

In  the  middle  of  the  river  front  two  squares  had  been  reserved,  the  front  one  as  a  parade  ground 
or  Place  d'Arme?  (now  Jackson  Square),  the  other  for  ecclesiastical  purposes.  The  middle  of 
the  rear  square  had  from  the  first  been  occupied  by  a  church,  and  is  at  present  the  site  of  the  St. 
Louis  Cathedral.  On  the  left  and  adjoining  the  church  a  company  of  Capuchin  priests  erected 
in  1726  a  convent.  A  company  of  L'rsuline  nuns,  commissioned  to  open  a  school  for  girls  and  to 
attend  to  the  sick,  arrived  in  1727  from  France,  and  were  given  temporary  quarters  in  the  house 
on  the  north  corner  of  Chartres  and  Bien^-ille  streets,  while  the  foundations  of  a  large  and  com- 
modious nunnery  were  laid  for  them  in  the  square  bounded  by  the  river  front,  Chartres,  rue  de 
I'Arsenal  (now  Ursuline  street,  in  honor  of  the  nuns),  and  the  lower  limit  of  the  city,  now  Hospi- 
tal street.  This  building,  which  was  finished  in  1730,  being  then  the  largest  edifice  in  New 
Orleans,  was  occupied  by  the  nuns  for  ninety-four  years,  until  1824,  when  they  removed  to  their 
present  convent  below  the  city.  In  1831  the  old  building  became  the  State  House  of  Louisiana ; 
in  1834  it  was  made  the  archiepiscopal  palace  for  the  Catholic  Archbishop  of  New  Orleans,  in 
which  capacity  it  still  serves.  It  is  the  oldest  building  in  New  Orleans,  being  in  1885  one  hundred 
and  fifty-five  years  of  age,  and  as  strong  and  stable  as  when  first  built. 

A  soldiers'  hospital  was  built  near  the  convent  in  the  square  above,  which  gave  to  Hospital 
street  its  name. 

The  Jesuits  received  the  grant  of  a  tract  of  land  immediately  above  the  city,  in  consider- 
ation of  which  they  agreed  to  educate  the  youth  of  New  Orleans.  This  tract  was  twenty  arpents 
(3,600  feet)  front,  by  fifty  arpents  (9,000  feet)  depth,  and  lay  within  the  boundaries  now  indicated 
by  Common  and  Terpsichore  streets,  and  back  from  the  Eiver  to  the  Bayou.  A  further  grant  of 
seven  arpents  front,  adjoining  the  first  grant,  made  the  Jesuits'  plantation  cover  all  the  land  now 
known  as  the  First  district.  The  space  between  the  plantation  and  the  city  was  declared  a  terre 
cammune,  a  pleasure  ground  not  to  be  built  on,  but  to  be  used  as  a  public  road  and  for  the  pur- 
poses of  fortification.  This  terre  commune  marks  Common  street,  which  derives  its  name  there- 
from. 

The  Jesuits  settled  on  their  plantation  in  1727,  being  furnished  with  a  residence,  a  chapel, 
and  slaves  to  cultivate  their  lands.  They  introduced  the  orange,  fig,  sugar  cane  and  indigo 
plant  to  Louisiana. 


.S  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

A  map  of  New  Orleans,  made  in  1728  when  Peri^r  was  Governor  of  the  colony  of  Louisiana 
shows  the  ancient  Place  d'Armes  of  the  same  rectangular  figure  as  to-day,  an  open  plot  of  grass, 
crossed  by  two  diagonal  paths  and  occupying  the  exact  middle  of  the  town  front.  Behind  it 
stood  the  parish  church  of  St.  Louis,  built  like  most  of  the  public  buildings  of  that  day,  of 
brick.  On  the  right  of  the  church  was  a  small  guardhouse  and  prison,  and  on  the  left  was  the 
dwelling  of  the  Capuchins.  On  the  lower  side  of  the  Place  d'Armes,  at  the  corner  of  Ste.  Anne 
and  Chartres,  were  the  quarters  of  the  government  employees.  The  grounds  facing  the  Place 
d'Armes  in  St.  Peter  and  Ste.  Anne  streets  were  still  unoccupied,  except  by  cord-wood  and  a 
few  pieces  of  parked  artillery  on  the  one  side  and  a  small  house  for  issuing  rations  on  the  other. 
Just  off  the  river  front,  on  Toulouse  street,  were  the  smithies  of  the  Marine,  while  on  the  other 
hand  two  long  narrow  buildings  lining  cither  side  of  the  street  named  in  honor  of  the  Due  du 
Maine,  and  reaching  from  the  river  front  nearly  to  Chartres  street,  were  the  King's  warehouses 
Upon  the  upper  corner  of  the  rue  de  1' Arsenal  (now  Ursulines)  was  the  hospital,  with  its 
grounds  running  along  the  upper  side  of  the  street  to  Chartres,  while  on  the  square  next  below 
was  the  convent  of  the  Ursulines.  The  barracks  and  the  Company's  forges  were  in  the  square, 
bounded  by  Royal,  St.  Louis,  Bourbon  and  Conti.  In  the  extrem.e  upper  portion  of  the  city,  on 
the  river  front,  at  what  in  later  years  became  the  corner  of  Customhouse  and  Decatur  streets, 
were  the  house  and  grounds  of  the  Governor;  and  in  the  square  immediately  below  them  the 
humbler  quarters  transiently  occupied  by  the  Jesuits.  The  fine  residences,  built  of  cypress,  or 
half  brick  and  half  frame,  mainly  one  story  and  never  over  two  and  a  half,  stood  on  Chartres 
and  Royal  streets.  The  poorer  people  lived  in  the  rear  of  the  city,  the  greater  number  of 
their  houses  being  located  in  Orleans  street.  Prominent  among  the  residents  of  New  Orleans 
at  that  early  day,  to  whom  belongs  the  honor  of  being  the  original  founders  of  the  city— its 
F.  F.'s-stand  the  names  Delery,  Dalby,  St.  Martin,  Dupuy,  Rossard,  Duval,  Beaulieu-Chauvin 
D'Anseville,  Perrigaut,  Dreux,  MandeviUe,  Tisseraud,  Bonneau,  DeBlanc,  Dasfeld  Villere  Pro- 
venche.  Gauvrit,  Pellerin,  D'Artaguette.  Lazon,  Raguet,  Fleurieu,  Brule,  Lafreniere,  Carriere 
Caron  and  Pascal.  About  half  these  names  are  now  extinct,  but  the  remainder  still  flourish  in 
New  Orleans  and  throughout  Louisiana. 

In  that  same  year,  1728,  occurred  the  one  important  event,  the  arrival  of  a  consignment  of 
reputable  girls,  sent  over  by  the  King  of  France  to  the  Ursulines,  to  be  disposed  of  in  marria-e 
by  them.  They  were  supplied  by  the  King  on  their  departure  from  France  with  a  small  chest  of 
clothing,  and  were  long  kno^sTi  in  the  traditions  of  their  colonial  descendants  by  the  honora- 
ble distmction  of  the  fillesdela  cassette,  or  "the  casketgirls,"  to  distinguish  them  from  the  "cor- 
rection  girls"  previously  sent  over  from  the  prisons  and  hospitals  of  Paris. 

Incidents  of  Indian  warfare  and  massacre  are  not  lacking  on  the  pages  of  the  early  historv 
of  New  Orleans. 

It  was  in  1730  that  the  Natchez  Indians  murdered  all  the  French  at  Fort  Rosalie  (Natchez) 
and  at  a  number  of  other  settlements  above  New  Orleans.  All  the  able-bodied  men  of  the  little 
city,  black  as  well  as  white,  were  armed  and  sent  against  them.  This  was  followed  in  17.32  by  a 
negro  insurrection,  which  was  only  suppressed  by  the  execution  of  the  ringleaders  the  women 
on  the  gallows,  the  men  on  the  wheel.  The  heads  of  the  men  were  stuck  upon  posts  at  the 
upper  and  lower  extremities  of  the  town  front,  and  at  the  Tchoupitoulas  settlement,  and  at 
other  points,  to  inspire  future  would-be  conspirators  with  awe. 

In  1758,  New  Orleans  received  a  considerable  accession  of  population,  on  account  of  the 
absorption  by  the  British  of  the  French  settlements  on  the  upper  Ohio,  at  Fort  Duquesne  now 
Pittsburgh,  and  the  consequent  migration  of  the  French  colonists  from  these  points  to  New 
Orleans.  This  required  the  construction  of  additional  barracks  in  the  lower  part  of  the  city 
front,  at  a  point  afterwards  known  by  the  name  of  Barracks  street  (rue  des  Quartiers)  Exnect- 
mg  an  attack  from  the  British,  Governor  Kerlerec  seized  the  opportunity  to  improve  the 
fortifications  around  the  town.  ^^  ^nv 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  9 

The  Creoles  of  New  Orleaais  were  at  this  time  greatly  agitated  over  what  is  known  iR* 
JjQuisiaaarfeistory  as  the  "Jesuit  War,"  a  quarrel  between  the  Jesuits  and  Capuchins  as  to  juris- . 
diction.  This  strife  was  characterized  by  "acrimonious  writings,  squibs,  pasquinades  and 
'satirical  songs,"  the  women  in  particular  taking  sides  with  lively  zeal.  In  July  1763,  the 
Capuchins  were  left  masters  of  the  field,  the  Jesuits  being  expelled  from  all  Fi-ench  and  Spanish 
possessions  on  the  order  of  the  Pope.  Their  plantation,  which  was  in  a  splendid  condition  and 
one  of  the  best  in  Louisiana,  was  sold  for  $180,000,  a  very  large  sum  in  those  days. 

In  November,  1762,  the  treaty  of  Fontainebleau  was  signed,  by  which  France  transferred 
Louisiana  to  Spain.  The  transaction  was  kept  a  secret,  and  it  was  not  until  after  the  lapse  of 
two  years  that  the  people  of  New  Orleans  learned  with  indignation  and  alarm  that  they  had 
been  sold  to  Spain.  In  March,  1766,  the  new  Spanish  Governor,  Don  Antonio  de  Ulloa,  arrived 
with  only  two  companies  of  Spanish  troops.  For  some  time,  the  incoming  Spanish  and  the  out- 
going French  Governors  administered  the  affairs  of  the  colony,  but  on  October  25th,  1768,  a 
conspiracy,  long  and  carefully  planned,  and  in  which  some  of  the  first  officers  of  the  govern- 
ment and  the  leading  merchants  of  New  Orleans  were  engaged,  revealed  itself  in  open  hostilities. 
At  the  head  of  this  movement  were  Lafreniere,  the  Attorney-General,  Foucault,  the  intendant 
Noyau  and  Bienville,  nephews  of  the  city's  founder,  and  Milhet,  Carresse,  Petit,  Poupet,  Marquis, 
DeMasan,  Hardy  de  Bois-Blanc  and  Yillere,  prominent  merchants  and  planters.  On  the  night 
of  the  28th,  the  guns  at  the  Tchoupitoulas  gate  at  the  upper  side  of  the  city  were  spiked,  and  the 
Acadians,  headed  by  Noyau,  and  the  Germans,  by  Viliere.  entered  the  city.  UUoa  and  his 
troops  retired  aboard  the  Spanish  frigate  lying  in  the  river  and  sailed  for  Havana. 

Thus,  freed  from  the  Spanish  dominion,  the  project  of  forming  a  republic  was  discussed  by  the 
Louisiana  Creoles,  and  delegates  were  sent  to  the  British  American  colonies  to  propose  some 
sort  of  union  of  all  the  American  colonies.    But  the  republic  was  short-lived. 

On  August  18th,  1769,  Don  Alexandro  O'Reilly— whom  Byron's  Donna  Juana  mentions  so  favor- 
ably—arrived with  3,600  picked  Spanish  troops,  50  pieces  of  artillery,  and  24  vessels.  The  Louisian- 
ians  could  not  resist  this  force.  Twelve  of  the  principal  movers  of  the  insurrection  were 
arrested  ;  six  of  them  shot  in  the  Place  d' Armes,  and  the  others  imprisoned  in  the  Moro  Castle  at 
Havana. 

At  the  time  that  O'Reilly  took  possession  of  New  Orleans,  the  trade  of  the  city  was  mainly 
in  the  hands  of  the  English.  He  soon  broke  this  up,  however,  refusing  to  admit  any  English 
vessels  to  New  Orleans.  The  commercial  privileges  of  the  city  were,  however,  gradually 
extended.  Trade  was  allowed  with  Campeachy  and  the  French  and  Spanish  West  Indies,  under 
certain  restrictions.  The  importation  of  slaves  from  these  islands  had  long  been  forbidden  on 
account  of  the  insurrectionary  spu-it  which  existed  among  them,  but  the  trade  in  Guinea  negroes 
was  encouraged.  In  1778,  Galvez  gave  New  Orleans  the  right  to  trade  with  any  port  in  France, 
or  of  the  thirteen  British  colonies,  then  engaged  in  their  struggle  for  independence.  In  1776, 
Oliver  Pollock  at  the  head  of  a  number  of  merchants  from  New  York,  Philadelphia,  and  Boston, 
who  had  estabhshed  themselves  in  New  Orleans,  began,  with  the  countenance  of  Galvez,  to 
supply,  by  fleets  of  large  canoes,  the  agents  of  the  American  cause  with  arms  and  ammunition 
delivered  at  Fort  Pitt  (Pittsburgh). 

On  Good  Friday,  March  21st,  1780,  occurred  the  great  conflagration  which  destroyed  nearly 
the  entire  city.  It  began  on  Chartres  street  near  St.  Louis,  in  the  private  chapel  of  Don 
Vincento  Jose  Nunez,  the  military  treasurer  of  the  colony.  The  buildings  on  the  immediate 
river  front  escaped,  but  the  central  portion  of  the  town,  including  the  entire  commercial 
quarter,  the  dwellings  of  the  leading  inhabitants,  the  town  hall,  the  arsenal,  the  jail,  the  parish 
church  and  the  quarters  of  the  Capuchins  were  completely  destroyed.  Nineteen  squares  and 
856  houses  were  destroyed  in  this  fire. 

Six  years  later,  on  December  8th,  1794,  some  children  playing  in  a  court  on  Royal  street,  too 
near  an  adjoining  hay  store,  set  fire  to  it.  A  strong  north  wind  was  blowing  at  the  time ,  and  in 
three  hours  212  dwellings  and  stores  in  the  heart  of  the  town  were  destroyed.    The  cathedral, 


10  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

lately  founded  on  tlie  site  of  the  church,  burned  in  1788.  escaped  ;  but  the  pecuniary  loss 
exceeded  that  of  the  previous  conflat-ration,  which  had  been  estimated  at  §2,600,000.  Only  two 
stores  were  left  standing,  and  a  larj,'e  portion  of  the  population  was  compelled  to  camp  out  in 
the  Place  d'  Armes  and  on  the  levee. 

In  consequence  of  these  devastating  fires,  whose  ravages  were  largely  attributable  to  the 
inflammable  building  material  in  general  use.  Baron  Carondelet,  then  governor,  offered  a  pre- 
mium on  roofs  covered  with  tiles,  instead  of  shingles,  as  heretofore  ;  and  thus  came  into  use  the 
tile  roof  which  to-day  forms  one  of  the  most  picturesque  features  of  the  old  French  quarter.  As 
the  heart  of  the  city  filled  up  again  it  was  with  better  structures,  displaying  many  Spanish- 
American  features— adobe  or  brick  walls,  arcades,  inner  courts,  ponderous  doors  and  windows, 
balconies,  portes  cocheres,  and  white  or  yellow  lime- washed  stucco.  Two-story  dwellings  took  the 
place  of  one-story  buildings,  and  the  general  appearance  as  well  as  the  safety  of  the  city  was 
improved. 

New  Orleans  now  made  rapid  improvement.  Don  Andres  Almonaster  y  Roxas,  father  of 
Baroness  Pontalba,  erected  a  handsome  row  of  brick  buildings  on  both  sides  of  the  Place 
d'Armes,  where  the  Pontalba  buildings  now  stand,  making  the  fashionable  retail  quarter  of  the 
town.  In  1787  he  built  on  Ursuline  street  a  chapel  of  stucco  brick  for  the  nuns.  The  Charity 
hospital  founded  in  1737  by  a  sailor  named  Jean  Louis,  on  Rampart,  between  St.  Louis  and  Tou- 
louse, then  outside  of  the  town  limits,  was  destroyed  in  1779  by  the  hurricane.  In  1781,  Almon- 
aster began  and  two  years  later  completed,  at  a  cost  of  $114,000,  on  the  same  site,  a  brick  edifice, 
which  he  called  the  Charity  Hospital  of  St.  Charles,  a  name  the  institution  still  bears.  In  1792  he 
began  the  erection  upon  the  site  of  the  parish  church,  destroyed  by  fire  in  1788,  of  a  brick  buil- 
ding, and  in  1794,  when  Louisiana  and  Florida  were  erected  into  a  bishopric  separate  from  Havana, 
this  church,  sufficiently  completed  for  occupation,  became  the  St.  Louis  Cathedral.  Later 
still,  he  filled  the  void  made  by  the  burning  of  the  town  hall  and  the  jail,  which,  until  the  con- 
flagration, had  stood  on  the  south  side  of  the  church,  facing  the  Place  d'Armes.  with  the  hall  of 
the  Cabildo,  the  same  that  stands  there  at  this  time,  consecrated  to  the  courts,  with  the  excep- 
tion of  the  upper  story  added  since,  the  French  roof  which  at  present  distorts  its  archi- 
tecture. 

The  Government  itself  completed  very  substantially  the  barracks  begun  by  Governor  Ker- 
lerec,  on  Barracks  street.  Close  by,  it  built  a  military  hospital  and  chapel,  and  near  the  upper 
river  comer  of  the  town,  on  the  square  now  occupied  for  the  same  purpose,  but  which  was  then 
directly  on  the  river,  it  put  up  a  wooden  customhouse.  The  "  Old  French  market "  on  the  river 
front,  just  below  the  Place  d'Armes,  was  erected  and  known  as  the  Halle  de  Boucheries. 

In  1794  Governor  Carondelet  began,  and  in  the  following  two  years  finished,  with  the  aid  of 
a  large  force  of  slaves,  the  excavation  of  the  "old  basin,"  and  the  Carondelet  Canal,  connecting 
New  Orleans  with  Bayou  St.  John  and  Lake  Pontchartrain. 

In  1791  the  Creoles  of  New  Orleans  became  infected  with  republicanism,  and  Carondelet 
found  it  necessary  to  take  the  same  precautions  with  New  Orleans  as  if  he  had  held  a  town  of 
the  enemy.  The  Marseillaise  was  wildly  called  for  at  the  theater  which  some  French  jefugees 
from  San  Domingo  had  opened,  and  in  the  drinking  shops  was  sung  "  Ca  ira,  (a  Ira,  les  aristocrates 
dlalanteme.'''' 

To  ensure  safety  the  fortifications  of  the  city  were  rebuilt,  being  completed  in  1794.  They 
consisted  of  a  fort,  St.  Charles,  at  the  lower  river  front,  with  barracks  for  150  men,  and  a  para- 
pet 18  feet  thick  faced  with  brick,  a  ditch  and  a  covered  way  ;  Fort  St.  Louis,  at  the  upper  river 
comer,  was  similar  to  this  in  all  regards.  The  armament  of  these  was  twelve  12andl8-pounders. 
At  the  corner  of  Canal  and  Rampart  street  was  Fort  Burgundy  ;  on  the  present  Congo 
square.  Fort  St.  Joseph,  and  at  what  is  now  the  corner  of  Rampart  and  Esplanade  street,  Fort 
St.  Ferdinand.  The  wall  which  passed  from  fort  to  fort  was  15  feet  high,  with  a  fosse  in  front, 
7  feet  deep  and  40  feet  ^^nde,  kept  filled  with  water  from  the  Carondelet  Canal. 

In   1794   ]fitienne   de  Bore  whose  plantation  occupied  the  site  where    the    Seventh    dis- 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  H 


trict  of  New  Orleans  (Carrollton)  now  stands,  succeeded  in  producing  $12,000  worth  of  superior 
sugar,  and  introduced  sugar  culture  into  Louisiana. 

In  1787,  New  Orleans  was  doing  a  very  large  export  trade  for  the  American  possessions,  on 
the  upper  Mississippi  and  Ohio,  the  goods  being  shipped  to  the  city  on  flat  boats.  In  August, 
1788  Gen.  Wilkinson,  received  through  his  agent  in  New  Orleans,  via  the  Mississippi,  a  cargo 
of  dry  goods  and  other  articles,  for  the  Kentucky  market,  probably  the  first  boatload  of 
manufactured  commodities  that  ever  went  up  the  river  to  the  Ohio.  ^^^^^^^^ 

In  1793  the  citizens  of  the  colony  were  granted  the  valuable  concession  of  an  open  commerce 
with  Europe  and  America,  and  a  number  of  merchants  from  Philadelphia  established 
commercial  houses  in  New  Orleans.  On  October  20th,  1795.  was  signed  at  Madrid  the  treaty  ■ 
which  declared  the  Mississippi  free  to  the  people  of  the  United  States,  and  New  Orleans  a  port 
of  deposit  for  three  years  free  of  any  charge.  t+        o  r,^t 

On  the  1st  of  October.  1800,  Louisiana  was  transferred  by  Spam  to  France.  It  was  not 
however,  until  March  26th.  1803,  that  the  French  colonial  prefect  Laussat,  landed  at  New 
Orleans,  commissioned  to  prepare  for  the  expected  arrival  of  General  Victor,  with  a  large  force 
of  French  troops.  Instead  of  General  Victor,  however,  a  vessel  from  France  brought  the  news 
in  July  that  Louisiana  had  been  purchased  by  the  United  States.  On  November  3rd,  with  troops 
drawn  up  in  line  on  the  Place  d'Armes,  and  with  discharges  of  artillery,  Salcedo,  the  Spanish 
governor,  in  the  hall  of  the  Cabildo,  deUvered  the  keys  of  New  Orleans  to  Laussat.  On  the  20th 
of  the  next  month,  Laussat,  with  similar  ceremonies,  turned  Louisiana  over  to  Commissioners 
Claiborne  and  Wilkinson,  and  New  Orleans  became  a  part  of  the  United  States.  At  that  time, 
with  its  suburbs,  it  possessed  a  population  of  10,000,  the  great  majority  of  the  white  population 
being  Creoles. 


12  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  III.— THE  OLDEN  DAYS. 

NEW  ORLEANS  UNDER  THE  SPANISH  DOMINION — CONDITION  OF  THE  CITY  JUST  PREVIOUS 
TO  ITS  ANNEXATION  TO  THE  UNITED  STATES— OLD  HABITS  AND  CUSTOMS  THAT 
STILL   SURVIVE. 

The  traveler  approaching  New  Orleans  by  the  river  in  the  year  1802,  would  have  discerned 
at  the  first  glance,  what  would,  have  seemed  a  tolerably  compactly  built  town,  facing  the 
levee  for  a  distance  of  some  1,200  yards  from  its  upper  to  its  lower  extremity.  From  the  rue 
de  la  Levee  (now  Decatur  street)  the  town  extended  in  depth  (on  paper)  about  600  yards, 
although  Dauphine  street  was  in  reality  the  limit  of  the  inhabited  quarter  in  that  direction. 
The  line  of  what  is  now  Rampart  street  was  occupied  by  the  palisaded  fortification,  with  a  feW] 
forts,  all  in  a  greater  or  less  condition  of  dilapidation.  At  the  upper  end  of  the  ramparts  waa 
Fort  St.  Louis,  and  on  the  ground  now  known  as  Congo  square,  was  Fort  St.  Ferdinand,  the 
chief  place  for  bull  and  bear  fights.  Esplanade  street  was  a  fortification,  beginning  at  Fort  St^ 
Ferdinand  and  ending  at  its  junction  with  the  ramparts  on  Eampart  street.  Along  what  is  now 
Canal  street  was  a  moat  filled  with  water,  which  terminated  at  a  military  gate  on  the  Chemin 
des  Tchoupitoulas,  near  the  levee.    Thus  was  the  city  protected  from  siege  and  attack. 

Along  the  river  the  city's  upper  limit  of  houses  was  at  about  St.  Louis  street,  and  the  lowei 
at  about  St.  Philip.  The  Spanish  barracks  on  Canal  street  covered  the  whole  block  between 
what  are  now  known  as  Hospital  and  Barracks  streets. 

The  house  occupied  by  the  Spanish  Governor-General  of  the  province  was  situated  at  the 
corner  of  Toulouse  and  the  rue  de  la  Levee.  It  was  a  plain  residence  of  one  story,  with  the 
aspect  of  an  inn.  It  fronted  the  river.  One  side  was  bordered  by  a  narrow  and  unpretending 
garden  in  the  form  of  a  ^'a?'^^^^,  and  on  the  other  side  ran  a  low  gallery  screened  by  lattice 
work,  while  the  back  yard,  inclosed  by  fences,  contained  the  kitchens  and  the  stables.  This 
house  was  burned  down  in  1827,  after  having  been  used  for  the  sessions  of  the  Legislature. 

Other  public  buildings,  now  passed  away,  were  the  Military  or  Eoyal  Hospital,  the  Public  oi 
Charity  Hospital,  and  a  convent  of  Ursuline  nuns.  There  was  no  merchants'  exchange  for  the 
transaction  of  business,  no  colonial  post-oflfice,  no  college,  no  library,  public  or  private,  and  bul 
one  newspaper,  the  Monitexir  de  la  Louisiane,  which,  issued  once  a  week,  had  but  a  limite<] 
circulation,  and  was  confined  to  the  printing  of  a  few  Government  orders  or  proclamations  on 
local  affairs,  business  advertisements,  formulas  for  passports,  bills  of  lading,  and  a  driblet  of 
political  news.  Joachim  Salazar,  a  portrait  painter  from  Mexico,  lived  in  the  city  at  that 
period,  and  testimony  to  his  presence  still  survives  in  the  shape  of  portraits  to  be  seen  in  the 
houses  of  some  old  families. 

In  the  faubourg  that  extended  above  the  city,  with  a  frontage  of  600  yards  by  a  depth  of  300, 
were  two  establishments  where  cotton  was  cleaned,  put  up  in  bales  and  weighed.  The  only 
other  factory  that  deserved  the  name,  also  in  the  faubourg,  was  a  sugar  refinery,  where  brown 
sugar  was  transformed  into  a  white  sugar  of  fine  appearance.  This  establishment  the  city  owed 
to  the  enterprise  of  certain  French  refugees  from  San  Domingo. 

Of  the  public  buildings  which  are  familiar  to  the  eyes  of  the  present  generation,  only  the 
French  Market,  the  Cathedral,  and  the  Cabildo,  or  City  Hall,  adjoining  the  Cathedral  at  the 
corner  of  St.  Peter  and  Chartres  streets,  still  remain.  The  Cathedral  was  not  yet  finished 
and  lacked  those  quaint  white  Spanish  towers  and  the  central  belfry,  which  in  1814  and  1815, 
were  added  to  it.  The  "  Very  Illustrious  Cabildo,"  whichheld  weekly  meetings  in  this  building, 
was  the  municipal  body  of  New  Orleans.  It  was  composed  of  twelve  individuals  called  regidors 
and  was  presided  over  by  the  Governor-General  or  his  Civil  Lieutenant.    Jackson  Square,  called 


1 1pafc/l^|TQl}^gs:bA■f^  I^^^V^I 


'^j:^^^'^'^  ^-./'- 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


13 


then  the  Place  d'Armes,  was  used  as  a  review  ground  for  the  troops,  and  was  resorted  to  by  nurses 
and  children,  the  elders  taking  their  "  airing"  on  the  Levee  or  the  Grand  Chemintha.t  fronted  the 
houses  of  the  rue  de  la  Levee. '  It  was  then  but  a  grass  plot,  barren  of  trees  and  used  as  a  play- 
ground by  the  children.  It  was  rather  a  ghostly  place,  too,  for  children  to  play.  A  wooden 
gallows  stood  in  the  middle  of  it  for  several  years  and  more  than  one  poor  fellow  was  swung  off 
into  eternity,  about  the  spot  where  General  Jackson  now  sits  in  effigy.  Then  there  were  no 
trees  and  no  flowers,  and  no  watchman  to  drive  away  the  little  fellows  at  play.  The  gallows  was 
not  the  only  stem  and  forbidding  and  uncongenial  thing  about  the  place  either,  for  the  calabosa 
stood  just  opposite  ;  it  is  the  police  station  now. 

Here,  in  front  of  the  Place  d'Armes,  everything  was  congregated— the  Cathedral  Church  of 
St.  Louis,  the  convent  of  the  Capuchins,  the  Government  House,  the  colonial  prison  or  calabosa, 
and  the  government  warehouses.  Around  the  square  stretched  the  leading  boutiques  and 
restaurants  of  the  town  ;  on  the  side,  was  the  market  or  Halles,  where  not  only  meat,  fruit  and 
vegetables  were  sold,  but  hats,  shoes  and  handkerchiefs ;  while  in  front  was  the  public  landing. 
Indeed,  here  was  the  religious,  military,  industrial,  commercial  and  social  center  of  the  city  ; 
here  the  troops  paraded  on  fete  days,  and  here  even  the  public  executions  took  place,  the 
criminals  being  either  shot,  or  nailed  alive  in  their  coffins  and  then  slowly  sawed  in  half.  Here, 
on  holidays,  all  the  varied,  heterogeneous  population  of  the  town  gathered ;  fiery  Louisiana 
Creoles,  still  carrying  rapiers,  ready  for  prompt  use  at  the  slighte'st  insult  to  their  jealous  honor; 
hoMfam,  fresh  from  Canada,  rude  trappers  and  hunters,  royageurs  and  caureurs-de-bois ;  plain 
unpretending  'Cadians  from  the  Attakapas,  arrayed  in  their  home-made  blue  cottonades  and 
redolent  of  the  herds  of  cattle  they  had  brought  with  them  ;  lazy  emigre  nobles,  banished  to  this 
new  world  under  lettres  de  cachet  for  interfering  with  the  king's  2^tiis  amours  or  taking  too  deep 
an  interest  in  politics;  yellow  sirens  from  San  Domingo,  speaking  a  soft  bastard  French,  and 
looking  so  languishingly  out  of  the  corners  of  their  big  black  melting  eyes,  that  it  was  no  wonder 
that  they  led  both  young  and  old  astray  and  caused  their  cold  proud  sisters  of  sang  pur  many  a 
jealous  heart-ache ;  staid  and  energetic  Germans  from  "the  German  coast,"  with  flaxen  hair 
and  Teutonic  names,  but  speaking  the  purest  of  French,  come  down  to  the  city  for  supplies  ; 
haughty  Castilian  soldiers,  clad  in  the  bright  uniforms  of  the  Spanish  cazadores  ;  dirty  Indians 
of  the  Houma  and  Natchez  tribes,  some  free,  some  slaves;  negroes  of  every  shade  and  hue  from 
dirty  white  to  deepest  black,  clad  only  in  braguet  and  shapeless  woolen  shirts,  as  little  clothing 
as  the  somewhat  loose  ideas  of  the  time  and  country  permitted  ;  and  lastly,  the  human  trash, 
ex-galley  slaves  and  adventurers,  shipped  to  the  colony  to  be  gotten  rid  of.  Here,  too,  in  the 
Place  d'Armes  the  stranger  could  shop  cheaper  if  not  better  than  in  the  boutiques  around  it,  for 
half  the  trade  and  business  of  the  town  was  itinerant.  Here  passed  radbais,  or  peddling  mer- 
chants, mainly  Catalans  and  Provencals  who,  instead  of  carrying  their  packs  upon  their  backs, 
had  their  goods  spread  out  in  a  coffin-shaped  vehicle  which  they  wheeled  before  them  ;  colored 
marchandes  selling  callas  and  cakes;  and  milk  and  coffee  women,  carrying  their  immense  cans 
.  well  balanced  upon  their  turbaned  heads.  All  through  the  day  went  up  the  never-ceasing  cries 
'  of  the  various  street  hawkers,  from  the  "  Barataria  !  Barataria  I  "  and  the  ''  cailas  tous  chauds!  " 
"-, in  the  early  morning,  to  the  ^''belles  chanddles ! '"'  that  went  up,  as  twilight  deepened,  from  the 
'  sturdy  negi'esses  who  sold  the  only  light  of  the  colony,  horrible,  dim,  ill-smelUng  and  smoky 
candles,  made  at  home  from  the  green  wax  myrtle. 

Lake  Pontchartrain  was  connected  with  New  Orleans  by  the  Carondelet  Canal  and  the 
Bayou  St.  John,  by  which  water-way  schooners  reached  the  city  from  the  lake  and  the  neigh- 
boring Gulf  coast.  The  canal  served  moreover  to  drain  the  marshy  district  through  which  it  ran 
and  to  give  outlet  to  the  standing  waters. 

"With  the  exception  of  Levee,  Chartres,  Royal  and  perhaps  Bourbon  streets  in  the  direction  of 
its  breadth,  and  the  streets  included  between  St.  Louis  and  St.  Philip  in  its  length,  the  city  was 
more  in  outline  than  in  fact.  The  other  streets  comprised  within  the  limits  of  the  town  were 
regularly  laid  out,  it  is  true,  but  they,  as  well  as  the  faubourg,  were  but  sparsely  settled.    Along 


14 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


Levee  street,  Chartres  and  Royal,  and  on  the  intersecting  squares  included  between  them  the 
houses  were  of  brick,  sometimes  of  two  stories,  but  generally  one  story  high,  with  small  narrow 
balconies.  These  had  been  erected  within  a  few  years,  and  since  the  disastrous  fires  of  the  years 
1788  and  1794,  terrible  calamities  which  had  compelled  the  inhabitants  to  flee  for  safety  to  the 
Place  d'Armes  and  the  Levee  to  avoid  death  by  the  flames.  Farther  back  in  the  town  the  houses 
were  of  an  inferior  grade,  one  story  in  height,  built  of  cypress  and  resting  on  foundations  of 
piles  and  bricks,  and  with  shingled  roofs.  On  the  outskirts  and  in  the  faubourg  the  houses  were 
little  better  than  shanties.  The  sidewalks  were  four  or  five  feet  wide,  but  walking  was  some- 
times rendered  difficult  by  the  projecting  steps  of  the  houses. 

One  of  the  most  disagreeable  features  of  the  city  in  those  early  days  was  the  condition  of 
the  streets  in  which  not  a  stone  had  been  laid.  A  wooden  drain  served  for  a  gutter,  the  ban- 
quette was  also  of  wood,  and  the  street  between  the  sidewalks  was  alternately  k  swamp 
and  a  mass  of  stifling  dust.  Wagons  dragged  along,  with  the  wheels  sunk  to  the  hubs 
m  mud.  It  was  not  until  1821  that  any  systematic  attempt  was  made  to  pave  the  streets.  The 
city,  in  that  year,  offered  ^250  per  ton  for  rock  ballast  as  inducement  to  ship  captains  to  ballast 
with  rocks  instead  of  sand,  and  this  plan  was  quite  effectual.  In  1822  St.  Charles  street  was 
paved  for  several  blocks,  and  patches  of  pavement  were  made  on  other  streets. 

Prior  to  1815,  and,  indeed,  for  some  years  afterward,  the  city  was  lighted  by  means  of  oU 
lamps  suspended  from  wooden  posts,  from  which  an  arm  projected.  The  light  only  penetrated 
a  very  short  distance,  and  it  was  the  custom  always  to  use  lanterns  on  the  streets.  The  order 
ofmarch,  when  a  family  went  out  in  the  evening,  was  first,  a  slave  bearing  a  lantern;  then 
another  slave  bearing  the  shoes  which  were  to  be  worn  in  the  ball-room  or  theatre,  and  other  arti- 
cles of  fuU  dress  that  were  donned  only  after  the  destination  was  reached,  and  list,  the  family 

There  were  no  cisterns  in  those  days,  the  water  of  the  Mississippi,  filtrated,  serving  as  drink- 
ing water,  while  water  for  common  household  needs  was  obtained  from  wells  dug  on  the  prem- 
ises.   Some  houses  possessed  as  many  as  two  of  these  wells. 

New  Orleans,  eighty  years  ago,  was  woefully  deficient  in  promenades,  drives  and  places  of 
public  amusement.  The  favorite  promenade  was  the  Levee  with  its  King's  road  or  Chemin  des 
TcJwvpitoulas,  where  twelve  or  fifteen  Louisiana  willow  trees  were  planted,  facing  the  street 
corners,  and  in  whose  shade  were  wooden  benches  without  backs,  upon  which  people  sat  in  the 
afternoon,  sheltered  from  the  setting  sun.  These  trees,  which  grow  rapidly,  extended  from 
about  St.  Louis  street  to  St.  Philip.  Outside  the  city  limits  was  the  Bayou  road,  with  all  it«^ 
Inconveniences  of  mud  or  dust,  leading  to  the  small  plantations  or  truck  farms  formingthe  Gen- 
tilly  district  and  to  those  of  the  Metairie  ridge.  It  was  the  fashion  to  spend  an  hour  or  two  in 
the  evening  on  this  road,  riding  on  horseback  or  in  carriages  of  more  or  less  elejrance.  This 
custom  was  one  that  had  crept  in  with  other  luxurious  habits  within  the  past  eight  or  ten  years, 
a  period  which  had  been  marked  by  a  noticeable  growth  in  the  desire  for  outside  show  of  the 
citizens.  Almost  up  to  the  year  1800  the  women  of  the  city,  with  few  exceptions,  dressed  \vith 
extreme  simplicity.  But  little  taste  was  displayed  either  in  the  cut  of  their  garments  or  in  their 
ornaments.  Head-gear  was  almost  unknown.  If  a  lady  went  out  in  summer,  it  was  bareheaded ; 
if  in  winter,  she  usually  wore  a  handkerchief  or  some  such  trifle  as  the  Spanish  women  delight 
in.  And  at  home,  when  the  men  were  not  about— so,  at  least,  said  those  who  penetrated  there- 
she  even  went  about  barefooted,  shoes  being  expensive  luxuries. 

A  short  round  skirt,  a  Ions  basque-like  over  garment  ;  the  upper  part  of  their  attire  of  one 
color  and  the  lower  of  another,  with  a  profuse  display  of  ribbons  and  little  jewelry— thus 
dressed,  the  mass  of  the  female  population  of  good  condition  went  about  visiting,  or  attended 
the  ball  or  theatre.  But  even  three  years  had  made  a  great  change  in  this  respect ;  and  in  1802, 
for  some  reason  that  it  would  be  difficult  to  explain,  the  ladies  of  the  city  appeared  in  attire  as 
different  from  that  of  1799  as  could  well  be  imagined.  A  surprising  richness  and  elegance  of 
apparel  had  taken  the  place  of  the  primitive  and  tasteless  garb  of  the  few  preceding  years— a 
garb  which,  had  it  been  seen  at  the  ball  or  theatre  in  1802,  would  have  resembled  to  the  critical 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  15 

feminine  eye  a  Mardi-Gras  disguise.  At  that  peried  the  natural  charms  of  the  ladies  were 
heightened  by  a  toilette  of  most  captivating  details.  Their  dresses  were  of  the  richest 
embroidered  muslins,  cut  in  the  latest  fashions,  relieved  by  soft  and  brilliant  transparent 
taffetas,  by  superb  laces,  and  embroidered  with  gold.  To  this  must  be  added  rich  ear-rings, 
collars,  bracelets,  rings  and  other  adornments.  This  costume,  it  is  true,  was  for  rare  occasions, 
and  for  pleasant  weather  ;  but  it  was  a  sample  of  the  high  art  in  dress  that  had  come  just  in  the 
nick  of  time  to  greet  the  fast-approaching  American  occupation. 

Of  the  ten  thousand  people,  of  all  ages,  sexes  and  nationalities,  who  at  that  time  formed  the 
permanent  population  of  New  Orleans,  about  four  thousand  were  white— native,  European  and 
American  ;  three  thousand  free  colored,  and  the  rest  slave.  In  addition  to  these  there  were 
from  seven  to  eight  hundred  officers  and  soldiers  composing  the  Spanish  garrison,  many  other 
Government  underlings,  and  numerous  undomiciliated  foreigners.  In  the  ranks  of  those  not 
native  to  the  city  or  the  colony  were  Frenchmen,  Spaniards.  English,  Americans  from  the 
States,  Germans,  Italians,  a  few  refugees  from  San  Domingo  and  Martinique,  emigrants  from  the 
Canaries  and  a  number  of  gipsies.  The  mass  of  the  Frenchmen  were  small  shopkeepers  and 
cultivators  of  the  soil  ;  the  Spaniards  were  generally  in  the  employment  of  the  Government, 
either  in  the  magistracy  or  the  military  service,  or  as  clerks ;  the  Catalonians  kept  shops  or 
drinking  houses  ;  the  commercial  class  comprised  chiefly  the  Americans,  the  English  and  the 
irish  ;  the  Italians  were  fishermen ;  the  Canary  Islanders  or  Islennes  as  they  were  termed, 
cultivated  vegetable  gardens  and  supplied  the  market  with  milk  and  chickens  ;  and  the  gipsies 
who  had  been  induced  to  abandon  a  wandering  life,  were  nearly  all  musicians  or  dancers.  Of 
the  Americans,  some  vrere  of  the  Eaintock  (Kentucky)  element,  worthy  fellows  who  came 
periodically  to  the  city  in  their  flatboats,  floating  down  the  river  laboriously  and  bringing  with 
them  up-country  produce  from  the  banks  of  the  Ohio  and  the  Illinois,  and  returning  on  horse- 
back to  their  distant  homes,  by  the  way  of  the  river-road,  after  having  disposed  of  their  wares. 
Eaintock  was  a  generic  name  given  by  the  Creoles  of  those  days  to  the  Americans  who 
came  from  the  Upper  Mississippi,  and,  as  the  name  imports,  chiefly  from  the  flourishing  State  of 
Kentucky.  They  were  regarded  as  in  some  way  interlopers  on  the  profound  conservatism  of  the 
city.  There  was  an  idea  of  something  objectionable— even  more  so  than  in  the  later  phrase, 
.l/,;e;7ca/n— attached  to  the  word.  Creole  mothers  would  sometimes  say  to  ill-behaved  and  rude 
children,  "  Toi,  tu  n'es  qu'iin  mauxais  Kaintock:''  But  still,  fortunately  for  the  future  of  New 
Orleans,  the  Kaintock  continued  to  come,  clad  in  his  home-spun  and  home-dyed  jeans— some- 
tinies  in  the  hunter's  buckskin  garb— the  advance  guard  of  that  great  subsequent  immigration 
of  Ainericaim,  who  were  destined  to  be  seen,  ten  or  fifteen  years  later,  on  the  streets  of  the  city, 
and  of  whose  presence,  about  1816,  there  is  still  extant  In  most  abominable  French,  a  reminder 
in  the  way  of  a  quatrain  which  was  sung  by  small  boys,  white  as  well  as  black,  natives  of  the 
town,  at  the  passing-by  of  these  strange  and  unwelcome  new-comers— 

"  ''Mencain  coquin, 
''Bille  en  nanquin, 
Voleur  di  pain 
Chez  Miche  D'Aquin .'" 

Which  may  be  thus  freely  rendered  in  English  : 

"  American  rogue  ! 
Dressed  in  nankeen  I 
Stealer  of  bread, 
Mr.  D'Aquin  !" 

In  1802  New  Orleans  possessed  a  theatre— such  as  it  was— situated  on  St.  Peter  street,  in  the 
middle  of  the  block  between  Royal  and  Bourbon,  on  the  left-band  side  going  toward  the  swamp. 
It  was  a  long,  low  wooden  structure,  built  of  cypress  and  alarmingly  exposed  to  the  dangers  of 
fire.  Here,  in  1799,  half  a  dozen  actors  and  actresses,  refugees  from  the  insurrection  in  San 
Domingo,  gave  acceptable   performances,  rendering  comedy,  drama,  vaudevilles   and  comic 


1^  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

operas.  But  owing  to  various  causes  the  drama  at  this  place  of  amusement  fell  into  decline, 
the  theatre  was  closed  after  two  years,  and  the  majority  of  the  actors  and  musicians  were 
scattered.  Some,  however,  remained,  and  these,  with  a  few  amateurs,  residents  of  the  city, 
formed  another  company  in  1802.  Several  pieces  were  presented,  among  others  one,  by  the 
amateurs,  entitled  The  Death  of  Ccesar—Xhe  character  of  the  illustrious  Roman  havmg 
been  taken  by  an  old  citizen  who  had  lived  in  the  colony  forty  years.  This  gentleman,  who  was 
an  ancient  mUitaire,  was  very  stout,  and  it  required  some  ingenuity  on  the  part  of  the  audience 
to  fail  to  recognize  in  this  personage  and  in  Antony,  Brutus,  Cassius,  etc.,  the  familiar  linea- 
ments of  their  unheroic  camarades  in  daily  life. 

^  The  devotees  of  the  dance  in  those  primitive  days  were  compelled  by  circumstances  to 
satisfy  themselves  with  accommodations  of  the  plainest  description  in  the  exercise  of  this 
amusement  in  public.  In  a  plain,  ill-conditioned,  ill-lighted  room  in  a  wooden  building  situa- 
ted on  Conde  street,  between  Ste.  Ann  and  Du  Maine -a  hall  perhaps  eighty  feet  long  and  thirty 
wide— the  adepts  of  Terpsichore  met.  unmasked,  during  the  months  of  January  and  February, 
in  what  vsras  called  the  Carnival  season,  to  indulge,  at  the  cost  of  fifty  cents  per  head  for 
entrance  fee,  in  the  fatiguing  pleasures  of  the  contre-danses  of  that  day.  Some  came  *o  dance, 
others  to  look  on.  Along  the  sides  of  the  hall  were  ranged  boxes,  ascending  gradually, 
in  which  usually  sat  the  non-dancing  mammas  and  the  wall-flowers  of  more  tender  years. 
Below  these  boxes  or  lorjes  were  ranged  seats  for  the  benefit  of  the  wearied  among  the  fair 
dancers,  and  between  these  benches  and  chairs  was  a  space  some  three  feet  in  width,  which 
was  usually  packed  with  the  male  dancers,  awaiting  their  turn,  and  the  lookers-on.  The 
musicians  were  composed  usually  of  five  or  six  gipsies;  and  to  the  notes  of  their  violins  the 
dance  went  on  gayly.  The  hall  was  usually  opened  twice  a  week— one  night  for  adults,  and  one 
night  for  children— and  was  under  the  management  of  one  Jean  Louis  Ponton,  a  native  of 
Brittany,  who  died  in  New  Orleans  about  1820,  and  who  once  figured  as  an  English  prisoner 
of  war. 

Tradition  has  preserved  the  memory  of  quarrels  and  aifrays  that  originated  in,  or  were 
developed  from,  this  ball-room.  Sometimes  these  quarrels  ended  in  duels  with  fatal  results. 
To  tread  on  one's  toes,  to  brush  against  one,  or  to  carry  off  by  mistake  the  lady  with  whom  one 
was  to  dance,  was  ample  grounds  for  a  challenge.  Everything  was  arranged  so  nicely  and 
quickly,  even  in  the  ball-room  itself.  The  young  man  who  had  received  the  fearful  insult  of  a 
crushed  corn  dropped  his  lady  partner  with  her  chaperone,  and  had  a  few  minutes'  conver- 
sation Avith  some  friend  of  his.  In  a  very  short  time  everything  was  arranged.  A  group  of  five 
or  six  young  men  would  quietly  slip  out  of  the  ball-room  with  a  careless,  indifferent  smile  on 
their  faces.  A  proper  place  was  close  at  hand.  Just  back  of  the  Cathedral  was  a  little  plot  of 
ground,  known  as  St.  Anthony  Square,  dedicated  to  church  purposes,  but  never  used.  A 
heavy  growth  of  shrubbery  and  evergreens  concealed  the  central  portion  of  this  square  from 
observation  ;  and  here,  in  the  very  heart  of  the  town  and  only  a  few  steps  from  the  public  ball- 
room on  the  rue  d 'Orleans,  a  duel  could  be  carried  on  comfortably  and  without  the  least 
danger  of  interruption.  If  colchemards,  or  Creole  rapiers,  which  were  generally  used,  and  are  to 
this  day,  in  Creole  duels,  could  be  obtained,  they  were  brought  into  use;  but,  if  this  was  impos- 
sible, the  young  men  had  to  content  themselves  with  sword-canes.  According  to  the  French 
code,  the  first  blood,  however  slight,  satisfied  jealous  honor.  The  swords  were  put  up  again  ; 
the  victorious  duelist  returned  to  complete  his  dance,  while  his  victim  w^ent  home  to  bandage 
himself  up. 

There  was  one  disturbance  in  particular,  which  promised  at  the  time  of  its  occurrence  to 
provoke  a  serious  riot  between  the  natives  and  the  Spaniards,  and  w-hich  furnishes  a  significant 
commentary  on  the  ill-will  that  prevailed  between  the  Creoles  and  their  uninvited  temporary 
rulers.  One  night  the  eldest  son  of  the  Governor-General,  wearied  out,  perhaps,  with  the  French 
contre-danses  of  the  evening,  several  times  interrupted  the  festivities  by  calling  to  the  musicians 
to  play  the  English  contre-danses.    At  first  the  citizens,  out  of  respect  to  him  as  the  son  of  the 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  17 

Grovernor,  yielded  to  his  arbitrary  whim.  But  finally,  seven  French  contre-danses  having  been 
formed,  the  Governor's  son  again  cried  out :  "  Contre-danses  Anglaisesf^  To  this,  the  dancers  in 
the  sets  replied,  by  crying  out  in  a  still  more  animated  tone :  "  Contre-danses  Frangaises  f'  The 
young  Spaniard,  backed  by  some  of  his  adherents  repeated  his  call  for  the  English  contre- 
danses,  and  as  the  dancers  and  the  spectators  redoubled  their  cries  of  ''Contre-danses  Frangaises  f"" 
the  young  man  in  the  confusion  of  cries  and  tongues,  ordered  the  musicians  to  cease  playing, 
an  order  which  was  promptly  obeyed.  What  followed  has  been  graphically  described  by  a 
writer  who  was  in  the  city  shortly  after  the  event. 

"  The  Spanish  officsr."  says  this  gentleman,  "  who  was  deputed  to  preserve  good  order  at 
this  place,  thought  only  of  pleasing  the  Governor's  son,  and  ordered  up  his  guard  composed 
of  twelve  grenadiers,  who  entered  the  ball  room  with  swords  at  their  sides  and  with  fixed 
bayonets.  It  is  even  said  that,  the  tumult  having  redoubled  at  the  sight  of  this  guard,  he 
gave  the  order  to  fire  on  the  crowd  unless  it  should  disperse  at  once  ;  but  that  is  only  what 
people  say.  Imagine,  now,  the  terror  of  the  women,  and  the  fury  of  the  men,  whose  numbers 
were  increased  by  the  addition  of  their  friends  who  flocked  in  from  the  gaming-halls.  The 
grenadiers  on  one  side  and  the  players  and  dancers  on  the  other  were  about  to  come  to 
blows ;  on  the  one  hand  were  guns,  bayonets  and  sabres— on  the  other  side,  swords,  benches, 
chairs,  and  whatever  could  be  conveniently  utilized  as  a  weapon  of  offense  or  defense.  During 
all  this  squabble,  what  was  done  by  several  Americans,  peaceably  disposed  individuals,  accus- 
tomed to  the  prudent  and  advantageous  role  of  neutrality,  and  who  had  pronounced  for  neither 
the  English  nor  the  French  contre-danses  ?  They  carried  away  from  the  battle-field  the  ladies  who 
had  fainted,  and,  loaded  with  these  precious  burdens,  they  made  a  path  for  themselves  through 
the  bayonets  and  swords  and  reached  the  street.  M ,  a  Fi-ench  merchant  of  the  city,  run- 
ning from  a  gaming-room  to  the  assistance  of  his  wife,  found  her  already  outside  of  the  dancing 
hall  in  a  fainting  condition  and  in  the  arms  of  four  Americans  who  were  bearingher  off. 

"The  confusion  was  at  its  height,  and  the  scene  seemed  to  be  about  to  be  transformed 
into  a  bloody  one,  in  which  the  farce  begun  by  the  Governor's  son  should  end  in  a  tragedy. 
It  was  at  this  critical  moment  that  three  young  Frenchmen  who  had  but  recently  arrived  in 
the  city  ascended  into  the  boxes  that  lined  the  hall,  and  harangued  the  company  with  elo- 
quence and  firmness,  urging  peace  and  harmony,  in  the  interest  of  the  sex  whose  cause  they 
had  espoused.  They  succeeded,  like  new  Mentors,  in  calming  the  agitation  of  all  alike,  pacify- 
ing the  minds  of  the  antagonists,  and  restoring  order  and  concord.  Even  the  dancing  was 
resumed  and  continued  the  rest  of  the  night  in  the  presence  of  the  old  Governor,  who  repaired 
to  the  spot  to  afiirm  by  his  presence  the  happy  pacification  that  had  been  effected;  the  victory 
remained  to  the  French  contre-danses,  and  the  officer  of  the  guard  escaped  with  the  simple 
penalty  of  being  put  under  arrest  next  day." 

The  cordon  bleu  balls  were  most  productive  of  these  dueling  encounters.  The  quadroon 
women,  from  whom  these  balls  take  their  name,  were  probably  the  haudsornest  race  of  women 
in  the  world.  They  were,  besides  this,  splendid  dancers,  and  finished  dressers.  The  balls  were, 
consequently,  very  popular  with  gentlemen,  and  nearly  all  had  a  favorite  among  these  women. 
They  were  also  popular  with  strangers,  many  of  whom  came  from  Alabama,  Georgia  and  the 
Carolinas,  and  it  was  between  these  and  the  Creoles  that  the  trouble  oftenest  arose,  and  almost, 
invariably  from  jealousy  excited  by  too  much  attention  paid  to  some  gentleman's  favorite. 
Duels  were  fought  with  pistols  and  small  swords,  the  French  and  Creoles  invariably  choosing  the 
latter  and  the  Americans  almost  as  invariably  choosing  the  former.  The  small  sword  duels 
were  generally  fought  in  halls  or  rooms,  while  those  with  fire-arms  were  of  course  fought  in 
the  open  air.  "The  Oaks  "  was  a  favorite  duelling  ground,  as  was  also  a  place  ontheMetairie 
road  called  "  Les  trois  Capalins,"  or  the  three  sisters,  from  three  principal  trees  which  grew  there. 

Bernard  Marigny,  of  the  most  illustrious  family  in  Louisiana,  was  a  great  wag.  Among  his 
friends  was  a  Monsieur  Tissier,  afterward  a  prominent  judge,  who  was  a  confirmed  beau,  or 
dude  we  would  call  him  in  this  generation.    Marigny  delighted  in  nothing  more  than  to  quiz  his 


18  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

friend,  and  did  so  upon  every  occasion.  Meeting  him  in  the  street  or  in  the  ball  room,  Marigmy 
would  throw  up  his  hands,  assume  an  attitude  and  expression  of  the  most  intense  admiration, 
and  exclaim,  "  What  a  beau  you  are  !  How  I  do  admire  you  !  "  Monsieur  Tissier  bore  it  for  a 
lon.i^time  without  remonstrance,  but  forbearance  at  last  ceased  to  be  a  virtue,  and  he  insisted 
that  Monsieur  Marigny  should  be  more  considerate  of  his  feelings.  Monsieur  Marigny  waited 
until  he  met  his  friend  in  a  ball-room  among  the  ladies,  and  repeated  the  offensive  exclamation, 
whereupon  Monsieur  Tissier  challenged  him.  The  challenge  was  accepted, pistols  were  chosen, and 
the  whilom  friends  repaired  to  the  Oaks.  They  were  placed  in  position,  and  the  word  was  about 
to  be  given,  when  Monsieur  Marigny  threw  up  his  hands,  his  face  assumed  the  old  expression 
and  he  said  in  tones  of  the  deepest  grief,  "  How  I  admire  you  !  Is  it  possible  that  I  am  soon  to 
make  a  corpse  of  Beau  Tissier  ? "  Monsieur  Tissier's  auger  was  not  proof  against  this  attack, 
and  he  burst  into  laughter,  threw  himself  into  his  opponent's  arms,  and  the  duel  was  brought  to 
a  sudden  and  peaceful  termination. 

Another  affair  is  recorded  somewhat  later,  in  which  Monsieur  Marigny  was  also  one  of  the 
principals.  Marigny  was  sent  to  the  Legislature  in  1817,  at  which  time  there  was  a  very  strong 
political  antagonism  between  the  Creoles  and  Americans,  which  provoked  many  warm  debates 
in  the  House  of  Representatives  and  in  the  Senate.  Catahoula  parish  was  represented  by  a 
Georgian  giant,  an  ex- blacksmith,  named  Humble,  a  man  of  plain  ways,  but  possessed  of  many 
sterling  qualities.  He  was  remarkable  as  much  for  his  immense  stature  as  for  his  political 
diplomacy,  standing,  as  he  did,  nearly  seven  feet  in  his  stockings.  It  happened  that  an 
impassioned  speech  of  Monsieur  Marigny  was  replied  to  by  the  Georgian,  and  the  latter  was  so 
extremely  pointed  in  his  allusions  that  his  opponent  felt  himself  aggrieved  and  sent  a  challenge 
to  mortal  combat.  The  Georgian  was  non-plussed.  "I  know  nothing  of  this  duelling  business," 
said  he;  "  I  will  not  fight  him."' 

"  You  must,"  said  his  friend  ;  "  no  gentleman  can  refuse." 

"I  am  not  a  gentleman,"  replied  the  honest  son  of  Georgia  ;  "I  am  only  a  blacksmith." 

"But  you  will  be  ruined  if  j'^ou  do  not  fight,"  urged  his  friends  ;  "you  have  the  choice  of 
weapons,  and  you  can  choose  in  such  a  way  as  to  give  yourself  an  equal  chance  with  your 
adversary." 

The  giant  asked  time  to  consider  the  proposition,  and  ended  by  accepting.  He  sent  the  fol- 
lowing reply  to  Monsieur  .Marigny : 

"I  accept,  and  in  the  exercise  of  my  privilege  I  stipulate  that  the  duel  shall  take  place  in 
Lake  Pontchartrain  in  six  feet  of  water,  sledge  hammers  to  be  used  as  weapons." 

Monsieur  Marigny  was  about  five  feet  eight  inches  .in  height,  and  his  adversary  was  almost 
seven  as  has  been  stated.  The  conceit  of  the  Georgian  so  pleased  Monsieur  Marigny,  who  could 
appreciate  a  joke  as  w^ell  as  perpetrate  one,  that  he  declared  himsslf  satisfied,  and  the  duel  did 
not  take  phice. 

The  father  of  Bernard  Marigny,  the  hero  of  these  anecdotes,  was  a  Creole  of  immense 
wealth  and  distinction.  It  was  he  who  received  Louis  Philippe,  when  he  came  to  this  country, 
on  his  plantation,  which  comprised  the  territory  afterward  laid  out  as  a  faubourg,  and  now  the 
most  densely  populated  portion  of  the  city.  When  the  father  died,  Bernard  inherited  his  wealth, 
and  laid  out  the  plantation  in  squares,  and  called  it  the  Faubourg  Marigny.  The  ground  was 
sold  at  a  large  profit  and  Bernard  became  the  wealthiest  man  of  his  time. 

However  insignificant  and  rude  may  seem  to  us  this  ball-room  of  Conde  street  and  of  the 
year  1802,  it  must  not  be  supposed  that  the  citizens  of  that  day  w^ere  not  vain  of  it.  Far  removed 
as  they  were  from  the  great  world  and  its  powerful  centres,  the  good  people  of  our  little 
municipality  looked  upon  it  almost  as  a  Ridotto,  a  Vauxhall,  or  a  grand  bal  de  Popera  de  Paris. 

A  singular  custom  of  the  period  and  one  so  generally  observed  among  the  families  of 
planters  living  within  thirty  or  forty  miles  of  New  Orleans  as  almost  to  have  been  a  fashion  of 
the  day,  was  to  transport  the  sick  from  the  country  to  the  city,  there  to  be  treated  by  the 
physicians  of  the  town.    Nearly  every  well-regulated  family  possessed  its  copy  of  the  medical 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  19 

hand-books  of  Tissot  and  Duchan  (translated)  and  when,  on  the  occasion  of  sickness,  it  became 
necessary  to  prescribe  medicines,  these  were  the  authorities  consulted.  But  when  the  sickness 
threatened  to  become  serious  the  patient  was  brought  to  New  Orleans  and  placed  in  the  hands 
of  one  of  the  dozen  or  so  surgreons  who  practiced  in  the  city  and  who  w^ere,  indifferently, 
surgeons,  physicians,  apothecaries,  and  even  accoucheurs,  according  to  the  necessities  of  the 
case. 

The  authority  of  the  Spanish  rulers  of  the  colony  was  mildly  exercised  in  1802.  The  citizens 
of  New  Orleans,  assured  full  liberty  under  the  civil  and  municipal  rather  than  military  rule  that 
prevailed,  had  little  reason  to  complain.  Everyone,  in  town  and  country,  enjoyed  the  ordinary 
independence  of  the  law-abiding  citizen.  The  duty  of  preserving  the  peace  was  confided  to  a 
few  soldiers  and  citizens  who  patrolled  the  streets,  rather  negligently  it  must  be  confessed. 
Hence  crimes  were  not  infrequent — a  result  which  might  have  been  anticipated  from  the  number 
of  cabarets,  constantly  open,  where  the  white  and  black  canaille,  thieves,  etc.,  drank  to  excess, 
night  and  day,  and  from  the  numerous  gambling  dens  and  ball-rooms  of  the  lower  class.  One  of 
these  last,  the  maison  Coquet,  notorious  in  its  day,  situated  nearly  in  the  center  of  the  town, 
often  posted  its  advertisements  at  the  street  corners,  with  the  express  permission,  as  announced 
in  the  placard,  of  the  Honorable  Civil  Governor  of  the  city. 

Rents  on  the  rue  de  la  Levee  and  the  streets  nearest  to  the  river  were  much  higher  than  in 
other  parts  of  the  town.  Immigration  had  tended  to  double  the  price  of  nearly  every  com- 
modity, and  as  the  "commerce  of  the  place  was  carried  on  near  the  Levee,  in  front  of  the  city, 
where  were  moored  the  flatboats,  the  pirogues  (small  vessels  of  six  or  eight  tons,  with  a  latteen 
sail),  and  the  schooners  and  few  barks  and  ships  that  constituted  the  shipping,  rooms  and 
houses  in  that  quarter  were  held  at  high  rents.  A  barrel  of  rice  cost  in  the  market  from  eight  to 
nine  dollars  ;  a  turkey  from  $1.50  to  $2.00;  a  capon  from  75  cents  to  $1.00  ;  a  hen  from  .50  cents  to 
75  cents  ;  a  pair  of  small  pigeons  75  cents  ;  a  barrel  of  flour  from  seven  to  eight  dollars.  The 
average  expenses,  without  superfluities,  of  a  family  consisting  of  father,  mother,  a  few  children 
and  two  or  three  servants,  would  have  amounted  to  not  less  than  $2,000  per  annum  under 
ordinary  circumstances. 

The  city  was  guarded  at  night  by  Spanish  watchmen,  who  sang  out  the  hours  as  well  as  the 
state  of  the  weather— "nine  o'clock  and  cloudy,"  or  "ten  o'clock  and  the  weather  is  clear,  "as  the 
case  might  be.  In  the  daytime  the  gens  d'armes  patrolled  the  city  in  squads  of  four  or  five,  each 
with  a  full  uniform  of  ?old  lace,  cocked  hat"  and  sword.  Many  were  the  battles  fought  between 
the  gens  d'armes  and  the  flat-boatmen. 

The  city  guard  of  those  days  wore  a  most  imposing  uniform.  His  cocked  hat,  his  deep-blue 
frock  coat,  his  breast  straps  of  black  leather  supporting  cartridge  box  and  bayonet  scabbard,  his 
old  flint-lock  musket  and  his  short  sword  made  him  an  object  of  profound  respect  on  the  part  of 
the  small  boys,  and  a  terror  to  the  slaves  who  happened  to  be  out  a  little  late.  These  proud  old 
guardians  of  the  peace  were  not  compelled  to  do  beat  duty.  Early  in  the  evening  the  sergeant 
would  gather  his  squad  together  in  the  guardroom,  which  adjoined  the  old  calaboose,  and  under 
his  orders  the  corporal  would  put  his  men  through  the  manual  of  arms.  Then  with  muskets  at 
a  right  shoulder,  they  would  march  off  on  their  patrol. 

The  limits  extended  as  far  up  as  Canal,  down  to  Esplanade  street  and  back  to  Rampart. 
Beyond  this,  nothing  but  swamps  and  neighboring  plantations  were  to  be  seen.  After  making  a 
tour  they  returned  to  the  guardroom,  to  make  a  second  round  later.  If  a  disturbance  occurred 
the  guard  had  to  be  sent  for,  as  it  would  have  been  almost  a  breach  of  discipline  to  have  been 
on  hand  in  time  to  prevent  a  fight,  or  to  disperse  a  crowd  before  a  riot  had  already  taken 
place. 

They  bore  themselves  with  that  stem,  sullen  demeanor  that  awed  the  peaceable  and  amused 
the  gay  spirits  of  those  days.  Frequently  in  the  upper  portion  of  the  city,  where  the  Kentucky 
flatboatmen  mostly  did  congregate,  were  the  gens  d'armes  ignominiously  put  to  flight,  swords, 
muskets  and  all. 


20  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOl^. 

The  old  calaboose  In  wliich  they  incarcerated  the  victims  of  their  displeasure  was  a  curi- 
ous old  building  of  Spanish  style.     It  was  situated  on  St.  Peter  street,  just  in  the  rear  of 
what  is  now  the  Supreme  Court  room,  and  occupied  all  the  space  down  to  within  about 
fifty  feet  of  Royal  street,  where  now  there  are  priv^ate  dwellings.    It  was  two  stories  in 
height,  with  walls  of  great  thickness.    Opening  on  Sc.  Peter  street  where  now  runs  St.  An- 
thony's alley,  near  the  Arsenal,  was  the  huge  iron  gateway.    The  ponderous  door  was  one 
mass  of  bars  and  crossbars  and  opened  upon  an  ante-room,  on  either  side  of  which  were 
the  officers'  rooms.    Passing  through  a  second  iron  door  one  entered  the  body  of  the  prison,  , 
a  gloomy,  dismal-looking  place,  as  silent  as  the  dungeons  of  the  old  Inquisition.    A  number  I 
of  windows  opened  on  the  street,  through  which  the  Inmates  drew  what  little  fresh  air  they  ' 
got.    The  building  was  put  up  in  the  year  1795,  by  Don  Almonaster,  when  the  Cabildo  or  Citj  j 
Council  occupied  the   present  Supreme  Court  rooms.    When  the  Territorial  Government  ol  i 
Louisiana  was  formed  it  was  still  used  as  a  calaboose,  and,  as  imprisonment  for  debt  was 
then  allowed,  its  upper  story  was  given  up  to  unfortunate  debtors. 

After  the  close  of  the  war  with  England,  New  Orleans  be^an  to  grow   rapidly,  and  over  , 
flowed  beyond  its  ancient  boundaries.    The  old  Marigny  plantation  below  had  been  cut  ui  | 
into  squares,  and  new  comers  were  building  there,  whilst,  above,  scattered  houses  showec 
that  the  people  could  not  be  confined  to  the  narrow  and  restricted  limits  of  the  ramparts 
A  new  and  larger  prison  became   necessary,  and   in    1834  the   foundations  for  the   presen'  ' 
Parish  Prison  were  laid  just  back  of  Congo  square.    As  soon  as  it  was  completed  all  tht  I 
prisoners  were  carried  thither,  and  the  work  of  demolishing  the  calaboose  was  commenced  j 
It  was  a  work  of  much  more  difficulty  than  was  expected.    The  mortar  of  the    Spaniards 
made  from  the  lime  of  lake  shells,  was  as  tenacious  as  the  most  durable  cement,  and  woulc 
not  yield.    It  was  found  easier  to  cut  through  the  solid  bricks  than  to  try  to  separate  them 
and,  therefore,  the  work  of  tearing  the  old  donjon  down  occupied   some  time.    There  is  8 
story  of  how  the   workmen    discovered   skeletons  bricked  up  in  the  walls,  and   chains   anc 
shackles  in  the  vaults,  but  none  of  our  citizens  who  were  living  at  that  time  ever  saw  anj 
of  those  ghastly  souvenirs  of  Spanish  rule. 

Beneath  the  building,  it  is  true,  they  came  across  some  three  or  four  deep  vaults,  which  I 
had   not  apparently  been  used  for  years,  and  this  was  enough  to  give  rise  to  the  report 
that  they  had  discovered  the  dungeons  of  the  Spanish  Inquisition.    The  tale  has  come  down,  and 
many  old  Creoles  still  believe  it. 

After  it  had  been  razed  to  the  ground,  parties  claimed  the  ground,  alleging  that  the  Spanish 
Government  had  occupied  the  site  without  reimbursing  them,  and  accordingly  it  was  awarded 
to  them,  and  private  dwellings  were  built  upon  it,  saving  an  alleyway,  which  now  intersects  j 
Cathedral  Alley. 

In  those  days  flatboating  was  a  business  of  immense  proportions.    The  flatboatman  was  a  | 
distinct  character,  like  no  one  else  in  the  world,  and  disposed  to  believed  himself  a  superior 
being.    Eough  as  he  was,  a  great  deal  was  owed  to  him,  and  his  lack  of  refinement  is  lost  sight 
of  in  the  contemplation  of  his  worth  as  a  pioneer.    He  was  the  only  medium  of  trade  in  those 
days  with  the  Northwest,  and  his  real  importance  was,  perhaps,  not  overrated  even  by  himself. 

The  crews  of  the  flatboats,  after  a  passage  of  many  weeks,  during  which  they  underwent 
hardships  that  we  know  nothing  of  in  these  days  of  railroads  and  steamboats,  were  disposed  to 
enjoy  themselves  at  the  end  of  their  journey,  and  their  idea  of  enjoyment  was  in  harmony  with 
their  rough  lives.  When  they  came  on  shore  they  spent  their  money  like  lords,  and  assumed 
privileges  in  accordance  with  their  individual  views  of  their  own  importance.  They  resented 
interference,  and  were  disposed  to  protect  their  rights  with  their  muscle. 

The  natural  consequence  was  war.  In  these  battles  the  flatboatmen,  armed  with  clubs, 
were  as  often  victorious  as  the  gens  d'armes,  armed  with  swords.  When  their  carousals  were 
over  they  went  peaceably  across  the  lake  on  some  sailing  craft,  and  made  their  way  back  to 
their  Northern  homes  overland  and  on  foot,  throngh  the  Indian  country,  leaving  their  boats  to 


91 

GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  ^^ 


very  f"wpaLeSe.s  employed  this  mode  of  travel,  the  custom  being  to  go  overland  on  horse- 

Sd'r.=ri:ferr;se:rdr-^^^^^^^^^^ 

n^htr:,t^VntsT:r:c^",?"mrmT-^:?theid^ 

nnrs'e';:  seoondmother  to  the  c^-Mt^n  hn. ^eaoh^g^^^^^^^^^^^^^ 

times  called  "o'cwifio,"  and  again  "Creole."     Tne  negro  im^o  ui  >  u^iLiia,  ..L^„^^. 

S  the  argon  of  the  Creole  negro.  Whether  it  was  that  French  was  a  language  too  difficult 
fTr  their  oTues,  or  whether  it  was  due  to  the  presence  of  so  many  ne,m  brutes,  wild  negroes  of 
AfricaTbirth,  in  the  colony,  cannot  be  said  ;  it  is  only  known  that  they  spoke  a  distinct  patois 
-another- Sngnage  from  that  of  their  masters,  made  up  of  about  equal  parts  of  French  and 
AfHcan  word^,  and  absolutely  incomprehensible  to  an  ordinary  Frenchman  ,.^-J-;^^^^^^^^^^ 
that  "  ma  pe  couri  "  was  gombo  for  "j.  m^en  vais^   "I  am  going  away  mo  vaayeh     for 

^"evaislefonetterr  "I  am  going  to  whip  him  ;"  -  me  ganyeckouer  for  '•''«-- f-«^"^.\7; 
ahorse"*  The  whole  gibberish  contained  but  a  few  hundred  words  and  was  without  tense, 
mood  or  grammar.  One  word  did  duty  for  a  hundred,  and  the  very  animals  and  trees  were 
without  distinctive  titles,  because  the  language  was  not  rich  enough  to  give  them  names. 

There  were  a  few  Indian  slaves.  They  were  always  troublesome,  not  submitting  to  slavery 
as  readily  as  their  African  brethren,  and  becoming  finally  so  dangerous  that  the  government 
interfered  and  issued  the  first  American  emancipation  proclamation,  freeing  all  the 
Indians.  The  result  was  a  negro  rising  which  was  put  down  only  with  considerable  loss  of 
life  and  which  was  commemorated  for  some  time  afterward  by  the  decapitated  heads  of  the 
ne^o   leaders,    which   were   stuck    on   pikes    at    the  city    gates    to  overawe  the    colored 

''^"n'those  days,  the  chUdren  cast  fearful  glances  under  the  old  beds  with  their  baldachins 
while  the  old  negro  nurse  told  of  Compe  Bouqui  (the  clown  of  the  negroes),  and  the  knavery  of 
Compe  Lapin,  whose  type  represents  punchinello  of  Europe,  or  sang  some  of  those  Creoie 
ballads  whose  simple  and  touching  melody  goes  right  to  the  heart  and  makes  you  dream  of 

unknown  worlds.  ,  , 

One  of  the  favorite  stories  was  that  of  Jean  Bras  Coupe,  captain  of  the  runaway  negroes  of 
Bayou  Sara,  who  filled  the  whole  of  Louisiana  with  the  reports  of  his  sanguinary  exploits.  He 
resisted  alone,  this  hero  of  the  swamps,  all  the  expeditions  sent  in  pursuit  of  him.  Strange 
rumors  were  in  circulation  on  this  subject.  Sometimes  it  was  a  detachment  of  troops  that  had 
ventured  to  the  haunt  of  this  brigand,  who  disappeared  without  anyone  being  able  to  discover 
any  trace  of  them.  Sometimes  it  was  the  hunter,  who  told  of  a  ball  flattened  against  the 
breast  of  Bras  Coupe,  whose  skin  was  rendered  invulnerable  by  certain  herbs  with  which  he 
rubbed  it     The  negroes  asserted  that  his  look  fascinated,  and  that  he  fed  on  human  flesh. 

He  was  finally  captured  and  condemned  to  be  hung  in  the  square  opposite  the  Cathedral.  He 
had  been  attacked  by  a  terrible  scurvy,  and  the  infecting  odors  exhaled  by  his  corpse,  two  hours 
after  his  execution,  made  them  bury  him  contrary  to  the  law,  that  condemned  him  to  remain 
suspended  to  the  gallows  for  two  days. 

Sometimes  the  old  negro  servant  interrupted  this  tale  to  exorcise  a  "zombi,"  whose  impure 
breath  she  felt  on  her  face  ;  and  the  children  shivered  with  fright  and  gathered  around  the 
grandmother,  who  crossed  herself  and  went  on  with  the  story. 


22 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


NEW  ORLEANS  IK  1805. 


Governor  Claiborne,  when  he  came  down  here  to  inspect  Louisiana  and  take  possession 
of  New  Orleans,  noticed  anions  the  curiosities  and  striking  buildings  of  the  city  a  saw  mill 
with  two  saws  turned  by  horses,  a  wooden-horse  riding  circus  for  children,  a  French  theatre, 
two  banks,  a  custom-house,  navy-yard,  barracks,  a  fort,  public  storehouses,  government  house 
(its  hospital  has  been  lately  burnt),  a  Catholic  church  of  the  first  order  in  size  and  ele- 
gance, and  the  Capitol,  a  superb  building  adjoining  the  church,  both  built  by  a  Spaniard,  at  an 
expense  of  half  a  million  dollars,  and  presented  by  him  to  the  Spanish  Government  at  New 
Orleans.  The  cotton  presses  of  the  city  give  much  labor,  and  the  pressing  song  of  the  men  is 
interesting.  It  is  similar  to  the  heave  hoi  of  the  sailor,  with  this  difference,  that  several  are 
engaged  in  sin.ging,  and  each  has  his  part,  consisting  of  two  or  three  appropriate  words.  ' 
tuned  to  his  own  fancy,  so  as  to  make  harmony  with  the  other.  Other  presses  go  by  horse 
and  steam  power,  where  the  men  have  no  other  labor  than  rolling  in  the  bales,  untying, 
retying,  etc.    They  repress  a  bale  in  seven  or  ten  minutes. 

NEW  ORLEANS  IN  1832. 

The  first  directory  ever  published  in  New  Orleans,  in  1822,  gives  the  following  description  of 
the  city,  showing  the  changes  that  had  taken  place  under  American  rule  : 

The  city  is  regularly  laid  out ;  the  streets  are  generally  thirty-eight  feet  wide,  and  with  few 
exceptions  cross  each  other  at  right  angles  ;  Orleans  street  is  forty-five  feet  wide  ;  Esplanade 
and  Rampart  streets,  each  108  feet ;  Canal  street,  171 ;  and  Champs  Elysees  street,  160  feet. 

The  spacious  streets  which  bound  tbe  city,  namely.  Canal,  Rampart  and  Esplanade  streets 
and  the  levee,  have  lately  been  planted  with  four  rows  of  the  sycamore  or  butter-wood  tree, 
which  in  the  course  of  a  few  years  will  afford  a  fine  shade,  contribute  to  the  health  of  the  city 
and  present  one  of  the  most  elegant  promenades  in  the  United  States.  There  are  several  large 
public  squares,  one  of  which.  The  Place  of  Arms,  350  feet  on  the  levee,  by  330  in  depth  to  Chartres 
street,  is  very  handsome,  being  planted  with  trees,  and  inclosed  with  an  Iron  palisade,  having 
beautifully  ornamented  gateways  of  the  same  metal.  The  Circus  j^ublic  square,  is  planted  with 
trees,  and  inclosed,  and  is  very  noted  on  account  of  its  being  the  place  where  the  Congo  and 
other  negroes  dance,  carouse  and  debauch  on  the  Sabbath,  to  the  great  injury  of  the  morals°of  the 
rising  generation ;  it  is  a  foolish  custom,  that  elicits  the  ridicule  of  most  respectable  persons 
who  visit  the  city  ;  but  if  it  is  not  considered  good  policy  to  abolish  the  practice  entirely,  surely 
they  could  bo  ordered  to  assemble  at  some  place  more  distant  from  the  houses,  by  whi;;h  means 
the  evil  would  be  measurably  remedied. 

Those  streets  that  are  not  paved  in  the  middle,  have  brick  sidewalks,  and  gutters  formed  of 
wood,  which  are  kept  clean  by  the  black  prisoners  of  the  city,  who  are  generally  runaways, 
carrying  heavy  chains  to  prevent  them  making  their  escape. 

The  wells  are  generally  from  five  to  fifteen  feet  in  depth,  the  water  in  them  is  clear  from 
salt,  but  unpleasant  to  the  taste,  and  unfit  for  drinking  or  washing  of  clothes.    Drinking  water, 
and  that  used  for  cooking  and  the  washing  of  clothes,  is  taken  from  the  river,  carried  through  i 
the  city  for  sale,  in  hogsheads  or  carts,  and  sold  at  the  rate  of  four  buckets  for  six  and  a  quarter  ' 
cents,  or  fifty  cents  per  hogshead.    The  water  for  drinking  is  either  filtered  through  a  porous 
stone  or  is  placed  in  a  large  jar,  and  cleared  by  alum,  etc.    The  water  is  considered  wholesome. 

In  consequence  of  the  deposits  of  earthy  particles  from  the  eddy  part  of  the  river,  the 
harbor  above  St.  Louis  street  becomes  more  shallow  annually ;  and  below  the  said  street  it 
deepens,  as  the  channel  or  main  current  approaches  the  shore.  It  is  thought  by  most  persons 
that  the  water  ought  to  be  introduced  from  the  river  into  the  city,  from  above  the  eddy  and 
point,  as  it  is  certainly  more  pure  than  that  opposite  the  city,  ichere  it  becomes  impregnated  xoith 
all  kinds  of  filth,  the  very  thought  of  which  is  sufficient  to  turn  the  stomach  of  a  person  of  delicate 
oiistitution. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  23 

The  buildings  of  the  city  were  formerly  almost  entirely  of  wood,  but  those  recently  erected 
are,  for  the  most  part,  neatly  built  of  brick,  covered  with  slate  or  tile.  On  the  streets  nearest 
the  river  the  houses  are  principally  of  brick,  from  one  to  four  stories  high,  but  in  the  back  part 
of  the  town  they  are  generally  of  wood.  The  buildings  have  no  cellars,  except  the  vacancy,  in 
some  of  them,  formed  between  the  ground  and  lower  floor,  which  is  raised  five  or  six  feet  from 
the  earth.  The  houses  are  built  without  cellars,  in  consequence  of  the  dampness  of  the  earth, 
water  being  found  generally  by  digging  from  one  and  a-half  to  three  feet ;  but  an  experiment 
has  lately  been  made  in  the  new  stores.  New  Levee,  above  Gravier  street,  which  promises  to  be 
highly  useful.  The  cellars  are  lined  with  strong  plank,  the  joints  of  which  are  caulked  and 
pitched,  to  keep  out  the  water  ;  and  which  is  found  to  answer,  notwithstanding  the  surface  of 
the  water  in  the  river  is  at  this  time  higher  than  the  bottom  of  the  cellars. 

There  are  two  viEages,  McDonoughville  and  Duvergesville,  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  river, 
where  ship-building  is  carried  on,  and  where  a  number  of  vessels  are  always  harbored;  this  port 
is  considered  as  part  of  the  port  of  New  Orleans.  A  steam  ferry-boat  keeps  up  a  constant  and 
regular  communication  between  this  city  and  the  opposite  shore  ;  it  starts  from  the  Levee,  near 
the  Market  House. 

The  barracks  and  military  hospital  have  been  sold,  cut  through  by  Hospital  street,  and  con- 
verted to  private  use,  by  being  altered  into  stores  and  dwellings.  The  fortifications  erected  in 
former  times  for  the  defence  of  the  place,  were  found  not  to  answer  the  intended  purpose,  aud 
have  therefore  been  entirely  removed,  and  new  places  of  defence  have  been  built  at  more  dis- 
tant and  judicious  points.  "  It  is  likewise  defended  by  nature  ;  on  one  side  by  the  river,  and  on 
the  other  by  a  swamp  that  no  labor  can  reclaim,  and  no  effort  can  penetrate;  it  is  only  to  be 
approached  through  a  defile  three-fourths  of  a  mile  in  width,  which,  being  protected  by  a  breast- 
work, manned  by  5,000  men  (for  a  greater  number  could  not  operate),  New  Orleans,  in  point  of 
strength,  is  another  Gibraltar  ;  she  laughs  defiance  at  the  most  powerful  invaders." 

The  incorporated  portion  of  New  Orleans  embraces  the  city  proper,  and  the  suburbs  St. 
Mary,  above,  and  Marigny,  below,  beingbetween  Delord  street,  the  upper  boundary,  and  D'En- 
ghien  street.the  lowest  boundary.  The  city  is  governed  by  a  Mayor  and  City  Council,  and  a  num- 
ber of  wholesome  ordinances  have  been  passed  for  the  establishment  and  support  of  order.  The 
city  is  guarded  at  night  by  about  fifty  armed  men,  who,  during  the  daytime,  are  generally 
private  citizens.  They  patrol  the  streets  in  small  squads,  which  are  generally,  and  should  always 
be,  composed  of  persons  capable  of  speaking  both  French  and  English. 

Every  exertion  has  been  made  to  render  the  city  more  healthy ;  the  low  ground  in  the  rear 
has  been  drained  by  ditching,  and  care  is  taken  to  remove  all  nuisances. 

A  cannon  is  fired  at  eight  o'clock  in  winter,  and  nine  in  the  summer,  as  a  signal  for  all 
sailors,  soldiers  and  blacks  to  go  to  their  respective  homes,  and  all  such  persons  found  in  the 
streets  afterwards,  without  a  pass  from  their  employers  or  masters,  are  taken  to  the  calaboose  or 
city  prison  ;  it  is  also  a  notice  for  groceries  and  taverns,  with  the  exception  of  a  few  reputable 
hotels  and  coffee-houses,  to  be  closed. 

The  present  population  of  the  city  and  suburbs  of  New  Orleans  is  about  40,000.  The  popula- 
tion was  much  increased  by  the  unfortunate  French  immigrants  from  San  Domingo,  and 
afterward,  in  1809,  by  those  who  were  compelled  to  flee  from  the  island  of  Cuba,  to  the  number 
of  about  10,000.  The  population  is  much  mixed,  consisting  of  foreijrn  and  native  French, 
Americans  born  in  the  State,  and  from  every  State  in  the  L'uion  ;  a  few  Spaniards  and  foreigners 
from  almost  every  nation  ;  consequently  the  society  is  much  diversified,  and  there  is  no  general 
fixed  character.  There  is  a  great  ^'confysion  of  tongues.''  and  on  the  levee,  during  a  busy  day, 
can  be  seen  people  of  every  grade,  color,  and  condition;  in  short,  it  is  a  world  in  miniature. 

The  State  Prison,  in  1821,  contained  2^6  debtors  and  criminals,  and  the  calaboose,  or  city 
prison,  140  black  and  colored  prisoners,  generally  runaways,  who  are  employed  on  the  public 
works  and  the  streets. 

(The  unfortunate  debtor  was  at  that  time  confined  in  the  same  prison  with  criminals.) 


24  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

The  Charity  Hospital  is  situated  ou  Canal  street,  and  consists  of  two  large  white  buildiug^ 
having  a  number  of  convenient  apartments,  which  are  kept  remarkably  clean.  The  lot  oi 
which  these  buildings  stand  embraces  the  whole  square  between  Canal  and  Common,  and  Basi; 
and  St.  PhUip  streets.  About  1,300  males  and  females  were  admitted  during  the  year  1821,  am 
the  average  number  of  the  patients  is  about  130.  Sick  persons  wishing  admission,  apply  to  th 
Mayor  of  the  city,  or  to  one  of  the  administrators. 

There  are,  besides  the  above,  the  Masonic  and  Naval  Hospitals,  and  a  private  hospital. 

The  Poydras  Female  Orphan  Asylum,  situated  at  153  Poydras  street,  is  a  neat,  new  fram 
building  with  a  large  garden.  This  institution  commenced  its  operations  in  1816,  with  14  orphans 
which  increased  in  18--21  to  41.  Any  female  chUd  in  want  may  be  admitted  by  consent  of  the  board 
though  not  an  orphan.  The  constitution  declares  "that  they  shall  provide  a  house  for  th. 
reception  of  indigent  female  orphans  and  widows,  which  shall  be  enlarged  according  to  th, 
income  of  the  society." 

This  excellent  charitable  establishment  owed  its  existence,  principally,  to  the  liberality  o 
Julien  Poydras,  who  contributed  a  house  and  the  large  lot  on  which  the  new  house  stands 
The  State  Legislature  voted  $4,000. 

New  Orleans  appears  to  have  been  pretty  well  supplied  with  educational  institutions  at  tha 
time,  as  the  following  enumeration  of  the  various  establishments  will  show :  The  New  Orlean 
College,  a  large  building,  situated  at  the  corner  of  Bayou  and  St.  Claude  streets  ;  an  Academ^ 
on  the  Levee,  two  miles  below  town,  under  the  direction  of  the  Rev.  Bertrand  Martial  ant 
several  other  gentlemen  attached  to  the  Catholic  clergy,  where  sixty  boys  receive  the  benefit  o: 
their  united  labors ;  an  academy  under  the  direction  of  the  Eev.  Dr.  Hull,  No.  2  Bourbon  street 
below  Canal  street ;  four  schools  on  the  plan  of  Joseph  Lancaster,  one  of  which,  77  Chartre^ 
street,  under  the  superintendence  of  the  Rev.  Michael  Portier,  an  academy  with  170  boys ;  t 
large  brick  school  on  Magazine  street,  under  the  direction  of  Francis  F.  Laf on  ;  one  for  young 
ladies,  27  Conti  street ;  one  for  colored  boys  and  girls ;  an  academy  for  young  ladies  in  the 
convent  of  the  Ursuline  nuns,  where  about  sixty  scholars  receive  "  the  most  accomplished 
education,  with  the  exception  of  dancing ;''  twenty-five  orphans  are  supported  and  educated 
gratis  in  a  separate  apartment,  and  as  many  poor  day-scholars.  Also  several  other  academies, 
and  forty-eight  common  schools,  some  of  which  are  for  persons  of  color. 

Among  the  public  buildings  standing  in  1822  may  be  mentioned :  The  Citv  HaU  or  Principal 
wnth  a  front  on  Chartres  street  of  103  feet,  built  in  1795,  in  which  are  the  City  Council  chamber,  city 
officers  and  city  guard;  the  City  and  State  Prisons,  on  St.  Peters  street,  in  the  rear  of  and  adjoin- 
ing the  City  Hall;  the  Presbytice,  with  a  front  on  Conde  street,  of  114  feet,  built  in  1813,  in 
which  the  Supreme,  District  and  Parish  Courts  hold  their  sessions;  the  Government  House, 
built  in  1781,  where  the  Legislature  meets  and  in  which  is  the  Treasurer's  office  and  the  Orleans 
Library,  of  about  6,000  volumes ;  the  Customhouse,  a  spacious,  plain  brick  building,  with  a 
coating  of  white  plaster,  situated  on  the  levee,  where,  besides  the  offices  connected  with  the 
customs,  are  the  United  States  District  Court-room,  and  offices  of  the  United  States  District 
Clerk,  Attorney,  Marshal  and  Land ;  the  Charity  Hospital,  on  Canal  street,  a  large  building, 
erected  in  1315;  the  Ursuline  Convent,  built  1733;  the  New  Orleans  College,  built  1812;  tt^e 
Market  House,  a  neat  building  about  300  feet  long,  situated  on  the  levee,  near  the  Place  of 
Ai-ms,  contains  more  than  ICO  stalls,  erected  in  1813 ;  the  Orleans  Theatre,  with  Davis'  Hotel, 
and  the  Orleans  Ball-room,  a  considerable  pile  of  brick  buildings,  first  erected  in  1813,  destroyed 
by  fire  in  1815,  rebuilt  and  furnished  with  a  very  handsome  front  and  interior  decorations  in 
1816  (there  were  dramatic  performances  here  almost  every  night  throughout  the  year  by  full 
and  respectable  French  and  English  companies,  who  played  alternately);  the  St.  Philip  street 
Theatre,  a  neat  brick  building,  with  a  handsome  interior,  erected  in  1810.  The  public  expecta- 
tation,  for  a  long  time  manifested  for  an  American  theatre,  will  soon  be  realized,  as  Mr. 
Caldwell,  the  manager  of  the  American  Theatre,  has  purchased  the  ground  between  Gravier 
and  Poydras  streets  for  a  theatre.    Liberal  subscriptions  have  been  made,  and  it  is  said  that 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


25 


-he  foundation  of  a  large  and  elegant  edifice,  to  be  styled  tlie  American  Theatre,  will  be  laid 
«  .T„T.^  ^p^f      A  Tifiw  brick  market-house,  42  feet  in  width,  by  from  200  to  250  feet  in  length,  is 


n  June  next.  A  new  brick  market-house 
CO  be  buUt  immediately  on  the  upper  end  of  the  batture,  between  St.  Joseph  and  Deiord  streets. 
A  new  and  handsome  brick  building  is  to  be  erected  at  the  corner  of  Orleans  and  Bourbon 
streets  for  the  accommodation  of  all  the  courts  and  public  officers  of  the  parish.  It  is  con- 
templated  to  build  a  corn  and  vegetable  market.  The  State  Bank  is  a  neat  brick  building  with 
a  coat  of  white  plastering,  and  there  are  two  other  banks,  kept  in  buildings  that  were  formerly 
dwellings,  altered  for  their  reception.  The  Louisiana  Insurance  Office  is  a  small  but  neat  brick 
building  The  United  States  Navy  Yard  and  stores,  a  marine  barracks,  quartermasters'  stores, 
an  ordnance  arsenal,  with  a  great  number  of  mounted  field  and  battering  cannon,  mortars, 
shells  balls  and  other  implements  of  war  ;  and  a  fine  commodious  building,  erected  exclusively 
for  the  accommodation  of  different  lodges  and  Free  Masons,  may  be  mentioned  as  the  most 
important  buildings  in  the  city. 

Among  the  public  institutions  of  this  city  are  a  branch  of  the  United  States  Bank,  and  two 
others,  whose  joint  capital  is  S3,000,000-tbree  insurance  companies,  whose  joint  capital  is 
$1,000,000 ;  besides  there  are  agents  of  four  foreign  insurance  companies ;  the  New  Orleans 
Library  Society,  two  medical  societies,  and  a  board  of  medical  examiners. 

There  are  no  less  than  nineteen  lodges  of  the  various  orders  of  Free  Masons  in  New  Orleans, 
and  the  Grand  Lodge  of  Louisiana  was  formed  and  con^ituted  on  the  twentieth  day  of  the 
month  of  June,  1820,  and  of  Masonry,  5820,  by  five  regular  lodges  which  then  existed  in  the  State, 
and  deriving  their  charters  from  the  Grand  Lodge  of  Pennsylvania.  There  is  a  "  Female  Charity 
Society,"  the  object  of  which  is  to  relieve  women  and  children  laboring  under  sickness,  and 
for  the  accommodation  of  whom  it  is  contemplated  to  build  an  hospital.  There  are  several 
handsome  ball-rooms,  where  balls  are  frequent  and  well  attended  by  the  inhabitants,  more 
particularly  the  French. 

The  means  for  extinguishing  fires  are  twelve  fire-engines  and  hose,  ladders,  hooks,  and  a 
great  number  of  leather  fire-buckets ;  "the  Washington  Fire  Society,"  has  been  formed  for  the 
protection  of  property;  each  member  is  provided  with  two  leather  buckets,  two  bags  four 
feet  long,  a  bed-screw  and  a  knapsack.  The  citizens,  during  fire,  are  generally  active,  are  set  a 
worthy  example  by  the  indefatigable  Mayor  and  Fire  Wardens,  who,  on  an  alarm,  are  amongst 
the  first  to  repair  to  the  spot.  In  order  to  remedy  the  evil  of  fire,  no  other  than  brick  houses 
are  allowed  to  be  erected  withm  the  compactly  built  part  of  the  city. 

Perhaps  no  city  in  the  Union  can  boast  of  being  better  lighted  than  New  Orleans.  There 
are  250  of  the  most  complete  and  brilliant  reflecting  lamps,  suspended  to  iron  chains,  which  are 
stretched  from  the  corners  of  houses  or  high  posts,  diagonally  across  the  junctions  of  the 
various  streets,  in  such  a  manner  as  to  be  seen  in  a  range  from  the  middle  of  any  street,  the  cost 
of  which  is  about  forty-five  dollars  each. 

The  following  were  the  various  teranches  of  manufactures  and  business  carried  on  in  the 
city  and  suburbs  of  New  Orleans  at  that  time,  embracing  the  professional,  mercantile,  mechani- 
cal and  other  establishments,  namely  :  many  physicians  and  counseUors-at-law  ;  260  mercantile 
establishments;  wholesale  grocery  and  dry  goods  merchants,  carrying  on  an  exten  sive  trade  in 
produce  and  merchandise;  seven  auctioneers,  with  a  great  business;  102  retail  dry-goods 
stores,  twenty-seven  miUinery  and  fancy  stores  and  a  number  of  small  shops  of  various  kinds; 
a  number  of  billiard  tables  ;  the  Planters'  and  Merchants'  Hotel,  a  spacious  building,  60  feet 
front,  situated  on  Canal  street,  containing  upwards  of  one  hundred  rooms,  besides  which  there 
were  other  very  extensive  hotels  and  coffee-houses,  that  had  not  their  superiors  in  the  Union ; 
350  taverns  and  groceries,  retail,  and  seventy  groceries  that  sell  by  wholesale,  besides  a 
number  of  porter  and  oyster  houses,  etc.;  one  public  bath-house,  two  fumigating  bath- 
houses; thirty-two  blacksmiths,  five  brass-founders,  one  bell-hanger,  thirty-seven  barbers,  one 
brewery,  twelve  bricklayers  ;  nine  book  and  stationery  stores,  four  bookbinders  ;  the  New 
Orleans  Society  library,  kept  in  the  Government  House,  containing  6,000  volumes,  principally  in 


^^  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

French  and  English,  and  one  English  and  one  French  circulating  library  ;  nine  book  and  n^ 
paper  printing  offices  ;  the  following  daily  gazettes  were  printed  :  "  The  Louisiana  Courier,"! 
"Orleans  Gazette  and  Commercial  Advertiser,"  the  "  Louisiana  Advertiser,"  the  "Friend  oft 
Laws,"  the  "Louisiana  Gazette,"  and  the  "Commercial  Report,"  a  weekly  paper;  three  of  tht 
were  printed  in  French  and  the  same  number  in  English  ;  one  lithographic  printer,  many  co 
mission  and  exchange  brokers,  four  lottery  offices,  thirty-seven  coopers,  fifty-three  cablr 
makers ;  many  builders,  carpenters  and  bricklayers  ;  six  large  steam  saw-mills,  one  of  which  \« 
of  brick,  embracing  a  grist  mill,  and  was  built  by  Dr.  Geo.  Hunter  ;  105  cordwainers,  employl 
153  persons  ;  sixteen  confectioners  and  pastry  cooks  ;  a  number  of  public  officers  ;  several  si 
veyors ;  four  carvers  and  gilders,  thirteen  coach  and  harness-makers,  forty-four  coach,  sif 
ship  and  ornamental  painters,  glaziers  and  paper-hangers  ;  thirteen  portrait  and  miniate 
painters;  several  landscape  and  scene  painters;  four  musical  instrument  makers  and  stow 
many  musicians,  dancing  and  fencing  masters;  two  chocolate  manufacturers,  six  cutters 
number  of  French  and  English  comedians,  five  chair  stores  and  makers,  twenty-four  drug  a 
apothecary  stores  ;  six  large  rum  distilleries,  three  for  gin  and  nine  for  cordials  ;  seven  dentis- 
four  dyers  and  scourers,  three  engravers  ;  two  iron  foundries,  lately  established  ;  one  frin 
maker,  a  number  of  gardeners,  fowlers,  fishermen,  oystermen,  boatmen,  mariners,  caulkei 
stevedores,  riggers  and  ship  carpenters  ;  five  sail  makers  ;  three  furniture  stores,  thirteen  gla 
china  and  queens  ware  stores ;  sevente'en  gunsmiths  ;  a  very  great  number  of  would-be  gentlemen  a-. 
ladies,  or,  in  other  words,  persons  who  had  no  a]  parent  business  ;  four  working  hatter  shop 
fifty-six  hat,  shoe  and  clothing  stores  ;  twenty-one  hardware  and  ship  chandlery  stores  ;  anui 
ber  of  perfumers  and  hair  dressers,  two  ice  houses,  one  laboratory;  several  large  livery  stabJ 
and  veterinary  hospitals,  a  number  of  wood  and  lumber  merchants,  two  last  makers,  one  sere 
cutter,  several  mill-wrights  and  engineers,  one  mathematical  instrument-maker,  two  miner 
water  establishments,  a  number  of  mid  wives  and  nurses,  many  notaries,  translators,  interprete 
and  ship  brokers  ;  three  pump,  block  and  mast-makers  ;  one  plumber,  two  rope- walks,  twel' 
saddlers  and  .saddlery  stores,  one  sugar  refinery,  four  stone-cutters,  one  spectacle-maker,  t\5 
sculptors,  many  shoeblacks,  sixty-two  working  tailor-shops,  nineteen  tin  and  copper  smiths ; 
great  number  of  traders,  peddlers  and  travelling  merchants,  of  all  colors,  four  tanners  and  cu 
riers,  seventy-seven  tobacconists  and  sugar-makers,  employing  417  hands  ;  four  soap  and  cand 
manufactories,  eight  turners  in  wood  and  metals,  a  number  of  victuallers  and  sausage-maker 
twenty-two  upholsterers  and  mattress-makers,  two  umbrella-makers,  eight  wheelwrights,  an 
fifty-six  watch-makers,  gold  and  silver  smiths  and  jewelry  stores,  450  licensed  drays  and  cart 
sixteen  two- wheeled  and  thirteen  four-wheeled  carriages  for  hire. 

There  were  a  number  of  extensive  cotton  pressing  and  tobacco  warehouses,  amon 
which  were  the  large  fire-proof  warehouses  of  Mr.  B.  Rilleux.  corner  of  Tchoupitoulas  an 
Poydras  streets,  worthy  of  particular  notice.  They  were  commenced  in  1806;  they  were  o 
Tchoupitoulas,  Poydras  and  Magazine  streets,  with  passages  leading  to  each,  and  contains 
11,500  bales  of  cotton  ;  there  were  three  cotton  presses— one  by  steam,  one  hydraulic,  and  on 
by  horse-power ;  with  this  range  of  buildings  were  eight  wells,  a  fire-engine,  hose  and  fir< 
buckets  for  extinguishing  fire,  if  it  should  occur,  and  twenty-five  men  who  slept  in  the  yarc 
This  building,  with  the  lots,  presses,  etc.,  cost  about  $150,000 ;  the  passages  and  aUeys  throng 
this  building  were  paved  with  pebble  stones  in  1806,  so  that  this  gentleman  has  the  credit  o 
being  the  first  to  introduce  that  necessary  and  important  improvement  in  highways. 

Mr.  Benjamin  Morgan  followed  Mr.  Rilleux  in  the  important  experiments  of  improving  th 
highways,  by  paving  Gravier  street  w;th  pebble  stone,  between  Tchoupitoulas  and  Magazin. 
streets,  which  was  so  well  executed  as  to  stand  the  test  of  some  years,  and  convinced  ever- 
thinking  person  of  its  utility. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  27 


CHAPTER  IV.— BY  RAIL. 

HOW  TO  REACH  NEW  ORLEANS— THE  VARIOUS  RAILROAD  LINES  CENTERING  THERE — 
REMINISCENCES  OF  HALF  A  CENTURY  AGO — THE  FIRST  RAILROAD  IN  THE  UNITED 
STATES — ITS   STYLE   OF   ENGINES    AND  CARS — STREET   CAR   AND   FERRY   LINES. 

The  Pontchartrain  Railroad,  out  Elysian  Fields  street  to  Milneburg,  was  the  first  railroad  for 
general  transportation  completed  in  the  United  States,  and  was  opened  for  traflBc  in  1830.  The 
President  of  the  Company  was  Morris  W.  Hoffman,  of  Maryland,  then  a  prominent  lawyer  of 
New  Orleans,  and  among  the  Board  of  Directors  were  Judge  Eustis,  Samuel  J.  Peters,  and 
Messrs.  Pritchard,  Hewlett,  Cornelius  Paulding  and  others,  all  of  whom  have  died  long  since. 

The  Albany  &  Schenectady,  Baltimore  &  Ohio,  and  Camden  &  Amboy  Railroads  were 
commenced  about  the  same  time  as  the  Pontchartrain  Railroad,  but  the  latter  was  completed 
and  in  use  before  any  of  the  others.  The  capital  stock  of  the  company  was  originally  §500,000. 
Capt.  John  Grant  contracted  to  build  the  road,  and  when  it  was  finished  he  was  made  Super- 
intendent. While  acting  in  that  capacity,  he  had  the  honor  of  running  tlie  first  locomotive  over 
the  Pontchartrain  Railroad  that  ever  turned  a  wheel  south  of  the  Potomac  River.  This  engine 
never  went  into  regular  service  on  the  road,  being  too  light  for  the  purposes  for  which  it  was 
intended.  It  was  built  in  Cincinnati,  Ohio,  by  a  man  named  Thomas  Shields,  and  was  originally 
designed  for  a  turnpike  locomotive.  Finding  that  his  invention  did  not  answer  his  expectations 
in  this  respect,  Shields  changed  the  wheels  to  flange  wheels,  and  there  being  then  no  railroad  on 
which  to  use  his  invention  at  Cincinnati  he  shipped  it  on  a  steamboat,  and  in  1832  arrived  in  New 
Orleans.  He  took  rooms  at  Richardson's  Hotel,  on  Conti  street,  and  placed  himself  in  commu- 
nication with  the  officers  of  the  old  Portchartrain  Railroad  Company.  They  agreed  to  allow 
him  to  test  the  merits  of  his  engine  on  their  road,  and  referred  him  to  Capt.  Grant.  After  the 
engine  had  been  fitted  up  and  placed  on  the  rails.  Shields  could  not  find  an  engineer  to  run  the 
locomotive,  and  Capt.  Grant  volunteered,  and  one  morning  a  coach  was  attached  and  steam 
raised.  The  engine  did  not  possess  power  enough  to  make  the  apparatus  a  success,  and  Capt. 
Grant  so  informed  Shields.  The  latter  had  expended  all  his  money  on  the  perfection  of  his 
engine,  was  indebted  to  the  boat  for  freight  charges  as  well  as  his  own  passage,  and  could  not 
liquidate  his  board  bill  at  the  hotel.  In  this  dire  strait  he  appealed  to  Capt.  Grant,  begging  the 
latter  to  make  him  an  offer  for  the  engine.  Capt.  Grant  candidly  informed  him  that  he  could  not 
pay  him  anything  near  the  money  which  the  construction  of  the  locomotive  had  cost,  as  he  could 
not  utilize  it  as  it  stood.  If  he  bought  it  he  would  have  to  dismantle  it,  and  apply  one  of  the 
engines  to  use  it  as  a  motor  to  turn  a  lathe  and  grindstone  in  the  repair  shops  of  the  company. 
He  therefore  made  Shields  an  offer  of  $1,000  for  the  locomotive,  which  was  accepted,  and 
soon  afterwards  the  inventor  left  for  Cincinnati. 

For  many  years  afterwards  this  engine  did  service  in  the  shops,  and  was  finally  superseded 
by  more  modern  and  improved  machinery.  The  first  locomotive  in  actual  service  on  the  Pont- 
chartrain Railroad  was  the  "Creole,"  and  soon  afterwards  the  locomotive  " Pontchartrain " 
was  received  and  placed  in  service.  The  coaches  were  of  every  design  and  pattern,  and  a  train 
of  cars  presented  a  unique  appearance  which  compared  with  those  of  the  present  day  would  be 
ludicrous  in  the  extreme  ;  but  at  that  time  they  were  a  source  of  admiration  and  wonder  to 
everybody. 

The  road,  accordmg  to  the  measurement  of  the  engineers,  was  originally  5>^  miles  long,  and 
there  was  a  turntable  at  each  end  of  the  line.  The  engine,  when  it  reached  the  end  of  the  run, 
was  detached  from  the  tender  and  turned;  then  in  succession  the  tender  and  each  of  the  cars 


28  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


] 

eof  I 


were  turned  and  the  train  ag:ain  made  up  for  the  return  trip.    The  fare  for  the  round  trip 

75  cents,  and  the  transportation  of  freight  was  attended  by  a  corresponding  high  rate  of 

charges. 

The  loading  and  unloading  of  freight  to  and  from  the  cars  was  accomplished  by  means  of  a 
crane,  by  which  it  was  picked  up  or  deposited  on  the  floor  of  the  depot. 

Captain  Grant,  after  mature  deliberation,  concluded  that  the  handling  of  freight  would  be 
greatly  facilitated  by  building  a  raised  platform,  and  broached  the  subject  to  the  directors  of 
the  road.  They  were  opposed  to  this  plan,  but  he  was  confident  that  it  would  be  successful,  and 
the  next  day  commenced  the  work.  He  left  instructions  with  his  men  that  if  the  President  or 
any  of  the  officers  came  and  ordered  them  to  cease  operations  not  to  pay  any  attention,  but  to 
continue  the  work. 

As  he  had  anticipated,  the  President  did  visit  the  depot,  and  on  ascertaining  what  was 
going  on  he  ordered  the  men  to  cease.  They  however  continued,  and  after  the  platform 
was  built  Captain  Grant  invited  the  directors  to  visit  the  depot  and  witness  the  loading  and 
unloading  of  freight. 

Thus  it  is  that  New  Orleans  not  only  has  the  honor  of  having  the  first  railroad  on  this 
continent,  but  also  that  of  the  first  freight  platform  in  the  world.  It  was  not  until  after  the 
year  1858  that  the  raised  platform  was  finally  adopted  generally  throughout  England  and 
Europe. 

The  first  schedules  for  trains  over  the  Pontchartrain  railroad  provided  for  hourly  trips,  the 
train  leaving  each  alternate  hour  from  either  the  city  or  Milneburg.  The  demand  for  transporta- 
tion for  both  passengers  and  freight  was  so  great  that  it  was  desired  to  place  two  trains  on,  but 
there  being  only  a  single  track  built,  the  running  of  these  trains  was  impossible. 

Capt.  Grant  was  also  found  equal  to  this  emergency,  and  commenced  the  construction  of  a 
side  track  at  Gentilly  Ridge,  which,  when  completed,  answered  all  the  requirements. 

The  first  locomotives  were  not  provided  with  cabs  for  the  engineers  and  firemen,  who  were 
thus  exposed  to  all  the  variations  of  weather.  The  smokestacks  were  straight,  and  not  supplied 
with  spark  arresters,  and  cinders  and  sparks  flew  into  the  cars  so  that  accidents  in  which  the 
clothing  of  the  passengers  took  fire  were  frequent.  The  adoption  of  the  funnel-shaped  stack 
and  other  improvements  obviated  this  danger. 

It  was  the  original  intention  of  the  company  to  build  a  solid  pier  of  earth,  shells  and  brick 
protected  by  wooden  fascines,  out  into  the  lake  ;  and  they  did,  indeed,  erect  about  five  hundred 
feet  of  it,  which  yet  stands  as  firm  as  a  rock.  This  work  was  covered  with  an  arched  roof, 
high  enough  to  allow  trains  to  pass  underneath  ;  but  at  the  suggestion  of  the  superintendent, 
after  the  first  five  hundred  feet  had  been  built,  the  design  was  abandoned  and  a  wharf  was  built, 
which  was  several  times  washed  away  by  storms  and  destroyed  by  fire.  The  Louisville 
&  Nashville  Railroad,  on  acquiring  this  road  by  purchase,  have  since  rebuilt  the  wharf. 

The  iron  rails  used  on  this  road  were  originally  nothing  but  flat  bars  of  iron  perforated  at 
short  intervening  distances,  with  drilled  holes,  to  allow  spikes  or  screws  to  be  driven  into 
wooden  sills,  which  were  bolted  on  top  of  the  cross  ties.  These  flat  iron  rails  were  subsequently 
superseded  by  the  T  rail  (iron),  similar  in  shape  to  the  steel  rails  of  modern  railways. 

The  New  Orleans  &  Nashville  Railroad  was  commenced  in  ia35.  The  road  was  graded  as 
far  as  Bayou  LaBranche  and  was  ready  for  the  superstructure  when  the  company  failed.  It 
extended  out  Canal  street  in  a  bee  line  to  the  lake  shore,  which  it  first  touched  between  Bayou 
Labarre  and  Lorriet,  about  five  miles  west  of  West  End.  The  remains  of  the  roadbed  can 
still  be  found  all  along  the  lake  shore  as  far  as  Bayou  La  Branche,  whilst  the  piling  of  a  larger 
pier,  extending  out  into  the  lake  for  the  distance  of  fully  ha'.f  a  mile,  at  what  is  still  known  as 
Prairie  Cottage,  can  be  seen  distinctly,  and  proves  a  source  of  danger  to  vessels  plying  in  the 
waters  of  Lake  Pontchartrain.  Prairie  Cottage  was  intended  to  be  a  watering  place,  and  had 
the  road  been  completed  would  doubtless  have  proven  to  be  as  popular  a  resort  as  West  End 
and  Spanish  Fort  have  since  become.    It  was  located  about  midway  between  Long  Point  and 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  29 

Bayou  Lorriet,  and  is  decidedly  the  best  place  for  a  resort  that  could  be  found  west  of  the  New 
Canal,  the  ground  being  higher  and  the  beach  a  very  good  one  indeed  for  bathing  purposes. 

The  roadbed  was  constructed  in  a  most  substantial  manner,  and  to  this  alone  can  be  attri- 
buted the  fact  that  much  of  the  old  roadbed  still  remains,  despite  the  washings  over  it  of  the 
lake.  First,  a  layer  of  flatboat  gunwales  was  placed,  and  on  these  flatboat  planks  were  laid. 
Clam  shells  and  clay  formed  the  roadbed  on  which  the  cross-ties  were  placed,  and  on  top  of 
these  were  laid  the  sUls  on  which  the  flat  iron  rails  were  to  be  spiked. 

The  piling  of  the  bridges  across  Bayous  Tchoupitoulas,  Indian  and  Labarre  still  stands  firmly 
in  the  channels  of  these  water  courses,  and  the  planking  of  the  old  roadbed  is  frequently 
used  by  hunters  and  fishermen  in  the  marshes  for  fuel. 

WTien  the  New  Orleans  &  Nashville  Company,  the  capital  stock  of  which  was  $10,000,000, 
failed,  the  six  miles  of  completed  road  was  sold  to  Martin  Gordon  and  Laurent  Millaudon,  who 
afterwards  used  the  iron  to  construct  the  old  Mexican  Gulf  Railroad  to  Proctoi'ville. 

The  Mexican  Gulf  Railroad,  the  route  of  which  was  the  same  as  the  present  Shell  Beach 
Railroad,  was  completed  in  1838  or  1839,  and  Mr.  F.  Garcia  was  the  first  President.  The  capital 
stock  was  $2,000,000,  and  when  the  road  was  first  completed  it  was  well  patronized.  Several 
railroads  were  in  contemplation  during  the  early  days  of  raUroads.  One  was  designed  to  run 
out  to  Spanish  Fort  alongside  of  the  Bayou  St.  John,  but  the  Pontchartrain  Company  had  the 
exclusive  right  of  way  from  New  Orleans  to  Lake  Pontchartrain  in  Orleans  parish,  and  they 
enjoined  the  Bayou  St.  John  Company.  Subsequently  the  Carrollton  Railroad  was  built,  and 
then  a  branch  road  from  Carrollton,  in  Jefferson  parish,  to  the  lake  at  West  End,  then  called 
Jefferson  Lake  End. 

Prior  to  the  building  of  railroads  the  popular  route  from  New  Orleans  to  "Washington  over- 
land, was  a3  follows  :  From  New  Orleans  to  Mobile,  via  the  lake  and  Mississippi  Sound,  by 
schooner.  Thence  by  a  small  steam  ferryboat  to  Blakely,  where  the  stage  coach  was  met,  and 
travelers  then  proceeded  on  to  the  East. 

PRESENT  RAILROAD   LINES  AND  CONNECTIONS. 

New  Orleans  was  one  of  the  last  cities  in  the  Union,  east  of  the  Mississippi,  to  be  brought  into 
communication  with  the  railroad  system  of  the  rest  of  the  country,  and  it  was  but  a  very  few  years 
before  the  war  that  the  New  Orleans,  Jackson  &  Great  Northern  Railroad,  now  the  Chicago, 
St.  Louis  &  New  Orleans  connected  it  with  Columbus,  Ky.,  whence  a  boat  carried  passengers  to 
Cairo,  Ills.,  connecting  there  with  the  Illinois  Central  Railroad.  Even  at  the  end  of  the  war, 
New  Orleans  had  but  one  trunk  line.  Within  the  past  few  years,  however,  five  new  roads 
have  been  completed,  which  place  it  in  an  almost  air-line  communication  with  all  the  leading 
cities  of  the  country. 

Its  railroad  connections  now  are  the  Louisville  &  Nashville,  running  to  Mobile,  which  gives 
it  connection  with  all  of  Florida,  as  well  as  the  Southern  and  Eastern  States. 

The  Cincinnati,  Newi  Orleans  &  Texas,  or  New  Orleans  &  Northwestern,  an  almost  direct 
line  to  Cincinnati  via  Meridian,  Birmingham  and  Chattanooga. 

The  Chicago,  St.  Louis  &  New  Orleans,  or  as  it  is  familiarly  called,  "  the  big  J,"  which  con- 
nects with  the  Illinois  Central  at  Cairo,  and  gives  a  line  to  St.  Louis  and  Chicago. 

The  Louisville,  New  Orleans  &  Texas  Pacific,  running  parallel  to  the  river  in  an  almost 
direct  line  to  Memphis. 

West  of  the  river— The  Texas  &  Pacific,  running  alongside  the  Mississippi  and  Red  River  to 
Shreveport,  and  there  connecting  with  the  Texas  system  of  the  Texas  &  Pacific. 

The  Southern  Pacific,  running  direct  to  San  Francisco  via  Houston,  San  Antonio  and  El 
Paso. 

The  trip  to  New  Orleans  by  each  of  these  lines  has  special  features  of  interest  to  pas- 
sengers. 


30  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Coming  by  the  Louisville  &  Nashville,  you  skirt  the  beautiful  Mississippi  Sound  for  a  hun- 
dred odd  miles.  In  the  distance  can  be  seen  the  islands  of  the  Southern  seas,  while  frinering  the 
shores  is  a  constant  succession  of  watering  places  into  which  New  Orleans  pours  itself  in 
summer  time.  Pascagoula,  Scranton,  Ocean  Springs,  Biloxi,  Camp  Grounds,  Mississippi,  Pass 
Christian,  Bay  St.  Louis,  Waverley  follow  each  other  in  rapid  succession.  Here  are  to  be  seen 
elegant  seaside  villas,  gardens  rich  in  foliage,  orchards  in  which  the  orange  and  other  tropical 
fruits  predominate,  while  in  the  background  rise  the  mighty  pines  of  a  virgin  forest  extending  a 
hundred  mUes  into  the  interior.  As  you  get  nearer  New  Orleans  and  pass  the  Pearl  river,  you 
reach  a  region  of  sea  marsh  cut  up  by  myriads  of  bayous  and  lakes,  which  are  the  favorite 
hunting  and  fishing  grounds  of  the  South.  You  can  see  the  fish  in  the  streams  as  the  cars  flash 
by,  and  the  dull  winking  eye  of  lazy  alligators :  or  the  roar  of  the  train  may  frighten  from  some 
lagoon  where  they  were  feeding  a  flock  of  ducks  ovpoules  d'eaiix.  Houses  are  miles  and  miles 
apart.  Here  and  there  the  few  there  are  for  the  accommodation  of  the  sportsmen  from  the  city 
will  recall  Venice,  for  they  are  perched  high  above  the  waters,  on  long  stilts.  You  cross  the 
beautiful  Pearl  river  which  separates  the  two  States  of  Louisiana  and  Mississippi,  the  Rigolets, 
and  then  dash  into  New  Orleans  by  way  of  Elysian  Fields  street,  and  thence  along  the  Levee] 
where  you  can  see  the  whole  commerce  of  the  city,  the  French  Market,  the  Mint,  the  Cathedral 
and  Jackson  Square,  the  train  landing  you  at  the  foot  of  the  great  boulevard  of  New  Orleans, 
Canal  street. 

If  you  come  by  the  New  Orleans  &  Northeastern,  you  run  through  a  portion  of  Mississippi 
thinly  settled  but  wonderfully  beautiful,  a  rolling  country  of  trees,  forests  and  crystal  streams, 
where  deer  and  bear  are  still  to  be  found,  and  where  vdld  turkeys  and  sueh  game  are  abundant. 
When  finally  you  reach  Lake  Pontchartrain,  you  are  treated  to  a  most  extraordinary  trip  on 
the  water,  for  you  cross  over  the  lake  on  the  longest  bridge  in  the  world,  with  its  approaches 
being  over  16  miles  in  length.  When  you  reach  the  middle  of  the  bridge  and  see  the  land 
dimly  visible  in  the  distance,  you  cannot  but  feel  as  if  you  were  at  sea.  while  the  strong  but 
pleasant  lake  breeze  pours  through  the  cars,  and  the  red-sailed  Italian  luggers  sail  alongside 
the  train. 

By  the  Jackson  route  you  skirt  the  southern  shores  of  Lake  Pontchartrain  and  come  into 
the  city  over  one  of  the  worst  prairies  iremUardes  that  have  ever  defied  an  engineer,  the  soil  a 
perfect  quicksand,  which  sinks  under  any  weight.  Thousands  of  dollars  and  millions  of  cubic 
feet  of  earth  and  lumber  have  been  expended  to  give  the  road  a  solid  foundation,  which  has  only 
just  been  accomplished.  As  it  is,  you  pass  through  the  dreariest  and  most  dismal  swamp  it  is 
possible  to  see,  the  track  of  the  old  Bonnet  Cave  crevasse. 

By  the  Mississippi  Valley  route  you  run  alongside  of  the  river,  striking  Vicksburg,  Baton 
Rouge,  and  all  the  river  towns.  As  you  approach  the  city,  you  traverse  the  finest  sugar  planta- 
tions of  the  State,  run  close  by  the  plantation  quarters  :  by  the  immense  sugar  houses  looking 
with  their  big  bagasse  chimneys  like  some  feudal  castle;  by  the  palatial  residences  of  the 
planters,  built  in  the  old  "  flush  times  "  of  Louisiana  ;  by  acres  on  acres  of  cane,  the  purple 
sticks  and  dark-green  leaves  making  a  handsome  contrast ;  by  rice  fields  and  orange  orchards. 
The  country  is  thickly,  densely  populated,  and  while  towns  may  be  few,  or  rather  none  of  any 
importance  south  of  Baton  Rouge,  you  will  find  the  country  covered  with  houses,  and  each 
plantation  looking  like  a  village. 

The  Texas  Pacific  will  bring  you  through  the  cotton  country  along  Red  River,  through  long 
pine  forests,  over  the  turbulent,  boiling  Atchaf alaya,  and  through  a  series  of  fine  plantations ;  and 
thence  across  the  Mississippi  in  a  ferry  to  New  Orleans. 

The  Louisiana  &  Texas,  the  Southern  Pacific  route,  wUl  bring  you  first  over  the  prairies  of 
Calcasieu,  with  their  flocks  of  cattle  ;  and  thence  along  the  Teche— the  beautiful,  poetic,  romantic 
Teche— the  loveliest  stream  in  Louisiana,  with  its  mossy  rolling  banks,  the  giant  live  oaks 
■watering  their  branches  in  it,  and  the  plantation  houses  hidden  in  groves  of  trees. 

By  whichever  route  you  come,  you  cannot  fail  to  get  a  view  of  truly  representative  scenery. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  31 

and  the  scenery  of  each  road  is  absolutely  different— one  gives  you  the  sea,  another  the  swamp, 
another  the  sugar  plantations,  another  the  weirdest,  wildest  forest  seen  east  of  the  Mississippi 
River. 

The  following  is  the  location  of  the  ticket  offices  and  the  passenger  and  freight  depots  of  the 
various  roads  centering  at  New  Orleans,  and  the  means  of  reaching  them : 

Star  and  Crescent  Route— Cincinnati,  New  Orleans  &  Texas  Railroad,  or,  New  Orleans  & 
Northeastern.  Ticket  office,  34  St.  Charles  street,  opposite  the  St.  Charles  Hotel.  Depots, 
passenger  and  freight,  at  tho  old  Natchez  Cotton  Press,  comer  of  Press  and  Decatur  streets,  in 
the  Third  district,  two  miles  from  Canal  street.  Depot  reached  by  the  Rampart  &  Dauphine, 
and  Barracks  &  Levee  lines  of  street  cars. 

Great  Jackson  Route — Chicago,  St.  Louis,  &  New  Orleans  RaUroad.  Ticket  office,  on  Canal 
street,  corner  of  Carondelet,  under  the  Pickwick  Club.  Passenger  depot,  corner  of  Magnolia 
and  Clio  streets,  about  a  mile  and  three  quarters  from  Canal  street,  uptown.  Depot  can  be 
reached  by  the  Clio,  Erato,  Royal  and  Bourbon  street  cars. 

Louisville  &  Nashville  Railroad.  Ticket  office,  corner  of  St.  Charles  and  Common,  under  St. 
Charles  Hotel.  Passenger  depot,  foot  of  Canal.  Can  be  reached  by  the  Coliseum  &  Upper 
Magazine,  Canal  &  Claiborne,  Canal  &  Common  and  Tchoupitoulas  &  New  Levee  cars.  Freight 
depot  on  the  river,  at  the  foot  of  Girod  street. 

Star  and  Crescent  Route,  Southern  Pacific— Morgan's  Louisiana  &  Texas.  Ticket  Office, 
comer  of  Natchez  and  Magazine.  Passenger  depot  in  Algiers ;  depot  for  New  Orleans,  foot  of 
Elysian  Fields  street,  whence  passengers  are  carried  by  ferry  to  the  depot  on  the  opposite  side 
of  the  river.  Ferry  landing  reached  by  Clio,  Erato,  Royal  &  Bourbon,  and  by  Levee  & 
Barracks  cars.    Freight  depot,  foot  of  Julia  street. 

Texas  &  Pacific  Railway.  Ticket  offices,  47  St.  Charles  street,  under  the  St  Charles  Hotel. 
Depots,  foot  of  Terpsichore  street,  whence  passengers  are  ferried  to  the  opposite  side  of  the 
river  to  reach  the  cars. 

New  Orleans,  Louisiana  &  Texas  Pacific.  Ticket  office,  61  St.  Charles.  Passenger  and 
freight  depots  on  Poydras  and  Magnolia,  reached  by  the  Canal  &  Common,  and  Poydras  & 
Girod  cars. 

Beside  these  trunk  lines.  New  Orleans  possesses  a  number  of  local  steam  lines  connecting  it 
with  suburban,  seaside  and  other  resorts. 

The  Shell  Beach,  or  Mississippi  River,  Terre  aux  Bceufs  &  Lake  Borgne  Railroad  runs 
along  the  line  of  the  Mexican  Gulf  RaUroad  to  Shell  Beach,  formerly  Proctorsville,  on  Lake 
Borgne,  where  fine  fishing,  hunting  and  bathing  is  to  be  had.  The  depot  is  at  the  corner  of 
Claiborne  and  Good  Children  streets,  and  is  reached  by  the  Canal  &  Claiborne  cars.  Thence 
the  line  runs  along  the  Gentilly  ridge,  and  through  a  number  of  sugar  plantations  in  St.  Bernard 
parish,  and  out  on  the  Terre  aux  Boeufs  ridge  to  Shell  Beach.  Along  the  Terre  aux  Boeuf  s  is  to  be 
seen  the  colony  of  Islingues,  or  descendants  of  the  Canary  Islanders,  who  settled  in  Louisiana 
over  a  century  ago.  This  colony,  nearly  purely  Spanish,  still  preserve  all  the  names,  habits, 
language  and  characteristics  of  their  Castilian  ancestors.  In  the  immediate  neighborhood  of 
Shell  Beach  is  the  singular  Malay  colony  of  St.  Malo,  a  settlement  composed  almost  without 
exception  of  Malays,  speaking  only  the  Tamil  and  Spanish  languages,  living  in  a  queer  little 
village,  perched  on  stilts  over  the  water,  following  the  habits  and  customs  of  the  Philippine 
Islands,  their  main  diet,  fish,  generally  eaten  raw,  their  laws  of  their  own  make,  and  their 
supreme  control  vested  in  a  chief,  the  most  ancient  of  the  inhabitants. 

The  Pontchartrain  Railroad,  by  which  all  visitors  to  New  Orleans  from  the  North,  formerly 
reached  the  city,  coming  by  way  of  boat  from  Mobile,  and  thence  by  this  line  to  the  city,  is  now 
the  property  of  the  Louisville  &  Nashville  railroad.  The  cars  start  either  from  the  depot  of  the 
latter  road  at  the  foot  of  Canal  street,  or  from  the  old  Pontchartrain  depot,  at  the  foot  of 
Elysian  Fields  street,  to  be  reached  by  the  Clio,  Erato,  Royal  &  Bourbon  streets  cars.  The 
road  runs  along  the  levee  and  thence  out  Elysian  Fields  street,  due  north  in  a  straight  line  over 


32  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

the  swamps  to  Mandeville,  famous  in  former  years  as  the  old  Lake  End.  Here  Boudro, 
Miguel,  and  other  famous  restaurateurs  flourished  in  the  olden  days,  and  here  New  Orleans 
came  to  eat  its  fish  and  game  dinners.  Here,  too,  in  the  little  straggling  village,  which  rises  in 
the  midst  of  the  marsh  Milneburg,  named  in  honor  of  the  philanthropists  who  gave  all  these 
swamp  lands  in  charity,  was  born  that  remarkable  woman  who  electrified  the  world  afterwards 
as  Adah  Isaacs  Menken.  Milneburg,  or  "the  Old  Lake  "  as  it  is  called,  has  suffered  somewhat 
from  the  establishment  of  New  Lake  resorts,  such  as  Spanish  Fort  and  West  End,  but  it  still 
boasts  of  several  delightful  hotels  and  restaurants,  with  elegantly  shaded  and  well  laid-out 
walks ;  a  long  wharf  projects  into  the  deep  water  of  the  lake,  at  which  steam-vessels  plying 
with  Mobile,  Pensacola  and  points  on  the  Mississippi  Sound,  land.  From  here,  also,  steamers 
run  regularly  to  Mandeville,  Louisburg,  Covington,  and  other  watering  places  lying  on  the 
north  side  of  Lake  Pontchartrain,  and  distant  from  the  wharf  some  twenty  or  thirty  miles. 

The  depot  of  the  New  Orleans  &  Spanish  Fort  Railroad,  also  a  steam  line,  is  located  on  the 
corner  of  Canal  and  Basin  streets.  Thence,  the  cars  run  out  Bienville  street,  through  the 
Lower  City  Park,  and  along  the  Orleans  Canal  to  Lake  Pontchartrain,  and  for  about  a  mile  along 
the  lake  to  Spanish  Fort,  formerly  Fort  St.  John,  lying  at  the  mouth  of  Bayou  St.  John,  and 
erected  over  a  century  ago  by  the  Spanish  Governor,  Baron  Carondelet,  for  the  purpose  of  pre- 
ventingtbe  invasion  of  New  Orleans.  The  fortifications  still  remain,  built  in  the  Spanish  style, 
and  as  massive  as  ever,  and  some  of  the  long  Spanish  cannon  then  in  use  ai'e  preserved  here; 
but  the  whole  place  has  been  converted  from  its  military  use  into  a  pleasure  resort.  The  old 
building  inside  the  fort  has  become  a  restaurant  and  hotel ;  the  old  orchard  is  now  laid  off  in 
mounds  and  shell  walks,  with  seats  for  visitors  where  they  can  listen  to  the  music,  A  large 
casino  has  been  erected,  and  a  theatre  built  directly  over  the  water  in  which  dramatic  and 
operatic  performances  are  given.  Besides  these  are  shooting  galleries,  bath  houses,  and  every- 
thing else  to  make  the  place  agreeable.  Spanish  Fort  may  also  be  reached  via  the  shell  road 
running  along  Bayou  St.  John  from  Esplanade  street. 

The  cars  of  the  New  Orleans,  Cemeteries  &  Lake  Eailroad  start  from  the  comer  of  Canal 
and  Dauphine,  running  straight  out  Canal  street  on  the  same  track  as  the  Canal  street  horse- 
cars  to  the  cemeteries  ;  and  thence  along  the  new  canal  to  West  End  on  Lake  Pontchartrain. 
On  the  opposite  side  of  the  canal  is  the  famous  Shell  road,  famous  thirty  years  ago  for  the 
display  of  fast  horses.  The  canal  itself  is  a  favorite  rowing  place  for  the  various  rowing  clubs, 
a  number  of  whom  have  their  club-houses  located  directly  on  it.  At  West  End  most  of  the 
i-owing  regattas  are  held,  the  crews  rowing  to  Spanish  Fort  and  back  ;  here  also  is  the  magnifi- 
cent house  of  the  Southern  Yacht  Club,  one  of  the  finest  in  the  country,  and  from  which  all 
sailing  matches  take  place.  From  the  terminus  of  the  railroad  extends  westward  for  about  a 
mile  the  revetment  or  protection  levee  to  prevent  the  overflow  of  New  Orleans  from  the  waters 
of  the  lake,  which  sometimes  become  very  turbulent  and  high,  being  driven  up  by  the  winds 
from  the  south  and  east,  and  frequently  flooding  the  back  portions  of  the  city.  This  levee  is 
laid  out  in  an  elegant  esplanade,  with  the  choicest  flowers  and  shrubs,  statues,  mazes,  and 
walks  and  drives.  Innumerable  hotels  and  restaurants  face  it,  and  there  are,  in  addition,  the 
Lake  Hotel,  an  opera  house  and  concert  saloon,  at  which  dramatic  performances  are  given  in 
the  summer. 

West  End  is  also  reached  by  the  Shell  road,  from  Canal  street,  and  Washington  and 
CarroUton  avenues. 

On  all  these  three  lake  lines,  the  Pontchartrain,  Spanish  Fort,  and  West  End  railroads,  the 
cars  leave  both  termini,  from  every  ten  minutes  to  every  hour  according  to  the  season  and 
time  of  day.  The  fare  is  15  cents  to  the  lake  and  return,  the  distance  being  from  6  to  8  miles, 
and  requiring  from  20  to  40  minutes  to  make  it. 

The  CarroUton  railroad,  formerly  a  regular  steam  line,  is  now  run  with  horses  from  Canal 
and  Baronne  streets  to  Napoleon  avenue  and  St.  Charles,  and  thence  to  CarroUton  by 
dummies,  each  of  which  draws  a  single  ordinary  horse-car.    This  road  runs  along  Baronne  to 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  33 

Deloi'd,  thence  to  St.  Charles  avenue,  and  thence  along  that  street,  which  is  semicircular,  to 
OarroUton.  It  runs  by  way  of  the  prettiest  avenue  in  Kew  Orleans,  the  palatial  residences  on 
the  avenue,  in  their  gardens  and  parks  exceeding  anything  to  be  found  in  this  country  in  the 
extent  of  their  grounds  and  the  variety  of  their  architecture.  The  line  runs  by  the  upper  end 
of  the  Exposition  Park  and  terminates  at  the  CarroUton  Garden,  directly  on  the  river,  a  favorite 
evening  resort  and  whence  a  beautiful  view  of  the  river  can  be  obtained. 

On  the  opposite  side  of  the  river,  in  what  is  known  as  the  Fifth  district,  or  Algiers,  is  the 
Algiers  &  Gretna  street  railroad,  also  a  dummy  line.  The  road  begins  immediately  on  the 
river  front  at  a  point  in  Gretna  nearly  opposite  the  Jackson  street  or  Fourth  district  levee,  and 
runs  through  various  water  levees  and  settlements  to  the  depot  of  the  First  district  or  Canal 
street  ferry. 

STKEET    CARS. 

In  the  matter  of  street  cars,  New  Orleans  is  as  bountifully  provided  as  any  city  in  the  Union, 
there  being  over  twenty  different  lines  with  over  150  miles  of  track.  It  has  grown  the  custom  to 
take  the  cars  on  every  possible  occasion,  and  an  Orleanist  seldom  walks  if  there  is  a  hcrse  car  in 
sight.  The  cars  are  small,  capable  of  holding  twenty  conveniently,  aud  drawn  by  one  horse  or 
generally  by  a  mule,  and  are  of  what  is  known  as  the  bobtail  variety,  being  without  conductors. 
The  drivers  are  required  to  make  change  but  collectors  collect  fares  at  most  of  the  depots.  The 
time  is  rather  slow,  not  averaging  over  five  and  a  half  miles  an  hour.  The  universal  price  of 
travel  is  5  cents,  no  matter  what  distance  you  go;  and  if  it  is  two  squares  or  six  miles,  for  some 
of  the  roads  are  of  that  length,  the  fare  is  the  same.  There  are  no  tickets  sold— save  on  the 
CarroUton  cars— and  no  transfers  made,  not  even  between  two  branches  of  the  same  line. 
Passengers  on  the  Napoleon  avenue  branch  of  the  CarroUton  cars,  however,  need  not  pay  on 
the  main  line  ;  and  passengers  by  the  Barracks  &  Levee,  and  Rampart  &  Dauphine  lines  can 
travel  from  their  terminus  on  Poland  street  via  the  Barracks  &  Slaughterhouse  road,  to  the 
slaughterhouse  below  the  city,  in  St.  Bernard  parish,  without  paying  extra  fare. 

The  following  are  the  different  railroad  companies  and  their  respective  lines  : 

Canal  &  Claiborne  line— office,  6  Camp  street— operates  the  following  lines  : 

Canal  &,  Claiborne  Line.— The  cars  of  this  line  start  at  the  foot  of  Canal  street  near  the 
Levee,  and  go  out  Canal  to  Claiborne,  thence  out  Claiborne  to  Elysian  Fields,  thence  by  Elysian 
Fields  to  Urquhart  street,  thence  by  Urquhart  to  the  station  on  Lafayette  avenue.  In  returning, 
the  cars  pass  from  Lafayette  avenue  into  Good  ChUdren,  thence  to  Elysian  Fields  back  to 
Claiborne,  and  through  Claiborne  by  a  double  track  back  to  the  starting  point  on  Canal  street. 

Cars  of  this  line  marked  Canal  &  Common  streets,  start  from  the  same  point  near  the 
Levee,  thence  go  cut  Canal  street  to  Rampart,  through  Rampart  to  Common,  out  Common  to 
the  station  between  Tonti  and  Rocheblave  streets.  On  returning,  the  cars  pass  by  a  paraUel 
double  track  down  Common  to  Basin,  out  Basin  to  Canal,  and  thence  to  the  starting  point. 

The  Canal  &  Claiborne  street  cars  leave  the  starting  point  at  the  head  of  Canal  street 
every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.  m.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  untU  midnight.  The  cars  are 
yellow  and  carry  at  night  a  red  light. 

The  Canal  &  Common  street  cars  leave  their  starting  point  at  the  head  of  Canal  street 
every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.  m.,  and  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight.  The  cars  are 
yellow  with  a  white  light  at  night. 

The  GrROD  &  Poydras  Line  starts  from  the  head  of  Common  street,  going  out  Front,  Girod, 
and  Claiborne  to  Common,  where  they  run  along  the  same  track  as  the  Common  street  cars  to 
the  Rocheblave  street  station.  Returning,  they  come  by  way  of  Common  to  Claiborne,  thence 
to  Perdido,  thence  to  Poydras,  and  out  Poydras  to  Fulton  and  their  starting  point  at  the  head 
of  Common  street.  The  cars  run  every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.  m.,  and  from  that  time  every 
fifteen  minutes  untU  midnight.    They  are  yellow  and  carry  a  green  light  at  night. 

The  Canal  and  Claiborne  lines  run  along  some  of  the  widest  and  prettiest  avenues  in  the 


34  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

city.  On  Claiborne  street  it  runs  in  the  centre  of  four  rows  of  large  and  ancient  trees,  which 
give  the  street  a  neat  park -like  appearance,  and  a  drive  here  is  almost  like  a  ride  in  the  country. 
The  cars  pass  the  St.  Louis  Cemetery,  and  the  St.  Bernard  and  Delamore  markets.  At  the 
corner  of  Claiborne  and  Elysian  Fields  is  the  Claiborne  street  station  of  the  Louisville  &  Nash- 
ville and  Poutchartrciin  Railroads,  where  passengers  can  take  the  cars  of  these  lines  without 
going  to  the  head  of  Canal  street.  At  Good  Children  street  is  the  depot  of  the  Mississippi  River, 
Terre  aux  Boeufs  &  Lake  Borgne  or  Shell  Beach  Railroad. 

The  Common  street  line  runs  in  front  of  the  Charity  Hospital,  Hotel  Dieu,  and  St.  Joseph's 
Church. 

The  Girod  and  Poydras  line  is  the  shortest  road  to  the  depot  of  the  Mississippi  Valley,  or 
Louisville,  New  Orleans  &  Texas  Pacific  Railroad. 

The  office  of  the  Crescent  City  Eailroad  Company  is  at  the  corner  of  Canal  and  Well  streets. 
It  operates  the  following  lines : 

The  Tchoxjpitoulas  and  Levee  Line.— The  Tchoupitoulas  street  cars  start  from  Canal 
street,  near  Camp,  thence  up  Tchoupitoulas  street  to  Louisiana  avenue.  Return  by  Tchoupi- 
toulas street  (double  track)  to  Felicity  road,  thence  down  Peters  street  to  Canal  to  starting 
point. 

By  this  line  the  visitor  can  see  the  ice  manufactory  and  the  grain  elevator.  By  a  change  of 
cars  at  Louisiana  avenue  visitors  can  go  to  the  Upper  City,  or  Exposition  Park,  Sixth  district, 
and  return  by  the  same  route.  At  Louisiana  avenue  and  Napoleon  avenue,  visitors  can  take 
cars  to  return  to  the  city  by  Carrollton  railroad  cars. 

The  line  runs  very  near  the  river  front,  and  enables  one  to  get  a  very  good  view  of  the 
shipping  and  wharves  of  New  Orleans,  the  warehouses,  cotton  presses,  etc.  Cars  leave  the 
starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  9  p.  ai.,  then  every  15  minutes  until  midnight ;  yellow  cars; 
at  night,  green  light. 

Chippewa  &  Annunciation  Street  Line.— The  cars  of  this  line  start  on  the  river  side  of 
the  Clay  Statue,  between  Camp  and  Magazine  streets,  thence  out  Tchoupitoulas  to  the  junction 
of  Delord  and  Annunciation,  thence  by  Annunciation  street  and  to  the  right  around  Annuncia- 
tion square  b:ck  into  Annunciation  street,  an  1  out  Annunciation  street  to  the  station  on 
Louisiana  avenue. 

In  returning,  the  cars  enter  Chippewa,  and  follow  that  street  to  Annunciation  square,  thence 
around  that  square  to  Annunciation  street,  and  down  that  street  to  Delord,  thence  by  Delord  to 
Peters  street,  and  via  Peters  street  to  Canal  and  back  to  the  starting  point.  This  line,  like  the 
Tchoupitoulas  &  Levee,  connects  with  the  cars  running  along  Tchoupitoulas  to  the  Upper 
City  or  Exposition  Park.  The  Annunciation  cars  run  by  Maginnis'  cotton  mills,  the  old  St. 
Mary  market,  Annunciation  square,  the  water  works,  and  through  the  district  devoted  to  the 
compressing  of  cotton. 

On  Annunciation  street  are  to  be  seen  very  many  handsome  residences,  including  a  number 
of  old  plantation  houses,  around  which  ttie  city  has  grown  up,  and  the  first  residences  built  by 
the  Americans  settling  in  New  Orleans,  as  the  road  traverses  the  old  faubourgs,  Ste.  Marie  and 
Annonclation,  the  original  American  quarters  of  the  city. 

The  cars  start  every  five  minutes  until  9p.m.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight.  Red 
cars  ;  at  night,  red  li?ht. 

The  Canal,  Coliseum  &  Upper  Magazlne,  generally  known  as  "the  snake  line,"  from  its 
frequent  turnings  and  twistings.  The  cars  start  from  the  head  of  Canal  street,  near  the 
depot  of  the  Louisville  &  Nashville  Railroad,  thence  to  Carondelet,  and  up  that  street  to 
Clio,  in  Clio  to  Coliseum,  up  Coliseum  along  Coliseum  place  to  Felicity,  in  Felicity  to 
Chestnut,  up  Chestnut  to  Louisiana  avenue,  thence  to  Magazine  and  up  Magazine  to  the 
Upper  City  or  Exposition  Park.  It  returns  by  way  of  Magazine  to  Louisiana  avenue,  thence 
t.)  Camp,  thence  to  Calliope,  thence  to  St.  Charles,  do-^-n  St.  Charles  to  Canal,  and  by  Canal  to 
the  starting  point. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


35 


Green  cars  ;  at  night,  green  light.  Cars  leave  the  starting  point  every  five  minutes  unti'.  nine 
P.M.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight;  after  midnight,  every  hour  until  five  a.m., 
when  the  morning  ears  begin  to  run. 

The  line  traverses  one  of  the  prettiest  residence  quarters  of  the  city,  in  the  Fourth  and  Sixth 
districts,  and  also  passes  the  Jefi'erson  market. 

The  New  Orleans,  City,  &  Lake  Railroad,  Office,  102  Canal  street,  operates  the  folio  wing  lines: 

Canal  Street  Steam  Railw at.— Starts  from  corner  Canal  and  Carondelet  to  Cemeteries  and 
West  End  ;  returns  by  same  route. 

Canal  Stueet  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  out  Canal  to  Cemeteries.  Returns  by  same 
route.  Green  cars;  at  night,  white  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  seven  minutes  for  btation  on 
White  street,  and  for  end  of  route  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight.  Cars  marked  to 
"  station  only  "  go  only  to  White  street  depot. 

Esplanade  Street  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  out  Canal,  Rampart,  Esplanade  to 
Louisiana  Jockey  Club  Racecourse.  Returns  by  same  route.  Yellow  cars  ;  at  night,  red  light. 
Leaves  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.m.,  then  every  thirty  minutes  until  midnight; 
after  midnight,  every  hour  until  five  a.m. 

Esplanade  &  French  Market  LinEj^— Starts  from  Custom  House,  and  goes  by  Canal, 
Peters  and  Esplanade,  to  Fair  Grounds  and  Bayou  Bridge.  Returns  by  the  same  route.  Yellow 
cars;  at  night,  red  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  eight  minutes  until  ten  p.m.,  then  every 
thirty  minutes  until  midnight. 

Levce  &  Barracks  Line.— Starts  from  Customhouse,  goes  by  Peters,  Lafayette  avenue, 
Chartres,  and  Poland  street  to  station  (here  take  Barracks  cars  for  Barracks  and  Slaughter- 
house, without  extra  fare)  Returns  by  Poland,  Royal,  Lafayette  avenue,  Peters  and  Canal. 
Green  cars;  at  night  red  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  5  minutes  until  10  p.  m.,  then  every  30 
minutes  until  midnight. 

Magazine  Street  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  goes  up  Camp  and  Magazine  to  L^pper 
City  Park.  Returns  by  Magazine  and  Canal.  Green  cars,  at  night  white  light.  Leaves  starting 
point  every  2  minutes  from  5  a.  m.  to  9  a.  m.  ;  every  3  minutes  from  9  a.  m.  to  3  p.  m.  ;  every 
2  minutes  from  3  p.  m.  to  7  p.  m.,  and  every  5  minutes  from  7  p.  m.  to  midnight ;  after  midnight, 
every  hour  until  5  a.  m. 

Rampart  &  Datjphine  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  goes  by  Canal,  Rampart,  Esplanade, 
Dauphine  and  Poland  to  station  (here  take  Barracks  cars  for  I-arracks  and  Slaughterhouse, 
without  extra  fare).  Returns  by  Rampart  and  Canal.  Red  cars,  at  night  white  light.  Leaves 
starting  point  every  5  minutes  until  10  p.  m.,  then  every  15  minutes  until  midnight ;  after  mid- 
night, every  hour  until  5  a.  m. 

Barracks  &  Slaughterhouse  Line. — Starts  from  station  on  Rampart,  corner  of  Poland 
street,  goes  by  Poland,  Dauphine,  Delery  and  Peters  to  Slaughterhouse.  Returns  by  Peters, 
Flood,  Dauphine  and  Poland.  Red  cars,  at  night  white  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  15  min- 
utes until  7p.  m  ,  then  every  30  minutes  until  midnight 

Camp  &  Prttania  Line.-  Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  up  Camp  and  Prytania  to  Upper  City  or 
Exposition  Park.  Returns  by  Prytania,  Poyfarre,  ilagazine  and  Canal.  Yellow  cars;  at  night 
red  light.  Leaving  starting  point  every  5  minutes  until  10  p.  m.,  then  every  15  minutes  until  mid- 
night ;  after  midnight  every  hour  until  5  a.m. 

Canal  Street  Line.— The  horse  cars  on  the  lake  side  of  the  Clay  statue  marked  "Ridge 
Cemeteries,"  convey  passengers  out  Canal  street  to  the  Ilalf-Way  H  jjse,  a  distance  of  about 
three  and  a  half  miles.  This  Half- Way  House  is  so  called  from  being  about  one-half  way 
between  the  city  and  the  lake  end  of  the  new  canal  on  the  route  of  the  various  shell-road 
drives  which  concentrate  at  that  point,  and  is  a  famous  placo  for  rest  and  refreshm  nt. 

In  the  vicinity  of  the  Half-Way  House  are  situated  the  various  Ridge  Cemeteries,  so  called 
from  being  located  on  the  Metairie  ridge,  a  plateau  of  ground  elevated  some  six  or  eight  feet 
above  the  surrounding  swamps. 


36  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Just  beyond  the  Half-Way  House  is  the  new  Metairie  Cemetery,  laid  out  on  the  spot  of  the 
old  and  famous  Metairie  racecourse. 

These  various  cemeteries  are  beautifully  laid  out  and  embellished,  and  from  the  peculiar 
manner  in  which  interments  are  made  in  tombs  above  ground  afford  a  curious  attraction  to 
strangers.    A  double  track  on  this  line  enables  passengers  to  return,  by  ^ame  route. 

The  steam  cars  on  this  line  start  from  the  same  point  near  the  Clay  statue,  follow  the  same 
track  as  the  horse  caps  to  the  Half- Way  House  ;  then  by  a  double-track  railway  located  on  the 
east  bank  of  the  "New  Canal"  to  the  Lake  Pontchartrain,  a  distance  from  Clay  statue  of  nearly 
seven  miles.  At  the  lake  terminus  is  the  celebrated  Revetment  levee,  which  affords  a  fine  drive 
and  promenade. 

Famous  restaurants  are  located  at  this  point. 

From  the  cemeteries  a  line  called  the  Bayou  Bridge  &  Cemeteries  Line  runs  along  Metairie 
ridge  by  the  Lower  City  Park  to  Bayou  Bridge,  where  it  connects  with  the  Esplanade  street 
line. 

The  Magazine  &  Prttania  Street  Lines.— The  cars  of  these  lines  start  on  the  river  side 
of  Clay  Statue.  Both  these  lines  pass  in  common  up  Camp  street  by  a  single  track  to  the  junc- 
tion of  Prytania.  At  this  point  the  Prytania  street  cars  proceed  up  that  street  to  Exposition 
Park,  and  the  Magazine  cars  continue  up  Camp,  by  old  Camp  street  into  Magazine,  at  the  Maga- 
zine Market;  and  thus  along  Magazine  street  to  Louisiana  avenue,  in  Louisiana  avenue  to  Con- 
stance, and  via  Constance  to  the  Exposition  Park. 

In  passing  up  Camp  street  by  either  of  these  lines  there  will  be  seen  on  the  right  Lafayette 
square,  in  the  centre  of  which  is  a  statue  of  Franklui,  by  the  celebrated  sculptor  Hiram  Powers. 
Fronting  the  square,  on  Camp  street,  will  be  seen  to  the  left  the  Odd  Fellows'  hall  and  the  new 
St.  Patrick's  hall,  and  fronting  the  square,  also  on  the  upper  side,  is  Dr.  Palmer's  Presbyterian 
church.  Just  beyond  Lafayette  square,  and  to  the  left,  will  be  seen  St.  Patrick's  Catholic 
church. 

On  Prytania  street  there  are  some  of  the  handsomest  private  residences  in  New  Orleans. 

In  returning,  the  Magazine  cars  pass  entirely  down  Magazine  street  by  a  double  track  to  its 
intersection  with  Canal,  and  thence  to  the  starting  point  near  the  Clay  Statue.  In  returning  by 
the  Prytania  line  from  the  terminus  at  Toledauo  street,  the  cars  pass  down  Prytania  by  a  par- 
allel double  track  to  its  intersection  with  Camp,  and  thence  along  Camp  to  the  starting  point  at 
Clay  Statue. 

Levee  &  Barracks  Line.— The  cars  of  this  line  start  on  the  river  side  of  Clay  Statue 
opposite  the  Custom-House.  A  turn  is  made  from  Canal  into  Peters  street  around  the  Custom- 
House,  and  thence  through  Old  Levee  back  into  Peters  sti-eet,  then  along  Lafayette  avenue  or 
Enghien  street  to  Chartres,  out  Chartres  to  Poland,  and  through  Poland  to  the  station,  at  the 
corner  of  Poland  and  Love  streets.  At  this  station  a  change  is  made  into  another  car,  which 
conveys  you  to  the  slaughter-house,  located  on  the  Mississippi  river,  a  few  hundred  yards 
beyond  the  United  States  Barracks.  , 

From  the  initial  point,  opposite  the  Custom-House,  there  is  a  double  track  as  far  as  Chartres  ' 
street,  and  a  single  track  outgoing  on  Chartres  street,  and  a  single  track  incoming  on  Royal.         I 

From  the  station  up  Poland  street  down  to  the  Barracks  and  slaughter-house,  there  is  a 
double  track  nearly  all  the  way,  so  that  a  passenger  can  return  by  the  same  general  route.  In 
leaving  Canal  street  this  line  passes  in  front  of  the  Jackson  square,  which  is  a  most  beautiful 
public  garden,  and  has  in  the  centre  a  magnificent  equestrian  statue  of  Andrew  Jackson. 
Around  this  square  are  located  the  St.  Louis  Cathedral,  the  court  rooms  and  the  Pontalba 
buildings,  and  the  whole  forms  one  of  the  most  picturesque  sights  to  be  seen  in  the  Crescent 
City.  The  edifices  are  built  alter  a  quaint  old  French  style  of  architecture,  and  with  the  entire 
surroundings,  no  picture  within  the  limits  of  New  Orleans  offers  such  a  field  of  interest  and 
sight  pleasure  to  the  American  stranger. 

Just  beyond  the  Jackson  square  the  car  passes  through  the  Fi*ench  Market.        • 


GUIDE  to   NEW  ORLEANS.  '^1 

A  little  further  on  and  to  the  left,  at  the  corner  of  Esplanade  street,  is  located  the  United 
States  Mint. 

On  the  route  from  the  Poland  street  station  to  the  slaughter-house  can  be  seen,  to  the  right, 
the  convent  of  the  Ursuline  nuns,  the  oldest  religious  organization  in  Louisiana. 

In  returning  by  this  line  from  the  station  at  Poland  street,  the  cars  pass  from  Poland  into 
Royal,  thence  by  a  single  track  to  its  junction  with  Enghien  street  or  Lafayette  avenue,  thence 
to  the  corner  of  Chartres,  where  they  reach  the  parallel  double  track,  and  return  to  the  starting 
roint  on  Canal  street. 

Esplanade  &  Batou  Bridge  Line.— The  cars  of  this  line  go  out  Esplanade  to  the  Bayou 
Bridge,  a  distance  of  about  three  miles.  It  has  a  parallel  double  track,  so  that  a  passenger  can 
return  by  the  same  route. 

On  Rampart  street,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann,  wiU  be  seen  Congo  square  or  Place 
D'Armes,  and  on  the  further  side  of  this  square  is  located  the  Parish  Prison. 

Both  Rampart  and  Esplanade  are  two  of  the  widest  and  most  attractive  streets  in  New 
Orleans. 

At  a  point  near  the  Bayou  Bridge  is  a  station  leading  to  the  Fair  Grounds,  These  grounds 
are  also  used  as  the  racecourse  of  the  Louisiana  Jockey  Club. 

Just  beyond  the  Fair  Grounds  station  is  the  club-house,  which,  together  with  its  garden  and 
surroundings,  is  one  of  the  handsomest  establishments  of  the  kind  in  the  country. 

If  it  is  not  desired  to  return  by  the  same  route,  a  passenger  can  cross  the  Bayou  Bridge  and 
take  a  car  which  will  convey  him  to  the  Half-Way  House,  and  thence  by  the  Canal  street  line 
back  to  the  Clay  Statue,  or,  vice  versa,  the  same  tour  can  be  performed  by  the  Canal  street  line 
to  the  Half- Way  House,  and  thence,  via  Bayou  Bridge  and  Esplanade  street,  back  to  the  start 
ing  point. 

On  the  route  between  the  Bayou  Bridge  and  the  Half- Way  House  can  be  seen  the  City  Park, 
which  is  famous  for  its  magnificent  live  oak  trees,  and  has  been  celebrated  as  a  great  dueling 
ground  under  the  familiar  name  of  The  Oaks. 

Xew  Orleans  and  Carrollton  Railroad  Company.— Office,  17  Baronne  street.  The  following 
lines  are  operated  by  this  company: 

Carrollton  Line.— Starts  from  Baronne  and  Canal,  up  Baronne,  Delord  and  St.  Charles  to 
Carrollton.  Returns  same  route.  Green  cars;  at  night,  green  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every 
five  minutes  until  9  p.h.,  then  evex-y  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight,  then  every  hour  until 

five  A.M. 

Jackson  Street  Line.— Starts  from  Baronne  and  Canal,  up  Baronne,  Delord,  St.  Charles  and 
Jackson  to  Gretna  Ferry  Landing.  Returns  same  route.  Red  cars  ;  at  night,  red  light.  Leaves 
starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.m.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight. 

Napoleon  Avenue  Line.— Starts  from  the  head  of  Napoleon  avenue,  thence  out  Napoleon 
avenue  to  St.  Charles  avenue,  where  connects  with  Carrollton  cars,  running  either  to  Carrollton 
or  Canal  street.    No  extra  charge  is  made  for  passengers  transferred  here. 

The  Carrollton  cars  have  already  been  described  under  the  head  of  steam  lines,  it  being 
half  steam  and  half  horse,  the  cars  being  conveyed  to  the  depot  on  Napoleon  avenue  by  mules 
or  horses,  and  thence  by  steam  dummies  to  Carrollton.  The  cars  runitloug  St  Charles  avenue, 
the  Fifth  avenue  of  New  Orleans. 

The  Jackson  street  ears  run  to  the  head  of  Jackson  street,  whence  starts  the  Fourth  district 
or  Gretna  ferry,  connecting  the  city  with  the  little  town  of  Gretna,  the  capital  of  Jefferson 
parish,  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  river. 

Orleans  Railroad  CoiiPANT.— Office,  at  station,  Laharpe,  cor.  White.  The  following  lines 
are  operated  by  this  company  : 

Canal,  Du  Maine  &  Batou  St.  John  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  out  Canal,  Dauphine, 
Dumaine,  Bayou  St.  John  and  Grand  Route  St.  John  to  station,  Laharpe  street.  Returns  by 
Broad,  Ursulines  (every  fifteen  minutes  a  car  on  this  line  returns  by  St.  Peter  street),  Burgundy 


38  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

and  Canal.  Blue  cars ;  at  night  blue  light.  Leave  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until 
midnight. 

Canal,  Du  Maine  &  Fair  Ceoinds  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  out  Canal,  Dauphine, 
Dumaine  and  Broad  to  station  and  Fair  Grounds.  Returns  by  Broad,  Ursulines  (every  fifteen 
minutes  a  car  on  this  line  i  eturnsby  St  Petjr  street),  Burgundy  and  Canal.  Green  cars;  at  night 
green  light.     Leave  i-tartir.g  point  every  five  minutes  until  midnight. 

French  Market  Line —Starts  fiom  Decatur,  cor.  Dumaine,  out  Dumaine  and  Broad  to 
station  and  Fair  Grour.d.-.  Leturr.s  by  Eroad,  Ursulines  and  Decatur.  Red  cars  ;  at  night  rjd 
light.  Le.vo  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  9  p.m.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until 
midnight. 

These  cars  traverse  the  most  essentially  French  or  Creole  portion  of  the  city,  and  give  one 
the  beet  opportunity  to  sc  e  Creole  architecture,  life  and  habits.  Along  their  line  will  be  seen 
old-fashioned  adobe  and  tile  covered  roofs,  large  enclosed  courts,  and  orange  and  banana 
groves.  The  Bayou  St.  John  line  runs  along  the  margin  of  Bayou  St.  John  for  some  distance 
through  a  district  very  Arcadian  and  rustic.  The  Fair  Grounds  line  passes  by  the  old  Spanish 
cock  pit,  once  the  great  rallying  place  for  the  admirers  and  patrons  of  cock  fighting.  It  is  also 
the  short  route  to  the  Fair  Grounds  and  the  racetrack  of  the  Louisiana  Jockey  Club.  The 
French  Market  li:e  connects  the  French  with  the  old  Creole  quarter  of  the  city. 

The  St.  Charles  Street  Railway  Company— otfice,  corner  of  Carondelet  and  Eighth— operates 
the  following  lines  : 

Clio,  Erato,  Rotal  &  Bourbon,  or  Jackson  Railroad  Line.— Starts  from  the  head  of 
Elysian  Fields,  up  Loyal.  St.  Charles,  Delord,  Dryades,  and  Clio  to  Jackson  Railroad  depot. 
Returns  by  Erato,  Carondelet,  Bourbon,  Esplanade  and  Decatur.  Red  cars  ;  at  night  red  light. 
Leaves  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.m.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight. 

Drtades  &  Rampart  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  up  St.  Charles,  Delord,  Dryades,  St. 
Andrew  and  Baronne  to  station  on  Eighth  street.  Returns  by  Baronne,  Dryades,  i^ampart  and 
Canal.  Green  cars  ;  at  night  green  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  niae 
p.  M.,  then  every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight. 

Carondelet  &  Baronne  Street  Line.— Starts  from  Clay  Statue,  up  St.  Charles,  Delord  and 
Baronne  to  station  on  Eighth  street.  Returns  by  way  of  Carondelet  and  Canal  to  starting  point. 
"White  cars  ;  by  night  white  light.  Leaves  starting  point  every  five  minutes  until  nine  p.  m.,  then 
every  fifteen  minutes  until  midnight. 

The  Jackson  railroad  cars  (,f  tiiis  line  connect  the  various  railroad  depots  of  the  city.  Start- 
ing from  thedepc-t  of  the  Jackson  route,  they  run  to  that  of  the  Pontchartrain  and  Morgan  s 
Louisiana  &  Texas  Railroad,  at  the  foot  of  Elysian  Fields  street.  The  cars  are  smaller  than 
most  of  the  other  lines,  to  accommodate  them  to  the  narrow  streets  of  the  old  French  quarter, 
which  they  traverse.  On  Bourbon  and  Royal  street  are  to  be  seen  the  best  specimens  of  French 
and  Creole  arch;tectu:  e  of  the  city.  These  streets  recall  some  of  the  older  boulevards  of  Paris. 
The  stores  on  them  are  bright  with  all  the  latest  Paris  nouveautes,  the  signs  are  French  and  the 
language  almost  universally  spoken  is  French.  At  the  corner  of  Toulouse  and  Bourbon  is  the 
celebrated  French  Opera  House  ;  at  the  corner  of  St.  Louis  and  Royal  is  the  Hotel  Royale,  for- 
merly the  old  St.  Louis. 

All  the  lines  of  this  company,  in  going  out  St.  Charles  street,  pass  the  St.  Charles  Hotel, 
Masonic  Hall,  Academy  of  Music,  St.  Charles  Theatre  and  City  Hall.  Txie  Dryades  street  cars 
run  by  the  Dryades  Market. 

These  various  lines  give  one  communication  with  nearly  every  portion  of  the  city. 

FERRIES. 
Opposite  the  city  of  New  Orleans  is  Algiers,  now  the  Fifth  district  and  Fifteenth  ward  of  the 
city;  Freetown,  Wcstwego,  GouldsDoro,  and  Cxretna,  capital  of  Jefferson  parish.    With  all  of 
these  New  Orleans  is  connected  by  several  lines  of  ferryboats. 


1 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  39 

The  two  railroads  starting  from  the  west  side  of  the  river  have  each  its  ferry.  That  of  Mor- 
gan's Louisiana  &  Texas  Railroad,  the  Southern  Pacific,  starts  from  the  head  of  Elysian  Fields 
street,  where  it  has  a  passenger  depot,  reached  by  the  Clio,  Erato,  Eoyal  &  Bourbon,  and  the 
Levee  &  Barracks  cars.  This  ferry  conveys  passengers  to  the  Algiers  depot  on  Atlantic 
avenue. 

Tbe  New  Orleans  Pacific,  of  the  Texas  &  Pacific  system,  has  a  ferry  from  the  foot  of  Terp- 
sichore street,  whence  passengers  are  conveyed  to  its  depot  on  the  west  side  of  the  river. 

The  regular  ferry  lines  for  the  ordinary  intercourse  between  the  two  banks  of  the  rivei  are 
the  following  : 

FiKST  District.— New  Orleans  and  Algiers  Ferry  Landing,  Canal  street,  to  Seguin  street, 
Algiers. 

Second  District.— New  Orleans  and  Algiers  Ferry  Landing,  St.  Ann  street. 

Third  District.— New  Orleans  and  Algiers  Ferry  Landing,  Levee,  foot  of  Barracks  street, 
to  Valette  street,  Algiers. 

Fourth  District.— New  Orleans  and  Gretna  Ferry  Landing,  Jackson  street,  to  Gretna,  near 
Oil  Works. 

Seventh  District  Ferry. — Starts  from  foot  of  Jefferson  street,  Seventh  district,  to  Nine 
Mile  Point. 

Slaughter  House  Co.'s  Ferbt.— From  and  to  Slaughter  House,  Algiers. 

Louisiana  Avenue  Ferry.— To  Harvey's  Canal  ;  starts  from  foot  Louisiana  avenue. 

Upper  Line  Ferry.— From  foot  of  Upper  Line  street  to  Gretna. 


40  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER   v.— BY  WATER. 

APPROACHES     TO     NEW     ORLEANS     BY     THE     RIVER — THE     VARIOUS     OCEAN     AND     RIVER 
VESSELS   REACHING   CITY — WHARVES    AND    LANDINGS. 

Lines  of  steamboats  connect  New  Orleans  with  all  the  towns  on  the  Mississippi  river  and 
its  tributaries,  while  the  ocean  vessels  run  to  every  port  in  America  and  Europe. 

Tiie  arrival  at  New  Orleans, via  the  river,  shows the^city  to  its  greatest  advantage.  If  you  come 
by  way  of  the  Gulf,  you  pass  through  the  Jetties,  the  greatest  engineering  enterprise  of  the  age. 
and  by  Eadsport,  built  in  the  midst  of  a  wild  country,  neither  land  nor  water,  but  a  mixture  o/ 
both.  All  the  way  up  to  the  city  the  scenery  is  varied  and  attractive.  For  the  first  twenty 
miles  the  shores  are  nothing  but  a  narrow  strip  of  mud,  separating  the  river  from  the  Gulf.  As 
you  ascend  higher  you  pass  the  Quarantine  station,  and  Forts  St.  Philip  and  Jackson,  which 
protected  New  Orleans  against  the  Federal  fleet  for  several  months,  but  were  finally  passed  by 
Farragut,  and  the  city  captured.  Above  this  is  Buras  settlement,  with  its  acres  of  orange 
groves,  the  finest  and  handsomest  in  the  State,  worth  from  $500  to  §1,000  an  acre.  Then  comes 
the  rice  country,  around  Pomte  a  la  Hache,  with  hundreds  of  small  farms,  managed  by  Creole 
farmers  ;  the  grandest  sugar  plantations  in  the  State,  which  make  Plaquemines  parish  the 
sugar  bowl  of  Louisiana.  In  the  distance  is  the  Crescent  City,  never  looking  more  beautiful 
than  when  thus  seen  from  the  river,  its  long  front  of  tw^elve  miles,  full  of  steamboats,  steamers 
and  ships,  and  barks  of  every  nation.  As  the  highest  part  of  the  city  is  that  directly  on  the 
river,  and  it  falls  as  you  go  towards  the  lake,  you  can  go  and  look  down  from  your  vessel  upon 
the  streets  and  avenues.  A  river  parade  shows  you  the  entire  city,  for  New  Orleans  clings  to 
the  Mississippi,  and  is  a  narrow  fringe  along  that  river,  seldom  running  back  over  one  or  two 
miles.  You  pass  the  battle  ground  of  New  Orleans,  the  Jackson  monutiient,  the  Chalmette 
National  Cemeteries,  the  Slaughter-house,  U.  S.  Barracks,  Jackson  square,  the  Cathedral, 
Canal  street,  all  the  Railroad  depots  of  the  city,  for  all  the  lines  have  their  freight  depots  directly 
on  the  river  front,  in  close  propinquity  to  the  wharves,  the  Elevator,  the  Upper  City  or 
Exposition  Park,  and  finally  Carrollton ;  while  on  the  western  bank  of  the  river  will  be  seen 
Algiers,  Freetown,  Gouldsboro,  Gretna,  and  other  suburban  villages,  with  their  dockyards, 
railroad  repair  shops,  foundries,  and  mills. 

Coming  down  the  river  by  steamboat  you  pass  an  even  more  picturesque  country.  The 
whole  river  bank  is  densely  populated  and  an  almost  continuous  town.  The  country  on  both 
sides  is  highly  cultivated,  and  it  is  one  succession  of  farms  and  plantations,  sugar,  rice,  com  and 
tobacco.  Scores  of  little  towns  look  down  on  you  from  the  bluffs  or  nestle  beneath  you  safe 
behind  the  levee,  and  so  much  lower  than  your  steamer  that  you  can  actually  look  down  into 
the  houses  and  see  what  is  going  on  within. 

The  steamboats  of  the  Mississippi  are  sui  genei^is,  different  from  the  vessels  traveling  upon 
any  other  river.  The  little  ones  are  as  comfortable  and  as  agreeable  as  any  mode  of  travel  can 
be  imagined.  The  packets  and  the  steamers  pl>ing  between  New  Orleans  and  St.  Louis  and 
Cincinnati  are  really  floating  palaces.  In  most  of  these  the  old  and  uncomfortable  berths  have ! 
been  done  away  with  and  the  traveler  is  furnished  instead  with  state-rooms  provided  with  large 
bedstead,  washstand,  bureaus,  etc.,  fitted  up,  in  fine,  like  a  room  in  a  first-class  hotel.  The  saloons 
extend  the  entire  length  of  the  vessel,  200  feet  or  so,  and  are  as  handsomely  fitted  up  as  elegant 
carpets,  magnificent  furniture,  and  grand  pianos  can  make  them.  As  for  the  table,  the  fare 
furnished  by  the  steamboats  is  unexcelled,  the  table  d'hote  including  every  delicacy  of  the  season, 
cooked  in  the  finest  style,  for  which  the  stewards  of  the  river  boats  have  obtained  a  world-wide 
reputation. 

A  trip  by  river  to  St.  Louis  or  Cincinnati  is  a  favorite  excursion,  and  half  the  wedding 
tours  from  New  Orleans  are  made  by  boat  to  these  cities.    One  is  not  cramped  up  as  in  the  cars 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  41 

nor  shaken  or  jolted,  and  can  walk  about,  and  read,  play  or  dance.  The  company  on  the  steam- 
boat, indeed.  Uveas  if  in  a  floating  hotel,  with  all  the  pleasures  and  enjoyments  of  hotel  life. 
From  the  decks  is  to  be  seen  the  panorama  of  the  river  scenery,  and  the  stops  made  at  the 
different  towns  and  landings  give  one  an  opportunity  to  step  ashore  and  inspect. 

During  the  carnival  season,  the  boats  from  St.  Louis  and  Cincinnati  come  down  to  the  city, 
laden  with  passengers.  So  comfortable  are  they  and  so  pleasant  the  accommodation,  that  their 
passengers  seldom  leave  the  vessels,  but  reside  in  them  as  if  staying  at  an  hotel.  The  steamer 
ties  up  against  the  river  bank,  at  the  foot  of  Canal  street  or  some  other  important  thoroughfare 
and  remains  there  until  the  holidays  are  over  and  its  passengers  are.  anxious  to  return.  The 
distance  from  this  landing  to  the  central  and  business  portion  of  the  city  is  but  little  more  than 
from  the  hotels.  The  passengers  board  on  the  boats,  eating  their  meals  there  and  sleeping  there 
at  night,  but  spending  their  mornings  and  evenings  ashore,  viewing  the  sights  of  the  city  or  at 
the  theatre.  Whatever  the  time  of  night  when  one  returns  to  the  steamer,  there  is  never  any 
difficulty  or  danger  in  getting  aboard,  as  the  wharves  are  brilliantly  illuminated  by  electric  lights 
and  well  policed  and  guarded.  This  system  of  visiting  Xew  Orleans  and  spending  a  week  or  so 
there  has  grown  in  great  favor  of  late  years,  and  now  the  upper  river  boats  seldom  arrive  at  the 
city  during  the  season  without  a  large  party  of  visitors  aboard  who  lodge  thus  over  the  water. 
When  the  city  is  crowded  with  visitors  moreover,  the  steamboats  are  converted  into  floating 
boarding-houses  and  seem  to  accommodate  several  thousand  guests. 

Each  steamship,  sailing  vessel  and  steamboat  line  has  its  special  landing.  The  foot  of 
Canal  street  is  the  cotton  landing  for  vessels  running  in  the  Yicksburg  and  Bend  trade,  and 
whose  principal  freight  is  cotton.  Below  this,  immediately  in  front  of  the  Sugar  Sheds,  is  the 
sugar  landing,  where  steamers  engaged  in  the  Bayou  Lafourche,  Teche,  Atchafalaya  and  Bayou 
Sara  trade,  and  the  greater  portion  of  whose  freight  is  sugar,  land.  Still  further  below  this  is 
the  landing  for  the  lower  coast  packets,  running  down  the  river  towards  the  Jetties.  Above 
Canal  street,  the  steamboats  from  St.  Louis,  Cincinnati,  Pittsburgh  and  other  points  land. 

In  leaving  New  Orleans,  the  hour  of  departure  for  all  up-river  boats,  whatever  their  desti- 
nation is  5  P.  M. ;  and  10  A.  M.  and  12  M.  for  those  engaged  in  the  lower  coast  trade. 

The  following  is  the  division  of  landings  in  the  city,  and  the  trade  for  which  each  is  set 
apart : 

First  Section— First  district :  Steamboat  Landing— From  Canal  street  ferry  landing  to  the 
upper  line  of  Julia  street. 

Second  Section— First  district :  Barge,  Flatboat  and  Coalboat  Landing,  from  Julia  to  St. 
Joseph— New  Orleans,  Mobile  &  Texas  Eailroad,  from  St.  Joseph  to  CaUiope— Florida  &  Mexican 
Steamship  Landing,  from  Calliope  to  Gaiennie— Upper  Steamboat  Landing,  from  Gaiennie  to 
Thalia. 

Third  Section— First  district :  Sea-going  Vessels  and  Coalboats  of  the  N.  O.  Gas  Light  Co. 
From  Thalia  street  to  upper  limits  of  First  district  (Felicity  street). 

Fourth  and  Fifth  Sections— Second  district :  Steamboat  Landing— From  Canal  street  ferry 
landing  to  St.  Louis  street ;  New  York  Steamship  Landing— P'rom  St.  Louis  to  Morgan's  Ferry. 

Sixth  Section— Second  district :  New  York  Steamship  Landing— From  St.  Ann  street  ferry 
landing  to  St.  Philip  street  ;  Sea-going  Vessels,  Schooners,  Coalboat  Landing— From  St.  Philip 
to  Elysian  Fields  street. 

Seventh  Section— Third  district :  Sea-going  Vessels— From  Third  district  ferry  landing  to 
Montegut  street. 

Eighth  Section— Third  district :  English  and  other  Steamers'  Landing— From  Montegut  to 
Clouet  street. 

Ninth  Section— Third  district :  Sea-going  vessels,  Flatboats  and  Coalboat  Landings— From 
Clouet  street  to  lower  limits  of  city. 

Tenth  Section— Fourth  district :  Sea-going  Vessels  and  British  and  German  steamers— From 
Felicity  Road  to  Jackson  street  ferry  landing. 


4:2  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Eleventh  SECTioN-Fourth  district :  Steamships,  Sea-going  Vessels  and  Coalboat  Landin-- 
From  Jackson  street  ferry  landing  to  Third  street. 

Twelfth  SECTioN-Fourth  district :  Sea-going  Vessels  and  Flatboat  Landing-From  Third 
street  to  upper  limits  of  city. 

U.  S.  Mail  Steamship  Co.-Second  district  :  New  Orieans,  Havana,  Philadelphia  and  New- 
York— Opposite  Jackson  Square,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann  streets. 

General  Coalboat  Landing.— Foot  Henry  Clay  avenue,  Sixth  district. 

Small  vessels  running  to  Covington  and  Pensacola,  of  draft  sufficient  to  ascend  the  new 
Canal,  land  at  the  new  basin  between  Rampart  and  Liberty  streets  ;  if  of  greater  drau-ht  they 
land  either  at  Milneburg,  the  "  old  lake  end,"  or  at  Spanish  Fort  (Bayou  St.  John)°or'west 
End  (New  Canal). 

The  following  are  the  chief  steamship  lines  running  from  the  City,  and  their  ticket  and 
freight  offices  : 

Allen,  American.  Cunard,  Glynn,  Guion,  Hamburg,  Inman,  Italian,  National,  Red  Star  State 
White  Star  and  other  New  York  lines  ;  office  37  Carondelet.  ' 

Anchor  Line,  17.3  Common.   Destination,  LiverpooL 

Catalonian  Transatlantic  Steamship  Co.,  57  Custom-house. 

Compagnie  Generale  Transatlantique,  33^  Carondelet.-Antwerp  and  Bordeaux. 

Cromwell  Line,  N.  Y.  &  N.  O  Steamships,  41  Carondelet.— New  York. 

Hall  Line,  29  Carondelet.— Liverpool. 

Harrison  Line,  66  Baronne.— Liverpool, 

Mississippi  &  Dominion  Steamship  Line,  48  Carondelet.— Liverpool. 

Morgan's  Louisiana  &  Texas  R.R.  &  Steamship  Office,  Magazine  corner  Natchez. -Havana 
Vera  Cruz,  Cedar  Keys,  New  York,  Corpus  Christi,  and  Galveston. 

New  York,  Havana  &  Mexican  xMail  Steamship  Line,  37  Carondelet. 

North  German  Lloyd  Steamship  Line,  42  Union,  1st  Distrist.— Bremen. 

Philadelphia  &  Southern  Mail  SteamshiD  Co.,  37  Carondelet. 

Watts,  Ward  &  Co.  Line,  29  Carondelet.— Central  American  ports. 

West  India  and  Pacific  Steamship  Co.,  62  Baronne.— Havana,  Liverpool. 

White  Cross  Line,  173  Common. 

Oteri  Pioneer  Line,  48  Carondelet.— Central  American  ports. 

New  Orieans  and  Central  American  Steamship  Line,  32  South  Peters.-Central  American 
ports. 

Compaiiia  de  Vapores  de  Guatemala,  61  Carondelet.— Central  American  ports. 

The  following  are  the  chief  steamboat  lines  running  from  New  Orleans : 

Anchor  Line,  104  Common.— St.  Louis. 

Mandeville  &  Covington  Line,  33  Carondelet.— Lake  coast. 

Ohio  River  &  Southern  Transportation  Co.,  Levee,  foot  of  Lafayette.-Cinclnnati,  O. 

Ouachita  River  Consolidated  Line,  7  Delta.— Monroe,  La. 

Southern  Transportation  Line,  82  Gravier. 

Red  River  &  Coast  Line,  46  Camp.— Shreveport,  La. 

Vicksburg,  Greenville  &  Bayou  Sara  Packet  Line,  52  Carondelet. -Vicksburg  Miss 

New  Orieans,  Baton  Rouge  &  Bayou  Sara  Line.  Offices :  122  Gravier,  35  Natchez,"  52  Caron- 
delet,  64  Common. 

New  Orieans  &  Bayou  Teche  Packet  Company,  35  Natchez.— New  Iberia,  La. 

Memphis  &  New  Orieans  Packet  Co.,  52  Carondelet.— Memphis,  Tenn. 

Merchants'  &  Planters'  Packet  Company,  35  Natchez. 

Besides  these,  there  are  innumerable  independent  packets  and  lines,  whUe  both  ocean 
steamers  and  sailing  vessels  run  casually  between  New  Orleans  and  other  ports,  on  which  there 
is  no  trouble  to  secure  cabin  accommodation. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW    ORLEANS.  43 


CHAPTER  VI.— THE  STREETS. 

STREET  NOMENCLATURE  OF  NEW  ORLEANS — THE  HISTORY  HIDDEN  IN  THE  STREET 
NAMES— DUPLICATE  AND  TRIPLICATE  NAMES  TO  CONFUSE  A  STRANGER — A  FULL 
STREET  GUIDE   OF   THE   CITY. 

Oakey  Hall,  in  his  book,  "The  Manhattaner in  New  Orleans,"  goes  wild  over  the  nomen- 
clature of  the  streets  of  the  Crescent  City,  which  he  declares  are  the  prettiest  named  of  any  in 
the  Union.  He  is  undoubtedly  right  in  this.  New  Orleans,  alone  of  American  cities,  has  pre- 
served all  the  romance  of  its  earlier  days  in  the  titles  of  its  streets,  and  with  a  simple  directory 
one  can  recall  the  entire  history  of  the  French  and  Spanish  dominion.  Having  changed  its 
ownership  no  less  than  five  times,  having  passed  under  so  many  masters,  having  witnessed 
such  vicissitudes  of  fortune,  New  Orleans  has  a  history  full  of  incident  and  romance,  and  this 
it  tells  in  its  street  nomenclature. 

The  old  carre  or  parallelogram  of  the  original  city  still  preserves  the  names  given  by  Le 
Blond  de  la  Tour,  who  laid  it  out.  There  have  been  few  changes  here.  The  rue  de  1' Arsenal, 
Arsenal  street,  has  given  way  to  the  rue  des  Ursulines,  named  in  honor  of  the  Ursuline  nuns,  who 
erected  their  convent  here  a  century  and  a  half  ago.  The  rue  des  Quartiers,  Barracks 
street,  and  the  rue  de  V  Hopital,  Hospital  street,  are  titles  given  to  unnamed  streets,  because 
the  government  barracks  and  hospital  were  erected  on  them.  Similarly  the  rue  de  la  Douane, 
or  Customhouse  street,  received  its  title,  not  from  the  massive  granite  customhouse  that  now 
stands  there,  but  from  the  old  wooden  building,  devoted  to  the  same  purpose,  erected  by  the 
Spaniards  a  century  and  a  quarter  before.  The  boundary  streets  of  the  city,  which  marked  the 
line  of  the  old  wall,  aU  bear  military  titles  referring  to  the  old  fortifications.  Esplanade  street 
was  where  the  troops  drilled  ;  Rampart,  rue  des  Remparts,  marks,  like  the  boulevards  of  Paris, 
the  destroyed  walls;  while  Canal  street  was  the  old  fosse  or  canal  which  surrounded  the  city 
and  which  was  continued  as  a  drainage  canal  to  the  lake,  and  filled  up  only  a  few  years  ago. 

Of  the  old  streets  only  two  have  disappeared,  ru:  de  I'Arsenal  into  Ursulines,  and  rue  de 
Conde  into  Chartres. 

There  have  been  some  few  corruptions  in  the  okT  names.  The  rue  de  Dauphine,  named 
after  the  province  of  Dauphiny,  in  France,  has  dropped  the  accent  on  the  e,  and  become 
simply  Dauphine  (pronounced  Daupheen)  street,  as  if  it  were  named  after  the  Dauphin's  wife. 
The  street  named  in  honor  of  the  Due  du  Maine,  has  got  the  preposition  for  ever  mixed  with  the 
noun,  and  is,  and  will  be  ever,  Dumaine,  instead  of  Maine  street. 

In  naming  the  streets  of  the  city  as  it  grew  beyond  its  original  boundaries,  a  dozen  different 
systems  were  pursued.  The  gallantry  of  the  French  Creoles  is  conomemorated  upon  old  city 
maps  by  a  number  of  streets  christened  with  the  sweetest  and  prettiest  feminine  names  imag- 
inable. Some  of  these  were  christened  after  the  favorite  children  of  rich  parents,  but  again 
not  a  few  were  named  after  favorite  concubines.  The  old  maps  of  New  Orleans  were  covered 
with  such  names  as  Suzette,  Celeste,  Estelle,  Angelie,  Annette,  and  others  ;  many  of  these  have 
died  away  into  later  titles,  but  not  a  few  still  survive. 

The  religious  tendency  of  the  population  showed  itself  in  giving  religious  names  to  many  of 
the  streets.  There  are  several  hundred  saints  so  honored,  and  scarcely  one  in  the  calendar  has 
escaped  a  namesake  in  the  Crescent  City.  There  are  besides  these,  such  streets  as  Conception, 
Religious,  Nuns,  Assumption,  Ascension,  etc. 

At  the  time  of  the  French  revolution  there  was  an  outbreak  in  France  of  Roman  and  Greek 
fashions.  The  modern  French  tried  to  imitate  the  ancient  classics  by  assuming  the  Roman 
dress  and  Roman  names.    The  Creoles  who,  although  dominated  by  the  Spaniards,  were  red 


44  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

republicans  in  these  days,  followed  that  fashion  and  all  the  names  of  antiquity  were  introduced 
into  Louisiana  and  survive  there  to  this  day.  Achille  (Achilles),  Alcibiade  (Alcibiades),  Numa, 
Demosthene  (Demosthenes),  came  into  fashion.  The  streets  found  a  similar  fate  and  the  new 
faubourg  Ste.  Marie  was  liberally  christened  from  pagan  mythology.  The  nine  muses,  three 
graces,  the  twelve  greater  gods  and  the  twelve  lesser  ones,  and  the  demi-gods,  all  stood  god- 
parents for  streets.  The  city  fathers  went  beyond  this,  and  there  was  a  Nayades  and  a  Di-yades 
street,  a  Water  Work,  a  Euphrosine  street,  and  so  on  without  end. 

Then  came  the  Napoleonic  wars,  and  vrith  them,  intense  enthusiasm  over  the  victories  of  the 
Corsican.  A  General  of  Napoleon's  army  who  settled  m  Louisiana  after  the  St.  Helena  captivity 
named  the  whole  upper  portion  of  the  city  in  honor  of  the  little  Emperor.  Napoleon  Avenu3, 
Jena  and  Austerlitz  streets  are  samples  which  survive  to  this  day. 

In  addition  to  these  came  the  names  and  titles  of  the  early  Louisiana  planters,  such  as  Mon- 
tegut,  Clouet,  Marigny,  Delord,  the  early  Governors  of  Louisiana,  Mayors  of  New  Orleans,  and 
distinguished  citizens. 

These,  however,  failed  to  supply  the  5(X)  miles  of  streets  that  New  Orleans  boasts  of,  with  a 
sufficiency  of  names. 

In  the  naming  of  streets  the  French  are  not  quite  so  matter  of  fact  as  the  Anglo-Saxons,  and 
they  have  shown  this  in  some  titles  they  have  left  behind.  In  New  Orleans  no  Anglo-Saxon,  for 
instance,  would  ever  think  of  naming  a  street  Goodchildren  street,  rue  des  Bons  Enfants,  or  Love 
street,  rue  de  P Amour,  Madman's  street.  Mystery  street,  Piety  street,  etc.  Old  Bernard  Marigny 
christened  two  thoroughfares  in  the  faubourg  Marigny  which  he  laid  out,  "  Craps  "  and  "  Baga- 
telle "  In  honor  of  the  two  games  of  chance  at  which  he  lost  a  fortune.  A  curious  mistake  was 
that  of  the  first  American  directory-maker  who  insisted  upon  translating  Bagatelle  into  English 
and  described  it  as  Trifle  street. 

But  even  when  a  person  is  acquainted  with  the  names  of  the  New  Orleans  streets,  the  next 
thing  is  to  know  how  to  pronounce  and  spell  them.  This  is  very  important,  for  they  are  seldom 
pronounced  as  they  would  seem  to  be.  Tchoupitoulas— pronounced  Chopitoulas— and  Caron- 
delet  are  the  shibboleth  by  which  foreigners  are  detected.  No  man  is  ever  recognized  as  a  true 
Orleanais  until  he  can  spell  and  pronounce  these  names  correctly ;  and  the  serious  charge  made 
against  an  Auditor  of  the  State,  that  he  spelled  Carondelet,  Kerionderlet,  aroused  the  utmost 
indignation  of  the  population,  who  could  never  forgive  this  mistake. 

The  classical  scholar  who  visits  New  Orleans  and  hears  the  names  of  the  muses  so  fright- 
fully distorted  may  regard  it  as  unfortunate  that  Greek  mythology  had  been  chosen.  The 
explanation  of  the  mispronunciation,  however,  will  relieve  the  people  of  New  Orleans  of  any 
charge  of  ignorance.  The  Greek  names  are  simply  pronounced  in  the  French  style.  Thus  the 
street  that  the  scholar  would  call  Melpomene,  of  four  syllables  and  ^v^th  the  last  "e  "  sounded, 
would  be  in  French  Melpomene,  and  is  translated  by  the  people  of  New  Orleans  into  Melpo- 
meen.  So  Calliope  is  Callioap;  Terpsichore,  Terpsikor  ;  Euterpe,  Euterp  ;  and  others  in  the 
same  way.  Coliseum  is  accented  like  the  French  Colisee,  on  the  second  instead  of  the  third  syl- 
lable ;  and  even  Felicity  street— it  is  named,  by  the  by,  after  a  woman  (Felicite),  not  happiness 
—is  actually  called  by  many  intelligent  persons  Filly-city.  The  influence  of  the  old  French 
days  is  seen  in  the  spelling  of  Dryades,  instead  of  Dryads,  as  the  word  is  pronounced,  and  in  a 
number  of  other  apparent  violations  of  orthoepy  or  orthography,  the  truth  being  that  the  old 
French  pronunciation  and  spelling  are  preserved  and  have  become  current  among  the  English- 
speaking  portion  of  the  population. 

The  constant  annexation  to  New  Orleans  of  suburban  villages  and  towns,  with  streets  of 
the  same  name  produces  considerable  inconvenience  to  strangers  and  even  to  natives  of  the 
city.  There  is  a  duplicate  to  nearly  every  name,  and  sometimes  four  or  five  streets  bearing  the 
same  title. 

Thus  there  is  a  North  Peter's  and  a  South  Peter's  miles  apart,  one  in  the  First,  the  other  in 
the  Second  district ;  then  there  is  a  simple  Peter's  in  the  Sixth  district,  and  a  Peter's  avenue  in 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  45 

the  same  division,  while  in  the  Fifth  district  there  is  a  Peter  street,  and  in  the  Third  a  Petre, 
pronounced  Peter.    A  fine  chance  this  to  get  confused. 

There  are  Chestnut  streets  in  the  First,  Fourth,  Fifth  and  two  in  the  Sixth  district.  And 
much  more  confusion  of  the  same  sort. 

Another  circumstance  that  is  likely  to  deceive  and  mislead  strangers  is  the  preservation  of 
the  ancient  names  of  the  streets.  These  have  been  changed  time  and  time  again  with  the 
names,  until  even  the  residents  on  the  streets  get  confused.  Suppose  you  start  down  Eampart 
street,  some  wiU  call  it  Love  (the  old  name),  and  some  Rampart.  Beyond  Canal  you  will  see  a 
building  called  the  Circus  street  inflrmary— this  was,  of  old,  Circus  street.  A  little  further  on 
and  you  will  hear  that  it  is  Hercules  street,  and  when  you  get  well  up  town,  exactly  half  the 
population  wall  swear  it  is  St.  Denis,  and  the  other  half  stick  to  Eampart. 

You  want  to  go  to  the  Moreau  street  Methodist  Church  and  inquire  for  Moreau  street. 
There  is  none  ;  it  is  now  Chartres  ;  while  the  Craps  street  Church  is  not  on  Craps,  but  on 
Burgundy,  its  successor. 

When,  in  addition  to  this,  it  is  remembered  that  few  of  the  streets  in  New  Orleans  have 
any  signs  on  the  comers,  that  these  signs  one  encounters  are  often  in  French,  and  that 
the  numbering  of  thj  houses  is  very  imperfect  and  defective,  it  will  be  seen  that  without  a 
map  or  a  good  street-guide,  giving  not  only  the  names  of  the  streets  to-day,  but  those  they 
used  to  bear  some  years  ago,  a  stranger  can  very  easily  lose  himself  in  New  Orleans. 

STREET    GUIDE. 

ABBREVIATIONS. 

dist district  rt right 

Eor  e east  S  or  s south 

1ft left  sw • southwest 

nw northwest  W  or  w west 

Norn north 

Adams,  4th  se.  from  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  Nelson,7th  dist,(Carrollton). 

Adams,  2d  east  of  the  river  from  Americus,  south  to  limits,  McDonoughville  (Algiers). 

Adams  Avenue,  31st  n.  of  City  Park,  or  3d  s.  of  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne. 

Adele,  third  n.  of  Felicity,  from  the  river  to  St.  Thomas,  4th  dist. 

Agriculture,  14th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

Alabama  (now  Arabella). 

Alexander,  3d  w.  of  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Alexander,  3d  w.  of  Carrollton  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  New  Metairie  road,  2d  dist. 

Alexander,  3d  w.  of  Carrollton,  from  Canal  w.  to  New  Orleans  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Algiers,  now  Olivier,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Aline,  3d  w.  of  Toledano,  from  the  river  n.  to  St.  Charles,  6th  dist. 

Alix,  4th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  Landing,  from  Sumner  running  east,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Alonzo,  2d  n.  of  Nashville  avenue,  from  the  river  w.  to  Laurel,  6th  dist. 

Amelia,  6th  w.  of  Toledano,  from  the  river  to  Clara,  6th  dist. 

Amen,  parallel  with  Franklin  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  to  the  Lake,  3d  dist. 

Americus,  18th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  landing,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  McDonough 
(Algiers). 

Anna,  5th  sw.  from  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Adams  to  Lower  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Annette,  5th  w.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  St.  Bernard  w.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Annunciation,  Elizabeth  and  Jersey  are  known  as  Annunciation  St.,  6th  from  river, 
from  .iunction  Tchoupitoulas,  1st  dist.,  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 


46  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Annunciation  Square,  bounded  by  Race,  Orange,  Chippewa  and  Annunciation,  1st  dist. 

Anson,  5th  s.  of  Americas,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  McDonough  (Algiers). 

Anthonia,  from  Monroe  avenue  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Anthony,  9th  n.    of   CarroUton  avenue,   from  Canal  to  New  Metairie  road,  and  recom- 
mences at  Monroe  avenue  and  runs  n.  to  the  lake,  2d  dist. 

Antonine,  4th  w.  of  Louisiana  avenue,  from  river  to  St.  Charles,  6th  dist. 

Apollo,  now  Carondelet. 

Arabella,  16th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  the  river  n.  to  Claiborne,  6th  dist. 

Architect,  between  Chartres  and  Royal,  from  Port  to  St.  Ferdinand,  3d  dist. 

Athis,  1st  n.  of  Calhoun  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Atlantic  Avenue,  2d.  e.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.,  from  boundary  line  to  Jefferson  parish,  5th  dist. 
(Algiers). 

Atlantic  Avenue,  now  Nichols. 

AuBRY,  7th  e.  of  Esplanade,  from  junction  of  Miro  and  St.  Bernard  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Austerlitz,  8th  w.  of  Louisiana  avenue,  from  river  to  Plaquemine,  6th  dist. 

AzELiE,  now  Constance. 

Bacchus,  now  Baronne. 

Bainbrldge,  8th  s.  of  Americus,  from  Adams  e.  to  Hancock,  McDonough  (Algiers). 

Baldwin,  9th  n.  of  Peters,  from  Peters  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Banks,  3d  s.  of  Canal,  from  Johnson  n.  to  St.  Patrick's  cemetery,  1st  dist. 

Bank  Place,  bet.  Camp  and  Magazine;  from  Gravier  to  Natchez,  1st  dist. 

Baronne,  1st  w.  of  Carondelet,  from  Canal.to  Peters  avenue,  1st  and  6th  dists. 

Barracks,  1st  sw  of  Esplanade,  from  river  to  Broad,  and  from  New  Metairie  road  to  lake, 
2d  dist. 

Bartholomew,  1st  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  upper  Line,  Jefferson  City,  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th 
dist. 

Bartholomew,  16th  s.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  the  river  e.  to  the  woods,  3d  dist. 

Basin  (now  North  Basin),  5th  w.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Peter,  2d  dist. 

Basin  (now  South  Basin),  5th  w.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Canal  s.  to  Toledano,  1st  and  4th 
dists. 

Bayou  Road,  from  junction  Claiborne  and  Hospital,  2d  dist.,  ne.  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Bayou  St.  John,  commences  8th  n.  of  Broad  and  at  Carondelet  walk,  thence  n.  to  the  lake. 

Beauregard,  from  Marigny  avenue  to  Lafayette  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Belfast,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  Mobile,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.    (Car- 
roUton). 

Bellechasse,  s.  of  Thalia,  from  Tchoupitoulas  to  St.  Thomas,  1st  dist. 
Bellecastle,  3d  e.  of  Peters  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Leonie,  6th  dist. 

Bellegarde,  now  Chippewa. 

Bell's  Alley,  bet.  Peters  and  Decatur,  3d  dist. 

Benefit,  17th  n.  of  and  parallel  vnth  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Lower  Line,  3d 
dist. 

Benjamin,  1st  s.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Octavia  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 
Benjamin,  now  Thalia. 

Benton,  6th  above  U.  S.  Barracks^  from  St.  Claude  (Good  Children)  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 
Berlin,  1st  e.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Bernadotte.  continuation  of  Lower  Line,  from  12th  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist.    (Car- 
roUton). 

Bernadotte,  7th  w.  of  CarroUton  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  New  Metairie  road,  2d  dist.,  and 
from  Canal  s.  to  New  Orleans  Canal,  1st  dist. 
Bernard,  now  St.  Bernard. 
Bertrand,  3d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Common  s.  to  Lafayette,  1st  dist. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  47 

Beenville,  2d  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  to  cemeteries,  and  from  New  Metairie  road  n.  to  lake, 
2d  and  3d  dists. 

Blackbekrt,  15th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  South  Line  to  North  Line,  7th 
dJst.   (Carrollton). 

Blanche,  now  Marais. 

BoLivAE,  3d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Common  s.  to  Lafayette,  1st  dist. 

BoNNEVALLE,  5th  w.  of  Paris,  from  Pleasure  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Bordeaux,  4th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  nw.  to  Upper  Line,  6th  dist. 

BoKEE,  7th  s.  of  Claiborne,  from  Burtheville  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

BouDousQuiE,  2d  e.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Soniat  to  Joseph.  6th  dist. 

BouNT,  1st  w.  of  Seguin,  from  Market  n,  to  river,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Bourbon,  1st  nw.  of  Royal,  from  Canal  e.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist.,  and  from  Esplanade  n.  to 
lake,  3d  dist. 

Brainard,  2d  w.  of  St.  Charles,  from  St.  Andrew  s.  to  Philip,  4th  dist. 

Breedlove,  continuation  of  Terpsichore,  from  St.  John  to  State,  6th  dist. 

Breslau,  2d  n.  of  St.  George,  from  Toledano  w.  to  boundary  line,  6th  dist. 

Brickyard,  4th  n.  of  Fair  grounds,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Bringier,  10th  s.  of  Market,  from  the  river  e.  to  Sumner,  5th  disf.  (Algiers). 

Broad  (now  North  Broad),  5th  w.  of  Galvez,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.,  n.  to  St.  Bernard. 

Broad  (now  South  B.'oad),  5th  w.  of  Galvez,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.,  s.  to  Upper  Line,  6th  dist. 

Broadway,  2d  e.  of  Lower  Line,  Carrollton,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Brooks,  8th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Broome,  now  Lafayette. 

Brown,  5th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Brutus,  1st  s.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue,  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Bruxelles,  1st  e.  of  Paris  avenue,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

BuRDETTE,  or  CoLUMBus,  3d  SO.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  Lower  Line, 
7th  dist.  (CarroUton). 

Burgundy,  1st  e.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal,  2d  dist.,  ne.  to  Columbus,  and  from  Columbus  e. 
to  lower  limits,  3d  dist. 

Burke,  1st  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Upper  Line  to  State,  6th  dist. 

BuRTHE,  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Monroe,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Butler,  6th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Cadiz,  2d  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  River  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Calhoun,  3d  w.  of  State,  from  Levee,  n.  to  boundary  line,  6th  dist. 

Calhoun  Avenue,  n.  of  and  parallel  with  St.  James  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafay- 
ette avenue,  Milneburg. 

Calliope,  Louisa  and  Duplantier  are  known  as  Calliope,  10th  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  to 
woods,  1st  dist. 

I        Calopissa,  25th  nw.  of  First,  from  Upper  Line,  to  Marley  avenue,  6th  dist. 
I        Cambronxs,  3d  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th 
dist.  (Carrollton). 

Camp,  8th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal,  to  Greenville,  1st,  4th  and  6th  dists. 

Canada,  16th  n.  of  First,  from  Walnut  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Canal,  dividing  1st  and  2d  dists.  from  river  w.  to  limits. 

Canal  Avenue,  3d  w.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.  from  river  to  boundary  line  of  Jefferson  Parish, 
5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Canonge.  1st  w.  of  eastern  boundary,  from  U.  S.  Barracks  n.  to  woods,  rear  of  3d  dist. 

Carnot,  2d  s.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Carondelet,  10th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  1st  dist.  to  St.  Charies  and  Soniat,  6th  dist. 
Carroll,  1st  w.  of  Carondelet,  from  Poydras  to  Perdido,  Ist  dist. 


48 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


Cabrollton,  1st  s.  of  First,  from  Walnut  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist.  H 

Carrollton  Avenue,  from  river  ne.  to  New  Orleans  Canal,  parish  boundary.  7th  dist  ^cS 
ronton).  '  ^ 

Carrollton  Avenue,  14th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.  to  N.  O.  Canal;  and  from  Canal 
to  Metairie  road,  2d  dist. 

Carondelet  Basin,  bounded  by  Toulouse,  Basin,  Franklin  and  Carondelet  walk. 

Carondelet  Walk,  n.  bank  of  Carondelet  Canal  and  Basin  from  St.  Claude  to  Bavou  St 
John,  2d  dist. 

Casacalvo,  now  Eoyal. 

Cass,  5th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Orleans,  2d  dist. 

Castiglione,  10th  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Bayou  road  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Cato,  from  Bayou  St.  John  e.  to  Lafayette  avenue. 

Cedar,  now  Howard. 

Celeste,  2d  s.  of  Market,  from  Felicity  e.  to  river,  1st  dist. 

Charbonet,  11th  e.  of  the  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  Dauphine  to  St.  Claude,  3d  dist 

Chartres,  6th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Frenchmen,  thence  e.  to  limits.  3d  dist. 

Chestnut,  5th  e.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.  from  river  to  woods,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Chestnut,  3d  e.  of  Lower  Line,  from  the  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Chestnut,  between  Camp  and  Coliseum,  4th  dist.  from  Felicity  s.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist 

Child,  16th  s.  of  McDonough  avenue,  from  Franklin  to  Hancock,  5th  dist.  (Algiers) 

Chippewa,  bet.  Annunciation  and  St.  Thomas,  from  Melpomene,  1st  dist.  to  Aline,  6th  dist 

Choctaw,  2nd  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Foucherville  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Church  (late  St.  Mary  and  late  St.  Francis),  8)4  w.  of  the  river,  from  Poydras  to  Julia 
1st  dist.  ' 

Church,  2d  s.  of  Canal  st.  Ferry  landing,  from  the  river  se.  to  Market,  5th  dist  (Algiers) 

Circus  (now  Rampart). 

Claiborne  (now  North  Claiborne),  7th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard 
avenue,  thence  e.  to  limits,  2d  and  3d  dist. 

Claiborne  (now  South  Claiborne)  1st,  4th  and  6th  dists.,  from  Canal  street,  to  Lower  line 
6th  dist.  ' 

Clara,  12th  w.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Gravier  s.  to  State,  1st,  4th  and  6th  dists. 

Clark  (now  North  Clark),  1st  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  Bayou  St.  John  2d  dist 

Clark  (now  South  Clark),  1st  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  Melpomene,  4th  dist 

Clay,  bet.  Front  and  Peters,  from  Customhouse  to  Toulouse,  2d  dist. 

Clat,  nw  of  and  paraUel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  Upper  Line  to  North  Line,  7th  dist.(CarBolton) 

Clay  (now  Henry  Clay)  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Clay  Square,  bet.  Second  and  Third,  Chippewa  and  Annuciation,  4th  dist. 

Clemens,  2d  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Clinton,  bet.  Peters  and  Decatur,  from  Customhouse  to  BienviUe,  2d  dist. 

Clinton,  6th  se.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  Lower  Line.  7th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

Clio,  11th  s.  of  Canal,  from  Camp  w.  to  Clark,  4th  dist. 

Clouet,  6th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Coffee,  now  Dryades. ' 

CocuLus,  3d  s.  of  Claiborne  from  Upper  Line  to  State,  6th  dist. 

CoHN,  13th  ne.  of  and  paraUel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton) 

Coliseum,  2d  e.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Melpomene,  1st  dist.  s.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Coliseum  Square,  junction  of  Camp  and  Coliseum,  bet.  Melpomene  and  Euterpe,  1st  dist 

Columbia,  4th  n.  of  Edinburgh  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist 

Columbus,  2d  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Rampart  w.  to  GentiUy  road,  3d  dist. 

Columbus,  2d  n.  of  Americus,  from  river  to  Hancock,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  49 

Columbus,  now  Beraadotte  (Carrollton). 

CojiMERCE,  bet.  Peters  and  Tchoupitoulas,  from  Poydras  to  St.  Joseph,  1st  dist. 

Commercial,  2d  sw.  of  and  parallel  to  Fir^t,  from  Lower  Line  to  Story,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Commercial  Place,  between  Grarier  and  Poydras,  from  Camp  to  St.  Charles,  1st  dist. 

CoMMox,  1st  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  limits,  1st  dist. 

CoNDE,  now  Chartres. 

Congress.  11th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods. 

Conrad,  8th  s.  of  the  lake  from  Bayou  St.  John,  to  Milne,  2nd  dist. 

CoxRET,  between  "Washington  avenue  and  6th,  from  St.  Charles  to  Prytania,  4th  dist. 

Constance,  6th  w.  of  river,  formerly  Foucher,  from  Poydras,  s.  to  Calliope,  1st  dist; 
recommences  at  Calliope,  s.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Constantinople.  10th  w.  of  Louisiana  avenue  from  the  river  to  Rampart,  6th  dist. 

CoNTi,  3rd  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  cemeteries,  2nd  dist.,  and  recommences  at  New 
Metairie  road  and  runs  to  the  lake,  3rd  dist. 

Copernicus,  1st  s.  of  Americus,  from  river  to  Hancock,  McDouough  (Algiers). 

Cortes  (now  South  Cortes),  4th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal, 
Id  dist. 

Cortes  (now  North  Cortes),  4th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  Bayou  St.  John, 
2d  dist. 

CoRwiN,  3d  n.  of  City  Park  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Cotton  Press  (now  Press),  3d  dist. 

Craps  (now  Burgundy). 

Crittenden,  4th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Crossman,  1st  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  to  Peters,  2d  dist. 

Customhouse,  1st  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  2d  dist.,  thence  n.  to  the 
lake,  3d  dist. 

Cypress,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Eighth,  from  Lower  line  to  Upper  line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Cypress,  1st  s.  of  Lafayette,  from  Liberty  to  Prieur,  1st  dist. 

Dabadie,  6th  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  w.  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Dauphine,  10th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Kerlerec,  thence  e.  to  limits,  2d  and  3d  dists. 

David,  bet.  Carrollton  avenue  and  Solomon,  from  Canal  to  Metairie  Road,  2d  dist. 

Dawns,  11th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

De  Armas,  9th  s.  of  Canal  st.    Ferry  landing,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  oth  dist.  (Algiers). 

De  A_rmas,  4th  sw.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Burdette,  7th  dist. (Carrollton). 

Decatur,  late  Victory  and  Old  Levee,  5th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 
thence  e.  to  St.  Ferdinand,  3d  dist. 

Deers,  10th  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  junction  of  Lafayette  avenue  and  Virtue  n. 

Delachaise,  1st  s.  of  Louisiana  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Miro,  6th  dist. 

Delaronde,  3d  se.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  ne.  to  Moss,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Delta,  2dw.  of  river  from  Canal  s.  to  St  Joseph,  1st  dist 

Delery,  1st  n.  of  Lower  Line,  from  the  river  to  the  woods,  3d  dist. 

Delord,  9th  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  Broad,  1st  dist. 

Delord,  1st  s.  of  Claiborne,  from  L'pper  Line  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Derbigny  (now  South  Derbigny),  1st  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Upper  Line,  6th  dist. 

Derbigny  (now  North  Derbigny),  1st  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard. 

Desire,  9th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Destrehan,  13th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Deter,  Oth  w.  of  Paris,  from  Pleasure  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

D'Hemecourt,  5th  s.  of  Canal,  from  junc.  Common  and  Lopez  w.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Division,  bet.  Rousseau  and  St.  Thomas,  from  First  to  Second,  4th  dist. 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


I 


Dixon,  next  to  Seventeenth,  from  North  Line  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

DoLHONDE  (now  North  Dolhonde),  1st  e.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  aveuu( 
3d  dist. 

Dolhonde  (now  South  Dolhonde),  1st  e.  of  Broad,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.,  s.  to  Berlin,  6th  dis 

DoLOPHON,  4th  s.  of  the  lake  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne.  2d  dist. 

DoRSiERE,  bet.  Decatur  and  Chartres,  from  Canal  to  Customhouse,  2d  dist. 

Drtades,  1st  e.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  s.  to  junc.  St.  Charles  and  Joseph,  6th  dist. 

Dryden,  e.  of  and  parallel  to  Franklin  avenue  from  Lafayette  avenue  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Dtjcayet,  3d  w.  of  Gentilly  road  from  Esplanade  n.  to  Pleasure,  8d  dist, 

DiTBLiN,  1st  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  First  to  parish  boundary,  rth  dis 
(Carrollton). 

Duels,  12th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue,  e.  to  Elysian  Fields,  3d  dist. 

DuFOSSAT,  9th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  to  St.  Georjre,  6th  dist. 

DuMAiNE,  9th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river,  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  2d  dist.  and  thence  n.  t 
the  lake,  3d  dist. 

DuPLEssis,  7th  w.  of  London  avenue,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue,  to  the  lake. 

Dtjplantier,  now  Calliope. 

Dttpre  (now  North  Dupre),  2d  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

DupRE  (now  South  Dupre),  2d  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal,  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Eagle,  nw  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dis 
(Carrollton). 

Eagle,  now  Willow. 

Edinburgh  Avenuk,  4th  from  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenu< 
Milneburg. 

Edinburgh,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Fifteenth,  from  North  Line  to  boundary,  7th  disi 
(Carrollton). 

Edward,  now  Melpomene. 

Eighth,  3d  w.  of  Washington  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Rampart,  4th  dist. 

Eighth,  14th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

Eighteenth,  34th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  North  Line  to  Parish  boundary,  rti 
dist.  (Carrollton). 

Eleonore,  5th  w.  of  Peters  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  St.  Charles,  6th  dist. 

Eleventh,  20th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

Eliza,  5th  se.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  ne.  to  Sumner,  thence  e.  to  limits 
5th  dist. 

Elizabeth,  now  Annunciation, 

Elmira  :10th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist, 

ELMir.-i  Avenue,  4th  w.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.,  from  river  boundary  line  of  Jefferson  Parish 
5th  dist  (Algiers). 

Elysian  Fields,  line  of  the  Pontchartrain  R.  R.,  from  river  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Encampment,  2d  w.  of  Bayou  Sauvage,  from  Grand  Route  St.  John  n.  to  Pleasure,  3d  dist. 

Enghien,  now  Lafayette  avenue. 

Erato,  12th  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  woods,  1st  dist. 

Esplanade,  dividing  line  bet.  2d  and  3d  dists.  from  river  nw.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  and 
recommences  at  New  Metairie  road,  and  runs  n.  to  the  river. 

Estelle,  now  Thalia. 

Esther,  4th  sw.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Foucherville  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Esther,  6th  sw.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Hillary  to  Lower  Line,  7th  dist,  (Carrollton). 

Euphrosine,  1st  n.  of  Calliope,  from  Rampart  w.  to  woods. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  51 

.Euterpe,  7th  s.  of  Tivoli  Circle,  from  Coliseum  nw.  to  Felicity,  1st  dist. 

Euterpe,  1st  s.  of  Terpsichore,  from  .iunction  Broad  and  Toledano  w.  to  St.  John  avenue, 
6th  dist. 

Evelina,  6th  se.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  landing;  from  Church  ne.  to  Sumner,  thence  e.  to 
Jimits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Exchange  Alley,  bet.  Eoyal  and  Chartres,  from  Custom-house  to  St.  Louis,  2d  dist. 

Exchange  Passage,  bet.  Royal  and  Chartres,  from  St.  Peter  to  St.  Anthony  square,  2d  dist. 

Exchange  Place,  bet.  Royal  and  Chartres,  from  Canal  to  Custom-house,  2d  dist. 

Felicla.,  2d  sw.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Foucherville  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Feliciana,  5th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  St.  Claude  n.  to  woods.  3d  dist. 

Felicity,  dividing  1st  and  4th  districts,  from  river  nw.  to  woods. 

Ferdinand,  7th  n.  of  river,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Fittebnth,  27th  ne.  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Car- 
rollton). 

Flfth,  3d  w.  of  Broad,  from  Ursulines  n.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

Flfth,  8th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton) 

Fillmore  Avenue,  26th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

First,  7th  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  w.  to  Dolhonde,  4th  dist. 

First,  head  of  depot  Carrollton  R.  R.,  from  Foucher,  boundary,  Greenville  to  Madison,  2d 
dist.  (Carrollton). 

First  (now  Hagan  avenue). 

Fish,  1st  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  w.  to  St.  Louis.  3d  dist. 

Fishermen's  Canal,  forming  the  boundary  line  bet.  the  Parish  of  Orleans  and  Parish  of  St. 
Bernard  and  running  into  Bayou  Bienvenue,  3d  dist, 

Florldas,  Istn.  of  Grand  Route  St.  John,  from  Bayou  Sauvage  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  2d 
and  3d  dists. 

Florida  Walk,  11th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Elysian  Fields  e.  to  limits,  3d  dist. 

Force  (now  La  Force). 

FoRsHEY,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  Fourteenth,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line  7th  dist.  (Car- 
rollton). 

F0R8TALL.  2d  e.  of  the  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  the  river  to  the  woods,  3d  dist. 

FoRSTALL,  9th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Peters  avenue  to  Bloomingdale,  6th  dist. 

FoRTiN,  2d  e.  of  Bayou  St.  John,  from  Pleasure  n.  to  Bayou,  3d  dist. 

Foucher  (now  Constance). 

Foucher,  3d  w  of  Louisiana  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Green,  6th  dist. 

Fourth.  1st  and  2d  dist.  (now  Gayoso). 

Fourth,  1st  n.  of  Washington  avenue,  from  river  w.  to  Broad,  4th  dist. 

Fourteenth,  25th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton) 

Fox.  10th  s.  of  and  parallel  to  Monroe  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenue, 
3d  dist. 

France.  6th  w.  of  the  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  the  river  to  the  woods.  3d  dist. 

Frankfort,  3d  n.  of  Edinburgh  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John, 
Milneburg. 

Franklin  (now  South  Franklin),  2d  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist,, 
thence  to  Philip,  4th  dist. 

Franklin  (now  North  Franklin),  2d  w.  of  Rampart,  fr^m  Canal  n.  to  Corondelet  walk. 
2d  dist. 

Franklin,  4th  e.  of  river,  from  Market  s.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Frederick  Square,  bounded  by  Fifteenth,  Hamilton,  Edinburgh  and  Laurel  Grove,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 


52  HISTORICAL  SKETCH    BOOK. 

Fremont,  15th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

French,  17th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Frenchmen,  1st  w.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  Esplanade  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Freret  (formerly  Jacobs),  6th  w.  of  Eampart,  from  Canal  to  State,  1st  and  ethdists. 

Front  (now  North  Front),  3d  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Toulouse,  3d  dist. 

Front  (now  South  Front),  3d  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Celeste,  then  from  Felicity,  1st  w. 
of  river,  sw.  and  w.  to  lower  line  of  Carrollton,  1st,  4th,  and  6th  dists. 

Fulton,  4th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Delord,  1st  dist. 

Gaiennie,  bet.  Calliope  andErato,  from  river  w.  to  Camp,  1st  dist. 

Gasquet,  5th  s.  of  Melpomene,  from  Broad  w.  to  Second,  6th  dist. 

Gatoso  (now  South  Gayoso),  3d  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.,  s.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Gayoso  (now  Korth  Gayoso),  3d  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  w.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

Gaines,  commences  at  Lafayette  avenue,  cor.  Socrates,  and  runs  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Gaines,  10th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Gallatin,  1st  w.  of  river,  from  Ursulines  n.  to  Barracks,  2d  dist. 

Gallatin,  3d  s.  of  Americus,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  McDonough  (Algiers.) 

Galyez  (now  South  Galvez),  5th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Peters  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Galvez  (now  North  Galvez),  5th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue, 
2d  dist. 

General  Taylor,  8th  w.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Eocheblave,  6th  dist. 

Genois  (now  South  Genois)  2d  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Genois  (now  South  Genois),  2d  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n,  to  Bayou  St.  John, 
2d  dist. 

Genius,  5th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue,  e.  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

Gentilly  Avenue,  continuation  of  Bayou  road,  commencing  at  Broad  and  running  along  s. 
bank  of  Bayou  Sauvage  to  Fort  McComb,  Parish  St.  Bernard. 

GiROD  (now  Villere;,  3d  dist. 

GiROD,  6th  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  Liberty,  1st  dist. 

GiROND  (now  Howard). 

Good  Children  (now  St.  Claude). 

Gordon,  5th  w.  of  LT.  S.  Barracks,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

GosLiN  now  Vallette),  8th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Grand  Route  St.  John,  3d  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Bayou  Sauvage  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John, 
crossing  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

Gravier,  2d  s.  of  Canal,  from  river,  nw.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Greatmen  (now  Dauphine),  3d  dist. 

Great  Route  (now  Louisiana  avenue).  6th  dist. 

Green,  7th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Toledano  s.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Hagan  Avenue  (now  North  Hagan  avenue),  7th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Ursulines, 
2d  dist. 

Hagan  Avenue  (now  South  Hagan  avenue),  7th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal, 
1st  dist. 

Hamburg,  1st  v>'.  of  Paris  avenue,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Hampson,  1st  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Madison,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Hancock,  3d  w.  of  U.  S.  Barracks,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Harmony,  2d  e.  of  Toledano,  from  river  to  Magazine,  4th  dist. 

Harney,  9th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Harrison  Avenue,  16th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St,  John  to  New  Orleans,  2d  dist. 

Havana,  1st  w.  of  London  avenue,  from  junction  of  Miro  and  St.  Bernard  avenue  n.  to  lake, 
3d  dist. 

Hendree,  6th  w.  of  Opelousas  R.R.,  from  river  s.  to  boundary  line  of  Jefferson  Parish,  5th  dist. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  63 

Henderson,  bet.  Terpsichore  and  Robin,  from  river  w.  to  Tchoupitoulas,  1st  dist. 

Henrietta,  2d  s.  of  Washin;?ton  avenue,  from  Telemacbus  to  Carrollton  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Henry,  13th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  continuation  of  Willow,  from  Upper  Line  v^.  to  Calhoun, 
6th  dist. 

Hercules,  now  Rampart, 

Herschel,  7th  s.  of  McDonough  avenue,  from  Washington  e.  to  Hancocli,  5th  dist. 

Hevia,  now  Lafayette. 

History,  now  Kerlerec. 

Hodge,  3d  ne.  of  St.  Charles,  continuation  of  Galvez,  from  Peters  avenue  w.  to  Calhoun, 
6th  dist. 

HoiiER,  6th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  Landing,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Hope,  -26  n.  of  Broad,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Elysian  Fields,  2d  dist. 

Hopkins,  3d  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  State  to  Fouchersville,  6th  dist. 

Hospital,  2d  s.  of  Esplanade,  from  river  w.  to  Broad,  2d  dist.;  recommences  at  New  Metairie 
road  and  runs  north  to  the  lake. 

Howe,  1st  e.  of  St.  John,  from  Esplanade  n.  to  Pleasure,  3d  dist. 

Humanity,  17th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Lower  Line, 
3d  dist. 

Hunter,  Istn.  of  Thalia,  from  Peters  to  Tchoupitoulas,  1st  dist. 

Hunters,  1st  e.  of  Franklin  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue,  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Hurst,  3d  n.  of  Prytania,  from  junction  St.  Charles  and  Valmont  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Ida,  2d  s.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Industry,  12th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Lower  Line. 

Independence,  12th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Woods,  3d  dist. 

Independence  Square,  bounded  by  Urquhart,  Robertson,  Spain  and  Music,  3d  dist. 

Jackson,  4th  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  nw.  to  Miro,  4th  dist. 

Jackson,  1st  s.  of  Market,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  di.st.  (Algiers). 

Jackson,  8th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary.  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Jackson  Avenue,  21st  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Jackson  Square  (formerly  Place  d'Armes),  between  Peters  and  Chartres,  St.  Peter  and  St. 
Ann,  fronting  St.  Louis  Cathedral,  2d  dist. 

Jacob  or  Jacobs,  now  Freret. 

James,  6th  sw.  of  Melpomene,  from  Broad  to  boundary, 

Jeanna,  14th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Jefferson,  4th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Jefferson,  bet.  Toulouse  and  St.  Peter,  from  Levee  to  Chartres,  2d  dist. 

Jefferson,  1st  e.  of  river,  from  Market  s.  to  Limits.  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Jena,  1st  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  fi'om  river  n.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Jennet,  2d  n.  of  Prytania,  from  Robert  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Jersey,  now  Annunciation. 

Johnson  (now  North  Johnson),  4th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  Lafayette  avenue,  2d 
and  3d  dists. 

Josephus  (formerly  Josephine),  14th  n.  of  River,  from  Lafayette  avenue  e.  to  limits,  3d  dist. 

Josephine,  now  Josephus,  3d  dist. 

Josephine,  3d  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  w.  to  Melpomene,  4th  dist. 

Josephine,  21st  e.  of  Lafayette  avenus,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Julia,  6th  s  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  Broad,  1st  dist. 

JuMONviLLE,  4th  w.  of  and  parallel  to  Paris  avenue,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  the  lake, 
3d  dist. 


54  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Kerlerec,  1st  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Chartres  w.  to  Bayou  Road,  3d  dist. 
Labatut,  w.  line  of  Fair  Grounds,  from  Esplanade  s.  to  Pleasure,  3d  dist. 
Lafayette.  1st  s.  of  Poydras,  from  river  w.  to  Rocheblava,  1st  dist. 

Lafayette  Avenite  (formerly  Enghien),  4tli  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  river  ne.  to  wood 
3d  dist. 

Lafayette  Square,  bounded  by  Camp  and  St.  Charles,  North  and  South,  1st  dist. 
La  Force,  7th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Lafayette  avenue  e.  to  limits,  3d  dist. 
Laharpe.  3d  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  junction  Marais  and  St.  Bernard  avenue  w.  to  Gentii 
road,  3d  dist. 

Lankes,  18th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  South  Line  to  North  Line,  7th  dk 
(Carrollton). 

Lane,  16th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.' John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Lapeyrouse,  4th  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Claiborne  n.  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Lapeyrouse,  10th  s.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  to  Sumner,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

La  Salle,  between  New  Orleans  Canal  and  cemeteries,  1st  dist. 

Laurel,  5th  w.  of  river,  from  Felicity  s.  to  Calhoun,  4th  and  6th  dists. 

Laurel  Grove,  11th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  Upper  Line  to  North  Lin 
rth  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Laurent  (now  Rampart). 

Lavergne,  4th  ne.  of  Canal  street  Ferry-landing,  from  river  se.  to  Peter,  5th  dist. 

Law,  Istn.  of  Broad,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  e.  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

Leonidas,  5th  nw.  of,  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dis 
(Carroll  I  on). 

Leomdas,  4th  8.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayei,„e  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Leontine,  6th  w.  of  Upper  Line,  from  river  n.  to  St.  Charles,  6th  dist. 

Leonce,  8th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  State  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Lepage,  from  junction  Broad  and  Bayou  road  nw.  to  Grand  Route  St.  John,  3d  diet. 

Lesseps.  18th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Levee,  4th  dist.  (now  Tchoupitoulas),  from  Felicity  to  Toledano. 

Levee  or  Front  Levee,  1st  and  4th  dists.  (now  Water). 

Levee  or  New  Levee,  1st,  2d  and  3d  dists.  (now  Peters). 

Levee.  2d  n.  of  river,  from  Toledano  s.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Levee,  2d  from  and  parallel  to  river,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Liberal,  6th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Lafayette  avenue,  e.  to  limits,  3d  dist. 

Liberal  (now  Camp). 

Liberty  (formerly  North  Liberty),  3d  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  n.  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

Liberty  (now  South  Liberty),  3d  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  s.  to  Philip,  4th  dist. 

LrvAUDAis,  e.  of  Bayou  St.  John,  from  Pleasure  to  Pelopidas,  3d  dist. 

LrviNGSTON.  1st  n.  of  Pelopidas.  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Live  Oak,  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  Upper  Line  to  Lower  Line. 

LrvE  Oak  (now  Constance). 

Locust,  now  Pine,  1st  e.  of  Lower  Line,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Locust,  6th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Common,  1st  dist.  s.  to  State,  6th  dist. 

LoNEON  Avenue,  8th  w.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  junction  St.  Bernard  avenue  and  Prieur  n. 
to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Long,  5th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  State  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Lopez  (now  South  Lopez),  5th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Lopez  (now  North  Lopez),  5th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Ursulines,  2d  dist. 

Louisa,  1st  dist.  (now  Calliope). 

Louisa,  7th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods.  3d  dist. 

Louisville,  between  Customhouse  and  Bienville,  from  New  Metairie  road  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 


urfT. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  55 

LomsiANA  Avenue,  1st  w.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Lower  Line,  divides  Greenville  and  CarroUton  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist. 
::;arrollton). 

Love  (now  Eampart). 
I     Lyon,  5th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Prytania,  6th  dist. 

Macartt,  3d  sw.  of  and  paraHel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Washington,  7th  dist.  (Car- 
ollton). 

Madison,  bet.  St.  Ann  and  Dumaine,  from  Peters  to  Chartres.  2d  dist. 

Madison,  2d  e.  of  river,  from  Market  s.  to  limits,  5th  cist.  (Alters). 

Madison,  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist  (Car- 
Dllton). 

Madmen,  e.  of  and  parallel  to  Franklin  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  to  the  lake,  Milne- 

Magazine,  6th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal,  1st  dist.  s.  to  Toledano,  thence  se.  to  Calhoun, 
th  dist. 

Magdalen  (now  Magnolia). 

Magellan,  9th  n.  of  Americus,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  5th  dist. 

Magistrate,  9th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Lafayette  avenue  e.  to  limits,  3d  dist. 

Magnolia,  7th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Common,  1st  dist.  s.  to  Toledano,  4th  dist.  thence  se.  to 
)wer  line  of  CarroUton,  6th  dist. 

Magnolia  Walk  (now  Broadway),  6th  dist. 

Mahomet,  2d  w.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  the  lake  s.  to  New  York,  3d  dist. 

Main  (now  Dumaine). 

Mandeville,  2d  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  river  n.  to  lake.  3d  dist. 

Manuel,  1st  w.  of  the  Ursulines  Convent,  from  river  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Marais,  4th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  thence  e.  to  Lafayette 
venue,  thence  se.  (formeriy  Morales)  to  Lower  Line.  3d  dist. 

Marengo,  llth  w.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Clara,  6th  dist. 

Marignt,  1st  e  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  river  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Marignt  Avenue,  north  city  limits,  Elysian  Fields  to  Bayou  St.  John. 

Market,  3d  s.  of  Patterson,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Market,  bet.  Richard  and  St.  James,  from  river  w.  to  FeUcity,  1st  dist. 

Market,  5th  n.  of  river,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Market  Place,  Peters  bet.  Market  and  St.  James,  1st  dist. 

Marks,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Eighteenth,  from  North  Line  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist.  (Car- 

Marlet  Avenue,  se.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  Belfast  to  parish  boundary, 
bh  dist.  (CarroUton). 

^Iarshall,  7th  s.  of  Melpomene,  from  Broad  w.  to  Peters  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Martin  (now  Willow). 

Mason.  5th  n  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Maunsel  (now  Magnolia). 

Maurepas,  2d  n.  of  Grand  Route  St.  John,  from  Bayou  Sauvage  w.  to  Esplanade,  3d  dist. 

McDonough  Avenue,  17th  s.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist. 

Melicerte  (now  Erato) 

Melpomene,  8th  s.  of  Julia,  from  St.  Thomas  w.  to  woods,  1st  dist. 

Memphis,  1st  w.  of  and  parallel  with  St.  Louis,  from  New  Metairie  road  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Mendez,  Ists.  of  Calhoun  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John. 

Mexico,  3d  s.  of  the  1  ike,  from  Bayou  St.  John  w.  to  Ursulines,  3d  dist. 

Michael  (now  Laurel). 

MiNTURN,  continuation  of  Broad,  from  Upper  Line  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 


56  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

MiLLAUDON,  7th  se.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  First,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton 
McLNE,  1st  w.  of  Customhouse,  from  Metairieroad  n.  to  the  lake,  2d  dist. 

Milton,  12th  s.  of  Americus,  from  Madison  e.  to  Hancock,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

MiRO  (now  North  Miro),  6th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  thence  e 
to  Lafayette  avenue,  2d  and  3d  dists. 

MiRo  (now  South  Miro),  6th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Lower  Line  of  Carrollton.  Ist 
4th  and  6th  dists. 

MiTHKA,  17th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John. 

Mobile,  2d  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Ninth,  from  Foucher,  boundary  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

MoLiERE,  commences  at  Calhoun  avenue,  cor.  Lafayette  avenue,  and  runs  n.  to  the  lake,  3c 
dist. 

Morales  (now  Marais),  3d  dist. 

Monroe,  4th  w.  of  IJ.  S.  Barracks,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Monroe,  9th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  parish  boundary,  9th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

Monroe,  3d  e.  of  river,  from  Market  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Monroe  Avenue,  1st  rear  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne. 

MoNTEGUT,  4th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

MoREAN  (now  Chartres). 

MouTON,  10th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

MuRAT,  nth  w.  of  Hagen  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Mystery,  4th  e.  of  Bayou  St.  John,  from  Esplanade  n.  to  Fair  Grounds,  3d  dist. 

Napoleon,  9th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Napoleon,  9th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  Metairie  road,  and  thence  n.  to  tht 
lake,  2d  dist. 

Napoleon,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Ninth,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Napoleon  Avenue,  14th  sw.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Nashville,  11th  w.  of  Upper  Line,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Natchez,  between  Gravier  and  Poydras,  from  Peters  w.  to  Camp,  1st  dist. 

Nayades,  now  St.  Charles. 

Nelson,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Mobile,  from  Foucher,  boundary  to  Upper  Line. 

New  Orleans,  from  junction  St.  Bernard  avenue  and  Derbigny  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

New  York,  3d  s.  of  Edinburgh  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John. 
Milneburg. 

Newton,  7th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  landing,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Ney,  1.5th  nw.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  North  Line  to  South  Line,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Ninth,  3d  e.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Chestnut,  4th  dist. 

Ninth,  15th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line. 

North,  ns.  of  Lafayette  square,  from  Camp  to  St.  Charles,  1st  dist. 

North  SIarket,  2d  s.  of  Julia,  from  river  w.  to  Tchoupitoulas.  1st  dist. 

Notre  Dame,  bet  Girod  and  Julia,  from  river  w.  to  Magazine. 

Nuns,  1st  n.  of  Felicity,  from  river  nw.  to  Felicity,  1st  dist. 

Oak,  2d  s.  of  Esplanade,  from  Gcntilly  road  w.  to  Rendon,  2d  dist. 

Oak,  6th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

OcTAviA,  1st  w.  of  Peters  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Octavia,  1st  s.  of  Market,  from  Bouny  e.  to  Moss,  5th  dist. 

Odin,  2d  s.  of  Calhoun  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John.  3d  dist. 

Old  Basin,  bet.  Carondelet  walk  and  Toulouse,  Franklin  and  St.  Claude,  2d  dist. 

Old  Levee,  now  Decatur. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  57 

Old  Magazine,  1st  w.  of  Constance,  from  Felicity  s.  to  St.  Mary,  4th  dist. 

Olympia,  12th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  CanaJ  n.  to  New  Metarie  road,  2d  dist. 

Olivier,  7th  w.  of  Opelousas  R.R.,  from  river  s.  to  Market,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Onzaga,  5th  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  nw.  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Orange,  12th  s.  of  Julia,  from  river  w.  to  camp,  1st  dist. 

O'Reilly,  8th  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  w.  to  Gentilly  road,  8d  dist. 

Orleans,  7th  n.  of  Canal,  from  Royal  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  2d  dist. 

Orleans  Avenue,  from  New  Metairie  road  through  City  Park  to  the  lake,  2d  dist. 

Otaheite,  4th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Lower  Line  to  Foucherville,  6th  dist. 

Ours  Avenue  (now  Calhoun  avenue),  3d  dist. 

Pacanier  (now  Chippewa)  4th  dist. 

Pacieic  Avenue,  3d  w.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.,  from  river  s.  to  boundary  line  of  Jefferson  Parish, 
5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Painters,  7th  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  Lafayette  avenue  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Palmyra,  2d  s.  of  Canal,  from  Claiborne  w.  to  cemeteries,  1st  dist. 

Paris  Avenue,  8th  e.  of  and  parallel  to  Bayou  St.  John,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  the 
lake,  3d  district. 

Patriots,  22d  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

Patterson,  or  Public  road,  1st  s.  of  river,  from  Canal  street  Ferry  landing  e.  to  limits, 
5th  dist. 

Peace,  or  Kerlerec,  1st  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Chartres  w.  to  Dauphin,  3d  dist. 

Pauline,  13th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Pearl,  bet.  Peters  and  Tchoupitoulas,  from  Delord  to  Calliope,  1st  dist. 

Pearl,  1st  s.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Levee  to  Levee  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Pelopidas,  7th  s.  of  and  parallel  to  Monroe  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenue. 

Peniston,  7th  s.  of  Toledano,  from  river  n.  to  Claiborne,  6th  dist. 

Penn,  1st  w.  of  Baronne,  from  Perdido  s.  to  Poydras,  1st  dist. 

Penn,  12th  s.  of  Patterson,  from  Hancock  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Pensacola  Landing,  head  of  New  Basin  and  parallel  with  Rampart.  1st  dist. 

People's  Avenue,  4th  e.  of  and  parallel  with  Franklin  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  to 
uhe  lake,  Milneburg, 

Perdido,  4th  s.  of  Canal,  from  St.  Charles  w.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Periander,  4th  s.  of  Americus,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  McDonough. 

Perrier,  3d  s.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Amelia  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Perilliat,  between  Lafayette  and  Cypress,  fronting  City  Workhouse,  from  Liberty  w.  to 
Magnolia,  1st  dist. 

Perry,  2d  s.  of  Americus,  from  river  e.  to  Hancock,  5th  dist. 

Peter,  2d  s.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  to  Sumner,  5th  dist. 

Peters,  6th  dist.  (now  Prieur). 

Peters,  (now  South  Peters)  formerly  New  Levee,  5th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Felicity,  1st 
and  4th  dists. 

Peters,  (now  North  Peters),  4th  w.  of  river,  (formerly  New  Levee),  from  Canal  to  St.  Louis, 
2d  dist.,  intersected  and  recommences  at  Dumaine,  and  recommences  numbering  at  Ursulines ; 
from  thence  n.  (formerly  Levee),  along  river  bank  to  lower  limits,  2d  and  3d  dists. 

Peters  Avenue,  13th  sw.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Petre,  8th  e.  of  Adams,  from  La  Force  n.  to  woods,  3rd  dist. 

Philip,  5th  sw.  of  Felicity,  from  river  to  Claiborne,  4th  dist. 

Philip,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Live  Oaks,  from  South  Line  to  North  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Phillippa,  1st  dist.  (now  Dryades). 

Piety,  8th  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  the  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Pine,  1st  dist.  (now  Freret). 


58 


HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


Pine  (formerly  Locust),  1st  e.  of  Lower  Line,  CarroUton,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Pitt,  1st  se.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Amelia  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Plaquemine  (now  Coliseum). 

Plauche  (now  Marais). 

Pleasant,  1st  e.  of  Toledano,  from  river  nw.  to  St.  Charles,  4th  dist. 

Place  d'Armes,  betw.  Rampart  and  St.  Claude,  St.  Peter  and  St.  Anne,  2d  dist. 

Pleasure,  4th  n.  of  Fair  grounds,  from  Bayou  St.  John  e.  to  lower  limits,  3d  dist. 

Pltjm,  7th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line. 

Poet  (now  Washins?ton),  3d  dist. 

Poyefarre,  bet.  Delord  and  Calliope,  from  Tchoupitoulas  to  Camp,  1st  dist. 

Poland,  1st  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Polk  Avenue,  llth  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  MUne,  2d  dist. 

PoLYMNiA,  2d  n.  of  Felicity,  from  Camp  w.  to  Rampart,  1st  dist. 

PoLTMNiA,  2d  sw.  of  Tcrpsichorc,  from  Broad  ne.  to  St.  John  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Pope,  commences  at  Lafayette  avenue,  cor.  Virginius,  and  runs  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Port,  all  along  Bayou  St.  John,  from  Carondelet  walk  to  Esplanade,  2d  dist. 

Port,  1st  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  rtver  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Powder,  2d  from  Canal  street  Ferry  landing,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

PoTDRAs,  6th  e.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Preaux,  4th  e.  of  Bayou  St.  John,  from  Pleasure  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Pressburg,  2d  n.  of  Calhoun  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Press  (formerly  Cotton  Press),  3d  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Preston.  3d  n.  of  river,  from  Peters  avenue,  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Prieur  (now  South  Prieur),  3d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Calhoun,  1st,  4th,  and 
6th  dists. 

Prieur  (now  North  Prieur),  3d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  thence 
6.  to  Lafayette  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Pritchard  (see  Brickyard)  3d  dist. 

Princhard,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Twelfth,  from  Lower  line  to  Upper  line,  7th  dist. 
(CarroUton). 

PrYtania,  1st  e.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Delord,  1st  dist.,  sw.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Ptolemy,  12th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  landing,  from  river  e.  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Pulaski,  bet.  Jackson  and  Philip,  from  St.  Charles  to  Carondelet,  4th  dist. 

Public  Road,  along  bank  of  river  from  Lower  line  to  Upper  line,  7th  dist.  (CarroUton). 

Rampart  (now  North  Rampart),  13th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Columbus,  thence  e.  to 
1  wer  limits,  3d  dist. 

Rampart  now  South  Rampart),  13th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Toledano,  4th  dist  thence 
to  State,  6th  dist. 

Reede,  commences  at  Lafayette  avenue,  cor.  Livingston,  and  runs  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Religious,  4th  w.  of  river,  from  Robin,  1st  dist.  s.  to  St.  Andrew,  4th  dist. 

Hendon  (now  South  Rendon),  6th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  s.  to  Peters  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Rendon  (now  North  Rendon,  formerly  Second),  6th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Esplanade 
2d  dist.  ' 

Reynes,  3d  e.  of  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Richard,  14th  s.  of  St.  Joseph,  from  river  w.  to  Camp,  1st  dist. 

Richelieu,  4th  n.  of  Fair  Grounds,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Ridgeley,  13th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

RiNGOLD,  12th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Robert,  7th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Robertson  (now  North  Robertson).  6th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue, 
thence  e.  to  limits,  3d  district. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  59 

Robertson  (now  South  Robertson),  6th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Canal  s.   to  Common,  1st  dist. 

Robin,  10th  s    of  St.  Joseph,  from  river  w.  to  Camp,  1st  dist. 

RocHEBLAVE  (now  North  Rocheblave),  8th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard 
avenue,  3d  dist. 

Rocheblave  (now  South  Rocheblave),  8th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Napoleon 
avenue,  6th  dist. 

Roman  (now  North  Roman),  2d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue 
thence  e.  to  Lafayette  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Roman  (now  South  Roman),  2d  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Upper  line,  6th  dist. 

Rose,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Washington,  from  Lower  Line  to  Foucher,  boundary.  Greenville, 
7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Rose  (now  Boree),  11th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Rossiere,  4th  nw.  of  Broad,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  Gentilly  road,  3d  dist. 

Rossini,  commences  at  Lafayette  avenue,  cor.  Mithra,  and  runs  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

Royal,  eth  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  n.  to  Kerlerec,  thence  e.  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

Rosseau.  3d  w.  of  river,  from  Felicity  to  Washington  avenue,  4th  dist. 

Salcedo  (now  South  Salcedo),  4th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  s.  to  Upper  Line,  6th  dist. 

Salcedo  (now  North  Salcedo),  4th  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Esplanade.  2d  dist. 

Salomon,  1st  w.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  Columbia  n.  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Sauvage,  from  Fair  Grounds  to  Marigny  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Sauve,  12th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Sauve,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Washington,  from  Lower  Line  to  Foucher,  boundary  Green- 
ville, 7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Scott.  1st  n.  of  Taylor  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Second,  9th  sw.  of  Felicity,  from  river  nw.  to  Broad,  4th  dist. 

Second,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Foucher  boundary,  GreenvUle  to  Jefferson,  7th  dist 
(Carrollton). 

SEGtriN,  2d  e.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  Landing,  from  landing  se.  to  Market,  5th  dist. 

Sere,  21  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenue,  3d  dist. 

Seventeenth,  14th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Mobile,  from  Canal  avenue  to  North  Line,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Seventh,  2d  w.  Washington  avenue,  from  river  nw.  to  Magnolia,  4th  dist. 

Seventh,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Shakspeare,  commences  at  Monroe  avenue,  comer  Lafayette  avenue,  and  runs  n.  to  the 
lake,  3d  dist. 

Shell  Road,  along  bank  of  New  Canal,  from  Delord  to  lake.  1st  dist. 

Sixth,  1st  s.  of  Washington  avenue,  from  river  nw.  to  Claiborne,  4th  dist. 

Sixth,  10th  n.  of  and  parallel  to  First;  fro-n  Lower  Line  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist.  (Car 
•:.llfon). 

Socrates,  2d  n.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Socrates,  11th  s.  of  Canal  street  Ferry  Landing,  from  river  e.  to  Sumner.  5th  dist. 

SoLiDELLE,  2d  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Lafayette  avenue  e.  to  lower  limits,  3rd  dist. 

SoLis  (now  Locus),  4th  dist. 

Solomon,  8th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Solomon,  8th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  New  Metairie  road,  thence  north  to 
lay,  2d  dist. 

Solon,  8th  s.  of  and  parallel  to  Monroe  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette  avenue, 
8d  dist. 

Solon,  10th  s.  of  Americus,  from  Jefferson  e.  to  Hancock,  5th  dist. 

SONL4.T,  8th  sw.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Claiborne.  6th  dist. 

SoBAPARu,  bet.  Philip  and  First,  from  river  n,  to  Annunciation,  4th  dist. 


60  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

SouLE,  4th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  Upper  Line  to  Bloomi  gdale,  6th  dist. 

South,  all  streets  crossing  Canal  street,  and  numbering  both  directions  from  it  (those 
running  south). 

South,  south  side  of  Lafayette  square,  from  Camp  to  St.  Charles,  1st  dist. 

South  Market,  bet.  Market  and  Richard,  from  river  w.  to  Tchoupitoulas,  1st  dist. 

Spain,  3d  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  river  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

St.  Adelij^,  2d  nw.  of  Claiborne,  from  Common  s.  to  Poydras,  1st  dist. 

St.  Andrew,  2d  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  w.  to  Claiborne,  4th  dist. 

St.  Ann,  8th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  Metairie  road,  thence  north  to  the  lake,  2d  dist. 

St.  Anthont,  4th  ne.  of  Esplanade,  from  Rampart  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

St.  Anthony  Place,  Royal,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann,  2d  dist. 

St.  Bartholomew,  now  Erato. 

St.  Bernard,  6th  w.  of  Pontchartrain  R.  R.,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

St.  Bernard  Avenue,  3d  e.  of  Esplanade,  from  St.  Claude  nw.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

St.  Charles,  8th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Upper  Line,  thence  w.  to  Lower  Line  Carrolton, 
1st,  4th  and  6th  dists. 

St.  Claude  (formerly  Good  Children),  1st  w.  and  n.  of  Rampart,  from  Carondelet  walk,  3d 
dist.  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  thence  e.  to  Lower  Line,  3d  dist. 

St.  David,  6th  w.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Philip  se.  to  Calhoun,  4th  and  6th  dists. 

St.  DenIs,  now  Rampart. 

St.  Ferdinand,  2d  e.  of  Lafayette  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

St.  Francis,  now  Church,  1st  dist. 

St.  George,  4th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  First,  4th  dist.  sw.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

St.  James,  16th  s.  of  St.  Joseph,  from  river  uw.  to  Felicity,  1st  dist. 

St.  James,  1st  dist.,  now  Pierce. 

St.  James,  6th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Ann,  2d  dist. 

St.  John,  from  junction  of  Esplanade  aud  Broad  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  2d  dist. 

St.  John's  Avenue,  7th  w.  of  Broad,  from  New  Canal  w.  to  Peters  avenue,  6th  dist. 

St.  John  Grand  Route  (see  Grand  Route  St   John). 

St.  Joseph,  8th  s.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  Dryades,  1st  dist. 

St.  Mary,  1st  dist.,  now  Locust. 

St.  Mary,  1st  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  w.  to  Carondelet,  4th  dist. 

St.  Patrick,  13th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

St.  Patrick,  13th  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  Metairie  road,  2d  dist. 

St.  Patrick,  5th  nw.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Toledano  sw.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

St.  Peter,  6th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  thence  n.  to  the  lake, 
2d  dist. 

St.  Philip,  10th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  thence  n.  to  May,  2d  dist. 

St.  Theresa,  4th  s.  of  Calliope,  from  Tchoupitoulas  to  St.  Thomas,  1st  dist. 

St.  Thomas,  5th  w.  of  river,  from  Gaiennie,  1st  dist.,  to  Toledano,  4th  dist. 

State,  13th  w.  of  Upper  Line,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Stephanis,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  16th,  Foucher  boundary  to  North  Line. 

Stephen  Girard,  5th  s.  of  and  parallel  to  Monroe  avenue,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Lafayette 
avenue,  3d  dist. 

Story,  15th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Upper  Line  w.  to  Calhoun,  6th  dist. 

Sturken's  Alley,  bet.  Conti  and  St  Louis,  from  Liberty  to  Marais,  2d  dist. 

Sumner,  7th  w.  of  Opelousas  R.R.,  from  river  s.  to  limits,  5th  dist.    (Algiers.) 

SuzETTE,  now  Erato,  1st  dist. 

Swamp,  1st  w.  of  Bayou  Sauvage,  from  Grande  Route  St.  John  n.  to  Pleasure,  3d  dist. 

Taylor  Avenue,  6th  n.  of  City  Park,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Tchoupitoulas,  6th  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  s.  to  Joseph,  4th  and  6th  dists. 


NTp  HOUSF  ROYAl,  ST  i 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  •  61 

Telemachits  (now  North  Telemachus),  3d  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  n.  to  Bayou 
St.  John,  2d  dist. 

Telemachus  (now  South  Telemachus),  3d  w.  of  Hagan  avenue,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal, 
1st  dist. 

Teknessee,  1st  e.  of  Convent  of  the  Ursulines,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Tenth  (now  Mobile),  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Foucher,  boundary  to  Upper  Line, 
7th  dist  (Carrollton). 

Terpsichore,  9th  s.  of  St.  Joseph,  from  river  w.  to  Freret,  4th  dist. 

Terpsichore,  1st  s.  of  Melpomene,  from  Broad  s.  to  St.  John's  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Thalia  (formerly  Benjamin  and  Estelle),  6th  s.  of  St.  Joseph,  from  river  w.  to  limits, 
1st  dist. 

Thayre,  2d  s.  of  Patterson,  from  Thayre  avenue  e.  to  Opelousas  R.  R.,  5th  dist. 

Theresa,  1st  n.  of  Terpsichore,  from  Tchoupitoulas  to  St.  Thomas,  1st  dist. 

Third,  6th  s.  of  Felicity,  from  river  nw.  to  Broad,  4th  dist. 

Third,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Foucher,  boundary  to  Monroe,  7th  dist.  (Car- 
rollton). 

Thirteenth,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  Princhard,  from  Foucher,  boundary,  to  Upper  Line, 
Tth  dist.  (Carrollton). 

Thompson  (now  Pacific  avenue),  Algiers. 

TiMOLEON,  1st  n.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

TrvoLi  Circle,  junction  of  St.  Charles  and  Delord,  1st  dist.  (now  Lee  Circle). 

ToLEDANO,  dividing  4th  and  6th  dists.,  from  river  nw.  to  limits. 

ToNTi  (now  North  Tonti),  7th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  n.  to  St.  Bernard  avenue,  2d  and 
3d  dists. 

ToxTi  (now  South  Tonti),  7th  w.  of  Claiborne,  from  Canal  s.  to  Calhoun,  1st,  4th  and  6th 
dists. 

ToiTLOUSE,  5th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  thence  n.  to  May,  2d  dist. 

Treme  (now  Liberty). 

Triakgle,  1st  s.  of  Delord,  from  Front  to  Peters,  1st  dist. 

Tricotj,  3d  w.  of  U.  S.  Barracks,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

TwELTTH,  4th  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  Mobile,  Foucher,  boundary,  to  Upper  Line,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Twentieth,  ne.  of  and  parallel  to  Stephania,  from  Hamilton  to  parish  boundary,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Twiggs,  14th  s.  of  the  lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Ulloa,  6th  s.  of  Canal,  from  Genois  w.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

Union,  2d  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  junction  of  Royal  and  Kerlerec  n.  to  lake,  3d  dist. 

U.  S.  Barracks,  or  Jackson  Barracks,  near  lower  city  limits,  3d  dist. 

University  Place,  Dryades,  bet.  Canal  and  Common,  1st  dist. 

Upper  Line,  6th  w.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Broad,  6th  dist. 

Upper  Line,  divides  Carrollton  and  New  Carrollton,  from  river  to  Edinburgh,  7th  dist. 
(Carrollton). 

Urania,  1st  n.  of  Felicity,  continuation  of  Orange,  from  Camp  to  Felicity,  1st  dist. 

Urania,  4th  s.  of  Melpomene,  from  Broad  w.  to  St.  John's  avenue,  6th  dist. 

Urquhart,  2d  n.  of  St.  Claude,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  e.  to  lower  limits,  3d  dist. 

Ursulines,  11th  n.  of  Canal,  from  river  w.  to  New  Metairie  road,  thence  north  to  May, 
ad  dist. 

Valence,  3d  sw.  of  Napoleon  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  Clara,  6th  dist. 

Valette,  6th  e.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  s.  to  boundary  line,  5th  dist. 

Valmont,  5th  w.  of  Upper  Line,  from  river  n.  to  Chestnut.  ^ 

Vabiettes  Place,  between  Carondelet  and  Baron  ne,  from  Common  to  Gravier,  1st  dist. 


62  *  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Verket  Avenue,  1st  w.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.,  from  rivers,  to  limits,  5th  dist.  (Aleriers). 

Verret,  5th  e.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  river  to  Lapeyrouse,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

ViCKSBTJRG,  bet.  Bienville  and  Conti,  from  New  Metairie  road  to  the  lake,  3d  dist. 

Victory  (now  Decatur) . 

Vienna,  3d  n.  of  Calhoun  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

ViLLERE,  1st  s.  of  Canal  street  ferry  landing,  from  Seguin  ne.  to  Verret,  5th  dist. 

Virginia,  bet.  the  cemeteries  and  New  Orleans  Canal,  1st  dist. 

ViRGiNius,  3d  s.  of  Monroe  avenue,  from  Lafayette  avenue  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  dist. 

Virtue,  8th  n.  of  Claiborne,  from  St.  Bernard  avenue  e.  to  lower  limits,  3d  dist. 

"Walker,  9th  s.  of  the  Lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Wall,  7th  sw.  of  and  parallel  to  First,  from  Lower  Line  to  Millaudon,  7th  dist.  (CarroUton), 

Walnut,  4th  e.  of  Lower  Line,  from  river  n.  to  woods,  6th  dist. 

Wandorf,  10  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Wapping,  9th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Warren,  8th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 
■  Warsaw,  7th  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6th  dist. 

Washington,  5th  w.  of  Opelousas  E.  R. ,  from  river  s.  to  woods,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Washington,  1st  n.  of  St.  Charles,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Lower  Line,  6i.h  dist. 

Washington,  1st  n.  of  Esplanade,  from  Broad  w.  to  Bayou  St.  John,  3d  to  2d  dist. 

Washington  (formerly  Poet),  4th  e.  of  Elysian  Fields,  from  Decatur  n.  to  Lake,  3d  dist. 

Washington,  2d  se.  of  and  parallel  to  Canal  avenue,  from  river  to  Sixteenth,  7th  dist. 
(Algiers). 

WASHrNTGTON  AvENUE,  12th  SW.  of  Felicity,  from  river  n  w.  to  Broad,  4th  dist. 

Water  (now  North  Water),  fronting  the  river  from  Canal  n.  to  Bienville,  2d  dist. 

Water  (now  South  Water),  fronting  the  river  from  Canals,  to  Race,  1st  dist. 

Water,  2d  n.  of  river,  from  Walnut  w.  to  Pine,  6th  dist. 

Water,  1st.  from  the  river,  from  Joseph  to  Bordeaux,  6th  dist. 

Webster  Avenue,  4th  w.  of  Opelousas  R.  R.,  from  river  s.  to  limits,  5th  dist. 

Webster,  7th  w.  of  Peters  avenue,  from  river  n.  to  St.  Charles,  6th  dist. 

Wells,  2d  w.  of  river,  from  Canal  to  Bienville,  2d  dist. 

White  (now  North  White),  1st  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  n.  to  Grande  Route  St.  John,  2d  and 
8d  dists. 

White,  1st  and  4th  dists.  (now  Basin). 

White  (now  South  White),  1st  w.  of  Broad,  from  Canal  s.  to  New  Canal,  1st  dist. 

William,  1st  e.  of  Adams,  from  Liberal  n.  to  woods,  3d  dist. 

Willow,  9th  w.  of  Rampart,  from  Common  s.  to  Upper  Line,  6th  dist. 

Withers  Alley,  bet.  Gaiennie  and  Erato,  from  Front  to  Peters,  1st  dist. 

Worth,  7th  s.  of  the  Lake,  from  Bayou  St.  John  to  Milne,  2d  dist. 

Zbmpel,  n.  of  and  parallel  to  Third,  from  Lower  Line  to  Eagle. 


GUIDE  TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  63 


CHAPTER  VII.— SIGHTS  ABOUT  TOWN. 

THE  INTERESTING   FEATURES   OF  NEW  ORLEANS— ROMANTIC   AND   HISTORICAL  EDIFICES — 
THE  CHIEF  CHURCHES    AND    OTHER  PUBLIC   BUILDINGS. 

Most  visitors  to  New  Orleans  imagine  that  they  have  "done  "  the  city  when  they  have  seen 
the  carnival,  been  to  the  lake,  had  the  proverbial  fish  dinner,  been  to  the  Metairie  cemetery,  to 
CarroUton,  to  the  Jockey  Club,  and  to  the  French  market.  This  is  a  ^reat  error.  There  is  no 
city,  presenting  more  interesting  sights,  but  these  are  seldom  visited,  particularly  in  the  French 
quarter  of  the  town.  There,  odd  little  balconies  and  galleries  jut  out  from  the  tall,  dingy^ 
wrinkled  houses,  peering  into  each  other's  faces  as  if  in  eternal  confab.  There,  queer  little 
shops  are  to  be  found,  apothecaries'  and  musty  stores  where  old  furniture,  brasses,  bronzes  and 
books  are  sold,  bird  stores  innumerable,  where  alligators  are  to  be  purchased  as  well— all  these 
lying  in  a  sort  of  half  doze. 

A  tour  through  any  of  these  streets  will  bring  before  one  sights  to  be  found  nowhere  else 
in  the  world. 

Chartres  street  is  very  picturesque,  not  merely  to  walk  along,  keeping  your  gaze  at  a  level ; 
but  to  halt  and  look  up  the  street  and  down,  at  the  oddly  furnished  galleries  that  look  as  if  the 
rooms  had  come  out  to  see  what  the  neighbors  were  after.  And  one  must  halt  and  peer  into 
doorways,  even  slyly  penetrating  a  yard  or  so  into  some  of  the  long,  dark  tunnel  entrances  in 
search  of  the  paved  court-yards,  with  arched  piazzas  or  porticoes,  such  as  one  may  see  in 
Venice  under  the  shadows  of  St.  Mark's. 

The  inhabitants  of  the  grim  houses  are  very  kind  ;  they  will  see  the  stranger  peering  out  of 
your  eyes,  the  curious  admiration,  and  will  smile  graciously,  and  with  a  prettily  mingled  air  of 
graciousness  and  reserve  motion  you  to  look  your  fill.  In  most  of  these  court-yards  you  will 
find  plants  in  huge  pots,  pomegranate  trees,  flowering  shrubs;  sometimes  you  will  see  a  bat- 
tered bronze  statue,  or  a  marble  figure,  gone  as  gray  as  any  old  Creole  darkey  that  smiles  a 
"bon  jour  "  to  you  from  the  banquette.  And  you  will  see  great  yellow  and  earthen  water- jars, 
the  ones  in  which  the  "  Forty  Thieves  "  were  hid  on  a  memorable  occasion,  but  which  have  been 
transported  into  Frenchtown  and  numerously  duplicated.  These  huge  jars  add  much  to  the 
charm  of  the  soggy  court-yards. 

There  is  nothing  really  of  note  to  detain  one  in  Chartres  street  until  the  old  Cathedral  is 
reached.  It  stands  between  two  of  the  most  picturesque  buildings  in  New  Orleans— the  old 
court-houses,  built  a  little  before  the  birth  of  the  present  century  by  Don  Andreas  Almonaster, 
a  Spanish  noble,  the  old  histories  of  the  town  say,  and  who  was  also  perpetual  regidor.  Those 
buildings  with  their  dormer  windows  and  stuccoed  balustrades  "peeling  off  for  their  final 
plunge  into  oblivion  "  have  looked  down  on  many  an  execution  in  the  Place  d'Armes,  which 
has  been  called  "  Jackson  Square  "  ever  since  the  General's  statue  was  erected  under  the 
orange  and  banana  trees  of  the  sweet  old  garden. 

An  old  lady  who  lived  for  a  long  time  in  the  old  Pontalba  Buildings  that  are  drawn  up  like 
twin  regiments  of  French  soldiers  on  either  side  the  square,  says  she  can  remember  a  day  when 
three  pirates  were  hung  in  the  Square.  She  is  old  and  gray  and  wears  time's  white  snows 
wreathed  on  her  gentle  brows  ;  may  be  she  can  remember  such  a  scene. 

In  the  "  Cathedral  of  St.  Louis  "  a  number  of  persons  lie  buried.  Pere  Antoine,  whom  the 
same  old  history  of  the  town  calls  a  good  and  benevolent  and  saintly  man,  died  in  1829 ; 
and  during  the  forty  or  fifty  years  he  lived  in  New  Orleans  he  must  have  baptized,  married  and 
buried  two-thirds  of  the  persons  who  were  born,  married  and  who  died  in  that  time.  Only  a 
short  time  ago  the  gray  stones  were  torn  up  by  the  roots,  and  the  form  of  Archbishop  Perche 


64  HISTORICAL  SKETCH   BOOK. 

was  buried  away  under  the  great  altar.  A  marble  angel  broods  over  the  top  of  this  altar.  The 
huge  yellow  cross  her  arms  embrace  is  said  to  be  all  of  true,  pure  gold.  A  narrow  paved  alley- 
way runs  down  by  the  high  Cathedral  walls  from  Chartres  street  through  to  Royal. 

Tall,  many-storied  houses  look  down  on  the  alley,  which  is  named  after  blessed  St.  Antoine, 
and  the  sweet,  green  garden  that  blossoms  and  grows  behind  the  church.  The  balconies  are 
hidden  behind  lattice  work,  and  behind  the  lattices  the  priests  who  belong  to  the  cathedral  live 
their  simple,  frugal  lives.  Their  homes  are  plain,  their  fare  is  scanty,  their  lives  austere.  It  is 
pretty  and  pathetic  to  note  how  these  men  cultivate  and  care  for  the  pots  and  boxes  of  flowers 
that  grow  on  their  galleries. 

Two  or  three  blocks  further  down  Chartres  street,  one  comes  to  a  garden  wall,  dingy  and 
dark,  that  is  set  up  close  beside  the  small  St.  Mary's  Church.  Behind  the  wall  is  the  present 
Archiepiscopal  Palace.  Here  lives  the  Archbishop ;  his  life  is  almost  as  hard  as  that  of  a 
Carmelite,  and  the  old  Palace  seems  never  to  have  drawn  a  dry  breath  since  its  walls,  three 
feet  thick  they  are,  were  mortared  into  place.  This  used  to  be  the  Ursuline  Convent,  and  was 
occupied  thus  for  nearly  a  century.  The  nuns  moved  from  it  in  1824.  The  doorkeeper  at  the 
Palace  is  a  trifle  crusty,  as  all  good  sentinels  ought  to  be,  but  visitors  can  gain  admittance  and 
look  through  the  curious  old  place  with  its  cells  and  refectories  and  sunken  stone  stairways, 
with  balustrades  of  iron  that  are  worn  thin  and  shadowy  by  the  touch  of  vanished  hands. 

Visitors  should  ask  for  Father  Eouquette,  one  of  the  gentlest  priests  and  best  of  men,  and  a 
most  exquisite  writer  in  his  own  language,  the  French,  He  is  a  missionary  to  the  Indians,  and 
lives  most  of  his  time  with  them  in  the  tangled  woods  of  St.  Tammany,  or  when  at  the  Palace  they 
come  from  across  the  Lake  waters  and  talk  with  him,  squa4;tiDg  on  the  dusty  floor  of  his  bare 
little  room. 

One  can  step  from  the  Palace  right  into  "St.  Mary's  Chapel,"  where  the  Archbishop  often 
holds  service.  Up  over  the  altar  of  this  chapel,  one  of  the  oldest  in  the  town,  is  a  doorway 
hung  with  dark  curtains,  and  many  times  the  worshippers  in  the  church  have  seen  the  wan, 
sweet  face  of  the  old  Archbishop,  he  who  died  the  other  day,  looking  down  on  them  from 
between  the  parted  curtains,  as  with  lifted  hand  he  sent  his  benedictions  on  their  bent  heads. 
Here  in  this  chapel  the  Archbishop's  body  lay  in  state  for  nearly  a  week. 

Now,  if  you  will  go  around  Hospital  to  Royal  street,  you  will  find  on  the  corner  an  immense 
house,  which  is  a  fine  sample  of  the  former  elegance  of  the  houses  of  the  wealthy  people  of 
New  Orleans.  It  is  rich  with  carvings;  richer  in  associations.  It  has  been  lived  in  by  great 
men.  There  is  one  room  in  which  Louis  Phillippe  has  slept,  Lafayette  and  Marechal  Ney.  From 
the  observatory  one  gets  the  fi^nest  view  of  the  lower  part  of  the  city,  for  it  Is  the  highest 
point  in  Frenchtown,  excepting  of  course,  the  Cathedral  towers. 

Turning  down  Royal  street  toward  Canal,  one  finds  much  that  is  charming.  One  should 
look  up  and  note  how  fond  the  old  architects  were  of  exterior  decoration,  for  the  white  cornices 
up  under  the  eaves  are  generally  richly  carved.  Many  of  these  houses  have  entre  «o^5— that  is  a 
sort  of  half-story  between  the  first  and  second  floor;  and  tiny  windows  with  carved  stone  or 
wooden  balustrades,  are  sunk  into  the  walls  across  the  window  space. 

In  fact,  there  is  nothing  in  Frenchtown  more  noteworthy  than  the  windows  of  the  houses. 
They  are  round,  peaked,  mere  little  rod-barred  holes  in  the  wall,  gashes  ;  they  are  fllled  with 
panes  of  stained  glass,  with  dozens  of  tiny  panes,  with  doors  half  of  wood  the  rest  of  glass, 
with  lattice  work,  or  broad,  flat  jalousies,  once  painted  green  ;  they  are  any  and  all  of  these, 
and  are  any  and  everything  except  the  modern  conventional  windows  of  the  architecture 
of  1884. 

Rooms  are  to  be  rented  in  many  of  these  houses,  as  the  dangling  sign,  "  Chambres  d  loner," 
let  down  by  a  bit  of  string  from  one  of  the  upper  galleries,  will  inform  you. 

There  is  one  fine  house  on  Royal  street  not  very  far  from  Hospital.  The  entrance  is  a  very 
wide  alley,  cool  and  refreshing,  with  the  stout  gates  of  solid  wood  always  standing  wide  open. 
The  flags  are  always  clean.    The  stone  walls  are  painted,  with  dados  of  pale  brown  and  cool 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  65 

green  over  the  rest  of  the  space.  A  tiny  little  yellow  stream  of  Mississippi  water— Madame 
Delicieuse  might  have  arched  her  dainty  instep  over  it— flows  always  close  by  the  wall,  over  the 
flags.  It  makes  a  little  rushing  musical  sound  as  it  washes  into  the  stone  at  the  end  of  the  alley- 
way. And  out  of  sight  of  the  street  a  broad  flight  of  stairs  lead  up  into  a  beautiful  and  elegant 
home.  From  the  street  one  sees  enticiag  green  plants  and  the  gray  iron  tank  of  a  tinkling  fountain 
that  sends  a  thin  stream  of  water  in  a  needle-fine  spray  high  into  the  air.  A  purple  band  along 
the  garden  walks  shows  how  plentifully  sweet  violets  grow.  Little  tufts  of  white  moss-like 
blossom  appear  at  intervals  on  the  twigs  of  the  sweet-olive  plants,  and  the  air  is  heavenly  with 
delicious  odors. 

At  25.3  Royal  street  is  the  tiny  cottage,  with  its  bristling  ridge  of  tUes  on  the  comb  of  the 
roof,  in  which  lived  "Madame  Delphine."  On  "Dumaine  street,  between  Royal  and  Chartres 
street,  is  the  ragged  house  of  M'me  John.  Cluttsred-up  galleries  stand  on  the  street,  and 
the  gray  roof,  like  an  overhanging  brow,  throws  the  wet  sidewalk  into  shadow.  Anything 
more  decrepit  cannot  be  imagined.  One  end  of  the  gallery  is  littered  with  old  tubs,  stone 
water  jars,  more  of  the  "Forty  Thieves,"  broken  boxes,  all  piled  together.  The  battered 
weather-beaten  sign  of  a  sage  femme  now  dangles  from  one  of  the  shrunken  green  porch  pillars. 

In  Toulouse  street,  near  Royal,  is  the  crumbled  ruin  of  the  old  Citizens'  Eank.  The  only 
deposit  this  bank  has  now  is  weeds,  dirt,  and  vermin.  It  smeUs  of  bats  ;  it  is  rank  with 
weeds.  In  the  blaze  of  summer  its  ruined  marble  walls  and  broken  roofs  are  illumin- 
ated by  the  great  yellow,  flaring  bloom  of  the  golden  rod.  The  skeleton  stalks  of  the  last 
year's  lamps  dip  in  the  wind  now.  Toads,  rats,  and  weeds  dispute  for  the  front  steps.  Even 
tramps  avoid  seeking  shelter  in  its  gloomy  ruins.  Two  or  three  odd  little  second-hand  shops 
wUl  be  found  in  Toulouse  street,  near  the  bank. 

Another  place  worthy  of  note  is  the  Academy  of  the  Bon  Secours  in  Orleans  street,  between 
Royal  and  Bourbon.  The  little  green  garden  of  the  Cathedral  looks  right  out  on  this  convent 
school.  The  front  of  the  building  jamb  on  the  street  is  of  pinkish  color,  and  with  its  por- 
tico roof  thrown  over  the  sidewalk  looks  more  like  some  grand  hotel  entrance  or  theatre 
front  getting  superannuated.  On  the  corner  of  Bourbon  and  Orleans  used  to  stand  the  gay 
old  Orleans  Theatre,  and  this  convent  was  the  dance  house  of  the  theatre,  the  ball  and  sup- 
per room,  and  in  this  building  used  to  be  given  those  famous  "quadroon  "  baUs. 

The  visitor  will  be  startled  when  he  rings  at  the  convent  bell,  and  the  door  opens  in  on 
that  fine  marble  floor  that  has  been  in  its  time  pressed  by  the  satin-clad  feet  of  so  many 
sadly,  fatally  beautiful  women,  to  find  himself  in  the  presence  of  a  colored  sister  of  charity. 
The  famous  dance  hall  for  quadroon  women  has  become  a  convent  for  colored  sisters  of 
charity. 

The  old  Spanish  barracks  were  located  at  270  Royal  street ;  there  are  but  few  traces  of 
them  left  in  the  stone  arches  of  the  building  now  used  for  manufacturing  purposes.  One 
cannot  but  notice  the  dilapidated  condition  of  those  old  houses  that  under  the  French  and 
Spanish  domination  were  somewhat  famous.  Tile  roofs  have  begun  to  disappear,  the  cozy  little 
cottage  tenements  of  those  who  were  here  before  Canal  street  existed  are  fast  changing  into 
the  newer  style  of  corniced  residences  ;  and,  in  fact,  on  all  sides,  one,  who  is  at  all  observant, 
can  see  how  that  fickle  old  fellow.  Time,  is  pushing  back  the  past  to  make  way  for  the  present. 

It  is  true  there  are  neighborhoods  where  his  hand  seems  to  have  been  stayed  in  a  meas- 
ure. Some  of  those  old  Creole  houses  whose  roofs  have  sparkled  and  glittered  in  the  spring 
showers  of  one  hundred  years  still  remain,  but  they  are  fast  fading  away.  Curious  old 
houses  these.  The  very  embodiment  of  the  plain,  simple,  old-time  ideas  of  what  a  Southern 
residence  should  be,  where  ample  ventilation  in  summer  and  warmth  in  winter  were  the  main 
objects  of  those  earnest  architects.  Passing  down  Royal  street  and  arriving  at  the  corner 
of  St.  Peter,  we  see  that  at  least  one  of  the  old  notable  houses  of  our  city  was  not  allowed 
to  go  into  the  sere  and  yellow  without  a  remonstrance  on  the  part  of  its  owner.  Three 
months  ago  it  stood  there,  a  tall  Venetian  looking  four-story  edifice  of  peculiar  architecture 


66  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

and  more  sombre  appearance.  Of  a  dull,  faded,  blue  color,  with  splotches  on  its  front  like 
a  convalescent  small-pox  patient,  it  gave  evidence  of  its  age,  and  showed  how  the  weather 
of  all  these  years  had  made  its  inroads  on  the  once  smooth  stucco.  Silent  and  rather  for- 
bidding it  stood  there,  a  gloomy  reminder  of  days  when  prosperity  and  wealth  made  our 
city  the  Damascus  of  the  South,  whither  the  gay  and  rich  voyaged  for  the  nepenthe  of  revelry 
and  pleasure.  Many  \\ill  recall  the  old  swmging  sign  that  creaked  in  the  rough  puffs  of 
VN-ind  coming  down  St.  Peter  street  from  the  river,  and  will  recall  the  antique  letters  that 
announced  to  the  world  that  "Jean  Fisse,  Grocer,"  in  the  corner  store  was  ready  to  answer 
all  calls  upon  his  selected  foreign  stock.  Poor  John  Fisse  has  gone  to  a  better  land,  where  it 
matters  not  whether  a  pound  of  butter  be  of  light  or  heavy  weight,  and  the  plasterers  and 
carpenters  have  lately  taken  the  old  sign  down  to  make  way  for  the  new  dress  they  were  about 
to  put  upon  the  old  building.  A  fresh  coat  of  stucco  has  obliterated  now  all  the  work  of 
weather,  and  the  house  stands  in  its  new  garb  as  bright  and  attractive  as  it  did  sixty  years 
ago. 

The  reason  we  have  called  attention  to  this  building,  however,  was  not  because  of  its 
recent  repairs,  but  rather  for  the  reason  that  it  was  the  first  four-story  house  built  in  New 
Orleans,  and  the  laughable  incidents  connected  with  its  building. 

It  was  in  the  good  old  year  of  1819,  after  peace  had  once  more  settled  down  upon  us,  and 
the  Orleanais  were  no  more  looking  out  for  the  English,  that  it  was  erected.  Here  Sieur 
George  lived.  The  oldest  house  now  standing  is  on  St.  Anne  street,  between  Burgundy  and 
Eampart.  It  is  queer,  more  tumbled  down,  with  a  deeper-drooping  roof  than  even  M'me 
John's  house.  It  stands  back  in  a  little  garden,  behind  a  fence,  and  was  the  home  of  the 
"  Youdou  Queen,"  Marie  le  Veau,  who,  however,  before  she  died  turned  from  the  superstitions 
of  her  life  and  died  in  the  church. 

On  the  corner  of  Conli  and  Eampart  streets  stands  a  brown  church,  which  was,  as  a 
turbanned  colored  Frenchwoman  -mil  tell  you,  "billup  in  dat  good  Pere  Antoine  day." 
This  was  the  old  Mortuary  Chapel.  It  was  finished  in  1827,  and  is  dedicated  to  St.  Anthony  of 
Padua.  All  funeral  ceremonies  of  Catholics  were  compelled  to  be  performed  there.  The 
Mortuary  Chapel  is  now  the  Italian  Church  of  the  city,  in  charge  of  a  quiet  and  gentle  priest, 
who  lives  in  a  beautiful  one-storied  cottage  wiih  a  tiled  roof,  and  stone  floors,  behind  the 
church,  and  where  his  sweet  and  simple  household  is  in  charge  of  his  two  sisters,  quiet,  thin- 
faced  ladies  speaking  no  language  but  their  own  smooth,  flowing  Italian. 

The  furniture  in  the  priest's  house  is  composed  mainly  of  old  carved  church  benches,  altar 
stalls,  settees  and  chairs  that  have  served  their  time  in  the  church.  This  cottage  home,  like  so 
many  of  the  houses  in  this  side  of  the  city,  has  a  roof  that  reaches  far  over  the  sidewalk 
beyond  the  house  walls.  A  queer  little  green  gallery  railing  juts  out  from  one  end  of  the  house 
top,  and  one  can  fancy  that  sometimes  the  thin,  brown,  little  priest  and  his  quiet,  thin,  brown 
sisters  go  up  there  in  the  moonlight  and  talk  half  to  each  other,  half  to  the  white  and  silent 
stars  of  Bella  Italia.  There  is  a  famous  shrine  in  the  Italian  church— the  shrine  of  St.  Bartholo- 
mew—and about  it  are  placed  innumerable  thank-offerings  from  those  whose  prayers  have  been 
answered. 

Some  of  these  offerings  are  curious,  some  beautiful  ;  among  the  former  are  waxen  hands, 
arms,  legs,  feet,  fingers,  and  under  a  glass  globe  is  a  head  of  a  young  boy,  modeled  in  wax  and 
faithfully  colored.  It  was  presented  by  the  grateful  mother  of  a  sick  lad,  who  long  suffering 
with  some  illness  in  the  head,  was  cured  by  the  power  of  her  prayers  to  St.  Bartholomew.  A 
statue  of  St.  Bartholomew  with  his  head  in  hand  and  skin  over  his  arm— he  was  both  flayed 
and  beheaded— stands  at  one  the  side-altars. 

Visitors  should  also  see  further  up  Eampart  street  the  beautiful  green  Congo  square,  where 
long  time  ago  Bras  Coupe  and  other  negroes  danced  and  sung,  and  where  the  ladies  and  gentle- 
men used  to  go  in  early  evening  time  to  watch  and  listen  to  their  strange,  wild,  weird  amuse- 
ment. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


67 


The  Parish  Prison  lies  just  back  of  Congo  square  ;  these  buildings  are  very  old.  From  the 
neighboring  streets  show  the  tall  masts  of  schooners  unloading  sweet-scented  burdens  of  pine 
and  cypress  trees,  with  the  breath  of  the  forests  still  exhaling  from  their  dead  hearts.  This  long 
arm  of  water,  reaching  and  diving  down  into  the  heart  of  the  city  to  pluck  at  its  commerce,  is 
the  Old  Basin. 

The  "marble  room"  in  the  Custom-House,  the  long  or  central  room,  with  walls,  ceiling, 
piUars,  floor,  all  of  marble,  is  one  of  the  largest  and  handsomest  rooms  in  a  public  building  in 
the  country,  and  is  well  worthy  of  a  visit. 

The  old  St.  Louis  Hotel,  on  St.  Louis,  Chartres  and  Royal  streets  (now  kno^\Ti  as  Hotel 
Royale),  should  also  be  visited.  The  dome  of  this  building  is  very  fine  and  richly  frescoed. 
It  is  adorned  with  allegorical  pictures  and  busts  of  famous  men,  the  work  of  Canova  and  Pinoli. 
This  building  was  originally  the  Bourse  of  the  city,  and  a  fine  hotel  was  combined  with  it. 
It  afterwards  became  the  State-House  ;  was  dismantled,  but  is  now  restored. 

Above  Canal  street,  visitors  should  see  the  garden  district,  the  houses  being  chiefly  distin- 
guished for  the  exquisite  gardens  in  which  they  are  placed.  After  a  ride  up  in  the  Prytania 
street  cars,  one  could  leave  the  car  at  Jackson  or  Philip,  and  then  walk  about,  weaving  one's 
way  in  and  out  among  the  streets  upon  which  there  are  no  car  tracks. 

North  of  Canal  street  the  handsomest  residence  street  is  Esplanade,  upon  which  are  situated 
some  of  the  loveliest  houses  in  the  city. 

On  the  south  side  of  the  town,  or  above  Canal  street,  as  it  is  locally  known,  the  handsomest 
houses  lie  between  St.  Charles  avenue  and  the  river. 

The  town  headquarters  of  General  Jackson  were  at  84  Royal  street.  The  old  battle-ground 
of  1815,  in  St.  Bernard  parish,  is  where  the  national  cemetery— Chalmette— is  now  situated.  Tt 
is  two  miles  below  the  United  States  Barracks,  and  a  lovely  walk  or  drive  in  good  weather. 
The  old  Jackson  monument  is  on  the  battle-field.  The  road  down  is  lined  with  old  planta- 
tion houses. 

As  for  the  other  interesting  sights  to  be  visited  in  New  Orleans,  either  from  the  size  and 
architecture,  or  on  account  of  historical  or  other  interest,  there  are  innumerable,  but  the  follow- 
ing are  some  of  the  most  striking  of  them  : 

The  Custom  House— Situated  on  Canal  street,  between  Decatur  and  Peters  streets,  from 
the  top  of  which  building  a  full  view  of  the  city  can  be  had. 

The  United  States  Mint  and  Sitb-Treasuby— Located  on  Esplanade,  cor.  of  North  Peters 
street. 

City  Hall— Corner  of  St.  Charles  and  Lafayette  streets,  contains  the  different  municipal 
business  rooms,  treasurer's  office,  lyceum,  Council  chamber  and  library,  etc.  It  is  a  large,  com- 
modious and  handsome  structure  of  brick,  marble  and  stone.  The  front  is  of  the  Grecian 
Doric  order,  and  remarkable  for  the  graceful  beauty  of  its  stately  columns. 

The  Parish  Prisons— These  edifices,  which  are  three  stories  high  and  built  of  brick,  at  a  cost 
of  about  $200,000,  are  situated  between  St.  Ann  and  Orieans  streets,  occupying  123  feet  on  each, 
and  a  space  of  139  feet  between  them.  They  are  two  in  number,  divided  by  a  wide  passage- 
way. The  main  building  has  its  principal  entrance  on  Orleans  street,  which  is  closed  by  strong 
iron  doors.  The  lower  story  is  used  as  offices  and  the  apartments  of  the  jailor.  The  second  and 
third  stories  are  used  for  prisoners,  and  are  divided  into  large  rooms.  The  building  is  sur- 
mounted by  a  pavillion  with  an  alarm  bell. 

Half-W AY  House— Situated  just  over  the  bridge  at  the  intersection  of  Canal  street  and 
the  New  Canal,  and  accessible  by  the  Canal  street  cars.  In  the  near  neighborhood  are  the 
Metairie,  Greenwood,  and  other  beautiful  cemeteries. 

New  Orleans  Cotton  Exchange— Situated  on  Carondelet  street,  corner  of  Gravier,  was 
inaugurated  in  February,  1871,  with  a  roll  of  100  members,  which,  after  dwindling  down  to 
about  eighty,  increased,  under  a  system  of  daily  news  concerning  the  staple,  to  upwards  o'' 
400.    Its  building  is  considered  one  of  the  handsomest  edifices  in  the  country. 


G8  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

West  End,  or  New  Lake  End— One  of  the  most  frequented  resorts  on  the  shores  of  Lake 
Pontchartrain.  It  may  be  reached  by  the  New  Shell  Road,  a  favorite  drive,  or  by  the  steam 
trains  of  the  New  Orleans  City  Railroad  Company. 

Spanish  Fort— This  has  always  been  a  point  of  interest,  owing  to  its  historical  associations, 
and  may  be  reached  by  the  New  Orleans,  Spanish  Fort  &  Lake  Railroad  ;  depot,  corner  Canal 
and  Basin  streets. 

Milne  BURG— Or,  as  it  is  more  popularly  known,  the  "  Old  Lake  End,"  is  the  terminus  of  the 
Pontchartrain  Railroad.  It  is  directly  on  the  banks  of  the  Old  Lake,  and  the  cool  air  always 
prevaUin;?,  the  sails,  fishing  and  bathing  to  be  enjoyed,  make  it  a  favorite  resort  with  all  who 
wish  to  enjoy  the  day  away  from  the  brick  and  mortar  of  the  city. 

United  States  Barracks— A  trip  to  the  barracks  is  one  of  of  the  pleasantest  excursions 
in  the  neighborhood  of  New  Orleans.  The  distance  from  Canal  street  is  about  three  and  three 
quarter  miles,  and  the  whole  distance  may  be  accomplished  by  the  street  cars  at  the  expense 
of  five  cents  each  way.  The  buildings  used  by  the  French  government  and  afterwards  by  the 
Federal  authorities,  as  a  barracks,  were  located  on  Chartres  street,  just  below  the  present 
residence  of  the  Archbishop. 

Carrollton  Gardens— The  trip  to  Carrollton  is  deservedly  one  of  the  most  popular  excur- 
sions in  the  neighborhood  of  our  city.  The  green  cars  from  the  corner  of  Canal  and  Baronne 
streets  take  passengers  through  one  of  the  pleasantest  avenues,  lined  by  palatial  residences  and 
smiling  gardens  to  that  suburban  district  of  New  Orleans.  Here  are  situated  the  Carrollton 
Gardens,  a  favorite  resort,  and  a  place  much  admired  by  strangers.  The  spacious  walks  are 
lined  with  the  choicest  flowers,  whose  bloom  and  fragrance  are  especially  attractive  to  those 
who  come  from  the  North. 

Cemeteries— Firemens',  one  of  the  Metairie  ridge  cemeteries,  at  the  end  of  Canal  street, 
contains  a  monument  of  Irad  Ferry,  the  first  fireman  of  this  city  who  was  killed  while  discharff- 
ing  his  duty  at  a  fire  ;  the  society  tombs  of  many  of  the  fire  companies,  and  other  beautiful 
crypts. 

Greenwood,  at  the  end  of  Canal  street.  Here  is  located  the  Confederate  monument,  erected 
by  the  ladies  of  New  Orleans. 

Metairie  Ridge,  at  the  head  of  Canal  street,  across  the  canal.  This  burial-ground  has  been 
laid  out  but  a  few  years,  yet  contains  many  fine  tombs  and  splendid  walks  and  drives.  The 
monument  of  Stonewall  Jackson,  and  the  one  of  the  famous  "  Battalion  Washington  ArtUlery," 
are  greatly  admired. 

Old  St.  Louis,  on  Basin,  between  Conti  and  St.  Louis  streets.  It  contains  many  beautiful 
tombs,  and  is  the  oldest  cemetery  in  the  city. 

St.  Louis,  Nos.  1,  2  and  3,  on  Claiborne,  between  Customhouse  and  St.  Louis  streets,  contain 
some  magnificent  mausoleums.  No.  2  holds  the  monument  of  John  Milne,  "The  Friend  of  the 
Orphan."    No.  1  is  for  colored  persons. 

The  Protestant,  Girod  street,  at  the  foot  of  Girod  street,  on  Liberty.  It  is  the  oldest 
Pi'otestant  burial  ground  in  the  city,  and  has  many  fine  tombs. 

Chalmette,  the  national  cemetery,  is  in  charge  of  the  quartermaster's  department.  United 
States  army.  This  beautiful  resting-place  of  the  dead  is  situated  on  the  left  bank  of  the  Missis- 
sippi River,  a  little  over  one  mile  below  the  Jackson  barracks.  The  ground  was  donated  by  the 
city  in  1865,  and  was  laid  out  by  Capt.  Chas.  Barnard.  There  are  12,192  graves;  6,913  of  these  are 
classed  as  "Known,"  and  5,279  are  marked  "  Unknown." 

Washington,  comer  of  Prytania  street  and  Washington  avenue,  contains  many  beautiful 
souvenirs  of  the  Confederate  dead,  and  the  monument  erected  by  the  people  of  Louisiana  in 
memory  of  Governor  Henry  W.  Allen. 

Churches— Christ  Church,  the  pioneer  of  Protestant  churches  in  New  Orleans,  is  situated 
on  the  corner  of  Canal  and  Dauphine  streets,  facing  on  Canal,  and  is  one  of  the  most  imposing 
and  elegant  structures  in  the  city.    It  is  built  of  brick,  stuccoed  and  painted  to  imitate  stone. 


CUIi3E   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  69 

and  is  of  the  Gothic  style  in  architecture.    Approaching  the  city  from  any  direction,  the  tall, 
graceful  spire  of  this  edifice  is  among  the  first  to  meet  the  eye. 

McGehee  Church,  Methodist  Episcopal— The  first  church  belonging  to  this  congregation  was 
situated  at  the  corner  of  Poydras  and  Carondelet  streets,  but  fell  in  the  disastrous  fire  of  January, 
1851.  Almost  immediately  after  its  destruction,  the  work  of  erecting  its  successor  commenced, 
and  soon  this  beautiful  structure  was  completed.  The  McGehee  church,  located  on  Carondelet 
street,  between  Lafayette  and  Girod,  a  little  south  of  the  old  church  site,  is  of  the  Grecian  Doric 
order,  bold  and  original  in  design,  combining  great  grandeur  of  beauty,  with  simplicity  and 
elegance  in  arrangement.    This  is  the  oldest  Methodist  congregation  in  the  city. 

The  First  Presbyterian  Church  is  a  beautiful  large  Gothic  structure,  situated  to  the  south  of 
Lafayette  square,  on  South  street,  between  Camp  and  St.  Charles.  It  is  one  of  the  most  graceful 
and  time-honored  in  our  city.  It  is  a  brick  edifice  75x90  feet  and  42  feet  to  ceiling.  The  tower 
and  steeple,  from  foundaiion  to  pinnacle,  together  measure  219  feet.  The  body  of  the  church 
is  admirably  arranged,  and  capable  of  seating  1,311  persons.  There  are  also  lofty  and  commo- 
dious galleries  on  a  level  with  the  organ  loft. 

St.  Alphonsus  Church  is  situated  on  Constance  street,  between  St.  Andrew  and  Josephine 
streets,  Fourth  district,  one  square  from  the  Jackson  and  Baronne  street  cars,  and  two  from 
the  Annunciation  street  line.  It  is  built  in  the  Renaissance  style  and  is  exceedingly  spacious 
and  elegant  in  design ;  70  x  150  feet,  and  capable  of  seating  2,500  persons.  The  front  is  very 
beautiful,  having  two  lofty  towers. 

The  Canal  Street  Presbyterian  Church  is  situated  comer  of  Canal  and  Derbigny  streets,  and 
is  a  handsome  frame  building.  It  is  very  neatly  finished,  and  will  seat  between  four  and 
five  hundred  person?.    The  seats  are  free. 

Coliseum  Place  Baptist  Church,  situated  at  the  comer  of  Camp  and  Terpsichore  streets, 
facing  Coliseum  square,  is  a  beautiful  edifice,  well  located,  and  has  a  very  large  congregation. 

The  Church  of  the  Messiah,  Unitarian,  which  is  one  of  the  most  elegant  edifices  of  the  kind 
in  the  city,  was  built,  on  St,  Charles  street,  near  Julia,  in  1854-5,  to  replace  the  one  formerly 
used  by  the  congregation,  which  was  destroyed  by  fire  in  1851,  and  which  was  known  as  Dr. 
Clapp's  church. 

Dispersed  of  Judah,  a  beautiful  synagogue  on  Carondelet  street,  between  Julia  and  St. 
Joseph.  It  is  the  immediate  successor  of  the  oldest  Jewish  house  of  worship  in  New  Orleans. 
The  first  temple,  formerly  a  church  edifice,  corner  of  Canal  and  Bourbon  streets,  was  presented 
to  the  congregation  by  the  late  Judah  Touro  in  1847. 

Trinity  Church,  Episcopalian,  corner  of  Jackson  and  Coliseum  streets.  Fourth  District,  is 
one  of  the  most  graceful  buildings  in  the  country,  and  noted  far  and  wide  for  the  chaste  beauty 
of  its  adornments,  particularly  its  beautiful  chancel  and  chancel  window. 

Temple  Sinai,  Jewish,  a  graceful  and  most  imposing  structure,  is  situated  on  Carondelet, 
between  Delord  and  Calliope  streets,  and  is,  without  doubt,  the  most  beautiful  edifice  of  the 
,  kind  in  the  United  States,  combining  grandeur  with  simplicity  so  appropriately  that  the  beholder 
I  is  charmed. 

^  ^  St.  John's  Church  is  situated  on  Dryades  street,  between  Clio  and  Calliope  streets  ;  is  built 
in  the  Renaissance  style,  and  is  of  imposing  grandeur  and  lofty  proportions,  172  x  75  feet.  The 
comer-stone  was  laid  in  October,  1869,  and  the  church  dedicated  in  January,  1872. 

St.  Patrick's  Church,  situated  on  Camp  street,  between  Julia  and  Girod  streets,  is  a  triumph 
worthy  of  the  genius  of  Gothic  architecture,  whether  the  dimensions  or  the  splendor  of  the 
stmcture  be  considered.  The  style,  taken  from  the  famed  York  Minster  Cathedral,  is  lofty  and 
imposing,  and  is  regarded  as  the  finest  effort  in  this  style  of  architecture  in  the  United  States. 
It  is  buUt  of  brick,  roughcast,  and  colored  brown,  giving  the  idea  of  uncut  stone. 

The  Cathedral  St.  Louis,  fronting  on  Jackson  square,  stands  a  link  between  the  far  past  and 
the  present  time,  an  object  alike  of  veneration  and  curiosity.  This  famous  building  is  the 
third  erected  on  the  same  site.    The  first  cathedral,  a  wooden  and  adobe  structure,  was  built 


70  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

some  time  between  the  years  1718  (the  date  of  the  establishment  of  New  Orleans)  and  1723.  la 
1723  the  fearful  hurricane  that  swept  over  the  city,  spreading  desolation  in  its  path,  destroyed 
"  the  cathedral  and  many  other  buildinsrs  of  gi*eat  worth  and  value." 

The  second  edifice  was  built  of  brick  about  1724  or  1725,  and  was  the  place  where  the  wor- 
shipers gathered  till  1788.  On  Good  Friday,  March  21,  of  that  year,  the  sacred  house  was  again 
destroyed,  this  time  by  fire.  As  in  the  former  case,  the  cathedral  fell  amid  the  almost  general 
ruin  of  the  city,  for  toe  conflagration  which  reduced  it  to  ashes  destroyed  nearly  nine  hundred 
houses,  residences  and  public  buildings,  almost  the  entire  city"  of  New  Orleans.  For  many 
months  mass  was  celebrated  in  a  temporary  building  erected  for  the  purpose,  and  during  this 
time  no  steps  were  taken  toward  the  reconstruction  of  the  church.  To  Don  Andres  Almon- 
aster  y  Eoxas,  a  Spanish  noble  and  colonel  of  the  provincial  troops,  New  Orleans  is  indebted  for 
the  resurrection  of  their  favorite  church,  as  at  the  personal  expense  of  that  gentleman  the 
present  massive  structure  was  erected  in  1794,  as  were  also,  a  little  later,  the  two  buildings 
which  stand  one  on  either  side  of  the  cathedral,  now  occupied  by  courts,  but  originally  intended 
for  the  use  of  the  priests  of  this  church  of  St.  Louis.  Sixty  years  afterwards  his  daughter,  the 
Baroness  Pontalba  repaired  and  slightly  altered  the  church,  leaving  it  what  it  is  to-day. 

DRIVES.— The  favorite  drive  for  the  majority  of  visitors  is  on  the  Shell  road  to  the  New 
Lake  End,  via  Canal  street. 

Another  most  enjoyable  drive  is  by  Washington  avenue,  going  up  St.  Charles  street,  passing 
Lee  Place  and  some  of  the  most  palatial  residences  of  the  city,  till  the  avenue  is  reached. 

The  route  to  Carrollton  is  directly  up  St.  Charles  street,  through  the  pleasantest  vicinities 
in  the  city.  Another  very  pleasant  drive  to  Carrollton  is  to  follow  St.  Charles  street  as  far  as 
Napoleon  avenue,  through  that  street,  and  up  the  river  bank. 

One  of  the  must  rural  in  surroundings  of  New  Orleans  drives,  is  that  over  the  old  Metairie 
ridge  road,  out  Canal  street  to  the  Half-way  House,  to  the  right,  pass  directly  forward  between 
the  house  and  the  Metairie  cemetery,  down  to  the  bridge.  Here  take  the  road  towards  the  city, 
which  leads  through  beautiful  scenes  to  the  rear  of  and  above  Carrollton,  Down  the  river 
bank  to  Napoleon  avenue,  thence  to  St  Charles  street. 

Gentilly  road.— Canal  to  Claiborne  street,  down  that  street  to  Esplanade,  thence  to  Gentilly 
road  and  along  the  road  for  about  three  miles,  passing  the  Fair  Grounds  and  Jockey  Club  Park. 

A  most  interesting  drive  is  down  the  river  bank  passing  immense  cotton  presses,  all  in  full 
working  order.  The  United  States  Barracks  and  the  LTr.suline  Convent  can  both  be  visited  by 
this  route.  The  student  of  history  will  naturally  wish  to  visit  the  battle-ground,  where  glorious 
Old  Hickory  and  his  men  achieved  their  victory.  Chalmette  is  about  five  and  three-quarter 
miles  from  Clay  Statue,  and  a  very  pleasant  method  of  reaching  it  is  by  a  drive  down  the 
river  bank. 

Among  the  many  ways  of  reaching  the  Fair  Grounds  is  that  of  driving  out  Canal  street  to 
Broad,  thence  to  Esplanade,  and  down  the  latter  street  to  this  delightful  resort.  Broad  is  a 
shell  road,  and  is  in  excellent  condition,  while  Esplanade  is  one  of  the  most  spacious  and 
elegant  avenues  in  the  city. 

DISTANCES    IN    THE    CITY. 

With  Clay  Statue  as  the  starting  point,  it  is  one  mile,  via  St.  Charles  avenue,  to  Thalia 
street,  two  miles  to  Sixth  street,  three  miles  to  Napoleon  avenue,  four  miles  to  State  street, 
four  and  one-half  to  Exposition  Park,  and  five  and  one-fourth  to  Carrollton.  Out  Canal,  it  is 
one  mile  to  Galvez,  two  miles  to  Genois,  and  three  mQes  to  the  first  of  the  cemeteries.  The 
wharf  is  a  half  mile  from  the  statue,  and  to  the  Metairie  cemetery  from  the  river  is  four 
miles.  To  the  Barracks,  is  four  and  three-quarter  miles.  From  Carrollton  to  the  Barracks, 
by  the  cars,  is  ten  miles ;  by  the  river,  twelve  miles ;  while  by  an  air  line  It  is  only  seven  and 
three-quarter  miles.    St.  Charles,  with  Royal  street,  is  nine  miles  long. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  71 


CHAPTER   VIIL— HOTEL  LIFE. 

RECOLLECTIONS    OF   ANCIENT    HOSTELRIES — THE    OLD    ST.    LOUIS  AND    ST.    CHARLES  — SOME 
IMPORTANT  EVENTS  THAT  HAVE  TAKEN  PLACE  IN  THESE  BriLDINGS. 

Hotel  life  in  New  Orleans  a  half  century  ago  was  a  feature  of  the  city.  In  the  early 
French  days  there  had  been  no  hotels,  simply  pensions.  About  the  end  of  the  last  century, 
however,  and  when  the  Americans  began  pouring  into  New  Orleans,  hotels  came  into  fashion. 
The  Orleans  Hotel  on  Chartres  street  was  inaugurated  as  early  as  1798,  and  others  follov,-ed 
soon  after ;  but  these  were  scarcely  hotels  in  the  American  sense  of  the  word.  They  were 
houses  built  after  the  Creole  fashion  and  with  immense  courts  inside,  on  which  all  the  rooms 
faced,  but  their  capacity  was  small,  measured  by  the  standard  of  to-day.  Several  of  these 
ancient  hostelries  are  still  to  be  seen,  somewhat  hoary  but  very  little  changed  in  appear- 
ance since  they  were  furnished  in  the  last  century. 

Ic  was  during  the  period  between  1830  and  1840,  "the  flush  times  "  of  New  Orleans,  when  it 
received  its  greatest  increase  in  population  and  w^ealth,  and  during  which  nearly  all  its 
leading  institutions  were  founded,  and  its  important  buildings  erected,  that  the  great  hotels  of 
New  Orleans  began.  New  Orleans  can  claim  to  have  originated  the  American  hotel— the 
caravansary,  immense  in  size,  gorgeous  in  its  furnishing,  and  grand  in  its  table  d'  bote,  so 
different  from  anything  to  be  found  in  Europe  or  any  other  country.  The  two  old  hotels  of  New 
Orleans,  both  with  namesakes  to  day,  but  not  equal  to  them  in  size  or  appointments- the  St. 
Charles  and  St.  Louis— were  the  two  first  great  American  hotels,  antedating  the  celebrated 
Astor  House  of  New  York,  one  of  the  earliest  buildings  of  that  kind  in  the  North. 

The  hotel  life  of  New  Orleans  during  the  period  immediately  following  the  erection  of  these 
buildings,  and  down  to  the  time  of  the  war,  was  peculiarly  bright,  lively  and  attractive.  New 
Orleans  played  to  the  rest  of  the  South,  the  same  part  that  Paris  plays  to  France  to-day.  It  was 
the  capital,  the  c'ty  to  where  the  planters  of  Louisiana,  Mississippi  and  Arkansas,  came  during 
the  winter  season,  to  partake  of  its  enjojonents.  In  those  days,  however.  New  Orleans  was  a 
mere  place  of  residence,  not  a  home,  to  many  of  its  merchants  who  visited  the  city  each  winter 
to  carry  on  their  business,  but  left  early  in  May,  to  avoid  the  summer.  These  people  naturally 
preferred  being  in  a  hotel  to  renting  a  house.  As  a  consequence  the  hotels  were  crowded  all  the 
time,  and  were  the  centres  of  social  enjoyment.  They  were  the  commercial  centres  also,  the 
exchanges  of  that  day.  Indeed,  it  was  by  this  name  that  they  were  known  :  as  the  St.  Charles 
Exchange,  and  the  St.  Louis  Exchange.  There  was  no  cotton  exchange  then,  no  sugar 
exchange,  and  the  merchants  made  the  rotundas  of  these  hotels  their  place  of  meeting  to 
transact  their  ordinary  business.  They  were  the  political  centres  of  the  State  and  of  the  South  ; 
and  parlor  P,  of  the  St.  Charles  Hotel,  has  probably  witnessed  more  important  political  events 
than  any  room  or  any  building  in  the  country,  outside  of  the  Capitol  at  Washington. 

Of  the  leading  hotels  of  half  a  century  ago,  were  the  St.  Charles,  St.  Louis  and  Verandah  ; 
the  last  has  disappeared  altogether,  not  a  vestige  of  it  remains.  The  names  of  the  other  two 
were  preserved  for  many  years,  but  the  buildings  of  to-day  are  quite  different  from  the  old  ones, 
and  are  not,  old  residents  of  the  city  who  knew  their  predecessors  declare,  half  as  fine  or 
attractive. 

THE  ST.  CHARLES. 

•'  Set  the  St.  Charles  down  in  St,  Petersburg  and  you  would  think  it  a  palace  ;  in  Boston, 
and  ten  to  one  you  would  christen  it  a  college  ;  in  London,  and  it  would  marvellously  remind 
you  of  an  exchange  ;  in  New  Orleans  it  is  all  three."    Thus  wrote  of  the  St.  Charles  Hotel,  more 


72  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

than  thirty  years  ago,  a  visitor  from  New  York,  a  man  who  afterwards  became  mayor  of  that 
city,  during  the  epoch  of  its  greatest  prosperity  ;  who  at  that  time  had  enjoyed  every  oppor- 
tunity of  seeing  and  studying  the  public  and  private  buildings  of  Manhattan,  but  who  found 
down  here,  in  the  young  city  of  New  Orleans— for  the  First  district  was  then  a  mere  infant  in 
point  of  years— something  far  grander  than  anything  New  York  could  then  boast  of. 

Nor  was  Oakey  Hall— for  it  is  he  from  whom  we  quote— the  only  visitor  who  broke  out  into 
such  warm,  enthusiastic  and  rapturous  admiration  of  the  St.  Charles.  Lady  Wortley,  an  English 
lady  who  had  "  done  "  Europe  thoroughly,  and  was  in  search  of  something  new  and  startling  in 
America,  pronounced  the  St.  Charles  a  superb  edifice,  very  similar  to  St.  Peter's  at  Eome,  and 
praises  its  "immense  dome  and  Corinthian  portico  "  as  the  finest  piece  of  architecture  she  had 
seen  anywhere  in  the  New  World. 

Such  praise  as  this  sounds  somewhat  exaggerated  and  hyperbolical  to-day.  Nor  should  it 
be  forgotten  that  the  St.  Charles  of  to-day  differs  somewhat  from  its  predecessor— the  building 
which  Oakey  Hall  and  Lady  Wortley  saw,  admired  and  praised.  The  older  building  stood  ou 
the  same  site  as  the  present  one,  it  is  true,  and  presented  the  same  Grecian  front— not  quite  as 
high,  however— but  was  capped  by  a  tall,  snow-white  cupola,  second  only  in  size  and  magnifi- 
cence to  the  dome  of  the  Capitol  at  Washington.  This  cupola  was  a  favorite  haunt  for  visitors, 
who,  from  its  summit,  could  see  the  entire  busy  city,  Ijang  spread  out,  like  a  map,  at  their  feet.' 
The  traveler  journeying  this  way,  whether  steaming  up  the  Mississippi  or  whirling  city  ward  from 
Lake  Pontchartrain.  could  distinguish  this  dome  from  afar,  resplendent  under  the  rays  of  a 
Southern  sun,  like  Henry  of  Navarre's  famous  white  plume  at  Ivry.  It  was  visible  indeed  fully 
forty  miles  away  ;  was  the  first  view  the  traveler  got  of  the  Crescent  City,  the  last  object  that 
faded  away  in  the  dim  horizon  when  cars  or  steamboats  bade  New  Orleans  adieu. 

In  every  town  there  is  some  representative  building  whose  career  is  in  itself  a  history  of  the 
city  it  adorns  and  beautifies.  Such  is  the  Parthenon  to  Athens,  Notre  Dame  to  Paris,  and  St. 
Mark's  to  Venice.  The  representative  building  of  old  New  Orleans,  the  city  of  Bienville  and 
Carondelet,  is  the  Cathedral,  undoubtedly  ;  but  of  the  modern  or  American  city,  the  St.  Charles 
Hotel.  It  was  one  of  the  first  large  buildings  erected  above  Canal  street,  and  from  the  day  of 
its  foundation  it  has  shared  the  fortunes  of  the  city,  good  and  bad ;  prospered  when  it  pros- 
pered ;  suffered  when  it  suffered.  Within  its  walls  half  the  business  of  the  city  was  once  trans- 
acted, and  half  the  history  of  Louisiana  made. 

"The  flush  times"  of  New  Orleans  began  about  1830,  and  continued,  with  a  few  inter- 
ruptions, in  the  way  of  panics,  crises,  etc.,  until  the  beginning  of  the  late  war.  It  was  during 
the  early  part  of  this  period  that  the  faubourg  Ste.  Marie  blossomed  into  the  First  district,  the 
wealthiest  portion  of  the  city.  The  splendid  buildings  erected  at  that  time  were  generally  built 
by  banking  companies,  who  obtained  charters  from  the  Legislature  and  the  right  to  issue  money 
in  return  for  the  improvements  they  made.  This  policy  had  the  double  advantage  of  rapidly 
building  up  the  city  and  increasing  its  banking  capital.  This  capital  amounted  at  one  time  to 
$40,000,000,  when  New  York  did  not  boast  of  half  this  amount. 

Among  the  banks  so  created  were  the  Improvements  Bank,  which  erected  the  St.  Louis 
Hotel,  and  the  Exchange  Bank,  which  built  the  St.  Charles. 

These  two  buildings  were  erected  about  the  same  time,  and  their  erection  grew  out  of  the 
jealousy  then  existing  between  the  city  proper,  occupied  chiefly  by  the  Creoles,  and  the  fau- 
bourg Ste.  Marie,  or  First  municipality,  peopled  by  the  Americans. 

The  old  St.  Charles  or  Exchange  Hotel,  as  it  was  generally  called,  was  commenced  in  the 
summer  of  1835,  costing  $600,000  to  build,  in  addition  to  the  $100,000  paid  for  the  ground.  The 
St.  Charles  street  front  consisted  of  a  projecting  portico  of  six  Corinthian  columns,  from  which 
a  flight  of  marble  steps  led  to  the  hotel.  The  bar-room  in  the  basement  was  as  it  is  to-day,  octa- 
gonal in  shape,  seventy  feet  in  diameter  and  twenty  feet  high,  having  an  exterior  circle  of  Ionic 
columns.  The  architecture  of  this  room  was  Ionic,  and  that  of  the  saloon  immediately  over  the 
ball  room  which  was  eighteen  feet  high,  Corinthian.    From  the  street  a  flight  of  marble  steps  led 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS. 


73 


to  the  lower  saloon,  at  the  summit  of  which  was  a  handsome  marble  statue  of  Washmgton.  From 
the  saloon  a  grand  spiral  staircase  continued  up  to  the  dome,  with  a  gallery  stretching  around  it 
on  each  of  the  upper  stories.  The  dome  was  forty-six  feet  in  diameter,  surmountmg  an  octagon 
building  elevated  upon  an  order  of  fluted  columns.  Above  the  dome  was  an  elegant  Corin- 
thian turret.  A  circular  room  under  the  dome  on  the  floor  of  which  the  spiral  staircase  ter- 
minated possessed  a  beautiful  gallery,  eleven  feet  wide,  from  which  the  whole  city  could  be 
seen,  at  a  height  of  185  feet.  ,     ,  ,  ^  ^i. 

Diagonally  opposite  to  the  St.  Charles,  on  the  corner  of  St.  Charles  and  Common,  was  the 
Veranda  Hotel  erected  soon  after,  and  which  was  for  a  time  a  tender  or  assistant  to  its 
greater  neighbor.  The  Veranda  was  so  called  from  being  covered  on  its  front  toward  the 
streets  by  a  projecting  roof  and  balcony  which  protected  not  only  the  inmates  of  the  buildmg, 
but  also  the  pedestrians  on  the  streets,  from  sun  and  rain.  -r^    ,      ;. 

The  building  was  destined  for  a  family  hotel  by  its  projector  and  buUder,  R.  O.  Pntchard, 
and  was  completed  in  May,  1838,  at  a  cost  of  $300,000.  The  dining-room  was  one  of  the  highest 
finished  apartments  in  America,  the  ceiling  being  composed  of  three  beautiful  elliptic  domes 
for  chandeliers.  The  ceilings  and  walls  were  handsomely  frescoed  by  Canova,  nephew  of  the 
great  Italian  sculptor,  and  the  building  contained  some  handsome  statuary. 

The  Veranda  in  the  course  of  time  fell  under  the  same  management  as  the  St.  Charles.  It 
was  destroyed  by  fire  in  1853,  soon  after  the  old  St.  Charles,  and  never  rebuilt,  as  a  hotel. 

The  St  Charles  was  designed  by  Messrs.  Dakin  &  Gallier  (architects  of  the  City  Hall,  the 
State  House  at  Baton  Rouge  and  the  new  Opera  House),  and  cost  nearly  $800,000,  a  much  larger 
amount,  it  must  be  remembered,  than  this  sum  represents  to-day.  It  was  completed  at  the  begin- 
ning of  1837,  and  formally  opened  on  Washington's  birthday  with  a  grand  ball  given  by  the 
Washington  Guards,  the  crack  military  organization  of  the  city  then,  under  the  command  of 
C.  F.  Hozey,  sheriff  of  the  parish. 

The  St  Charles  at  once  entered  upon  an  era  of  prosperity.  It  is  true  that  the  first  managers, 
Messrs.  Gloyd  &  McDonald,  faUed ;  but  they  were  soon  succeeded  by  E.  R.  Mudge  &  Watrus, 
who  made  the  hotel  at  once  a  success.  Mr.  Mudge  sold  out  in  1845  to  his  brother.  Col.  S.  H. 
Mudge.  who  "ran"  the  hotel  in  partnership  with  Wilson,  an  old  clerk  of  the  establishment, 
until  the  great  fire  of  1851  destroyed  it. 

The  new  hotel  created  quite  a  sensation  throughout  the  country,  and  New  Orleans  was 
given  the  credit  of  being  the  most  enterprising-it  was  already  recognized  as  the  most  ansto- 
cratic-city  in  the  United  States.  It  must  be  remembered  that  this  was  before  the  Americans 
had  become  a  hotel-buildmg  people.  There  were  no  Palmer  Houses  in  those  days,  no  Pacific 
Hotels,  and  visitors  to  our  shores  had  to  content  themselves  with  the  most  ordinary  of  old- 
fashioned  inns.  The  St.  Charles  was  the  first  of  the  great  hotels  of  the  United  States ;  and  it 
was  some  time  before  it  found  a  rival  in  the  Astor  House  of  New  York. 

The  St.  Charles  rapidly  built  up  the  First  district.  Around  it,  as  a  centre,  all  the  traffic  and 
business  of  the  new  city  was  transacted.  Churches  sprang  up  opposite  it,  and  stores  and 
dwelling-houses  spread  out  in  every  direction.  St.  Charles  street  was  at  that  time  the  brightest 
and  liveliest  street  in  America,  probably  in  the  world.  Between  Lafayette  and  Canal  streets 
it  boasted  of  forty-five  bar-rooms,  restaurants  and  eating-houses,  and  thus  gained  for  the  city 
the  title  it  long  enjoyed  of  the  "Boarding-House  of  the  United  States."  It  was  a  standing  joke 
that  nothing  but  a  bar-room  or  a  restaurant  could  exist  in  that  vicinity.  One  over-bold  citizen 
did  establish  a  literary  exchange  there,  but  before  the  year  was  out  it  boasted  of  a  bar  at  least 

sixty  feet  long.  ■,    ,      ^        -4.         4. 

Hotel  life  in  New  Orleans  then  was  something  mi  genens.  There  was  a  dash  of  excitement 
and  Bohemianism  about  it  that  made  it  specially  attractive.  The  First  district  boasted  of  few 
permanent  residents,  and  its  population  was  largely  a  floating  one.  People  came  to  the  city  as 
to  a  new  El  Dorado  to  spend  six  months  of  the  year,  make  as  much  money  as  possible,  and  then 
fly  North  or  to  Europe  for  a  long  summer's  holiday.   The  greater  portion  of  the  population  slept 


74:  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

at  the  hotels  or  boarding-houses,  and  dined  next  morning  at  some  of  the  thousand  restaurants 
that  New  Orleans  then  contained.  Day  boarders  at  the  hotels  were  of  course  numerous,  and 
several  hundred  outsiders  sat  down  at  the  tables  of  the  St.  Charles  every  day. 

The  large  hotels  of  New  Orleans  were  then  three  in  number-the  St.  Charles,  the  St  Louis 
and  the  Verandah,  the  latter  an  offshoot  of  the  St.  Charles.  Soon  after  the  construction  of  that 
buildmg  a  number  of  the  gentlemen  who  had  been  most  instrumental  in  its  construction,  among 
them  J.  H.  Caldwell,  R.  A.  Pritchard  and  Thomas  Bank,  quarreled  with  the  board  of  managers 
seceded  from  that  body  and  built  the  Verandah  (burned  in  1853).  Each  of  these  hotels  had  its 
distinguishing  feature.  The  Verandah  was  regarded  as  the  cosiest  and  most  homelike  ;  the  St 
Louis  was  the  headquarters  of  the  auctioneers  and  the  place  of  great  political  meetings-  the 
St.  Charles  was  the  place  where  merchants  "  most  did  congregate,"  although  its  rotunda  was  at 
the  same  time  a  great  rendezvous  for  politicians,  planters,  ship  captains  and  all  the  varied 
population  of  the  then  liveliest,  most  progressive  and  richest  city  in  the  United  States.  Thither 
flocked  all  the  sugar  and  cotton  planters  of  the  South,  bringing  their  families  with  them.  And 
the  merchants  found  the  hotel  the  most  convenient  place  at  which  to  meet  these  planters  and 
transact  business  with  them.  The  result  was  that  the  rotunda  of  the  St.  Charles  became  the 
chamber  of  commerce,  the  board  of  brokers  and  the  cotton  exchange  of  the  city. 

The  social  life  of  that  period  was  very  gay,  and  the  hotels  were  the  centres  of  all  this 
gaiety.  Both  the  St.  Charles  and  St.  Louis  gave  weekly  balls  that  were  world-famous,  and  at 
which  the  very  best  people  of  New  Orleans  were  to  be  met.  Yellow  fever  epidemics  did  not 
frighten  people  then,  and  the  hotels  remained  open  from  January  to  December,  instead  of 
being  closed,  as  at  present,  four  months  in  the  year. 

During  the  first  few  years  the  St.  Charles  met  with  but  one  reverse.  The  Exchange  Bank 
which  built  it,  failed  in  the  crisis  of  1841,  and  the  president  and  cashier  fled  in  order  to  avoid 
arrest.  The  banking  company  having  wound  up  its  affairs,  the  hotel  fell  into  the  possession  of 
the  St.  Charles  Hotel  Company,  in  whose  hands  it  has  remained  ever  since. 

At  about  11  o'clock  on  the  morning  of  January  18th,  1851,  the  upper  portion  of  the  hotel 
was  discovered  to  be  on  fire.  The  house  was  full  of  people  at  the  time— the  busiest  season  uf 
the  busiest  year  yet  known  here— 800  guests  had  slept  there  the  preceding  night.  Indeed  sd 
crowded  was  it  that  the  proprietor  had  found  it  necessary  to  lease  the  St.  Louis  Hotel  for  those 
guests  he  could  not  accommodate  in  the  St.  Charles.  The  cause  of  this  fire  has  never  been 
definitely  determined,  some  holding  that  a  chimney  caught  fire  and  communicated  the  flames 
to  the  roof;  others  that  it  was  caused  by  a  stove  used  by  some  plumbers  engaged  in  repairing 
the  upper  portion  of  the  building.  One  point  alone  is  certain-the  fire  began  in  the  upper 
story,  near  the  roof.  The  management  of  the  fire  department  on  this  occasion  was  very  bad. 
The  fire  was  well  under  way  before  the  beUs  were  rung,  and  the  engines  which  reached  the 
scene,  attracted  there  by  the  flames  that  lit  up  the  entire  city,  were  half  manned  and  badly 
worked.  The  proprietor  and  employees  of  the  hotel  organized  themselves  into  an  efficient  fire 
corps,  and  by  the  aid  of  their  forcing  pipes  and  engines  kept  a  constant  stream  of  water  on  the 
flames  wherever  they  could  be  reached.  It  was  useless.  The  fire  was  above  the  fifth  story,  and 
not  an  engine  could  reach  half  way  to  it. 

After  burning  a  half  hour  or  so  the  front  portico  of  the  building  fell  forward  with  a  mighty 
crash  into  the  street,  crushing  in  its  fall  the  noble  marble  statue  of  Washington,  executed  by  one 
one  of  the  best  artists  in  Italy,  and  presented  by  John  Hagan,  which  stood  at  the  main  entrance 
of  the  hotel. 

The  conflagration  did  not  confine  itself  to  the  St.  Charles.  It  spread  thence  to  Dr.  Clapp's 
Church,  comer  of  Gravier  and  St.  Charles,  one  of  the  very  finest  and  oldest  Protestant  churches 
in  the  city,  and  entirely  consumed  it.  The  First  Methodist  Church,  on  Poydras,  also  fell  a 
victim,  and  was  completely  destroyed  within  twenty  minutes.  The  Pelican  House,  extending 
from  Gravier  to  Union,  and  fourteen  other  buildings,  some  as  far  distant  as  Lafayette  (then 
Hevia)  street,  where  they  were  fired  by  sparks  from  the  hotel,  were  also  victims  of  the  flames. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  75 

The  total  loss  was  a  million  dollars,  the  greater  portion  of  which  fell  on  the  hotel,  which  was 
insured  for  the  insignificant  sum  of  $105,000,  about  one-seventh  of  its  real  value. 

The  loss  was  a  severe  one  to  the  young  city,  but  the  men  of  those  days  did  not  despair 
easily.  Within  two  days,  the  directors  of  the  St.  Charles  Company  had  met  and  decided  to 
rebuild  the  hotel.  Work  was  begun  in  a  few  weeks,  and  within  twelve  months  of  the  fire,  a  new 
building  had  risen  from  the  ashes  of  the  old  one. 

The  new  building  was  of  the  same  style  and  architecture  as  the  old  one,  with  the  exception 
of  the  cupola.  The  architect  originally  selected  was  Rogers  (the  well-known  hotel-builder  of 
New  York),  but  he  had  to  leave  before  the  completion  of  the  building,  and  the  work  was  then 
placed  in  the  hands  of  Mr.  Geo.  Purves,  builder,  of  this  city.  This  building  is  substantially  the  one 
we  see  to  day,  the  only  material  change  being  in  the  first  stairs,  which  originally  led  straight 
down  from  the  office  instead  of  dividing  and  winding  as  they  do  at  present.  The  new  hotel  was 
at  once  leased  by  Messrs.  Hildreth  &  Hall,  elegantly  fitted  up  and  opened  for  business  in  less 
than  a  year  after  the  fire.  Then  followed  a  long  era  of  prosperity  for  the  State,  the  city  and  the 
hotel. 

In  the  new  St.  Charles  occurred  many  of  those  great  political  events  in  the  stirring  period 
between  1851  and  1861,  which  made  history  for  the  countrj'  and  the  world.  It  was  in  Parlor  P, 
"so  famous  in  history,"  that  Jefferson  Davis  and  a  number  of  leading  Southern  politicians  met 
on  their  way  to  the  Charleston  convention  in  1860,  and  decided  in  caucus  on  the  course  they 
should  pursue  there,  and  probably  laid  the  foundation  for  the  gigantic  strife  between  the  States 
that  followed  so  soon  afterward. 

When  the  war  came  on,  the  hotel  was  still  under  the  management  of  Hildreth  (afterward 
of  the  New  York  Hotel)  &  Hall,  and  was  in  very  prosperous  condition.  It  suffered,  of  course, 
from  the  hostilities,  which  interfered  with  and  interrupted  travel,  and  drove  all  visitors  away. 

In  1862,  when  New  Orleans  was  occupied  by  the  Federal  forces,  the  course  of  the  manager 
of  the  hotel  in  refusing  Gen.  Butler  accommodations,  came  very  near  precipitating  a  serious 
disturbance  on  our  streets.  Mr.  Hildreth,  the  lessee,  was  a  Northern-born  man,  and  a  relative 
of  Gen.  Butler's  wife,  nee  Hildreth,  but  was  strongly  Southern  in  his  sympathies,  and  an  active 
member  of  the  Confederate  Guards. 

When  Butler  landed  on  May  2,  he  sent  a  messenger  ahead  to  the  hotel  to  ask  for  rooms  for 
himself  and  his  staff.  He  soon  followed  himself,  accompanied  by  a  large  military  guard.  Mr. 
Hildreth  firmly  but  emphatically  declined  to  admit  him  to  the  building,  announcing  that  he  had 
shut  up  his  hotel  and  was  no  longer  keeping  an  inn.  Butler  thereupon  demanded  the  keys, 
which  were  refused  Ihim.  In  the  meanwhile  a  large  crowd  of  angry  lookers-on  had  gathered  in 
the  St.  Charles  and  the  neighboring  streets,  who  hooted  at  Butler  and  threatened  him  with  per- 
sonal violence.  The  crowd,  growing  still  more  excited,  attempted  to  interfere  with  the 
officers,  who  were  endeavoring  to  force  their  way  into  the  building,  but  was  finally  dispersed 
and  a  number  of  them  arrested. 

Butler  took  refuge  in  the  meantime  down-stairs  in  the  bar-room,  which  his  men  had  suc- 
ceeded in  breaking  into.  It  was  there  that  he  held  his  conference  with  Mayor  Monroe  and  the 
City  Council,  who  promised  to  do  all  in  their  power  to  restore  peace  and  quiet  in  the  city  and 
prevent  a  bloody  conflict  between  the  troops  and  the  citizens,  which  seemed  almost  inevitable. 

Butler  finally  succeeded  in  getting  possession  of  the  St.  Charles,  which  he  threw  open  as  a 
hotel  for  his  army  officers,  acting  as  manager  of  the  establishment  himself  for  several  days. 
The  ladies'  parlor  was  occupied  during  this  period  by  Mrs.  Butler,  and  a  general  invitation 
extended  to  the  ladies  of  New  Orleans  to  visit  her. 

A  few  days  afterwards  Butler  took  possession  of  General  Twiggs'  house,  which  he  occupied 
as  his  headquarters  during  the  remainder  of  his  stay,  and  the  hotel  was  surrendered  to  its 


During  the  remainder  of  the  war  the  St.  Charles  was  kept  open,  but  rather  as  a  boarding- 
house  than  a  hotel,  as  the  travel  between  New  Orleans  and  other  places  was  very  slim. 


76  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

In  1865,  after  the  city  was  filled  with  returned  Confederate  soldiers,  thousands  of  whom 
came  back  to  their  old  homes  without  a  cent  in  their  pockets,  and  with  a  very  scanty  supply  of 
clothing  to  their  backs,  the  whole  population  of  the  city  went  earnestly  to  work  to  make  them 
as  comfortable  as  possible,  and  all  kinds  of  charitable  schemes  were  devised  to  aid  them.  The 
hotels  did  their  share  of  this  good  work,  for  they  threw  open  their  doors  and  welcomed  home 
these  long-lost  sons  of  Louisiana,  with  the  understanding  that  those  who  could  pay  should  do 
so,  but  that  those  who  could  not  should  be  entertained  free.  Both  the  St.  Charles  and  City 
Hotels  thus  gratuitously  entertained  several  thousand  ex-Confederates,  and  the  books  of  the 
former  establishment  show  bills  amounting  to  $30,000  that  were  never  sent  in  or  collected. 

With  1866  prosperity  again  came  to  New  Orleans.  The  city  was  full  of  people  and  the  hotel 
did  a  rousing  business.  This  era  of  business  revival,  however,  was  short  [and  lasted  only  two 
years,  and  in  1868  "hard  times  "  came  again. 

During  this  period  several  other  changes  had  taken  place  in  the  management  of  the  hotel. 
Hildreth  sold  out  his  interest  to  Hall  in  1865.  In  1869  it  was  leased  to  Rivers  &  Foley.  They  were 
succeeded  by  Rivers  &  Lonsdale,  and  afterwards  by  Rivers  &  Bartel. 

Since  the  war  the  St.  Charles  has  been  the  central  point  of  the  very  stormy  politics  of 
Louisiana.  In  its  rotunda  Democrats,  Republicans,  members  of  every  political  party,  have  met 
to  exchange  views  and  to  discuss  the  affair.s  of  the  State  and  the  nation.  Parlor  P  alone  has 
made  for  itself  a  national  reputation.  It  has  been  occupied  by  no  less  than  six  congressional 
investigating  committees,  trying  to  understand  that  chaotic  condition  of  affairs  which  at  that 
time  became  known  over  the  country  as  "the.  Louisiana  question."  But  it  is  not  in  political 
history  alone  that  Parlor  P  is  famous.  Countless  other  associations,  to  discuss  great  questions 
of  trade  and  commerce,  have  been  held  there  ;  railroad  meetings  to  build  new  railroads,  and 
meetings  of  ladies  to  solve  great  problems  of  balls  and  dress.  There,  too,  comes  Rex  when  a 
visitor  to  New  Orleans,  Parlor  P  being  his  recognized  official  headquarters  for  his  short  reign  of 
two  days  during  the  carnival. 

In  1878  it  became  evident  that  the  hotel  needed  repairing.  It  had  been  hastily  constructed 
after  the  fire  of  1851,  and  the  upper  rooms  did  not  enjoy  enough  light.  The  building  had  not 
been  improved,  moreover,  for  twenty  years,  and  hotel-building  had  made  great  strides  during 
that  period.  The  falling  of  some  of  the  plaster- work  on  the  front  hastened  this  work,  and  the 
St  Charles  Hotel  Company  ordered  the  building  thoroughly  repaired,  which  somewhat  changed 
the  style  of  the  hotel  and  gave  it  a  large  number  of  additional  rooms. 

The  hotel,  as  it  stands  to-day,  can  comfortably  accommodate  between  600  and  700  guests. 
There  are  besides  30  parlors  and  100  bath-rooms.  The  lower  or  ground  floor  contains  a  number 
of  fine  stores,  fronting  on  St.  Charles,  Common  and  Gravier  streets.  The  bakery,  wash-room 
and  bar-room  and  billiard  saloon  are  also  located  here.  On  the  second  floor  are  the  two  dining- 
rooms,  the  servants'  dining-room,  pantry,  scullery,  kitchen,  ladies'  ordinary  and  the  various 
parlors  and  drawing-rooms. 

The  cold  service  of  the  hotel,  estimated  to  be  worth  $16,000,  should  not  be  forgotten.  It  is, 
of  course,  only  used  on  extraordinary  occasions. 

The  best  season  of  the  hotel  is  during  the  carnival,  when  the  building  is  always  filled  to 
overflowing.  During  the  remainder  of  the  busy  season  the  St.  Charles  averages  about  300 
guests  a  day. 

THE  ST.    LOUIS. 

When  the  idea  of  building  the  St.  Louis  Hotel  was  first  conceived,  45  years  ago,  there  were 
only  two  hotels  of  any  consequence  in  the  city— the  Strangers'  Hotel,  presided  over  by  a  famous 
caterer  named  Marty,  and  the  Orleans  Hotel,  by  Mrs.  Page,  a  lady  famed  for  her  beauty  and 
winning  manners.  These  houses  were  situated  within  a  few  doors  of  each  other,  on  Chartres 
street,  but  only  the  former,  at  its  original  locality,  still  survives  the  vicissitudes  of  half  a  century. 
The  store  of  Judah  Touro  was  located  on  the  ground  floor  of  the  Orleans  Hotel. 


^f(EOtE,.eo"'^G^ 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  77 

As  the  prosperity  of  New  Orleans  was  about  entering  upon  the  fullness  of  its  meridian 
splendor,  her  coffers  rapidly  filling  with  the  profits  of  the  sugar  and  cotton  traflBc  and  her 
streets  with  strangers  from  other  States  and  climes,  the  scheme  of  building  a  hotel  on  a  scale 
commensurate  with  the  growing  splendor  and  importance  of  New  Orleans  was  advocated,  and 
eagerly  caught  up  by  the  enterprising  officials  of  the  Improvement  Bank,  one  of  the  financial 
colossi  of  those  days,  and  a  suitable  site  for  the  edifice  was  sought. 

The  selection  finally  fell  upon  the  square  bounded  by  St.  Louis,  Toulouse,  Chartres  and 
Royal  streets,  in  the  heart  of  the  then  business  portion  of  the  city,  and  it  was  at  first  intended 
to  erect  a  structure  covering  the  entire  square.  This,  however,  the  commercial  crisis  of  1837 
compelled  the  company  to  abandon,  after  the  building  had  been  begun  in  1836,  under  the 
superintendence  of  an  eminent  architect  named  Depouilly,  who  died  only  a  few  years  ago. 

The  grand  old  building  in  the  rear  of  the  hotel  on  Toulouse  street,  long  fallen  into  disuse 
and  decay,  and  occupied  as  the  domicile  of  the  Citizens'  Bank  for  many  years,  was  begun  at  the 
same  time  for  the  use  of  the  Improvement  Bank.  This  enterprising  corporation  was  at  that 
time  presided  over  by  the  celebrated  lawj^er  and  statesman,  Pierre  Soule,  and  numbered  among 
its  directors  the  most  prominent  men  of  the  day.  The  total  cost  of  the  hotel  and  outbuildings 
was  within  a  small  sum  of  $1,500,000.  The  structure  was  an  imposing  one,  exceeding  in  beauty 
and  massiveness  even  the  present  one.  The  magnificent  rotunda  was  decorated  by  Canova.  It 
was  truly  a  noble  monument  of  the  wealth,  elegance  and  commercial  prosperity  of  New 
Orleans. 

The  site  of  the  hotel  had  been  occupied  by  residences  and  stores  of  various  kinds,  and  in  the 
near  neighborhood  were  the  places  of  business  and  residences  of  prominent  merchants  and 
bankers. 

At  the  corner  of  Chartres  and  St.  Louis  streets  was  the  celebrated  Hewlett's  Exchange,  kept 
by  a  well-known  sporting  man  of  that  name,  subsequently  one  of  the  most  popular  proprietors 
of  the  hotel.  This  exchange  not  only  contained  the  finest  bar-room  in  the  city,  but  the  principal 
auction  mart,  where  slaves,  stocks,  real  estate  and  all  kinds  of  property  were  sold  from  noon  to 
3  o'clock  P.M.,  the  auctioneers  crying  their  wares  in  a  multitude  of  languages,  the  English, 
French  and  Spanish  predominating.  The  entire  upper  portion  of  the  building  was  devoted 
exclusively  to  gambling  and  billiard-rooms  for  the  use  of  Mr.  Hewlett's  guests  and  patrons. 

Adjoining  the  Exchange,  on  the  St.  Louis  street-side,  stood  a  small  building,  in  which  was  a 
cock -pit  run  by  a  man  named  Hicks,  said  to  have  been  a  partner  of  Hewlett. 

At  that  time  Exchange  aUey  had  not  yet  been  opened,  and  where  it  now  enters  St.  Louis 
street,  and  adjoining  the  notary  ofl&ce,  stood  the  establishment  of  an  Englishman  who  dealt 
exclusively  in  beer,  one  of  the  few  establishments  in  the  city  where  this  beverage  was  sold. 

In  those  days  the  principal  business  portion  of  the  city  extended  from  Toulouse  to  Custom- 
house street,  and  from  Eoyal  street  to  the  Levee.    Chartres  street  was  then  what  Canal  street  is 
to-day ;  the  value  of  real  estate  on  the  former  having  been  equal  to  that  of  the  finest  property 
[  on  that  present  great  thoroughfare. 

)  The  first  manager  of  the  St.  Louis  Hotel  was  Pierre  Maspero.  In  1841  the  magnificent  struc- 
j  ture  was  entirely  destroyed  by  fire,  and  in  June  of  1842  this  loss  and  the  financial  troubles  of  the 
year  caused  the  suspension  of  the  Improvement  Bank.  The  year  was  a  particularly  unfortunate 
one  to  the  banks,  as  out  of  the  seventeen  then  in  the  city  only  five  survived. 

The  present  imposing  structure  was  erected  upons  the  ruins  of  the  first  St.  Louis  Hotel,  the 
property  having  passed  into  the  hands  of  the  Citizens'  Bank,  with  whom  it  has  remained  the 
greater  portion  of  the  time.  They  have  repeatedly  sold  it,  but  a  fatality  seemed  to  hang  over  it, 
as  they  were  compelled  in  every  instance  but  the  last  to  foreclose  the  mortgage  on  account  of 
non-payment  by  the  purchasers. 

The  first  manager  of  the  second  St.  Louis  Hotel  was  a  Spaniard  named  Alvarez,  a  very 
popular  man,  whose  principal  assistant  was  Joseph  Santini. 


78  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Alvarez's  successor  in  the  management  of  the  St.  Louis  Hotel  was  James  Hewlett,  the 
popular  proprietor  of  Hewlett's  Exchange,  under  whose  direction  the  hotel  reached  its  meridian 
splendor,  becoming  the  most  celebrated  caravansary  in  the  South.  Then  it  was  that  the 
celebrated  annual  ''Bals  de  Societe''''  or  subscription  balls  were  inaugurated,  bringing  together 
the  wealth,  beauty  and  refinement  of  the  Crescent  City,  in  the  magnificent  ball-room  of  the 
hotel.  Among  the  splendid  entertainments  of  which  this  ball-room  was  the  theatre  40  years 
ago,  was  the  magnificent  ''Bal  Travesti,"'  given  in  the  winter  of  1842-43,  and  the  entertainment 
gotten  up  in  the  same  winter  in  honor  of  Henry  Clay's  visit,  by  his  New  Orleans  friends  and 
admirers. 

There  were  200  subscribers  to  the  Clay  fete,  each  paying  the  subshription  price  of  §100,  the 
ball  and  supper  costing  the  enormous  sum  of  $20,000.  At  the  feast  of  regal  magnificence  to 
which  600  ladies  and  gentlemen  sat  dowTi,  in  the  spacious  dining-hall  of  the  hotel,  the  famous 
orchestra  of  the  French  Opera  discoursed  sweet  music,  and  the  illustrious  statesman,  in  whose 
honor  the  fete  was  given,  delivered  the  only  public  speech  he  ever  made  in  Louisiana,  in  which 
he  gallantly  took  occasion  to  pay  a  glowing  tribute  to  the  beautiful  women  of  New  Orleans. 

The  convention  of  1845,  which  had  been  called  to  meet  at  Jackson,  La.,  sitting  therefor 
some  time,  finding  New  Orleans  a  more  convenient  place,  held  their  remaining  sessions  in  the 
famous  ball-room  of  the  St.  Louis  Hotel.  Among  the  members  was  nearly  every  man  of  talent 
and  influence  in  Louisiana,  such  as  John  R.  Grimes,  Pierre  Soule,  Christian  Roselius,  Roman, 
Downs,  Conrad,  Marigny,  Brent  and  Eustis. 

In  1851  the  property  was  sold  to  Hall  &  Hildreth,  but  for  the  cause  named  above,  returned 
to  the  possession  of  the  Citizens'  Bank.  In  1871  it  was  sold  again,  this  time  to  the  St.  Louis 
Hotel  Association,  composed  of  prominent  citizens  of  the  Second  district,  of  which  Mr.  E.  F. 
Mioton  was  president.  A  large  sum  was  spent  in  the  remodeling  and  renovation,  made  under 
the  direction  of  Mr.  A.  Suari,  architect,  assisted  by  Mr.  L  U.  Pilie,  ex-city  surveyor. 

In  1872  Mr.  Mioton  secured  the  services  of  Hiram  Cranston,  for  many  years  proprietor  of  the 
New  York  Hotel  in  the  city  of  that  name,  and  a  well-known  hotel  man.  At  the  end  of  the  year 
Mr.  Cranston  gave  up  the  undertaking  after  making  the  most  signal  failure  ever  known  to  have 
been  made  by  a  hotel  man.  Mr.  Mioton  then  took  charge  in  person  as  manager  for  the  com- 
pany, aided  by  competent  assistants,  but  also  failed  after  rimning  it  one  season.  The  furniture 
was  sold  out  at  auction,  realizing  a  handsome  sum,  and  the  hotel  again  returned  to  the  posses- 
sion of  the  Citizens'  Bank. 

Under  Mr.  Mioton's  management  an  attempt  was  made  to  revive  the  glories  of  former  days 
in  the  annual  subscription  balls,  but  with  the  failure  of  the  enterprise  this  also  went  under. 

In  1874  the  New  Orleans  National  Building  Association  was  organized  for  the  ostensible 
purpose  of  running  the  hotel,  but  ultimately  to  sell  it  to  the  government.  The  property  was 
purchased  on  September  8, 1874,  from  the  Citizen's  Bank  by  the  association,  and  in  the  spring  of 
1875  sold  to  the  State  for  $250,000. 

From  the  time  of  the  formal  transfer  of  the  property  to  the  State  must  date  the  annals 
which  form  part  of  the  history  of  Louisiana,  if  not  of  the  nation,  for  in  1874  the  Kellogg  govern- 
ment leased  the  hotel  from  the  association,  and  shortly  after  the  adjournment  of  the  Legislature 
of  that  year  took  possession  of  it  and  formally  declared  it  to  be  the  State  House. 

A  record  of  the  events  which  followed  the  establishment  of  the  executive  office  in  the 
building  would  fill  a  large  volume. 

The  St.  Louis  was  the  central  figure  in  the  outbreak  of  September  14th,  1874,  by  which  the 
State  government  was  overturned. 

On  the  morning  of  Sunday,  the  13th  of  September,  1874,  there  appeared  in  every  paper  of  the 
city  but  one,  a  call  for  the  people  to  assemble  on  the  following  day  at  Clay  Statue,  and  to 
declare  "in  tones  loud  enough  to  be  heard  throughout  the  length  and  breadth  of  the  land,  that 
you  are,  of  right  ought  to  be,  and  mean  to  be  free." 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  79 

On  the  same  morning  that  this  call  appeared,  the  steamship  New  Orleans  arrived  at  the 
landmg  near  the  French  Market,  bearing  two  cases  of  guns  for  the  White  League,  an  organization 
of  citizens  ^.ich  had  been  forming  for  months.  A  force  of  police  was  on  the  le.ee  aW^ 
soon  a^  the  ship  touched  the  wharf,  and  patiently  awaited  the  discharge  of  the  cases  oyer  the 
side  of  the  vessel,  to  seize  them.  The  arms  were  held  by  the  captain  of  the  steamer  on  the 
assurance  of  two  gentlemen  who  had  formally  caUed  upon  him,  that  on  the  day  following  the 
White  League  would  come  down  and  get  them. 

Sunday  passed  quietly,  but  on  Monday  morning,  the  14th,  the  people  began  to  move  earlv 
Few  stores  were  opened  and  business  was  practically  suspended.    There  was  an  ominous  calm 

subdued  Tone  '"''^^"'^  ^^""^  ''^^''  ^""^  '^'^  ""^^'  ^""^  ^^^"^  ^^'^  ^'^  'P^^^  '^  ^^«  '^^ 

At  11  o'clock,  the  hour  fixed  for  the  mass  meeting,  there  were  several  thousand  men  gathered 
about  Clay  Statue  But  few  speeches  were  made,  and  those  were  short  and  to  the  point  and 
ZZr.Z^o  TTll'^-f.^'ll'  ^^«^l-^^^"«  ^^i<^h  called  upon  Kellogg,  then  Governor  of  the 
State  to  abdicate  forthwith.  They  were  carried  v,nth  a  cheer,  and  a  committe  was  appointed 
to  visit  Kellogg  at  the  State-House,  and  make  known  the  demand  of  the  people  ^^P^^^^^ 

The  committee  made  the  visit.  They  found  the  State-House  barricaded,  and  filled  with  an 
armed  force  of  several  hundred  men.  Kellogg  refused  either  to  receive  the  committee  or  to 
communicate  with  it.  This  fact  was  reported  to  the  meeting,  and  the  people  were  direcLd  to 
go  home,  arm  themselves  and  return  later,  prepared  to  enforce  their  demands 

While  the  meeting  was  in  progress  the  White  League  had  assembled,  and  at  5  o'clock  several 
companies  started  down  the  levee  to  get  the  arms  from  the  steamship  New  Orleans.  They  were 
met  on  the  levee  at  Girod  street  by  the  Metropolitan  police  in  force.  A  pitch  battle  resulted 
The  police  lost  40  killed  and  200  wounded,  while  the  loss  of  the  citizens  was  19  killed  and  abo^t  as 

IXTV^'^t  ?"^^'''  ^'^^""^"  ''  ^^^^^"^  "^^^  preparations  for  a  grand  assault  on 
the  State-House  or  St.  Louis  Hotel,  the  morning  of  the  15th.  and  in  the  early  hours  of  that  day  a 

ZlVw'r'"^  ^^^"^^^^  ""^^^  '^'  ''^"^'^^-  ""^  '^'  ^PP^^^^^  ^^  ^^^  ^^*^^«^  soldiers  a  white  flag 
was  displayed,  and  the  garrison  surrendered  without  firing  a  shot 

befo'rfinlr^ulm^Hou^r  '''^"^"^"'  ""^  ^°'  '^"^  =  ^'^^  ^^^  *^^^^  refuge  on  the  day 
The  fall  of  the  hotel  was  the  signal  for  an  uprising  in  every  parish  in  the  State,  and  when 
the  sun  set  on  the  15th  of  September  the  Kellogg  government  was  no  more 

f h.  ^Z  *T«  ^T  T  Stf  e-House  remained  in  possession  of  the  people,  but  on  the  morning"  of 
/.^  T^    .  !^cf        "■ ""  ^'"'■"'^^  ^^"^^"^  ^°^  '^^  surrender  was  made  by  the  officers  in  command 
of  the  Lnited  States  troops  in  the  city,  and  at  the  same  time  martial  law  was  declared 

...J^^rii^Tl^  Z^^.^^^  ^"^  ^^  ''^'^'*^^'  ^^^  ^"^  *^^  ^^"^^  ^^^°^^S  Glov.  John  McEnery  formally 
sur rendered  the  buildmg  to  Gen.  Brooks,  of  the  United  States  army.  In  a  few  days  after  the 
Kellogg  government  was  reinstated.  j-*  ctiuei  uie 

direcfeYto^thThoter'"^'  ^""^  ^^^  *^^  '''''^^^  '"^  ""^  ^^^^  *^^  attention  of  the  nation  was  again 

fy.  V'^^^^^'^^^^'^'^^  ^as  to  meet  on  the  first  Monday  in  January,  and  in  anticipation  of  the  event 
the  building  was  once  more  prepared  for  a  siege. 

Eariy  on  that  Monday  morning,  January  4,  1875,  the  United  States  troops  were  on  the  move 
m'ach'edTo Ihe  leve  ''f ''"  their  quarters  at  the  corner  of  Magazine  and  JulirstreetTand 
marched  to  the  levee,  aloner  which  they  continued  until  the  junction  of  Old  and  New  Levee 
streets  was  reached,  and  at  this  point,  which  was  within  a  square  or  two  of  the  hotel,  a  company 
of  mfantry  and  a  squad  of  artillery  with  a  heavy  piece  of  cannon  were  stationed,  ibout  200  of 
the  remaining  force  were  distributed  along  the  levee,  and  the  rest,  numbering  overly  a  o4 
St.  Louis  street  and  m  front  of  the  building.  ^ 

Through  this  line  of  troops  the  Democratic  members  of  the  Legislature  had  to  pass.    The 


m  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

Eepublicans  had  entered  the  building  on  the  night  before.  There  was  but  one  door  open,  thai 
on  St.  Louis  street,  and  it  was  heavily  guarded.  The  hotel  was  filled  with  policemen  and  hirec 
bullies. 

At  noon  the  Legislature  was  called  to  order.  All  interest  seemed  to  be  centered  on  thf 
House,  and  the  scene  in  and  around  the  hall  was  one  never  to  be  forgotten  by  any  who  looket 
upon  it. 

The  corridors  leading  to  the  hall  were  filled  with  excited  men,  the  lobby  was  packed  witl 
them ;  the  galleries  groaned  and  trembled  beneath  their  weight,  and  they  filled  every  windo\^ 
overlooking  the  floor,  having  gained  the  position  by  climbing  on  the  roof  of  the  balcony  whicl 
runs  round  the  building. 

The  Clerk  of  the  old  House  called  the  roll,  and  when  he  had  finished  the  storm  burst. 

A  Democratic  member  moved  the  election  of  L.  A.  Wiltz  as  temporary  chairman.  Th< 
member  who  had  made  the  motion  put  it  to  the  House  and  declared  it  carried,  and  a  cheer  weni 
up  which  could  be  heard  for  squares.  It  was  caught  up  by  the  multitude  on  the  outside,  and  a 
move  was  made  on  the  building,  but  the  bayonets  of  the  United  States  troops  forced  the  crowc 
back. 

While  the  cheer  was  still  echoing,  Mr.  Wlltz  jumped  on  the  Speaker's  stand,  being  followed 
to  the  steps  by  the  Democratic  members,  who  had  surrounded  him  with  a  rush.  He  snatched 
the  mallet  out  of  the  hands  of  the  Clerk,  and  then  there  arose  a  yell  of  exultation  and  a  yell  ol 
rage  which  mingled  together  in  one  mighty  volume  of  discord.  The  hall  was  pandemonium, 
and  the  fiends  of  passion  had  broken  loose.  Pistols  and  knives  were  drawn.  They  shone  in  the 
lobbies,  glistened  in  the  galleries  and  flashed  from  the  windows  overlooking  the  floor.  It  was  a 
fearful,  a  terrible  moment. 

Having  taken  the  oath,  Speaker  Wiltz  rapped  with  his  mallet  several  times,  and  cried,  '*  The 
House  will  come  to  order."  His  bearing  and  the  tone  of  command  in  which  he  spoke  were 
magical  in  their  effects.  The  tumult  subsided  on  the  instant,  and  for  one  moment  there  was 
silence.  The  Republican  members  then  left  the  hall  and  complained  to  Kellogg.  The  latter 
appealed  to  the  Federal  authorities,  and,  on  instruction,  the  United  States  troops  invaded  the 
hall,  deposed  Speaker  Wiltz,  and  unseated  and  forcibly  ejected  from  the  House  several 
members. 

The  Democrats,  led  by  Mr.  Wiltz,  withdrew,  and  once  more  the  State  House  was  in  posses- 
sion of  Kellogg. 

In  1876  the  hotel  was  again  brought  before  the  nation,  for  it  was  on  the  third  floor  of  the 
building,  in  a  little  room  overlooking  the  court-yard,  that  the  Returning  Board  met  and  com- 
piled the  returns  of  the  Presidential  election  of  that  year,  the  returns  on  which  the  Electoral 
Commission  subsequently  passed,  and  which  led  to  the  seating  of  R.  B.  Hayes  as  the  chief 
officer  of  the  United  States. 

On  the  first  Monday  in  January,  1877,  it  being  the  first  day  of  that  year,  the  Legislature  met. 
The  Democratic  members  marched  in  a  body  to  the  hotel,  and  were  refused  admission,  and 
their  entrance  was  barred  by  armed  men.  The  United  States  troops  were  not  in  the  building  at 
the  time,  but  they  were  quartered  in  large  force  in  a  house  on  Chartres  street,  immediately 
adjoining,  and  part  of  the  walls  of  the  State  House  had  been  removed  and  a  passage  made, 
through  which  they  could  come  into  the  hotel  at  a  moment's  notice. 

The  Democratic  members  of  the  Legislature  retired  and  went  to  St.  Patrick's  Hall,  and  then 
organized.  Nothing  of  special  note  occurred  after  that  until  January  8,  on  which  day  Gov. 
Francis  T.  NichoUs  and  Lieut.-Gov.  Wiltz  were  sworn  in  lat  St.  Patrick's  Hall,  and  the  same 
ceremony  was  performed  with  S.  B.  Packard  and  C.  C.  Antoine  at  the  hotel.  The  Republican 
members  of  the  Legislature  never  left  the  building  from  the  first  day  of  their  entrance.  They 
boarded  and  lodged  there,  and  neither  day  nor  night  did  they  venture  out. 

On  the  day  after  the  inauguration,  the  citizen  soldiers,  under  the  direction  of  Gov.  Nicholls. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  81 

took  possession  of  all  the  public  buildings  in  the  city,  with  the  exception  of  the  hotel,  and 
installed  the  Democratic  officers.  The  officers  recognized  and  commissioned  by  Gov.  NichoUs 
were  also  inducted  into  their  positions  in  the  different  parishes,  and  when  the  sun  of  January 
9th  went  down,  the  Nicholls  government  was  established,  and  Packard's  authority  did  not 
extend  beyond  the  doors  of  the  barricaded  buUding. 

For  more  than  two  months  this  siege  continued.  The  Republicans  in  the  State-House, 
to  the  number  of  800  or  900  remained  barricaded  in  there ;  many  of  them  never  leaving  the 
building  by  day  or  night.  The  place  became  horribly  filthy,  as  there  was  no  way  of  removing 
the  dirt  and  garbage,  and  small-pox  broke  out  among  the  garrison  of  the  fortress,  creating 
considerable  alarm,  as  the  officers  ia  the  building  refused  to  allow  any  representative  of  either 
the  State  or  City  Government  to  enter  it. 

On  the  3rd  of  March  came  an  order  from  President  Grant  to  the  troops  to  keep  their  hands 
off.  The  order  was  received  with  the  greatest  enthusiasm  by  the  supporters  of  the  Nicholls 
government,  and  it  was  proposed  to  attack  the  State-House,  and  not  only  proposed  but  the 
propriety  of  so  doing  was  seriously  urged  and  considered.  Calmer  counsel,  however,  prevailed, 
and  the  people  waited  quietly  for  the  order  for  the  troops  to  be  removed  from  the  city. 

This  order  came  on  the  21st  of  April,  and  on  the  evening  of  the  24th  the  United  States 
soldiers  left  the  building  on  Chartres  street  and  went  to  the  Barracks.  That  night  the  Packard 
police  vacated  the  building  and  the  Packard  government  disappeared. 

They  left  the  old  hotel  in  a  most  horrible  condition.  All  the  filth  and  garbage  of  the  large 
force  stationed  in  the  hotel  for  four  months  had  been  dumped  into  the  paved  yard,  and  the  halls 
and  parlors  had  been  used  for  barracks.  When  deserted,  the  building  was  scarcely  fit  for  use, 
and  the  St.  Louis  was  soon  after  given  up  as  a  State-house,  and  the  capital  removed  to  Baton 
Rouge. 

After  this  the  building  remained  uninhabited  for  several  years,  growing  more  dilapidated 
and  forlorn  each  year.  The  flooring  rotted  away,  the  windows  were  broken,  and  the  hotel 
remained  nothing  but  a  mere  shell.  In  18S4,  Mr.  Robert  Rivers,  proprietor  of  the  St.  Charles 
Hotel,  leased  the  St.  Louis  from  the  State  at  a  bargain,  and  began  at  once  the  work  of  rebuilding 
and  repairing  it.    The  result  is  seen  to  day  in  the  Hotel  Royale. 


FAMOUS  COFFEE  HOUSES. 

Old  New  Orleans  had  its  famous  hostelries  as  well  as  London's  Temple  Bar,  but  most  of 
them,  in  that  helter-skelter  go-as-you-please  race  of  communities  after  wealth,  are  remembered 
only  by  the  few  sturdy  octogenarians  left  behind. 

Take  any  bright  September  morning  in  the  year  1826,  before  the  day  of  hotels,  with  a  fresh 
south  wind  blowing  across  the  river,  dashing  the  spray  on  the  huge  flatboats  lying  along  the 
levee,  and  frisking  the  tails  of  the  little  Creole  ponies  like  pennants,  as  they  pranced  along  the  city 
front— take  such  a  morning,  and  about  11  o'clock  drop  in  at  the  corner  of  St.  Louis  and  Chartres 
streets.  Then  it  was  only  a  two-story  building,  with  a  front  on  Chartres  street,  and  ran  down 
St.  Louis  street  about  90  feet.  A  large  and  elegantly  fitted  up  cafe  occupied  the  lower  floor,  the 
full  length  of  the  building,  and  about  the  long  room  were  scattered  a  score  or  so  of  little  tables 
with  their  complement  of  chairs.  This  was  La  Bourse  de  Maspero,  or,  as  the  Americans  called 
it.  Maspero 's  Exchange,  and  thither  at  this  hour  most  of  the  commercial  and  professional  men 
gathered  daily.  Playing  dominoes  at  the  different  tables  were  some  of  the  old  Creole  planters 
in  the  city  on  a  visit,  sipping  their  claret  and  ice  as  they  drew  for  the  double  six.  There  over  in 
one  corner  was  a  sort  of  private  circle.  This  was  the  press.  Those  assembled  there  were  the 
editors  of  the  Louisiana  Advertiser,  Mercantile  Advertiser,  St.  Rome's  Courrier  de  la  Louisiane,  the 


82  HISTORICAL  SKETCH    BOOK. 


Hnrr  » 


Argm  and  the  Bee.  The  mail  then  was  distributed  only  at  11  o'clock  at  night,  necessitatinjr 
the  postponement  of  closing?  up  the  newspaper  forms  untU  after  that  hour,  and  it  was  the  next 
morning  that  the  gentlemen  of  the  quill  would  meet  to  discuss  ths  late  hurricanes  or  the  affairs 
in  Europe,  then  20  days  old.  Lounging  about,  picking  up  here  and  there  bits  of  knowledge  about 
cane  prospects  and  the  condition  of  the  indigo,  were  the  merchants  all  congregated  at  Maspero's, 
as  now  they  would  at  the  Cotton  and  Stock  Exchanges.  When  the  conversation  weakened  on 
the  crops,  politics  were  taken  up. 

Gen.  Lafayette's  visit  the  year  before  was  talked  over  and  the  merits  of  the  coming  troupe 
at  Caldwell's  new  American  Theatre,  on  Camp  street,  where  now  stands  the  emporium  of  Rice, 
Born  &  Co.,  were  passed  upon  by  the  connoisseurs  of  dramatic  art.  , 

Many  is  the  duel,  the  preliminaries  of  which  were  arranged  here,  and  many  a  jovial  guest 
has  taken  his  glass  of  eau  sucree  over  that  counter  to  go  out  to  greet  the  morning  sun  with  the  i 
flashing  of  his  colichemard  or  rapier.    It  was  an  uncommon  thing  in  those  days  for  a  week  to  | 
pass  without  some  little  event  of  this  kind  occurring,  and  it  was  at  Maspero's  old  enemies  met 
after  their  sword  practice  to  shake  hands  and  wipe  off  old  scores  with  a  bottle  of  wine.  | 

The  Rotunda  became  the  centre  of  the  city  and  its  bar  was  considered  the  pattern  for  all 
others.    Running  around  the  outside  of  the  circular  room  where  the  auction  stands  were,  on 
every  Saturday  slaves  were  put  upon  the  block  and  knocked  down  to  the  highest  bidder.    To 
know  what  was  transpiring  in  the  city  or  its  neighborhood  it  was  necessary  only  to  visit  this  ; 
place,  for  it  was  here  that  all  the  gossip  and  society  small  talk  was  related. 

It  was  the  headquarters  for  both  Whig  and  Democrat,  and  to  this  day  there  remains  opposite 
the  hotel  a  sheet-iron  game  cock  perched  on  the  back  of  a  Whig  raccoon— a  sign  of  an  old  Demo- 
cratic coffee-house. 

In  1826  there  was  another  place  here  that  was  equally  as  popular  a  place  of  resort,  particu-  | 
larly  iov  fhe  jeunesse  doree,  the  young  bloods  of  that  day,  and  that  was  John  Davis',  on  Orleans 
street,  between  Royal  and  Bourbon,  where  the  Criminal  Court  once  w^as.  Mr.  Davis  was  the 
proprietor  of  the  theatre  and  ball-room  adjoining,  and  not  to  know  John  Davis  was  not  to  know 
the  Crescent  City.  Bewitching  brunettes  with  eyes  that  ravished  even  the  anchorites,  languishing 
blondes  with  tender  grace,  led  the  brave  Creole  boys  through  the  mazy  labyrinths  of  love  and 
jealousy  to  the  merry  music  of  the  cachucha  and  waltz.  On  ball  nights  Orleans  street  was  ablaze 
with  the  light  from  the  Opera  House  windows,  and  by  midnight  the  floor  was  crowded  with 
dancers.  This  was  naturally  a  far  worse  place  for  duels  than  Maspero's,  and  it  is  almost 
impossible  to  enumerate  the  "affairs"  which  dated  their  origin  from  the  ball-room  and  cafe, 
and  from  the  smiles  given  by  some  coquettish  fair  one. 

There  are  besides  the  St.  Charles  and  the  Hotel  Royale,  a  number  of  other  hotels  in  New 
Orleans,  as  follows  : 

Cassidy's,  174  Gravier. 

City  Hotel,  Camp,  corner  of  Common. 

Hotel  Chalmette.  98  St.  Charles. 

Hotel  Vonderbanck,  40  to  46  Magazine. 

Waverley  House,  Poydras,  corner  of  Camp. 

The  boarding  houses  of  New  Orleans  are  too  numerous  to  mention,  amounting  to  several 
hundred,  from  the  very  cheapest  lodging-house  to  the  finest  establishments  whose  prices  exceed 
those  of  the  hotels.  The  down-town  boarding  houses  are  situated  mainly  on  Royal,  Chartres, 
Rampart  and  Customhouse  streets.  Up-town  the  boarding  house  centres  are  Camp,  St.  Charles, 
Carondelet  and  Baronne,  between  Delord  street  and  Canal.  Around  Lafayette  square  is  con- 
gregated a  regular  boarding  house  settlement.  Uptown,  on  St.  Charles,  Prytania  and  other 
streets,  are  a  number  of  fashionable  houses,  which  accommodate,  however,  only  a  few  families. 
Many  private  families  will  receive  and  care  for  a  small  party  of  visitors  during  the  winter  when 
the  city  is  very  crowded,  as,  for  instance,  during  the  Carnival.    An  information  bureau  is 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  83 

usually  established  tlien,  where  the  names  of  those  housekeepers  wishmg  to  accommodate  one 
or  more  boarders  are  inscribed  in  a  book,  together  with  the  prices  chargred.  This  system  of 
boardin^:  is  vei-y  agreeable  to  those  who  desire  to  have  a  quiet,  homelike  time. 

If  in  wandering  through  the  Creole  portion  of  the  city,  one  sees  the  sign  ''Pension  "  or 
''Pension  Privee,"'  he  should  understand  that  it  is  a  Creole  boarding  house,  where  he  can  live  in 
purely  Creole  style,  hear  nothing  but  French  spoken,  and  eat  nothing  but  Creole  dishes.  Another 
sign  which  will  be  found  dangling  from  thousands  of  galleries  in  that  portion  of  the  city  reads, 
"Chambi^es  Garnies,''''  ov  simply,  " Chambres  d  Louer.''''  Here  one  can  secure  from  the  landlady 
(who  is  certain  to  prove  either  a  very  stout  Creole,  or,  more  likely  a  quadroon  or  octoroon)  a 
furnished  room,  always  kept  in  the  neatest  of  order.  To  get  his  meals,  he  must  either  dine  out  at 
some  neighboring  restaurant— and  there  is  certain  to  be  one  only  a  square  or  two  off— or  he  can 
have  them  served  at  the  house  by  some  of  the  innumerable  caterers  and  cook  shops  that 
flourish  in  the  lower  portion  of  New  Orleans.  This  system  will  be  found  emely  agreeable  to 
bachelors. 


84  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  IX.— A  GOOD   DINNER. 

THE   RESTAURANTS  AND    EATING  HOUSES    OF    NEW   ORLEANS,  FROM   THE  HIGHEST   TO  THE 
LOWEST — THE   DELICACIES   OF   THE   MARKET,  FISH,  FLESH  AND  FOWLS. 

To  its  first-class  restaurants  in  the  olden  times  New  Orleans  owed  its  peculiar  and  pet 
reputation  as  an  unsurpassed  "eating  and  drinking  city,"  at  least  in  this  country.  In  those 
good  old  days  when  the  better  class  of  French  tastes  and  customs  were  dominant  in  Nouvelle 
Orleans,  French  culinary  artists,  tried  and  tested  in  the  furnace  fires  of  many  years,  found  her .3 
an  attractive  field  for  the  exercise  of  their  talents.  These  skillful  professors  were  patronized 
"by  a  large  and  thoroughly  appreciative  audience,"  as  the  playbills  are  wont  to  insinuate;  people 
accustomed  to  European  culture,  and  connoisseurs  in  choice  wines  and  viands.  They  were 
wealthy,  too ;  and  the  fine  arts  flourish  most  in  cities  well  supplied  with  the  circulating 
medium. 

To  day,  the  situation  has  slightly  changed,  but  New  Orleans  still  preserves  its  reputation  for 
good  cooking.  Its  great  restaurateurs  and  chefs  of  old  have  died,  but  others  have  taken  their 
places,  and  the  old  recipes  are  preserved  and  still  in  use. 

While  New  Orleans  cooking  still  possesses  characteristics  distinctively  French,  many 
variations  from  the  French  have  been  introduced.  The  Creoles  have  invented  or  improved  on 
quite  a  number  of  dishes :  gombo,  for  instance,  of  which  there  are  several  varieties,  the  gombo 
aux  herbes,  gombo  Hie,  gornbo  aux  ecrevisses,  is  essentially  a  Creole  dish,  and  the  bouilleabaisse  and 
court  bouillon  have  been  greatly  improved  and  rendered  "a  dish  for  a  king."  The  large 
Italian  and  Spanish  colonies  living  in  New  Orleans  have  introduced  many  of  the  delicacies  of 
those  countries.  The  finest  dish  of  maccaroni— the  genuine  article,  made  from  the  flinty  wheat 
of  Parma,  and  cooked  in  pure  Italian  style— can  be  obtained  in  New  Orleans,  as  well  as  all  the 
dishes  peculiar  to  Spain.  One  of  the  great  gastronomic  attractions  of  the  city,  lies  in  the  fact 
that  you  can  dine  in  any  fashion,  or  in  any  country  you  wish,  Spain,  France,  Italy,  the  United 
States,  or  even  China,  without  going  half  a  dozen  squares  from  your  room. 

Another  advantage  possessed  by  New  Orleans  is  the  great  variety  of  its  market  supplies.  It 
has  both  fresh  and  salt  water  fish  in  its  immediate  neighbourhood,  oysters  at  its  very  doors, 
early  vegetables,  ahead  of  any  city  in  the  Union,  and  game  in  abundance  in  its  encircling 
swamps.  This,  coupled  with  good  cooking,  makes  the  cuisine  of  New  Orleans  the  finest  in 
America. 

A  large  proportion  of  the  population  of  this  city  dine  out,  at  restaurants  and  eating  houses, 
and  to  accommodate  these,  there  are  establishments  of  every  variety  of  style  and  price,  among 
which  you  can  choose,  according  to  the  capacity  of  your  purse. 

You  wish  to  show  your  friendly  feelings  for  some  of  your  relatives  or  old  comrades— a 
party  of  a  dozen— and  you  think  the  best  way  is  to  give  them  a  tip-top  dinner  at  one  of  the 
leading  restaurants  or  hotels.  Your  relatives  and  comrades  don't  object.  We've  never  known 
any  of  'em  to  do  so  yet. 

The  eleven  guests  and  the  one  host  enter  the  elegant  and  cosy  dining-room,  glittering  with 
light,  and  take  seats  at  the  table,  gleaming  with  white  drapery,  and  French  china,  and  silver 
or  gold  service,  and  flowers  in  vases.  The  twelve  dilettanti  pick  up  the  bill  of  fare,  and  enjoy  a 
few  moments  of  quiet  chat  and  cosy  settling  down,  preparatory  to  several  hours*  innocent  and 
unadulterated  enjoyment. 

If  you  are  at  loss  how  to  select  among  the  dainties  of  the  menu,  you  cannot  do  better  than 
to  copy  the  bill  of  fare  of  a  dinner  given  to  his  friends  by  a  gentleman  who  has  a  great  reputa- 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  85 

tion  in  the  gastronomic  -world  and  who  understands  what  articles  are  best  in  the  New  Orleans 
market,  and  the  mode  in  which  New  Orleans  chefs  can  best  cook  them. 
Oysters— On  the  half  shell. 

Sovp—(Aveen  turtle. 

^i.!fA— Broiled  pompano,  a  la  maitre  d'hotel ;  sheephead  a  la  Nonnande. 

Eelevts—YHei  de  boeuf,  piquees  a  la  Flamande  ;  croquettes  de  pomme  de  terre  a  I'lmperial ; 
petits  bouches  a  la  Eeine. 

Entrees— Pigeon  a  la  royale  ;  cotelettes  d'agneau,  a  la  Pompadour ;  salmi  de  becassines,  a  la 
Richelieu  ;  filet  de  poularde,  a  la  Toulouse. 

VegetoMes-CdLuMfLovveT,  with  butter  sauce ;  spinach,  with  cream ;  asparagus,  with  drawn 
butter  ;  green  peas,  English  style. 

Second  Ctorse— Roast  mallard  ducks ;  woodcocks,  with  water  cresses  ;  turkey  stuffed  with 
truffles  •  omelette  souffle  ;  pastry  and  dessert ;  coffee. 

The  cost  of  th's  choice  repast  was  twenty  dollars  each  person,  not  including  the  wines. 

At  a  dinner  given  some  years  ago  by  an  Alabama  gentleman,  to  twelve  of  his  friends,  the 
cost,  including  wines,  was  over  $700.  The  St.  Charles  "  gold  service  "  figures  conspicuously  in  such 
feasts  as  this.  The  entree  dishes,  wine  coolers,  spoons  and  forks,  castors,  salt  cellars,  flower 
vases,  are  in  solid  gold  ;  the  rest  of  the  service  is  of  the  finest  French  porcelain. 

Now  for  the  Restaurant  Festive  Display  : 

Bill  of  fare  of  a  dinner  given  at  the  leading  restaurant  of  New  Orleans,  by  a  gentleman  of 
that  city  to  several  friends  : 

Soups— Tovine ;  bisque. 

Hots  d'  CEuvres— Melon  ;  olives ;  salade  d'anchoix ;  saucisson ;  pat6  de  f oie  gras ;  bouchfies  a 
la  reine. 

JPoisson— Snappers,  a  la  Chambord  ;  crabes  moux  ;  turban  de  filet  de  sole,  a  la  Venitienne. 

Entrees— Filet  de  boeuf,  pique  a  la  Richelieu ;  filet  de  volaille,  au  supreme ;  riz-de-veau  en 
demideuil ;  salmis  de  becassines  a  la  regence. 

Legymes-Chonx-Qeurs  a  la  creme ;  asperges  de  Lubecq ;  croustade  de  champignons  ;  petits 
pois  Fran^ais  ;  fond  d'artichaux,  a  la  d'Artois. 

Botis—Binde  truflfee  ;  becasses. 

Salade— De  cresson  de  fontaine. 

Dessert— Viece  mont^e ;  pyramide  de  creme-a-la-glace ;  petits  fours,  une  regente  ;  corbeille 
de  fruits  et  mendiants  (nuts  and  raisins). 

This  cost  the  hospitable  host  $6  for  each  person  at  table,  not  including  the  cost  of  the 
wines. 

For  an  ordinary  dinner,  a  hungry  man,  dropping  casually  into  a  restaurant,  should  take  a 
soup  and  some  fish  ;  then  an  entree,  say  a  sweetbread,  or  a  lamb  chop  ;  then  say  a  spring  chicken, 
or  roast  beef,  or  roast  mutton  or  veal,  with  one  or  two  dishes  of  vegetables.  For  dessert,  some 
fruit  or  jelly,  and  cheese,  and  a  cup  of  coffee.  With  a  half  bottle  of  claret,  this  would  cost  from 
Sl.50  to  S2.00 

Cut  New  Orleans  is  not  considered  really  visited  without  a  trip  to  the  lake,  or  a  fish  or  game 
dinner.  There  are  three  places  to  choose  from,  MUneburg,  West  End  and  Spanish  Fort,  and 
several  restaurants  at  each  place.  Milneburg  was  for  a  long  time  the  favorite,  and  Boudro, 
who  made  his  first  reputation  as  restaurateur  to  Jenny  Lind,  Miguel  and  others  there,  were 
world-famous.  The  West  End  or  New  Lake  End,  was  also  in  former  years  a  great  favorite 
as  it  afforded  an  agreeable  terminus  to  a  handsome  drive  over  the  shell  road.  As  for  Spanish 
Fort  it  was  in  those  days  the  club  house  of  the  Elkin  Club,  and  not  open  to  the  general  public. 
I  To-day  the  dinners  at  these  lakeside  places  are  as  good  as  they  were  in  the  best  days  of  old, 
put  immensely  cheaper  and  within  the  reach  of  all.  Patrons  can  have  either  a  saton  particuliere, 
private  room,  or  dine  in  the  general  dining-room.  Some  of  the  hotels  also  set  a  table  d'hote  at  a 
vrix  fixe,  at  which  the  diner  may  choose  so  many  plats. 


86  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

All  the  resorts  at  the  Lake  have  plenty  of  airy  rooms,  cool  ^^alleries,  trees  and  flowers  and 
walks,  and  a  pleasant,  shady,  quiet,  cosy,  comfortable  look  generally. 

The  Lake  artists  will  serve  your  fish  dinner  in  the  following  grand  divisions  : 

Soups— Oystem,  terrapin,  turtle,  crabs,  crawfish,  chowder,  bouille-a-baisse. 

Boiled— Uavd  shell  crabs,  lake  and  river  shrimps,  red  snapper,  biact  fish,  red  fish,  cod  fish, 
sheephead,  stingaree. 

Stewed— Shvim-ps,  eels,  perch,  red  fish,  red  snapper,  sheephead,  grouper. 

Baked— TeTTSLVm,  hard-shell  crabs,  fresh  and  saltwater  trout,  flounder,  and  all  the  othei 
leading  classes  of  fish. 

^^e^^—Soft-shell  crabs,  croakers,  trout,  and  the  other  principal  varieties. 

Salad,  or  Mayonnaise,  being  cold  fish  with  cold  sauces.  The  lake  shrimp  is  in  the  foremosi 
rank  for  a  salad. 

Broiled— S-psLuish.  mackerel,  blue  fish  and  pompano.  The  other  varieties  are  also  broiled,  bui 
besides  these  three  they  pale  their  ineffectual  fires. 

The  sheephead,  red  snapper,  red  fish  and  croaker  are  all  the  year  round  fishes.  The  shrimp 
soft-shell  crab,  blue  fish, black  fish,  Spanish  mackerel  and  pompano  bless  our  palates  only  in  th( 
spring,  and  for  a  while  in  the  summer  and  fall.  The  pompano  is  acknowledged  to  be  the  verj 
quintesssence  of  good  eating,  anywhere  ;  and,  what  is  one  of  its  great  merits,  is,  that  the  ait  o 
the  cook  is  best  displayed  in  treating  this  delightful  morsel  from  old  Neptune's  table  with  aitles; 
simplicity.  He  is  like  the  lily  of  the  valley;  he  needs  no  adornment  to  enhance  his  ran 
merits. 

We  shall  not  rush  blindfold  into  ruin  and  destruction  by  attempting  to  describe  the  variou) 
artistic  methods  of  preparing  these  treasures  of  the  deep  for  the  table.  "We  would  simply  allude 
in  a  modest  way,  to  a  crawfish  bisque;  to  a  bouille-d-baisse,  a  Marseilles  dish  that  Thackeray  has 
made  immortal ;  to  the  French  and  the  Spanish  courtbouillon ;  to  the  matdoUe  of  eels  and  perch 
to  the  mayonnaise,  a  recipe  from  Italy  or  from  Provence  ;  to  the  gratin,  French  or  Spanish  ;  tc 
the  boidlle  a  la  Genoise,  with  anchovy  sauce;  to  the  red  snapper  (I  la  Hollandaise;  the  tortm  a% 
gratin  ;  and  to  those  delightfully  innocent,  tender  creatures,  soft-shell  crabs. 

During  the  war,  a  poor  fellow,  born  and  raised  in  New  Orleans,  when  trying  one  cold,  rainj 
day,  just  as  he  was  out  of  hospital,  to  eat  some  tough  blue  beef,  suddenly  startled  his  comrade: 
by  exclaiming  in  a  semi-tragic,  semi-comic  tone  :  "  Oh  1  If  I  could  get  back  home  just  for  a  day 
boys ;  and  could  go  down  to  the  Lake,  and  eat  a  dinner  of  soft-shell  crabs  and  pompano,  once 
more,  I'd  be  w  illing  to  eat  blue  beef  all  the  rest  of  my  life  1" 

The  excursionist  to  the  Lake  restaurants  can  select  his  fish  dinner  to  suit  his  own  tastes  and 
pocket ;  but  he  can  hardly  get  a  good  fish  dinner  there  under  $2.50  to  $5,  without  wines. 

If  you  wish  a  game  dinner,  you  have  a  great  variety  to  select  from.  The  best  judges  regard 
New  Orleans'  superiority  over  other  markets,  to  be  chiefly  in  its  fish  and  game.  Its  beef  anc 
mutton  are  no  better  than  that  secured  in  Northern  cities,  and  the  vegetables,  although  coming 
to  the  market  earlier,  are  about  the  same.  But  in  game  and  fish,  it  is  unexcelled  both  in  varietj 
and  cheapness.  A  good  pair  of  ducks  can  be  purchased  in  the  New  Orleans  market  at  80  cents 
which  would  cost  anywhere  else  from  $2.00  to  $3.00. 

In  choosing  a  game  dinner,  you  have  the  following  to  select  from  :— 

y^inter  G^amg— Mallard  or  French  duck,  canvas-back  duck,  teal  duck,  black  duck,  pin-tai 
duck.  There  are  many  other  kinds  of  wild  ducks,  but  they  are  "fishy,"  and  therefore  noi 
patronized  by  gourmets.  The  question,  as  to  how  to  distinguish  fishy  from  gamey  ducks,  is  om 
that  has  long  puzzled  housekeepers.  The  fishy  ducks  cannot  be  recognized  by  their  odor ;  anc 
the  only  mode  of  selecting  is  to  observe  the  color  of  the  wings.  If  these  are  decorated  with  t 
line  of  white  feathers,  the  duck  is  apt  to  be  fishy  ;  if  green,  it  is  fit  for  the  table.  Other  favorite 
varieties  of  game,  are  :— 

Snipe,  woodcock,  plover,  robins,  partridge,  grouse,  wild  turkey,  squirrels,  rabbits,  venison, 
bear. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS,  87 

Summer  Game—The  large  and  small  grasset,  which  comes  in  September :  the  papabotte,  and 
the  caille  cle  laurier.  All  thr*  e  of  these  are  peculiar  to  Louisiana,  and  all  three  are  considered 
by  gourmets  as  unsurpassed  by  any  other  game. 

The  eating  house  is  an  institution  in  New  Orleans  somewhat  different  from  the  restaurant, 
[t  is  not  quite  as  comfortable,  the  accommodation  in  seats,  table  room,  knives,  forks,  spoons, 
jookery,  etc.,  being  more  simple,  but  neat  and  plentiful  ;  the  cooking  is  generally  fair ;  the 
variety  of  refreshments  is  great,  and  prices  are  comparatively  low. 

Since  the  war  the  eating-house  has  become  a  very  prominent  feature  in  the  public  refresh- 
nent  business,  and  some  of  these  establishments  tread  closely  on  the  heels  of  the  largest 
•estaurant.    Here  is  a  sample  bill  of  fare  : 

Soup—Thvee  kinds,  and  five  kinds  of  gombo ;  each  at  25  cents. 

Fish— Ei^ht  kinds,  from  Louisiana  waters  ;  pickled  mackerel  and  codfish,  roe  herring;  hard- 
jhell  crabs,  plain  and  stuffed ;  soft-shell  crabs.    Prices  ranging  from  25  to  40  and  60  cents. 

Cold  Dishes— Meois,  tongue,  chicken,  sardines,  four  salads,  20,  25,  30,  40,  50  cents. 

Broiled-  Four  meats  and  poultry,  25  and  30  cents. 

Roast— Yoxxv  meats  and  poultry,  25  cents  ;  with  fruit  sauce  and  jelly,  10  cents. 

Vegetables— TvfentY-ouQ'kmCis.,  10  to  15  cents  for  the  ordinary  ones ;  40  cents  for  green  peas 
md  asparagus,  50  cents  for  mushrooms. 

Entrees— ^liTmg  chicken  and  mushrooms,  40  cents  ;  mutton  and  potatoes,  25  cents  ;  giblets 
mth.  butter  beans,  25  cents  ;  veal  fricassee,  25  cents  ;  baked  maccaroni  and  cheese,  25  cents. 

Dishes  to  OrcZer— Twenty-two  :  Tenderloin  beefsteak,  50  cents  ;  sirloin,  40  cents  ;  porterhouse 
iteak,  Si ;  mutton  steak  or  chops,  pork  steak  or  chops,  veal  cutlet  or  chops,  turtle  steak,  ham 
md  eggs,  omelette  with  ham  or  oysters,  Hamburg  steak,  calves'  brains,  Welsh  rarebit,  40  cents ; 
'pring  chicken,  $1,  half  ditto,  50  cents  ;  eggs  on  toast.  35  cents  ;  tripe,  liver  or  kidney,  30  cents; 
}ggs— boUed,  fried,  scrambled,  shirred  or  poached,  omelette,  ham,  breakfast  bacon,  corn  or  rice 
Jakes,  batter  cakes,  mush  and  milk,  25  cents. 

Oysters— Ke-^t  on  ice  and  cooked  as  may  be  desired,  50  to  60  cents  per  dozen. 

Dessert— VediOh  cobbler,  10  cents  ;  apple  or  banana  fritters,  25  cents  ;  pie,  10  cents  ;  rum  ome- 
ette,  50  cents ;  tea,  coffee  or  milk,  hot  or  iced,  10  cents ;  chocolate,  15  cents ;  tea,  coffee  or 
ihocolate,  without  any  of  tue  above  dishes,  and  with  bread  and  butter,  25  cents. 

Wines,  liquors,  malt  liquors,  etc.,  a  full  list.  A  winter  bill  of  fare  for  these  eating-houses  of 
epute,  would  show  French  duck,  teal  duck,  partridge,  squirrels,  rabbits,  grouse,  venison,  etc. 

On  Chartres  street  are  to  be  found  some  of  the  cheap  French  restaurants  with  such  queer 
lames  as  Les  Quatres  Saisons,  Le  Pelerin,  etc.  A  very  comfortable  dinner  well  cooked  will 
ost  here  from  forty  to  fifty  cents.  Here  is  a  sample  of  the  charges  :  Soup,  10c  ;  gombo,  15c ; 
our  croakers,  20c ;  broiled  sheep  head,  35c ;  roast  mutton,  15c ;  a  stew,  15c  ;  potatoes  or  other 
egetables,  plain,  10c  ;  custard,  10c  ;  pudding,  10c  ;  fruit,  10c ;  coffee,  10c ;  claret,  half  a 
ottle,  20c. 

As  you  approach  the  French  market,  you  go  down  in  the  social  scale,  and  the  price  of 
inner  grows  cheaper. 

The  visitor  to  New  Orleans  who  wants  to  buy  some  bananas  will  be  shown  this  in  a  very 
onspicuous  manner,  if  he  prices  this  food  at  each  stand  between  Canal  street  and  the  market, 
ananas  which,  on  Canal,  are  worth  30  cents  a  dozen,  will  be  25  cents  two  squares  away,  20 
ents  at  Jackson  square,  15  cents  in  the  market,  and  by  journeying  to  the  front  landing  a  square 
irther,  you  can  purchase  at  10  cents  per  dozen  from  the  boys  who  pick  up  those  that  fall  from 
le  bunches  as  they  are  landed  from  the  Central  American  vessels — identically  the  same  bananas 
1  size,  appearance  and  taste  as  cost  30  cents  on  Canal  street. 

In  the  same  way,  the  price  of  a  dinner  grows  cheaper  as  you  go  towards  the  market.  In 
)me  of  the  cheap  hotels  facing  that  institution,  the  acme  of  cheap  eating  is  reached.  These 
otels  are  nearly  all  located  over  bar-rooms. 

The  hungry  man  who  visits  them  will  have  set  before  him,  successively,  a  soup,  a  dish  of 


88  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

soup  meat,  fish  twice  a  week  and  a  roast,  changed  every  day.  When  the  hotel  is  full,  mutton 
chops,  sausages,  etc.,  are  added  to  the  meats.  In  addition,  the  diner  will  be  provided  with  five 
or  six  dishes  of  vegetables,  including  salad,  and  a  dessert,  one  day  of  pie,  the  next  of  pudding. 
All  this  for  30  cents  to  the  casual  diner,  and  cheaper  to  the  regular  boarder. 

In  the  market  itself  will  be  found  eating  stands,  well  patronized  by  the  poorer  class  of  people, 
and  a  great  convenience  to  many  midnight  wayfarers  as  they  keep  open  at  all  hours  of  the  night, 
when  other  restaurants  and  eatinghouses  are  closed. 

There  are  two  varieties  of  these  market  restaurants— one  the  cafe,  where  only  cake  and 
chocolate,  both  prepared  in  the  best  Creole  fashion,  and  tender  little  biscuits  are  sold.  These 
are  patronized  by  the  very  best  people,  and  it  is  customary  to  take  a  cup  of  cafe  noir  (black 
coffee),  cafe  au  lait  (coffee  with  milk),  or  chocolate  whenever  you  visit  the  market. 

The  second  class  are  nearly  restaurants  with  the  following  limited,  but  very  cheap  bill  ol 
fare  :  One  soup,  changed  daily  ;  roast  pork  ;  roast  ham  ;  roast  veal ;  roast  beef ;  corned  beef; 
beef  sausage ;  pork  .sausage ;  beefsteak;  beef  stew;  tripe  stew;  fried  trout;  fried  catfish; 
baked  beans ;  beet  salad  ;  cucumber  salad  ;  potato  salad  ;  eggs,  boiled  or  fried.  Each  dish  1( 
cents. 

Tea,  coffee,  chocolate,  or  milk,  5  cents.  Bread  and  doughnuts,  gratis.  Coffee  and  dough 
nuts  alone,  5  cents. 

Market  eatinghouses  of  this  kind  are  to  be  found  in  Poydras,  Magazine,  Dryades,  and  indeed 
at  all  the  city  markets. 

There  is  no  city  in  the  world  where  such  free  lunches  are  set  as  in  the  first-class  saloons  oi 
New  Orleans.  San  Francisco  patterned  after  it  many  years  ago,  but  never  quite  came  up  tc 
the  menu  of  New  Orleans. 

These  free  lunches  were  institutsd  by  Alvarez,  who  ran  the  bar-room  in  the  old  St.  Louh 
Hotel  in  1837.  Gentlemen  doing  business  in  New  Orleans,  which  was  mainly  conducted  in  whal 
is  now  the  French  portion  of  the  city,  complained  that,  as  many  of  them  resided  as  far  do'wm  as 
the  lower  cotton  press,  and  some  as  high  up  as  Julia  street,  they  could  not  find  time  during  the 
middle  of  the  day  to  go  home  and  get  a  bite  and  they  did  not  want  to  pay  restaurant  prices  foi 
a  mere  plate  of  soup  and  a  sandwich. 

To  gratify  this  large  class  and  secure  their  custom,  the  then  only  first-class  bar-rooms  in  th€ 
city— St.  Louis  Hotel,  Hewlitt's  (afterward  City  Hotel),  Arcade,  Veranda,  St.  Charles  Hotel- 
inaugurated  free  lunches.    Hotel  bars  were  then  the  only  ones  ranking  first-class. 

The  lunches  in  those  old  days  were  served  on  a  narrow  table-cloth  running  the  whole  lengtb 
of  the  counter  and  covering  one-half  of  it.  Soup,  a  piece  of  beef  or  ham  and  potatoes,  meat 
pie  or  oyster  patties  comprised  the  bill  of  fare.  On  the  innermost  side  of  the  counter  each 
customer's  drink  was  served  before  him.  The  coffee  houses  were  then  the  principal  places  of 
resort,  and  much  business  was  transacted  at  their  tables  which  is  now  done  in  the  various  com- 
mercial exchanges. 

In  the  course  of  time,  the  free  lunches  became  more  and  more  popular,  and  the  bill  of  fare 
was  increased.  Several  attempts  have  been  made  by  the  restaurateurs  to  do  away  with  these 
lunches  as  injurious  to  the  restaurant  business,  but  vrithout  success,  and  they  are  more  patron- 
ized now  than  ever.  The  lunch  is  generally  served  from  12  m.  to  1  p.  >i.,  but  some  houses  keef 
open  from  10  a.  m.  to  2  p.  m.  A  very  comfortable  meal  can  be  procured  at  any  of  the  places, 
and  it  is  said  that  many  impecunious  persons  Uve  wholly  at  the  free  lunch  counter.  ' 

Here  are  the  bills  of  fare  of  several  leading  bar-rooms,  given  simply  to  show  the  charactei  i 
of  the  lunches  served  in  New  Orleans :—  ! 

ST.  CHARLES  SALOON,  ST.  CHARLES  STREET. 
For  Monday— Onion  soup  or  beef  broth,  roast  beef,  mutton  stew,  mashed  potatoes,  bread 
and  butter  and  pickles. 

Tuesday— Oyster  or  turtle  soup,  roast  of  beef,  veal  stew,  mashed  potatoes  and  pickles. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  89 

Wednesday— Rice  and  tomato  soup,  roast  beef,  mashed  potatoes,  macaroni  and  the  other 
side  dishes  as  on  the  other  days. 

Thursday— Turtle  soup,  roast  beef,  stew,  mashed  potatoes,  bread  and  crackers,  pickles,  etc. 

Friday— Crab  soup  or  beef  broth,  fish,  red  snapper  with  courtbouillon  sauce  or  cream 
jauce,  potatoes  au  gratin,  stew  and  pickles. 

Saturday— Gombo,  roast  beef,  macaroni,  mashed  potatoes,  etc. 

THE  JEWEL,  GRAVIEE  STREET. 
Sunday— Pea  soup,  roast  beef,  pickles,  mashed  potatoes. 
Monday— Vermicelli  soup,  roast  beef,  hash,  mashed  potatoes. 
Tuesday— Turtle  soup,  roast  beef,  hash  and  rice,  sliced  ham. 
Wednesday— Vermicelli  soup,  pork  and  beans,  hash,  etc. 
Thursday— Pea  soup,  roast  beef,  mashed  potatoes,  hash,  etc. 
Friday — Fish,  turtle  soup,  red  snapper,  hash. 
Saturday— Vermicelli  soup,  pork  and  beans,  hash. 
Butter,  corned  beef,  cheese,  crackers,  rye  bread,  butter  crackers,  served  always. 

MILLER'S,  COMMON  STREET. 

Monday— Beef  soup,  stew,  corned  beef,  shrimp  or  lobster  salads,  potato,  tripe  and  lettuce, 
5old  slaw  and  beets,  mashed  potatoes. 

Tuesday— Turtle  soup,  roast  beef,  ham,  same  salads  and  meat  salads,  cold  slaw,  beets, 
juenmber,  mashed  potatoes. 

Wednesday— Ox-tail  soup,  hash,  same  salads,  hogshead  cheese,  sausage,  mashed  potatoes. 

Thursday— Pea  soup,  roast  beef,  Bologna  sausage,  same  salads,  mashed  potatoes. 

Friday— Potato  soup,  red  snapper,  ham,  fish  salads,  mashed  potatoes. 

Saturday— Turtle  soup,  roast  beef,  mashed  potatoes,  lobster  salad,  tripe,  potatoes. 

Corn  bread,  light  bread,  black  bread,  crackers  and  cheese. 

CRESCENT  HALL,  CANAL  STREET. 

Monday— Onion  soup,  sirloin  roast,  baked  beans,  hash,  stew,  fried  tripe,  fried  hominy,  green 
3orn,  salads,  cucumbers  and  onions,  succotash. 

Tuesday— Turtle  soup,  roast  of  sirloin,  baked  beans,  hash,  fried  tripe,  fried  hominy,  salads 
ambalaya. 

Wednesday  —Oyster  soup,  sirloin  roast,  baked  beans,  fried  tripe,  fried  hominy,  corn  and 
omatoes,  salads,  radishes. 

Thursday— Crab  gombo  and  rice,  jambalaya,  roast  beef,  baked  beans,  shallots,  salads,  fried 
ripe,  fried  hominy,  succotash. 

Friday— Oyster  or  crab  or  turtle  soup,  fish  chowder,  red  snapper,  boiled  shrimp,  potatoes 
rreen  corn,  soft-shell  crabs,  fried  oysters. 

Saturday— Vegetable  soup,  roast  sirloin,  baked  beans,  succotash,  hash,  fried  tripe, 
■ucumbers  and  onions,  salads. 

Sunday— Macaroni  soup,  boiled  ham,  stew,  hash,  corn  and  tomatoes. 

ACME  SALOON,  ROYAL  STREET. 

Monday— Vegetable  soup,  roast  beef,  beef  stewed  with  potatoes,  stewed  kidney,  baked 
oacaroni,  com,  tomatoes,  lettuce,  green  onions,  potato  salad,  beets,  cold  slaw. 

Tuesday— Gombo,  roast  beef,  dry  hash,  stewed  liver,  boiled  Irish  potatoes,  baked  beans, 
iioiled  rice,  lettuce,  green  onions,  potato  salad,  beets  and  cold  slaw. 

I  Wednesday— Pea  soup,  roast  beef,  beef  stewed  with  tomatoes,  sauerkraut  and  boiled  pork, 
Itewed  carrots,  green  peas,  baked  sweet  potatoes,  lettuce,  green  onions,  potato  salad,  beets  and 
!;old  slaw. 


90  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Thursday— Bean  soup,  roast  beef,  beef  stewed  with  potatoes,  boiled  onions,  fried  trip( 
baked  macaroni,  stewed  tomatoes,  boiled  turnips,  lettuce,  green  onions,  potato  salad,  beets  am 
cold  slaw. 

Friday— Oyster  soup,  baked  red  snapper,  roast  beef,  boiled  ham,  mashed  Irish  potatoe.^ 
stewed  corn,  rice  jambalaya,  lettuce,  green  onions,  potato  salad,  beets  and  cold  slaw. 

Saturday— Gombo,  roast  beef,  beef  stewed  with  green  peas,  corned  beef  and  cabbage 
baked  beans,  baked  sweet  potatoes,  boiled  Irish  potatoes  with  jackets  on,  lettuce,  green  onions 
potato  salad,  beets  and  cold  slaw. 

Here  is  a  sample  cold  lunch  at  the  Continental : 

Cold  mutton,  veal,  ham,  shrimps,  Boston  brown  bread,  Goshen  butter.  The  soups  are  :  C 
Mondays,  pea  soup  ;  Tuesdays,  chicken  soup  ;  Wednesdays,  mulligatawny  soup  ;  Thursday^ 
Julienne  soup ;  Fridays,  turtle  soup ;  Saturdays,  ox-tail  soup.    Salads,  tomato,  potato,  lettuct 

The  markets  of  New  Orleans  present  the  greatest  variety  of  food,  and  the  housekeeper  cai 
easily  market  for  a  large  family  at  very  little  expense.  The  French  market  still  maintains  it 
reputation  for  cheapness,  and  as  having  the  best  fruits  and  vegetables.  Poydras  market  claim 
to  be'the  best  fish  market,  while  Magazine  leads  iu  meats.    Game  is  abundant  at  all. 

One  can  now  obtain  the  choicest  beef  for  twenty  cents  per  pound,  such  as  the  tenderloi; 
and  sirloin,  and  rib  pieces  for  fifteen  cents,  but  when  the  animal  is  corn-fed  and  fat  sometime 
twenty-five  cents  are  asked.  The  other  portions  sell  for  a  price  varying  from  five  to  fif Deei 
cents,  the  neck  bringing  about  five  cents.  For  a  good  soup-bone  containing  enough  meat  U 
make  a  soup  nutritious  ten  cents  are  asked,  and  round  steaks  off  the  thighs  the  same  price  pe 
pound  demanded.  Veal  brings,  on  the  average,  fifteen  cents  per  pound,  and  the  market 
furnish  a  fine  quality  of  it.  Its  delicacy  of  fibre  and  facility  of  digestion  make  it  a  favorit 
summer  article  of  diet.    For  pieces  more  or  less  bony,  twelve  and  a  half  cents  are  asked. 

In  mutton  about  the  same  prices  rule,  except  when  there  is  a  very  choice  leg  a  fancy  sumi 
placed  upon  it,  as  is  the  case  vdth  large  streaked  chops,  which  are  generally  all  taken  by  th» 
restaurants.    A  roast  of  pork  costs  fifteen  cents  per  pound. 

Of  fish  there  is  an  almost  endless  variety  on  the  stands.  The  grouper,  rock  fish,  red  fish,  re( 
snapper,  flounder,  bass,  trout  (green  and  speckled)  sakalait,  perch,  croakers,  moonfish.  Span 
ish  mackerel  and  pompano  can  be  found,  their  prices  varying  somewhat,  according  to  tbt 
demand.  For  thirty  cents  a  red  snapper  large  enough  for  a  family  of  five  can  be  had,  and  foi 
twenty-five  cents  enough  croakers  for  three.  In  those  large  fish  that  are  sliced  up,  twenty-fiv< 
cents  wiU  purchase  enough  for  an  ample  meal  for  four.  Crabs  sell  for  sometimes  four,  some- 
times five,  and  sometimes  six  for  a  dime,  and  enough  lake  shrimp  for  two  for  a  nickel. 

In  the  vegetable  line  prices  vary  considerably.  A  pile,  as  it  is  called,  of  sweet  or  Irist 
potatoes  sufficient  for  a  family  can  be  had  for  five  cents.  Tomatoes  bring  five  cents  for  six  oi 
eight  good-sized  ones.  Almost  half  a  bucket  of  string  beans  is  given  for  the  same  sum,  while 
for  squashes  ten  cents  is  asked  for  five. 

Of  butter-beans,  an  ordinary  cupful  sells  at  from  five  to  ten  cents.  Egg-plants  sell,  ai 
the  beginning  of  the  season,  at  about  two  cents  a  piece. 

Cabbages  never  vary  a  very  great  deal.  In  winter,  it  is  true,  the  supply  is  large,  but  foi 
ten  cents  a  head  suflficient  for  a  small  family  can  be  purchased  at  all  times. 

Onions  sell  for  $2  50  and  $3  00  a  barrel  at  wholesale,  and  about  seven  are  given  for  five  cent* 
at  retail. 

Cantalopes  and  watermelons  bring  about  twenty  cents  apiece  for  those  of  fair  size. 

Out  of  these  meats  and  vegetables,  it  ought  to  be  possible  to  make  up  a  very  handsome 
dinner.    Here  are  some  excellent  cartes  for  a  family  dinner. 

Vegetable  Soup— Soup  bone,  10  cents ;  bunch  of  vegetables,  5  cents.  Steak,  30  cents; 
stuffed  egg  plants,  10  cents ;  string  beans,  5  cents ;  Irish  potatoes  mashed,  5  cents.  Dessert- 
Watermelon,  20fcents.    Total,  85  cents. 

Or  if  this  be  too  high,  the  following  may  be  had  for  poorer  families : 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  91 

VermiceUi  Soup-Vermicelli,  5  cents  :  soup  bone,  10  cents.  Veal  stew,  20  cents ;  for  brisket 
piece,  com  and  tomatoes,  15  cents  ;  sweet  potatoes,  5  cents.    Total,  55  cents. 

If  it  be  fish  day,  then  the  frugal  wife  can  give  the  following  : 

Baked  redfish,  25  cents  ;  string  beans,  5  cents  ;  stuffed  egs  plants,  10  cents  ;  Irish  potatoes 
mashed,  5  cents  ;  tomatoes,  5  cents.    Total,  55  cents.  ' 

The  great  dish  of  New  Orleans,  and  which  it  claims  the  honor  of  having  invented  is  the 
GOMBO.  There  is  no  dish  which  at  the  same  time  so  tickles  the  palate,  satisfies  the  appetite 
furnishes  the  body  with  nutriment  sufiBcient  to  carry  on  the  physical  requirements,  and  co'^ts  so 
little  as  a  Creole  gombo.  It  is  a  dinner  in  itself,  being  soup,  piece  de  resistaiue,  entrermt  and 
vegetables  in  one.  Healthy,  not  heating  to  the  stomach  and  easy  of  digestion,  it  should  grace 
every  table. 

Here  is  a  recipe  for  gombo,  direct  from  an  ancient  Creole  lady  who  knows  how  to  make  it 
and  It  can  be  strongly  recommended.    We  give  it  just  as  it  came  from  her : 

Premie  chose  le  prens  la  viane  la  qui  ye  pele  "  tasso, "  et  mette  li  dans  to  chodiere  avec  en  ti 
bren  la  graisse  et  en  ti  bren  la  farine,  lese  li  toune  so  couleur  empe  brun,  apres  oa  mette  empe 
dezoDion  et  empe  dulaye,  pas  tros  dulaye,  paske  ca  va  fai  li  senti  movai ;  apres  mette  asse  do  lo 
pour  fai  tan  qui  veulai,  quan  li  presque  fini  mette  file  la  ;  main  mobile  di  vous  mete  trois  ou  quat 
feuille  lerie  la  dan.    Si  to  gaien  des  crab  ou  de  chevrette  to  capab  mette  ye  la  dan. 

Voye  li  bien  qui  li  pas  brule,  et  to  va  fai  bon  gombo. 

Mobile  di,  fo  mange  li  avec  du  riz. 

If  this  prescription  is  carefully  followed  the  gombo  is  certain  to  be  a  i 


92  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  X.— THE  CLUBS. 

THE    SOCIAL    LIFE    OF    THE    OLDEN    TIMES,    AND     OF    TO-DAY— THE    BOSTON,   PICKWICK, 
LOUISIANA    AND    OTHER    CLUBS. 

Prior  to  the  year  1832  there  was  not,  properly  speaking,  a  single  close,  private  social  club  in 
New  Orleans.  There  were,  it  is  true,  a  number  of  public  places  at  that  and  at  preceding  periods, 
places  by  courtesy  caUed  "bourses"  or  exchanges,  to  which  gentlemen  of  leisure,  merchants 
and  professional  men,  resorted  in  the  evening,  and  after  the  closing  of  business,  but  these  were 
public,  free  and  open  to  all.  In  reality  such  places  of  rendezvous  were  nothing  more  than 
saloon's  or  barrooms,  with  seats  and  other  accommodations  for  their  visitors  and  customers, 
wherein  games  of  cards,  chess,  dominoes  and  billiards,  were  allowed  and  played,  as  even  now  is 
the  case  in  some  of  the  old  cafes  and  barrooms  below  Canal  street. 

As  all  such  places  in  the  olden  time,  under  French  and  Creole  regime,  were  owned  and 
managed  by  polite  and  well-mannered  men.  and  the  good  breeding  and  gentlemanly  conduct  ol 
their  visitors  in  those  days  precluded  the  possibility  of  any  disturbance  or  turbulence,  these 
"bourses,"  such  as  those  of  Elkin,  La  Sere  and  Maspero,  located  on  St.  Louis,  Royal  and 
Chartres  streets,  supplied  the  place  of  social  clubs. 

These  public  places  of  rendezvous  did  not,  however,  satisfy  the  more  fastidious  tastes  of 
some  of  the  worthies  of  that  period,  who  desired  a  little  more  privacy  and  seclusion  in  theii  j 
recreations  and  social  pleasures.  This  they  could  only  find  in  a  close  social  club  wherein  mem- 
bership and  the  selection  of  association  could  be  made  to  depend  upon  the  wishes  and  votes  ol 
an  inside  organization.  This  desire  led  to  the  organization  of  the  first  social  ciub  in  New  Orleans, 
about  the  year  18.32.  Before  this  date  one  Harvey  Elkin,  notable  for  his  capacity  and  qualifica- 
tions as  a  caterer  and  manager  of  places  of  public  entertainment,  had  already  established  an  ' 
elegant  and  well  appointed  hostelry  on  the  Bayou  St.  John,  on  the  same  site  where  is  now  located 
the  Spanish  Fort  Hotel.  Through  insufficiency  of  patronage  and  other  causes  he  had  become 
involved  in  financial  difficulties,  which  led  to  Insolvency  and  to  the  sale  of  all  his  property  on 
the  lake  shore,  known  as  Elkinburg.  Here  an  opportunity  offered  to  secure  a  favorite  site  for  a 
summer  club-house,  and  it  was  promptly  seized  by  John  SHdell  and  other  friends  of  Elkin,  who 
at  once  purchased  Elkinburg,  with  all  its  buildings,  hotels,  improvements  and  other  appurte- 
nances, and  immediately  thereafter  organized  the  first  social  club  of  New  Orleans,  which,  in 
compliment  to  the  previous  owner  of  the  land  and  hotel,  who  was  to  continue  as  manager  and 
steward,  was  designated  the  Elkin  Club. 

The  original  membership  of  that  social  organization  comprised  some  of  the  well-known  and 
most  prominent  citizens  of  New  Orleans  of  olden  time.  Among  these  were  John  R.  Grymes, 
Horace  Cammack,  John  Slidell,  John  Linton,  first  president  of  the  Canal  Bank,  Glendy  Burke, 
also  a  president  of  the  same  institution,  "  Steeple  "  Dixen,  Dr.  Rogers,  William  aarke,  Jr.. 
brother  of  Thomas  Allen  Clarke,  Jacob  Wilcox,  the  first  to  attempt  the  manufacture  of  artificial 
ice  in  New  Orleans,  and  many  others.  Not  one  of  these  members,  it  is  sad  to  think,  now  lives 
to  corroborate  the  pleasures,  episodes  and  events  enjoyed  or  enacted  at  Elkin,  which  we  now 
propose  to  relate.  .  „     , 

The  members  of  the  club  were  all  well-to-do  men,  professionally  or  commerciaUy,  keepmg 
horses  and  carriage,  so  that  every  day  at  the  close  of  business  they  were  wont  to  drive  over 
the  shell-road  to  their  club,  where  elegant  dinners  waited  their  coming.  The  appointments  of 
the  club  were  complete,  so  far  as  services  and  attendance  were  concerned;  while  its  prominent 
attraction  was  its  chief,  whom  Elkin  had  secured,  a  Frenchman,  Bertrand  by  name,  a  cordon  bleu 
in  gastronomy.    Those  were  the  days  of  high  betting  on  cards  and  horses,  the  days  when  the 


1 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  93 

fascinating  game  of  brag  was  indulged  in,  to  an  extent  almost  fabulous.  Several  members  of 
the  Elkin  Club  were  known  to  have  lost  large  sums  at  the  gaming  table,  thereby  enriching  some 
of  the  more  fortunate  fellows,  and  one  in  particular,  to  whose  success  at  brag  was  ascribed  the 
foundation  of  his  subsequent  large  fortune. 

Feasting  and  gaming  were  not  the  onlj^  pleasures  and  pastime  at  Elkin.  Those  were  also 
bibulous  days  ;  but  to  the  honor  and  credit  of  that  period  be  it  said,  there  was  no  whiskey  drank 
in  the  club  ;  in  truth,  that  beverage  was  then,  if  not  unknown,  at  least  rejected  from  all  social 
indulgencies.  Madeira— and  the  Madeira  of  1830  was  famous— Madeira,  sheriy,  clarets  and  Bur- 
gundies, those  were  the  wines  di*ank  by  the  Elkin  Club  men.  A  wine-drinking  bout  at  that  club, 
which  was  the  subject  of  a  bet,  was  in  after  years  described  by  Mr.  Grymes  at  a  private  dinner 
party  given  to  the  judges  of  the  Supreme  Court,  which  provoked  considerable  merriment. 

Addressing  the  host,  Mr.  Slidell,  who  with  him  had  been  a  member  at  Elkin,  Mr.  Grymes 
inquired  whether  he  remembered  the  occasion  and  dinner,  when  twelve  bottles  of  various  wines, 
to  be  topped  by  a  bottle  of  anisette,  was  to  be  drank  by  each  man  at  the  table,  those  remaining 
uncrippled  in  the  bacchanalian  contest,  to  be  the  winner  or  winners  of  the  purse. 

"Ah,"  said  Grymes,  "you  and  I,  Slidell,  had  to  divide  the  spoils  ;  we  two  alone  of  the  party 
held  our  ground  ;  all  the  rest  were  recuperating  under  the  board."  At  which  sally  and  remini- 
scence of  the  gallant  old  Colonel,  one  of  the  judges,  with  a  knowing  wink,  retorted  that  the  two 
wily  winners  had  doubtless  thrown  off  on  their  innocent  competitors. 

The  gentlemen  of  the  club  were,  however,  far  from  being  selfish,  egotistical  and  crabbed  old 
bachelors.  On  the  contrary  they  were  full  of  the  spirit  of  gaiety,  hospitality,  and  cultivated  a 
chivalric  admiration  for  the  fairer  sex ;  and  music,  dancing  and  other  entertainments  often 
relieved  the  monotony  of  the  lake  shore,  and  the  best  society  of  New  Orleans  graced  the  halls 
and  piazzas  of  the  club.  After  a  few  years  of  brilliant  existence,  this  organization  came  to  an 
end  about  1838,  in  consequence  of  the  financial  revulsions  brought  about  by  the  great  commer- 
cial panic  of  1837. 

The  seed  had  nevertheless  been  sown,  the  fii'st  New  Orieaus  social  club  had  been  organized, 
and  the  advantages  of  private  social  organizations  had  been  so  satisfactorily  demonstrated, 
that  from  the  debris  of  the  Elkin  a  nucleus  of  membership  was  secured,  from  which,  in  1843,  was 
organized  another  and  a  grand  club,  the  Pelican. 

This,  the  second  social  club  inaugurated  upon  the  ruins  of  the  Elkin,  soon  became  a  large 
and  influential  body  in  New  Orleans  society.  It  was  from  the  first  a  very  close,  very  exclusive 
institution,  and  within  its  sacred  precincts  no  one  was  admitted  unless  his  position  in  one  of 
the  three  departments  of  finance,  commerce  or  politics,  was  well  established.  Its  members 
were  generally  capitalists,  bankers,  cotton  buyers,  English  representatives  of  large  British 
houses,  lawyers  and  physicians,  distinguished  in  their  professions,  and  acknowledged  political 
chieftains. 

It  was  to  this  club  that  Henry  Clay  and  Gen.  Scott  would  invariably  repair  when  they 
visited  New  Orleans,  and  where  they  would  challenge  aspirants  to  honors  at  the  game  of  whist 
to  meet  them  in  contest  for  superiority,  both  of  these  great  Americans  being  proud  of  their 
skill  in  this  game.  Very  few,  if  any,  young  men  were  ever  admitted  to  membership,  and, 
strange  to  say,  the  prejudices  as  to  social  castes,  were  such  in  the  Pelican,  that  trades  and  pursuits 
constituted  grounds  for  admission  or  exclusion. 

It  is  amusing  at  the  present  day,  when  entree  to  almost  any  circle  is  made  to  depend  solely 
on  the  possession  of  numerous  shekels,  obtained  or  gathered  from  any  source,  fas  aid  nefas,  to 
hear  that  at  this  "  old  Pelican  Club  "  while  cotton  bujing  and  selling,  sugar  and  cotton  raising, 
banking,  stock  and  exchange  dealing  were  classed  as  respectable  occupations,  conferring 
cachets  of  gentility  on  those  therein  engaged,  merchandizing  in  groceries,  dry  goods,  hard  ware, 
and  the  like,  were  held  as  plebeian  in  their  nature,  and  as  disqualifications  for  membership. 

High  credit  and  an  unspotted  financial  record  were  required,  and  so  far  was  this  exaction 
pressed,  that  many  applicants  for  admission  were  black-balled  on  account  of  unredeemed  obliga- 


94  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

tions,  although  they  had  been  honorably  discharged  in  bankruptcy.  There  was  a  signal  illustration 
of  this  ri,:?id  rule  when  a  prominent  citizen,  who  since  that  time  signalized  himself  by  his  dash  and 
gallantry  in  the  Confederate  armies,  dying  at  the  head  of  a  Louisiana  brigade  in  a  gi-and  charge 
at  Sharpsburg,  applied  for  admission  to  the  Pelican  and  was  black-balled  by  a  distinguished 
banker,  who  lately  died  in  Ohio,  merely  because  he  had  failed,  and  because,  even  after 
bankruptcy  and  discharge,  he  had  omitted  to  pay,  in  whole  or  in  part,  a  commercial  note  held 
by  the  said  barker. 

Notwithstanding  all  this  rigidity,  exclusiveness  and  aristocratic  tendencies,  the  club  was 
strong  and  flourished  ;  its  members  were  nearly  all  wealthy  men,  wielding  influence  at  home 
and  abroad.  From  1843  to  1851  the  Pelican  domicile  was  established  in  the  Second  district,  at  the 
corner  of  Royal  and  Customhouse,  where  all  distinguished  visitors  to  the  city  were  received  and 
entertained.  These  attentions  to  strangers  never  failed  to  secure  their  admission  to  the  best 
circles  of  society. 

In  1851  Mr.  Felix  Labatut,  a  capitalist  at  that  period,  erected  especially  for  the  use  of  the 
club  that  spacious  and  elegant  structure  at  the  corner  of  Baronne  and  Canal  streets,  afterward 
the  Perry  House.  The  whole  building  was  occupied  by  the  club,  whose  membership  had  largely 
increased,  and  the  whole  lower  floor,  now  occupied  as  stores,  constituted  the  club  restaurant 
and  private  dinner  apartments. 

This  latter  department,  a  new  departure  in  club  life,  was  liberally  patronized  and  well 
sustained  by  the  members,  a  large  portion  of  whom  were  Englishmen,  who  were  in  the  city  only 
during  the  cotton  season,  their  families  remaining  in  England. 

Those  were  brilliant  and  happy  days  indeed.  Money  was  plenty ;  feasts,  banquets  and 
festivals  were  numerous  and  frequent.  The  Englishmen  sojourning  in  New  Orleans  in  those 
days  were  not  slow  in  responding  to  the  many  hospitalities  extended  to  them  by  the  ladies  and 
gentlemen  of  the  city,  and  in  return  for  all  these,  in  the  year  1853,  the  Pelican  Club,  under  the 
inspiration  of  its  English  members,  gave,  as  a  compliment  to  the  ladies,  a  ball,  which  for 
magnificence  and  completeness  in  every  detail— music,  floral  decorations,  supper  and  attendance 
—surpassed  any  occurrence  of  this  kind  which  had  ever  taken  place  in  New  Orleans. 

The  Pelican  Club  flourished  to  its  last  day,  and  its  dissolution  was  due  to  no  inherent 
weakness,  nor  to  want  of  support.    It  fell  under  the  inexorable  stroke  of  war. 

Another  club,  which  likewise  has  ceased  to  exist,  but  which  was  once  the  most  popular  and 
for  a  while  unquestionably  the  most  brilliant  of  all,  was  the  Orleans  Club.  As  before  recited, 
the  Pelican  Club,  by  its  exclusiveness  and  the  severity  of  its  standard  of  membership,  had  vir- 
tually closed  its  doors  to  a  large  number  of  young  merchants,  young  professional  men,  and  high 
spirited  young  bloods,  sons  of  wealthy  citizens  or  planters.  These  young  men  had  no  places  of 
resort  and  meeting,  save  the  theatres  and  ball-rooms,  for  bar-rooms  and  coffee-houses  had  not 
the  attractions  for  the  youth  of  that  period  which  they  have  for  those  of  the  present.  They 
would  meet  in  groups  or  around  the  convivial  tables  of  a  restaurant,  at  Sickle's  drug  store,  on 
Canal  street,  and  often  at  Thompson  &  Nixon's,  on  Camp,  where  they  would  discuss  with  them 
the  advisability  of  organizing  a  young  men's  club.  The  project  was  soon  matured  and  developed, 
and  the  result  was  the  opening  of  the  Orleans  Club  in  1850  on  Canal  street,  in  one  of  the  Three 
Sisters,  a  building  owned  by  Mrs.  Vance,  and  now  forming  the  entrance  to  the  Grand  Opera 
House  as  well  as  the  locus  of  the  Varieties  Club. 

The  membership  of  the  Orleans  increased  so  rapidly  that  new  and  larger  quarters  were 
required  for  their  accommodation.  At  this  juncture,  this  was  in  1851,  twenty  members  of  the 
club,  all  young  men,  proposed  to  purchase  on  their  own  account  a  suitable  building  for  the  club, 
and  their  proposition  being  favorably  entertained  they  immediately  purchased  at  a  cost  of  forty 
thousand  dollars,  Mr.  James  Robb's  spacious  and  elegant  private  residence  on  St.  Charles  street, 
the  same  now  occupied  as  a  beer  saloon,  restaurant  and  hostelry  by  Krost. 

After  the  purchase  and  the  furnishing  of  the  domicile  in  the  most  elaborate  and  elegant 
style— all  without  regard  to  cost— the   club  transferred  itself  thereto,   and  from  that   day 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  95 

launched  out  in  a  career  of  unequaled  prosperity.  Its  membership  increased  amazingly  annrox- 
unatmg  at  one  time  some  four  hundred,  and  including  in  its  numbers  all  the  editors  and  proprie- 
tors of  the  city  papers.  p ^yiie 

There  were  Lumsden,  Wilsou,  Wagner.  Sigur,  Bonford,  Breckinridge,  of  the  Louisiana 
Conner  Corcoran,  Frost,  and  others.  All  the  prominent  turfmen  of  the  South  and  Southwest 
were  also  members  of  this  club.  Among  these  were  Bingaman,  Capt.  3Iinor,  Wells  Hunter 
Goldmg,  Gen^  Camp,  Hebert,  Zysmanski,  etc.;  in  fact  the  racing  fraternity  was  stronily  repre^ 
sentca,  and  that  the  club  soon  became  very  "  horsey,"  goes  without  saying,  and  racing  and  merit. 
of  horses  were  topics  well  understood  and  knowingly  discussed.  On  the  occasion  of  great  races  in 
''ZZ^f^^^^'^''^^:''^^^^^^^^^^^  halls,  lunch  rooms,  refreshment  and  cad 

rooms  of  the  Orleans  Club  were  most  lively  and  exciting  places. 

wh.rr^^^^^/^V^^''^  ""^^  ^^^"^  ^'''"^*  ^^^  occasion  of  the  great  inter-State  post  stake  race 
when  Lexmgton.  Lecompte,  Arrow  and  Highlander,  representing  respectively  Kentucky,  MisS^ 
tZl  .  fi^  ^^^/^^^^,^'^^'  ^^^^  pitted  against  each  other,  to  run  for  a  purse  of  twenty 
thousand  doUars  Then  the  excitement,  the  hopes  and  fears,  the  betting  and  bantering,  at  this 
T^cZ^Zr.t^  same  week  Lecompte  and  Lexington  ran,  and  Lecompte  won,  to  the  great 

bPr  rth  ?  K  ^^^/^^f  t  ^^^  ^''^''''  ^^^"^^  Kentuckians,  of  whom  there  were  a  good  num- 
ber m  the  club,  and  who  lost  untold  sums  on  that  race. 

Not  only  were  the  members  of  the  Orleans  Club  aU  present  on  these  gala  days,  but  then- 
aZr.r'''-"'^'*'^'''.^  ^^  ^^^^'^^  ^^^^*^'  ^'^^  ^^^  «^°^^  ^°^  ^11  ^^arters  of  the  country  to 
fettw  tlfno  l' T-T^  '/  the  Metalrie  and  to  witness  the  contest.    Among  these  gues  s'^the 

Of  fhpT  T  f ?'  ^"l^  '"''"^  "^"^"^  "^^"^"^  ^^^^^'  «^^  individual  alone  winning  $20,000. 
^JLTt  "^  .  ^""^  '""T^^"  °'  '^'^  ^'^  '''''^'''  ^^^^  '^  ^^^^'  ^«  ^^li  to  make  passing  mention 
Santim  was  caterer,  and  he  had  carte  blancJie.    Clubs  in  London,  Paris  and  xXew  York  have 

dnX?f '  ^/^l^^^^^^^^P^^^^'  the  Orleans  in  a  studied,  ordered  and  elaborate  dinger,  but  it  is 
doubtful  whether  any  club  anywhere  ever  surpassed  the  Orleans  for  lunches.    It  is  almost 

rnvi?ri  r  V  '''™^''^'^^^^'''^'''^  ^^P^^^^'  ^^^'^  woodcock,  snipe,  partridge, 
^nvas  back  and  teal  were  in  profusion;  where  terrapin  stew,  oysters  in  every  style,  turk^v 

s^nnlvTnnH  T'  ;  Z^'^ff^  ^^^''  ^""^  ^^^  '^'^^'^^  ^^^  delicacies  of  home  and  foreign 
cS^th.  ^^°^^^^^  ''/''' ^""^  °'  '^-^""  ^°^^^^-  ^^^  ^1^^^  ^^'<^^^es  of  Santini  at  this 
t^eV^i^'^T^r"^  marve  ous  and  no  wonder  is  it  that  the  great  restaurateurs  of  that 
cu^tV.thpT  ^.  .T'  ^^^^l^^dmtheir  lamentations  and  complaints  against  the  club  for 
danpTp^^i         n  )^  patronage  of  customers  whose  appetites  were  satiated  by  the   abun- 

dance and  excellence  of  club  fare. 

^      The  Orleans  flourished  as  no  other  club  ever  did,  but  unfortunately,  want  of  discipline  the 

'^^n^T:.  r'""^'T  'f  ""''"^^'^^  ^^"'""-"'  "^^  ^°^^^^°-  -'  Politics  and  Zy  ?eel  ng 
during  the  exciting  and  contentious  Know-Nothing  times,  all  these  elements  of  discord  sapped 
he  foundations  of  the  club  and  from  these  causes  its  close  and  fall  ensued.  The  club  house 
fZn^-^T^  JT^.T^^  f  ""^''^^  members,  was  then  sold  by  them,  and  for  their  account,  by 
auction,  brmging  $50,000,  a  handsome  profit  on  the  investment 

forJ!!rt  ""^^f^^ther  chapter  in  club  history  of  New  Orleans,  an  ending  not  unrelieved  by  * 
fortunate  results  and  consequences.  From  the  membership  of  the  Orleans,  another  club  a  great 
wfcV    rf  T;  "  ^"'  'T^'^  '''  """""•    ^^^  '^^''^  ^'  ^^^  Pi^^i^^-k  «-  ^^  traced  tS^the 
';:e;?a;^d  Wmt^^  ^^  ^^^  °^^^^-'  ^^^^  -^^^^^^  ^^^-  ^^^-  --^-  of  same  club. 


THE  BOSTON  CLUB. 


streIt'lws^l''!h^p•''^ -^f  'Vt'^'  '''^' ''  ^'^  '^'"'^^  ^  '^^  °^^  ^^^^^^  ^^^«io^'  --  Canal 
street,  alongside  the  Pickwick  and  Louisiana  Clubs. 

leJ^llltZrf^^  T  "f ' ."  °^,  ^^'  ^*^''  ^"^^^^-  "^^^^-    "  ^^^  organized  in  1845  by  thirty 
leadmg  mercantile  and  professional  gentlemen  of  the  city,  heads  of  families,  men  of  substance 


96  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

on  the  shady  side  of  life,  yet  full  of  bonhommie,  and  fond  of  the  good  old  game  of  "Boston."  In 
honor  of  this  game  the  club  was  christened,  and  to  it  and  other  trick  games  the  members  devoted 
their  social  energies  and  their  superfluous  ingenuity,  holding  in  deserved  contempt  the  modem 
and  unscientific  roundjgames. 

John  Hewlitt  was  the  first  president,  and  its  first  quarters  were  in  the  old  post-office  building 
on  Eoyal  street.  Thence  the  club  moved  to  Canal  street,  occupying  the  building  where  now  is 
located  Eyrich's  book  store.  Here  it  grew  in  numbers  and  in  prosperity;  its  name  for  hospitality 
and  good  fellowship  grew  among  club  men  and  bon  vivants.  The  Boston  was  never  a  close  club, 
and  to  this  day  all  its  members  hold  the  privilege  of  extending  its  courtesies  to  their  friends,  and 
officers  of  the  army  and  navy  are  its  guests  during  their  stay  in  the  Crescent  City,  being  different 
in  this  respect  from  the  other  New  Orleans  clubs. 

Among  the  ante-bellum  presidents  of  the  club  were  Temple  Doswell,  S.  H.  Kennedy  and 
Phoenix  N.  Wood.  When  the  war  broke  out,  the  then  limit  of  membership— 150— had  been 
reached.  When  Butler  was  in  command  of  the  city  the  club  quarters,  still  on  Canal  street,  were 
closed  by  the  Provost-marshal,  and  the  organization  was  broken  up  until  1867.  On  the  6th  of 
April  of  that  year  the  Boston  was  reorganized.  The  just  now  abandoned  quarters  on  Carondelet 
street  were  secured,  and  Victor  Burthe  was  chosen  president.  He  was  succeeded  a  few  years 
later  by  the  gallant  and  now  lamented  Gen.  Dick  Taylor,  who  resigned  in  1873  and  was  succeeded 
by  Dr.  Sam'l  Chopin.  Under  the  administration  of  Dr.  Chopin  the  club  reached  its  greatest 
membership,  200,  the  limit  being  250.  The  present  membership  is  180,  and  of  these  many  are 
non-residents  of  New  Orleans,  but  from  all  over  the  United  States.  Since  the  war  the  club  has 
had  as  its  guests  many  distinguished  citizens,  among  whom  may  be  mentioned  Gen.  U.  S.  Grant. 
Hon.  Jefferson  Davis  visits  the  Boston  Club  whenever  he  comes  to  the  city. 
The  white  exterior  of  the  old  Mercer  mansion  is  as  familiar  as  any  house  in  New  Orleans.  Its 
plain /afa(?6  rises  three  spacious  stories  on  Canal  street.  Its  wide  doorway  opens  upon  a  marble 
paved  hallway,  opening  to  the  left  into  the  parlors  of  the  old  mansion,  which  have  been  thrown 
into  one  spacious  apartment  looking  out  through  a  bay  window  upon  a  side  garden  running  the 
full  length  of  the  house.  This  apartment  has  been  fiitted  up  as  a  sitting-room.  Its  doors  and  a 
handsome  buffet  are  of  solid  old  mahogany,  and  two  Eastlake  mantels  of  red  chen-y  are  highly 
ornamental.  On  its  walls  hang  the  portraits  of  Presidents  Hewlitt  and  Chopin  and  the  old 
secretary,  Wm.  Bell.  Handsome  pier  glasses  add  to  the  luxurious  effect.  Cool,  light-colored 
paper  and  India  matting  invite  rest. 

Behind  this  is  the  building  which  has  been  added  to  the  old  mansion  by  the  club.  First  is  <* 
fifteen-foot  lateral  hall- way,  opening  upon  a  wide  gallery  and  the  garden  beyond.  The  gallery 
runs  to  the  full  length  of  the  addition,  seventy-five  feet  deep,  and  along  each  of  the  three  stories 
of  which  it  is  composed.  In  the  hall- way  is  a  cTiefd'ceuvre,  the  feature  of  the  new  club-house— 
an  old  English  staircase,  winding  to  the  roof  in  square  sections,  of  solid  cypress  and  oak, 
finished  in  Eastlake  style. 

The  ground  floor  rear  apartment  is  the  lunch  room.  It  is  forty-five  feet  deep,  its  mantels 
finished  in  the  prevailing  Eastlake  style  in  oak,  ydth.  illuminated  encaustic  tiles  in  the  hearth 
and  jamb.  The  lunch  counter  in  the  rear  is  alike  finished  in  oak,  of  which  wood  is  also  the 
wainscot  running  around  the  room.  The  coloring  of  the  walls  is  again  cool  and  light,  and 
handsome  bronze  chandeliers  are  pendant  above  the  lunch  tables. 

Up  the  noble  staircase  on  the  second  floor,  is  the  card-room,  second  floor  front.  Here  are 
the  black-oak  buffets,  pier  glasses  and  other  furniture,  which  the  club  has  used  since  1867.  Here 
the  walls  are  of  warmer  hue,  and  suggest  long  winter  evenings  and  glowing  grates. 

In  the  rear  is  the  dining-room,  finished  also  in  oak  and  cypress  doors,  wainscot  and  mantels, 
with  two  large  pier  glasses,  framed  to  correspond. 

The  third  floor  front  is  the  biUiard-room,  remarkable  for  its  eighteen-foot  ceiling.  It  is 
ventilated  by  the  large  bay  window  (as  are  the  three  front  apartments)  and  a  number  of  small 
windows  near  the  roof.    The  back  portion  of  this  floor  is  taken  up  with  servants'  rooms,  and 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  97 

the  extreme  rear  with  the  kitchen.  In  the  latter  the  appointments  arc  complete  in  every 
particular,  and  its  elevation  guarantees  the  club  against  the  annoyance  of  smelling  beforehand 
the  roast  meat  it  is  to  have  for  dinner.  The  floor  is  of  cement,  and  an  elevator  nullifies  the 
disadvantage  of  the  situation.  A  glimpse  into  the  huge  refrigerator  is  as  cooling  as  a  claret 
punch. 

THE  PICKWICK  CLUB. 

In  the  good  year  1857,  just  thirty  years  after  the  Pickwick  Papers  were  published,  the  :New 
Orleans  Pickwick  Club  held  its  meeting,  early  in  the  month  of  January,  when  the  heart  and 
head  are  full  of  the  honhommie  and  kindly  feelings  incident  to  the  New  Year  in  our  city  of  New 
Orleans.  Some  fifty  gentlemen  received  through  the  mail  a  neat  little  card,  inviting  them  to 
meet  in  a  parlor  over  the  present  Gem  Saloon,  on  Royal  street,  for  a  purpose  not  made  known. 

Care  was  taken  in  the  selection  of  those  invited  that  they  were  all  gentlemen  of  culture  and 
refinement  and  acquainted  with  the  helLes  lettres.  Much  circumspection  was  iised  that  there 
should  be  none  in  the  meeting  who  had  not  the  prerequisites  of  social  standing,  genial  disposi- 
tion and  good-fellowship.  The  meeting  was  held,  and  the  Pickwick  Club  of  New  Orleans  was 
born.  Unlike  its  progenitor,  it  discarded  scientific  disputation,  and  held  in  common  with  its 
namesake  across  the  water  only  a  dutiful  respect  for  the  old  gentleman  whose  name  it  bears. 
The  meeting  at  the  Gem  was  a  success,  and  when  the  name  of  Pickwick  was  adopted  there  was 
a  general  expression  of  satisfaction.  The  first  president  of  the  club  was  Gen.  A.  H,  Gladden, 
of  South  Carolina,  who  had  passed  successfully  through  the  Mexican  war,  as  lieutenant-colonel 
of  a  South  Carolina  regiment,  and  had  settled  in  New  Orleans.  He  afterwards  fell  at  Shiloh  in 
command  of  the  First  C,  S.  Regulars. 

The  club  was  to  be  what  is  known  as  a  close  club,  and  in  a  month  Its  membership  had 
swelled  to  over  sixty. 

The  first  quarters  obtained  were  on  the  third  floor  of  No.  57  St.  Charles  street,  just  above 
Grander,  and  here  for  some  time  remained.  The  third  floor  became  too;  small  to  hold  the 
fast  augmenting  membership,  and  the  second  floor  was  leased ;  and  after  two  years'  stay  the 
building  at  the  corner  of  Canal  and  Exchange  alley,  where  now  is  the  Liedertafel  Club,  was 
secured  on  a  lease. 

These  premises  the  club  beautified  at  a  cost  of  over  $5,000,  and  made  it  one  of  the  most 
comfortable  and  cosy  club  houses  ever  seen  in  our  city.  Ftading  that  its  growing  popularity 
and  increase  in  membership  demanded  more  space,  it  moved  further  back  on  Canal  street,  and 
entered  into  another  lease.  A  habitation  of  its  own  was  what  it  desired,  and  last  year  an 
arrangement  was  made  with  Mr.  Heine,  the  Parisian  banker  and  owner  of  the  lots  on  the  comer 
Canal  and  Caroudelet  streets,  to  erect  there  a  house  suitable  to  the  club. 

On  July  1,  the  present  club  house,  one  of  the  handsomest  specimens  of  Norman  architecture 
in  the  country  was  completed  and  turned  over  to  the  governing  committee.  Built  of  Philadelphia 
pressed  brick  of  a  rich  deep  red,  its  two  fronts  are  set  off  by  ornamental  carved  trimmings  of 
Indiana  limestone.  Its  roof  rises  with  sharp  slope  high  above  the  surrounding  cornice,  and 
gives  to  the  whole  edifice  an  effect  inspiring  and  lofty.  Rising  from  a  cluster  of  polished  granite 
columns  of  almost  diminutive  length,  and  surmounted  by  a  bowl-shaped  stone  support  resting 
on  the  back  of  griffins,  is  a  circular  turret  which  extends  to  the  roof  and  forms  in  its  length  place 
for  oriel  windows  in  each  story.  Jutting  out  as  it  does  from  the  wall  apparently  unsupported, 
it  catches  the  eye  at  once. 

The  elevation  on  Canal  street  shows  a  large  entrance  to  the  stores  or  offices  which  occupy 
that  frontage,  and  on  each  side  of  this  entrance  are  two  polished  granite  columns  with  carved 
capitals  surmounted  with  griffins,  which,  with  the  ornament  over  the  doorway,  form  a  support 
for  the  gallery  of  the  first  floor.  Above  this  balcony  is  a  second  forming  a  hood  supported  by 
six  ornamental  brackets,  and  above  this  again  is  a  third  balcony  smaller  than  those  below  it. 

On  the  Carondelet  street  side  Is  the  main  or  club  entrance,  over  whicli  is  a  large  balcony 


98  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

extending  over  the  banquette  and  capable  of  holding  150  persons,  and  on  the  extreme  upper 
side  on  this  street  is  the  servants'  and  freight  entrance. 

The  windows  throughout  the  building  are  unusually  wide  to  afford  ample  ventilation,  and 
on  the  lower  floor  there  are  three  circular  ones  of  rare  design  in  stained  glass. 

The  gorgeous  entrance  on  Carondelet  street  is  paved  in  richly  colored  encaustic  tiles. 
Here  is  a  vestibule  more  than  thirty-three  feet  in  depth  and  fourteen  in  width,  leading  to  the 
grand  staircase. 

Facing  the  door  is  a  large  window  of  stained  cathedral  glass,  a  large  central  panel  with  a 
smaller  one  on  either  side.  Conspicuous  in  design  and  attractive  in  color,  stands  in  the  central 
panel  the  illustrious  Pickwick  himself,  deftly  wrought  in  stained  glass,  radiant  in  his  bottle-green 
coat,  of  which  he  was  so  fond,  the  costume  completed  by  the  well-known  tights  and  gaiters. 
Before  him  is  the  inevitable  punch-bowl,  over  which  he  is  addressing  his  admiring  friends.  The 
work  is  artistically  done,  and  is  the  finest  piece  of  stained  glass  work  ever  seen  in  New  Orleans. 

In  the  vestibule  stand  the  marble  statues  of  Canova's  two  dancing  girls  and  near  the  head  of 
the  stairs,  contemplating  the  incoming  guests,  is  the  marble  bust  of  Plato. 

The  reception  room  is  on  the  right  of  the  Carondelet  street  entrance.  AU  the  furniture  and 
ornaments  are  of  old  English.  The  floor  is  of  delicately  tinted  tiles  ;  the  chairs  and  tables, 
highly  carved  Queen  Anne  oak,  and  the  high  old-fashioned  English  mantel  is  enriched  with 
beautiful  tiles.  Behind  the  parlor  is  the  chess  room,  with  a  high  oak  mantel,  and  the  grate 
hung  on  a  crane. 

The  furniture  is  of  mahogany  and  finished  in  bright  bronzed  stamped  leather,  in  Pom- 
peiian  style.  In  the  middle  of  the  floor  stand  the  chess  tables,  with  the  boards  inlaid  in  their 
tops,  and  just  beyond,  against  the  wall,  rich  in  age,  is  a  large  bookcase,  elaborately  carved,  of 
the  bog  oak  of  Ireland,  the  most  costly  wood  known  to  the  furniture-maker. 

On  the  Carondelet  street  side,  back  of  the  stairway,  is  the  gentlem3n's  dining-room,  a  most 
commodious  apartment  with  heavy  club  tables  and  chairs.  It  is  here  that  the  members  dine, 
and  a  dumb  waiter  descends  to  it  from  the  kitchen  above.  In  the  hall  stands  a  large  table  of 
Irish  bog  oak,  around  which  the  governing  committee  meets.  At  the  end  of  this  hall  is  the 
assembly  room  sixty-four  by  sixty-four,  with  opera  chairs  for  four  hundred,  where  the  general 
meetings  of  the  club  are  held.  Back  of  these,  on  Carondelet  street  side,  is  the  kitchen,  probably 
the  finest  in  the  South  in  all  its  appointments.    The  wine-room  adjoins  the  kitchen. 

The  Canal  street  front  on  this  floor  is  used  as  a  biUiard-room. 

On  the  Carondelet  street  front,  above  the  vestibule  on  the  second  floor,  is  the  steward's 
or  business  office,  to  which  from  each  of  the  forty  rooms  in  the  building  run  the  electric 
wires. 

Next  to  the  office  is  the  cafe,  a  large  room,  well  ventilated,  and  containing  twelve  cherry 
tables  with  chocolate  and  white- veined  Tennessee  marble  tops.  The  cherry  mantel  in  this 
cafe  is  one  of  the  richest  in  the  building,  and  like  the  rest  is  of  the  high  English  type.  Its 
top  is  ornamented  with  a  large  bronze  plaque,  on  which  is  embossed  a  scene  representing  a 
Grecian  academy,  with  all  the  sciences  personified ;  while  its  border  displays  artistic  figures 
playing  on  various  musical  instruments.  The  tiling  of  both  hearth  and  fireplace  is  rich,  and 
sets  off  to  advantage  the  old-fashioned  brass  andirons.  The  parqueteHe  on  the  floor  is  in  cherry 
and  oak,  in  keeping  witli  the  furniture. 

Other  rooms  in  this  portion  of  the  building  are  the  writing  room  and  the  reading  room  or 
library,  but  the  handsomest  in  the  whole  building  is  the  reception  room.  It  occupies  the  entire 
Canal  street  front.  Three  large  mirrors  cover  the  back  wall,  and  as  a  novelty  through  the 
middle  of  two  of  these  highly  ornamented  gas  brackets  are  run.  The  rear  end  of  the  room  is 
almost  taken  up  with  a  mantel,  wrought  of  black  walnut,  the  carving  being  of  intricate  and 
elaborate  finish,  which  with  the  artistic  fire-pjace  and  antique  grate  give  an  Elizabethan  air  to 
the  apartment.  "The  top  of  the  mantel  is  a  large  mirror,  and  the  back  of  the  grate  an  open 
cinquefoil.    A  huge  rug  composed  of  brown  bear  skin,  bordered  with  black,  is  a  fit  companion 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  99 

to  such  a  fire-place.  In  the  corner  of  the  room  is  an  oriel  window  of  stained  glass  in  blues  and 
yellows,  with  jewel  ornaments,  and  in  this  alcove  stands  a  dignified-looking  stork,  of  life-size 
and  wrought  in  bronze.  ' 

In  front  of  the  large  windows  stand  the  statues  of  two  dancing  girls  in  marble,  whose  pose  is 
full  of  the  poetry  of  motion.  In  fine,  in  the  perfection  of  its  appointments,  this  club  ranks  with 
the  finest  in  the  Union.  In  no  two  of  the  forty  rooms  of  the  building  is  the  furniture  alike,  and 
all  of  it  is  of  the  most  elegant  workmanship  and  artistic  design. 

Nearly  all  the  rooms  contain  fine  works  of  art,  statues,''  bronzes  and  handsome  pictures 
water  colors  and  engravings.  ' 

THE  LOUISIANA  CLUB. 

In  1877  the  young  business  and  professional  men  of  New  Orleans  began  to  feel  that  the 
habits  constitution  and  membership  of  the  clubs  of  the  city  did  not  afford  them  exactly  the 
thiugthey  wanted;  and  a  hundred  and  ten  young  men  whose  ties  of  friendship,  formed  by  a 
boyhood  and  youth  of  intimacy,  were  cemented  upon  the  verge  of  manhood  by  a  similarity  of 
tastes  and  fortunes,  established  the  Louisiana  Club.  These  were  the  jeunesse  dorU  of  the  city 
young  men,  as  a  rule  of  family  and  of  expectations,  licentiates  of  the  learned  profe'^'^ions  or 
apprentices  to  the  business  of  their  fathers,  some  already  embarked  for  themselves  on  the  sea 
of  commercial  life.  Few  had  reached  their  twenty-fifth  year,  but  all,  or  nearly  all,  were  men 
whose  character  gave  assurance  of  stability  in  manhood. 

_  Their  organization  was  not,  however,  accomplished  in  full  faith  of  the  success  they  have 
since  achieved.  The  club  was  an  experiment.  Unpretentious  rooms  were  chosen  at  24  Baronne 
street  where  now  is  the  hall  of  the  Sugar  Planters'  Association.  The  number  of  members  was 
but  slightly  increased,  when  in  October,  1S77,  the  club  quarters  were  removed  to  corner  of 
liourbon  and  Canal  streets. 

.ffli Jnn^"  ^IZT^^  year  came  the  great  epidemic,  bringing  to  the  club  its  share  of  the  general 
affliction.  Of  the  sixty-eight  members  who  remained  in  the  city  twenty-two  were  seized  with 
yellow  fever  but  of  these  only  four  died.  Throughout  that  terrible  time  the  devotion  of  tSe 
clubmen  to  their  sick  fellows  completed  the  entente  cordiale  among  them.  What  in  every  other 
respect  was  to  them  as  to  the  city  a  great  misfortune  proved  the  most  effectual  means  of  per- 
petuating and  intensifying  that  intimacy  and  unity  of  spirit  which  distinguishes  the  club. 

When  the  pestilence  had  passed  and  the  club  was  rehabilitated  with  the  reviving  business  of 

nen-t"  ^^r  '^rj'  ^^'  °^"^''  *^"  '^"^  '"^  '''  ^^^^'  ''''''■  ^ere  the  popularity  and  pros- 
perity of  the  institution  grew  apace,  and  the  club  was  no  longer  an  experiment,  but  became  a 
most  decided  success.  Other  young  men  of  the  city  were  attracted,  and  in  October  1S83  it 
became  necessary  to  seek  quarters  more  commodious  and  more  convenient  to  the  business  of  the 
city,  with  which  most  of  the  members  were  actively  identified.  This  time  the  eyes  of  the  club 
fell  upon  a  miUiner's  establishment.  But  this  time  there  was  no  intention  of  going  upstairs  The 
club  had  grown  to  180  in  numbers,  and  its  wealth  and  capacity  were  more  than  proportionately 
Ol^'m  e        "^^^'^^*^''°'^^®^*°^^^^^^*^«^^oleof  that  building  so  long  occupied  by  Mme. 

_  The  present  club  house  is  144  Canal  street,  just  between  the  Pickwick  and  Boston  clubs  It 
IS  of  red  pressed  brick  and  granite,  three  and  a  half  stories  high.  It  was  originally  built  as  a 
residence,  but  is  most  admirably  adapted  to  the  purposes  of  a  club-house.  The  ceilings  are  lofty 
and  the  apartments  spacious  and  conveniently  arranged. 

At  the  end  of  the  haHway  a  pretty  little  room  fitted  up  in  terra  cotia  and  gold  serves  for  the 
S  i?osel  '^uTrded '  "^^^  ^'^  """^  ^^^oy,^^^  elsewhere  in  the  club-house,  the  privacy  of  the  club 

locatTthr^triT .';;'''""'""''  ^^^^^  '^  ^  ^^^^^  ^^"^^^  ^^^^^^^  "P^^  ^  court,  where  are 
located  the  kitchen,  bath-rooms,  servants'-rooms,  etc.    Upstairs,  over  the  sitting-room  below, 


100  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

are  two  sitting-rooms  equipped  with  cool  cane-bottomed  furniture.  The  bar  and  lunch- room  is 
situated  between  the  main  building  and  the  rear  wing,  and  upstairs  is  the  billiard-room. 

The  first  president  of  the  club  was  Alfred  Frellsen;  next,  Hon.  F.  A.  Monroe;  next.  Hon.  E. 
D.  White,  formerly  of  the  Supreme  Court  bench.  The  present  incumbent,  Mr.  Phelps,  succeeded 
Judge  White. 

The  membership  of  the  club  is  now  200,  which  number  is  the  limit  fixed  by  the  constitution, 
and  at  present  there  seems  little  disposition  to  remove  the  liojit.  The  club,  though  close  in  the 
strictest  sense  of  the  word,  has  yet  done  much  for  the  social  and  cultured  life  of  the  city,  taking 
an  active  part  in  the  spectacular  exliibitions  which  have  added  so  much  to  ( he  fame  and  the 
prosperity  of  New  Orleans. 

CHESS,  CHECKEKS  AND  WHIST  CLUB. 

During  the  latter  part  of  June,  1880,  a  number  of  gentlemen  who  had  formerly  belonged  to 
chess  clubs  in  this  city,  and  who  had  witnessed  with  no  little  regret,  the  untimely  dissolution 
of  each  and  all  of  them,  at  several  informal  meetings  discussed  the  project  of  re-establishing 
such  a  club  in  New  Orleans,  to  be  kept  up  for  recreation  in  the  idle  days  of  summer  and  aban- 
doned as  the  busier  period  of  the  fall  should  approach.  Naturally  these  discussions  were  con- 
fined to  a  very  limited  circle,  but  they  eventually  resulted  in  a  search  (and  a  prolonged  one  it 
was)  for  rooms  suitable  for  the  intended  organization  and  within  the  very  slender  means  anti- 
cipated for  it.  This  difficult  task  was  undertaken  by  a  self-appointed  committee,  and  notwith- 
standing energetic  efforts  it  was  nearly  the  middle  of  the  succeeding  month  before  anything 
definite  was  accomplished.  However,  on  Thursday,  July  21,  1880,  the  intended  club  held  its  first 
informal  meeting  over  Eugene  Krost's  saloon,  128  Gravier  street.  Mr.  Charles  A.  Maurian  was 
elected  president,  and  Mr.  James  D.  Seguin  secretary,  each  pro  tern.,  and  a  committee  was 
appointed  to  draft  a  constitution. 

It  had  already  been  suggested  that,  to  insure  greater  attraction  and  a  more  enlarged  interest 
the  games  of  checkers  and  whist  should  be  added  to  that  of  chess,  and  the  committee  on  consti- 
tution were  instructed  to  report  accordmgly.  The  second  meeting  of  the  club  occurred  July 
34,  1880,  with  thirty-five  members  present  out  of  a  membership  that  had  already  reached  fifty- 
two,  and  the  constitution  reported  by  the  committee  was  adopted. 

The  project  of  the  originators  meeting  with  an  encouraging  and  speedy  success,  it  soon 
became  necessary  to  seek  more  commodious  quarters,  and  a  comfortable  suite  of  rooms  was 
found  over  the  saloon  of  Frank  Berkes,  168  Common  street.  On  October  21, 1880,  the  club  moved 
into  its  new  location.  It  now  numbered  one  hundred  and  ten  members,  with  a  prosperous  future 
before  it.  On  December  31  the  club  made  its  second  move,  going  into  room-?  over  ^Irs.  Droste's 
saloon,  166  Common  street.  At  the  meeting  of  January  6, 1881,  one  hundred  and  forty  members 
were  present,  and  a  smaU  assessment,  the  first  and  only  one  in  the  history  of  the  club,  was 
levied  for  the  purpose  of  providing  a  fund  with  which  to  furnish  the  rooms.  The  first  whist  tour-, 
nament  was  played  in  the  latter  part  of  October  and  early  part  of  November,  1880,  and  lasted 
about  three  weeks. 

On  February  10,  1881,  the  club  moved  for  the  third  time,  having  engaged  the  spacious  rooms 
at  184  Common  street,  corner  of  Varieties  alley.  At  this  time  there  were  one  hundred  and 
seventy-five  names  on  the  roll,  and  the  rooms  over  Hawkins'  saloon  were  large,  commodious 
and  elegantly  furnished. 

On  August  21, 1880,  the  first  chess  tournament  was  inaugurated,  and  continued  somewhat 
desultorily  until  February  20,  1881. 

During  February,  1881,  the  club  entertained  as  a  guest  Capt.  Geo.  H.  Mackenzie,  the  cele- 
brated chess  player,  and  champion  of  America,  and  subsequently  during  the  months  of  Decem- 
ber, 1881,  and  January,  1882,  Capt.  Mackenzie  was  again  its  guest.  In  January,  1883,  Herr 
Wilhelm  Steinitz,  the  famous  Austrian  master,  was  similarly  entertained  by  the  club,  and 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  lOl 

during  April,  1884,  Dr.  Zukertort,  the  great  Prussian  player  and  winner  of  the  London  Interna- 
tional Tournament  of  1883,  was  likewise  its  guest. 

The  club  with  careful  management  prospered  wonderfully  in  its  Common  street 
quarters.  During  its  stay  in  this  location,  up  to  November,  1883,  a  number  of  very  interesting 
and  successful  tournaments  of  chess,  draughts,  billiards  and  whist  were  carried  out ;  a  large 
and  copiously  supplied  reading-room  was  established,  and  many  other  improvements  intro- 
duced.   The  membership  rose  with  astonishing  rapidity,  reaching  at  one  time  over  600. 

About  the  middle  of  1883  the  club  having  now  a  net  strength  of  about  500  members,  and 
being  in  fine  financial  standing  it  was  decided  to  be  both  necessary  and  wise  to  secure  more 
elegant  and  commodious  quarters. 

The  governing  committee  were,  therefore,  authorized  to  secure  the  Perry  House,  at  the 
comer  of  Canal  and  Baronne  streets  and  fit  it  up  for  permanent  club-rooms. 

On  the  1st  day  of  December,  1883,  the  club  took  possession  of  their  present  magnificent 
quarters. 

On  the  first  floor  to  the  right  is  the  chess  room,  containing  thirteen  heavy  black  walnut 
chess-tables,  with  elegant  inlaid  boards  ;  the  walls  are  hung  with  fine  pictures,  and  the  mantels 
hold  the  photographs  of  the  world's  great  chess  players.  Besides,  the  room  is  fitted  up  with  all 
the  other  appliances  and  comforts  necessary  to  a  first-class  chess  room. 

There  are  besides  these,  a  number  of  other  rooms  in  the  building,  the  library  and  reading 
room,  parlor,  music  room,  reception  room,  writing  room,  domino  and  checker  room,  billiard 
room,  card  room— where,  however,  playing  is  only  allowed  for  amusement,  no  money  play 
being  permitted  in  the  building— euchre,  backgammon  and  cribbage  room,  and  finally  pool 
room. 

The  growth  of  the  club  has  been  phenomenal,  and  it  now  includes  1050  members. 


THE  HAEMOXY  CLUB. 

The  present  Harmony  Club  is  the  successor  of  the  "Deutscher  Company"  and  the  "Young 
Bachelors'  Club,"  the  two  having  been  merged  under  the  present  name. 

The  "Deutscher  Company"  was  organized  in  1862,  and  thus  christened  with  the  idea  of 
showing  to  Xew  Orleans  society,  that  the  class  of  amusements  generally  pursued  by  those 
assemblies  which  had  hitherto  contemptuously  been  dubbed  Deutscher  companies  was  not  the 
limit  of  German  accomplishments. 

There  were  only  twelve  members  at  the  time  of  organization.  Mr.  Sol.  Marx  was  made 
president,  and  the  meetings  of  the  club  were  held  in  a  little  room  upstairs  over  12  Chartres 
street.  The  objects  of  the  club  were  social,  literary  and  scientific.  The  founders  were  all 
Hebrew  gentlemen,  A  year  or  so  after  the  organization  the  quarters  of  the  club  were  removed 
to  more  commodious  rooms  above  Krost's  saloon,  on  Common  street,  between  St.  Charles  and 
Carondelet.  The  club  continued  to  increase  in  membership,  and  a  general  desire  was  expressed 
for  a  club-house  of  their  own,  and  in  pursuance  of  this  idea,  they  helped  to  build  the  house 
corner  of  Bienville  street  and  Exchange  alley,  having  the  quarters  of  the  club  fitted  up  with  a 
stage  and  theatrical  appurtenances.  Here  the  club  remained  for  five  years,  and  during  this  time 
instituted  a  series  of  amateur  theatricals  and  concerts,  the  members  being  assisted  on  frequent 
occasions  by  outside  talent  and  distinguished  professional  artists.  A  number  of  lectures  were 
also  given,  Eev.  J.  K.  Gutheim,  Dr.  Crawcour  and  other  gentlemen  of  eminence  contributing 
their  wisdom  and  eloquence  for  the  benefit  of  the  club.  While  here  the  name  "Deutscher 
Company  "  was  abandoned,  and  the  club  rechristened  the  Harmony. 

During  this  five  years  also  occurred  the  union  of  the  Harmony  Club  with  the  Young 
Bachelors,  composed  of  thirty  young  Hebrew  gentlemen,  who  devoted  their  energies  alike  to  their 
own  and  the  ladies'  entertainment.     At  the  time  of  the  union  the  Harmony  club  numbered  120 


102  HISTORICAL  SKETCH    BOOK. 

members,  younp:  and  old.  In  1867,  Mr.  Josepn  Magner  was  elected  president,  serving  in  this 
capacity  a  number  of  years. 

At  the  expiration  of  the  five  years'  lease  of  the  corner  of  Bienville  street  and  Exchange  alley 
the  club  removed  to  Odd  Fellows'  Hall,  taking  the  apartments  now  occupied  by  the  Continental 
Guards.  The  new  quarters  were  fitted  up  at  an  outlay  of  $5,000,  and  the  club  entered  upon  a 
new  era  of  prosperity  and  pleasure.  Fortnightly  entertainments,  social,  literary  and  scientific, 
were  instituted,  and  six  or  seven  grand  balls  were  given  each  season,  and  the  children  were 
given  an  entertainment  every  two  weeks.    The  club  remained  here  for  four  or  five  years. 

Mr.  Magner  was  succeeded  as  president  by  Joseph  Kohn,  and  he  in  his  turn  was  succeeded 
by  M.  L.  Navra,  under  whose  administration,  the  club  moved  in  1878,  to  the  present  place  on  the 
corner  of  Delord  and  Camp  streets,  the  old  Hale  house,  one  of  the  most  elegant  mansions  in 
the  city. 

The  club  house  contains  elegant  parlors  for  ladies  and  gentlemen,  dressing  rooms  for  ladies, 
a  well  stocked  library,  dining  room,  card  rooms,  billiard  rooms,  while  in  the  broad  yard, 
covered  by  the  softest  and  greenest  turf,  and  shaded  by  the  most  beautiful  shrubbery,  is  an 
archery  range  and  bowling  alley. 

And  the  Harmony  Club  does  not  keep  all  of  this  to  themselves.  Their  apartments  are 
always  at  the  service  of  benevolent  associations,  while  their  entertainments  are  continually 
filling  the  luxurious  parlors  with  pleasant  company.  When  theatrical  exliibitions  are  given  the 
gentlemen's  parlor  seats  250  people,  and  the  library  and  dining  room,  being  thrown  into  one 
with  the  parlor,  make  up  an  excellent  auditorium.  To  complete  the  character  of  the  club  for 
breadth  and  liberality,  there  is  no  sectarianism  about  it,  for  though  founded  and  conducted  to 
its  present  state  of  prosperity  almost  entirely  by  Hebrew  gentlemen,  some  of  its  prominent  and 
active  members  are  Christians.    The  total  membership  now  is  140. 

New  Orleans  possesses  beside  these  a  number  of  other  clubs,  such  as  the  Commercial, 
Claiborne,  etc.,  while  as  for  social  organizations  for  the  purpose  of  giving  balls,  theatrical 
performances  and  entertainments  of  various  kinds,  their  name  is  legion. 

To  these  clubs  much  of  the  pleasure  and  success  of  the  New  Orleans  carnival  is  due.  The 
handsome  parades  and  masquerades  then  made,  are,  with  few  exceptions,  paid  for  by  these 
clubs  out  of  their  own  treasuries.  As  some  of  these  parades  exceed  $25,000  in  cost,  it  will  be 
seen  that  they  prove  a  heavy  tax  to  the  clubs,  who  receive  no  benefit  from  them  except  the 
amusement  and  pleasure  afforded  to  their  friends.  The  fact  that  the  invitations  to  a  carnival 
ball  have  to  be  submitted  to  a  committee  of  the  club  giving  it,  renders  it  certain  that  only 
people  of  the  very  highest  standing  will  be  present. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  103 


CHAPTER    XL— THE    CHURCHES. 

IHE  MEMORIES  CLINGING  AROUND  THE  ST.  LOUIS  CATHEDRAL — INTRODUCTION  OF  THE 
HOLY  INQUISITION  INTO  LOUISIANA — SAINTS  OF  THE  CRESCENT  CITY — THE  FIRST 
PROTESTANT  CHURCHES   AND  JEWISH   SYNAGOGUES. 

On  Chartres  street,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann,  directly  in  front  of  Jackson  square, 
stands  the  Catholic  cathedral  of  St.  Louis,  the  most  impressive  building  in  New  Orleans  and 
surrounded  by  the  richest  historical  memories. 

The  history  of  this  building  and  its  predecessors,  for  it  is  the  third  or  fourth  church  that 
has  arisen  on  this  same  site,  is  the  history  of  Catholicism  in  Louisiana,  almost  the  history  of 
the  colony  itself. 

In  1717,  one  year  before  the  foundation  of  New  Orleans,  the  Capuchins  of  the  province  of 
Champagne  in  France,  seizing  time  by  the  forelock,  secured  for  their  body  exclusive  ecclesiastical 
jurisdiction  over  New  Orleans  and  a  large  portion  of  the  territory  of  Louisiana.  In  1718,  Bien- 
ville, who  "was  for  a  second  time  appointed  Governor  of  the  French  colony,  founded  New 
Orleans.  With  his  loyal  and  valiant  sword  he  traced  the  site  to  be  occupied  by  the  present 
church,  and  designated  the  ground  on  the  left  upon  which  to  build  the  Presbytery.  Charts 
issued  in  1727  indicate  that  this  site  is  the  one  upon  which  the  Cathedral  now  stands.  A  wooden 
and  adobe  structure  was  erected  under  the  auspices  of  the  French  government,  and  in  honor  of 
the  King  of  France  named  the  Church  of  St.  Louis,  about  1720,  from  which  time  date  the 
archives  of  the  Catholic  Church  in  New  Orleans. 

In  January,  1721,  Father  Charlevoix,  a  Jesuit  missionary,  reached  New  Orleans  from  Canada 
by  way  of  the  Illinois  and  the  Mississippi  rivers,  and  in  his  description  of  the  infant  city  he  sums 
it  up  as  consisting  of  one  hundred  cabins,  placed  without  much  order,  a  large  wooden  warehouse, 
two  or  three  dwelling  houses  that  would  not  have  adorned  a  village,  and  a  miserable  store- 
house which  had  been  at  first  occiipied  as  a  chapel — a  shed  being  now  used  for  this  purpose. 
The  population  of  the  city  did  not  then  exceed  200  persons. 

On  the  eleventh  of  September,  1723,  a  fearful  tornado  or  hurricane  devastated  the  colony 
and  played  particular  havoc  with  the  little  city.  The  hospital  and  thirty  houses  were  swept 
from  the  ground  as  though  made  of  cardboard.  Three  vessels  that  lay  in  the  river  at  the  time 
were  driven  on  shore,  and  houses  and  crops  on  the  plantations,  above  and  below  the  city, 
irreparably  ruined.  The  wind  had  no  respect  for  the  sacred,  as  it  blew  into  atoms  the  little 
insignificant  parish  church,  the  first  place  of  worship  ever  erected  in  Louisiana.  This  terrible 
visitation  plunged  the  colonists  into  such  misery  and  despair,  that  many  attempted  to  leave  the 
colony,  and  it  was  long  before  the  inhabitants  recovered  from  the  calamity.  The  ruined  portions 
of  the  little  city  were  rebuilt,  and  in  1724  or  1725  a  new  and  substantial  parish  church  was  erected 
—this  time  of  brick— which  served  the  purposes  of  the  community  for  over  sixty  years ;  the 
venerable  building  surviving  the  ravages  of  time,  but  succumbing  at  last  to  the  flames. 

The  territory  of  Louisiana  at  that  time  was  divided  into  three  grand  ecclesiastical  districts. 
The  first,  extending  from  the  mouth  of  the  Mississippi  to  the  Illinois,  was  entrusted  to  the  care  of 
the  Capuchins,  who  were  the  first  to  administer  to  the  spiritual  wants  of  the  people  of  New 
Orleans.  The  bare-footed  Carmelites  had  jurisdiction  over  the  second,  which  included  the 
districts  of  Mobile,  Biloxi  and  the  Alibamons.  The  country,  watered  by  the  Wabash  and  Illinois 
rivers,  formed  the  last  of  the  three  divisions,  which  was  the  especial  care  of  the  Jesuits. 
Churches  and  chapels  were  constructed  at  convenient  points  throughout  the  colony.  Hereto- 
fore, the  only  places  of  worship  were  sheltered  spots  in  the  forest  marked  by  large  wooden 
crosses.  The  spirit  of  intolerance  among  the  colonists  was  very  strong,  and  this  was  encouraged 


104:  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

by  an  edict  of  Governor  Bienville's,  issued  in  March,  1724,  which  prohibited  the  exercise  of  any 
other  religion  than  the  Catholic,  and  Jews,  especially,  were  ordered  to  be  expelled  from  the 
colony  as  enemies  of  the  Christian  name. 

In  the  fall  of  the  same  year  two  Capuchin  friars  or  monks  of  the  order  of  St.  Francis  reached 
New  Orleans  from  France,  to  whom  was  given  the  spiritual  control  of  New  Orleans. 

An  arrangement  was  made  with  the  Jesuits,  by  which  Father  Petit,  the  Superior  of  that 
order,  was  permitted  to  reside  in  New  Orleans,  but  could  not  exercise  any  ecclesiastical 
functions  without  the  permission  of  the  Superior  of  the  Capuchins,  under  whose  spiritual 
jurisdiction  New  Orleans  was  placed.  He  was  to  be  furnished  by  the  Company  with  a  chapeL 
vestry  room,  and  a  house  and  lot  for  his  accomodation,  and  for  the  temporary  use  of  such 
Jesuits  as  might  arrive  in  New  Orleans  on  their  way  to  their  posts  in  the  northern  portion  of  the 
territory.  The  Jesuit  missionaries  were  conveyed  to  Louisiana  at  the  expense  of  the  India 
Company,  and  they  were  each  paid  a  yearly  salary  of  600  livres  ($133.33),  with  an  extra  annual 
allowance  of  200  livres  ($44.44)  for  the  first  five  years,  Each  missionary  received  at  the  start  an 
outfit  of  4.50  livres  ($100),  and  a  chapel,  and  at  each  mission  either  money  or  goods  were 
furnished  to  defray  the  expenses  of  building  the  chapel  and  presbytery.  The  Jesuit  lay  brothers 
received  their  passage  and  a  gratification  of  150  livres  ($33.33),  but  no  salary.  The  house  and 
chapel  constructed  for  the  Superior  in  New  Orleans,  was  situated  upon  a  concession  of  ten 
arpents  of  land  fronting  on  the  river  a  little  above  what  is  now  Canal  street.  The  Jesuits 
improved  the  front  of  their  land  with  a  plantation  of  the  myrtle  wax  shrub,  and  remained  upon 
it  until  their  expulsion  in  1764.  Father  Bruno,  the  Superior  of  the  Capuchins,  was  appointed 
Vicar-General  of  New  Orleans  by  the  Bishop  of  Quebec,  in  whose  diocese  the  territory  of 
Louisiana  was  then  included.  He  acted  as  curate  of  the  parish  with  the  assistance  of  two 
monks  as  vicars.  A  monastery,  erroneously  called  a  convent,  was  erected  for  the  Capuchins, 
resident  in  New  Orleans,  on  the  square  below  the  church,  the  site  of  the  present  presbytery. 

On  the  13th  of  September,  1726,  an  agreement  was  also  made  with  two  Ursuline  nuns  of  the 
convent  of  Eouen,  named  Marie  Frangoise  Tranchepain,  known  as  Sister  St.  Augustin,  and 
Marie  Anne  le  Boulanger,  known  as  Sister  St.  Angelique,  with  the  assistance  of  Mother  Catharine 
Bniscoli,  of  St.  Amand,  and  four  other  nuns  of  their  order,  to  take  charge  of  the  education  of 
the  young  girls  of  the  new  colony  and  to  nurse  the  sick  in  the  hospital.  According  to  contract 
they  were  to  reside  permanently  in  Louisiana ;  were  to  be  transported  with  four  servants,  at 
the  cost  of  the  Company,  and  to  receive  as  a  gratuity,  before  their  departure,  the  sum  of  500 
livres.  The  Ursuline  nuns  embarked  with  Jesuit  missionaries  in  a  Company  ship,  and  arrived  in 
New  Orleans  in  the  summer  of  1727.  The  hospital,  then  situated  at  the  corner  of  Chartres  and 
Bienville  streets,  was  put  in  possession  of  the  nuns  upon  their  arrival,  and  they  resided  in  it 
until  a  more  convenient  dwelling  could  be  built  for  them.  The  Company  conceded  to  the 
hospital  a  tract  of  land  on  the  side  of  the  city  opposite  the  Jesuit  plantation,  fronting  eight 
acres  on  the  Mississippi  and  forty  in  depth,  as  a  plantation  to  supply  the  wants  of  the  Ursulines 
and  to  afford  them  a  sufBcient  remuneration  for  their  services  in  the  hospital.  Each  of  the  nuns 
received  600  livres  a  year  until  their  plantation  was  in  full  cultivation.  In  the  agreement  made 
with  them  by  the  India  or  Western  Company,  it  was  expressly  stipulated  that,  if  they  ceased  to 
serve  in  the  hospital  as  agreed  upon,  they  would  forfeit  their  plantation  and  the  immovables 
attached  to  the  hospital,  and  retain  only  the  negroes  and  other  movables. 

Soon  after  the  arrival  of  the  nuns  the  India  Company  laid  the  foundation  of  a  very  large 
edifice  for  a  nunnery  in  the  lowest  square  on  the  levee,  on  Conde  street  (now  Chartres),  between 
Barracks  and  Hospital  streets,  and  a  military  hospital  was  built  near  it.  The  nuns  removed  to 
their  new  quarters  in  the  latter  part  of  1730,  when  it  was  completed,  and  continued  to  occupy 
it  until  1824,  when  they  moved  to  their  present  more  spacious  and  delightful  retreat  on  the 
banks  of  the  river  below  the  city.  At  that  time  it  was  three  miles  from  the  city  walls.  Up  to 
the  time  of  the  construction  of  this  convent  the  old  one  was  the  largest  house  in  Louisiana. 

In  1755  there  sprang  up  in  the  colony  a  sort  of  religious  warfare,  which  added  to  the  dis- 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  105 

traction  produced  by  the  expectation  of  perils  from  abroad.  It  was  called  the  War  of  the 
Jesuit-s  and  the  Capuchins,  and  produced  great  excitement  at  the  time.  Gayarre  chronicles  the 
history  of  that  exciting  and  memorable  controversy  as  follows:  "In  the  agreement  entered 
into  with  the  India  Company  in  1726,  the  Jesuits  had  taken  care  to  procure,  as  an  apparently 
insignificant  favor,  that  their  Superior  might  reside  in  New  Orleans,  on  condition  that  he  shx)uld 
not  discharge  tJiere  any  ecclesiastical  functions,  unless  it  should  be  with  the  consent  of  the  Superior  of 
the  Capuchins.  This  was  an  entering  wedge  which  the  dexterity  of  the  Jesuits  turned  to  good 
purpose,  so  far  as  their  interest  was  concerned." 

But  in  1764  the  Capuchins  were  rid  of  their  redoubtable  adversaries,  in  consequence  of  the 
famous  Order  of  Expulsion  issued  by  the  French  Government  againft  this  celebrated  religious 
order.  All  their  property  in  Louisiana  was  seized,  confiscated,  and  sold  for  $180,000,  a  very 
large  sum  at  that  time.  It  is  well  known  that  the  Jesuits  of  Spain  and  Naples  shared  the  same 
fate  with  those  of  France,  and  that  they  were  almost  simultaneously  expelled  from  all  the 
domains  appertaining  to  those  three  kingdoms. 

The  ancient  plantation  of  the  Jesuits  was  immediately  above  the  old  city,  and  included  all 
of  what  is  now  the  First  district  of  that  city,  Its  commercial  and  manufacturing  centre. 

On  the  twenty-second  of  February,  1770,  General  O'Reilly,  who  had  taken  possession  of  the 
province  in  the  name  of  the  King  of  Spain,  upon  its  transfer  to  the  Spanish  government,  issued 
a  proclamation  instituting  several  changes.  No  change,  however,  took  place  in  the  ecclesias- 
tical government  of  the  province.  Father  Dagobert,  curate  of  New  Orleans,  was  permitted  to 
continue  in  the  exercise  of  his  pastoral  functions  and  in  the  administration  of  the  southern  part 
of  the  diocese  of  Quebec,  of  which  the  bishop  had  constituted  him  vicar-general.  The  other 
Capuchins  were  maintained  in  the  curacies  of  their  respective  parishes. 

The  attendance  of  the  L'rsuline  nuns  in  the  hospital,  according  to  a  bull  obtained  from  the 
Pope,  was  dispensed  with ;  their  service  had  become  merely  nominal,  being  confined  to  the 
daily  attendance  of  two  nuns  during  the  visit  of  the  King's  physician.  After  noting  his  prescrip- 
tion they  withdrew,  contenting  themselves  with  sending  from  the  dispensary,  which  was  kept 
in  the  convent,  the  medicines  he  had  ordered. 

The  Spanish  government,  deeming  it  a  matter  not  merely  of  policy,  but  of  necessity,  for 
the  preservation  of  its  peculiar  institutions,  that  the  rising  generation  of  the  colony  should  bo 
instructed  in  the  Spanish  language,  sent  over  from  Spain,  in  1772,  a  priest  and  two  assistants  to 
teach  that  language.  In  the  same  year  four  young  Spanish  novices  arrived  from  Havana,  who, 
upon  taking  the  veil  in  the  convent  of  the  Ursulines,  were  also  employed  in  teaching  Spanish  to 
young  females.  This,  the  solitary  instance  of  interest  manifested  by  the  Spanish  government 
in  the  encouragement  of  learning  during  its  administration  of  affairs  in  Louisiana,  produced 
almost  a  revolution  among  the  French  Creoles,  the  young  women  in  particular  rebelling 
against  this  attempt  to  make  them  recite  their  lessons  in  Spanish.  So  earnest  was  the  protest 
that  this  attempt  to  introduce  the  Spanish  language  into  Louisiana  proved  a  complete  failure, 
and  although  Castilian  was  one  of  the  official  languages  of  the  colony  as  late  as  1803,  it  died  very 
soon  after  the  departure  of  the  Spanish  troops  to  Havana. 

In  the  year  1779.  six  Capuchin  friars  arrived  from  Spain,  and  among  them  was  the  cele- 
brated Father  Antonio  de  Sedella,  better  known  as  Father  Antoine,  whose  memory  is  revered  to 
this  day  by  the  faithful.  He  was  curate  of  the  parish  for  nearly  fifty  years,  and  the  Cathedral  is 
almost  inseparably  connected  in  the  minds  of  old  residents  with  the  excellent  old  man,  adored 
for  his  universal  benevolence.  He  is  said  to  have  performed  nearly  one-half  of  the  marriage 
and  funeral  ceremonies  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  province  during  his  curacy.  He  was  instituted 
curate  on  the  twenty-fifth  of  November,  1785,  and  exercised  his  pastoral  functions  until  his 
death,  at  the  age  of  nearly  ninety  years,  in  1827. 

And  now  appears  upon  the  scene  an  individual  who  was  the  instrument  of  much  good  in.his 
day.  He,  his  descendants  and  contemporaries,  have  played  prominent  parts  in  the  annals  of 
New  Orleans,  and  the  history  of  the  city  could  not  be  written  without  mention  of  his  career. 


106  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

We  refer  to  Don  Andres  Almonaster-y-Eoxas,  the  founder  of  the  St,  Louis  Cathedral.  After  the 
terrible  conflagration  of  178S,  which  destroyed  the  briclc  Parish  Church,  built  in  1724  or  1725, 
mass  was  celebrated  in  a  temporary  building  erected  for  the  purpose.  In  the  latter  part  of 
1788,  Don  Almonaster  offered  t )  the  Superior  Council  or  Cabildo,  to  rebuild  the  church  on  a  still 
grander  aud  more  massive  scale  at  his  own  expense,  the  government  to  repay  him  for  his 
expenditure  upon  the  completion  of  the  edifice.  His  proposition  was  accepted,  the  foundation  of 
the  Cathedral  laid  in  the  spring  of  1792,  and  completed  two  years  later.  He  also  secured  the 
contract  for,  and  built  the  buildings  on  each  side  of  the  Cathedral,  the  one  on  the  left  intended 
for  a  presbytery,  now  occupied  by  the  Civil  District  Courts  and  the  Civil  Sheriff,  and  the  one  on 
the  right  built  for  a  town-hall  and  jail,  in  which  the  Cabildo  held  its  sessions,  now  occupied  by 
the  Supremo  Court,  the  Second  I'eccrder's  Court  and  the  Third  Precinct  Station. 

Hardly  had  the  new  Cathedral  been  built,  wh  u,  on  the  fete  of  the  Immaculate  Conception, 
the  eighth  of  December  of  the  fame  year  (1794),  another  great  conflagration  consumed  the  prin- 
cipal portion  of  the  city.  The  only  edifice  of  importance  which  almost  miraculously  escaped 
destruction  was  the  newly-built  Cathedral. 

Don  Andres  Almonaster-y-Roxas,  a  native  of  Mayrena,  Province  of  Andalusia,  Spain,  was  of 
noble  birth,  a  colonel  of  the  provincial  troops  in  Louisiana,  and  a  cavalier  of  the  royal  and  dis- 
tinguished order  ot  Carlos  III.  His  parents  were  Don  Miguel  Jose  Almonaster  and  Donna  Maria 
Joanna  de  Estiada-y-Roxas.  In  August,  1769,  he  was  appointed  a  King's  Notary,  similar  to 
notary  public  to-day,  and  in  1779  chosen  by  the  Cabildo  or  Governing  Council  (analogous  to  the 
City  Council),  fv  r  ordinary  Alcalde  or  Justice  of  the  Peace,  for  the  years  1789  and  1790,  in  con- 
junction with  a  certain  Don  Ortega.  He  also  succeeded  Don  Regnio  as  Perpetual  Eegidor  and 
Alferez  Real  which  positions  he  held  during  life,  and  was  succeeded,  upon  his  death,  by  his 
father-in-law,  M.  Pierre  Denys  de  Laronde. 

Besides  having  been  the  builder  or  founder  of  the  Cathedral  and  the  buildings  on  either  side 
of  it,  Don  Almonaster  founded  the  St.  Charles  Charity  Hospital  and  its  chapel,  the  chapel  of  the 
Lazarists,  the  chapel  of  the  Ursulines  Convent,  a  hospital  for  lepers,  schools  for  little  children 
and  the  Presbytery  of  the  Cathedral.  Don  Almonaster  was  married  in  the  Parish  Church  on  the 
twentieth  of  March,  1787,  just  a  year  before  it  was  destroyed  by  the  great  fire,  to  Mile.  Louise  de 
Laronde,  a  beautiful  young  Creole  of  New  Orleans,  daughter  of  M.  Pierre  Denys  de  Laronde. 
Don  Almonaster's  only  child  and  daughter,  MicaelaLeonardaAntonia,  afterwards  the  celebrated 
Mme.  Pontalba,  was  born  on  the  sixth  of  November,  1795,  her  father  being  then  71  years  of  age. 
On  the  twenty-third  of  October,  1811,  she  was  married  in  the  Cathedral  by  Father  Antonio  to 
Joseph  Xavier  Celestine  Delfau  de  Pontalba,  a  native  of  New  Orleans,  son  of  Joseph  Xavier 
Delfau,  Baron  de  Pontalba,  in  the  presence  of  a  brilliant  assembly.  Col.  Bernard  de  Marigny  de 
Mandeville  representing  Marshal  Ney,  Due  d'Elchingen,  the  celebrated  comrade  in  arms  of 
Napoleon,  gave  the  bride  away,  and  the  Cavallero  de  Macarty,  M.  Ignace  Delino  de  Chalmet, 
M.  Laselve  de  St.  Avid  and  Mme.  Deverges  de  St.  Sauveur,  officiated  as  witnesses.  Mme.  de 
Pontalba  died  on  the  twentieth  of  April,  1874,  at  her  magnificent  hotel,  No.  41  Faubourg  St. 
Honore,  Paris,  leaving  three  sons  to  inherit  the  wealth  and  vast  landed  estates  which  she  had 
inherited  from  her  father.  Her  husband  died  three  or  four  years  later  at  the  age  of  eighty-five. 
His  father,  also  a  native  of  New  Orleans,  had  been,  in  his  day,  a  colonel  of  the  Eoyal  Exercitos, 
and  commandant  of  the  Cote  d'AUemande  (German  Coast;  and  the  Parish  of  Iberville. 

Don  Andres  Almonastor-y-Eoxas  died  in  New  Orleans  at  the  age  of  seventy-three  years,  on 
the  twenty-sixth  of  April,  1798,  and  was  buried  in  the  grand  old  edifice  built  under  his  super- 
intendence, bringing  him  so  much  substantial  benefit  in  life  and  glory  after  death,  He  lies  in 
front  of  the  Altar  of  the  Sacred  Heart  and  of  St.  Francis  of  Assisi,  and  in  the  floor  over  his 
grave  is  a  large  marble  slab,  on  which  are  inscribed  his  coat-of-arms  and  the  record  of  his  life 
his  honors  and  his  deeds. 

In  1803,  when  the  United  States  took  control  of  Louisiana,  there  was  not  in  the  entire 
colony,  a  Protestant  church   or  Jewish  synagogue.    Indeed,    there   was  a  plentiful  lack  of 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  107 

Catholic  churches,  as  the  St.  Louis  Cathedral  was  the  only  church  of  any  description  or  faith 
in  the  city,  if  we  except  the  chapel  of  the  Lazarists.  and  that  attached  to  the  Ursuline  Convent 
and  Charity  Hospital. 

It  was  feared  at  fii-st  that  the  transfer  of  the  colony  to  the  United  States,  would  cause  a 
trouble  on  account  of  the  religious  differences  ;  and  Governor  Claiborne,  the  new  American 
Governor,  found  the  religious  excitement  very  strong,  and  threatening  considerable  difficulty. 

On  the  eleventh  of  July,  Governor  Claiborne  received  a  letter  from  Vicar-General  Walsh, 
in  which  he  complained  "  of  the  interruption  of  public  tranquility,  which  had  I'esulted  from 
the  ambition  of  a  refractory  monk,  supported  in  his  apostasy  by  the  fanaticism  of  a  misguided 
populace  and  by  the  countenance  of  an  individual  I  the  ivlarquis  of  Casa-Calvoi,  whose  inter- 
ference was  fairly  to  be  attributed  less  to  zeal  for  the  religion  he  would  be  thought  to  serve, 
than  to  the  indulgence  of  private  passions  and  the  promotion  of  views  equally  dangerous  to 
religion  and  to  civil  order."  He  also  informed  Governer  Claiborne  that  two  individuals  had 
gone  to  Havana  for  the  express  purpose  of  procuring  a  re-inforcement  of  monks  to  support 
Father  Antonio  de  Sedellain  "  his  schismatic  and  rebellious  conduct;"  and  prayed  for  such  relief 
and  assistance  as  the  Executive  could  afford  him.  Claiborne's  reply  was,  "that  under  the 
American  government,  where  the  rights  of  conscience  are  respected  and  no  particular  sect  is 
the  favorite  of  the  law,  the  civil  magistrates  were  bound  carefully  to  avoid  interference  in 
religious  disputes,  unless,  indeed,  the  public  peace  should  be  broken  or  menaced,  and  then  it 
became  their  duty  to  act."  In  recommending  harmony  and  tolerance  to  the  priest,  Governor 
Claiborne  observed  :  "  For  if  those  who  profess  to  be  the  followers  of  the  meek  and  humble 
Jesus,  instead  of  preaching  brotherly  love  and  good  will  to  man,  and  enforcing  their  precepts 
by  example,  should  labor  to  excite  dissension  and  distrust  in  a  community,  there  is,  indeed, 
ground  to  fear  that  the  Church  itself  may  cease  to  be  an  object  of  veneration." 

Though  the  Abbe  Walsh's  attempt  to  enlist  Governor  Claiborne's  support  in  his  cause,  as 
against  that  of  Father  Antoine,  was  unsuccessful,  he  yet  Insinuated  some  doubts  into  the 
Governor's  mind,  as  to  the  loyalty  of  the  popular  curate.  As  a  result  of  .his  doubts  and 
fears.  Governor  Claiborne  thus  addressed  the  Secretary  of  War,  after  adverting  to  other 
matters,  "We  have  a  Spanish  priest  here  who  is  a  very  dangerous  man.  He  rebelled 
against  the  superiors  of  his  own  church  and  would  even  rebel,  I  am  persuaded,  against  this 
government  whenever  a  fit  occasion  may  serve.  This  man  was  once  sent  away  by  the 
Spanish  authorities  for  seditious  practices,  and  I  am  inclined  to  think  that  I  should  be 
justifiable,  should  I  do  so  likevnse.  This  seditious  priest  is  Father  Antoine.  He  is  a  great  favorite 
of  the  Louisiana  ladies,  and  has  married  many  of  them  and  christened  all  their  children. 
He  is  by  some  citizens  esteemed  an  accomplished  hypocrite  ;  has  great  influence  with  the  people 
of  color,  and  report  says,  embraces  every  opportunity  to  render  them  discontented  under  the 
American  government."  Following  up  his  apprehensions,  Governor  Claiborne  requested  Father 
Antoine  to  report  to  the  Government  House.  There,  in  the  presence  of  the  Mayor  of  the  city 
and  of  Col.  Bellechasse,  member  of  the  Legislative  Council,  the  Governor  informed  him  of  the 
reports  which  were  being  circulated  about  his  conduct.  Father  Antoine  listened  to  them  with 
his  usual  humility,  solemnly  protested  his  innocence,  and  pledged  his  word  to  support  the 
government  and  promote  good  order.  Governor  Claiborne,  nevertheless,  thought  it  proper 
to  administer  to  him  the  oath  of  allegiance,  and  caused  his  conduct  to  be  carefully  watched, 
"The  priest,"  wrote  the  Grovernor,  in  bis  report  to  the  authorities  at  Washington,  "declared 
the  reports  to  have  originated  in  the  malice  of  bis  enemies.  The  division  in  the  Catholic  church 
has  excited  many  malignant  passions,  and  it  is  not  improbable  that  some  injustice  has  been  done 
to  this  individual." 

In  February,  1850,  the  principal  tower  of  the  Cathedral  fell,  injuring  the  roof  and  waUs  to 
a  great  extent.  When  the  wardens  set  about  having  the  Cathedral  repaired,  they  concluded 
to  alter  and  enlarge  the  building  to  its  present  dimensions  and  appearance.  It  is  the  prevalent 
erroneous  belief  that  the  Cathedral  was  torn  down  ana  rebuilt  in  1850.    This  is  a  mistake,  as  it 


108  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

was  simply  altered  and  improved,  and  not  rebuilt.  The  following  is  a  description  of  the 
Cathedral  before  its  renovation  and  alteration  in  1850:  "The  architecture  of  the  Cathedral  is 
by  no  means  pure,  but  is  not  wanting  in  effect  on  this  account.  The  lower  story  is  of  the 
rustic  order,  flanked  at  each  of  the  front  angles  by  hexagonal  towers,  projecting  one-half  of 
their  diameter,  showing  below  Tuscan  antae  at  each  angle,  and  above  pilasters  of  plain  mason- 
work,  in  the  same  style,  with  the  antique  wreaths  on  the  frieze  of  the  entablatures.  These 
towers  are  crowned  by  low  spires,  erected  after  Latrobe's  designs,  about  a.  d.  1814.  The  grand 
entrance  to  the  Cathedral  is  in  the  middle  of  the  front,  being  a  semi-circular  arched  door,  with 
two  clustered  Tuscan  columns  on  either  side.  This  entrance  is  flanked  by  two  smaller  doors, 
similar  to  the  principal  one.  The  second  story  of  the  front  has  the  same  general  appearance 
as  to  the  same  number  of  columns,  etc,  as  the  lower  one,  but  is  of  the  Roman  Doric  order. 
Above,  and  corresponding  to  the  principal  entrance,  is  a  circular  window,  with  niches  on 
either  side  of  the  side  doors  below.  On  the  apex  of  the  pediment  of  this  story  rises  the  princi- 
pal turret,  being  in  the  Tuscan  style,  and  in  two  parts— the  lower  being  square,  about  twenty 
feet  in  height,  with  circular  apertures  on  each  side,  the  upper  hexagonal  having  a  belfry,  with 
apertures  on  each  side  for  letting  out  the  sound,  flanked  by  antae.  The  proportions  of  the 
order  are  not  observed  in  this  belfry,  which  was  erected  about  1824  by  Le  Eiche.  The 
Cathedral  has  a  tenure,  to  speak  in  legal  phrase,  of  every  Saturday  evening  offering  masses 
for  the  soul  of  its  founder,  Don  Andres  Almonaster-y-Roxas,  and  every  evening  of  that  day  as 
the  sun  sets  does  the  mournful  sound  of  the  tolling  bell  recall  his  memory  to  the  citizens." 

The  remains  of  the  celebrated  curate.  Father  Antoine,  and  many  of  his  successors  in  ofiace, 
lie  buried  under  the  floor  of  the  vestry  in  the  Cathedral,  back  of  the  altar  of  Notre  Dame  de 
Lourdes.  Underneath  the  marble  pavement  of  the  Cathedral,  in  front  of  this  altar  and  on  the 
side  opposite  the  grave  of  Don  Aknonaster,  lie  the  remains  of  three  cavaliers,  of  noble  descent 
whose  names  are  prominent  in  the  early  annals  of  Louisiana.  They  are,  as  the  French  inscrip- 
tion on  the  marble  slab  in  the  floor  relates :  Francois  Philippe  de  Marigny  de  Mandeville, 
founder  of  the  old  Creole  families  of  Marigny  and  Mandeville.  He  was  a  Chevalier  of  the  Royal 
and  Military  Order  of  St.  Louis  and  Major  de  Place,  of  New  Orleans,  born  at  Bayeux  in  Normandy, 
and  died  in  New  Orleans,  Nov.  1st,  1728.  The  second  is  the  son,  Antoine  Philippe,  Chevalier  of 
the  Royal  and  Military  Order  of  St.  Louis,  and  Captain  of  Infantry  in  the  service  of  France;  bom 
at  Mobile,  Feb.  28th,  1722;  died  in  New  Orleans,  Nov.  6th,  1779.  And  lastly,  the  son  of  the  pre- 
ceding, Pierre  Philippe,  Chevalier  of  the  Royal  and  Military  Order  of  St.  Louis  and  Captain  of 
Infantry  under  fhe  Spanish  Government,  born  in  New  Orleans,  June  15th,  1751,  died  May  11th,  1800. 

SAINTS    OF    THE    CRESCENT    CITY. 

It  would,  indeed,  be  strange  if  the  Spanish  domination  had  not  bequeathed  to  New  "Orleans 
something  of  ecclesiastical,  as  well  as  of  legal  and  of  military  romance— something  of  monastic 
legend  as  well  as  the  history-graven  tablets  of  severe  and  extraordinary  laws,  or  the  traditions 
of  colonial  wars  and  soldier-governors,  austerely  dignified  as  the  portraits  of  Velasquez.  It 
would  be  strange  if  the  priests  and  the  friars  of  hieratic  Spain  had  not  taken  a  hand  in  the  early 
history  of  Louisiana,  and  left  behind  them  popular  memories  much  more  clearly  outlined  than 
the  picturesque  figures  of  Alcaldes  or  Alferez-Reals.  It  would  be  stranger  still,  however,  if  the 
sombre-garbed  and  iron-featured  ecclesiasticism  of  Catholic  Spain,  and  the  almost  jovially  pious, 
paternally  benevolent  ecclesiasticism  of  Catholic  France  had  encountered  one  another  without 
producing  in  the  social  body  a  disturbing  ferment,  as  of  antagonistic  chemicals  brought  into 
sudden  conjunction.  The  spirit  of  church  discipline  in  France,  from  the  period  of  Louis  le 
Grand— and,  indeed,  long  before  it  also— until  the  fall  of  the  old  regime,  had  softened  the  aus- 
terity of  its  countenance  in  accordance  with  the  polished  luxury  of  the  period ;  while  that  of 
Spain  had  relaxed  nothing  of  its  gloomy  and  grim  severity,  and  had  lost  but  little  of  its  fear- 
inspiring  judicial  power.    The  Inquisition  was  still  mighty  when  Louisiana  was  ceded  to  Spain ; 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS,  100 

and  at  this  very  time  the  French  ecclesiastics  who  administered  ghostly  comfort  to  the  Creoles 
were  leading  rather  jolly  lives.  At  least  it  is  certain  that  the  S  vanish  monks  who  came  to  thu 
colony  with  the  new  administration  were  greatly  scandalized  at  what  they  heard  and  saw; 
fiere  was  much  fuss  and  fury  in  consequence  ;  and  the  history  of  that  church  quarrel  is  one  of 
the  most  curious  episodes  in  the  chronicles  of  Louisiana. 

FATHER  DAGOBEET. 

Father  Dagobert,  of  sainted  memory,  was  the  thorn  upon  which  the  newly  arrived  piety  of 
austere  Spain  unexpectedly  sat  down.  He  was  Superior  of  the  French  Capuchins  of  Louisiana, 
and  Vicar-General  of  the  diocese.  There  had  been  a  tremendous  row  in  1755  between  the 
Jesuits  and  the  Capuchins,  which  ended  in  the  expulsion  of  the  Jesuits  from  the  territory,  owing 
in  chief  to  the  wonderful  diplomacy  of  Father  Hilaire  de  Geneveaux,  Superior  of  the  Capuchins. 
Father  Gene veaux  was,  if  not  a  strict  disciplinarian,  at  least  a  learned  abbot;  but  he  refused 
to  assist  the  Superior  Council  in  their  scheme  of  revolt  against  the  Spanish  Government,  which 
proved  at  last  so  fatal  to  the  schemers.  So  they  shipped  Father  Hilaire  out  of  the  country,  and 
Father  Dagobert  reigned  abbot  in  his  stead. 

There  were  many  things  about  the  character  of  this  Father  Dagobert  which  remind  one  of 
Balzac's  jolly  friars.  Were  it  possible  to  believe  what  the  Spanish  monks  wrote  of  him,  he 
m:g':t  be  compared  to  the  monk  Amador,  "  who  was  a  glorious  abbot  of  Turpenay."  He  lived 
comfortably  and  wore  cleanly  attire.  He  was  fat  and  rubicund,  and  hated  trouble  much  more, 
perhaps,  than  he  hated  even  the  devil.  Nevertheless  he  would  have  put  himself  to  trouble  at 
any  time  in  preference  to  troubling  anybody  else.  He  loved  a  good  dinner  and  enjoyed  a  good 
laugh ;  he  delighted  to  go  to  christenings  and  weddings ;  he  liked  a  glass  of  good  wine,  and 
revelled  in  an  uproarious  joke  ;  he  enjoyed  the  fun  of  pinching  a  rosy  cheek  and  poking  a  sly 
joke  at  some  pretty  maiden  ;  he  mixed  piety  with  joviality  as  he  mingled  water  with  wine  ;  he 
made  it  a  rule  of  his  life  never  to  disagree  with  a]iybo(  y  when  he  could  help  it ;  and  he  ate  with 
pubhcans  and  sinners.  He  agreed  with  the  Supreme  Council  in  their  scheme  of  revolt ;  but  he 
also  agreed  to  receive  Count  O'Reilly  and  the  Spanish  troops,  as  Yicar-General  of  the  colony, 
and  to  bless  the  Spanish  colors.  Such  is  the  joy-loving,  merry-making,  charity-bestowing  char- 
acter of  this  holy  man,  as  pictured  to  us  by  the  historians  of  Louisiana  ;  and  it  is  not  surprising 
that  the  Creoles  loved  him  and  revered  him  at  once.  Nobody  but  Father  Dagobert  had  married 
any  French  couple  or  christened  any  French  children  for  years  before  the  Spanish  monks  came 
from  Havana  to  the  city  of  New  Orleans. 

Before  that  time,  of  course,  the  fame  of  Father  Dagobert  had  gone  abroad.  He  had  a 
reputation  even  in  Havana  as  a  most  holy  and  influential  ecclesiastic.  He  was  reported  to  be 
a  saint.  He  was  believed  to  live  like  a  hermit.  It  was  rumored  that  he  wore  sackcloth  and 
flagellated  himself  with  appalling  severity,  and  almost  starved  his  body  of  the  necessaries  of 
life.  What  other  manner  of  holiness,  indeed,  could  the  mind  of  a  Spanish  ascetic  comprehend? 
When  the  Spanish  Capuchins  appeared  upon  the  scene,  they  found  that  mere  rumors  cannot 
always  be  trusted.  Instead  of  finding  Father  Dagobert  mourning  for  his  own  sins  and  every- 
body else's,  they  found  him  a  constant  visitor  at  wedding  banquets  and  christening  dinners; 
instead  of  being  seated  in  sackcloth  and  ashes,  they  found  him  perambulating  the  streets  of  New 
Orleans  in  comfortable  raiment ;  instead  of  being  gaunt  with  mortifications  and  pale  with 
prayer,  they  found  him  fat  and  sleek  beyond  the  ordinary  degree  ;  Instead  of  being  poor  and 
miserable  they  discovered  that  both  he  and  his  monks  were  rich  and  happy ;  instead  of  being 
utterly  secluded  from  the  world  and  its  temptations,  they  saw  that  he  lived  in  a  fine  building 
w^ell  furnished  with  comforts,  and  was  daily  waited  upon— O  shocking  revelation  !— by  handsome 
quadroons  and  mulatresses. 

Ju3t  at  this  unpleasant  juncture  of  affairs,  the  Spanish  monks  fell  in  with  Father  Hilaire  de 
Geneveaux,  the  fonner  Superior  of  the  Cupuchins,  who  had  returned  to  the  colony,  and  who. 


ilO  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

as  you  may  well  suppose,  was  in  no  amiable  frame  of  mind  on  the  subject  of  Fatl]' 
La;;obert.  He  became  their  p:uide,  philosopher  and  friend;  he  gave  them  much  advice  wl; 
they  did  not  require,  and  taught  them  to  believe  many  things  which  they  had  not  evenimagiii' 
What  had  seemed  to  them  shocking,  he  magnified  to  the  proportions  of  outrageousness  ;  wha 
at  first  appeared  to  them  simply  bad,-he  taught  them  to  recognize  as  diabolical.  Very  sooi 
Father  Cirilo,  who  had  led  the  Spanish  Capuchins  to  the  scene  of  scandal,  wrote  a  series  o 
terrible  letters  to  the  Bishop  of  Havana,  whose  spiritual  jurisdiction  extended  over  the  colony 
Some  of  these  letters,  as  translated  and  preserved  by  Charles  Gayarre  in  his  admirable  history  o 
Louisiana,  ai-e  most  curious  and  amusing.  Others  he  has  omitted  to  use,  dismissing  them  witl 
the  remark  that  they  are  written  with  a  freedom  of  language  worthy  of  a  Juvenal,  and  hardlj 
fitted  for  an  English  dress.  Tho  object  of  Cirilo  was  to  haveDagobert  removed  from  his  positior 
of  ecclesiastical  authority  as  a  person  unfitted  by  reason  of  his  own  wickedness  to  assume  th( 
tutelage  of  souls.  The  first  letter  Cirilo  wrote  was  very  long  and  cunningly  worded  ;  it  treatec 
of  the  number  of  young  colored  women  in  the  convent,  and  other  matters,  in  a  manner  calcu 
lated  to  excite  the  suspicions  of  the  bishop ;  but  it  was  not  violent  nor  openly  uncharitable.  Hi 
subsequent  letters  were  of  a  very  different  kind,  however,  as  the  following  extracts  from  one  o: 
them  will  show  : 

"  Illustrious  Sir— The  evils  by  which  we  are  surrounded  compel  us  to  expose  the  wickec 
actions  which  these  monsters,  rather  than  Capuchins,  perpetrate  against  our  persons,  against 
God  and  His  holy  things.  It  is  not  my  intention,  most  excellent  sir,  to  trouble  you  vrith  trifles 
and  therefore,  with  regard  to  what  concerns  ourselves,  I  shall  merely  say  that  the  very  Spanisl: 
name  is  an  object  of  abomination  to  these  friars,  because  they  cannot  even  bear  the  sight  of  the 
thiiigs  which  are  of  God  and  which  appertain  to  our  divine  religion,  because  these  friars  oi 
monsters  think  that  we  have  come  to  repress  the  abuses  which  they  love,  and  to  reform  their  evi] 
ways.  Therefore  they  hate  us.  *  *  *  When  they  have  bags  full  of  dollars,  we  are  obliged  to 
have  recourse  to  our  friends  to  relieve  our  necessities.  *  *  *  What  is  most  deplorable  is  to 
see  in  the  convent  the  concubine  of  the  friars,  for  such  is  the  reputation  she  bears.  She  has 
three  sons,  although  who  her  husband  is  God  only  knows.  They  eat  at  our  table,  and  off  the 
plat3  cf  Father  Dagobert,  who,  without  shame,  or  fear  of  the  world  at  least,  if  not  of  God,  per- 
mits them  to  call  him  papa.  She  is  one  of  the  mulatresses  who  are  kept  in  the  house.  She  is 
the  absolute  mistress  of  the  establishment,  and  the  friars  have  for  her  so  much  attachment  that 
they  strive  who  shall  send  to  the  cherished  paramour  the  best  dish  on  the  table  before  any  one 
else  is  allowed  to  taste  it.  *  *  *  There  are,  however,  greater  evils  which  afflict  our  hearts, 
and  which  are  the  sins  they  clearly  commit  against  God  and  His  holy  sacraments.  Baptism  is 
administered  without  any  of  the  ceremonies  prescribed  by  the  Romish  ritual ;  and  the  conse- 
crated oil  itself  is  impure  and  stale.  *  *  *  As  to  the  Eucharist,  that  mystery  which  makes 
angels  tremble  with  awe,  we  found  that  the  sacramental  elements  were  so  full  of  insects  which 
fed  upon  them,  and  presented  so  disgusting  an  appearance  that  we  were  obliged  to  fling  them 
away,  as  if  they  had  been  the  veriest  filth.  So  great  is  the  detestable  negligence  of  these  friars 
that  I  thmk  they  must  be  the  disciples  either  of  Luther  or  Calvin.  *  *  *  You  must  also  be 
made  to  know,  most  excellent  sir,  that  the  Viaticum  is  not  administered  lo  the  blacks,  to  the 
mulattoes,  nor  to  the  culprits  who  are  sentenced  to  death  ;  and  having  asked  Father  Dagobert 
for  the  cause  of  it,  he  answered  that  it  was  to  establish  a  distinction  between  the  whites  and  the 
blacks.  Did  you  ever  hear  a  more  cruel  answer  ?  *  *  *  These  priests  also  demean  them- 
selves in  the  choir,  where  they  are  seen  stuffing  their  noses  with  tobacco,  crossing  one  leg  over 
the  other,  staring  in  all  directions,  and  moving  the  very  angels  to  wrath.  *  *  *  The  per- 
versity of  these  men  is  such  that  they  are  not  content  with  being  wicked  themselves,  but  they 
also  wish  us  to  follow  their  example,  and  to  abstain  from  fasting  and  observing  the  holy  days. 
As  an  excuse  for  their  doings  they  say  they  are  not  Spaniards.  *  *  *  I  can  assure  your  grace 
that  they  spare  no  pains  to  make  me  like  one  of  them,  and  to  induce  me  to  wear  a  shirt  and 
stockings  and  to  become  as  lax  in  my  morals  and  habits  as  they  are." 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  Ill 

However  great  may  have  been  the  discerning  powers  of  the  illustrious  dignitary  to  whom 
these  poignant  epistles  were  addressed;  however  plainly  he  may  have  been  able  to  perceive,  as 
we  can  easily  do  at  this  day,  a  certain  sririt  of  jealousy  and  malevolence  in  the  letters  of  Father 
Cirilo,  yet  he  could  hardly  receive  such  information  without  experiencing  a  feeling  of  righteous 
anger  against  Abbot  Dagobert  and  the  French  Capuchins.  At  the  same  time  he  felt  puzzled  as 
to  what  course  he  should  pursue.  Cirilo,  while  stirring  up  all  the  discord,  had  not  lost  sight  of  the 
fact  that  it  would  prove  a  very  dangerous  undertaking  to  remove  Father  Dagobert  from  his  office 
at  once,  and  he  had  taken  the  precaution  to  inform  the  bishop  of  this.  Abbot  Dagobert  was  so 
much  loved  by  the  colonists  that  it  was  actually  feared  his  removal  would  depopulate  the  colony, 
that  his  flock  would  follow  him  whithersoever  he  might  be  sent,  or  that,  in  the  event  of  his 
remaining  in  the  city,  his  suspension  would  excite  a  riot  among  the  people.  At  this  juncture 
Gov.  Unsaga  interfered  on  the  side  of  the  French  Capuchins,  and  wrote  a  respectful  letter  of 
remonstrance  to  the  bishop,  in  which  the  Spanish  friars  were  severely  handled.  The  bishop  took 
offense  at  the  boldness  of  the  Governor's  rebuke,  and  referred  the  matter  to  the  Spanish  court  at 
^Madrid.  So,  likewise,  did  the  Governor,  who  was  determined  that  the  French  Capuchins  should 
not  be  persecuted.  The  Government,  without  uttering  any  decisive  opinion  upon  the  issues  of 
the  quarrel,  gravely  advised  both  prelate  and  Governor  to  compromise  their  disagreement  in 
such  a  fashion  as  would  best  preserve  harmony  between  the  civil  and  ecclesiastical  authorities 
in  Louisiana.  This  austere  advice  had  a  most  beneficial  ai?d  cooling  effect,  as  of  an  application 
of  ice  water  to  local  inflammation.  The  quarrel  ended,  and  Father  Dagobert  was  not  subjected 
to  further  molestation.    Still,  his  memory  is  kept  holy  in  Louisiana. 

PERE  ANTOINE. 

But  there  was  also  a  Spanish  monk,  who  in  after  years  made  himself  not  less  beloved 
3y  the  colonists  than  was  Father  Dagobert.  That  monk  was  Father  Antonio  de  Sedella,  whom 
.he  French  Creoles  yet  speak  of  reverentially,  as  the  Pere  Antoine,  the  same  Pere  Antoine  who 
igures  so  romantically  in  a  certain  legend  concerning  the  date-palm  on  Orleans  street, 
ret  Father  Antonio  came  to  New  Orleans  under  peculiarly  inauspicious  and  unpleasant 
■ircumstances.  In  fact  he  was  sent  to  Louisiana  from  Madrid  as  » commissary  of  the  Holy 
nquisition  ;  and  with  the  advent  of  Father  Antonio  began  and  ended  the  only  attempt  ever 
nade  to  introduce  the  Inquisition  into  the  colony.  It  was  in  1789  that  that  attempt  was  made, 
nd  the  just,  humane  and  fearle.=s  Don  Estevan  Miro  was  then  Governor  of  Louisiana.  The' 
ommissary  of  the  Holy  Inquisition  hastened  to  pay  respects  to  his  excellency;  to  exhibit  his 
apers,  and  to  demand  that  the  troops  be  placed  at  his  disposal  whenever  they  should  be  needed 
1  the  matter  of  arresting  or  punishing  heretics.  Don  Estevan  Miro  received  the  Inquisitor 
raciously,  and,  with  a  peculiar  and  sinister  smile  which  delighted  Father  Antonio,  informed 
im  that  trooops  should  be  promptly  sent  to  his  residence.  Then  the  holy  man  retired  and 
ealously  commenced  his  secret  preparations  for  the  detection  and  extinction  of  heresy  in  the 
ity  of  New  Orleans.  One  night,  shortly  after  he  had  gone  to  bed,  he  heard  the  heavy  tramp  of 
rmed  men  booming  along  the  convent  corridor  ;  theil  came  the  bang  of  the  musket  butt  against 
le  ceU  door,  and  opening  it  the  Father  beheld  without  a  file  of  Spanish  soldiers,  headed  by  an 
fficer  in  gorgeous  uniform.  Surprised,  yet  well  pleased,  the  priest  informed  the  officer  that  he 
I  id  not  just  then  want  them  for  active  duty,  but  that  he  would  send  for  them  when  necessary, 
nd  that  for  the  time  being  they  might  retire  with  the  blessing  of  God.  "  That  is  all  very  fine," 
?plied  the  moustached  officer,  grimly;  "but  the  fact  is,  father,  that  we  want  you,  and  that 
ght  speedily."  To  the  utter  stupefaction  of  the  Inquisitor,  who  vainly  threatened  the  soldiers 
1th  the  vengeance  of  the  Holy  Inquisitor,  they  hurried  him  down  to  the  levee,  put  him  on 
3ard  a  Spanish  vessel,  and  shipped  him  direct  to  Cadiz. 

A  few  years  later  Father  Antonio  came  back  again,  but  not,  indeed,  as  a  wolf  in  sheep's 
-othing.    A  change  had  come  over  the  spirit  of  his  dream.    He  returned,  indeed,  to  purify 


112  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

souls,  but  to  purify  them  with  holy  water  rather  than  by  holy  fire.  He  had  become  rather  inde 
pendent  in  spirit  for  a  priest,  and  administered  to  the  wants  of  men's  souls  as  he  himsel 
thought  proper.  But  he  made  himself  so  beloved  by  the  people  that  his  memory  is  yet  reverec 
as  that  of  a  great  saint  by  the  Catholics  of  New  Orleans ;  and,  indeed.  Father  Antonio  ha( 
quite  as  good  a  claim  to  canonization  as  any  religious  man  of  his  age.  He  is  buried  under  th 
altar  of  St.  Francis,  in  the  Cathedral ;  but  there  are  not  many  who  know  his  resting-place,  an( 
even  the  priests  of  the  old  church  have  forgotten  it.  Several  portraits  of  him  are  still  in  exist 
ence.  The  shadow  of  the  monk  thus  preserved  compels  respect  and  admiration.  He  seems  t 
have  had  a  grand  old  face,  long  and  yet  massive  in  its  length ;  if  one  might  speak  of  the  arcM 
lecture  of  a  face,  his  was  Gothic  of  the  Middle  Period.  His  snowy  beard  flowed  down  even  t( 
the  hempen  girdle  at  his  waist,  and  together  with  his  tonsure,  lent  him  the  holy  aspect  of  ; 
medieval  St.  Anthony ;  his  habit  was  of  the  coarsest  brown  material,  and  his  naked  feet  wer( 
protected  by  wooden  sandals. 

He  lived  like  an  anchorite,  though  dwelling  in  the  heart  of  the  city.    In  the  rear  of  the  ol( 
St.  Louis  Cathedral— where  he  had  slept,  good  soul  I  since  1829— he  built  himself  a  rude  hermit 
age.    It  was  a  hideous  little  hut  of  planks  and  boughs,  much  more  uncomfortable  than  a  do} 
kennel,  and  much  more  exposed  to  weather  than  a  cow  shed.    It  had  no  furniture  but  a  bed 
made  of  two  hard  boards,  a  stool  and  a  holy- water  font.    But  here  the  good  priest  slept  and  at.  \ 
and  prayed ;  blessing  God  alike  whether  it  rained  or  froze  ;  dispensing  alms  to  the  poor  am  i 
fighting  the  devil  and  his  angels.    Although  at  his  death  he  left  little  or  nothing,  his  income  mus 
certainly  have  been  enormous ;  for  he  never  visited  a  scene  of  birth,  of  marriage,  or  of  death 
vrithout  receiving  some  gift  of  the  world's  goods ;  and  his  daily  visits  were  many.    His  charity 
however,  was  greater  than  his  income  ;  and  his  purse,  like  that  of  the  fairy  tale,  was  being  for 
ever  emptied,  though  fresh  gold  always  glittered  there  in  the  place  of  that  taken  out.    Thi;  ; 
purse,  tradition  says,  was  a  great  bag  filled  with  clinking  coin  and- carried  at  the  girdle.    When  ■ 
ever  Father  Antonio  appeared  upon  the  street,  with  cowl  and  sandaled  feet,  and  that  delightfu 
purse,  all  the  children  of  the  French  quarter  followed  after  him,  like  the  children  of  Hamelir 
after  the  Pied  Piper.    They  would  always  kneel  down  beside  him  in  the  mud  to  ask  forhij 
blessing  when  opportunity  offered,  and  they  never  failed  to  demand  that  a  lagniappe,  in  the  shape 
of  a  small  coin,  be  thrown  in  with  the  blessing.    It  is  probable  that  they  cared  much  more  foi 
the  lagniappe  than  they  did  for  the  blessing ;  but  the  good  father  never  refused  either. 

So  great  was  the  influence  of  this  Capuchin,  who  could  never  even  learn  to  speak  good 
French,  over  the  Creoles  of  New  Orleans,  that  he  occasioned  serious  anxiety  to  the  local  gov- 
ernment at  the  time  of  the  Aaron  Burr  excitement,  as  it  was  feared  he  might  lend  his  aid  to  the 
traitor,  but  the  old  priest  gave  the  civil  government  very  little  trouble. 

But  to  the  religious  government  of  the  Catholic  church  in  Louisiana  this  celebrated  Capu- 
chin gave  a  great  deal  of  trouble.  Before  he  had  given  any  anxiety  to  Claiborne  he  had  a  tre- 
mendous quarrel  with  a  new  Yicar-General  of  the  diocese,  Father  Walsh,  who  happened  to  be 
an  Irishman,  and  a  determined  Irishman,  too.  Father  Antonio  was  suspended ;  but  he  appealed 
to  his  parishioners,  and  they  elected  him  their  pastor  by  a  unanimous  vote.  The  Marquis  of 
CasaCalvo,  who  still  resided  in  New  Orleans,  lent  the  weight  of  his  social  influence  to  the  Spanish 
Capuchin,  and  the  whole  Catholic  community  bid  defiance  to  Walsh,  who,  firm  as  he  was.  filially 
found  himself  obliged  to  yield.  Father  de  Sedella  was  re-instated  ;  but  only  a  few  years  later  he 
got  into  another  and  much  more  serious  squabble  with  his  ecclesiastical  superiors,  so  that 
Bishop  Dubourg  suspended  him  again  from  duty.  For  a  few  days  Father  Antonio  disappeared  j 
from  the  narrow  streets  of  New  Orleans,  and  the  children  looked  in  vain  for  the  white  beard,  j 
the  sandaled  feet,  the  brown  Franciscan  habit,  and  the  bag  of  lagniappe. 

Finally  the  good  folks  became  uneasy  and  resolved  to  find  out  what  had  become  of  the 
pere  Antoine  cheri.  There  were  fifteen  babies  to  be  christened  ;  there  were  a  dozen  couples  to  be 
married ;  there  were  many  repentant  sinners  to  be  shriven ;  there  were  sick  people  to  be 
visited,  and  dying  people  to  be  absolved.    Yet  Padre  Antonio  remained  invisible.    Perhaps  he 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  113 

lad  been  murdered  by  some  horrible  villain  for  the  sake  of  that  leather  purse  he  forever  carried 
n  his  erirdle.  The  hermitage  at  the  Cathedral  was  empty  ;  the  mass  had  not  been  said  for  many 
lays  at  the  altar  of  St.  Francis.  But  at  last  Father  Antoine  was  found  without  the  city  limits, 
)raying  in  the  shadow  of  cypress  trees  and  closely  environed  by  legions  of  gray  alligators, 
'hey  seized  him  (the  parishioners,  not  the  alligators)  and  bore  him  back  to  the  city  in  triumph. 
:'hey  took  him  into  the  church,  to  the  sanctuary  itself,  to  the  altar,  and  insisted  that  he  should 
ay  mass  for  them.  They  told  him  all  the  good  work  of  christening  and  marrying  and  shriving 
■lat  he  had  to  do  ;  they  told  him  that  the  bishop  was  a  fool ;  they  forced  money  into  his  leather 
ag ;  but  he  sadly  and  firmly  answered  that  he  could  do  nothing  until  the  bishop  recalled  him 
0  duty. 

Then  the  fury  of  the  mob  became  great.  They  rushed  out  of  the  church  and  poured  thro-agh 
he  streets  towards  the  old  Ursulines  convent,  where  the  Bishop  dwelt,  but  the  bishop  warned 
f  their  approach  had  lied  from  the  city,  and  many  months  elapsed  before  he  dared  return.  Of 
ourse,  Father  Antonio  de  Sedella  was  promptly  restored  to  duty ;  and  thereafter  none  ven- 
ared  to  interfere  with  his  spiritual  jurisdiction.  Perhaps  it  was  on  account  of  these  things 
mt  Catholic  opinion  is  still  somewhat  divided  on  the  subject  of  the  old  monk's  claim  to 
inctity. 

When  General  Lafayette  visited  New  Orleans  in  1835,  he  was  visited  by  Father  Antonio, 
len  in  his  seventy-fiith  year  ;  and  the  two  aged  veterans— aged  in  the  good  fight  of  a  lifetime 
^r  faith  and  fatherland— met  with  such  mutual  respect  and  esteem  as  the  knights  and  prelates 
f  olden  time  ever  felt  for  one  another.  It  is  a  pity  that  we  do  not  know  all  that  passed  between 
lem  :  for  the  Courier  of  that  day  (April  13,  1825),  informs  us  that  the  General  and  the  aged  monk 
ad  a  long  talk  together.  But  we  know  the  General  stated  that  he  was  proud  to  be  about  the 
ime  age  as  Father  Antonio,  who  v.-as  old  as  three  generations— "  For  there  is  not  much  dif- 
rence  between  us,"  said  Lafayette  ;  "  I  am  a  man  of  76." 

The  good  father  died  at  the  age  of  eighty-one  years,  amid  the  lamentations  of  the  entire 
)mmunity  of  the  city. 

So  beloved  was  the  old  priest  by  all  classes  and  denominations  that  we  even  find  in  the 
ipers  of  that  day  a  published  call  to  attend  the  funeral,  issued  by  the  Masons  of  all  branches, 
ad  here  are  some  telling  extracts  from  that  printed  summons,  which  was,  perhaps,  the  greatest 
)Dor  ever  paid  to  Father  Antonio's  character  : 

"  That  venerable  pastor,  as  tolerant  as  Airtuous,  as  charitable  as  enlightened,  is  not  only 
gretted  by  an  immense  population,  but  he  deservedly  enjoyed  the  esteem  and  regard  of  that 
imerous  class  of  our  community  whose  principles  are  founded  upon  faith,  hope  and  charity— 
ose  facred  dogmas  which  Father  Antoine  preached  as  long  as  he  lived.  *:;=**  Masons 
member  that  Father  Antoine  never  refused  to  accompany  to  their  last  abode  the  mortal 
mains  of  our  brothers,  and  that  gratitude  now  requires  that  we,  of  all  rites  and  degrees, 
ould  in  our  turn  accompany  him  thither  with  all  the  respect  and  veneration  he  so  well 
served." 

And  the  call  was  nobly  answered.  Perhaps  it  was  the  first  time  in  history  that  the  Masonic 
iternity  ever  publicly  mourned  the  death  of  a  Catholic  priest  and  walked  in  solemn  procession 
ter  the  remains. 

But  every  one  attended  the  funeral  of  Father  Antonio— all  the  militia  and  soldiery,  the 
lice,  the  judges  of  the  courts,  the  legislators  and  City  Council,  all  the  wealthy  merchants  of 
e  city,  and— strange  to  say— all  the  ministers  and  clergy  of  all  denominations.  The  whole  city 
3nt  forth  that  day  to  honor  the  dead.  The  newspapers  suspended  publication  ;  the  plays  of 
e  theatres  were  suspended  ;  the  courts  were  adjourned,  and  the  warehouses  closed  ;  and  the 
ty  Council  solemnly  passed  a  resolution  by  which  its  members  publicly  pledged  themselves  to 
3ar  crape  on  the  left  arm  for  thirty  days  in  memory  of  good  Father  Antonio. 


114  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

PERE  ANTOINE'S  DATE  PALM. 

Everybody  who  has  ever  visited  New  Orleans  has  heard  of  P^re  Antoine's  date  palm.  It 
still  growing  in  the  lot  at  the  northeast  corner  of  Bourbon  and  Orleans  streets,  in  the  Secoi 
district,  new  used  as  a  wuod  yard  by  Mr.  T.  Mitchel.  The  land  was  the  property  of  Fath 
Antoine  while  he  lived,  and  the  palm-tree  stands  at  what  was  the  foot  of  his  garden  lot.  It  h; 
passed  from  the  hands  of  Father  Antoine,  through  the  families  of  Genois  and  Avengo,  ' 
Madame  J.  M.  Lapeyre,  the  present  owner.    Innumerable  have  been  the  tales  told  of  it. 

Some  whisper  that  it  sprang  from  the  heart  of  a  young  girl  who  died  dreaming  of  pal 
fringed  shores  and  pining  for  the  murmur  of  the  sea. 

Some  aver  that  it  was  borne  hither  from  the  Orient  by  the  swarthy  crew  of  a  corsair,  w 
landed  one  wild  and  stormy  night,  and  slew  a  Turkish  refugee  who  dwelt  where  the  tree  iv 
stands ;  and  having  buried  him,  they  planted  the  palm  above  his  grave. 

Others  state  that  it  stood  three  centuries  ago  where  it  stands  to-day ;  that  it  was  on( 
blown  down,  and  that  the  present  graceful  trunk  has  sprung  up  from  the  ruins  of  the  anciei 
one. 

And  it  is  also  said  that  a  Spanish  resident  who  loved  palms,  and  who  had  long  dwelt 
tropical  countries,  sent  for  the  palm  over  the  seas,  that  its  graceful  presence  might  remind  hi 
of  summer  lands  and  the  mystic  chant  of  the  Spanish  main. 

There  is  also  a  story  that  he  who  fells  the  tree  must  render  up  the  land  on  which  it  grew,  1 
the  city ;  but  yve,  having  conversed  with  the  owner  of  the  ground,  were  otherwise  informs 

The  tree  keeps  its  secret. 

Whether  planted  by  nature  or  by  the  hand  of  man,  by  Indian  or  Spaniard  or  French  coL 
nist ;  whether  created  by  the  sweet  magic  of  a  woman's  heart,  as  some  men  say  ;  wheth( 
transplanted  from  the  gardens  of  Constantinople,  as  the  quaint  tradition  relates;  whether  it  hi 
witnessed  the  birth  of  this  mighty  city,  and  waved  its  cacique's-plume  above  houses  the 
ceased  to  exist  before  we  were  born,  through  all  the  days  of  the  old  French  and  Spanish  go^ 
ernors;  whether  its  leaves  were  agitated  by  the  distant  thunder  of  the  famous  battle  wit 
English  invaders  ;  whether  it  looked  down  upon  O'Reilly's  Spanish  infantry  filing  by;  whethe 
it  sometimes  whispers  its  thoughts  in  the  ear  of  Night— who  shall  say  ?  Perhaps  it  has  a  mystt 
rious,  sentient  life,  and  holds  in  the  hidden  recesses  of  its  being,  some  strange  memories  c 
pre-existence— of  low  reefs  white  with  foam— of  untrodden  forests  of  taller  palms— of  th 
chatter  of  apes  and  the  shrieks  of  rainbow-plumaged  birds— of  purple  mountain  peaks— c 
quaint  galleons  and  the  songs  of  Spanish  mariners.  And.  perchance,  while  striving  in  the  nigh 
to  collect  these  memories— faint  and  ghostly  as  objects  seen  tlirouijh  a  sea-fog— it  wonder 
vaguely  that  it  should  be  able  to  live  through  the  centuries  in  so  strange  a  land  as  this  ;  and  it 
leaves  nod  and  whisper  to  one  another  until  the  tapers  of  the  stars  die  out,  and  the  great  ligh 
of  dawn  ghnvs  over  the  river,  and  the  noise  of  hammer  and  saw,  and  the  rumble  of  wagon 
harslily  dispel  the  thin  fancies  of  its  vegetable  brain. 

Gayarre,  in  his  history  of  Louisiana,  has  a  long  tale  to  tell  of  this  palm. 


OTHER  CATHOLIC  CHURCHES. 

The  St.  Louis  Cathedral  remained  for  years  the  only  cathedral,  indeed,  the  only  church  ii 
New  Orleans.  It  was  only  when  the  city  began  to  spread  that  other  religious  edifices  wer 
built. 

As  late  as  1842,  when  the  city  boasted  a  population  of  60,000,  a  majority  of  whom  wen 
Catholics,  it  boasted  of  only  five  churches— the  Cathedral,  St.  Mary's,  the  archiepiscopal  resi 
dence,  St.  Patrick's^  on  Camp  street,  St.  Anthony's  Mortuary  Ohapel,  on  Rampart  street,  and 
St.  Vincent  de  Paul's  on  Greatmen  street. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  115 

The  St.  Antoine  Obituary  Chapel,  on  North  Eampart  street,  corner  of  Conti,  erected  by 
the  wardens,  now  St.  Anthony's  Italian  Church.  The  history  of  this  chapel  is  as  follows  :  On 
account  of  the  p:reat  increase  in  the  population  of  the  city,  and  of  course  the  increased  num- 
ber of  interments,  objection  was  made  about  the  year  1822  to  the  performance  of  the  services 
for  the  dead  at  the  Cathedral,  on  account  of  its  very  prominent  and  public  situation.  Under 
these  circumstances  the  city  made  a  grant  of  land  at  the  corner  of  Conti  and  Rampart  streets, 
aear  the  St.  Louis  Cemetery,  to  the  Board  of  Wardens  of  the  Church  of  St.  Louis,  on  condition  of 
:heir  erecting  upon  the  same,  a  chapel  as  a  place  for  the  exposition  of  the  bodies  and  performance 
Df  the  funeral  ceremonies  in  conformity  to  the  Catholic  ritual.  In  pursuance  with  this  intention, 
1  cross,  marklLg  the  present  site  of  the  altar  of  the  chapel  was  placed  with  proper  ceremonies 
Dn  the  10th  of  October,  1S26,  and  on  the  following  morning  the  buUdiug  was  begun.  Its  erection 
vvas  vigorously  prosecuted  at  the  expense  of  the  Board  of  Wardens  of  the  Cathedral.  The 
3hapel  was  dedicated  to  St.  Anthony  of  Padua.  A  fevV  years  ago  the  church  was  closed  as  a 
nortuary  chapel,  and  was  given  to  Italian  Catholics  of  the  city.  In  it  are  to  be  seen  many 
3nitches  and  wax  figures  of  arms,  and  legs  and  other  gifts,  made  by  persons  who  believe  that 
they  have  been  miraculously  cured  by  prajing  in  this  chapel. 

St.  Patrick's  Church,  situated  on  Camp  street,  between  Julia  and  Girod  streets,  is  a  triumph 
vvorthy  of  the  genius  of  Gothic  architecture,  whether  the  dimensions  or  the  splendor  of  the 
structure  be  considered.  Th^  L;tyie,  taken  from  the  famed  York  Minster  Cathedral,  is  lofty  and 
mposing,  and  is  regarded  as  the  finest  effort  in  this  style  of  architecture  in  the  United  States, 
[tis  built  of  brick,  roughcast,  and  colored  brown,  giving  the  idea  of  uncut  stone.  Exteriorly  the 
Duilding  is  impressive  and  solemn  ;  the  tower  massive,  lofty  and  majestic,  is  considered  one  of 
:he  most  beautiful  on  the  continent,  and  being  of  great  height  from  its  summit,  which  is  acces- 
-ible  by  a  spiral  stairway  in  the  interior,  commands  a  complete  view  of  the  city  and  suburbs  for 
niles  around.  In  grave  and  quiet  grandeur,  the  inside  of  the  church  is  in  perfect  accord  with  its 
jutward  appearance ;  the  altars  and  their  appointments  being  rich  and  elegant,  but  not  showy. 
Behind  the  main  altar  is  a  very  large  and  speaking  picture  of  the  Transfiguration  ;  at  the  right 
iide,  of  the  same  altar,  thero  is  one  of  St.  Peter  walking  on  the  waves.  To  the  left  side  is  one 
•ep resenting  St.  Patrick  baptizing  the  Queens  of  Ireland  in  the  famed  Halls  of  Tara. 

St.  John's  Church  is  situated  on  Dryades  street,  between  Clio  and  Calliope  streets,  is  built 
n  the  Renaissance  style,  and  is  of  imposing  grandeur  and  lofty  proportions,  measuring  one 
lundred  and  seventy-two  by  seventy-five  feet.  The  ceiling,  groined  and  arched,  is  fifty-five 
'eet  in  height  from  the  floor,  the  groins  supported  by  massive  and  graceful  columns.  The  pews 
ire  black  walnut  with  mahogany  trimmings.    The  organ  is  of  powerful  and  rich  tone. 

All  the  decorations  of  the  church  are  in  the  Renaissance  style.  The  altars  are  of  pure  white 
Italian,  and  green  and  gold  Irish  marble. 

The  corner-stone  was  laid  in  October,  :869,  and  the  church  dedicated  in  January,  1872. 

St.  Alphonsus  Church  is  situated  on  Constance,  between  St.  Andrew  and  Josephine  street. 
!t  is  built  in  the  Renaissance  style,  and  is  exceedingly  spacious  and  elegant  in  design,  seventy  by 
)ne  hundred  and  fifty  feet.    The  front  has  two  lofty  towers. 

The  building  was  commenced  April  21,  1855,  blessed  August  2d,  1857,  consecrated  April,  25, 
.858,  and  the  interior  finished,  1866-67.  It  contains  three  magnificent  altars.  Ttie  pulpit 
ind  altar  rails  are  also  of  wood  richly  carved,  and  of  the  most  exquisite  workmanship.  There 
s,  behind  the  main  altar,  a  picture,  executed  in  Rome,  representing  the  patron  saint  of  the 
church,  of  life  size. 

The  ceiling  and  wall  are  frescoed  and  gilded  in  the  most  elaborate  and  artistic  manner  by 
Hanova,  a  nephew  of  the  celebrated  sculptor.  The  frescoes  on  the  ceiling  represent  the  Holy 
Family,  the  Twelve  Apostles,  the  Evangelists,  the  Mysteries  of  Religion,  the  Ascension  of  Our 
Lord,  the  Assumption  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  and  the  Coronation  of  St.  Alphonsus  in  Heaven, 
ill  admired  as  rare  masterpieces. 

The  description  of  the  Catholic  churches  of  New  Orleans  would  not  be  complete  without 


116  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

some  account  of  the  mortuary  chapel  of  St.  Roch,  the  most  picturesque  of  all  the  religrioi 
buildings  of  the  city. 

Washington  avenue,  Solidelle,  Prosper  and  Music  streets,  Third  district,  bound  the  Cam 
Santo  Catholic  Cemetery  to  the  Church  of  Holy  Trinity.  Here,  within  the  cemotsry,  at  t 
extreme  edge  of  a  sparsely  settled  district,  rises  the  beautiful  brown  stuccoed  Gotaic  chape! 
St.  "och,  against  a  background  of  common  and  swamp. 

TJiis  chapel  has  been  erected  to  the  pious  philanthropist,  St.  Roch.  Early  in  the  eighth  ct 
tury  the  city  of  Munich  was  scourged  by  the  plague.  This  man  nursed  the  abandoned  si 
until  stricken  himself.  Then,  accompanied  by  his  dog,  he  wandered  off  to  be  cured  by  I 
ministering  of  his  faithful  companion,  who  licked  his  sores.  He  returned  to  the  suffering,  ai 
in  gratitude  devoted  the  remainder  of  his  life  to  the  sick. 

The  cemetery  is  small  and  partly  filled  with  graves  and  tombs,  and  in  one  corner 
wilderness  of  sunflowers— sunflowers  big  and  small,  bowing  obsequiously  to  their  god  1 
broad  shell  walk  to  the  chapel  in  the  rear  is  divided  midway  by  the  cross  upon  Mount  C; 
vary  and  a  stone  sundial.  "  Solar  time  "  is  graven  upon  it ;  it  keeps  no  record  of  silence  at 
darkness,  only  of  sunshine  and  brightness,  marking  no  hours  of  gloom  in  the  pathway  to  t 
grave. 

This  ivy-grown  chapel  is  the  most  beautiful  church  in  New  Orleans,  with  its  stained  gla 
windows  and  walls  of  tombs.  The  lower  front  is  inclosed  by  high  gateways  of  light  iron  ba 
through  which  glimmer  the  ever-burning  candles.  Within,  the  pavement  is  white  marble,  t; 
side  walls  composed  of  tiers  of  vaults  where  are  buried  the  members  of  the  societies  of  S 
Anne  and  St.  Joseph.  Over  them  are  placed  stained  glass-windows  to  each  patron  saint.  T! 
altar  is  decorated  with  vases  and  flowers  in  great  profusion.  Under  the  marble  floor  of  tl 
altar  is  buried  a  Benedictine  missionary,  who  died  in  St.  Landry  parish,  where  he  had  gone  i 
found  a  monastery.  Above  the  altar  is  the  shrine  of  St.  Roch,  a  cavalier,  staff  in  hand,  his  dc 
at  his  side.  Upon  the  shrine  hang  numerous  little  marble  tablets—"  merci  "—thank  offerings  f( 
cures  effected  by  the  intercession  of  the  good  saint.  A  large  marble  foot  and  two  tiny  wax  fei 
suspended  by  ribbons  were  given  by  persons  miraculously  cured.  The  first  was  from  a  Protes 
ant  gentleman,  whose  foot  was  crushed  in  a  railroad  accident.  His  mother  performed  a  no' 
ena,  which  is  a  daily  prayer  said  from  nine  to  twelve  days.  The  others  were  returns  for  a 
answer  to  a  novena  for  a  little  boy  paralyzed  from  birth. 

St.  Roch  is  looked  upon  as  the  "special  protector  against  epidemics,"  and  the  followin 
prayer,  printed  In  French  and  English,  hangs  upon  his  chapel  wall: 

"O,  great  St.  Roch,  deliver  us.  we  beseech  thee,  from  the  scourges  of  God.  Through  th 
intercessions,  preserve  our  bodies  from  contagious  diseases,  and  our  souls  from  the  contagio 
of  sin.  Obtain  for  us  salubrious  air  ;  but,  above  all,  purity  of  heart.  Assist  us  to  make  goo' 
use  of  health,  to  bear  suffering  with  patience,  and,  after  thy  example,  to  live  in  the  practice  o 
penance  and  charity,  that  we  may  one  day  enjoy  the  happiness  which  thou  hast  merited  by  th 
virtues. 

"  St.  Roch,  pray  for  us  "  (three  times). 

There  is  a  belief  among  the  girls  of  the  Third  district,  where  this  church  is  situated,  that,  i 
they  pray  in  it  regularly  each  evening,  they  will  have  a  husband  before  the  year  is  out.  At  th 
evening  hour,  therefore,  the  church  will  always  be  found  crowded  with  a  bevy  of  fair  damsels. 

PROTESTANT  CHURCHES. 

Springing  into  life,  as  New  Orleans  did,  under  the  dominion  of  Louis  XIV.;  nursed  am 
nourished  by  his  Most  Catholic  Majesty  of  Spain,  this  city  and  this  State  entered  the  Union  as  i 
community  of  Catholics  alone.  The  richness  of  Louisiana's  fields  and  prairies  were  temptations 
that  the  Anglo-Saxons  of  the  more  northern  States  could  not  resist,  and  as  soon  as  the  pen  oi 
Napoleon  had  signed  av/ay  this  empire  of  the  Mississippi,  hordes  of  these  adventurers  camt 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  117 

•ifting  down  the  river  to  seek  a  fortune  in  this  new  land,  bringing  very  little  with  them,  save 
eir  religion. 

When  these  new  arrivals  had  come  to  form  an  element  of  the  population  they  met  in  council, 
id  it  was  resolved  to  form  a  congregation  and  build  a  church  for  the  use  of  all  denominations 

Protestants.  In  1805,  after  some  outside  discussion  on  this  point,  a  meeting  of  the  most 
eminent  citizens  interested  in  the  Protestant  religion  was  held  at  the  house  of  Madame 
jurage  and  preliminary  steps  were  taken  to  form  a  regular  organization,  engage  the  services 
a  minister  and  erect  such  an  edifice  as  would  suit  their  meagre  requirements.  Many  other 
eetings  followed,  whilst  a  committee  was  soliciting  and  obtaining  subscriptions  for  their 
lerished  desire. 

On  the  9th  and  16th  of  June,  meetings  were  held,  at  which  the  [report  of  the  com- 
ittee  was  received.  At  the  meeting  of  June  16th,  an  election  to  decide  the  denomination 
the  clergyman  was  held,  and  resulted  in  a  majority  for  the  Episcopalians.  The  ballot  was  as 
llows  :  Episcopalians,  45  votes  ;  Presbyterians,  7  ;  Methodist,  1.  Total,  53  votes.  On  November 
th  of  the  same  year,  a  meeting  was  held,  at  which  two  wardens  and  thirteen  vestrymen  were 
ected,  and  a  salary  of  two  thousand  dollars  a  year  voted  to  the  Eev.  Philander  Chase,  who,  at 
e  recommendation  of  the  Eight  Rev.  Bishop  Moore  and  others,  had  come  to  take  charge  of 
is  germ  congregation. 

By  resolutions  passed  at  a  meeting  held  April  2d,  1806,  the  Rector  was  placed  under  the 
•clesiasticai  government  of  the  Bishop  and  convention  of  New  York,  until  a  diocese  should  be 
•ganized  in  the  Territory  of  Louisiana. 

After  six  years  of  hard  service  in  Louisiana,  the  Rev.  Mr.  Chase  resigned  and  returned  to  New 
ork.  For  a  few  years  after  his  departure  the  condition  of  the  congregation  was  not  at  all 
■omising.  They  had  been  unable  to  build  a  church,  and  they  were  now  without  a  minister, 
at  in  1814,  a  sort  of  reaction  or  reawakening  occurred,  and  contributions  rapidly  poured  in. 
ae  Picverend  Mr.  Hull,  not  an  officiating  minister  of  the  Episcopal  Church  until  two  years 
terwards,  was  invited  at  a  handsome  salary  to  take  charge  of  the  infant  church.  With  Mr. 
uirs  life  is  associated  all  the  earlier  memories  of  the  church.  He  presided  when  joy  or  sorrow 
ouded  the  lives  of  the  people  he  taught,  and  worked  with  all  his  zeal  until  he  could  no  longer 
ork.  It  is  to  be  noted  also  that  while  he  was  at' the  head  of  the  church  it  was  open  to  all 
jnominations  of  Protestants,  and  that  the  Presbyterians  of  the  city  for  a  long  time  held  their 
ligious  services  there. 

In  1832,  after  nineteen  years  of  labor,  he  was  compelled  by  illness  to  give  up  his  duties,  and 
as  voted  a  life  annuity  by  the  congregation.  But  illness  overpowered  him,  and  six  months 
terwards  he  was  in  his  grave,  regretted  by  all  who  had  kno-^-n  him.  It  had  been  the  fond  hope 
id  desire  of  Mr.  Hull  to  have  seen  his  congregation  gathered  in  a  more  suitable  budding,  but 
this  he  was  disappointed.  A  few  years  after  his  death  a  new  church  was  erected  in  the  Ionic 
yle  of  architecture  ;  indeed  it  was  sl facsimile,  at  least  so  far  as  its  exterior  architecture  was 
mcerned,  of  the  Jewish  synagogue  on  Carondelet  near  Julia.  This  edifice  was  situated  on  the 
)rner  of  Bourbon  and  Canal  streets.  Several  ministers  presided  over  this  church— Bishop 
rownell  of  Connecticut,  and  the  Rev.  Drs.  Wheaton,  Ramsey  and  Hawkes. 

The  church  was  found,  however,  to  be  too  central,  that  is,  too  near  the  business  portion  of 
le  city.  The  lot  on  which  the  property  was  situated  13  now  ornamented  by  the  Touro  budding, 
ad  at  that  time  belonged  to  that  philantropist  and  Israelite,  Judah  Touro.  Touro  allowed  the 
ingregation  to  have  the  building  free  of  rent  for  many  years,  until  at  last  he  found  that  it 
ould  be  proper  to  move  it.  To  this  congregation,  which  his  assistance  had  so  long  protected 
ad  benefitted,  he  proposed  the  erection  of  a  more  ambitious  church  further  down  Canal  street, 
ad  his  name  headed  the  list  of  subscribers  for  the  erection  of  the  new  church,  an  example  of, 
erhaps,  the  greatest  charity  that  has  adorned  the  pages  of  history. 

An  agreement  was  made  with  Mr.  J.  Gallier,  an  architect  of  no  little  fame,  and  whose  works 


118  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

cover  almost  every  square  of  the  city,  to  erect  the  present  edifice  (Christ  Church)  at  the  corn 
of  Canal  andDauphine  streets,  for  S50,000. 

In  the  year  1S47  the  Church  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  now  Trinity  Church,  or,  as  it  is  called,  "  t 
Church  of  the  Bishops, "  since  nearly  all  of  its  ministers  have  been  elected  to  bishoprics,  w 
incorporated,  and  a  small  church  on  the  corner  of  Second  and  Live  Oak  streets,  was  built  at 
cost  of  S1.800.  The  first  rector  was  the  Rev.  C.  P.  Clark,  who  officiated  two  years  and  fo 
months.  After  he  resigned,  the  interest  in  this  good  work  flagged,  and  the  vestry  was  dispos 
to  abandon  the  enterprise,  but  Bishop  Polk  introduced  to  several  of  them  the  Rev.  F.  D.  Dol 
who  took  charge  of  the  parish  in  1851,  soon  after  which  the  name  was  changed  to  Trinity  Churc 

In  1851  the  lots  now  owned  by  Trinity  Church  were  purchased  and  a  portion  of  the  prese 
edifice  was  erected  by  Mr.  George  Purvis,  the  architect.  The  cost  of  the  lots  was  $5,000,  and 
the  buUding  $17,500;  total,  $22,500. 

From  1853  to  1S55  the  parish  was  temporarily  supplied.  In  the  latter  year  Bishop  Polk  w 
called  to  the  rectorship,  the  duties  of  which  he  continued  to  discbarge  until  he  felt  it  to  be  1 
duty  to  lay  aside  the  surplice  and  don  the  uniform  of  a  Confederate  general. 

At  the  cessation  of  hostilities,  in  1865,  and  after  the  return  of  members  to  their  home 
church,  the  Rev.  Dr.  John  W.  Beckwith,  the  present  Bishop  of  Georgia,  was  requested  to  ta 
charge  of  this  parish.  He  served  for  two  years  and  seven  months,  during  which  time  the  congi 
gation  increased  so  that  it  was  deemed  wise  to  extend  the  building  S2  feet  in  the  rear,  which  cc 
$25,000. 

In  December,  1868,  the  Rev.  Dr.  John  N.  GaUeher.  the  present  Bishop  of  Louisiana,  was  calh 
to  the  parish,  under  whose  ministry  in  1870  Trinity  Chapel  on  Rampart  street  was  purchast 
and  improved  at  a  cost  of  $16,000.  Rev.  Dr.  Galleher  resigned  in  1871  to  take  charge  of  a  churc 
in  Baltimore.    He  was  succeeded  by  the  Rev.  S  S.  Harris,  now  Bishop  of  Michigan. 

In  1873,  during  this  gentleman's  pastorate,  the  original  front  was  taken  down  and  a  new  oi 
erected,  costing  |;16,000.  He  resigned  in  1875,  having  served  three  years  and  ten  months.  E 
removed  to  Chicago  and  became  rector  of  St.  James  Church. 

Then  followed  Dr.  Hugh  Miller  Thompson,  now  Assistant- Bishop  of  Mississippi. 

The  antique,  magnificent  memorial  window  in  this  church,  "  Erected  for  the  glory  of  God 
and  in  memory  of  Leonidas  Polk,  D.  D.,  firs't  Bishop  of  Louisiana,  by  the  ladies  of  the  Bisho 
Polk  Society,"  is  the  only  one  of  the  kind  on  the  continent.  The  art  of  producing  such  wor 
as  this  window  was  known  in  the  Middle  Ages,  but  lost  for  centuries,  and  has  but  quit 
recently  been  restored. 

Two  scenes  from  the  passion  of  our  Saviour,  and  one  of  His  triumphs  are  represented 
The  Last  Supper,  The  Crucifixion,  and  The  Ascension.  In  the  first-named  scene,  the  Lord  if 
represented,  as  usual,  in  the  act  of  breaking  and  distributing  the  bread  of  life  to  his  disciples 
"John,  the  beloved,"  leaning  on  his  blessed  Master,  the  other  Apostles  sitting  or  reclining  h 
reverently  attentive  positions,  showing  fear.  The  Crucifixion  tells  the  wonderful  tale  that  cai 
only  be  told  in  one  way  :  the  cross  and  victim,  the  soldiers,  the  three  Marys,  and  the  "multi 
tude  afar  off." 

The  first  successful  effort  to  plant  Presbyterianism  in  the  city  of  New  Orleans  originatec 
with  the  Congregationalists  of  New  England.  Near  the  beginning  of  the  year  1817,  the  Rev 
Ellas  Cornelius  was  appointed  by  the  Connecticut  Missionary  Society,  to  engage  in  a  missionary 
tour  through  the  Southwestern^States,  more  especially  to  visit  New  Orleans,  then  containing 
a  population  of  30  to  34,000,  and  with  but  one  Protestant  minister,  the  Rev.  Dr.  Hull ;  to  examim 
its  moral  condition,  and,  while  preaching  the  Gospel  to  many  who  seldom  heard  it,  to  invite  th€ 
friends  of  the  Congregational  Presbyterian  communion  to  establish  a  church,  and  secure  ac 
able  and  faithful  pastor.  In  this  tour.  Dr.  Cornelius  acted  also  as  agont  for  the  A.  B.  C.  F.  M.. 
to  solicit  funds  for  the  evangelization  of  the  Indian  tribes.  In  this  work  he  was  eminently 
successful— devoting  an  entire   year  to  a  lenghtened  tour  from  Massachusetts  to  Louisiana- 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS. 


119 


oUecting  large  sums  for  th«  American  Board,  and  arrived  in  New  Orleans  on  the  30th  Decem- 
er,  1817. 

The  most  important  service  rendered  by  Dr.  Cornelius,  however,  was  that  of  introducmg 
le  Eev.  Sylvester  Larned  to  this  field  of  labor.  In  passing  through  New  Jersey,  on  his  journey 
DUthward,  Dr.  Cornelius  formed  the  acquaintance  of  Mr.  Lamed,  then  finishing  his  divinity 
ourse  at  Princeton,  and  giving  in  the  reputation  acquired  as  a  student,  brilhant  promise  of  a 
iccessful  career  as  a  preacher.  The  arrangement  was  there  formed  between  the  two  that 
fj.  Larned  should  follow  Dr.  Cornelius  to  New  Orleans.    He  reached  the  city  January  23,  1818. 

Through  the  antecedent  preparation  of  his  friend,  Dr.  Cornelius,  who  had  preceded  him 
xactly  three  weeks— and  still  more  by  his  own  splendid  attractions— overtures  were  soon  made 
)  him  for  a  permanent  settlement.  Subscriptions  were  ch^culatod  for  the  building  of  a 
durch  edifice,  which  by  the  5th  of  April  amounted  to  ^16,000.  It  was  proposed,  as  soon  as  the 
abscriptions  were  completed,  to  negotiate  a  loan  of  $40,000,  the  estimated  cost  of  a  building 
)x90  feet,  with  about  2,000  sittings.  Considering  the  infancy  of  the  enterprise,  the  lar;>eness  of 
lese  plans  betokens  great  vigor  of  effort,  and  the  confidence  felt  of  final  success  in  collecting 
nd  maintaining  a  flourishing  church.  In  this  costly  undertaking,  generous  assistance  was 
3ceived  from  the  City  Council  in  the  grant  of  two  lots  of  ground  valued  at  $6,000,  and  in  a 
absequent  loan  of  $10,000.  In  the  erection  of  the  building,  Mr.  Larned's  spiritual  labors  were 
iterrupted  during  the  summer  of  1818  by  a  visit  north,  for  the  purpose  of  soliciting  money,  and 
Iso  of  purchasing  materials  for  building. 

On  the  8th  January,  1819,  the  corner-stone  of  the  new  edifice  was  laid  with  imposing  cere- 
lonies  (and  in  the  presence  of  an  immense  throng),  on  the  site  selected  on  St.  Charles  street, 
etween  Gravier  and  Union,  and  on  the  4th  July  f  ollo-\\ing,  was  solemnly  dedicated. 

On  August  21,  1820,  Dr.  Lamed  died  at  the  early  age  of  24,  of  the  prevailing  yellow  fever. 

Mr.  Larned's  successor,  after  an  interval  of  eighteen  months,  was  the  Rev.  Theodore  Clapp, 
native  of  Massachusetts,  and  a  graduate  of  Yale  College  and  of  the  Theological  Seminary  at 
ndover. 

On  the  third  Sabbath  after  his  arrival  in  New  Orleans  he  was  unanimously  chosen  to  fill  the 
acant  pulpit.  Finding  the  church  embarrased  by  a  debt  of  $45,000  he  naturally  hesitated,  and 
aally  made  its  liquidation  the  condition  of  his  acceptance  of  the  call.  The  trustees  made 
pplication  to  the  Legislature  of  Louisiana,  then  in  session,  for  a  lottery  ;  which  being  sold  to 
ates  &  Mclntyre  of  New  York  for  $25,000,  relieved  the  pressure  of  debt  to  that  amovmt.  For 
le  remaining  $20,000  the  building  was  sold  to  Judah  Touro,  Esq.,  a  merchant  of  wealth,  whose 
.agnificent  charities  have  left  his  name  in  grateful  remembrance  to  the  people  of  New  Orleans. 
;  may  be  well  to  state  here,  though  a  little  in  advance  of  dates,  that  Mr.  Touro  held  the  building 
)  the  time  of  its  destruction  by  fire,  allowing  the  income  from  pew  rents  to  the  use  of  the 
linister,  and  incurring  the  expense  of  keeping  it  in  repair. 

In  18.32  occurred  the  difference  between  Dr.  Clapp  and  his  congregation  which  resulted  in 
leir  separation.  In  January,  fifteen  members  were  dismissed  at  their  own  request  for  the  pur- 
Dse  of  forming  another  church,  upon  the  principles  of  the  doctrine  and  discipline  of  the  Presby- 
:rian  church.  This  seceding  body  worshipped  in  a  warehouse  of  Mr.  Cornelius  Paulding, 
pposite  Lafayette  square,  on  the  site  covered  by  the  First  Presbyterian  church. 

The  Rev.  Mr.  Parker,  who  followed  .Mr.  Clapp,  walked  from  his  home  in  Vermont  to  LTnion 
allege,  at  Schenectady,  New  York.  He  represented  to  the  professors  that  his  father  was  a 
oor  farmer,  and  a  revolutionary  soldier ;  that  he  could  not  afford  to  furnish  the  money 
jquired  for  his  education,  but  that  if  they  would  give  him  work  he  would  try  and  repay  them 
)r  the  trouble  and  expense  of  his  graduation.  The  pi'ofessors  were  pleased  with  his 
etermination,  and  Parker  studied  for  the  ministry. 

In  the  summer  of  1834  he  was  sent  North  for  the  purpose  of  soliciting  subscriptions  in  the 
irger  cities,  for  the  purpose  of  obtaining,  if  possible,  a  sum  sufficient  to  finish  the  church  then 
uilding.  While  on  the  tour  it  was  represented  that  he  had  stated  "  that  there  were  40,000  Catholics 


120  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

in  the  city  of  New  Orleans  who  were  atheists,  and  that  the  Protestants  were  no  better."  Thi 
statement  was  published,  in  the  newspapers,  and  copied  into  the  New  Orleans  Bulletin,  creatin, 
great  excitement  and  indignation.  Mr.  Parker  replied  to  the  charges  made  in  one  of  th 
newspapers  North,  denying  that  he  had  made  any  such  statement.  The  Mayor  of  this  cit 
advised  that  "that  priest"  be  sent  away,  and  a  proclamation  was  issued  commanding  th 
peace.  When  it  was  known  that  he  was  returning  to  this  city,  word  was  sent  to  the  Balize  tha 
he  be  landed  before  the  arrival  of  the  packet  in  New  Orleans,  and  Mr.  Parker  was  according) 
put  off  at  the  English  Turn.  The  next  day  he  arrived  in  New  (Jrleans,  and  appeared  upon  th 
streets  to  vindicate  his  innocence.  A  meeting  was  called  the  next  day  at  the  City  Hotel,  a 
which  Mr.  Parker  was  requested  to  explain.  He  made  a  clear  statement,  but  the  people  wer 
not  satisfied.  Kesolutions  were  drawn  up  and  passed,  that  he  leave  the  city,  that  the  elders  o 
the  church  dismiss  him,  etc.  A  meeting  of  the  members  of  tlie  church  was  immediately  called 
Fifty  attended.  They  one  and  all  supported  Mr.  Parker  as  being  in  the  right.  They  all  believe 
his  representation  made  at  the  City  Hotel,  and  declared  they  had  a  right  to  have  for  a  pasto 
whom  they  pleased  and  they  intended  to  maintain  that  right.  Mr.  Parker  was  retained,  and  th 
affair  blew  over. 

The  congregation  now  commenced  the  erection  of  the  church  on  Lafayette  square.  Tb 
base  of  that  building  was  completed  and  first  occupied  in  March,  1835.  Its  total  cost,  includin 
the  site,  was  $57,000.  Subsequent  improvements  were  made,  which  made  the  co.5t  §75,000  b 
1854,  when  the  building  was  destroyed  by  fire.  The  congregation,  however,  proceeded  at  one 
to  build  another  of  larger  proportions  and  more  finished  in  style.  In  1857  the  present  churc 
was  finished  and  dedicated  to  the  worship  of  God.  Its  cost,  with  all  its  appointments,  wa 
about  $87,000. 

On  the  twenty-first  September,  1854,  a  call  was  made  out  to  the  Rev.  B.  M.  Palmer,  of  Soutl 
Carolina,  which  upon  being  presented  before  his  Presbytery  and  Synod,  w^as  defeated  by  th 
refusal  of  those  bodies  to  place  it  in  his  hands.  The  call  was  renewed  on  the  sixteenth  o 
March,  1856,  and  prevailed.  His  labors  began  early  in  December  of  that  year,  and  on  the  28th  o 
the  same  month  he  was  installed  by  the  Presbytery  of  New  Orleans. 

In  January,  1845,  a  church  was  built  by  the  Presbyterians  of  Lafayette  on  Fulton,  betweei 
Josephine  and  £t.  Andrew.  This  church  buLlding\^n3  also  destroyed  by  fire  on  Sunday  night 
November  18, 1860,  and  the  congregation  assembled  for  worship  in  Union  Hall  on  Jackson  stree' 
until  the  Federal  occupation  of  the  city  in  May,  1862.  After  the  war  the  congregation  held  it; 
services  in  the  First  German  Church  on  First  street,  until  April  1867,  when  they  entered  theii 
present  comfortable  and  handsome  building  on  Magazine  street,  above  Jackson,  which  was 
dedicated  on  April  14.    The  cost  of  this  structure,  with  ground,  is  about  $45,000. 

The  original  Methodist  Church  South  stood  at  the  corner  of  Carondelet  and  Poydras  street 
and  was  razed  to  earth  by  a  destructive  fire.  It  is  worthy  of  note  that  anotlier  church  sue 
cumbed  to  the  flames  at  the  same  time,  having  been  fired  in  the  same  way— by  sparks  from  th€ 
burning  St.  Charles  hotel.  This  was  Dr.  Clapp's  Church,  which  w^as  situated  at  the  corner  o; 
Gravier  and  St.  Charles  streets. 

Instead  of  building  a  new  church  on  the  ruins  of  the  old,  the  ground  of  the  Methodisi 
Church  was  divided  into  house  lots  and  sold.  With  the  proceeds  of  the  sale  and  some  libera 
benefactions  made  by  wealthy  members  of  the  congregation  the  present  site  of  the  Carondelei 
Methodist  Church  was  purchased  and  the  builder  set  to  work  to  make  a  new  structure.  This 
involved  an  immense  amount  of  money,  all  of  which  was  raised  by  private  donation. 

When  the  walls  of  the  church  had  been  raised  and  the  roof  put  on,  an  accident  of  a  verj 
costly  and  dangerous  character  occurred.  The  entire  roof  fell  in,  and  what  was  most  remark 
able  was  that  not  a  brick  in  the  walls  was  displaced  by  the  circumstance.  The  walls  were 
evidently  as  firm  as  intended,  but  thereof  was  as  palpably  defective,  but,  providentially  the 
expense  of  building  a  new  roof  was  the  only  grievance  resulting  from  the  accident. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  121 

^  THE  GREEK  CHURCH. 

A  visit  to  the  Greek  Churcli  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  on  Dolhonde  near  Barracks,  will  be  found 
nteresting.  It  stands  in  a  little  chnrch-yard— a  small  brick  structure,  with  a  bit  of  a  house  for 
he  priest,  by  its  side.    A  Greek  flag,  at  half-mast,  hangs  from  a  tall  staff  by  the  front  door. 

The  church  consists  of  a  small  square  room,  with  vaulted  ceiling;  its  furniture,  two  reading 
iesks,  a  baptismal  font,  the  ark,  a  large  cross  bearing  the  crucified  Saviour,  and  two  candle- 
tands.  The  ark  resembles  a  bier  supporting  a  miniature  two-story  Greek  temple.  On  the  upper 
•art  is  the  story  of  Christ's  condemnation,  agony,  last  supper  and  crucifixion.  Most  notable  is 
he  first  little  picture,  wherein  Pontius  Pilate  is  to  be  seen  literally  "washing  his  hands  "  of  the 
\;rhole  affair. 

The  back  of  the  church  is  separated  by  a  partition  on  which  hang  four  paintings,  singular  in 
heir  lack  of  perspective.  Two  doors,  one  on  either  end,  holds  each  a  picture,  one  of  St.  Michael, 
he  other  of  Gabriel.  Both  dance  upon  clouds,  but  Gabriel,  deprived  of  his  trumpet,  waves  a 
'unch  of  flowers. 

Another  picture  represents  Herodias  dancing  off  the  head  of  John  the  Baptist.  It  is  a 
urious  and  very  antique  picture,  and  guilty  of  a  strange  anachronism,  for  Herod  and  the  party 
re  represented  seated  at  table. 

Midway  of  the  partition  is  an  opening  veiled  with  a  banner  bearing  a  picture  of  Christ 
■artaking  of  the  sacrament ;  around  it  in  Russian  :  ''He  icho  takes  the  sacrament  nevei'  dies.'''' 

The  baptismal  font  for  babies  looks  like  a  magnified  hour  glass.  There  is  a  large  one  for 
Town  people.    Baptism,  both  for  the  young  and  old,  is  by  immersion. 

Chairs  are  brought  in  by  obliging  neighbors  for  the  women  and  the  guests.  The  devout 
ather  candle  in  hand,  and  with  many  genuflections,  each  piously  kisses  a  sacred  spot  upon 
he  paintings,  the  infant  Jesus'  toe  seeming  the  most  popular. 

Scarcely  a  Greek  nose  was  to  be  seen.  Bronzed  faces,  toil -hardened  hands,  relieved  hy 
hirts  of  blue  and  red,  plaid  and  plain,  are  illuminated  by  the  upheld  torches. 

The  services  opening,  the  men  range  themselves  in  single  file  along  the  wall,  the  females 
nd  visitors  occupying  chairs  on  the  other  side.  The  banner  is  drawn  aside,  revealing  an  altar 
efore  which  stands  a  priest.  His  face  is  Hebraic,  his  robe,  of  dark  blue  and  white,  fitted  on 
ery  much  after  the  fashion  of  Dakota  Indians,  by  a  convenient  hole  in  one  end.  A  long  scarf 
f  pale  blue  and  white  satin  hangs  over  his  capacious  front. 

Concluding  a  short  chant,  he  comes  among  the  people,  lifting  the  cross,  and  kissing  the 
rounds  upon  the  body. 

After  a  few  more  chants  and  reading  of  Scriptures,  the  holy  ark,  preceded  by  the  priest, 
5  borne  out  by  four  strong  men,  all  chanting  the  Kyrie  Eleison,   "  Lord,  have  mercy  upon  us." 

A  long  reading  of  the  Scriptures  follows,  interrupted  by  admonitions  in  modern  Greek 
pom  his  reverence  to  his  delinquent  clerks. 

JEWISH  SYNAGOGUES. 

The  first  Jewish  synagogue  in  New  Orleans  was  erected  on  the  corner  of  Bourbon  and 
'anal  streets.  The  ground  being  paid  for  the  synagogue  was  erected  at  a  cost  of  $70,000  con- 
ributed  wholly  by  Judah  Touro,  who  presented  the  building  to  the  congregation  "  Dispersed 
•f  Judea."  The  property  was  subsequently  sold,  and  the  church  known  as  the  Touro  syna- 
•ogue,  on  Carondelet  street,  between  Julia  and  St.  Joseph,  erected  with  its  proceeds. 

In  the  year  1864  a  proposed  secession  from  the  orthodox  church  in  this  city  agitated  the 
Qinds  of  those  Vy-ho  are  called  the  Reform  Jews,  At  the  time  when  the  proposition  was  first 
nade,  it  did  not  receive  enough  attention  to  authorize  the  withdrawal  from  the  orthodox 
hurch.  But  in  the  year  1871,  a  second  call  was  made  by  the  Reformers,  and  twenty-six  per- 
ons  answered  the  call.    The  result  was  the  determination  to  build  for  themselves  a  temple, 


122  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

which  would  be  called  the  Reform  Temple  Sinai ;  and  one  hundred  and  fiJ^  names  wei 
enrolled  as  members  of  the  prospective  church. 

In  the  meanwhile,  during  the  New  Year  and  the  feast  of  the  Atonement,  Minerva  Hall  w< 
used  by  the  members  for  the  usual  religious  exercises  of  that  day.  On  the  13th  November,  ho\ 
ever,  the  church  was  finished,  and  the  event  celebrated  by  a  grand  ball.  The  Rev.  J.  1 
Guthcim,  one  of  the  most  eloquent  speakers  in  this  couvitry,  who  had  been  a  rabbi  for  mar 
years  in  the  Rampart  street  synagogue,  and  who  was  then  presiding  over  the  splendid  Temp 
Emanuel  in  New  York,  was  at  once  procured  as  pastor.  Since  then  service  and  lessons  ha^ 
been  held  regularly. 

The  position  of  the  Temple  Sinai  is  extremely  well  calculated  to  give  effect  to  its  magni] 
cent  and  well  proportioned  dimensions.  At  the  distance  of  many  squares  from  the  buildu 
the  eye  can  rest  upon  the  gentle  acclivity  of  the  broad  and  elegant  building,  with  marble  ste] 
leading  to  a  wide  and  beautifully  arched  portico,  which  is  supported  by  graceful  columns  . 
the  Corinthian  order. 

On  each  side  of  the  entrance  rises  an  octagonal  tower,  not  obelisk-like  steeples,  but  plai 
substantial  towers,  that  might  have  adorned  some  Byzantine  cathedral,  or  served  as  turre 
for  a  Front  de  Boeuf.  Each  tower  has  its  own  eight  windows,  and  countless  lesser  eyele 
lighted  up  by  the  rays  of  the  dying  sun.  Each  is  fringed  with  ail  the  circles,  curves  and  sea 
lops  of  Byzantine  and  Gothic  architecture,  and  capped  by  mosque-like  green  minarets.  A 
this  gives  it  an  Oriental  look,  to  which  the  checkered  mosaic  work  of  its  red  and  yellow  bricl 
greatly  adds. 

COLORED    CHLTICKES. 

The  colored  population  of  New  Orleans  possess  nearly  as  many  churches  as  the  white 
and  they  are  generally  crowded,  nearly  all  the  negroes  being  enthusiastic  church  members. 

Their  churches  are,  with  few  exceptions,  simple  plunk  structures.  As  a  general  thing  th 
colored  ministers  are  very  sensible  men,  and  certainly  earnest  and  devoted. 

CHURCH  DIRECTORY  OF  NEW  ORLEANS 

BAPTIST. 

Amiazion  (colored)— Deslonde,  between  Burgundy  and  Rampart. 

Coliseum  Place— Camp,  corner  of  Terpsichore. 

Fifth  African— Howard,  between  Jackson  and  Philip. 

First  African— 224  Howard. 

First  African— Gretna. 

First— Austerlitz,  between  Constance  and  Magazine. 

First— Magazine,  corner  of  Second. 

First  Free  :\Iission  (colored)— 371  Common. 

First  Free  Mission— Broadway,  between  Market  and  Magazine. 

First  Free  Mission— Adams,  between  Burthe  and  Third  (Carrollton). 

Good  Hope  Second  Baptist— Pacific  avenue,  corner  of  Jackson  (Algiers). 

Mt.  Moriau— Walimt,  between  Wall  and  Esther. 

Mt.  Sinai  Baptist— Yallette,  corner  of  Eliza  (Algiers). 

Mt.  Zion  (colored)— Yallette.  between  Aiix  and  Evelina  (Algiers). 

Nazareth  (colored)— Josephine,  between  Annette  and  St.  Anthony. 

New  Hope— Gretna. 

Pilgrim— Newton,  between  Monroe  and  Franklin  (Algiers). 

Second  African  Baptist— 393  Melpomene. 

Second  African— Gretna. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  123 

Seconb— Laurel,  between  Berlin  and  Milan. 

Second  Feee  Mission— Burdette,  between  Fourth  and  Plum. 

SscoxD  Free  Will— Frquhart,  between  Marigny  and  Mandeville. 

Setexth  (colored)— Washington,  between  North  Robertson  and  Claiborne. 

Shilou  (colored  — Perdido,  between  South  Eocheblave  and  South  Dolhonde. 

Sixth— Rousseau,  between  Felicity  and  St.  Mary. 

St.  John's  (colored)— First,  between  Hervard  and  French. 

St.  John's  (colored)— St.  Louis,  between  Xorth  Tonti  and  North  Rocheblave. 

St.  Luke's— Cypress,  between  Prieur  and  Johnson. 

St.  Mark's  Foukth  Afkicax— Magnolia,  between  Common  and  Gravier. 

St.  Peter's  (.colored)— Cadiz,  corner  of  Coliseum. 

Third  African— 310  North  Roman,  between  Laharpe  and  Columbus. 

Union  (colored)— 427  St.  Peter. 

Union  (colored)— 305  Orleans. 

ZioN  Traveler  (colored)- Water,  betweeu  Walnut  and  Chestnut. 

Zion  Traveler  Branch  (colored)— Laurel,  between  Amelia  and  Peniston. 


CATHOLIC. 

Diocese  of  New  Orleans  (Roman  Catholic)  -280  Chartres.    Residence  of  Archbishop  and 

Archieoiscopal  Church  of  St.  Mary. 
Annunciation- Mandeville,  corner  of  Marais.    (French  and  English.) 

Chapel  of  the  Ursuline  CoNVENT-Third  District,  at  lower  end  of  city.  (French  and 
English.) 

Church  of  the  Holt  Name  of  Mart- Yerret,  between  Alix  and  Eliza    (Algiers). 
Chukch  of  the  Sacred  Heart  op  Jesus— Canal,  between  Lopez  and  Rendon.    (French  and 
iUglish.) 

Holt  Trenitt  (German)— St.  Ferdinand,  between  Royal  and  Dauphin. 

JEsurrs'  College  and  Church  of  the  Ljimaculate  Conception— Baronne,  between  Canai 
nd  Common.    (French  and  English.) 

Mater  Dolorosa— Cambronne,  corner  of  Burthe  (Carrollton). 

Mt.  Carmel  Chapel— 53  Piety. 

Notre  Dame  de  Bon  Secours  (French)— Jackson,  between  Laurel  and  Constance. 

Our  Ladt  of  the  Sacred  Heart— North  Ciaiborne.  corner  of  Annette. 

St.  Alphonsus— Constance,  between  St.  Andrew  and  Josephine. 

St.  Ann's— St.  Philip,  between  Roman  and  Prieur.    (French  and  English.) 

St.  Anthont's  (Italian)— N.  Rampart,  corner  of  Conti. 

St.  Augustine's— Hospital,  corner  of  St.  Claude  (French). 

St.  Boniface  (German) -North  Galvez,  corner  Laharpe. 

St.  Francis  de  Sales— Second,  corner  St.  David. 

St.  Henrt's  (German)— Berlin,  between  Constance  and  Magazine. 

St.  John  the  Baptist- Dryades,  between  Calliope  and  Clio. 

St.  Joseph's— Gretna. 

St.  Joseph's— Common,  between  Howard  and  Villere. 

St.  Louis  Cathedral— Chartres,  between  St.  Ann  and  St.  Peter.  Cathedral  church  of  the 
ity.    (French  and  English.) 

St.  Mart's  Assumption  (German)-Josephine,  between  Constance  and  Laurel. 

St.  Mart's  (Archbishop's  residence)— Chartres,  between  Ursulines  and  Hospital. 

St.  Mart's— Cambronne,  between  Second  and  Burthe  (Carrollton). 

St.  Maurice's— Hancock,  corner  of  Royal. 


124  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

St.  Michael's— Chippewa,  between  Orange  and  Ilace. 

St.  Patrick's— Camp,  between  Girod  and  Julia. 

St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul's— Burgundy,  between  Marigny  and  Mandeville. 

St.  Eose  de  Lima— Bayou  road,  between  Dolhonde  and  Broad. 

St.  Stephen's— Napoleon  avenue,  corner  of  Carap. 

St.  Stephen's  (old)— Camp,  corner  of  Berlin. 

St.  Theresa's— Erato,  corner  of  Camp. 

St.  Vincent  de  Paul— Dauphine,  between  Montegat  and  Clouet 

Trinity- Cambronne,  near  Second  (Carrollton). 

CHRISTIAN. 

First  Christian  Church— Camp,  corner  of  Melpomene. 

CONGREGATIONAL. 

Algiers  (colored)— Vallette,  near  Eliza. 

Carrollton— Hampson,  between  Burdette  snd  Adams  (Carrollton). 

Central  Church  (colored)— South  Liberty,  corner  of  Gasquet. 

Howard  (colored)— Spain,  between  Rampart  and  St.  Claude. 

Morris  Brown  Chapel,  No.  2  (colored)— 471  Villere. 

Morris  Brown  Church  (colored)- Marais,  between  Bourbon  and  Union. 

EPISCOPAL. 

Annunciation— Race,  comer  of  Camp. 

Calvary— Prytania,  comer  of  Conery. 

Christ— Canal,  corner  of  Dauphine. 

Mt.  Olivet— Peter,  corner  of  Olivier  (Algiers.) 

St.  Anna's— 197  Esplanade. 

St.  George's- St.  Charles,  comer  of  Cadiz. 

St.  John's— Third,  corner  of  Annunciation. 

St.  Paul's— Camp,  corner  of  Gaiennie. 

St.  Philip's— Prytania,  corner  of  Calliope. 

Trinity  Chapel— South  Rampart,  comer  of  Euterpe. 

Trinity— Jackson,  corner  of  Coliseum. 

EVANGELICAL  PROTESTANT. 

Bethlehem— 368  Felicity. 

German  Evangelical— Jackson,  comer  of  Chippewa. 

First— Milan,  corner  of  Camp. 

GER3IAN  Protestant— Zimpel,  between  Leonidas  and  Monroe  (Carrollton), 

German  Protestant— Gretna. 

German  Protestant— Clio,  between  St.  Charles  and  Carondelet. 

Madison  Street— Madison,  between  Burthe  and  Third  (CarroUton), 

GREEK. 
Greek  Church  or  the  Holy  Trinity— North  Delhonde,  between  Barracks  and  Hospital. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  125 

JEWISH. 
Cheyre  Rbdushe  Mikveh  Israel  Synagogue— 165  Dryades. 
Dispersed  of  Judah— 218  Carondelet. 

Gates  of  Prayer— Jackson,  between  Chippewa  and  Annunciation, 
Temple  of  Sinai— Carondelet,  between  Delord  and  Calliope. 
The  Right  Way— Carondelet,  between  Poydras  and  Lafayette. 

LUTHERAN. 

Evangelical  Lutheran  St.  Paul's — 426  North  Claiborne. 

First  Evangelical  Lutheran— Camp,  corner  of  Soniat. 

Mt.  Zion  Evangelical  Lutheran— Erato,  between  South  Peters  and  Tchoupitoulas. 

St.  John's— Customhouse,  corner  of  North  Prieur. 

St.  Paul's— Port,  corner  of  Burgundy. 

Trinity— Olivier,  comer  of  Eliza  (Algiers). 

ZioN— St.  Charles,  corner  of  St.  Andrew. 

Emanuel's  Evangelical  Lutheran— St.  Louis,  between  Johnson  and  Prieur. 

METHODIST  EPISCOPAL. 

Ames  Chapel— St.  Charles,  corner  of  CaHiope. 

Clinton  Street  (colored)— Clinton,  comer  of  Pearl  (Carrollton). 

First  German.— South  Franklin,  corner  of  St.  Andrew. 

First  Street  (colored)— Winan's  Chapel,  Dryades,  corner  of  First. 

Jefferson  Street  German— Jefferson,  comer  of  Plum  (Carrollton). 

Laharpe  Street  (colored)- Laharpe,  between  North  Roman  and  Nortb  Prieur, 

Mount  Zion  (colored)— Jackson,  near  Locust. 

Mount  Zion  (colored)— Desir^,  between  Marais  and  Urquliart. 

Pleasant  Plains  Chapel  (colored)— 290  Perdido. 

Plum  Street— Plum,  between  Leonidas  and  Monroe  (CarroUton), 

Second  German— Eighth,  corner  of  Laurel. 

Sixth  Street — Sixth,  between  Annunciation  and  Laurel. 

Simpson  Chapel  (colored)— Valence,  between  Camp  and  Chestnut. 

SouLE  Chapel  (colored)— 66  Marais. 

St,  James  African— North  Roman,  between  Customhouse  and  Bienville. 

Third  German— North  Rampart,  between  St.  Ferdinand  and  Press. 

Thompson  Chapel  (colored)- Rampart,  corner  of  Washington. 

Union  Bethel  (colored)— South  Franklin,  corner  of  Thalia. 

Union  Chapel  (colored)— Bienville,  between  Villere  and  Marais. 

Union  Chapel— 181  Union,  Third  district. 

Wesley  Chapel  (colored)— South  Liberty,  between  Perdido  and  Poydras. 

Zion  African— Frenchman,  corner  of  Josephine. 

METHODIST  EPISCOPAL  (SOUTH). 

Algiers— Lavergne,  corner  of  Delaronde  (Algiers). 

Carondelet  Street.— 147  Carondelet. 

Craps  Street— 575  Burgundy. 

Dryades  Street  German— Dryades,  between  Euterpe  and  Felicity. 

Felicity— Felicity,  corner  of  Chestnut. 


126  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Little  Bethel— Coliseum,  between  Valence  and  Bordeaux. 

Louisiana  Aventte— Louisiana  avenue,  corner  Magazine. 

MoREAu  Street  -  Chartres  (late  Moreau),  corner  of  Lafayette  avenue. 

SoRAPARU— Soraparu,  between  Chippewa  and  Annunciation. 

St.  Charles  Street— St.  Charles,  comer  of  Gen.  Taylor. 

St.  John's  Chapel  (colored)— Market,  near  Powderhouse  (Alters). 

PRESBYTERIAN. 

Canal  Street— Canal,  comer  of  Derbigrny. 
First  German  Presbyterlan— First,  near  Laurel. 
First  Presbyterian— Lafayette  square,  comer  of  Church  and  South. 
First  Presbyterian  Church  of  Carrollton— Burdette,  between  Hampson  and  Secon 
(Carrollton). 

Franklin  Street  Memorial  Church— South  Franklin,  comer  Euterpe. 

Lafayette  Presbyterian  Crurch— Magazine,  between  Jackson  and  Philip. 

Napoleon  Avenue  Presbyterian  Church— Napoleon  avenue,  corner  of  Coliseum. 

Prytania  Street— Prytania,  corner  of  Josephine. 

Seamen's  Bethel— St.  Thomas,  between  Jackson  and  Philip. 

Second  German  Presbyterian— St.  Bernard,  comer  of  North  Claiborae. 

Third  Presbyterian— "Washington  Square. 

• 

UNITARIAN. 
Church  of  the  Messiah— St.  Charles,  corner  of  Julia. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  127 


CHAPTER   XII.— CHARITY, 

THE  CONVENTS,  ASYLUMS  AND  CHARITABLE  INSTITUTIONS  OF  NEW  ORLEANS— THE  OLDEST 
RELIGIOUS  ORGANIZATION  IN  THE  MISSISSIPPI  VALLEY— THE  URSULINES  CONVENT- 
VIGILS    OF   THE   DISCALCED  CARMELITES. 

The  Ursuline  Convent  is  one  of  the  educational  institutions  that  have  been  closely  identified 
with  the  history  of  New  Orleans  from  almost  its  first  settlement. 

Bienville,  the  founder  of  the  city  of  New  Orleans,  in  1718,  soon  decided  he  must  have 
some  one  to  educate  the  girls  of  his  colony.  He  consulted  Father  Beaubois,  a  superior  of  the 
Jesuits,  who  had  recently  arrived,  as  to  what  he  should  do.  The  zealous  Father  suggested  the 
Ursuliues  of  Eouen  as  likely  to  be  able  to  supply  religious  teachers,  and  to  them  application  was 
immediately  made.  As  a  result  of  this  effort,  a  lady  bearing  the  singular  name  of  Tranchepain 
(slice  of  bread),  a  converted  Protestant  and  a  professed  Ursuline,  left  France,  with  nine 
professed  companions,  one  novice,  and  two  servants,  in  the  ship  Gironde,  from  Port  L'Orient 
February  22.  1727. 

The  Gironde  was  provisioned  as  for  a  siege,  but  the  accommodations  for  passengers  were 
wretched.  During  the  voyage  they  encountered  terrific  storms,  were  pursued  by  corsairs,  and  at 
one  time  all  the  ladies  had  to  assume  male  attire  and  man  the  ship  to  save  her  from  pirates. 
The  ship,  after  meeting  fearful  winds  in  the  Caribbean  Sea,  and  being  stranded  on  Dauphin 
[sland,  and  losing  nearly  all  her  cargo,  reached  Louisiana  in  July. 

At  the  Balize  the  travelers  were  transferred  to  pirogues,  their  trunks  being  stored  in  the 
3entre.  At  night,  as  they  voyaged  up  the  river,  they  went  ashore  and  slept,  when  permitted  by 
■he  devouring  mosquitos.  The  voyage  from  France  had  consumed  six  months,  and  their  friends 
u  New  Orleans  supposed  they  had  perished  at  sea.  After  fifteen  days  of  river  journeying  they 
-cached  the  scene  of  their  future  labors,  the  village  of  New  Orleans  at  this  time  presentFng  no 
setter  aspect  than  that  of  a  vast  sink  or  sewer.  It  was  surrounded  by  a  large  ditch  and  fenced 
n  with  sharp  stakes  wedged  close  together.  Tall  reeds  and  coarse  grasses  grew  in  the  streets, 
ind  within  a  stone's  throw  of  the  church,  which  stood  on  the  same  block,  but  in  the  rear  of  the 
present  cathedral,  reptiles  croaked,  and  malefactors  and  wild  beasts  lurked  in  the  centre  of  the 
-own,  protected  by  an  impenetrable  jungle.  An  old  picture  of  the  landing  of  the  Ursuline  nuns 
•epresents  them  in  procession  received  by  Father  Beaubois,  who  presents  to  them  the  Capuchin 
)astors  of  the  place,  and  points  out  to  them  the  Indians  and  the  negroes,  their  future  charges, 
rhe  Ursuline  novice  stands  a  little  back  facing  the  church  ;  a  negress  with  a  baby  in  her  arms, 
•egards  the  group  with  awe  and  wonderment.  A  beautiful  squaw,  decked  with  beads  and 
:hells,  and  surrounded  by  plump  papooses,  half  recUnes  on  some  logs,  while  a  Congo  negro 
ooks  on  from  his  seat  on  the  wood-pile.  A  young  girl,  Claude  Massy,  has  a  cat  in  her  arms, 
me  she  has  brought  from  France,  and  which  is,  doubtless,  the  original  of  all  the  feline  species 
n  Louisiana.  Claude  is  standing  near  "  Sister  Annie  ;  "  both  are  dressed  as  Norman  peasants  ; 
;everal  Jesuits  and  Capuchins  appear  in  the  distance.  The  whole  group  is  overshadowed  by 
mmense  trees  heavily  draped  with  moss. 

When  the  first  greeting  was  over  the  nuns  and  their  companions  were  conducted  to  the 
!hurch,  and  thence  to  Bienville's  country  house,  which  he  generously  gave  up  to  them,  until 
heir  convent  should  be  completed.  Bienville's  house  occupied  the  square  now  bounded  by 
Decatur,  Bienville,  Customhouse  and  Chartres  streets.  It  was  two  stories  high,  with  a  flat  roof, 
vhich  could  be  used  as  a  belvidere.  It  had  many  windows,  which  were  covered  with  thin 
inen,  instead  of  having  sash  of  glass.  The  ground  about  the  house  was  cleared,  but  the 
istablishment  was  in  the  depth  of  the  forest. 


128  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

AJmorfC  mediately  the  nuns  began  to  instruct  the  Indians  and  the  Negroes,  and  to  care  for 
the  sick.  They  received  under  their  protection  the  orphans  of  the  French  recently  massacred  at 
Natchez,  also  the  Filles-d-la-  Caesette,  or  casket  girls,  several  instalments  of  which  the  King  of 
France  sent  over  to  provide  wives  for  the  colonists.  The  nuns  soon  found  Gov.  Bienville's 
house  too  small  and  removed  to  a  plantation  which  had  been  given  them  by  the  "  Indian 
Company,"  where  they  erected  buildings,  which  were  destroyed  by  fire  in  1788. 

The  first  reinforcements  to  the  order  came  from  France  in  1734.  From  these  small 
beginnings  the  Ursuline  nuns  have  for  over  160  years  steadily  pursued  their  onward  career  of 
helpfulness. 

THE  DISCALCED  CARMELITES. 

On  one  of  the  narrowest  of  the  narrow  streets  of  French  town  stands  the  Carmelite  Convent 
—a  big,  square,  old-fashioned  French  residence.  Once,  in  the  gay  olden  time,  carriages  used  to 
rattle  up  to  the  doorway,  and  in  the  luxurious  apartments  there  was  music  and  dancing,  and 
the  sound  of  young  girls'  voices  in  laughter,  and  love  makings  and  marriages. 

Now  the  narrow  street,  creeping  straight  out  to  the  river,  where  tall-masted  ships  lie  at 
anchor,  is  become  old  and  silent.  Like  a  beard  the  moss  has  grown  upon  the  red-tiled  roofs, 
and  the  cobble-stones  upon  which  the  white  sun  shines  hot  and  pitiless  all  the  long  day  are 
overgrown  with  coarse  grass.  There  are  no  longer  any  rattling  carriages  to  stab  the  silence 
that  has  settled  over  all,  and  the  old  street  seems  to  be  sleeping  away  the  afternoon  of  its  life. 
In  the  wide  room,  once  a  parlor  fitted  with  costly  furniture  and  bronzes,  there  glitters  a  gilt 
and  white  altar,  and  the  meek  figure  of  blessed  St.  Teresa  looks  down  on  the  bended  penitents 
who  come  there  to  pray.  The  old  house  is  silent,  but  if  one  listened  with  delicate  ear,  one  might 
perhaps  hear  the  murmurous  breath  of  prayer  that  rises  through  the  bare  old  rooms  where 
move,  as  if  felt-shodden,  the  serge-clad,  silent,  sweet  Sisters  of  Carmel. 

To  be  hungry  and  cold,  to  mortify  the  flesh,  to  do  penance  and  to  pray— to  pray  for  all  the 
sinsof  the  world— this  is  the  holy  life  of  the  Carmelite.  There  are  fathers  and  mothers,  dear 
friends  and  lovers,  who  steal  down  to  this  house  of  prayer— this  convent  home— and  pressing 
their  lips  to  the  cruel  spiked  iron  grating  that  bars  the  sweet  Sisters  from  the  outer  world,  beg 
them  to  pray  for  the  dear  ones  who  are  in  danger,  whom  the  world  or  sickness  has  overcome. 

The  order  of  the  Carmelite  is  the  most  rigid  to  which  a  woman  may  dedicate  her  life.  Saint 
Teresa,  the  patron  saint  of  the  order,  was  a  lovely  Spanish  woman,  for  years  so  frail  in  health 
that  she  bad  to  be  carried  in  a  sheet.  After  a  time  strength  was  given  her,  for  the  great  work 
on  which  her  soul  was  set,  and  so  marvelous  was  her  life,  so  beautiful  her  works,  that  there  is 
no  saint  in  the  Church  more  universally  beloved  than  she  who  is  our  blessed  mother.  Her  tomb 
is  in  the  Spanish  land,  and  a  sweet  perfume  always  breathes  from  about  it.  Her  heart  was 
snatched  from  her  dead  body  by  a  nun  directed  of  heaven,  and  is  kept  in  a  silver  urn,  and  there 
have  grown  from  it  fourteen  thorns. 

When  one  comes  to  understand  the  daily  life  and  methods  of  the  Carmelite,  the  purposes  of 
her  life  of  sacrifice,  pain  and  prayer,  the  knowledge  is  awe-inspiring.  Her  cry  is  to  "become  a 
victim  with  Jesus,"  and  to  expiate  by  her  never-ceasing  prayers  and  penances  the  sins  and 
wickedness  of  those  who  pray  not. 

After  the  Carmelite  has  passed  her  novitiate— and  many  try  but  few  succeed— and  has  finally 
renounced  the  world,  no  human  being  save  her  sisters  in  prayer  ever  again  looks  upon  her  face. 

The  dress  of  the  order  is  the  coarsest  brown  serge— they  may  wear  no  linen— and  their 
undergarments  are  also  of  serge  ;  even  the  pocket  handkerchiefs  being  brown  clotn.  Square 
pieces  of  hempen  cloth  are  tied  with  a  bit  of  rope  upon  the  foot  and  ankle,  and  a  sandai  of 
knotted  cords  is  worn  upon  the  foot.  The  outer  garment  of  serge  is  a  loose  gown,  hanging  in 
straight  folds  from  the  neckband  to  within  a  couple  of  inches  of  the  floor,  but  confined  at  the 
waist  by  a  stout  leather  girdle  or  belt.  At  the  waist  hangs  the  rosary.  The  sleeves,  long  ana 
full,  fall  over  the  hands,  and  the  face  is  framed  in  crimped  folds  of  white  linen.    Upon  her  nead 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  129 

the  Carmelite  wears  a  large  square  of  black  serge,  which  is  drawn  across  her  face  when  she 
comes  into  the  presence  of  those  who  live  outside  the  convent  walls,  so  that  only  the  figure  is 
seen. 

At  times,  when  relatives  visit  the  Carmelite  the  black  serge  curtain  at  the  iron  gratings  is 
gathered  aside  and  the  visitor  sees  through  the  prison  bars  in  the  dim  light  that  filters  in 
through  the  doorway  and  outlined  against  the  austere  walls  of  the  cells  the  imposing  figure  of  the 
nun,  clad  in  coarse  serge  and  cowled  and  hooded  in  black,  with  white  hands  clasping  the  cross 
and  beaded  chain  at  her  girdle.  Perhaps  it  is  a  mother  for  whom  the  serge  curtains  are  drawn 
aside.  Alas  I  for  her  poor  humanity  when  she  gazes  with  dim  eyes  on  this  silent,  holy  figure,  and 
prays  half  rebelliously  for  strength  to  make  the  mother-love  second  in  her  heart  that  she  may 
rejoice  over  the  sweet,  sacrificial  life  her  darling  has  chosen. 

^  The  Carmelite  fasts  from  the  14th  of  September  until  Easter  of  each  year.  Her  life  during 
this  time  is  crowned  every  hour  with  some  holy  duty.  She  sleeps  in  a  bare  little  cell  containing 
a  chair,  a  table,  and  two  low  benches,  upon  which  are  laid  two  planks.  These  planks,  covered 
with  straw,  form  her  resting  place,  and  her  only  covering  is  a  sheet  of  serge .  In  the  early  dawn 
she  rises  from  this  poor  bed,  and  in  the  still  chapel  she  begins  her  prayers.  The  morning  until 
11  o'clock  is  spent  in  meditation,  prayer  and  work.  Her  cell  is  put  in  order,  her  daily  duties 
accomplished,  and  when  not  in  the  chapel  she  withdraws  to  her  cell,  and  there  works  in  solitude. 
Perhaps  she  is  an  artist  and  makes  pictures,  or  embroiders  or  knits;  but  whatever  it  is,  her 
hands  are  never  idle,  and  her  mind  and  heart  are  filled  with  holy  thoughts  as  a  garden  in  spring 
is  filled  with  the  sweet  breath  of  flowers. 

Not  by  so  much  as  a  sup  of  water  does  she  break  her  fast  until  eleven  o'clock,  and  then  the 
little  band  of  brown-robed  women  meet  for  the  midday  meal.  They  never  eat  meat,  the  order 
forbids  it ;  and  they  sit  at  a  low,  narrow  table,  eating  from  the  coarsest  yeUow  delft  plates,  and 
with  an  iron  or  wooden  knife  and  fork.  The  food  is  generally  rice,  beans,  other  vegetables  and 
soup  made  without  meat.  Everything  is  cooked  in  the  plainest  way,  and  lard  is  not  used,  except 
when  they  are  too  poor  to  cook  with  oil.  This  meal  is  plentiful,  and  each  person  eats  whatever 
is  put  upon  her  plate,  particularly  of  those  things  she  does  not  like.  A  skull  and  cross-bones 
are  placed  at  the  end  of  the  table,  and  the  nun  looks  often  at  the  hideous  spectacle  of  that 
casket  which  once  held  so  costly  a  treasure,  telling  herself  that  soon  she  will  be  so  poor  a  thing 
as  that.  The  meal  is  finished  in  silence,  and  then  for  one  hour  the  nuns  laugh  and  talk  and  play 
together,  working  among  the  flowers  in  their  garden— and  having  a  great  deal  of  bright  and 
cheerful  talk.  Then  they  withdraw  to  their  cells,  and  there  is  no  sound  within  the  convent 
walls,  except  when  whispered  prayers  come  from  the  chapel.  During  this  long  season  of  fast, 
eight  hours  a  day  are  spent  in  repeating  the  services  of  the  church— the  Carmelite  nuns  repeating 
the  same  service  daily  that  the  priests  do— and,  like  the  priests,  receiving  communion  every 
Sunday  morning. 

During  her  entire  life  the  Carmelite  lives  in  this  self-sacrificing  solitude.  She  may  not  even 
take  a  drink  of  water  without  permission  from  the  Mother  Superior,  and  if  the  Mother  thinks 
the  Sister  can  bear  the  thirst  a  little  longer,  she  will  frequently  say  no,  that  the  lesson  of  patient 
endurance  may  be  more  faithfully  learned. 

Self-flagellation  is  also  practiced  by  these  Sisters,  and  these  tender,  delicate  women  tear  and 
beat  and  break  their  flesh  till  the  red  blood  falls,  and  drops  of  pain  stand  on  their  brows. 
Sometimes,  nay  often,  the  sound  of  the  iron  flail  striking  at  her  own  bare  body  may  be  heard  in 
these  echoless  cloisters,  and  the  voice  of  the  penitent  cries  out  in  the  prayer,  and  begs  that  her 
penance  may  be  accepted. 

Every  morning  at  7  o'clock  in  the  little  convent  down  in  Frenchtown  a  priest  says  mass 
before  the  gilt  and  white  altar  and  brown  statue  of  blessed  Saint  Teresa.  The  altar  is  a  double 
one,  and  extends  into  the  nuns'  chapel,  where  the  Sisters  are,  and  strangers  and  devotees  who 
nay  be  kneeling  in  the  outer  chapel  have  their  hearts  stirred  by  the  marvelous  effect  of  these 
nvisible  Carmelite  nuns  chanting  the  mass.    It  is  chanted  entirely  on  one  note,  and  the  effect  of 


230  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

soprano  voices  and  alto  and  contralto  thus  chanting  in  a  minor  key  the  rich  musical  words  of 
the  Latin  mass  is  wonderful.  Over  the  altar,  high  up  to  the  ceiling,  is  a  heavy  iron  gratmg,  the 
black  curtains  are  pulled  aside,  and  the  voices  of  the  nuns  come  swelling  out  a  long  drawn  cry 
of  pain,  of  peace  and  of  victory.  There  are  lilies  and  many  pure  flowers  on  the  altar  to  mmgle 
their  breath  with  the  odor  of  incense.  -^  A^r^ 

On  the  Sabbath  morning,  at  7  o'clock,  a  very  small  gratmg  by  the  side  of  the  altar  is  drawn 
open  and  here  like  a  framed  picture  is  seen,  one  after  the  other,  the  saint-like  faces  of  these 
nuns!  as  with  heavy  lids  f aUen  upon  their  eyes,  they  present  themselves  for  the  comniumon 

At  nightfall  the  nuns  again  come  together  for  their  frugal  meal;  which  cannot  be  called  a 
meal  since  it  is  only  two  ounces  of  bread  measured  out  to  each-the  weight  of  four  soaa 
crackers  in  bread-with  a  drink  of  poor  tea,  or  sometimes  of  wine.  On  Fridays,  and  all  durmg 
Lent,  black  fast  is  observed ;  that  is,  no  eggs  or  milk  are  used,  and  at  all  times  these  nuns  must 
study  to  endure  the  barest  poverty-to  be  hungry  and  in  pain-and  so  suffering,  so  emulatmg 
the  life  of  Christ,  they  go  to  Him  with  their  prayers  for  other  people. 

There  are  many  persons,  indeed,  who  give  rich  gifts  to  the  church  in  return  for  the  prayers 
of  the  Carmelites.  At  one  time  news  came  to  her  friends  in  New  Orleans  of  the  dangerous 
illness  of  one  of  the  sweetest  and  gentlest  poets  of  the  South.  These  friends  went  to  the  Carme- 
lite nuns  and  besought  their  prayers,  and  so  the  holy  Sisters  knelt  in  chapel  and  cell  and  told 
their  orisons  for  the  sufferer.  When  she  got  well  and  came  one  day  to  New  Orleans  she  went  to 
the  Carmelite  Chapel  and  put  an  offering  of  Annunciation  lilies  at  the  feet  of  blessed  Saint 
Teresa,  and  one  of  the  prettiest  songs  that  ever  came  from  the  pen  of  this  poetess  is  about  the 
nuns  in  the  convent  chapel  saj-tng  their  prayers  for  her. 

There  are  only  four  Carmelite  convents  in  America.  The  convent  in  New  Orleans  has  been 
established  but  four  or  five  years.  All  the  sisters  bear  such  names  as  Mary,  Dolorosa,  etc 
which  are  given  them  when  they  finally  assume  the  habit.  Several  of  these  ladies  are  young  and 
wonderfully  gifted,  with  beautiful  faces  and  many  accomplishments.  They  were  all  women  of 
wealth  who  withdrew  from  the  world  and  who  find  happiness  and  the  peace  that  is  beyond 
understanding,  in  their  chosen  life.  The  Mother  Superior  was  once  one  of  the  most  beautiiul 
and  brilliant  Creole  beUes  in  this  gay  city,  a  niece  of  Governor  Roman. 

THE  CHARITY  HOSPITAL. 

In  1784  Don  Andres  de  Almonaster  y  Roxas,  the  wealthiest  citizen  of  Louisiana,  contributed 
some  $114  000  toward  building  a  hospital,  of  which  the 'city  was  then  in  great  need.  This  first 
hospital  founded  by  the  munificence  of  that  generous  Spaniard  was  the  father  of  the  Charity 
Hospital  of  to-day.  It  was  situated  oa  Rampart  street,  between  St.  Peter  and  Toulouse,  and 
was  burned  in  1809.  It  was  then  determined  that  the  hospital  to  replace  it  should  be  erected 
beyond  the  city  limits,  and  for  this  purpose  the  square  of  ground  now  bounded  by  Canal, 
Dryades  Baronne  and  Common  streets,  in  wnat  was  then  known  as  "the  city  commons,"  was 
purchased;  and  here,  in  1815,  the  second  Charity  Hospital  was  erected.  This  building  was 
purchased  sixteen  years  later  by  the  State  of  Louisiana  for  the  University  for  $12o.0(X).  With 
the  proceeds  of  this  sale  the  present  hospital  on  Common  street,  between  Howard  and  Freret, 
was  built  The  State  of  Pennsylvania  contributed  some  little  aid  to  the  hospital,  but  Louisiana 
bore  very  nearly  the  entire  expense  of  building  it.  Among  the  contributors  to  the  old  hospitals, 
however  those  on  Rampart  and  Baronne  streets,  mention  should  be  made  of  Julien  Poydras, 
once  Mayor  of  this  city,  who  donated  the  sum  of  $35,000 ;  Etienne  Bore,  also  Mayor,  and  R. 

^"^The  present  hospital,  which  was  erected  in  1832,  covers  the  entire  square  bounded  by  Com- 
mon Gravier,  Freret  and  Howard  streets,  one  of  the  largest  in  the  city,  measuring  450  feet 
front  on  Common  and  Gravier,  and  420  on  the  side  streets,  and  containing  about  four  and  a  half 


I 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.      .  131 

The  hospital  consisted  originally  of  only  one  building,  the  main  or  central  one.  Although 
forty-seven  years  old.  this  building  is  as  strong  and  substantial  to-day  as  when  first  erected. 
The  brick  work  is  of  extraordinary  thickness,  and  even  the  walls  between  the  different  wards 
are  of  brick,  and  not  the  usual  wood  and  plaster  seen  in  modern  buildings.  From  this  central 
building  the  hospital  has  branched  out  in  every  direction.  A  wing  was  first  added  on  the  left, 
soon  followed  by  another  on  the  right;  then  came  rooms  on  the  Howard  street  side  for 
the  employees,  kitchen,  laundry,  etc.,  the  engineer's  department  on  Gravier  street,  and  finally 
the  lying-in  hospital  at  the  corner  of  Gravier  and  Freret. 

These  various  buildings  form  the  four  sides  of  a  court,  in  the  centre  of  which  lies  the  hos- 
pital garden,  under  the  especial  care  and  management  of  a  Sister  of  Charity.  It  contains 
probably  an  acre  of  ground,  prettily  laid  out  in  walks  bordered  wath  flowers,  evergreen 
shrubs,  etc. 

In  looking  over  the  record  of  the  hospital,  the  number  38,250,  is  observed  against  the  last 
death.  One  might  think  this  represents  the  number  of  deaths  that  have  occurred  in  the  build- 
ing. It  does  not.  It  is  only  the  number  of  the  last  corpse  which,  having  no  friends  or  relatives 
to  claim  it.  has  to  be  cared  for  by  the  hospital  after  death,  as  it  was  cared  for  by  it  when  alive. 
More  than  38,000  bodies  have  been  buried  at  the  expense  of  the  hospital  in  forty-eight 
years.  The  dead  are  buried  just  back  of  St.  Patrick's  Cemetery,  and  a  board  is  placed  over 
each  grave  with  the  number  of  the  deceased,  so  that  should  any  friend  or  relative  desire  here- 
after to  remove  the  remains  they  can  be  easily  identified. 

Besides  the  inmates  of  the  hospital,  there  are  also  a  large  number  of  persons  who  visit  every 
day  for  treatment.  These  patients  see  the  house  surgeon,  who  examines  into  their  condition. 
If  he  thinks  their  cases  serious,  he  advises  them  to  go  into  the  hospital ;  if  not,  they  stay  at 
home  and  visit  the  hospital  daily  or  weekly  for  treatment.  The  number  of  persons  applying 
for  treatment  of  this  kind  runs  from  thirty-five  to  forty  daily.  Taking  these  patients  into 
account,  the  total  number  of  sick  persons  cared  for  in  the  Charity  Hospital  since  the  war  has 
not  been  less  than  200,000 — nearly  as  many  as  the  entire  population  of  the  city,  and  since  the 
foundation  of  the  hospital  400,000. 

Every  day  is  visiting  day  at  the  hospital,  from  eight  a.  m.  to  five  p.  m.  To  keep  out  imperti- 
nent, idle  and  morbidly  curious  persons,  who  would  otherwise  disturb  the  sick,  a  tariff  of  ten 
cents  is  charged  all  persons  entering  the  building.  In  the  case,  however,  of  poor  persons, 
whose  relatives  are  sick,  this  charge  is  generally  remitted. 

In  the  Charity  Hospital  the  medical  students  of  the  University  of  Louisiana  have  advantages 
offered  them  they  can  get  nowhere  else  in  the  world.  Here  they  can  see  and  -study  nearly  every 
known  disease  ;  here  are  exposed  the  maladies  of  tropical  and  semi-tropical  regions,  as  well  as 
those  of  the  temperate  zones.  There  are  always  some  cases  of  leprosy  there— a  rare  disease  in 
America.    Yellow  fever  cases  are  also  to  be  studied,  as  well  as  all  varieties  of  malarial  fevers. 

There  is  probably  no  known  disease  that  is  not  to  be  seen  here  each  year.  Taking  up  one 
of  the  reports  published,  it  will  be  seen  that  no  less  than  776  diseases,  or  different  forms  of 
diseases,  are  reported  as  having  been  treated  in  the  hospital  that  year,  classed  as  follows:— 
Diseases  of  the  nervous  system,  54  ;  of  the  circulating  system,  30  ;  respirating  system,  35 ; 
digestive  system,  55  ;  fevers,  14 ;  eruptive  fevers,  7 ;  diseases  of  the  urinary  organs,  41 ;  venereal 
diseases,  40;  diseases  of  women,  36;  of  the  ear,  8;  of  the  eye,  42;  of  the  nose,  4;  cutaneous 
diseases,  35  ;  malignant  diseases  (such  as  cancer),  33  ;  local  diseases  and  injuries  (wounds,  etc.), 
210 ;  diseases  of  locomotion,  83  ;  toxic  diseases,  17.  There  is  but  one  known  disease  not  treated 
at  the  hospital— small-pox.  Small-pox  patients  were  formerly  admitted  to  the  hospital,  and  the 
garret  was  fitted  up  for  them,  but  some  years  ago,  under  a  provision  of  the  Legislature,  this 
was  changed,  the  city  was  given  the  control  of  the  question  of  small-pox,  and  another  hospital, 
especially  designed  for  persons  affected  by  this  disease,  was  provided  elsewhere. 

Dissections.— Another  great  advantage  offered  medical  students  by  the  hospital  Is  in  the 
bodies  of  patients  dying  there.    These,  unless  claimed  by  friend*  or  relatives,  go  to  the  collef;. 


;|^32  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

for  dissecting  purposes,  so  that  there  is  never  any  lack  of  "subjects,"  as  in  most  Western 
LedfcTcollfJs.  ^.Resurrecting"  can  never  occur  in  New  Orleans  for  the  best  of  reasons- 
^ere  is  no  need  for  grave  robbing.  These  bodies  average  about  three  a  day,  and  afford  the 
students  the  best  opportunity  to  perfect  themselves  in  anatomy. 

The  revenue  of  the  hospital  is  about  $90,000,  from  the  foUowmg  sources:  Lottery.  $10,000 
State,  in  warrants,  $50,000;  poll  taxes,  $20,000:  auctionees'  fees,  $8,000 ;  slaughter-house  (half 
the  inspection  fees),  $5,000 ;  licenses  for  balls,  $500 ;  gate  fees,  pay  patients,  etc.,  $1,500. 

ASYLUMS,    CONVENTS. 
Asylum  fob  Destitute   Orphan   BoYs^St.  Charles,  between  Dufossat    and  Bellecastlc 

(Jefferson  City;.  ,         ^  *,   .«  4.  ; 

Beauregard  AsYLUM-Pauline,  between  St.  Claude  and  N.  Rampart. 
Boys'  House  of  Refuge— Metairie  Road,  between  Bienville  and  Conti. 
Children's  Home,  Protestant  Episcopal— Jackson,  corner  of  St.  Thomas. 
Convent  de  St.  Famille— 172  Hospital. 

Convent  of  Mt.  Carmel— Olivier,  comer  of  Eliza  (Algiers).  ,       ,  „ 

Convent  op  the  Benedictine  Nuns-630  Dauphine.  between  St.  Ferdinand  and  Press. 
Convent  of  the  Good  SHEPHERD-Bienville,  between  North  Dolhonde  and  North  Broad. 
Convent  of  the  REDEMPTORisTs-Constance,  between  St.  Andrew  and  Josephme. 
Convent  of  the  Sacred  Heart— 96  Dumaine. 

Convent  of  Perpetual  Adoration— Marais,  between  Mandeville  and  Spam. 
Convent  of  the  Sisters  of  Notre  DAME-Laurel,  between  St.  Andrew  and  Josephine. 
Convent  of  the  Sisters  of  the  Holy  Family— 17  Orleans. 

Female  Asylum  op  the  Immaculate  C;onception-871  North  Rampart,  comer  of  Elmu^. 
Faith  Home  for  the  Aged  and  Destitute— Pitt,  corner  of  Robert. 
Fink  Home— Camp,  between  Antonine  and  Amelia. 

German  Protestant  AsYLUM-State,  between  Camp  and  Chestnut  (BurtheviUe). 
GiROD  Asylum— Metairie  Road,  between  Conti  and  St.  Louis. 
Home  for  the  Aged  and  Infirm— Annunciation,  corner  Calliope. 
Home  for  the  Aged  Infirm— North  Johnson,  corner  of  Laharpe. 
Home  of  the  Aged  and  Destitute— Magnolia,  corner  of  Laharpe. 
House  of  the  Sisters  of  Christian  CHARiTY-Constance,  between  Berlin  and  Milan. 
House  of  Refuge  for  Destitute  Girls— Annunciation,  corner  of  Calliope. 
House  op  the  Good  SnEPHERD-Bienville.  between  North  Dolhonde  and  North  Broad, 
Indigent  Colored  Orphan  Asylum— 393  Dauphine. 

Industrial  School  and  Model  Farm  op  Our  Lady  op  the  Holy  CROSS-North  Peters,  cor- 
ner of  Reynes. 

Jewish  Widows'  and  Orphan  Asylum— Jackson,  corner  of  Chippewa. 

Little  Sisters  of  the  Poor— North  Johnson,  corner  of  Laharpe. 

Louisiana  Retreat  Insane  AsYLUM-Nashville,  corner  of  Magazine.    Conducted  by  the 

Sisters  of  Charity.  ^         ^  t,  . 

Monastery  Discalced  CARMELiTEs-Barracks,  between  Burgundy  and  Rampart. 
Mt.  Carmel  Convent— 200  Hospital. 
Mt.  Carmel  Female  Orphan  Asylum— 53  Piety. 
New  Orleans  Female  Orphan  Asylum— Clio,  between  Camp  and  Prytania. 

PROTESTANT   EPISCOPAL. 

PoYDRAs  Orphan  Asylum  for  FEMALES-Magazine,  between  Leontine  and  Peters  Avenug, 

Jefferson. 

Protestant  Orphans'  Home— Seventh,  comer  of  Constance. 

Providencb  Asylum  for  Colored  Female  CaiLDREN-Hospital,  conjer  of  North  Tonti. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  133 

NorthToma^'"''*'''^''^  """^  Bienpaisanci   AsTLUM-St.    Ann,    between   North  DerWgny  and 

St.  Alphonsus  Convent  of  MERcx-St.  Andrew,  between  Constance  and  Maj?azine 

bT.  Alphonsus  Orphan  Asylum— Fourth,  comer  of  St.  Patrick. 

St.  Ann's  Asylum— Prytania,  corner  of  St.  Mary. 

St.  Elizabeth  Orphan  AsYLUM-Napoleon  avenue,  comer  of  Prytania;  branch,  Magazine 
corner  of  Josephine.  >       &        ^, 

St.  Henry's  CoNVENT-Constance,  between  Milan  and  Berlin. 

St.  Joseph's  CoNVENT-St.  Philip,  corner  of  North  Galvez. 

St.  Joseph's  Orphan  AsYLUM-Josephine,  corner  of  Laurel.  Under  direction  of  the  Sisters 
or  Mercy. 

St.  Mary's  Dominican  CoNVENT-Dryades,  comer  of  Calliope  ;  branch,  St.  Charles,  between 
Broadway  and  Upper  Line. 

St.  Mary's  Orphan  Boys'  AsYLUM-Chartres,  between  Mazant  and  French  avenue 

St.  Mater  Dolorosa  Convent— Cambronne,  corner  of  Third  (Carrollton) 

St.  Patrick's  Convent  of  Mercy— 139  Magazine. 

St.  Vincent's  Half-Orphan  AsYLUM-Cambronne,  between  Second  and  Burthe  (Carrollton). 

bT.  Vincent  s  Home  for  Destitute  Boys— 371  Bienville. 

St.  Vincent's  Infant  Orphan  Asylum— Magazine,  corner  of  Race 

Ursuline  Convent— North  Peters,  near  Manuel. 

<4t  rT'^r''  ^""^  ^T^^""'^  ^^''''^^  '^^^^^'^  ^^^^^^  ^for  ^dow.  and  orphans  of  the  South)- 
St.  Claude,  corner  of  Pauline. 


134  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOuk. 


CHAPTER   XIIL— THE  DRAMA  AND   OPERA. 

THE  OLD  ORLEANS  THEATRE — CALDWELL  AND  THE  INTRODUCTION  OF  THE  ENGLISH 
DRAMA  INTO  NEW  ORLEANS— THE  AMERICAN  AND  ST.  CHARLES  THEATRES— SUCCESS 
OF  THE    OPERA. 

On  Orleans  street,  between  Royal  and  Bourbon  streets,  there  now  stands  a  building  of  un- 
imposing:  appearance,  whose  wide,  low  facade,  utterly  devoid  of  the  adorning  graces  of  archi- 
tecture, is  plain  to  ugliness,  and  were  it  not  for  an  aspect  of  antiquity,  the  homely  structure 
would  scarce  attract  more  than  passing  notice.  Yet,  withal,  a  more  attentive  survey  of  the 
place  and  its  surronndings  will  not  fail  to  arouse  the  curiosity  of  him  whose  mind  is  not  too 
deeply  absorbed  in  the  pursuit  of  some  all-engaging  object. 

Upon  the  vacant  space  at  the  corner  of  the  street  stood,  not  many  years  ago,  the  old  Orleans 
Theatre,  once,  in  its  palmy  days,  the  resort  of  the  fashionable  world  of  French  New  Orleans. 
Its  walls  have  rung  to  the  plaudits  of  brilliant  assemblages,  where  the  Creole  beauties 
clapped  their  jeweled  hands  and  cried  their  "encores  "  to  some  reigning  favorite  of  the  stage, 
famous  singers  and  celebrated  actors  have  had  their  triumphs  here,  on  this  spot,  made  desolate 
by  the  demon  of  conflagration.  In  1868  the  Orleans  Theatre  was  burned  to  the  ground,  and  the 
edifice  was  never  rebuilt. 

The  building  referred  to  was  a  wing  of  the  theatre,  and  was  saved  from  the  devastating 
flames.  Originally  built  by  subscription  about  the  year  1817,  the  Orleans  Theatre  became  the 
property  of  Davis  and  Boudousquie,  and  afterwards  of  Mr.  McDonough,  who  at  his  death 
willed  the  property  to  the  city  of  Baltimore  in  1859.  Additions  were  made  to  the  portions  that 
remained  after  the  fire,  and  in  1872  the  building  was  used  as  the  Criminal  Court  room  for  the 
parish  of  New  Orleans.  Some  years  ago  the  Criminal  Courts  were  transferred  to  St.  Patrick's 
Hall,  and  the  old  Orleans  Hall  closed  its  remarkable  career  by  becoming  a  convent,  a  func- 
tion as  widely  separated  from  its  original  one  of  dance-house  as  could  well  be  imagined. 

When,  iu  the  halcyon  days  of  the  famous  Orleans  Ball  Room,  gorgeous,  sensuous  women 
and  fiery  tempered  men  were  whirling  in  the  giddy  mazes  of  the  dance,  daggers  have  flashed 
in  the  gaslight,  and  in  the  twinkling  of  an  eye  the  scene  is  changed,  and  men  rush  together  into 
the  bloody  melee,  where  often  a  gory  corpse  indicated  the  ferocity  of  the  combatants. 

In  this  ball  room,  the  resort  of  the  demi-monde,  the  fiercest  human  passions  have  run  riot, 
and  here  have  been  laid  the  foundations  for  future  tragedies,  fatal  duels,  or  bloody  ren- 
contres. 

It  was  in  the  building  next  door,  destroyed  by  the  fire,  that  the  drama,  and  particularly  the 
opera  most  flourished  in  New  Orleans  in  its  earlier  days.  Nowhere  outside  of  Italy  was  the 
opera  ever  so  powerful  or  so  popular  as  in  the  Creole  city. 

The  site  of  the  Orleans  Theatre  was  occupied  by  an  edifice  erected  for  dramatic  performances 
in  1813.  This  was  burnt  to  the  ground  in  1816,  when  John  Davis  erected  the  Orleans  Theatre. 
The  building,  which  cost  $180,000,  was  in  the  lower  story  Roman  Doric,  above  Corinthian 
Composite.  There  was  in  the  center  a  parquette,  quite  elevated  and  commodious,  with  hges 
grille  at  the  side  for  persons  in  mourning.  Two  tiers  of  boxes  and  one  of  galleries  rose  above 
this. 

Connected  with  this  edifice  and  forming  part  of  the  same  building,  was  the  Orleans  ball  and 
supper  rooms.  A  communication  existed  between  this  and  the  theatre.  Indeed  the  par- 
quette of  the  theatre  waj  frequently  floored  over  and  the  house  occupied  as  a  ball-room,  thus 
furnishing  when  brilliantly  lighted,  in  connection  with  the  suite  adjoining,  a  coup  d'oeil  not  to 
be  surpassed  for  effect  in  America.    The  ball-rooms  were  built  in  1817. 

Obviously  strange  as  the  remark  may  seem  to  the  average  resident  of  New  York,  Boston  or 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  135 

Other  large  cities  of  this  country,  wrapped  up  as  they  are  m  the  magnificence  and  grandeur  of 
their  surroundings,  the  vastness  of  their  commercial  enterprises  or  their  lauded  patronage  and 
appreciation  of  art  in  all  its  several  branches,  it  is  an  undeniable  fact  that  for  perfection  of 
detail,  completeness  of  representation  and  strict  adherence  to  the  ideas  of  the  composer,  no 
operatic  representations  have  yet  equaled  those  usually  presented  at  the  "Theatre  d'Orleans," 
in  the  city  of  New  Orleans,  in  the  days  preceding  our  late  national  unpleasantness. 

Not  to  be  a  subscriber,  or  at  least  a  regular  attendant  at  the  opera,  was  tantamout  to  being 
ignored  by  society  and  looked  upon  as  a  person  greatly  lacking  in  taste  ;  whilst,  au  contraire,  a 
frequent  and  undeviating  appearance,  particularly  on  grand  opera  nights,  tended  greatly  toward 
a  kindly,  hospitable  reception  into  the  best  French  society  under  the  ancien  regime.  Four  operas 
were  given  weekly,  of  which  two  were  grande  and  two  comique,  the  other  two  evenings  being 
devoted  to  vaudeville  and  musical  comediettas  by  the  attendant  dramatic  portion  of  the 
establishment.  Tuesdays  and  Saturdays-especially  the  latter-were  the  extremely  fashionable 
mghts,  on  which  occasions  all  patrons  were  expected  to  appear  in  full  evening  dress,  and  as 
these  were  regular  subscription  representations,  it  was  a  matter  of  considerable  diflBculty  for  a 
member  of  the  outside  world  to  obtain  a  seat,  except  in  the  parquette,  which  was  always  open 
to  the  general  public  ;  and  even  in  this  democratic  locality  white  kid  gloves  and  full  dress  coats 
were  almost  generally  worn  by  the  male  portion  of  the  audience. 

The  choicest  places  were  to  be  found  in  the  second  or  dress  cirle,  which  was  divided  into 
cosy  comfortable  stalls,  containing  four  seats,  in  the  rear  of  which  were  two  rows  of  sin-lo 
chairs,  flanked  by  a  succession  of  handsome  loges,  as  in  the  Baltimore  Academy  of  Music. 
These  loges  were  so  arranged  that  curtains  could  be  drawn  before  them,  at  the  pleasure  of 
the  occupant,  and  were  mostly  selected  by  families  not  yet  past  the  usual  conventional  period 
of  mourning,  etc.  and  who  were  tacitly  acknowledged  to  be  in  strict  privacy,  except  to  those 
whose  visits  were  made  upon  special  invitation.  The  comfortable  aisles  were  so  constructed 
that  both  stalls  and  loges  were  easily  approachable,  and  during  the  intermission  were  filled 
with  gay  gallants,  paying  their  devoirs  to  the  fair  occupants  of  these  favored  seats. 

As  a  general  thing  the  stalls  were  taken  by  parties  of  four,  consisting  of  a  young  lady  and 
her  male  escort,  invariably  attended  by  her  mother  or  some  elderly  friends  ;  as  in  no  case  was 
it  considered  allowable  for  an  unmarried  girl  to  appear  in  public  without  her  "  chaperone,"  or 
some  of  her  male  relatives  of  nearest  kin. 

The  opera,  conversation,  the  tasteful  costumes,  and  all  the  accompanying  surroundings 
were  invariably  French.  Now  and  then  the  intrusive  American  would  appear  upon  the  surface 
with  different  views  of  propriety,  but  it  took  years  of  endeavor,  and  a  civil  war  that  overthrew 
all  preconceived  ideas,  to  shake  the  tenacity  with  which  the  old  French  and  Creole  inhabitants 
of  New  Orieans  clung  to  this,  their  latest  and  most  honored  institution.  The  display  of  beauty 
and  exquisite  taste  in  dress,  on  Tuesdays  and  Saturdays,  was  something  positively  startling  to  a 
stranger— the  jet  black  hair,  the  sparkling  eyes,  the  pure  complexions,  the  superb  costumes 
with  low-cut  corsages  and  showing  the  round,  beautiful  arms,  the  gay  and  animated  features 
on  aU  sides,  presented  a  picture  which  has  never  been  equaled  in  any  other  theatre  in  this  coun- 
try. Never  overdressed,  and  generally  wearing  white  or  some  other  light  color,  with  purest 
cameliashalf  hid  amidst  their  brilliant  masses  of  jet  black  hair,  they  resembled  in  grouping 
and  appearance  the  beautiful  conception  of  the  artist,  Winterhalter,  in  his  celebrated  painting 
of  the  Empress  Eugenie  and  the  ladies  of  her  court.  Refinement,  intellect  and  culture  were 
visible  on  every  side,  and  these  brilliant  audiences  came  together  not  only  because  it  was 
fashionable  to  be  there,  but  because  they  loved  tlie  divine  art  of  music,  and  were,  as  a  general 
rule,  able  and  conscientious  critics  of  all  they  heard  and  saw. 

One  peculiar  custom  of  the  habitues  of  the  "Theatre  d'Orieans  "—which  will  seem  to  the 
opera  goer  of  the  present  day  as  peculiarly  eccentric,  if  not  positively  objectionable,  was  the 
following  :  The  grand  operas  of  Afeyerbeer,  Halevy,  Rossini,  etc.,  were  invariably  presented  in 
most  perfect  detaU  ;  and  in  order  to  accomplish  this  most  thorough  rendition  the  hour  of  com- 


136  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

menoement  was  fixed  at  half-past  6  o'clock,  as  several  of  the  favorite  works  occupied  nearly 
five  hours  in  their  representation,  the  curtain  generally  falling  between  11  and  12  o'clock. 

A  complete  outfit  expected  of  a  fashionable  cavalier  was  as  follows:  A  stall  for  four, 
white  kid  gloves  and  bouquets  for  the  ladies,  a  carriage  and  coffee  ad  libitum  for  the  party,  or 
it  may  be  a  more  expensive  supper  at  Moreau's  or  Victor's. 

The  writings  of  Meyerbeer  were  preferred  before  those  of  any  other  composer.  "  Les  Hu- 
guenots," "  Robert  leDiable,"  "  L' ifitoile  du  Nord,"  "Le  Proph^te,"  "  Le  Pardon  de  PI oermel." 
"  L'  Africaine,*'  etc.,  were  produced  in  a  style  bordering  on  perfection.  All  the  leading  artists 
were  of  the  very  highest  rank,  the  chorus  superb,  costumes  and  scenery  of  the  most  magnificent 
character,  with  an  orchestra  composed  of  from  sixty  to  eighty  musicians,  presided  over  for 
many  years  by  that  capable  conductor  and  gentleman,  Adolph  Prevost. 

"  La  Juive  "  and  *'  Charles  VL"  by  Halevy,  were  great  favorites,  as  also  were  "  La  Yestale," 
by  Spontini,  and  "Orphee,"  by  Gliick.  Scores  of  lighter  operas  were  given,  such  as  "Si 
j' etais  Roi,"  "Les  Amours  du  Diable,"  "Les  Dragons  de  Villars,"etc.,  in  which  the  second 
singers  acquitted  themselves  proportionately  well  with  their  brother  artists  of  the  heavier  roles. 

Among  the  principal  vocalists,  who  subsequently  came  North  and  appeared  in  Italian 
opera,  were  the  majestic  Rose  De  Vries,  the  original  i^ec?es  in  "Le  P*rophete,"  and  the  charming 
M'me  Pauline  Colson,  who  created  the  part  of  Catharine  in  "L'  :6toile  du  Nord."  The  two 
principal  tenors  were  Duluc  (robusto)  and  Bordas  Gegere);  the  basses,  MM.  Genebrel  and  Junca, 
altogether  constituting  a  galaxy  of  artists  rarely  met  together. 

For  forty  years  this  institution  had  been  supported  by  subscriptions  of  the  most  liberal  kind, 
and  each  year  Managers  Davis— father  and  son— and  M.  Bodousquie  visited  Paris  and  brought 
back  with  them  the  latest  operas  written. 

Nearly  all  the  social  rules  of  the  old  opera  system  are  still  enforced  in  New  Orleans,  but  not 
as  rigidly  as  in  these  days  of  old.  The  Orleans  theatre,  however,  was  not  the  first  theatre  New 
Orleans  boasted  of,  for  as  early  as  1791,  a  company  of  French  comedians  played  there.  Strolling 
players  were  glad  to  obtain  the  use  of  a  warehouse  or  other  building.  It  was  in  18C8,  however, 
that  the  first  regular  theatre  was  erected  on  St.  Philip  street. 

The  newspapers  of  1810  make  mention  of  a  theatre  in  St.  Peter  street  that  seems  to  have 
passed  out  of  existence  by  the  impulse  given  by  rival  establishments  a  few  years  later.  The  St. 
Philip  theatre  later  on  became  the  Washington  ball-room,  and  stood  on  the  spot  now  occupied 
by  the  St.  Philip  street  school-house.  The  circumstances  attending  the  introduction  of  the  Eng- 
lish drama  appear  not  to  be  very  well  understood,  for  a  number  of  writers  have  with  persistent 
inaccuracy  stated  that  James  H.  Caldwell  was  the  man  who  first  caused  plays  to  be  performed 
here  in  the  English  tongue.  This  is  wrong.  The  honor  of  this  achievement,  without  any  ques- 
tion, rests  with  Noah  M.  Ludlow,  who  for  many  years  was  associated  with  Sol  Smith  in  the 
management  of  the  St.  Charles  theatre,  now  owned  by  David  Bidwell. 

Mr.  Ludlow  gathered  and  brought  down  the  river  from  the  Western  States  a  small  comedy 
company  in  1817,  and  opened  bis  dramatic  season  December  24,  at  the  St.  Philip  theatre,  which 
at  that  time  was  owned  by  a  woman  named  Coquet.  The  theatre  had  two  circles  and  a  par- 
quette,  and  was  capable  of  seating  700  persons.  One  dollar  was  charged  as  the  admission  fee  to 
all  parts  of  the  house.  The  opening  play  M^as  Tobin's  comedy,  entitled  "The  Honey  Moon,"  and 
the  cast  of  characters  was  as  follows  : 

Duke  Aranza John  Vaughn 

Rolando N.  M.  Ludlow 

Count  Montalban Mr.  Plummer 

Belthazar Mr.  Lucas 

Jaques Mr.  Morgan 

Lampedo Mr.  Henry  Vaughn 

Juliana Mrs.  John  Vaughn 

Volante Mrs.  Jones 

Zamora Mrs.  Ludlow 

Hostesa,.,,.,!.... ,  .,...,,.,,.,.., Mrs.  Morgan 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  137 

The  afterpiece  was  the  farce  entitled  "  Hotel :  or,  Servant  with  Two  Masters."  LazariUo 
Mr.  Morgan. 

The  above  bill  of  the  play  is  copied  from  Mr.  Ludlow's  book,  and  is,  without  doubt,  correct. 

There  were  no  plays  in  the  French  tongue  that  year,  as  the  Orleans  theatre  had  been 
destroyed  by  fire  several  months  before  Mr.  Ludlow  opened  his  season.  Thus  was  the  English 
drama  planted  in  New  Orleans.  The  season  was  successful,  and  resulted  in  a  profit  of  ^3.000. 
Of  this  sum  Mr.  John  Vaughn  received  $1,000  and  Mr,  Morgan  a  like  amount,  they  being  equal 
partners  witti  Mr.  Ludlow. 

There  were  no  English  plays  given  in  New  Orleans  during  the  season  of  1818  and  1819. 
!        It  was  in  1820,  two  years  after  Ludlow's  company  performed,  that  James  H.  Caldwell  came 
to  New  Orleans  and  opened  the  St.  Philip  street  theatre,  January  7th,    1820,  the  bill  being 
"The  Honeymoon,"  and  "  Three  and  Duce." 

Caldwell,  as  the  founder  of  the  American  drama,  is  deserving  of  more  than  a  passing 
notice. 

He  was  a  native  of  Sheffield,  a  young  man  of  great  personal  beauty  and  attractive  man- 
ners. When  quite  a  youth  he  had  been  drawn  upon  the  mimic  stage  by  impulses  and  aspira- 
tions quite  common  to  young  men  of  lively  parts  and  brilliant  physical  endowments.  He  had 
succeeded  on  the  London  boards  in  genteel  comedy,  and  quickly  arose,  more  through  his  per- 
sonal than  his  artistic  qualities,  to  a  level  with  the  first-class  of  star  actors  in  that  city.  Thus 
he  became  the  intimate  associate  and  friend  of  the  Kembles,  the  Keans,  of  Cooper,  of  Booth 
and  Farran,  and  was  recognized  by  them  all  as  their  peer  and  equal.  In  fact,  they  admitted 
that  he  was  far  superior  to  them  all  in  the  requisites  of  a  manager,  a  maestro,  a  man  of  busi- 
ness, who  could  support  their  brilliant  qualities  and  place  them  in  the  road  to  fortune  and 
renown. 

They  had  all  exhausted  their  resources  and  their  renown  in  old  England.  They  must  look 
to  "  fresh  woods  and  pastures  new"  wherein  to  resuscitate  their  fortune.  Where  could  they 
find  such  new  woods  and  pastures  save  in  the  growing  and  prospering  Anglo  colonies  of 
America  ? 

James  H.  Caldwell  was  a  prompt  and  energetic  man.  He  was  quick  to  perceive  and  appre- 
ciate the  opening  in  the  States  for  theatrical  success  and  distinction. 

He  rallied  a  band  of  practiced  and  accomplished  actors  around  him,  who  agreed  to  engage 
with  him  in  the  venture  of  introducing  and  establishing  in  the  States  a  first-class  dramatic 
company,  which  should  present  to  their  new,  fresh  and  enthusiastic  communities  dramatic 
exhibitions  equal  to  those  which  for  so  many  years  had  satisfied  the  demands  of  London 
tastes. 

This  company  was  a  very  select  one.  It  embraced  such  men  as  Booth,  Brown,  Soloman,  the 
elder  Blandi,  Holland,  Barrett,  Eowe,  Russel,  DeBar,  Green,  and  others,  who  were  aU  regarded 
as  of  the  first-class  of  dramatic  actors  on  the  English  stage.  After  trying  Richmond,  Ya., 
Caldwell  brought  his  company  to  New  Orleans.  He  encountered  the  usual  difficulties  of  a  pro- 
gressive spirit.  The  Creole  population  were  naturally  jealous  of  the  Americans.  They  could 
sell  all  the  goods  and  hold  all  the  ofiices  themselves.  Perhaps  the  natural  antagonism  which 
has  for  so  many  centuries  separated  the  ancestors  of  each  across  the  English  channel,  was 
unconsciously  renewed  on  this  side  of  the  Atlantic  ;  anyway,  there  was  a  contest  as  to  whether 
the  English  drama  could  or  should  be  enacted  above  Canal  street. 

Caldwell  brought  Booth  to  New  Orleans,  and  Booth  got  up  the  leading  parts  in  French  and 
played  with  great  applause.  Mme.  Caldwell  was  the  leading  lady  at  that  time  and  played  with 
him.  He  also  brought  out  many  others  who  were  afterward  distinguished  as  stars.  He  battled 
with  prejudice  and  opposition  and  conquered.  He  not  only  built  one  of  the  most  elegant 
theatres,  but  he  connected  the  success  of  the  drama  with  other  enterprises.  He  was  the 
founder  of  the  St.  Charles  Hotel,  the  Gasworks  and  other  modem  enterprises.  He  was  a  mem- 
ber of  the  City  Council,  a  patron  of  everything  useful  or  attractive.   He  emulated  in  this  respect 


138  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

the  great  manager  who,  at  the  same  time  that  he  run  the  Globe  Theatre  at  London,  speculated 
in  the  town  lots  and  corporate  taxes  of  Stratford-on-Avon. 

Aaron  J.  Phillips  came  down  to  New  Orleans  from  the  West  with  a  dramatic  company  in  the 
fall  of  1819,  and  opened  a  season  at  the  Orleans  Opera-House,  playing  his  company  on  Mondays, 
Wednesdays,  Fridays  and  Saturdays,  the  off  nights  of  the  Opera.  Phillips  hoped  to  deter 
Caldwell  from  bringing  a  company  from  Virginia,  but  he  did  not  know  the  stuff  Caldwell  was 
made  of.  Caldwell  brought  a  company  and  began  his  performances  as  above  stated,  and  soon 
drove  Phillips  to  relinquish  the  unequal  contest.  Phillips  made  terms  with  his  rival  and  joined 
Caldwell's  company,  and  the  latter  for  a  time  gave  performances  at  the  Orleans  on  the  off 
nights  of  the  opera,  and  at  the  St.  Philip  on  the  nights  when  the  Orleans  was  in  use  by  the 
French  opera  troupe.  Caldwell  had  a  very  large  company,  having  engaged  most  of  the  members 
of  Phillips'  troupe.  He  found  that  the  new  and  beautiful  Orleans  Theatre  was  the  favorite  with 
the  public,  and  that  the  St.  Philip  Street  Theatre  had  fallen  into  disfavor  with  theatre  goers,  so 
he  closed  the  house,  but  paid  the  rent  until  the  end  of  the  season.  On  the  whole  Mr.  Caldwell 
found  his  New  Orleans  venture  profitable,  and  took  a  lease  of  the  Orleans  Theatre  for  four 
nights  each  week,  at  SlOO  per  night  for  the  three  seasons  of  1820-21,  1821-22,  1822-23.  During  his 
management  of  the  Orleans  Theatre  Mr.  Caldwell  saved  a  considerable  sum  of  money,  and  he 
felt  well  satisfied  that  the  American  theatre  would  find  a  ready  support  vsithout  discouraging 
the  French  theatre,  which  had  become  firmly  established  at  the  Orleans  street  house.  Mr. 
Caldwell  w-as  one  of  the  most  remarkable  men  New  Orleans  ever  received  as  a  citizen.  He  it 
was  who,  even  in  those  early  times,  predicted  that  a  new  and  prosperous  city  would  be  built 
above  Canal  street,  and  he  had  not  been  long  here  before  he  began  to  look  about  for  a  plot  of 
ground  whereon  to  build  a  theatre. 

Mr.  Caldwell  was  ridiculed  beyond  measure  when  it  became  known  where  he  intended  to 
build  his  proposed  new  theatre,  for  he  had  selected  the  site  on  Camp  street,  at  that  time  a 
swamp.  Many  of  the  old  Creoles  refused  to  believe,  or  to  be  persuaded,  that  people  could  be 
found  who  would  desire  to  build  houses  and  live  in  the  district  above  Canal  street.  But  the 
farseeing  manager  was  wise  in  his  predictions  and  in  the  course  he  marked  out.  He  lived  to  see 
the  point  where  he  built  his  new  theatre  on  Camp  street  become  the  centre  of  an  immense 
population.  On  May  29th,  1822,  Mr.  Caldwell,  with  his  own  hands,  laid  the  corner  stone  of  the 
New  American  Theatre  on  Camp  street.  The  theatre  was  so  far  finished  that  Mr.  Caldwell  gave 
one  performance  in  it  on  May  14th,  1823.  The  play  was  "  The  Dramatist,"  and  was  followed  by 
the  comic  opera  called  "  The  Romp."  Into  this  theatre  Mr.  Caldwell  put  the  earnings  of  the 
two  previous  seasons  and  borrowed  $14,000  from  citizens  in  sums  of  $300.  Each  person 
advancing  $300  was  entitled  to  an  admission  to  the  theatre,  but  the  manager  reserved  the 
right  to  return  the  loan  and  cancel  the  obligation  any  time  within  10  years. 

Near  December  1,  1823,  Mr.  Caldwell  began  his  closing  performance  at  the  Orleans  Theatre, 
as  his  lease  expired  at  the  end  of  the  month.  On  January  1,  1824.  Mr.  Caldwell  opened  the  com- 
pleted Camp  Street  Theatre  for  its  first  regular  season.  On  that  occasion  he  spoke  an  opening 
address,  written  by  Thomas  Wells,  of  Boston.  The  bill  of  the  play  was  as  follows— Morton's 
comedy  of 

TOWN  AND  COUNTRY. 

Reuben  Glenroy j,  H.Caldwell. 

OwenGlenroy Edward  Caldwell. 

Captam  Glenroy William  Forrest. 

Charles  Plastic Mr.  Garner. 

KitCosey N.M.Ludlow. 

irot — ........ Jackson  Grey. 

Jockey  Hawbuck Richard  RusselL 


Ross. 


•  J.  M.  Scott. 


William j.  Hiffgins! 

Evans William  McCafferty. 

y'^^^^^ James  Scholes, 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  Idtf 

Mr.  J.  H.  Caldwell  was  proprietor  and  manager,  Mr.  Russell  stage  manager,  Jas.  S.  Rowe 
treasurer,  Wm.  Noak  leader  of  orchestra,  John  Varden  machinist,  Antonio  Mondelli  scene 
artist,  and  S.  Simonds  gas  engineer. 

The  theatre  was  the  first  building  in  New  Orleans  lighted  by  gas,  for  Mr.  Caldwell  had 
erected  gas  works  on  the  same  lot  adjoining  the  theatre.  For  awhile  the  theatre  was  the  only 
building  in  New  Orleans  lighted  by  gas.  After  a  time  Mr.  Caldwell  lighted  one  side  of  Camp 
street,  from  the  theatre  to  Canal  street,  but  it  took  years  of  hard  work  to  form  a  gas  company 
and  get  Canal  street  lighted  by  gas.  During  the  first  two  seasons  of  the  theatre  the  street  and 
sidewalks  were  without  pavement.  It  was  necessary  to  walk  from  Canal  street  to  the  theatre, 
says  Ludlow,  "  on  pieces  of  timber  laid  together,  forming  a  pathway  about  two  and  a-half  feet 
width,  made  of  boat  gunwales." 

The  theatre  was  a  substantial  one  of  brick,  60x160  feet  and  three  stories  high,  and  had  seats 
for  1,100  persons.  The  stage  and  all  the  appliances  for  the  production  of  plays  were  of  the  best 
kind,  and  in  this  establishment  for  a  period  of  nearly  16  years  the  most  attractive  performers 
that  could  be  procured  appeared  as  stars,  and  the  resident  stock  company  was  always  compe- 
tent to  present,  unaided  by  auxiliary  talent,  the  chief  works  of  the  great  dramatists  During 
the  early  part  of  February,  1824,  Edwin  Forrest,  then  a  youth  not  quite  18  years  of  age,  was 
engaged  as  a  regular  member  of  the  stock  company.  He  was  accorded  an  opening  character 
{Jaffier,  in  "Venice  Preserved,")  but  thereafter  he  played  walking  gentleman,  juvenile  tragedy, 
and,  in  short,  anything  coming  under  the  head  of  respectable  utility. 

It  would  require  a  volume  to  record  the  doings  of  the  actors  of  this  theatre.  Mr.  Caldwell 
made  a  large  fortune  and  squandered  it  iu  erecting  and  conducting  the  first  St.  Charles' Theatre, 
On  the  30th  of  November,  1839,  Mr.  Caldwell  abandoned  the  Camp  street  theatre,  and  concen- 
trated his  dramatic  forces  upon  the  stage  of  the  St.  Charles  Theatre.  The  American,  as  the 
Camp  was  called,  was  altered  in  form  so  as  to  make  it  suitable  for  a  ball-room.  After  a  time 
the  place  became  known  as  Ajmory  Hall,  and  was  used  for  shows,  concerts  and  exhibitions  of 
one  kind  and  another.  For  many  years  the  structure  was  used  by  the  Messrs.  Montgomery  as 
an  auction  mart.  During  the  last  year  or  two  the  upper  portion  of  the  building  was  occupied 
by  the  Young  Men's  Christian  Association.  Messrs.  Rice,  Born  &  Co.  bought  the  land  and  the 
building  for  $60,000.  They  commenced  to  tear  down  the  old  house  in  November,  1881,  and  now 
the  new  five-story  hardware  store  has  taken  its  place. 

The  old  St.  Charles  Theatre,  which,  when  it  was  constructed,  was  the  largest  theatre  in  the 
United  States,  stood  where  the  Phoenix  saloon  is  now  located— the  name  of  the  saloon  being 
due  to  the  fact  that  it  arose  from  the  ashes  of  the  theatre. 

On  May  9tb,  1835,  the  corner-stone  of  this  building  was  laid,  and  although  in  the  process  of 
building  its  enterprising  owner,  Caldwell,  had  to  contend  with  ninety  days  of  continued  rain, 
it  was  opened,  as  resolved,  on  November  30th,  in  the  same  year,  with  "  The  School  for  Scandal  " 
and  "  Spoiled  Child. "  The  theatre  had  a  frontage  of  132  feet  on  St.  Charles,  and  a  depth  of  172 
feet.  The  grand  salon  was  129  feet  by  26;  it  had  four  tiers  of  boxes,  surmounted  by  enormous 
galleries^  At  the  back  of  forty-seven  of  these  boxes  were  elegant  boudoirs  or  retiring  rooms. 
From  the  centre  of  the  building  was  suspended  a  magnificent  chandelier,  weighing  over  two 
tons,  and  illuminated  by  two  hundred  gaslights.  From  the  stage  to  the  roof,  the  distance  was 
62  feet.    The  total  cost  of  the  building  was  $3.50,000. 

The  new  St.  Charles  (the  "  Old  Drury,"  as  it  is  fondly  called  by  Orleanians  which  followed 
it,  now  the  oldest  theatre  in  New  Orleans,  has  seen  more  famous  actors  on  its  boards  than  any 
theatre  in  this  country.  Although  greatly  changed,  a  visit  there  cannot  but  recall  the  ancient 
memories  clustering  around  the  place,  and  one  feels  carried  back  to  those  old  days.    There  is 

the  chair  from  which  the  dazzling  beauty  of  the  charming  Miss captivated  the  whole  house 

on  Christmas  night,  in  1851 ;  there  the  box  where  the  divine  Miss  Somebody  Else  flirted  so  openly 

\\ith  the  dashing  CoL ,  who  was  afterward  killed  in  a  duel  on  her  account.    The  longer  we 

look  the  more  faces  come  out  of  the  half  shadow,  and  soon  memory  fills  the  house.    The  foot- 


140  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

lights  burn  brightly,  the  dress  circle  and  parquette  are  .iammed ;  like  the  waving  of  the  leaves  on 
the  aspen  the  fluttering  of  fans  give  life  and  motion  to  the  picture.  The  orchestra  are  all  in  their 
places ;  the  leader  gives  the  invariable  premonitory  squeak  to  his  violin,  then  tries  the  bass  string, 
while  the  bass  viol  brings  out  a  muffled  groan  from  that  elephantine  instrument.  An  inspiriting 
introduction  seems  to  float  out  and  drift  away,  when  the  tinkle  of  a  little  bell  is  heard,  and 
majestically  the  curtain  rises.  Fans  cease  their  motion,  eyes  are  riveted  on  the  stage,  and,  after 
some  small  talk  from  two  gallants  near  the  left  upper  entrance,  in  there  walks  a  stately  figure  in 
majestic  attire,  and  the  whispers  run  through  the  audience :  "There's  old  man  Booth  !  "  " How 
grand  he  is  1"  An  auction  drum  over  the  way  breaks  the  spell,  and  gone  are  the  ghosts  of  the 
lang  syne— gone  the  beauty,  the  chivalry  and  the  mystic  foot-lights  that  but  a  moment  ago 
seemed  to  be  there.  That  leader's  fiddle  has  poured  out  its  last  crescendo,  the  cornet  has  sounded 
its  last  flourish  to  an  advancing  Richmond,  and  the  fingers  that  handled  the  drum-sticks  are 
dust  and  ashes  out  here  in  some  of  our  cemeteries.  Thirty-five  years  have  worked  sad  havoc  in 
the  ranks  with  its  canister  and  grape,  and  those  who  remain  of  those  elegant  audiences  of 
bygone  nights  might  almost  be  put  in  the  private  boxes. 

The  St.  Charles  was  rebuilt  immediately  after  its  destruction  by  the  fire  of  1843,  and  all  the 
records,  prompter's  books,  etc.,  since  then  are  still  to  be  seen.  Here  is  a  sample  of  salaries  from 
one  of  them  :  "J.  H.  McVicker,  $9  per  week;  Neaffie,  $25;  Tom  Placide,  $25;  James  Wright, 
$15 ;  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Vance,  $40."    This  was  during  the  season  of  1845-6. 

Here  are  some  not  uninteresting  items  from  the  prompter's  book  : 

•'  Monday,  June  22, 1846.— Ninth  week  of  the  season,  and  first  night  of  the  engagement  of  Mr. 
J.  B.  Booth. 

"Mr.  Booth  was  suffering  under  the  effects  of  previous  intoxication,  and  could  not  get 
through  the  part  ('  Iron  Chest '  was  the  piece)  without  being  hissed.  Mr.  Smith  explained  to  the 
audience  the  circumstances  and  announced  his  engagement  was  then  and  there  terminated." 

A  little  further  on  we  read  : 

"  June  24.— Mr.  Booth,  at  the  request  of  the  public  generally,  re-engaged  by  the  manage- 
ment." 

Then  for  night  we  quote:  "  Full  and  enthusiastic  houses,"  "  brilliant  receptions,"  "  Mr.  Booth 
electrified  the  throng  present." 

Looking  on  we  see  more  complaints. 

"'Follies  of  a  Night,'  'Merchant  of  Venice'— Mr.  Tom  Placide  absent  at  rehearsal;  piece 
delayed  in  consequence.  As  regards  Mr.  Placide,  could  I  not  prevail  upon  the  management  (if 
they  do  exact  forfeits)  to  make  a  lump  job  of  it  with  him  at  the  end  of  the  season,  thereby  secur- 
ing his  name  from  exposure  so  very  often,  and  relieving  me  from  making  use  of  it  in  so  bad  a 
cause  ?" 

Endorsed  on  this  is  : 

"  The  prompter  may  hereafter  omit  writing  Mr.  P.'s  name  in  the  book.  Let  the  prompter  at 
Mobile  take  his  turn.  " Ludlow  &  Smith,  Managers." 

Next  we  meet  a  familiar  name  to  all.  The  prompter  writes  "  Messr.s.  Joe  Jefferson,  English 
and  Fi-edericks  reported  as  being  very  noisy  in  their  dressing-rooms.  This  is  becoming  a  common 
thing  and  requires  notice." 

There  were  two  French  theatres,  one  in  St.  Peters  street,  and  another  in  St.  Philip  street, 
near  Royal,  which  were  in  operation  from  1808  to  1811.  At  the  latter  period,  Mr.  John  Davis,  a 
French  emigre  from  St.  Domingo,  built  the  Orleans  theatre,  on  the  square,  now  partly  occupied 
by  the  First  District  Court,  near  the  Catholic  Cathedral,  and  the  adjoining  court  buildings,  and 
engaged  in  Paris  the  first  regular  Opera  Company  that  ever  came  into  this  country.  The 
enterprise  proved  a  highly  successful  one,  and  upon  the  death  of  Mr.  John  Davis  the  manage- 
ment of  the  theatre  devolved  upon  his  son,  Mr.  Pierre  Davis  (now  residing  in  France),  by  whom 
it  was  most  ably  conducted  during  a  period  of  over  twenty-five  years.  It  was  under  his  man- 
agement that  those  twin  stars  of  the  Parisian  theatrical  world,  Mmes.  Fanny  EUsler  and 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  141 

Damoreau,  were  first  seen  and  heard  in  New  Orleans,  and  that  the  great  master-pieces  of 
Rossini,  Meyerbeer,  Auber,  Donizetti,  Herold,  Mozart,  Spontini  and  Mehul  became  familiar  as 
household  words  to  the  highly-refined  audiences  which  crowded  the  small  but  elegant  and 
comfortable  Opera  House,  which,  after  the  one  originally  erected  by  Mr.  John  Davis  had  been 
burnt  down,  was  rebuilt  next  year. 

Mr.  Yarney,  the  author  of  "Le  Chant  des  Girondins,"  and  afterwards  leader  of  "Les 
Bouffes  Parisieus,"  the  late  Eugene  Prevost,  Mr.  John,  and  since  the  war  Mons.  E.  Calabresi, 
have  successively  wielded  the  baton  of  leader  of  the  orchestra. 

In  1859,  Mr.  Chas.  Boudousquie  having  some  years  before  succeeded  Mr.  Davis  as  manager 
of  the  Orleans  theatre,  the  building  was  bought  at  the  judicial  sale  of  the  estate  of  John 
McDonough  by  Mr.  Parlange,  who  failed  to  agree  with  Mr.  Boudousquie  as  to  the  lease  of  the 
theatre,  whereupon  a  new  company  was  formed,  and  the  present  splendid  edifice  on  Bourbon 
street  was  built  by  Messrs.  Gallier  &  Esterbrook,  architects  for  the  Opera  House  Association. 

It  was  upon  the  boards  of  this  theatre  that  the  charming  Adelina  Patti  made  her  debut 
in  Meyerbeer's  "Pardon  de  Plcermel."  There,  too,  the  dying  notes  of  another  great  Italian 
artist,  Madame  Frezzolini,  were  heard  just  upon  the  eve  of  the  great  civil  war,  which,  shortly 
after,  led  to  the  temporary  suspension  of  all  the  theatrical  enterprises  in  New  Orleans. 

On  the  return  of  peace,  a  French  strolling  company,  under  Mr.  Marcelin  Alhaiza,  proving 
highly  succesful,  a  number  of  subscribers  furnished  him  at  the  close  of  the  season  with  the 
means  of  engaging  a  complete  dramatic  and  operatic  company.  The  result  was  most 
unfortunate,  Mr.  Marcelin  Alhaiza  having  died  on  the  eve  of  his  company's  departure  from 
France,  and  the  latter  being  shipwrecked  and  lost  on  the  steamer  in  which  they  had  taken 
passage  from  New  York  to  this  port. 

Mr.  Paul  Alhaiza,  the  brother  of  the  deceased  manager,  collected  a  few  artists  who  had 
remained  here,  and  engaged  some  of  the  members  of  another  strolling  company  whose 
performances  at  the  old  Orleans  theatre  had  been  brought  to  a  close  in  1867,  by  the  burning  of 
that  edifice.  In  1868,  he  attempted,  in  partnership  with  Mr.  Calabresi,  to  revive  the  opera,  but 
the  attempt  proving  unsuccessful,  a  new  Opera  House  Association  was  formed,  composed  of 
leading  capitalists  and  merchants  of  this  city,  by  whom  the  opera  house  was  purchased,  and 
liberal  provision  was  made  for  the  engagement  of  a  first-class  opera  company.  Mr.  £.  Calabresi 
was  by  them  appointed  manager  and  leader,  at  a  very  high  salary,  but  although  he  succeeded 
in  engaging  two  or  three  singers,  of  talent  and  reputation,  such  as  Michot.  Castelmary  and 
Dumestre,  most  of  the  other  artist  brought  over  by  him  proved  lamentably  deficient,  and  after 
two  seasons  the  members  of  the  Opera  House  Association  found  themselves  in  debt  after 
having  expended  the  whole  of  their  capital,  and  were  therefore  compelled  to  go  into 
liquidation. 

This  happened  at  the  close  of  the  season  of  1871-2,  when  Mr.  Placide  Canonge— a  distinguished 
Creole  journalist  and  playwright,  who  had  already  given  evidence  of  his  tact  and  good  taste  in 
the  selection  of  a  dramatic  company  for  the  old  Orleans  theatre,  obtained  quite  late  in  the 
summer,  a  lease  of  the  Opera  House  for  the  winter  of  1872-3.  Since  then  the  Opera  House  ha^ 
had  varying  fortunes,  has  been  open  one  year  and  closed  the  next,  but  it  has  always  been  as 
fashionable  and  popular. 


142  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XIV.— THE  CITY'S  LUNGS. 

THE    SQUARES    AND   PUBLIC    PLACES— MEMORIES    THAT    CLING     AROUND     THE    OLD     PLACE 
D'ARMES— LAKESIDE    RESORTS — SPANISH   FORT    AND   WEST   END. 

1728.— THE  PLACE  D'ARMES. 

In  a  shallow,  stagnant  pool,  covered  w^th  green  slime,  stood  a  few  tall  cypresses  and 
sycamores,  their  few  scant  limbs  burthened  with  pendant  moss,  hanging  and  swinging  with  the 
breeze,  telling  of  a  former  reign  of  savageness.  In  the  centre  were  a  few  stunted,  sickly  cedars 
of  European  parentage  whose  appearance  showed  that  they  were  not  yet  acclimated  to  this 
land.  Around  the  square  were  planted  short  wooden  pickets,  leaning  in  every  direction,  and 
forming  an  accidental  chevaux  defrise  ;  facing  it  a  little  brick  church,  whose  diminutive  steeple 
was  yet  high  enough  to  look  over  the  little  huts  and  cabins  congregated  around  it.  Next  to 
the  church  was  a  long,  low,  rambling  and  rickety  house  of  two  stories;  around  the  upper  one  a 
wide  gallery,  supported  by  huge,  log-like  pillars. 

On  either  wing  of  the  square,  set  back  behind  neat  little  gardens,  were  the  dwellings  of  the 
burghers.  Some  were  pretentious  villas  of  two  stories,  with  galleries  and  porticos  out  of  all 
proportion  to  the  house  ;  some  of  mere  rough  logs,  not  even  cut  into  shape,  but  rounded  off  in 
a  rude  ctyle  by  being  charred  and  burned,  the  cracks  between  the  logs  filled  up  with  river  mud. 

On  the  levee  front  stood  in  drunken,  uneven  ranks,  some  even  ruder  huts  than  these  houses 
of  old  planks,  full  of  holes  and  cracks,  both  in  the  sides  and  roofs,  through  which  issued  in  all 
directions  the  smoke  that,  finding  no  legitimate  exit,  took  any  path  that  led  to  heaven.  A  strong 
smell  of  fish  cooking  for  some  trapper's  dinner  perfumed  the  air,  together  with  a  smell  equally 
strong  of  their  brothers  cast  away  as  "not  good,"  or  left  lying  in  the  mud-holes  around  the  levee 
by  the  recent  fall  of  the  river. 

Notwithstanding  these  little  inconveniences  and  the  loud  guttural  serenade  of  the  frogs,  the 
square  was  filled  with  people,  all  talking  in  a  violent  manner,  arguing,  gesticulating,  contra- 
dicting. 

Amidst  this  babel,  a  fleet  of  odd-looking  boats  rounded  the  point,  and  in  a  few  minutes 
shot  into  the  mud  lagoons  that  lay  between  the  levee  and  the  summer  bed  of  the  river.  As 
these  neared  the  shore,  a  score  or  so  of  men  leaped  from  them  into  the  oozy  mud,  clambered  up 
the  levee,  whilst  a  dozen  or  so  more  strove  to  get  the  boats  nearer  to  the  shore,  where  a  long 
plank  might  offer  an  easier  landing  than  this  muddy  walk. 

This  landing  created  a  considerable  stir.  The  most  tempting  display  of  goods  by  the 
peddlers  in  their  narrow  booths  on  the  levee  could  no  longer  detain  the  citizens.  They  crowded 
around  the  new  arrivals,  following  them  closely  into  the  square. 

Most  of  the  new  comers  were  strong,  athletic-looking  men,  with  heavy  mustaches  of  light 
hue,  and  all  the  appearance  of  Teutons.  They  were  led  by  two  men,  one  white,  one  Indian. 
The  white  man  was  hyperbolically  tall,  thin  and  yellow ;  his  cheeks  weie  sunken,  his  nose  a 
monstrous  aquiline,  and  his  small  twinkling  eyes,  which  were  crossed,  had  a  melancholy  look  in 
them,  which,  with  other  circumstances  made  him  a  perfect  picture  of  Don  Quixote,  "the  Knight 
of  the  sorrowful  countenance."  Over  his  long  waving  locks  he  wore  a  broad-brimmed  hat ;  upon 
his  boots,  a  pair  of  eight-inch  Mexican  spurs,  dangling  and  jingling  as  if  he  were  a  General.  As 
bestrode  forward  with  long  spasmodic  steps,  a  universal  viva  for  "Baby"  broke  from  the 
people.  It  was  "Baby,"  the  military  dancing  master  of  Louisiana,  the  hero  of  a  thousand 
fights,  who  brought  the  awful  news  of  the  massacre  of  the  French  settlers  at  Natchez  and  the 
advance  of  the  Indians  on  New  Orleans. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  143 

The  crowd  rapidly  dispersed,  some  to  barricade  their  houses,  some  to  get  their  guns,  some 
to  spread  the  alarm.    In  a  few  minutes  the  crowd  had  returned,  the  men  being  armed. 

Though  the  martinet  would  have  smiled  at  this  curiously  arrayed  army,  it  was  not  one  to 
be  despised  in  an  Indian  war.  There  was  the  crack  company  of  Canadians,  who  had  fought  in 
the  North  with  the  mighty  Mohawks  and  Sioux,  and  each  man  of  whom  could  pick  off  an  Indian 
every  time  he  could  load  his  gun— a  tedious  half  an  hour  operation.  A  dozen  or  so  half-breeds 
and  Indians  were  in  the  troop,  who  could  have  paddled  this  lilliputian  army  through  the  lakes, 
bayous  and  swamps  that  make  a  spider-web  of  Lower  Louisiana.  There  a  renegado,  who  had 
seen  the  wildest  times,  learned  all  evil,  and  feasted  and  caroused  in  the  Spanish  main  with  the 
buccaneers  and  filibusters  of  the  Caribbean  Sea. 

These  men  were  drawn  up  in  five  companies,  each  company  consisting  of  from  fifty  to  sixty 
men.  The  captains  were  the  most  popular  men  of  the  colony,  issuing  their  orders,  each  in  his 
own  style.  One  was  a  blacksmith  of  the  city,  of  great  popularity  and  importance;  the  next,  a 
man  whose  name  stUl  lingers  in  the  street  romances  of  Paris,  as  the  boldest  robber  of  the  city, 
and  who  was  glad  to  exchange  his  official  position  in  the  Bagne  at  Toulon  for  this  new  and 
wild  world  ;  the  next,  an  old  soldier  who  had  fought  at  Pultowa  with  the  Swedish  Alexander, 
and  who  was  vainly  striving  to  instill  the  principles  of  military  science  into  the  heads  of  this 
undiciplined  horde.  The  Captain  of  the  last  company  was  a  gentleman  in  the  fullest  sense  of 
the  word.  He  had  been  a  nobleman  of  the  highest  rank  and  fortune  at  the  court  of  Louis  XIV, 
but  a  "lettre  de  cacJief'  had  taken  his  fortune  away,  and  sent  him  to  this  wild  land.  The  other 
company  was  one  of  negroes,  armed  with  pikes,  sticks  and  knives,  and  truly  their  commander 
could  say  of  them,  as  Falstaff  said  of  his  men  :  "  There  is  but  a  shirt  and  a  half  to  all  the  com- 
pany, and  the  half  shirt  is  two  napkins  tacked  together,"  without  hyperbole.  The  whole  town 
had  by  this  time  collected  to  witness  this  display.  There  a  pretty  Acadian  or  Canadian  girl, 
with  a  smile  as  heavenly  as  Evangeline's,  who  had  come  here  with  her  husband,  at  the  King's 
request— i.  e.,  command.  Here,  a  group  of  wrinkled,  elderly  women,  the  wives  and  mothers  of 
the  colony,  whose  hardened,  brazened  faces  bore  evidence  of  the  evil  life  they  had  led,  and  the 
tradf^  and  profession  they  had  followed  before  the  government  sent  them  to  the  colony  on  a 
venture.  Side  by  side  stood  groups  of  negroes,  squaws,  and  light  mulatto  girls.  But  few 
children  were  present ;  the  children  did  not  seem  to  thrive,  and  most  of  the  exported  women 
reached  New  Orleans  after  they  had  arrived  at  the  grand  climateric  of  fifty. 

"To  the  ramparts!"  cried  the  Governor,  and  the  troops  and  militia  filed  slowly  out  of  the 
square,  followed  by  the  crowd,  to  the  slow  music  of  a  broken  drum. 

1769— THE   PARADE. 

The  square  was  now  a  broad,  open,  uncovered  place,  with  stunted  grass  of  a  sombre  gray 
growing  in  odd  and  scattered  spots  and  irregular  figures  upon  its  surface,  giving  it  the  appear- 
ance of  some  old  housewife's  counterpane,  made  up  of  all  her  odds  and  ends.  A  rather  neat, 
though  plain,  wooden  fence  surrounded  it,  of  fresh,  new  cjrpress,  as  yet  unacquainted  with 
either  paint  or  whitewash. 

In  front  stared  the  same  old  quiet  church,  a  little  the  worse  for  age.  By  its  side  a  rather 
pretentious,  though  low  brick  building  of  the  most  alarming  white,  with  a  picturesque  roof  of 
new  red  and  yellow  tiles-  fpon  the  left  of  the  church,  slightly  back  of  the  street,  stood  a  pretty 
villa-like  house,  half  hidden  behind  the  trees,  cut  and  shaved  in  curious  outre  shapes,  in  mild 
imitation  of  the  wonders  of  Versailles. 

In  front,  bound  to  the  levee  by  a  ponderous  wooden  draw-bridge,  floated  a  tall  three-decked 
galleon,  her  poop  rising  high  into  the  air,  adorned  with  fanciful  wood-carving  and  painted  in 
the  gaudiest  colors.  From  her  masts  and  ropes,  amid  which  a  himdred  jolly  tars  clung  and 
leaped,  waved  a  thousand  flags.  Above  them  all,  with  its  golden  castles  and  red  lions  waved 
the  proud  banner  of  Spain.  Further  out  in  the  stream  lay  a  dozen  brothers  to  this  vessel,  alike 
in  everything. 


144  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

In  the  square  a  large  number  of  persons  were  collected.  There  a  follower  of  the  ancient 
regime,  with  powdered  hair  and  queue  tied  up  in  brilliant  ribbons,  with  silk  and  gold-flowered 
coat  and  long  vest ;  upon  the  coat  cuffs  frills  and  lace  that  had  been  washed  by  some  divine 
blanchisseuse. 

By  his  side  a  long  sword,  highly  ornamented  in  inlaid  gold  and  silver  frosted  work. 

Leaning  upon  his  arm  appeared  his  lady  in  thick  brocaded  gown  and  rich  head-dress,  her 
long  robe  trailing  half-a-mile  behind,  from  her  broad,  immensely  swollen  hoop  petticoat ;  her 
charms  slightly  heightened  by  rouge  and  half  a  dozen  other  cosmetics,  en  regie  at  that  time. 

Nobody  seemed  to  be  in  a  n'oyous  mood ;  no  laughing  was  heard  and  but  little  whispering, 
and  that  was  in  a  solemn  tone.  Every  now  and  then  the  names  of  Lafr^niere,  Marquis,  Milhet, 
Noyan  and  Caresse  were  murmured,  and  the  speaker  would  then  turn  to  gaze  at  a  gi-oup  of  men 
in  the  centre  of  the  square.  This  group  which  stood  alone,  was  composed  of  five  men,  dressed 
in  the  ordinary  attire  of  the  colony,  but  with  their  arms  tied  behind  them,  and  their  hands 
chained  together  with  handcuffs. 

The  first  of  these  was  a  tall,  majestic,  fine-looking  man,  his  hair  slightly  gray,  but  his 
undimmed  eye  showing  spirit,  ambition  and  knowledge.  This  was  Lafreniere,  the  Tribune  of 
Louisiana.  Beside  him  stood  a  very  young  man  upon  whose  chin  a  beard  had  hardly  yet 
appeared ;  his  face  was  calm  and  delicate,  his  nose  straight,  his  every  feature  told  of  Normandy 
and  noble  birth.  The  next  was  of  middle  size,  with  heavy  yellow  beard  and  moustaches ;  his 
figure  straight  and  erect,  bearing  all  the  appearance  of  an  old  and  professional  soldier  of  fortune 
—a  Swiss.  On  his  right  stood  a  short,  stout,  red-faced  gentleman  who,  though  dressed  in  pow- 
dered wig  and  knee-breeches,  bore  all  the  signs  and  tokens  of  a  merchant.  The  last  man  was  tall 
and  well  built,  with  very  dark  complexion,  his  thick  hair  hanging  in  long  loose  locks  over  his 
shoulders.  They  were  the  five  rebels,  who  had  not  yet  been  murdered  like  Yiller^.  Before 
them  stood  a  long  line  of  grenadiers  ;  on  their  right  a  troop  of  mounted  dragoons;  near  the 
gate  the  artillery  with  some  fifty  long,  slender  guns,  with  their  names  "Carlos,"  "Guerra," 
"Maria,"  on  their  sides  in  high  raised  letters,  and  ornamented  with  many  a  scene  of  war,  or 
dragons  belching  fire,  or  griffins  devouring  men. 

At  the  head  of  these  men  stood,  with  his  arms  folded  and  his  head  slightly  bowed,  as  if  in 
thought,  a  man  in  the  prime  of  life.  His  face  was  slightly  reddened  and  sunburnt,  but  though 
his  body  was  hidden  in  the  uniform  of  Spain,  and  his  face  in  "the  shadowy  livery  of  the  bur- 
nished sun,"  the  merest  glance  revealed  him  to  be  an  Irishman,  the  famous  "General  Count 
O'Reilly,"  Governor,  by  appointment,  of  Louisiana. 

By  bis  side  stood  all  his  staff  officers,  and  by  them  half  a  dozen  men,  attired  in  yellow, 
green  and  purple,  bearing  heavy  silver  maces  in  their  hands. 

A  fire  was  burning  to  the  left  of  the  prisoners  ;  half  a  dozen  negroes  appeared  with  their 
arms  fuU  of  books,  which  they  handed  to  a  tall  and  very  black  negro,  who  threw  them,  one  by 
one,  into  the  fire,  while  a  little  old  man,  in  rusty  black  gown,  walked  around,  crying  in  a  loud 
voice:  "This,  the  memorial  of  the  planters  of  Louisiana,  is,  by  order  of  his  Excellency. 
Don  Alexander  O'Reilly,  thus  publicly  burnt,  for  containing  the  following  rebellious  and 
atrocious  doctrines : 
*  Liberty  is  the  mother  of  commerce  and  population.    Without  liberty  there  are  biUfew  virtues.'  " 

As  the  smoke  ascended  from  the  last  copy,  the  little  crier  ran  around  the  square  chanting, 
amidst  the  solemn  silence  of  the  people  the  order,  "  Whereas,  Nicholas  Chauvin  de  Lafreniere. 
Pierre  Marquis,  Joseph  Milhet,  Jean  Baptiste  Noyau  and  Pierre  Caresse,  have  been  found 
guilty ;  they  are  ordered  to  be  shot  for  high  treason  committed  against  his  Most  Catholic 
Majesty,  the  King  of  Spain." 

A  grenadier  stepped  forward,  offering  to  bind  their  eyes.  Lafreniere  waved  him  aside. 
"No,"  cried  he,  a  haughty  smile  passing  over  his  face;  "think  you  we  are  afraid  to  look  on 
death,"  and  turning  around  to  the  citizens  he  waved  his  hand  in  adieu,  and  said  :  "  Farewell,  fel- 
low-citizens I  The  cry  of  liberty  is  already  heard;  it  will  be  crowned  with  victory."  He  had  barely 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  145 

finished,  when  the  crier  again  stepped  forward  and  cried  :  "  In  consequence  of  his  youth,  Don 
Alexander  O'Reilly,  Governor  of  Louisiana,  spares  Monsieur  de  Noyan."  "No,"  cried  the 
beardless  young  man,  "  with  my  comrades  I  fought ;  with  them  I  die." 

"Are  you  ready?"  cried  the  Spanish  captain.  "  Ready?  Yes  ;  always  ready,  and  if  we  do 
not  order  the  fire  ourselves,  it  is  because  you  are  not  soldiers,  but  assassins."  A  platoon  of 
dragoons  wheeled  around,  and  leveled  their  guns— a  sudden  flash— and  ere  the  report  had 
echoed  through  the  square,  the  five  had  fallen,  sending  up  to  heaven,  amidst  the  fire  and  smoke 
which  hovered  around  them,  and  whilst  the  death  rattle  was  even  then  choking  their  breath, 
a  last  cry  of  "  Vive  la  LouisianeP'' 

JACKSON  SQUARE.— 1815. 

A  cold  blast  blew  through  the  square,  the  leaves  shrivelled  up  and  dropped  from  the  trees 
—from  all  save  two  mighty,  far-spreading  sycamores,  standing  near  the  wide  wooden  gateway. 

But.  though  nature  was  asleep.  New  Orleans  was  not.  The  square  was  covered  with  all 
colors,  all  raoes,  all  ages,  in  holiday  attire  and  smiling  faces,  save  here  and  there  a  dress  of 
black  and  an  eye  glistening  with  tears.  From  the  balconies  of  the  Town  Hall,  and  Parsonage 
opposite,  looked  down  the  Creole  belles  of  our  city  ;  the  bow- windows  and  tesselated  roofs  of 
all  the  surrounding  houses  were  crowded,  and  even  the  trees  were  peopled  by  the  gamins— a}\ 
gazing  with  eager  eyes  to  see  some  expected  show. 

The  old  Cathedral  was  burnished  up  in  splendid  style,  its  whole  front  wreathed  in  hanging 
evergreens.  In  the  open  place  in  tlie  centre  of  the  square  stood  a  tall  arch  of  triumph,  sup" 
ported  by  six  Corinthian  pillars,  around  which  curled  long,  creeping  parasites  of  evergreens, 
with  roses,  lilies  and  jasmines  creeping  from  beneath  their  folds.  Beneath  this  arbor  stood  two 
little  girls,  in  white  muslin  dresses,  radiant  in  many-colored  ribbons.  From  this  to  the  Cathedral 
door,  extended  on  either  side  a  long  line  of  evergreens,  upheld  by  golden  lances,  from  each  of 
which  floated  a  flag  embroidered  with  the  emblasoned  arms  and  motto  of  a  sovereign  state. 
Beside  each  banneret  stood,  as  guardian,  a  fair  Creole,  upon  her  forehead  a  silver  star,  over  her 
arm  a  basket  filled  with  blooming  flowers. 

Upon  the  other  side,  leading  to  the  levee,  stood  two  long  ranks  of  soldiers  ;  upon  the  right 
hand,  a  company  of  mulattoes.  Next  to  them,  a  body  of  Choctaw  Indians,  plumed,  painted  and 
blanketed  as  usual.  Opposite  these  stood  a  set  of  rough-looking  men,  with  long,  unwashed 
faces,  and  scraggy,  unshaven  beards,  arrayed  in  dirty  woolen  hunting-shirts  of  dingy  blue  and 
brown,  and  pants  of  butternut  or  grass-green  color.  Upon  their  heads,  fur  caps,  adorned  with 
bushy  tails  that  told  of  raccoon  and  squirrel  hunts  in  the  wilds  of  Kentucky  or  Tennessee ;  in 
their  rough,  untanned  deer-skin  belts  rows  of  knives,  pistols  and  tomahawks,  and  on  their 
shoulders  their  trusty  rifles,  no  two  alike  in  length,  size  or  make. 

Suddenly  a  roar  of  cannon  on  the  levee  echoed  through  the  square,  the  boys  on  the  tree-tops 
shouted,  the  ladies  waved  their  handkerchiefs,  and  the  soldiers  brightened  up,  and  strove,  in 
vain,  to  assume  military  attitudes,  and  change  the  look  of  pleasure  on  their  faces  to  one  of  duty 
and  importance,  as  a  group  of  half  a  dozen  men  entered  the  levee  gate. 

The  first  man  who  entered  was  a  tall,  gaunt,  sallow,  old  man  with  iron-gray  hair;  his  face  was 
beardless  and  wrinkled,  and  an  expression  of  severity  and  sternness  gave  it  a  forbidding  aspect. 
His  dress  was  simple,  almost  threadbare  ;  a  leather  cap  protected  his  head,  an  old  blue  cloak  his 
body.  A  single  glance  revealed  Andrew  Jackson.  Though  different  in  dress,  his  form  and  face 
were  the  same  which  in  bronze  to-day  look  down  upon  and  protect  the  square,  so  very  like, 
that  it  seems  as  if,  in  imitation  of  the  commander  in  Don  Giovanni,  the  old  General  might  have 
dismounted  from  his  horse,  and  having  changed  his  clothes,  come  here  to  revel  in  old  memories. 
By  his  side  stood  a  man  as  tall,  though  stouter  than  he,  a  man  of  herculean  frame,  dressed  in  the 
rudest  border  style.    It  could  be  none  but  Coffee. 

By  their  side  walked  Col  Patterson,  a  stout,  compact,  melancholic  man,  in  neat  undress  naval 
uniform. 


146  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

As  they  walked  up  these  human  aisles,  cheers  on  cheers  went  up  in  endless  succession,  deal 
ening  the  very  cannon,  and  shocking  the  air  as  if  with  an  aerial  earthquake.  They  neared  th 
arch,  the  General  stopped,  The  two  little  girls,  mounted  on  tip-toe,  removed  his  cap,  and  droppei 
a  laurel  wreath  upon  his  brow,  w^hich  blushed  a  rosy  red  beneath  its  weather-beaten  sallownes? 

A  young  lady,  glowing  with  all  the  beauty  of  this  sunny  clime,  holding  in  her  hand  a  baniv 
bearing  the  proud  name  of  Louisiana,  stepped  forward,  and  in  that  name  welcomed  "  the  hero 
New  Orleans."    The  old  soldier's  face  brightened;  some  fairy  hands  smoothed  down  the  wrink' 
on  his  brow,  and  in  a  trembling  voice  he  had  commenced,  "Ladies  of  Louisiana,"  when  each 
the  young  ladies  drew  handfuls  of  flowers  from  their  baskets  and  drowned  the  General  in  a  flo; 
rain.    Again  this  singular  group  marched  forward  amidst  this  Cirnival  of  flowers.    Astl. 
mounted  the  Cathedral  steps,  another  cheer,  another  halt.    Around  them  crowd  the  Battaliu. 
d'Orleans,  each  a  hero  of  the  war  who  had  spent  his  Christmas  and  New  Year  amidst  the  marshe 
of  Chalmette,  carrying  in  the  muzzle  of  his  gun  a  bouquet,  the  trophy  given  by  some  fond  wif 
or  sweetheart.    There  in  the  gateway  stood  the  Chasseurs,  the  Louisiana  Blues,  the  Hulans,  th 
Carbineers.    On  the  steps  were  all  the  dignitaries  of  the  town,  Governor  Claiborne,  the  Mayo 
Girod,  the  Captains  Plauche,  "White,  St.  Gene  and  Gibert,  with  Livingstone,  Ghrymes,  Dussaudel 
Croix,  Villere,  etc.     But  in  the  centre  of  the  door  stood  the  cynosure  of  all  eyes,  the  Abbe  Du 
bourg,  clad  in  all  the  splendor  of  his  canonical  robes,  and  surrounded  by  a  college  of  his  priests 
As  the  General  approached,  he  stepped  forward  and  said,  "Gladly  do  we  welcome  the  hero o 
Chalmette— gladly  do  we  tender  him  our  thanks;  but  a  greater  than  he  guided  his  sword  an( 
directed  his  counsels.    Let  us  sing  forth  His  praise."    As  his  words  died  away,  the  Te  Deun 
broke  forth  in  all  its  majesty,  and  lights  of  all  colors,  red,  white  and  blue,  shone  from  ever; 
window,  making  the  street  bright  vnth  artificial  day. 

SPANISH    FOET. 

The  traditions  of  the  old  Spanish  fort  embrace  the  whole  history  of  the  foundation  and  settle 
ment  of  New  Orleans.  Beginning  with  the  landing  of  Bienville  at  the  mouth  of  the  bayou  whicl 
he  named  St.  Jean,  and  his  resting  with  his  wearied  followers  on  the  high  ground  on  which  th€ 
remnant  of  the  fort  now  stands,  preparatory  to  his  ascent  of  the  bayou,  in  pursuit  of  the  shortest 
line  between  Lake  Pontchartrain  and  the  Mississippi  river,  and  tracing  down  through  the  cen- 
tury and  a  half  which  have  since  passed,  the  most  vivid  and  interesting  incidents  of  that  history 
will  be  found  to  group  around  this  old  fort.  It  was  indeed  the  initial  point  of  Bienville's  great 
enterprise.  His  ambition  could  not  be  satisfied  with  the  feeble  and  discouraging  efforts  made 
by  the  first  settlers  at  East  Biloxi,  now  Ocean  Springs.  He  was  not  of  the  nature  to  sit  quietly 
down  and  await  starvation  in  that  poor  and  desolate  spot,  when  the  banks  of  the  Mississippi  and 
the  high  lands  of  the  bayous  flowing  from  it  were  so  easily  attainable.  And  so,  selecting  the 
most  active  and  enterprising  of  his  followers,  he  worked  his  way  in  barges  to  and  through  the 
Bayou  St.  John  and  discovered  an  easy  passage  to  the  high  grounds,  within  a  mile  and  a  half  of 
the  main  current  of  the  Mississippi.  It  was  here  the  first  huts  were  erected  of  the  future  ffreat 
city.  When  the  decline  of  the  river  within  its  banks  opened  to  settlement  the  rich  plain  of  the 
alluvion,  it  was  occupied  with  a  thin  line  of  huts  which  then,  reversing  the  present  contour  of 
the  city,  extended  at  risht  angles  from  the  river  to  the  bayou.  It  was  through  the  bayou  all  the 
travel  and  commerce  of  the  little  settlement  was  conducted.  The  only  ports  with  which  such 
communications  were  then  maintained  were  those  of  the  Bay  of  St  Louis  and  Biloxi,  where  the 
parent  colonies  still  lingered  in  a  depleted  and  half-starved  condition,  awaiting  reUef  from  old 
France.  A  brilliant  success  crowned  the  design  of  Bienville,  and  the  settlement  developed  into 
quite  a  pretentious  town  under  him  and  his  French  successors.  And  when,  as  a  result  of 
European  wars  and  entanglements,  France  lost  her  hold  upon  her  colony,  and  Spain  assumed 
dominion,  it  cannot  be  denied  that  her  governors  proved  fully  equal  to  the  task  of  completing 
and,  indeed,  expanding  the  scope  of  Bienville's  enterprise.    Those  old  Spanish  governors  were 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  147 

really  great  men.  They  had  their  big'otries  and  thAr  inordinate  pride  and  hauteur,  but  t^iey 
were  also  men  of  large  views,  of  great  energy  and  a  high  sense  of  duty  to  their  nation  a''d 
their  offices. 

No  greater  names  can  be  found  in  our  history  than  those  of  DelJlloa,  Galvezand  Carondelet. 
Even  O'Reilly,  accused  for  his  cruelties  to  the  old  French  settlers  and  Creoles,  was  a  vigorous 
and  faithful  protector  and  promoter  of  the  interests  and  prosperity  of  the  colony.  It  was  De 
Ulloa  who  directed  and  executed  the  building  of  the  Fort  St.  John,  of  which  the  foundations 
and  walls  now  remain,  inclosing  the  hotel  and  promenade  grounds,  to  which  the  people  of  New 
Orleans  now  resort  for  enjoyment  and  recreation.  He  was  the  same  who,  as  Vice-Regent  of 
Mexico,  designed  the  powerful  fortress  which  defends  the  entrance  to  the  harbor  of  Vera  Cruz 
and  which  was  named  after  him.  Carondelet  conceived  and  accomplished  the  still  greater 
enterprise  of  constructing  the  canal  from  the  head  of  Bayou  St.  John  to  the  Old  Basin,  for  so 
long  a  period  the  central  locality  of  the  old  city. 

During  the  Spanish  dominion  the  fort  at  the  mouth  of  the  bayou  was  kept  in  good  condition 
and  repair  and  well  fortified.  It  was  regarded  as  the  principal  protection  of  the  city  against 
any  sudden  assault  and  raid  of  the  Indians  or  of  the  pirates  who  t  en  abounded  in  the  Gulf  of 
Mexico,  and  frequently  raided  the  young  colonies  which  could  be  reached  by  their  cruisers. 
Thus  the  old  fort  was  always  garrisoned  and  held  ready  to  defend  the  only  practicable  approach 
to  the  city  at  that  time. 

After  both  Spanish  and  French  dominions  had  ceased  in  Louisiana,  and  the  stars  and  stripes 
waved  over  the  old  structure  of  De  Llloa,  Andrew  Jackson  and  his  staff,  hurrying  from  Pensa- 
cola  and  Mobile,  after  the  brilliant  campaign  against  the  Creek  Indians  and  the  conquest  of 
Florida,  found  the  Spanish  Fort,  with  its  very  ancient  guns  in  position  and  an  effective  garrison 
of  artillerists,  prepared  to  repel  an  invader  far  more  formidable  than  the  Indians  and  freebooters 
of  the  Spanish  main.  The  British  cruisers  were  then  engaged  in  a  close  survey  of  all  the 
approaches  to  the  city,  preparatory^  to  the  great  expedition  which  had  been  long  contemplated 
against  it,  and  which,  a  few  mouths  subsequently,  met  with  so  disastrous  a  conclusion. 

Jackson  and  his  staff  reached  the  old  fort  in  schooners  and  barges,  bringing  their  horses 
with  them.  Coffee's  brigade  of  mounted  riflemen  had  been  sent  by  land  around  the  lakes  to  join 
the  little  army  then  concentrating  in  New  Orleans. 

Stopping  long  enough  to  receive  the  salutations  of  the  garrison  of  the  old  fort,  Jackson 
ordered  his  staff  to  saddle  up,  and  quickly  mounting,  the  little  party  proceeded  by  the  narrow 
pathway  along  the  ridge  upon  which  the  railway  now  runs  toward  the  settlement  at  the  head 
of  the  bayou.  Here  he  was  received  by  the  late  Kelly  Smith,  then  a  Federal  officer  in  the  city, 
was  refreshed  with  a  generous  collation,  after  partaking  of  wiiich  the  General  and  staff 
remounted  their  horses,  proceeded  along  the  Bayou  Road  as  far  as  the  junction  with  Esplanade 
street.  Here  he  was  met  by  the  Governor,  the  Mayor,  the  State  and  city  officials,  and  the  not- 
abilities of  our  population,  and  welcomed  with  great  enthusiasm,  and  the  keys  of  the  city 
intrusted  to  his  care  and  all  its  resources  placed  at  his  command. 

How  he  fulfilled  this  trust  and  justified  this  confidence  is  familiar  to  all  readers  of  history. 

Returning  to  the  old  fort's  history,  alas  1  that  we  should  have  to  record  an  incident  of  the 
sad  and  uncontrolable  grief  and  insubordination  of  the  veteran  warrior  of  Vinegar  Hill  and 
first  lieutenant  of  the  garrison,  who,  during  the  great  battle  of  the  eighth  of  January,  1815, 
became  so  disgusted  with  the  inaction  of  the  garrison  and  his  exclusion  from  all  the  gaudia 
certaminis  of  actual  conflict  with  "the  bloody  Red  Coats,"  that  with  a  few  of  his  countrymen  he 
stole  out  of  the  fort  and  tramped  through  the  swamps  to  the  field  of  Chalmette,  alas  !  too  late 
to  participate  in  its  glories,  but  not  too  late  to  gloat  over  the  gory  spectacle  exhibited  by  the 
field  which  had  been  swept  by  Jackson's  artillery  and  musketry,  and  to  join  in  the  loud  huzzas 
that  rung  along  the  American  lines  as  Pakenham's  grand  army  melted  away  in  the  distance. 

Forty  years  ago  the  old  Spanish  Fort  had  become  the  private  lakeside  residence  of  a  wealthy 
Fienchman  named  Millaudon.    He  was  a  man  of  large  ideas,  considerable  enterprise  and  some- 


148  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

what  addicted  to  hobbies.  He  had  two  favorite  hobbies.  The  one  was  bis  suprar  plantation, 
now  cultivated  by  the  Ames  brothers,  on  the  other  side  of  the  river  just  above  Gretna.  On  this 
plantation  Mr.  Millaudon  expended  many  thousands  of  dollars  in  experimenting  with  every  new 
mechanical  invention  for  the  manufacture  and  refining  of  sugar  and  the  distillation  of  rum.  It 
was  always  a  mystery  how  any  resources  could  stand  the  drain  Imposed  by  Mr.  Millaudon  for 
the  gratification  of  this  ambition.  But  it  was  well  known  that  the  yield  of  every  season  during 
his  cultivation  of  this  plantation  with  at  least  300  slaves,  exhibited  a  large  loss  on  the  cost  and 
the  expense  Incurred  by  the  owner  in  his  experimenting  with  every  new  mechanical  invention 
proposed  to  him,  so  that  after  many  years he'had  accumulated  a  mass  of  machinery  which  had 
failed  in  executing  its  purposes,  for  the  material  of  which  he  was  offered  S40,000  by  a  thrifty 
ironmonger. 

The  other  pet  hobby  of  Mr.  Millaudon  was  his  lake  residence  at  the  mouth  of  Bayou  St. 
John,  built  on  the  foundation  of  the  old  fort.  Here  he  made  large  investments  in  protecting  the 
site  from  the  constant  overflows  of  the  lake  and  the  abrasion  of  the  levee,  planting  trees  and 
laying  out  a  garden,  until  it  had  become  quite  a  pleasant  place  for  family  sojourn  during  the 
summer.  Mr.  Millaudon  or  his  family  did  not  long  enjoy  the  pleasures  of  this  lakeside  residence. 
and  receiving  a  large  offer  for  it  as  a  hotel  by  certain  capitalists  interested  in  a  shell  road,  which 
had  become  a  popular  drive  for  our  fashionable  and  wealthy  people,  said  road  meandering 
through  the  swamp  with  the  course  of  the  bayou,  Mr.  Millaudon  sold  his  farm-house  or  villa  for 
a  hotel.  It  passed  into  the  management  of  the  Elkiu  Club,  which  kept  a  very  delightful  table. 
All  the  politicians,  the  gi-eat  merchants  and  lovers  of  luxury  were  wont  to  resort  to  Elkins  for  a 
good  time.  This  epoch  in  the  history  of  the  old  fort  was  not  of  long  duration.  The  Club  was 
given  up,  and  for  many  years,  with  a  few  spasmodic  efforts  to  revive  its  ancient  glories,  the 
fort  was  abandoned  and  almost  forgotten  by  our  people. 

At  last  a  vigorous  effort  was  made  by  the  company,  which  constructed  the  railroad  known 
as  the  Spanish  Fort  road,  to  restore  its  fortunes.  This  object  had  been  reached  and  the  fort  was 
beginning  to  be  a  very  attractive  resort,  when  the  company  became  involved  in  financial  trou- 
bles and  its  enterprising  constructors  were  compelled  to  bring  their  property  to  the  block,  and 
lost  large  sums  thereby,  and  the  Messrs.  Schwarz  became  the  purchasers,  under  whose  manage- 
ment the  place  again  became  one  of  the  most  agreeable  lakeside  resorts  in  the  country. 

THE  WEST  END. 

For  many  years  there  was  no  such  drive  as  the  new  shell  road,  no  such  beautiful  canal  as 
the  new  canal,  nor  was  there  anywhere  on  the  lake  so  capacious  and  elegant  a  hotel  as  that 
erected  by  the  Canal  Bank,  at  the  terminus.  Oh  !  v»'hat  glorious  dinners,  what  grand  frolics, 
what  unbounded  jollity  were  wont  to  reign  at  that  universally  popular  and  fashionable  hostelry. 
For  a  long  time  this  superiority  over  all  other  resorts  was  kept  up,  but  after  the  war  the  hotel 
was  burned,  the  New  Canal  fell  into  other  hands,  the  shell  road  was  neglected  and  ceased  to  be 
an  agreeable  drive,  and  the  glory  of  old  Dan  Hickok  departed. 

Then  the  City  Railroad  started  its  enterprise  for  the  extension  of  its  road  from  the 
terminus  at  the  cemeteries  to  the  lake,  obtained  a  charter  to  run  dummies  from  Canal  street  to 
the  lake,  along  the  canal,  and  completed  and  furnished  its  road  in  fine  style,  so  that  in  a  very 
short  time  it  re-established  the  old  popularity  of  the  New  Lake,  and  was  encoui-aged  by  a  large 
and  constant  patronage,  which  it  held  for  several  years.  But,  finally,  it  encountered  great  loss  and 
damage  by  the  great  tempest,  of  several  years  ago,  which  broke  up  the  revetment  and  swept 
away  all  the  houses  which  had  been  erected  along  the  shore.  This  furnished  the  opportunity  to 
the  Spanish  Fort  road,  of  which  they  made  good  use.  But  the  old  company  set  to  work  to  repair 
these  damages,  and  under  the  attractive  name  of  West  End,  and  by  an  expenditure  of  overa 
hundred  thousand  dollars  restored  the  ancient  glories  and  re-established  the  popularity  of 
this  resort. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS. 


149 


CHAPTER  XVI.— CREOLE  NEW  ORLEANS. 

THE  LOUISIANA   CREOLES— THEIR    HOMES  AND   MANNER   OF    LIVING— THE   CREOLE   POETRV 
— THE   REFUGEES    FROM   SAN   DOMINGO. 

Down  in  the  neighborhood  of  the  old  Cathedral,  where  Chartres  street,  buzzing  and  lazils 
bustling,  widens  out  into  the  broad,  green  smile  of  a  public  square,  there  are  queer  little  alley- 
ways piercing  from  one  street  to  another,  running  by  the  cool  Cathedral  closes.  The  mother 
church  bends  defiant  front  to  the  white  glare  of  the  river,  to  the  innovation  of  slirill  steam-car 
whistles,  that  would  cry  down  the  deep  bay  and  growl  of  lier  bells,  but  cannot ;  and  away  from 
the  church  into  the  narrow  alley  falls  grateful  shadow,  in  which  a  beggar  or  two  makes  monoto- 
nous moans  for  unexpected  aims.  A  hot  rush  of  wind  from  the  river,  sweetened  by  filtration 
through  the  rose  patches  of  the  big  square,  comes  down  into  the  shadowy  alley,  rattling  the 
green  Venetian  blinds  at  the  white  windows,  and  whipping  at  the  long  curtains  of  knotted  cord 
hung  over  certain  of  the  open  doorways,  just  as  one  may  see  them  in  Florence  and  Rome  in  the 
summer  time.  The  signs  hereabout  are  all  French,  and  that  ot  "avocat "  seems  predominant. 
Groups  of  men  chattering  over  their  cigarettes  interfere  with  pedestrianism  in  the  alley,  and 
stare  with  Gallic  curiosity  and  gallantry  after  every  petticoated  individual  that  passes.  A  priest, 
in  cassock— and  he  plump  and  good-tempered,  with  face  shining  like  a  newly-peeled  onion- 
leans  laughing  against  the  black  balustrade  in  one  of  these  old  French  houses. 

Just  in  this  neighborhood  is  a  dingy  old  bookstore  ;  the  house  of  stone,  one-storied,  musty 
and  damp.  Books  are  piled  around  the  four  walls  ten  feet  high,  and  if  one  would  loiter  in  this 
learned  den,  one  must  needs  stand  up  to  one's  reading,  for  chair  or  resting-place  there  is  none. 
The  proprietor  of  this  shop  has  gone  abroad.  He  makes  such  trips  tAvice  or  thrice  a  year. 
There  is  plenty  of  custom  for  old  things  in  old  IS^ew  Orleans,  and  sharp  buyers  from  the  North, 
hungry  for  bargains,  snatch  greedily  for  every  rare  volume,  or  strange  bit  of  brass,  or  bronze, 
or  crystal,  that  finds  impoverished  way  into  these  old,  dirty,  second-hand  shops. 

Try  speaking  English  to  any  of  the  dwellers  in  this  neighborhood  and  one  is  answered  in 
the  carressing  accents  and  delicious  dialect  that  makes  so  large  a  part  of  the  charm  of 
Cable's  books. 

There  can  be  no  place  in  America  quite  like  old  New  Orleans.  One  who  has  seen  them, 
can  never  quite  forget  the  gray  stone-arched  entrances  to  the  old  courtyards,  and  the  houses 
wrinkled  with  acre  and  with  dusty  dormer  windows  blinking  down  like  faded,  aged  eyes  over 
which  a  growth  of  golded  rod  leans  like  a  monstrous  bushy  eyebrow.  A  wild  tangle  of  vines 
grows  in  most  of  these  dark  courtyards,  some  of  which  are  given  over  to  complete  decay; 
others,  however,  being  trimly  neat  and  pretty  as  the  homes  of  prosperous  French  people  invar- 
iably are. 

Many  of  the  shops  contain  odd  wares.  In  a  house  whose  round  upper  windows,  covered 
Interiorly  with  white  blinds,  look  precisely  like  sleeping  eyes,  is  a  music  shop.  Songs  in  the 
windows  are  French  ;  the  master  stands  within,  humming  a  gay  little  chansonette,  and  a  curi- 
ous gray  old  print,  representing  a  concert  in  a  monastery,  gathers  a  laughing  crowd  at  the 
show  window. 

Next  door  in  the  jeweler's  shop,  among  the  odds  and  ends,  is  an  exquisite  Venetian  gondola, 
done  in  filagree  silver,  with  gondoliers  and  all  complete. 

The  down-town  people  of  the  poorer  localities  are  great  lovers  of  potted  flowers  and  sing- 
ing birds.  Some  streets  are  fine  with  color,  owing  to  the  brilliant  red  masses  of  geraniums 
that  blossom  boldly  in  defiance  of  the  hottest  sun ;  and  many  a  tiny  bit  of  iron  gallery  jutting  in 


150  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

curious  fashion  out  of  some  tall  window  is  transformed  into  the  coolest  of  arbors  by  looped- 
up  cypress  vines,  which  lay  their  long  fingers  on  everything  they  can  reach. 

Here  seed  dealers  do  a  brisk  business  in  mignonnette,  morning  glory  and  pansy  seeds,  while 
the  flower  dealers  over  at  the  market  hard  by  can,  on  Sunday  mornings,  hardly  supply  the 
demand  for  pots  of  purple  Marguerites  and  pink  China  asters. 

In  this  French  town  everything  is  so  widely  different  from  things  in  new  New  Orleans.  Here 
the  mover's  cart  is  but  seldom  seen;  in  a  strange,  un-American  way  the  people  are  deeply  rooted, 
and  many  talk  of  their  ancestry  or  posterity.  Many  a  youug  matron  lives  in  the  house  her  great- 
grandmother  occupied,  and  the  passer-by  making  excursions  down  some  of  those  long,  narrow 
streets,  where  there  is  a  hazy  perspective  of  red-tiled  roofs  tangled  together  or  strung  one  to 
the  other  by  freighted  clotheslines,  has  now  and  again  glimpses  of  quaint  interiors.  Cool,  red 
sanded  floors,  quaint  spindle-legged  dressing  tables,  cabinets  positively  antique,  rich  with 
carvings,  and  black  with  age,  mosaic  tables  pieced  together  long  before  the  grand  mosaic  of 
these  United  States  was  half  designed,  and  over  the  tall,  high  and  narrow  mantel  shelves  with 
their  heavy  cornices  and  mimic  Corinthian  columns,  reared  about  an  absurdly  small  bit  of  a 
fireplace,  gigantic  vases  of  Sevres,  odd  bits  of  Bohemian  ware,  botiles  and  absinthe  glasses. 
In  these  stiff,  straight  up  and  down  brick  mansions  with  solid  green  sliutters,  damp  courtyards 
and  corridors,  like  the  tunnels  of  the  catacombs,  the  occupants  come  and  go  in  generations. 

So  long  have  they  been  in  possession,  undisturbed  bj^  agents  or  repairers,  that  the  younger 
members  of  the  family  are  almost  sure  that  the  "landlord"  living  beyond  the  sea  is  but  a 
myth,  and  the  rental  faithfully  foi'warded  at  the  close  of  each  month  is  but  a  sad  waste  of 
money. 

Sometimes  in  the  wedge  of  light  streaming  in  between  the  bowed  wooden  shutters  one  can 
see  a  neat  old  French  lady— a  Madame  of  a  style  at  least  fifty  years  out  of  date,  rocking  back 
and  forth.  She  is  brown,  slim  of  build,  and  with  a  fine  aquiline  face ;  and  she  has  great 
glittering,  barbaric  hoops  of  gold  in  her  old  ears.  She  wears  a  thin,  short  gown  of  cross-barred 
nainsook — now-a-days  such  gowns  are  worn  by  her  great-grand-children  and  called  "  Mother 
Hubbards."  She  is  a  quaint,  sharp,  knowing  and  talkative  old  French  Mother  Hubbard,  rock- 
ing away  in  the  high-backed  wooden  chair  which  contrasts  illy  with  the  mahogany  dressing-cases 
and  oaken  sideboard. 

Sauntering  down  one  of  the  side  streets,  we  glance  into  porte  cocheres  that  reveal  vistas  of 
beautiful  quadrangular  gardens,  ivy-clad  walls,  bubbling,  sparkling  fountains.  Stairways  lead 
to  galleries,  upon  which  open  salons  whose  proportions  dwarf  Queen  Anne  cottage  parlors  into 
doll-house  apartments.  The  lower  floors,  stili  reserved  for  business,  once  the  scene  of  fashion's 
barter,  are  now  the  resort  for  those  in  search  of  oddities  in  goods  and  trades. 

Placards—"  Chambres  garnies'''  dangle  from  long  twines  tied  to  hanging  balconies,  the 
point  of  juncture  hidden  by  vines  that  swing  over  the  railing  to  catch  upon  other  twines 
stretched  tautly  to  upper  window-sills.  Behi  id  their  greenery,  geraniums  blaze  and  bloom  in 
their  improvised  beds,  as  brightly  and  blithely  as  if  rooted  upon  spacious  lawns. 

Windows  with  contents  sacred  and  secular  advertise  the  stoc'^  of  interiors  near  the  ol  1 
French  Cathedral.  Slate  pencils  and  rosaries,  cmdles  and  slates,  tape  and  missals,  perhaps, 
one  window  devoted  to  those  lugubrious  tributes  to  the  departed,  lack  and  white  beads, 
wieaths  and  baskets  of  all  sizes  and  qualities,  interspersed  ^\^th  boxes  of  the  tiny  nails  which 
fasten  them  to  the  tombs.  Passing  by  the  Cathedral  gardens  we  join  the  constant  stream  of 
the  devout  and  enter  the  ancient  pile. 

A  qui  yacen  los  restos 

Dn.  Andres  Almonaster  y  Roxas, 

is  inscribed  upuu  t  e  tomb  of  the  builder,  born  in  Andalusia  to  die  in  New  Orleans  on  April  26, 
1798,  aged  eventy-three  years.  Tinted  sunbeams  steal  in  through  the  lofty  lunettes  of  stained 
glass.    Holy  men  look  down  from  the  spandrels  upon  the  devotees  before  the  shrine  to  Our 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  151 

Lady  of  Lourde^.    Tributes  of  gratitude  for  her  mercy  and  grace  hang  thick  upon  the  wall, 
varying  from  the  tiny  print  to  handsome  vase?  and  tablets. 

LA  BELLE  CREOLE. 

Modest  and  retired,  with  but  little  attempt  at  architectural  ornament,  the  Creole's  home  is 
nevertheless  his  mot^t  sacred  possession,  about  which  cluster  his  most  endearing  memories  and 
fondest  hopes. 

Handed  down  from  father  to  son.  and  always  inhabited  by  persons  of  similar  tastes  and 
education,  these  old  Creole  homes  have  undergone  only  such  changes  a-^  the  needs  of  successive 
occupants  demanded,  leaving  their  original  design  without  material  alteration.  T'le  old  trees- 
venerable  centenarians— still  stand  where  they  were  planted  by  the  founders  of  the  homestead. 
Here  are  still  the  same  expansive  patterns  of  quaintly-shaped  beds,  with  centre-piece  of  curiously 
clipped  pitti-sporum,  and  borders  of  sweet  violets,  where  bloom  in  succession  the  old-fashioned 
jonquils,  lilies  and  amaryllis,  and  where  the  fragrant  myrtle  and  cape  jessamme  maintain  their 
ground  against  the  newer  favorite  of  more  modern  gardens. 

Winds,  dews  and  sunshine  indeed  seem  to  have  leagued  with  each  generation,  as  it  came, 
against  such  influences  as  would  mar  the  beauties  of  the  old  homestead,  or  steal  from  the 
revered  demesne  any  of  its  wealth  of  flower  or  foliage,  or  in  any  way  disturb  the  peaceful 
harmony  of  form  and  color  which  have  been  so  pleasantlv  preserved  in  t  he  long  lapse  of  years. 

And  so  the  charming  old  Creole  homestead  comes  down  to  its  occupants  of  to-day,  one  of  the 
few  memorials  of  olden  times,  worth  preserving,  that  have  been  well  preserved .  So  many  pleasant 
things  cluster  about  its  rooms  and  galleries  and  gardens  that  one  wonders  if  there  be  any  nook 
or  comer  wherein  to  stow  a  new  one.  There  comes  a  time,  however,  during  the  warm  summer 
months,  when  an  added  charm  is  bestowed  upon  the  old  homestead,  a  charm  that  casts  over  it  a 
spell  like  that  of  enchantment. 

The  pretty  Creole  maiden  bom  to  it  some  dozen  happy  years  before,  returns  from  the 
convent  where  she  had  gone  for  her  edacation,  to  spend  the  summer  vacation  at  home. 
Although  she  may  not  have  crossed  the  flowery  borders  of  young  maidenhood,  one  can  realize  the 
fascination  slumbering  in  her  dark  eyes,  as  their  fringed  lids  droop  over  them,  softening,  but 
not  diminishing  their  brilliance.  Her  petite  figure  is  formed  with  the  grace  and  lightness  of  a 
fairy,  and  her  voice  is  as  musical  as  the  song  of  a  bird.  Of  course  the  little  Creole  maiden  takes 
kindly  to  music.  She  has  been  as  it  were  cradled  in  song.  It  is  mother's  milk  to  her.  Her 
earliest  lullabies  were  operatic  airs.  She  comes  of  a  musical  family,  and,  would  be  untrue  to 
its  traditions  if  she  were  not  a  lover  of  the  art  musical.  She  is  fond  of  the  flowers  of  every  hue 
that  decorate  the  old  garden- walks,  which  in  their  delicate  loveliness  seem  akin  to  her,  and  of 
the  featliered  songsters  of  the  woodlands,  who  cease  their  song  to  listen  to  hers. 

Although  the  Creole  maiden  is  naturally  merry  and  vivacious,  there  is  none  of  that  wild 
rompishness  about  her  for  which  others  of  the  same  age,  but  of  different  training,  are  often 
distinguished.  Though  at  the  sound  of  her  voice  Sisypus  would  rest  upon  his  stone  and  pause 
to  listen,  there  is  none  of  that  boisterous  merriment  which  in  other  households  defy  the  rules  of 
etiquette  and  the  frowns  of  mothers.  And  yet  at  all  the  merry-makings  of  the  neighborhood 
demoiselle  seems  at  the  summit  of  girlish  felicity.  In  the  gay  parties  given  her  as  she  is  about 
to  return  to  her  studies  in  the  convent— the  feast  which  ushers  in  the  fast— she  is  the  merriest  of 
all  the  demoiselles  assembled. 

A  year  or  two  elapses— probably  more,  as  fortune  smiles  or  frowns  upon  the  family.  One 
day  there  comes  into  this  old  Creole  homestead,  with  its  oasis  of  verdure,  a  young  girl,  pretty  as 
its  flowers,  happy  as  its  birds.  It  is  our  little  demoiselle  of  the  vacation.  She  has  finished 
her  education  at  the  convent,  and  enjoyed  a  brief  but  gay  season  at  home  or  with  some  of  her 
schoolmates.    Orange  blossoms  shine  like  stars  in  the  midnight  of  her  hair,  and  a  single  rose-bud 


152  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

nestles  in  the  white  wonder  of  her  bosom.  She  returns  to  her  home  with  the  benedictions  of 
Holy  Church,  a  Creole  bride. 

Travel  where  you  will,  you  will  not  meet  with  one  so  fair,  so  fresh,  so  smiling,  so  graceful, 
merry  and  easily  contented  as  she.  See  her  once,  whether  in  the  happy  family  circle  or  in  the 
dancing  throng,  and  it  is  a  picture  framed  in  memory  undimmed  forever. 

Of  course  here  is  at  once  one  of  the  brightest  names  on  the  illuminated  page  of  society.  In 
accordance  with  the  law  and  custom  of  her  peculiar  circle,  she  selects  her  acquaintances  and 
makes  up  her  list  of  visiting  friends,  and  is  fastidious  in  her  selection.  She  could  not  be  more 
so  if  the  destinies  of  the  republic  were  at  stake.  None  but  the  select  are  to  be  found  at  her 
receptions;  and  to  be  admitted  at  her  reunions  is  a  much  coveted  honor.  All  the  surroundings  of 
her  home,  even  down  to  the  little  bits  of  porcelain  of  rare  ''Faience  de  Diane  de  Poitiers  "—the 
heirlooms  of  honored  ancestors— are  comme  ilfant,  elegant  and  refined.  Her  days  are  passed  in 
fetes  and  entertainments  of  every  description. 

Is  the  fair  Creole  bride  given  over  to  the  gauds  and  fripperies  of  fashionable  life?  Nay. 
The  brighter  parts  of  her  character,  which  shine  with  increasing  lustre  with  each  passing  year, 
have  had  their  source  in  another  school.  Her  unbounding  generosity,  her  true  nobility  of 
thought  and  feeling,  her  courage  and  her  truth,  her  pure,  unsullied  thought,  her  untiring 
charities,  her  devotion  to  parents  and  friends,  her  sympathy  with  sorrow,  her  kindness  to  her 
inferiors,  her  dignified  simplicity— where  could  these  have  been  learned  save  at  the  altars  of  her 
faith  ?  And  as  the  family  increases  does  the  Creole  matron  give  up  her  pleasant  receptions 
and  bals  damants  ?  And  has  the  fashionable  world  only  left  to  it  a  memory  and  a  tear  for 
what  was  so  brilliant  and  recherche  ?  Not  so.  Not  for  her  the  recluse  life  of  the  household 
cypher  or  the  nursury  drudge— 

"Retired  as  noontide  dew. 
Or  fountain  in  the  noonday  grove." 

She  unites  the  duties  of  home  with  the  pleasures  of  social  life.  Her  graceful  influence  is  felt  in 
both,  pleasantly  reminding  one  of  the  orange  tree  of  her  own  sunny  groves,  which  bears  in  its 
beautiful  foliage  in  the  same  month  the  golden  fruit  of  maturity  with  the  fair  blossoms  of 
its  spring. 

With  all  her  wealth  of  maternal  affection  the  Creole  matron  is  not  imprisoned  in  her  nursery 
to  be  devoured  by  her  children.    In  them  she  has  renewed  her  youth.    With  her  maternity 

'Another  morn 
Has  risen  upon  her  mid-noon." 

Her  motherly  virtue  is  her  cardinal  virtue.  Care  for  her  children  seems  to  have  contributed 
indeed  to  the  number  and  the  sensibility  of  the  chords  of  sympathy  and  affection. 

The  Creole  matron,  however,  does  not  squander  upon  the  infancy  of  her  children  all  the 
health  necessary  to  their  youth  and  adolescence,  nor  does  she  destroy  their  sense  of  gratitude 
and  her  own  authority,  and  impair  both  their  constitution  and  temper  by  indiscriminate  and 
indiscreet  indulgence.  She  economises  her  own  health  and  beauty  as  she  adds  both  to  her 
offspring. 

She  is  all  the  fonder  of  what  many  deem  frivolities,  because  of  her  children.  For  them  the 
gay  reception,  and  the  graceful  dance  are  pleasant  and  harmless  pastime.  In  such  indulgences 
her  children  learn  that  ease  of  manner,  grace  of  movement,  and  the  thousand  little  prettinesses 
which  are  so  adorable  in  after  years.  She  has  nursed  her  babies,  prepared  them  for  their  studies 
in  the  convent  school,  and  she  thus  finishes  an  important  branch  of  their  education  which 
the  school  books  could  not  furnish. 

And  thus  another  belle  Creole  grows  up  to  womanhood  under  her  loving  eye.  She  is  not 
permitted  to  form  intimacies  outside  of  home. 

The  watchful  care  of  the  Creole  matron  may  be  somewhat  relaxed  as  the  mind  of  demoiselle 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  153 

becomes  more  perfectly  formed,  but  the  invisible  rein  is  still  held  with  a  firm,  though  gentle 
hand. 

The  Creole  matron  is  the  inevitable  duenna  of  the  parlor,  and  the  constant  attendant 
chaperone  at  all  public  assemblies ;  an  ever-vigilant  guide,  and  protector  against  aught  that 
may  offend  the  fine  feelin:?-.  the  noble  pride,  or  the  generous  heart  of  demoiselle.  And  when  the 
time  comes  for  la  belle  to  marry  she  does  not  trust  her  own  unguided  fancies,  although  she 
may  have  read  in  story  books  of  gallant  knights,  and  had  many  pleasant  dreams  of  such  heroes 
as  live  only  in  the  pages  of  poetry  and  romance.  The  Creole  matron  saves  her  all  the  trouble  in 
the  perplexing  choice  of  a  husband,  and  manages  the  whole  affair  with  extreme  skill,  tact  and 
ability.  The  preliminaries  arranged,  the  selected  husband  infuturo  is  invited  to  the  house,  the 
drawing-room  cleared  of  all  superfluities,  and  the  couple  left  to  an  agreeable  tete-a-tete,  during 
which  they  behave  like  sensible  children  and  exchange  vows  and  rings.  The  nuptial  mass  at  the 
church  follows,  as  there  is  no  breaking  of  engagements  or  hearts  in  Creole  etiquette. 

The  Creole  matron  grows  old,  as  she  does  everything  else,  gracefully.  She  has  not  been 
shaken  by  the  blasts  of  many  passions,  or  enervated  by  the  stimulants  of  violent  sensations. 
There  is  no  paled  reflex  of  her  youthful  warmth  in  the  glance  she  gives  to  the  past,  with  its 
buried  joys,  or  the  present,  with  its  all-pervading  contentment  and  happiness. 

Although  an  increased  avoirdupois  has  added  magnificence  to  her  embonpoint,  and  her  waltzing 
days  are  over,  her  pretty,  well-shaped  feet  still  beat  time  in  unison  with  the  spirit  of 
its  music.  She  is  an  artiste  of  conversation,  and  her  bon  mot  is  uttered  with  such  natural 
avoidance  of  offense,  and  the  arch  allusion  is  so  gracefully  applied  that  she  gives  one  the  idea  of 
a  new  use  of  language,  and  yet  she  is  a  marvelous  listener.  Her  complaisance  is  ever  ready; 
words  come  of  themselves  upon  your  lips  merely  from  finding  themselves  so  obligingly  listened 
to  ;  and  whilst  others  follow  the  conversation,  it  is  she  who  directs  it,  who  seasonably  revives 
it,  brings  it  back  from  the  field  from  which  it  has  strayed,  restores  it  to  others  without  ostenta- 
tion, stopping  vnth  marvelous  tact  precisely  at  the  proper  point.  And  the  world  may  not  know 
how  much  of  the  stately  dignity,  the  polished  ease,  the  refined  elegance  that  reign  supreme  in 
her  household  is  the  inspiration  of  its  gay  mistress,  who  remains,  in  age  as  in  youth,  the  life  and 
ornament  of  it. 

And  so  with  the  snows  of  many  winters  on  her  head  and  the  sunshine  of  many  summers  in 
her  heart,  surrounded  by  three  or  four  generations  of  children,  blessing  and  blessed,  the  Creole 
matron  is  at  length  gathered  to  her  fathers. 

SOME  CREOLE  SONGS. 

Mr.  Cable,  in  his  later  readings  at  the  North,  has  given  some  specimens  of  the  Creole  dialect 
songs,  which  aroused  a  great  interest  in  them.  The  number  of  these  songs  is  almost  without 
limit,  but  the  following  are  a  few  of  the  most  ancient  and  popular  among  them : 

Z'autres  qu'a  di  moin,  ca  yon  bonheur ; 
Et  moin  va  di,  ca  yon  peine  ; — 
D'amour  quand  porte  la  chaine, 
Adieu,  courri  tout  bonheur  I 

Pauvre  piti*  Mamzel  Zizi ! 

Pauvre  piti'  Mamzel  Zizi  I 

Pauvre  piti'  Mamzel  Zizi  1 
Li  gagnin  doulor,  doulor,  doulor,— 
Li  gagnin  doulor  dans  coeur  a  li ! 


154  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Others  say,  it  is  your  happiness  : 
I  say,  it  is  your  sorrow  : 
When  we  are  enchanted  by  love, 
Farewell  to  all  happiness  I 

Poor  little  Miss  Zizi ! 

Poor  little  Miss  Zizi ! 

Poor  little  Miss  Zizi ! 
She  has  sorrow,  sorrow,  sorrow ; — 
She  has  sorrow  in  her  heart. 

This  appears  to  be  an  old  fragment  from  either  the  beginning  or  from  the  ending  of  an  entire 
song.  A  great  number  of  Creol^i  songs,  having  various  airs  and  differing  greatly  in  their  metrical 
construction,  have  similarly  worded  refrains.    A  very  common  burthen  in  these  songs  is— 

"  Mo  I'aimin  vous 
Comme  cochon  aimin  la  boue  ! 

"  I  love  you  just  as  a  little  pig  loves  the  mud  ! "  This  refrain  is  found  attached,  in  various 
forms,  to  at  least  half  a  dozen  various  ditties.    Here  is  one  specimen  : 

Si  to  te  'tit  zozo 

Et  moi-meme  mo  te  fusil 

Mo  sre  tchoue  toi— Bourn/ 

Ah,  cher  bijou 

D'acajou, 

Mo  r  aimin  vous 
Comme  cochon  aimin  la  boue  1 

If  thou  wert  a  little  bird. 
And  I  were  a  little  gun, 
I  would  shoot  thee— bang/ 

Ah,  dear  little 

Mahogany  jewel, 
I  love  thee  as  a  little  pig  loves  the  mud  I 

In  another  stanza  of  the  same  love  song,  the  lover  expresses  a  wish  that  his  little  "mahogany 
jewel  "  were  a  little  pig  and  that  he  were  a  little  knife,  so  that  he  might  cut  her  little  throat- 
zip  !    The  sound  of  the  knife  is  well  imitated. 

Here  are  several  odd  little  Creole  songs,  some  of  them  very  old.  It  is  said  that  Bernard 
Marigny  de  Mandeville,  of  famous  memory,  used  to  have  them  sung  in  his  house  for  the  amuse- 
ment of  bis  guests— among  whom,  perhaps,  was  Louis  Philippe  himself.  The  airs  are  very  lively 
and  very  pretty : 

'Delaide,  mo  la  reine, 
Chimin-la  trop  longue  pour  alle  ;— 
Chimin-la  monte  dans  les  hauts  ; 
Tout  piti  qui  mo  ye, 
M'alle  monte  la  haut  dans  courant, 
C'est  moin,  Liron,  qui  rive 
M'alle  di  ye, 
Bon  soir,  mo  la  reine, 
C'est  moin,  Liron,  qui  rive. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  155 

'Delaide.  my  queen,  the  way  is  too  long  for  me  to  travel ;— that  way  leads  far  up  yonder. 
But,  little  as  I  am,  I  am  going  to  stem  the  stream  up  there.  "I,  Liron,  am  come,"  is  w  hat  I  shall 
say  to  them.    My  queen,  good-night ;  'tis  I,  Liron,  who  has  come. 

Tons  les  jours  de  Pan, 

Tons  les  jours  de  I'an, 

Tons  les  jours  de  I'an, 
Vous  pas  vini  'oir  moin  : 
Mo  te  couche  malade  dans  lit ; 
Mo  voye  nouvelles  appres  mo  la  reine ; 
Vous  pas  seulement  vini  'oir  moin  ; 
A  present  qui  mo  Men  gaillard, 
Cher  ami,  mo  pas  hesoin  'oir  vous. 

Every  New  Year's  day  you  neglected  to  visit  me.  I  was  lying  sick  in  bed.  I  sent  word  to 
my  queen.  But  you  did  not  even  once  come  to  see  me.  Now  that  I  am  quite  well,  dear  friend, 
I  do  not  want  to  see  you. 

L'autre  jour,  mo  couche  deyors : 

C'est  toi  qui  courri  di  Madame. 

Ah.  c'est  'jorcii,  c'est  'jordi,  c'est  'jordi!— 

Ah,  c'est  jordi  moin  qu'alle  connin  toi  ! 

Ale  !— moin  qu'alle  connin  toi  I 

Aie  ! — moin  qu'alle  connin  toi ! 
Mo  te  prend  toi  pour  zami  moin  ; 
Pendant  to  te  tou jours  trahi  moin. 
Ah,  c'est  'jordi,  c'est  'jordi,  c'est  'jordi  1— 

Aie  !— moin  qu'alle  connin  toi ! 

The  other  night  I  slept  out  of  doors  ; 
'Tis  you  who  went  to  tell  Madame. 
Ah,  'tis  to-day,  'tis  to-day,  'tis  to-day  ! 
Ah,  'tis  to-day  I  am  going  to  know  you  I 

Ay  :— I  am  going  to  know  you  ! 

Ay :— I  am  going  to  know  you  : 
I  had  taken  you  to  be  my  friend. 
All  the  while  you  were  betraying  me. 
Ah,  'tis  to-day,  etc. 

The  French  exclamation,  "  Aie  !"  indicates  pain  or  distress. 

La  chanson  qui  suit  a  etefaite  pour  ridiculiser  une  mulatresse  nommee  Toucouton  qui  votdaif  se 
faire  passer  pour  blanche. 

Refrain. 

Ah :  Toucouton  ! 

Mo  connin  toi ; 
To  semble  Morico  ; 

Y'a  pas  savon 

Qui  assez  blanc 
Pour  laver  to  la  peau. 


156  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Quand  blancs  la  yo  donne  yo  bal, 

To  pas  capable  aller  : 

Comment  t'a  vaillant  giabal. 

Toi  qui  I'aime  briller  ! 

Ah !  Toucouton  ! 
Mo  connin  toi,  etc 

Longtemps  to  cotume  prend  'loge 
Avec  gens  comme  il  faut ; 

Asteur  faut  to 
Prend'  Jacques— deloge ! 
Y'a  pas  passe  tantot, 

Ah  !  Toucouton ! 
Mo  connin  toi,  etc. 

The  following  song  was  composed  to  ridicule  a  mulato  girl  named  Toucouton,  who  tried  to 
make  herself  pass  for  a  white  one  : 

Ah,  Toucouton  ! 

I  know  you  well ; 

You  are  like  a  blackamoor  ; 

There  is  no  soap 

Which  is  white  enough 

To  wash  your  skin. 

When  the  white  folks  gi\^e  a  ball. 

You  are  not  able  to  go  there ; 

Ah,  how  will  you  be  able  to  play  the  flirt? 

You  who  so  love  to  shine. 

Ah,  Toucouton,  etc. 

Once  you  used  to  take  a  seat 
Among  the  fashionable  people  ; 
Now  you  must  take  leave,  decamp, 
Without  any  delay  whatever. 
Ah,  Toucouton,  etc. 

The  following  Creole  song  was  popular  in  Louisiana  at  the  beginning  of  the  century : 

Moin  pas  conne  qui  quichose 

Qui  appe  tourmente  moin  la ; 
Moin  pas  conne  qui  la  cause, 

Coeur  a  moin  brule  comme  9a. 
Ah  Die  !  Qui  tourment,  qui  peine, 

Dipis  longtemps  quimbe  moi : 
C'est  tourment  la  passe  chaine, 

Plutot  moin  mouri  youne  f  ois 

Toi  conne  qui  belle  rigole 

Qui  coule  dans  bananiers, 
Ou  toi  te  si  fe  la  f olle 

La  f  oi  qui  toi  te  baigne. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  157 

D'leau  la  pas  conle  encore,— 

Des  fois  II  'rete  tout  court,— 
Li  semble  regrette  encore 

Li  pas  baigne  toi  toujours. 


Here  is  a  free  translation  : 


"  I  do  not  know  what  it  is  which  torments  me  thus. 

"I  can  not  tell  what  it  is  that  makes  my  heart  beat  so. 

"  O  God  :  what  torture  !  what  pains  I  have  suffered  so  long  1 

"  It  is  worse  than  the  pain  of  fetters  ;  I  had  rather  die  at  once. 

'  Do  you  remember  the  pretty  little  brook  that  ran  through  the  banana  trees— 
"  Where  you  used  to  have  such  fun,  when  you  used  to  bathe  ? 
"  That  water  has  ceased  to  run  ;— 
"  Since  the  time  it  stopped  all  at  once— 
"It  seems  to  me  it  died  of  regret 
"That  its  wavelets  could  not  embrace  you  foi*ever." 

The  following  is  a  remnant  of  a  song  which  must  be  considerably  over  a  century  old,  and 
which  used  to  be  sung  by  the  blacks  on  the  plantations  in  the  early  days  of  the  century  : 

Di  tems  Missie  d'Artaguette, 

H6  !  Ho  :  116  ! 
C'etait,  c'etait  bon  tems, 
Y6 1^  m^nin  monde  a  la  baguette, 
He  :  Ho  !  He  ! 
Pas  negres,  pas  rubans, 
Pas  diamans, 
Pour  Dochans, 
H6  !  Ho  !  He  I 

In  the  days  of  d'Artaguette, 
He :  Ho :  H6 : 

It  was  the  good  old  time, 
The  world  was  led  straight  with  a  switch, 
H6  !  Ho  :  H^  ! 
There  were  no  negroes. 
No  diamonds, 
For  the  vulgar, 
H6  :  Ho  !  Hd  ! 

LIZETTE. 

Lizette  quitte  la  plaine 

Mon  perdi  bonher  a  mou^  ; 

Gie  a  moin  semble  fontaine 

Dipi  mon  pas  mue  tone 

La  jour  quand  mon  coup6  canne, 

Mon  songe  zamone  a  moue 

La  nuit  quand  mon  dans  cabaue 

Dans  dromi  mon  quimbe  toue. 


X58  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Si  to  all6  la  ville 
Yo  trouv6  jeune  Caudio 
Qui  f:agii6  pour  tromper  fille 
Bouche  doux  passe  strop. 
Yo  va  crer  yo  bin  sincere 
Pendant  quior  yo  coquin  tro  ; 
C'est  s  rpent  qui  contrefaire 
Crier  rat  pour  tromper  yo. 

Dipi  mon  perdi  Lizette 
Mon  pas  souchie  calinda 
Mon  quitte  Bram  bram  sonnette 
Mon  pas  batte  Bamboula 
Quandmo  contre  I'aut'nf 
Mon  pas  gagne  gie  pone  li. 
Font  qui  chose  d  moin  mourri. 

Mon  maigne  tant  com'  gnon  souche 
Jambe  a  moin  tant  comme  roseau. 
Mange  na  pa  doux  dans  bouche, 
Tafia  meme  c'  est  comme  dyo. 
Quand  mon  sage  ton6  Lizette, 
Dyo  toujours  dans  gie  moin, 
Magnel  moin  vin  trop  bete 
A  force  chagrin  mange  moin. 

Lizet'  mon  taude  nouvelle, 
To  Compte  bientot  tourne  ; 
Vini  done  toujours  fidele 
Mire  bon  passe  tande, 
N'  a  pas  tarde  davantage, 
To  fai  moin  assez  chagrin— 
Mon  tant  com'  zozo  dans  cage 
Quand  yo  fait  li  mourri  faim. 

CHANSON  DU  VIE  BOSCOYO. 

Mouch^  Preval 
Li  donne  grand  bal. 
Li  fait  negue  pay6 
Pou  saute  ain  pe. 

Danse  Calinda,  etc. 

Li  donn^  soupe 
Pou  negue  regale; 
So  vi6  la  misique 
Te  baye  la  collique. 

Mouche  Pr6val 
T6  capitaine  bal, 
So  cocher  Louis 
Te  malt'  ceremonL 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  159 

Ala  ein  bourrique 
Tande  la  misique, 
Li  vini  valse 
Com  quan  li  cabre. 

Yave  des  negresses 
Belle  com  ye  maitresse ; 
Ye  te  volebel-bel 
Dans  I'ormoir  mamzel. 

Blan  et  pi  noir. 
Ye  danse  bamboula : 
Vou  pas  jamais  voir 
Ain  pli  gran  gala. 

Ala  gardien  la  geole, 
Li  trouv6  9a  bin  drole  j 
Li  dit :  "  Mo  aussi 
Mafait  balici." 

Etpile  wacheman 
Yetombeladan 
Ye  fait  branle-bas 
Dans  licherie  la. 

Ye  mene  ye  tons 
Dans  la  calabous, 
Lendemain  matin 
Ye  f  ouette  ye  bin. 

Ye  te  vole  bel  chain. 
Ye  te  vole  romaine, 
Y6 16  vole  n'ecrin, 
Et  pi  souye  fin. 

Ain  man  godiche 
Vini  mande  postiche 
Qui  te  servi  so  f  emme 
Pou  fe  la  bel  dame. 

"Comment,  Sapajou, 
To  pran  mo  kilotte  ?" 
'*  Non,  mo  maite,  mo  diyou. 
Mo  jis  pran  you  botte." 

Pitit  maitresse 

Li  t'ape  crie, 

•'  To  voir  negresse, 

C'est  mo  robe  to  vol6. 


160  HISTORICAL  SKETCH    BOOK. 

Chez  Mouchi  Preval, 
Dans  la  ri  n'Opital, 
Y6 16  fait  negue  pay6 
Pou  saute  ain  p6. 

Pove  Mouche  Pr6val, 
Mo  ere  li  bien  mal ; 
Ya  pli  encor  bal 
Dans  la  ri  n'Opital. 

Li  paye  cent  piasse, 
Li  couri  la  chasse, 
Li  di,  c'st  fini, 
Ya  pli  bal  sans  permL 


CELESTE. 


Mo  courri  dan  bois,  Zami 

Pou  tonal  zozo,  Zami 

Aforse  mo  laimai  toi. 

Ah !  Celeste,  Celeste,  mo  bel  bijou 

Mo  laimai  toi  com  coson  laimai  la  bou. 

Si  total  zozo,  Zami. 

Ai  motai  fizi  Zami 

Motai  touyai  toi  Zami 

Aforse  mo  laimai  toi 

Ah  I  Celeste,  Celeste,  mo  bel  bijou 

Mo  laimai  toi  com  coson  laimai  la  bou. 

Si  total  di  rie  Zami 

Motai  toumo  Zami 

Motai  mange  toi  Zami 

Aforse  me  laimai  toi 

Ah !  Celeste,  Celeste,  mo  bel  bijou 

Mo  laimai  toi  com  coson  laimai  la  bou. 

Si  total  bayou  Zami 

Motai  puaisson,  Zami 

Motai  nagiaie  dan  toi  Zami 

Aforse  mo  laimai  toi 

Ah !  Celeste,  Celeste,  mo  bel  bijou 

Mo  laimai  toi  com  coson  laimai  la  bou. 

Si  total  la  bou  Zami 

Motai  coson  Zami 

Motai  rabourai  dan  toi  Zami 

Aforse  mo  laimai  toi 

Ah  !  Celeste,  Celeste,  mo  bel  bijou 
Mo  laimai  toi  com  coson  laimai  la  bou. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  161 

THE  SAN  DOMINGUAIS. 

In  the  confused  blending  of  races  and  nationalities  and  fragments  of  foreign  communities 
that  went  to  make  up  the  population  of  Louisiana  in  its  earlier  and  later  colonial  days,  a  small 
element  in  the  incongruous  whole  was  that  represented  by  the  fugitives  from  San  Domingo, 
some  of  whom  came  directly  hither  after  the  massacre  of  the  French  in  that  island,  and  others 
found  their  way  here  by  devious  routes,  down  the  Mississippi  and  by  other  means  from  various 
parts  of  the  United  States— Maryland,  Virginia,  Pennsylvania,  South  Carolina,  and  other  States 
of  the  Union. 

1  In  a  work  published  in  Paris  in  1803,  by  one  of  these  refugees,  who  had  spent  the  two  or 
•three  previous  years  in  New  Orleans,  we  are  told  that  the  "wretched  colonists  of  San  Domingo, 
escaped  amid  the  flames  and  the  horrors  which  made  of  their  country  a  sort  of  hell,  and  seeking 
an  asylum  across  the  sea  in  the  United  States,  were  welcomed  with  open  arms  by  the  inhabit- 
ants of  that  country,  who  came  in  crowds  to  the  places  of  landing  and  there  disputed  among 
themselves  for  the  pleasure  of  taking  to  their  homes  the  various  families  and  of  extending  to 
them  all  the  resources  of  humanity,  in  the  most  sympathetic  manner  and  without  the  least  sus- 
picion of  interested  motives.  All  these  unfortunate  refugees,  men,  women,  and  children,  of 
every  description,  of  every  color,  found  themselves,  from  the  day  of  their  arrival,  fully  assured 
of  the  first  wants  of  nature,  lodging,  food,  and  clothing.  Baltimore,  above  all,  immortalized 
itself  under  these  memorable  circumstances,  in  the  eyes  of  France,  especially,  and  of  the  world 
in  general,  by  the  enthusiasm  with  which  she  came  to  the  relief  of  this  multitude  of  unfortun- 
ates, and  offered  a  hospitable  asylum  to  strangers  without  resources.  The  government  of 
Maryland,  co-operating  nobly,  in  what  concerned  it,  in  this  work  of  commiseration  and  mag- 
nanimity, moreover  assured  to  these  unfortunates  pecuniary  relief  during  the  first  six  months 
of  their  arrival,  as  well  as  lodgings  and  provisions  to  those  among  them  who  desired  to  live  in 
private  quarters." 

Notwithstanding  the  alarm  that  had  been  aroused  in  the  slave-holding  States  of  the  Union 
by  the  excesses  of  the  blacks  in  San  Domingo,  which  led  many  in  those  States  to  fear  lest  the 
example  of  revolt  set  by  them  might  prove  contagious  among  the  negroes  in  this  country,  the 
Legislature  of  Maryland  unanimously  passed  an  enactment  permitting  the  slaves  in  the' ser- 
vice of  the  refugees  who  had  accompanied  their  masters  into  that  State  to  be  admitted  into 
Maryland,  to  serve  their  masters  as  usual.  Kelief  proportionate  to  their  condition  was  also 
furnished  them,  and  the  only  condition  exacted  was  that  the  masters  should  register  them  in 
the  municipal  ofQces  of  the  localities  in  which  they  might  reside.  This  course  was  the  more 
commendable  in  view  of  the  fact  that  since  the  adoption  of  the  constitution  of  the  State,  a 
law  had  been  in  force  which  excluded  from  Maryland  foreign  blacks  and  slaves,  the  intention 
of  the  law  having  been  to  reduce  the  number  of  negroes  and  slaves  in  Maryland  and  to  increase 
the  white  population.  It  is  singular— but  perhaps  this  was  merely  a  coincidence— that  from 
the  time  of  the  hospitable  welcome  accorded  to  the  refugees,  Baltimore  began  to  increase  in 
population  and  importance  as  a  centre  of  commerce,  manufactures,  etc.,  and  as  the  home 
of  the  arts. 

While  Maryland  was  thus  extending  a  friendly  reception  to  the  exiles  of  San  Domingo,  with 
or  without  slaves,  the  eyes  of  many  of  the  refugees  were  turned  to  Louisiana  as  a  quarter  of 
the  globe  most  suitable  in  every  way,  from  similarity  of  language  and  nationality,  customs  and 
interests,  in  which  to  seek  an  asylum  in  their  tribulations  and  reverses  of  fortune.  They  remem- 
bered that  in  times  past  the  people  of  San  Domingo  had  not  been  lukewarm  in  testifying  their 
mterest  in,  and  symp'^thy  with,  the  colonists  in  Louisiana  on  occasions  when  trouble  had 
come  to  them.  Before  nd  after  the  occupation  of  Louisiana  by  the  Spaniards  they  offered  the 
people  of  the  Colony  a  refuge  among  them,  and  welcomed,  without  distinction,  those  who  emi- 
grated thither,  many  of  whom  obtained  positions— positions  of  honor  and  profit  in  San 
i>omingo.    Moreover,  on  the  occasion  of  the  great  fire  of  1788  in  New  Orleans  which  reduced 


162  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK 

half  of  this  city  to  ashes,  bringing  with  it  universal  suffering  and  ruin,  the  inhabitants  of  the 
island  sent  to  the  city  reli  f  in  propori;ion  to  the  demands  of  the  citizens,  and  in  other  ways 
manifested  their  concern  at  the  disaster  that  had  overtaken  the  colonists  here. 

In  their  first  flight  from  San  Domingo,  a  few  of  the  refugees  from  that  island  sought  sheltei  i 
in  Louisiana.  It  does  not  appear  that  any  legal  objection  to  the  residence  of  those  unaccom 
panied  by  slaves  was  interposed  by  the  Spanish  authorities.  Among  those  who  thus  managed 
unincumbered,  to  obtain  a  habitat  in  Louisiana,  says  Martin,  was  "a  company  of  CanadianJ  j 
from  Cape  Francois.and  the  city  of  New  Orleans  now  enjoyed,  for  the  first  time,  the  advantage  ' 
of  regular  dramatic  exhibitions.  Some  of  the  other  refugees,  availing  themselves  of  the  want; 
of  the  province,  opened  academies  for  the  instruction  of  youth.  Hitherto,  the  means  o 
education  had  been  confined  to  a  school  in  which  a  Spanish  priest,  aided  by  two  ushers,  taugh 
the  elements  of  the  Spanish  language,  and  the  convent  of  the  Ursuline  nuns."  In  this  testimony 
to  the  first  presence  of  educators  in  the  colony,  with  the  exception  of  the  two  institution; 
mentioned,  which  were  restricted  to  New  Orleans,  and  which  had  been  established  by  th( 
Spaniards  in  1772,  we  begin  to  catch  a  glimpse  of  the  dawn  of  educational  facilities  in  Louisiana 
Nor  is  it  difficult,  with  these  facts  before  us,  to  understand  how,  even  at  a  much  later  period 
many  adults  of  the  province,  among  them  some  who  regarded  themselves  as  persons  of  consid 
eration,  were  unable  to  read  or  write,  and  that  the  spectacle  of  a  quaint  KaintocJc,  who  hac 
floated  down  the  Mississippi  to  New  Orleans  in  his  flatboat  with  his  up-country  produce,  as  ht 
stood  on  the  Levee  figuring  up  his  accounts  on  the  head  of  a  barrel,  was  regarded  with  minglec 
awe  and  astonishment  by  open-mouthed  spectators,  who  observed  his  movements  as  rustics  a 
a  country  fair  watch  the  antics  of  a  juggling  mountebank— the  silent  tribute  paid  by  ignorance 
to  superior  wisdom. 

Among  other  benefits  to  undeveloped  interests  of  Louisiana  arising  from  the  presence  o: 
these  refugees,  was  the  impetus  given  to  the  manufacture  of  sugar.  Some  of  the  new  comer; 
Lad  been  planters  in  San  Domingo,  others  were  mechanics  acquainted  with  the  manner  o; 
constructing  and  equipping  sugar  houses,  while  others  still  had  been  sugar  makers  and  over 
seers,  who  solved  the  mystery  of  how  to  make  the  growth  of  sugar  cane  profitable  in  Louisiana 
What  had  before  been  a  problem  that  had  failed  of  solution  in  spite  of  repeated  efforts  to  solvt 
it,  was  explained  by  these  individuals,  who  seemed  to  have  dropped  from  the  clouds,  as  it  were, 
for  the  benefit  of  the  colonists  of  Louisiana.  It  is  true  the  Louisianians  were  made  to  pay 
dearly  for  the  instruction  and  service  they  receivefl,  and  for  the  construction  of  their  sugar- : 
houses.  But  these  first  heavy  expenses  having  been  met,  the  subsequent  profit  was  great ;  and 
thus,  what  had  been  the  loss  of  San  Domingo  proved  the  opportunity  of-Louisiana  and  her  planters. 

While  this  class  of  the  San  Domingo  refugees,  who  came  to  Louisiana  with  nothing  but  the 
clothes  on  their  backs  and  a  certain  sort  of  skill  and  experience,  which  they  knew  how  to 
turn  to  advantage,  were  allowed  residence  in  the  colony,  being  tolerated  if  not  welcomed,  there 
was  another  class,  people  with  some  means  who  had  managed  to  escape  the  massacres  with 
a  greater  or  less  number  of  their  slaves  and  were  hoping  to  find  an  asylum  in  Louisiana,  who 
were  met  at  the  threshold  of  their  venture  by  the  passage  of  laws  which  practically  forbade 
their  admission  into  the  colony.  Scarcely  had  the  news  of  the  bloodshed  in  San  Domingo  reached 
Louisiana  before,  at  the  instance  and  request  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  colony,  the  Governor-! 
General  was  requested  hy  the  Cabildo  to  promulgate  a  law,  which  that  body  had  passed  and  : 
which  expressly  forbade  the  introduction  into  Louisiana  of  negroes  from  the  West  India  Islands, 
and  especially  from  the  French  islands,  under  a  penalty  of  a  fine  of  $400  for  each  negro  thus 
entered,  to  be  paid  by  the  master  for  the  benefit  of  the  colony,  the  arrest  of  the  negroes  and 
their  prompt  expulsion  from  the  country.  The  Spanish  Court  ratified  this  measure  in  January, 
1793.  The  Cabildo  rigorously  carried  out  their  decrees,  no  exceptions  being  made  in  favor  of  the 
refugees  already  in  the  United  States,  large  numbers  of  whom,  but  for  this  enactment,  would 
have  come  hither  and  established  themselves  with  the  remnants  of  their  fortunes  and  the  few 
slaves  who  had  remained  faithful  to  them. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  163 

The  restrictions  thus  imposed  naturally  restrained  the  refugees  possessing  slaves  from  seek- 
ing Louisiana.  After  the  lapse  of  a  few  years,  however,  a  few,  ignorant  of  the  decree,  or 
perhaps  imagining  that  time  had  weakened  the  enforcement  of  the  law  on  the  subject,  came 
overland  from  Georgia,  the  Carolinas,  Virginia  and  Maryland  to  Louisiana  with  their  slaves  to 
take  up  their  residence  in  the  colony.  The  fact  that  they  were  provided  with  passports 
furnished  by  the  Spanish  Minister  to  the  United  States  induced  the  Spanish  authorities  to  admit 
them,  tacitly  if  not  willingly. 

But  the  antagonism  that  had  previously  forbidden  their  admission  was  not  extinct  in  the 
minds  of  many  of  the  colonists  of  Louisiana. 

Not  long  had  the  newcomers  been  settled  in  New  Orleans  before  they  feU  under  the  ban  of 
what  may  be,  with  justice,  termed  the  canaille  of  the  city.  They  were  denounced  to  the 
authorities,  were  pursued  with  more  or  less  severity,  and  their  servants,  women  and  children 
as  well  as  men,  were  carried  off  before  their  eyes  to  prison,  where  for  a  longer  or  shorter  period 
of  tim.e  they  were  kept  at  the  expense  of  their  masters.  The  agitation  looking  to  their  expul- 
sion from  the  colony  was  kept  up  for  some  time  until  finally,  in  some  cases  after  a  detention  of 
fifteen  months  in  prison  and  a  corresponding  expense  to  their  masters  for  their  maintenance 
there,  the  Governor,  awaiting  the  propitious  moment  when  the  popular  clamor  had  subside(L 
quietly  restored  them  to  their  masters. 

Short-sighted  as  was  the  policy  that  repulsed  those  of  the  San  Domingo  refugees  whose 
residence  in  the  colony  would  have  been  most  desirable,  its  justification  was  found  in  fears 
that  sprang  partly  from  ignorance  and  partly  from  an  exaggerated  view  of  the  possibilities  that 
might  have  be^n  entailed  to  Louisiana  by  the  presence  and  conversation  of  the  San  Domingo 
negroes  among  those  of  Louisiana.  The  massacre  of  the  French  colonists  in  San  Domingo  was  at 
that  day  the  spectre  rouge  that  excited  the  alarms  of  the  Louisianians.  In  fact  the  tidings  from 
San  Domingo  had  reached  th.  ears  of  the  negroes  throughout  the  colony,  mainly  through  over- 
hearing unguarded  conversations  on  the  subject  between  the  whites.  It  was,  perhaps,  a 
natural  impulse  that  led  the  Louisiana  blacks  to  dream  of  as  s  mguinary  an  uprising  as  that 
which,  a  few  years  previously,  had  secured  self-government  for  their  brothers  in  San  Domingo. 
At  all  events,  that  such  a  view  was  taken  by  numbers  of  the  negroes  of  Pointe  Coupee  is  certain, 
and  but  for  a  dissension  among  the  leaders  of  the  plot,  serious  loss  of  life  among  the  isolated 
families  of  planters  would  have  followed. 

In  the  year  1795  occurred  the  famous  conspiracy  which  was  hatched  on  the  Poydras  Planta- 
tion, in  the  parish  of  Pointe  Coupee.  While  a  part  of  the  white  population,  says  Martin, 
evinced  their  anxiety  to  imitate  the  French  in  the  struggle  for  freedom,  it  is  not  extraordinary 
that  the  slaves  should  have  been  seduced  into  an  attempt  to  rise  by  the  reports  of  the  success 
of  the  blacks  in  Hispaniola.  An  insurrection  was  planned  in  the  Parish  of  Pointe  Coupee,  an 
insulated  one,  in  which  the  number  of  slaves  was  considerable. 

The  conspiracy  was  for  ned  on  the  plantation  of  Julian  Poydras,  a  wealthy  planter,  who 
was  then  absent  on  a  journey  to  the  LTnited  States,  and  had  extended  thence  to  all  parts  of  the 
parish.  The  indiscriminate  slaughter  of  every  white  man  was  intended.  A  disagreement  as  to 
the  day  the  massacre  was  to  take  place  gave  rise  to  a  quarrel  among  the  principal  leaders, 
which  led  to  a  discovery  of  the  plot.  The  militia  was  instantly  put  under  arms  ;  and  the  Baron 
;Carondelet\  on  the  first  information,  sent  a  part  of  the  regular  force.  The  slaves  attempted 
resistance,  and  twenty-five  of  them  were  killed  before  those  that  had  been  selected  for  trial 
were  arrested  and  confined. 

Serrano,  the  assessor  of  the  intendancy,  went  up  to  assist  Dupart,  the  civil  commandant,  at 
the  trials.  Fifty  were  found  guilty ;  others  were  severely  fiogged.  Sixteen  of  the  first  were 
aung  in  different  parts  of  the  parish  ;  the  nine  remaining  were  put  on  board  of  a  galley,  which 
aoated  down  to  New  Orleans.  On  her  way  one  of  them  was  landed  near  the  church  of  each 
parish  along  the  river,  and  left  hanging  on  a  tree.  This  timely  exercise  of  severity  quieted  for 
*  while  the  apprehensions  of  the  inhabitants,  who  had  been  considerably  alarmed. 


164  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

It  will  thus  be  seen  that  fears  of  the  danger  that  might  arise  from  the  intimate  relations  ol 
the  negroes  from  San  Domingo  with  those  of  Louisiana  may  have  had  much  to  do  with  the  course 
pursued  by  the  colonists.  But  there  was  in  course  of  time  a  development  of  personal  and 
social  antagonism  between  the  refugees  and  the  people  among  whom  they  sought  shelter,  which 
gave  rise  to  a  bitter  feehng  between  the  two  classes  that  survived  the  generation  among  whom 
it  originated.  The  words  8t.  Domingue  and  Martinique,  in  connection  with  the  refugees  from 
those  islands,  became  almost  as  offensive  to  the  ears  of  the  Louisianians  of  1800  and  later  years 
as  were  those  rude  terms  of  contempt,  Kaintock  and  Americain,  applied  to  the  first  Americans 
who  came  to  Louisiana. 

To  these  San  Domingans  are  due  the  first  newspaper  in  Louisiana,  the  first  theatre,  and  th( 
cultivation  of  the  sugar  cane.  To  them  also  is  due  the  word  "  Creole,"  to  express  the  native 
Louisianian  of  French  or  Spanish  descent.  The  word  was  originally  Spanish,  and  applied  only  t( 
the  American  descendants  of  Spaniards;  but  it  spread  to  the  French  West  Indies,  and  was  brought 
by  the  San  Domingans  to  Louisiana.  The  early  settlers  of  Louisiana,  who  were  mainly  fron 
Canada,  Acadia  (New  Brunswick),  and  Paris,  did  not  use  the  word,  and  with  them  the  Creole! 
were  the  West  Indians.  The  word,  however,  came  in  the  course  of  time  to  include  all  tli< 
people  of  French  descent  except  the  Acadians. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  165 


CHAPTER  XVI.— THE  CITY'S  POPULATION. 

THE  VARIOUS    ELEMENTS    OF   WHICH    IT    IS  MADE  UP— THE  CREOLES,  SPANIARDS.  NEGROES, 

INDIANS,    AND   OTHERS. 

The  early  origin  of  a  people  is  generally  obscured,  and  with  reason,  since  it  is  almost  always 
humble,  base,  often  dishonorable.  The  nobility  of  England  are  proud  to  trace  their  descent 
from  a  gang  of  robber  chieftains  ;  the  ancestors  of  the  hill  people  of  C4eorgia  were  rescued  from 
the  London  debtors'  prisons,  while  Australia  owes  its  first  society  and  earliest  patriots  to  ex- 
convicts  and  ticket-of-leave  men.  So,  likewise,  there  are  several  stories  of  the  first  people  of 
Louisiana— particularly  of  its  first  ladies— that  the  early  colonists  would  gladly  have  covered  up 
and  hidden  if  they  could  have  done  so. 

THE   CREOLES. 

The  original  masculine  portion  of  the  population  was  well  enough  ;  it  was,  for  the  most  part, 
honest  but  adventurous  Canadian  voyageurs  and  courreurs  des  6w5— sturdy,  bold,  energetic  men, 
who  fought  and  worked  their  way  overland  and  down  the  river,  through  an  endless  desert 
wilderness,  peopled  with  dangerous  savages.  They  came  alone  and  without  families,  since  none 
but  men  could  endure  the  fatigues  and  hardships  of  this  arduous  journey.  Here,  they  languished 
away  in  single  blessedness  and  melancholy  bachelorhood  as  long  as  they  could  stand  it,  save  a 
few  led  astray  by  the  dusky  charms  of  Bome  forest  maiden.  At  last  good  King  Louis  took  mercy 
on  their  loneliness  and  shipped,  as  an  experiment,  several  cargoes  of  females;  and  just  here 
comes  in  the  bar  sinister,  for  these  females  were  prisoners  from  the  royal  prison  of  La  Salpe- 
triere.  Such  were  the  first  women  of  Louisiana,  of  whose  morals  the  less  said  the  better,  for,  as 
Gov.  Cadellac  declared  to  the  parish  priest  when  he  proposed  the  purification  of  the  colony  by 
shipping  these  home  :  '  If  I  send  away  all  the  loose  females,  there  will  be  no  women  left  here 
at  all,  and  this  would  not  suit  the  views  of  the  king  or  the  inclinations  of  the  people." 

However,  for  want  of  better  wives,  the  colonists  welcomed  these  with  open  arms  ;  but 
although  these  satisSed  them,  they  did  not,  by  any  means,  satisfy  the  directors  of  the  Louisiana 
Company,  as  they  proved  a  failure  in  one  of  the  most  important  needs  of  the  new  country- 
children. 

To  supply  the  deficiency  a  cargo  of  girls,  known  in  Louisiana  history  as  theJiUesdela  cassette, 
or  casket  girls,  were  sent  over  by  way  of  experiment— girls,  poor  but  virtuous.  The  experiment 
proved  a  signal  success— the  girls  commanded  fancy  prices  and  supplied  the  needed  want.  In 
the  infancy  of  the  colony  a  Louisianian  felt  proud  indeed  if  he  could  only  trace  his  origin  back 
to  these  "  casket "  instead  of  to  the  "  correction  "  girls. 

Such  was  the  lowly  origin  of  the  first  native-bom  Louisianians— a  queer  cross  between  the 
«taid,  sober  Canadian  and  the  gay,  fickle  Parisian. 

It  was  some  half  a  century  after  this  that  the  first  Acadian  found  his  way  to  Louisiana.  He 
came  a  persecuted  wanderer,  without  country  or  home;  he  was  so  hospitably  received,  fed, 
clothed  and  lodged,  that,  well  pleased  with  the  country  and  the  people,  he  pitched  his  tents 
upon  the  soil  of  Louisiana  and  peopled  its  western  prairies. 

THE  ACADIANS. 

The  Acadians  were  a  sturdy,  stalwart  race,  showing  in  their  disposition  and  in  every  feature 
their  Northern  or  Norman  descent.  They  were  bony,  sinewy,  with  high  cheek  bones,  and  their 
complexion  swarthy  and  bronzed,  all  their  features  bearing  so  close  a  resemblance  to  those  of 
our  aborigines  as  to  give  rise  to  a  somewhat  wild  theory  that  the  climate  of  America  had  an 


166  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

Indianiziug  effect  on  Europeans,  and  that  a  few  centuries  of  it  would  convert  us  in  complexion  | 
and  disposition,  into   Sioux  and   Modocs.     The  true   explanation  of  this  undoubted  ludiat 
physiognomy  is  perhaps  more  easily  and  naturally  explained  in  the  frequency,  in  the  earliei 
days,  of  Choctaw  wives— a  custom  so  prevalent  in  the  colony  at  one  time  as  to  beget  a  schisn:  I 
between  Church  and  State  on  this  point— the  parish  priest  coolly  suggesting  that  if  a  man  coulc  ! 
get  no  better  wife  than  an  Indian  squaw  he  had  better  remain  single  altogether.  , 

The  Cajan  was  as  prolific  as  his  Canadian  cousin.  In  1765-66  some  866  Acadians  arrived  a  I 
New  Orleans  ;  in  1788  a  few  more  came,  making  altogether,  perhaps,  1,000,  who,  to-day,  after  th(  ' 
lapse  of  less  than  a  century,  number  at  least  40,000,  covering  the  whole  western  portion  of  the  : 
State,  and  extending  even  to  the  Eed  and  Mississippi  rivers. 

All  will  remember  the  story  of  the  Acadians,  so  beautifully  told  by  Longfellow  in  his  "  Evan 
geline."  In  Louisiana  the  expelled  people  were  free  from  the  persecution  of  the  American 
and  found  a  kindred  tongue.  They  settled  in  the  western  portions  of  the  State,  on  the  prairie 
of  the  Opelousas,  where  they  mainly  live  to  this  day,  wonderfully  increased  in  numbers,  but  th< 
same  primitive  people  they  were  when  they  left  Nova  Scotia. 

Their  homes  are  substantially-buUt  cypress  houses,  the  walls  of  which  are  sometime; 
reinforced  s\Mth  a  thick  layer  of  mixed  mud  and  moss  as  a  mortar.  They  cultivate  cane,  cotton 
and  vegetables,  but  as  the  marsh  is  approached,  greater  attention  is  paid  to  herding,  as  cattL 
thrive  easily  there  in  winter.  Along  the  many  intricate  bayous  leading  out  into  the  mars) 
around  New  Orleans,  frequent  cheniers  or  live-oak  groves  are  found,  like  islands  in  this  sea  o 
waving  rushes  and  reeds.  In  some  places  these  cheniers  assume  larger  proportions,  and  becom- 
known  as  islands.  Lying  back  some  distance  from  the  Gulf,  they  can  be  approached  from  tha 
direction  only  by  the  bayous,  but  by  land  the  marsh  inside  is  of  firmer  consistency,  and  afford 
foothold  for  horses  and  cattle.  It  is  here  that  the  Louisiana  herdsmen,  or  what  in  Texas  woul( 
be  called  "the  cowboys,"  thrive.  They  differ  essentially  from  their  Texan  brothers,  as  few  o 
them  speak  an5i;hing  but  French.  They  are  daring,  skillful  riders,  and  drive  herds  througl 
marshes  and  swamps  which,  to  the  uninitiated,  appear  impassable.  Swimming  bayous  is  t( 
them  pleasant  sport.  Their  horses  are  the  small  Creole  ponies,  descendants  of  the  mustang  i 
that  never  weary,  and  are  as  active  and  quick  as  panthers.  Perhaps  no  horse  has  the  peculiar 
springy  gait  of  these  ponies.  To  the  rider  it  is  as  if  he  were  sitting  on  a  chair  of  most  delicat* 
springs,  and  in  long  journeys  this  adds  much  to  tlie  comfort  of  the  trip.  This  motion  is  th( 
result  of  continued  travel  through  the  sea  marshes,  where  at  every  step  the  pony  sinks  deepei 
than  his  knees.  To  keep  from  bogging  or  miring,  a  quick  recovery  of  the  feet  is  necessary,  sc 
that  hardly  has  the  entire  weight  been  placed  on  one  leg  than  it  is  rapidly  withdrawn.  This 
necessitates  a  quick,  elastic  step,  so  rare  to  highland  horses.  Where  these  plucky  little  feUowf 
travel  mile  after  mile,  the  larger  and  stronger  horse  would  fall  and  hopelessly  flounder,  render 
ing  it  impossible  for  the  rider  to  retain  his  seat. 

They,  like  all  cattle  ponies,  are  drilled  to  sudden  turnings  and  wheelings,  and  can  perfom 
intricate  movements  which  would  confuse  the  manege  horses  of  the  circus.    A  slight  movemen' 
of  the  hand  or  the  leg,  and  a  sharp  turn  in  his  own  tracks  is  made  ;   a  slight  prick  of  the  spur 
and  he  will  take  a  plunge  forward.    All  this  is  necessary  for  the  safety  of  himself  and  rider,  foi ; 
Attakapas  cattle  have  a  reputation  for  belligerency  not  to  be  disregarded. 

AN  ACADIAN  PICTURE.  | 

In  the  front  of  the  cattle,  pushing  along  leg-deep  through  the  waxy  mud  of  the  marsh,  camt 
two  large  brindle  oxen  with  very  long  horns,  who  acted  as  leaders.  These  were  very  tame 
having  been  trained  thus  to  show  the  way  to  their  less  tractable  fellows.  When  they  approached 
the  bayou,  which  was  deep,  these  old  Nestors  at  once  took  to  the  water  and  began  swim- 
ming. The  rest  of  the  herd  hesitated  a  moment,  but  the  hallcos  of  the  men  behind  soon  decided 
them,  and  in  they  plunged.  Swimming  seemed  an  easy  matter  to  them,  even  two  little  calves  onlj 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  167 

ten  days  old  keeping  up  with  the  rest.  One  obstreperous  fellow,  when  he  reached  the  middle 
of  the  bayou,  struck  out  in  the  direction  of  the  Gulf,  about  50  yards  off,  but  the  rolling  breakers 
coming  in  made  him  alter  his  mind. 

Then  came  the  herdsmen.  They  plunged  in  fearlessly,  and  their  tough  little  ponies,  after 
breasting  it  bravely,  crawled  up  on  the  other  side.  The  landing  was  even  more  difficult  than 
the  swim,  for  when  their  fore  feet  struck  the  marsh  they  buried.  With  some  floundering  and 
plunging  all  were  soon  on  the  other  shore.  As  it  was  near  dark  and  Chenier-au-Tigre  was  some 
eight  miles  down  to  the  eastward,  some  of  these  men  had  to  remain  out  on  the  marsh  all  night; 
yet  they  seemed  to  think  nothing  of  such  a  prospect,  though  a  narrow  beach  afforded  the  only 
solid  foothold  for  miles.  Thus  they  drive  sometimes  150  miles  to  a  market,  swimming  perhaps 
fifty  bayous  and  riding  through  the  treacherous  marsh  nearly  ail  the  way.  Neither  rain,  wind, 
cold  nor  heat  affects  them,  and  they  live  to  a  hearty  old  age,  without  knowing  what  rheumatism 
is.  They  are  all  athletic  and  of  good  stature  and  kind  to  a  fault. 
They  have  not  changed  since  Longfellow  limned  them— 

"Just  where  the  woodlands  met  the  flowery  surf  of  the  prairie, 

Mounted  upon  his  horse,  with  Spanish  saddle  and  stirrups, 

Sat  a  herdsman,  arrayed  in  gaiters  and  doublet  of  deerskin. 

Broad  and  brown  was  the  face  that  from  under  the  Spanish  sombrero 

Gazed  on  the  peaceful  scene,  with  the  lordly  look  of  its  master." 

THE    SPANISH. 

The  Spanish  settlers  of  Louisiana  were,  for  the  most  part,  brought  over  by  the  government, 
fed,  supported  and  cared  for  at  the  government's  expense,  and  established  in  various  posts 
throughout  the  State,  as  the  Romans  of  old  established  their  colonies  in  a  conquered  country, 
to  assure  its  fidelity.  The  colonists  were  from  the  Canary  Islands,  just  then  suffering  under  a 
blight,  and  whose  inhabitants  were  starving  to  death  ;  and  were  called  by  the  Creoles,  Islinges,  a 
corruption  of  islenos  (islanders).  The  settlement  of  these  Canary  Islanders  at  Terre  aux  Boeufs, 
in  the  immediate  vicinity  of  New  Orleans,  is  well  worth  a  visit,  as  here  the  language  and  traits 
of  Spain  are  preserved  to  this  day. 

The  only  other  Spaniards  in  Louisiana  were  a  few  persons  of  Spanish-Mexican  descent  on 
the  uncertain  Texas  border,  the  office-holders,  a  respectable  class  of  good  Castilian  descent, 
who,  living  at  New  Orleans,  intermarried  with  the  Creole  families  until  they  lost  all  Iberian 
peculiarities,  save  their  names,  and  some  needy  Catalans,  the  "Dagoes"  of  those  days,  who 
have  since  melted  away  into  other  races.  The  other  Spanish  residents,  never  very  numerous 
left  for  Havana  when  the  banner  of  Castile  and  Arragon  no  longer  waved  at  New  Orleans. 

THE  NEGROES. 

The  negro  population  of  Louisiana  have  always  claimed  an  aristocracy  of  descent,  and 
boasted  that  their  hair  was  less  kinky,  their  faces  less  African,  than  those  of  the  less  favored 
darkies  of  other  States  and  climes— virtues  they  have  always  attributed  to  some  mythical 
Indian  ancestor. 

The  French  in  America,  like  the  Greeks  of  old,  enslaved  their  captives,  and  worked  the  van- 
quished Choctaws  in  the  indigo  fields.  In  the  first  few  years  of  Louisiana  life,  these  Indian  slaves 
predominated  in  numbers  over  the  negroes.  They  were  poor  laborers,  however,  lazy,  idle,  apt 
to  run  off  or  to  use  a  tomahawk  if  worked  too  hard.  The  Louisiana  planters,  thoroughly 
disgusted  with  them,  proposed  an  arrangement  with  the  "West  Indian  planters  by  which  they 
were  to  swap  off  their  Indian  slaves  for  good  stout  negroes  from  Martinique  and  St.  Lucie— 
three  Indians  to  count  for  two  negroes.     The  scheme  failed,  the  West  Indian  planters  sensibly 


168 


HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


refusing  to  take  the  savages  at  any  price.     The  Indian  slaves  were,  therefore,  sent  back  to  the 
plow  and  the  hoe,  supplemented  in  their  work  by  a  few  newly  imported  Africans. 

The  two  races,  red  and  black,  living  as  they  did,  in  the  same  quarters  and  cabins  gradually 
melted  into  one  race,  in  which  the  features  and  nature  of  the  Indian  was  lost  in  the  superior 
numbers  of  tne  negroes,  while  the  latter  improved  in  appearance,  and  boasted  less  woolly  hair 
than  the  negroes  of  other  parts  of  the  country. 

The  first  negroes  came  from  Martinique,  Gaudaloupe  and  San  Domingo,  but  importations  from 
these  islands  had  soon  to  be  forbidden  by  a  special  edict,  the  San  Domingo  negroes  being  too 
well  acquainted  with  Voudouism  and  poisons,  and  showing  even  at  that  early  period  those  bad 
traits  they  developed  more  thoroughly  in  1791-being  turbulent,  riotous  and  often  breaking 
into  flagrant  insurrection. 

As  early  as  1724,  Bienville,  then  Governor  of  Louisiana,  published  the  first  Black  Code  It  is 
significant  that  one  of  the  first  provisions  of  the  code  banished  Jews  from  Louisiana,  and  pro- 
hibited the  exercise  of  all  other  religions  than  the  Catholic. 

This  code  is  not  devoid  of  interest,  as  showing  the  feelings  and  the  opinions  of  the  epoch 
and  IS  a  striking  contrast  between  the  past  and  the  present.  This  decree  of  the  French  govern- 
ment made  it  imperative  on  masters  to  impart  religious  instruction  to  their  slaves  according  to 
the  tenets  of  the  Catholic,  Apostolic  and  Roman  Church,  no  other  mode  of  worship  being  per- 
mitted. Negroes  placed  under  the  direction  or  supervision  of  any  other  person  than  Catholics 
were  liable  to  confiscation.  Sundays  and  holidays  were  to  be  strictly  observed,  and  all  negroes 
found  at  work  on  such  days  were  to  be  confiscated.  Christian  slaves  were  to  be  buried  in  con. 
secrated  ground  by  their  masters.  Marriages  between  blacks  and  whites  were  crimes  to  be 
punished.  Whites  and  even  manumitted  or  free-born  blacks  were  prohibited  from  living  in  a 
state  of  concubinage  with  slaves.  The  ceremonies  and  forms  prescribed  by  the  ordinance  of 
Blois  and  by  the  edict  of  1630  for  marriages  were  to  be  observed  both  with  regard  to  free  persons 
and  to  slaves ;  but  the  consent  of  the  father  and  mother  of  the  slave  was  not  necessary  that  of 
the  master  only  being  suflicient. 

Slaves  were  forbidden  from  carrying  offensive  weapons  or  heavy  sticks.  An  exception  was 
made  in  favor  of  those  who  were  sent  hunting  or  shooting  by  their  masters,  and  carried  with 
them  a  written  permission  to  that  effect,  or  were  designated  by  some  known  mark  or  badge 

Slaves  belonging  to  different  masters  were  prohibited  from  gathering  in  crowds,  either  by 
day  or  by  night,  for  any  cause  or  under  any  pretext  whatever,  either  at  the  dwelling'  or  on  the 
gi-ounds  of  one  of  their  masters,  or  elsewhere,  and  much  less  on  the  highways  or  in  secluded 
places,  under  the  penalty  of  the  whip.  Incase  of  frequent  offenses  of  the  kind,  the  offenders 
were  branded  with  the  mark  of  the  flower-de-luce,  and  should  there  be  aggravating  circum- 
stances, capital  punishment  might  be  inflicted  at  the  discretion  of  the  judges.  Masters  permit- 
ting or  tolerating  such  gatherings  were  punished  on  conviction. 

Negroes  could  not  sell  any  commodities,  provisions  or  produce  of  any  kind  without  the 
written  permission  of  their  masters  or  without  wearing  their  known  marks  or  badges,  and  any 
person  purchasing  anything  from  negroes  In  violation  of  this  decree  was  sentenced  to  nav  the 
veryhigh  fine  of  1,500  livres.  i 

Very  humane  and  minute  provisions  were  made  at  length  in  that  document  for  the 
clothing  of  the  slaves  and  for  their  subsistence.  "Slaves,"  said  article  20  of  the  ordinance 
"who  shall  not  be  properly  clad,  fed,  and  provided  for  by  their  ma.-ters,  may  give  informa- 
tion thereof  to  the  attorney-general  of  the  Superior  Council  or  to  any  officer  of  justice  of  an 
inferior  jurisdiction,  and  may  put  the  written  exposition  of  their  wrongs  into  their  hands; 
upon  which  information,  and  even  ex  officio,  should  the  information  come  from  another 
quarter,  the  attorney-general  shall  prosecute  said  masters  without  ch.arging  any  costs  to  the 
complainants.  It  is  our  royal  will  that  this  regulation  be  observed  in  all  accusations  for 
crimes  or  barbarous  and  inhuman  treatment,  brought  by  slaves  against  their  masters." 

Slaves,  disabled  from  working,  either  by  old  age,  disease,  or  otherwise,  be  the  disease 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  169 

incurable  or*  not,  were  to  be  fed  and  provided  for  by  their  masters,  and  In  case  of  being 
abandoned  by  said  masters,  said  slaves  were  to  be  adjudged  to  the  nearest  hospital,  to 
which  said  masters  were  compelled  to  pay  eight  cents  a  day  for  the  food  and  maintenance 
of  each  of  these  slaves,  and  for  the  payment  of  this  sum  said  hospital  had  a  lien  on  the 
plantations  of  the  master. 

Soon  after  the  annexation  of  Louisiana  to  the  Union,  occurred  a  serious  slave  revolt  which 
began  on  one  of  the  plantations  of  the  German  Coast.  The  negroes  marched  along  the  river 
toward  the  city,  divided  into  companies,  each  under  an  officer,  with  beat  of  drums  and  flags 
displayed,  compelling  the  blacks  they  met  to  join  their  disorderly  crew,  and  before  they  could 
he  checked  they  set  fire  to  the  houses  of  four  or  five  plantations  and  made  a  few  victims.  Most 
of  the  planters,  being  apprised  by  their  own  slaves  of  the  coming  danger,  had  fled  ^vith  their 
families.  One  of  them,  named  Trepagnier,  contented  himself  with  sending  to  a  place  of  safety 
his  wife  and  children,  but,  deaf  to  their  entreaties,  remained  at  home  for  the  protection  of  his 
property.  Having  provided  himself  with  several  fowling-pieces,  which  he  loaded  with  buck- 
shot, and  having  taken  his  stand  on  a  high  circular  gallery  which  belted  his  house,  and  from 
which  he  could  see  to  a  distance,  he  awaited  calmly  the  coming  of  his  foes.  In  a  short  time 
bacchanalian  shouts  announced  their  approach,  and  they  tumultuously  made  their  appearance 
at  the  front  gate  which  led  to  the  planter's  residence.  But  at  the  sight  of  the  double-barreled 
gun  which  was  leveled  at  them  and  which  they  knew  to  be  in  the  hands  of  a  most  expert  shot, 
they  wavered,  lacked  self-sacrificing  devotion  to  accomplish  their  end,  and  finally  passed  on, 
after  having  vented  their  disappointed  wrath  in  fearful  shrieks  and  demoniacal  gesticulations. 
Shaking  at  the  planter  their  fists  and  whatever  weapons  they  had,  they  swore  soon  to  come  back 
for  the  purpose  of  cutting  his  throat.  They  were  about  500,  and  one  single  man,  weU-armed, 
had  kept  them  at  bay. 

The  misguided  negroes,  who  had  been  deluded  into  this  foolish  attempt  at  insurrection,  were 
soon  encompassed  by  a  strong  body  of  militia,  backed  by  regulars  under  Major  Milton,  who  had 
come  down  from  Baton  Rouge,  and  under  Gen.  Hampton,  who  had  hastened  up  with  those 
under  his  command  in  New  Orleans.  To  attack  was  to  rout  the  blacks  ;  they  fled  in  every 
direction  with  wild  cries  of  despair,  leaving  sixty-six  bodies  on  the  field.  Most  of  the  prisoners 
were  hung  on  the  spot ;  sixteen  were  sent  to  the  city  for  trial.  The  fugitives  had  taken  shelter 
in  the  neighboring  swamps,  where  they  could  be  pursued  with  but  extreme  diflaculty.  Many  of 
them,  however,  had  been  dangerously  wounded,  and  every  day  corpses  were  discovered  by  the 
pursuers.  The  wretches  sent  to  New  Orleans  were  immediately  tried  and  convicted.  As  it  was 
intended  to  make  a  warning  example  of  them,  their  heads  were  placed  on  high  poles  above  and 
below  the  city  along  the  river,  as  far  as  the  plantation  on  which  the  revolt  began.  The  ghastly 
sight  spread  terror  far  and  wide,  and  further  to  insure  tranquility  and  to  quiet  alarm,  a  part  of 
the  regular  forces  and  of  the  militia  remained  on  duty  in  the  neighborhood  for  a  considerable 

time. 

THE  INDIANS. 

In  the  romantic  chapter  of  the  history  of  Colonial  Louisiana,  the  Indian,  as  was  natural, 
figures  largely. 

Of  the  many  thousands  of  aborigines  who  once  held,  under  the  superior  patent  of  Nature, 
the  vast  territory  that  composed  old  Louisiana,  the  fifteen  or  twenty  Choctaw  women  whom 
one  sees  at  the  French  Market,  sitting  patiently,  silent  and  motionless,  waiting  (with  some 
contempt,  if  the  truth  were  known)  for  the  pale-face  purchaser  of  their  pounded  laurel  and 
sassafras  leaves,  from  which  is  derived  that  triumph  of  Louisiana  cookery,  the  gornhojile  ;  their 
baskets,  strongly  woven  from  the  stalk  and  leaves  of  the  latanier ;  their  medicinal  herbs— the 
drugs  and  simples  of  natural  man— are.  with  the  males  of  their  families,  almost  the  sole 
survivors  of  the  race  which  inherited  the  land  from  their  fathers.  And  it  seems  strange  that 
these  representatives  of  the  aborigines  should  belong  to  that  nation,  the  Choctaw,  which  was 
always  hostile  to  the  French. 


170  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

In  colonial  days  the  principal  nations  with  which  the  French  had  dealings  in  peace  or  war 
were  the  Illinois,  the  Natchez,  the  Mobilians,  the  Choctaws,  the  Alabamous  and  the  Chickasaws 
The  Illinois  and  the  Alabamons  were  the  most  friendly ;  the  Chicasaws  and  the  Choctaws  the 
most  hostile. 

Within  a  period  as  late  as  the  memory  of  the  old  citizens  of  New  Orleans,  the  remnant  of 
the  aboriginal  population  of  Louisiana  still  frequented  New  Orleans  in  the  winter  time  in  great 
numbers.  They  had  been  accustomed  to  gather  in  this  city  annually  undsr  the  Spanish  domin- 
ation  in  order  to  receive  a  certain  allowance  of  woolen  goods,  guns,  powder  and  shot,  vermil- 
ion and  other  small  presents  which  were  given  them  as  evidence  of  friendship  and  good  will. 
Each  band  had  its  village  beyond  the  city  limits,  composed  of  huts  covered  with  the  skins  of 
bears  and  of  deer,  or  with  the  leaves  of  the  latanier.  During  the  daytime  they  spread  about  the 
city  and  among  the  neighboring  plantations,  and  in  the  evening  they  returned,  men,  women 
and  children,  to  their  camps.  The  women,  then  as  now,  brought  their  small  wares  to  market;' 
the  men  were  hunters  of  deer,  ducks,  squirrels,  and  other  game.  In  those  days  the  men  wore 
on  their  heads  a  sort  of  helmet  furnished  with  large  feathers,  and  they  still  retained  enough  of 
their  old  fashions  to  paint  their  faces,  on  a  vermilion  ground,  with  blue  transverse  and  spiral 
lines  which,  united  to  their  costume,  was  in  keeping  with  the  MardiGras  season,  the  period  in 
which  they  were  found  in  greatest  numbers  in  the  city. 

There  are  two  or  three  very  interesting  Indian  settlements  in  the  neighborhood  of  New 
Orleans,  one  at  Indian  village  near  Bayou  Lacombe  just  north  of  New  Orleans,  another  at  Bayou 
Lacroix,  and  still  another  on  the  Teche. 

On  one  of  the  most  sequestered  bends  of  that  picturesque  stream,  the  Bayou  Teche  the 
attention  of  the  traveler  is  attracted  by  a  number  of  small  cabins  built  at  little  distances  from 
one  another  with  that  irregularity  which  at  once  indicates  they  are  not  the  usual  plantation 
quarters.  These  small  houses  are  of  cypress,  and  their  roofs  are  covered  with  the  '  arge  shingles 
of  old  Creole  days.  The  overhanging  oaks,  that  add  so  much  to  the  romantic  beauty  of  the 
stream,  are  draped  in  trailing  tresses  of  Spanish  moss  that  give  a  sombre  tinge  to  the  landscape 
and  the  barely  perceptible  current  of  the  bayou  increases  the  drowsy  effect  of  the  sylvan  vistas 
of  deep  shadows  and  mellow  lights.  The  Teche,  everywhere  so  beautiful,  here  retains  much  of 
her  primeval  loveliness,  and  the  imagination  hears  the  footsteps  of  laughing  Dryades  in  every 
rustle  of  the  breeze-blown  live  oaks.  The  wind  murmurs  pastorals  without  words,  while  the 
fretwork  of  gold  and  black  trembles  in  unison  to  this  music,  on  the  grass  beneath  the  trees  where 
the  sun  with  resistless  pertmacity,  has  penetrated  through  the  thick  foliage. 

About  twenty-five  miles  above  where  the  meandering  Teche  flows  into  the  Atchafalaya  is 
Indian  Bend,  and  it  derives  its  name  from  a  little  cluster  of  cabins  which  are  situated  there.  Here 
formore  than  a  century  has  dwelt  the  last  remnant  of  the  once  powerful  tribe  of  Attakapas 
once  the  terror  of  all  other  red  men  hereabouts,  for  it  was  told  of  them  that  they  devoured  the 
flesh  of  their  fallen  foes. 

The  last  remaining  families  now  residing  in  Indian  Bend  are  of  the  Chetimacha  tribe,  a 
branch  of  the  Attakapas,  and  as  relics  of  a  once  great  nation  they  are  most  interesting  to  study. 
Far  more  difficult  to  approach  and  less  communicative  when  approached  than  the  Choctaws,  it 
was  not  without  much  trouble  that  what  is  here  given  was  learned. 

The  people  living  near  them  still  hold  them  in  something  like  awe  and  strangers  are  not 
escorted  to  their  village  without  minute  advice  as  to  how  they  must  behave,  and  even  then 
much  reluctance  is  shown.  It  is  not  a  little  curious  to  note  the  hesitancv  with  which  a  resident 
of  that  locality  wiU  endeavor  to  prevent  one  from  making  a  visit  to  this  Indian  village.  If  you 
desire  an  introduction  to  these  aborigines  you  are  told  that  a  very  dangerous  fever  is  prevailing 
among  them.  If  you  express  a  willingness  to  brave  the  disease  you  are  informed  it  is  not  the 
proper  time  of  day  to  call.    When  the  proper  time  arrives  it  is  said  the  sun  is  too  hot. 

There  is  an  atmosphere  of  loneliness  hanging  over  the  little  settlement,  notwithstanding  the 
three  or  four  women  moving  languidly  about  from  one  cabin  to  another  in  the  yellow  sunlight. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS. 


171 


Around  their  reservation  waving  fields  of  cane  in  bright  apple-green  speak  of  the  growth  of 
civilization  that  hemmed  them  in.  but  this  does  not  seem  to  move  their  perfect  apathy,  for  no 
attempt  at  cultivation  is  to  be  seen  near  their  homes.  No  prattle  of  children  no  song  of 
mothers,  no  sound  of  life  is  to  be  heard.  All  is  silent,  as  if  animate  hfe  were  extmct.  At  he 
sight  of  a  stranger  the  women  retire,  and  it  is  only  when  the  door  of  a  cabm  is  approached  that 
a  man  shows  himself.  ,  „v„* 

In  personal  appearance  they  differ  somewhat  from  our  Choctaws.  The  men  are  somewhat 
darker  than  those  who  come  to  the  city  to  sell  their  wares,  their  cheekbones  very  high  and  their 
eyes  keen  and  quick  of  movement.  Pursy,  sensual  mouths,  indicate  a  deterioration  of  the  race, 
but  even  with  this  drawback  their  expression  is  one  of  perfect  self-assurance  ,f  not  boldness. 
They  are  fully  up  to  the  average  height  of  the  white  man,  and  their  broad  shoulders  show 
that  they  come  from  a  big-framed  people.  The  women  are  neater  and  more  comely  than  the 
men,  and  their  faces  betoken  quick  Intelligence.  All  are  dressed  in  the  habits  of  the  whites,  the 
men  in  cottonade  pants  and  calico  shirt,  the  women  calico  skirt  and  bright  colored  waist  or 
josey.  In  their  intercourse  with  the  outside  world  they  speak  the  Creole  patois,  but  between 
themselves  still  use  their  mother  tongue.  Their  spoken  language  differs  from  all  others  of  our 
known  Indians.  It  is  mi  generis,  and  can  be  likened  to  nothing  so  much  as  to  the  twittermg  of 
birds.  It  is  made  up  of  labials  and  sibilants,  and  each  syllable  seems  of  sharp  brevity.  The 
absence  of  guttural  sounds  makes  their  speech  sound  more  Uke  an  attempt  at  loud  whispermg 
which,  with  the  short  syllables,  produces,  as  was  said  before,  the  twittering  sound. 
'  So  far  as  has  been  observed,  none  of  tlie  ceremonies  or  festivals  of  their  ancestors  are  fol- 
lowed or  celebrated,  but  it  is  possible  within  their  close  community  old  rites  may  be  regularly 
observed  unknown  to  their  neighbors.  ^    ^^.    ^^  i 

One  of  the  most  remarkable  arts  they  have  preserved  is  basket-makmg.  In  this  they  excel. 
In  fact,  north  of  Mexico  there  is  no  tribe  in  which  such  exquisite  specimens  of  both  workman- 
ship and  color  can  be  found.  ,  ^, 

Their  baskets  are  really  objects  of  art.  and  are  highly  prized  by  those  who  can  secure  them. 
They  are  made  of  cane,  but  so  small  and  delicate  are  the  strips,  some  appear  to  have  been  woven 
of  the  finest  material.  With  their  finger  nails  they  strip  off  the  hard  cuticle  from  the  ordmary  wild 
cane,  and  the  different  dyes  are  applied  before  the  weaving  begins. 

These  dyes  are  imperishable,  and,  notv/ithstanding  many  temptations  held  out,  they  stiU 
refuse  to  divulge  the  secret  of  their  manufacture.  Such  is  their  ingenuity  of  design  no  two  of 
these  baskets  are  alike.  Squares,  triangles,  curious  hieroglyphics  and  geometric  patterns  in 
white,  red,  chocolate,  yeUow  and  black,  make  each  piece  of  work  unique,  and  all  so  wrought 
that  there  is  a  unity  in  the  composition  evincing  a  remarkably  high  order  of  taste.  The  larger 
baskets  are  double,  the  outside  being  covered  with  designs,  while  the  interior  is  plam.  and  such 
is  their  fineness  they  would  hold  water.  v.+„-,,«.i    ft^K 

So  much  sought  for  are  these  baskets  that  it  is  with  difficulty  that  they  can  be  obtained,  $15 
to  $20  being  asked  for  the  larger.  They  will  not  make  them  without  an  order,  and  even  then 
they  have  to  be  coaxed  and  cajoled.  .         .  , , 

Their  wants  are  very  few,  and  when  spoken  to  on  the  subject  they  mvanably  comment  on 
the  high  price  of  coffee,  a  beverage  of  which  they  are  immoderately  fond  Hominy  and  a  httle 
salt  meat  make  up  the  entire  diet.  Frugal  in  their  tastes  and  economic  by  habit,  they  manage 
to  live  quite  comfortably  on  their  small  income  from  basket  making  and  light  work.  Never 
interfering  with  the  neighboring  whites  on  the  plantations,  they  are  almost  forgotten  by 
the  residents  of  the  locality,    and,   as  they   rarely  disturb    the   Arcadian   quiet  they  are 

""^'^UnUke  moturibes  they  recognize  female  equality,  and  the  twenty-five  or  thirty  Indians  left 
are  now  ruled  by  a  queen,  the  chief  having  died. 


172  HISTORICAL  SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XVII.— THE  OLD  RAMPARTS. 

MILITARY    NEW    ORLEANS— THE    WALLS    AND    FORTIFICATIONS    OF    NEW    ORLEANS THE 

SEVERAL   EXPEDITIONS   AGAINST  THE  CITY— JACKSON   AT    CHALMETTE — FARRAGUT'S 
FLEET. 

New  Orleans  can  boast  of  once  having  been  a  fortress,  second  only  to  Metz  and  Strasburg. 
It  had  a  very  military,  a  very  threatening  and  dangerous  look  on  the  map  of  that  day,  with  its 
forts  and  redoubts,  its  bastions  and  its  covered  ways,  its  scarps,  counter-scarps,  glacis,  friezes, 
revetments,  and  everything  else  military  in  name.  A  century  ago  it  boasted  of  its  walls— virgin 
walls,  too ;  no  one  had  ever  stormed  them  ;  no  one  had  ever  tried  to  climb  over  them  ;  more,  no 
unfriendly  person  had  ever  been  near  enough  to  get  even  a  glance  at  them.  Whether  they  were 
of  any  practical  use  in  those  days  may  well  be  doubted  ;  but,  to  New  Orleans  of  this  day,  they 
cei-tainly  have  been  a  benefit,  for  to  them  it  owes  the  beauty  and  width  of  Canal,  Rampart  and 
Esplanade,  whose  neutral  grounds  mark  the  ancient  fortifications,  as  the  boulevards  of  Paris 
mark  its  older  and  dismantled  walls. 

New  Orleans  was  well  defended  then.  Forts  innumerable  were  scattered  over  the  country, 
generally  where  they  were  least  needed.  Suppose  an  enemy,  with  evil  designs  upon  Louisiana, 
had  determined  on  the  capture  of  the  city,  what  would  he  not  have  encountered  before  he 
could  become  its  master  ?  First,  he  would  have  found  at  the  Balize  a  formidable  fort,  built  on 
the  treacherous  mud,  at  considerable  expense.  This  fort  figured  in  at  least  one  long  and  bloody 
war  which  history  has  somehow  neglected  to  preserve.  In  the  winter  of  1793,  a  skiff-load  of 
marines  from  the  French  sloop  La  Parisienne,  attacked  the  Balize,  and  captured  it  with  all  its 
garrison— four  men.  Loss,  a  pack  of  cards  and  an  old  pistol.  Masters  of  the  fort,  the  French 
vigorously  and  courageously  maintained  themselves  for  several  months  against  all  the  odds  of 
Spain.  Carondelet,  then  governor,  and  the  other  Spanish  authorities,  were  greatly  alarmed  at 
this  loss.  Some  months  after,  a  company  of  Spanish  troops  was  sent  down  to  the  Balize,  the 
fort  stormed  in  noble  style,  and  the  four  imprisoned  Spaniards  that  had  served  as  a  garrison 
released,  nobody  being  hurt  on  either  side  in  this  second  battle  of  the  Balize.  The  French  left 
immediately  upon  the  appearance  of  the  Spaniards,  carrying  off,  as  trophies,  the  four  muskets 
they  had  captured,  and  some  old,  stale,  damaged  rations,  to  the  great  delight  of  the  garrison, 
who  now  counted  on  getting  something  fresh.  Thus,  by  Spanish  valor,  was  the  enemy  repulsed 
and  this  bloody  war  brought  to  an  end. 

At  English  Turn,  quite  a  distance  up  the  river,  was  a  second  fortress,  originally  designed, 
upon  the  same  scale  of  magnificence  which  characterized  the  other  defenses  of  New  Orleans, 
for  forty  cannon.  They  did  get  a  few  small  guns,  but  the  troops  did  not  worry  or  bother  over 
them  in  the  least,  finding  life  far  pleasanter  up  at  the  cabarets  in  the  city,  and  reasoning,  very 
correctly,  too,  that  if  the  enemy's  ships  could  sail  up  the  Mississippi  River  against  the  current, 
contrary  winds,  etc.,  nothing  that  they  could  do  with  their  rusty  old  guns  would  have  the  least 
effect  in  delaying  them. 

In  the  rear  of  the  town,  commanding  the  entrance  of  Bayou  St.  John,  stood  and  stands  to 
this  very  day,  a  small  fort  of  brick  and  earth,  now  newly  painted  and  repaired,  and  debased  to 
the  condition  of  a  restaurant.  A  few  old  guns  lie  around  the  yard  as  mementoes,  as  useful 
there  as  they  ever  were  in  the  old  days,  for  no  enemy  more  dangerous  than  some  predatory 
gar-fish  in  the  bayou,  ever  disturbed  the  sleepy  quiet  of  old  Fort  St.  John. 

If  some  adventurous  enemy  had  attacked  the  fort,  silenced  its  guns,  stormea  its  walls,  and 
then  triumphantly  dragged  his  boats  over  the  three-foot  bar  at  the  mouth  of  the  bayou,  in 
how  much  better  a  condition  would  he  have  been  ?    A  few  miles  of  weary  strugling  through 


Cf^Eoue,C°"'^G^ 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  173 

the  shallow,  mnddy  stream,  and  he  would  have  found  himself  in  a  dismal,  unfathomable  cypress 
swamp,  the  resort  of  alligators,  lepers,  thieves  and  runaway  negroes.  If  he  got  his  men  safely 
through  this  without  any  loss  from  the  army  of  mosquitoes  that  hung  upon  his  flanks,  he  would 
have  found  himself,  after  all  his  journey,  standing  on  the  Congo  field,  where  of  a  Sunday  night 
or  on  St.  John's  eve,  the  negroes  used  to  dance  the  Youdou  dance,  with  the  walls  of  the  city 
rising  before  him,  cannon  frowning  at  him  from  the  embrasures,  and  soldiers  ready  to  join  issue 
with  him.  Genuine  walls  were  there  too,  with  a  regular  fosse  in  front  like  all  European 
fortresses,  forty  feet  wide  by  seven  deep  ;  somewhat  choked  up,  it  is  true,  with  weeds  and  grass 
and  seemmg  to  offer  a  secure  footing,  but  which  would  treacherouslv  have  plunged  any  enemy 
that  had  attempted  to  cross,  save  by  the  regular  bridges,  into  the  slime  and  mud  at  the  bottom, 
the  victim  of  poisonous  congers,  water  moccasins  and  cray-fish. 

Behind  this  was  the  wall,  built  of  mud,  like  that  Romulus  gave  his  infant  city,  and  resembUng 
very  much  what  we  style  nowadays  a  levee.  Above  this  ran  a  line  of  wooden  palisades  or 
pickets,  behind  which  the  garrison  might  stand  and  pick  off  the  enemy,  if  they  were  not 
particular  about  risking  their  own  lives,  as  the  palisades  were  no  defense  whatever. 

Five  forts  protected  this  wall  two  on  the  river  bank,  St.  Charles  and  St.  Louis,  and  three  in 
the  rear  of  the  city,  St.  Joseph,  St.  Ferdinand  and  Burgundy.  These  forts  were  pentagonal 
m  shape,  built  mside  of  brick,  and  afforded  barracks,  each  for  two  companies  of  infantry.  They 
were  pierced  for  sixteen  guns,  four  in  the  face,  three  on  each  flank,  and  two  in  the  gorge,  facing 
the  city,  in  case  the  burghers  should  rise,  for  whose  particular  benefit  these  fortifications  were 
built  rather  than  as  a  protection  against  foreign  enemies. 

Beside  these,  there  was  a  battery  just  in  front  of  the  city,  for  the  benefit  of  anv  fleet  that 
might  have  ventured  up  the  river.  But,  however  brilliantly  designed  these  fortification^  they 
were  but  feebly  carried  out.  One  fort  only-St.  Charles-had  its  full  complement  of  gun's  the 
others  were  far  short  of  the  number,  and  some  ^\itbout  any  armament  at  all ;  so  that  it  would 
have  been  utterly  impossible  to  have  brought  more  than  ten  small  cannon  to  bear  at  the  same 
time  on  any  attacking  enemy.  "  In  fine,"  said  old  Gen.  Collot,  and  he  ought  to  know,  as  he  was 
locked  up  some  weeks  in  one  of  them-Fort  St.  Charles-' '  these  bastions  look  more  like  children's 
playthmgs  than  genuine  forts." 

There  were  four  wooden  gates  to  the  city,  made  of  pickets,  twelve  or  fifteen  feet  long  and 
defended  by  breastworks.  Two  were  situated  on  the  river  bank,  at  the  upper  and  lower  eid  of 
Chartres  street ;  another,  Porte  St.  Jean,  at  the  end  of  Dumaine  street,  on  the  road  leading  to 
the  lake,  and  another  still  higher  up.  At  the  early  hour  of  nine  these  gates  were  closed,  and 
everybody  expected  to  be  at  home.  Outside,  the  serenos,  as  the  Metropolitans  of  that  day  were 
styled  promenaded  up  and  down  the  streets,  crying  out  the  state  of  the  weather  and  the  time 
o  clock.  Off  to  the  calabosa  went  any  crowd  of  citizens  that  dared  discuss  politic^  or  the 
situation  m  Prance,  or  any  tipsy  revellers  trying  to  find  their  way  home,  but  confused  by  the 
clumsy  wooden  trottoirs  of  that  day. 

The  forts  and  covered  way  between  them  afforded  comfortable  accommodation  for  from 
welve  to  fifteen  hundred  men.  In  addition  there  were  in  the  city,  on  Barracks  street,  a  large 
long  one-story  brick  building,  capable  of  holding  fifteen  hundred  men,  and  on  Chartres  street 
another  with  lodges,  stables,  etc..  for  five  hundred  dragoons  ;  so  that  there  were  quarters  enough 
tor  an  army  of  soldiers,  but  unfortunately  no  army  for  the  quarters. 

Those  troops  the  Government  had  managed  to  collect  together  at  some  trouble  were  a  very 
aard  set.  They  spent  most  of  their  time  singing,  drinking,  and  gambling  in  the  cabarets  on 
loulouse  street.  They  were  allowed  a  good  deal  of  freedom  and  did  pretty  much  what  they 
3ieased.  Occasionally,  however,  when,  after  a  long  spree  on  very  bad  tafia,  they  ran  a-muck 
ina  grew  so  violent  as  to  knock  down  and  beat  some  quiet  and  inoffensive  farmer  from  the 
^erman  coast,  come  to  the  city  with  a  cargo  of  cabbages  to  S(  11,  they  were  locked  up  in  the 

T^'i  ^'^^^^  ^^^^  ^^"^^^  ^^^^^  °^'  ^^^  perhaps  received  in  addition  a  dozen  or  so  lashes. 

ims  was  far  from  agreeable  medicine  to  them,  and  on  the  very  first  opportunity  they  mut- 


174  '  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

inied,  killed  their  officers,  deserted,  and,  like  Captain  Dalgetty,  entered  the  service  of  any  coun 
try  that  would  have  them.  If,  however,  they  w^ere  caught,  it  fared  badly,  indeed,  with  them 
Military  discipline  was  loose  enough  in  Louisiana— the  men  knew  more  about  tafia  than  gur  s 
and  spent  more  of  their  time  in  cabarets  than  in  the  bastions— but  military  punishment  hac 
caught  some  of  the  nice  little  ideas  from  the  Inquisition.  A  recaptured  mutineer  was  treatec 
in  a  very  emphatic  and  exemplary  manner.  Dressed  in  the  "  wedding  garments  of  the  grave,' 
he  was  nailed  alive  in  a  neat,  comfortable  cypress  coffin,  which  was  then  slowly  sawed  in  hal 
by  the  executioner. 

If  the  deserter  escaped,  but  could  not  reach  any  neighboring  nation— England,  the  nearest 
was  a  thousand  miles  away — he  generally  took  to  the  woods,  fraternized  with  the  savages,  mai 
ried  a  squaw,  became  a  chief,  and  in  a  very  short  time  had  forgotten  altogether  his  languagf 
his  religion  and  his  name.  Sometimes,  however,  he  grew  tired  of  this  savage  life,  even  wit 
plenty  of  men  and  squaw?,  and  nothing  to  do  but  fight,  and,  after  a  few  years'  experience  of  it 
would  return  to  civilization,  tattooed  beyond  recognition,  and  scatter  around  some  of  the  fal 
ulous  stories  he  had  picked  up  from  the  Indians,  of  gold  mines,  emerald  caves,  etc. 

This  would,  of  course,  set  the  adventurous  young  men  of  the  colony  wild,  until  they  got  u 
some  Black  Hill  expedition  in  search  of  gold  ;  from  which  a  few  survivors  would  return,  waste 
and  worn  with  their  irregular  diet  of  pine-tops  and  berries,  and  bringing  back  nothing  excet 
chills  and  fever. 

In  fine.  New  Orleans,  a  century  ago,  might  have  boasted  of  being  a  very  military  city. 

THE  BATTLE  OF  NEW  OKLEANS. 

On  the  23d  of  December,  1814,  at  half  past  1  o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  the  sentry  at  the  doc 
of  General  Jackson's  headquarters,  at  No.  106  Royal  street,  announced  the  arrival  of  thre 
gentlemen  who  had  just  come  galloping  down  the  street  in  hot  haste,  and  desired  an  immediat 
audience  with  the  General.  These  visitors  were  Major  Gabrielle  Yillere,  son  of  Major-Genert 
Villere,  Colonel  De  la  Ronde,  and  Mr.  Dussau  la  Croix,  who  brought  the  stirring  news  of  th 
approach  of  the  vanguard  of  the  British  army,  which  was  at  that  hour  encamped  on  the  Villei 
plantation,  nine  miles  below  the  city. 

"At  the  close  of  Major  Villere's  narrative,  the  General  drew  up  his  figure,  bowed  wit 
disease  and  weakness,  to  its  full  height,  and  with  an  eye  of  fire  and  an  emphatic  blow  upt 
the  table  with  his  clenched  fist,  exclaimed : 

"'By  the  Eternal,  they  shall  not  sleep  on  our  soil  I' 

"  Then  courteously  inviting  the  visitors  to  refresh  themselves,  and  sipping  a  glass  of  win 
in  compliment  to  them,  he  turned  to  his  secretary  and  aids  and  remarked  : 

"  '  Gentlemen,  the  British  are  below.    We  must  fight  them  to  night.' " 

GeneralJackson  dispatched  a  messenger  to  each  oi'  the  corps  under  his  command,  orderin 
them  with  all  haste  to  break  up  their  camps  and  march  to  positions  assigned  them :  Genera 
Carroll  to  the  head  of  Bienvenu,  Governor  Claiborne  to  a  point  further  up  the  GentiUy  roa 
which  road  leads  from  Chef  Menteur  to  New  Orleans  ;  the  rest  of  the  troops  to  a  plantatio 
just  below  the  city.  Commodore  Patterson  was  also  sent  for  and  requested  to  prepare  tl: 
Carolina  for  weighing  anchor  and  dropping  down  the  river. 

These  orders  issued,  the  General  sat  down  to  dinner  and  ate  a  little  rice,  the  only  food  hi 
system  could  then  endure.  He  then  lay  down  upon  a  sofa  in  his  office  and  dozed  for  a  shot 
time.  It  was  the  last  sleep  the  General  was  to  enjoy  for  seventy  hours  or  more— for  five  day 
and  nights  one  writer  positively  asserts.  Who  else  could  have  slept  at  such  a  time?  Befor< 
3  o'clock  he  mounted  his  horse  and  rode  to  the  lower  part  of  the  city,  where  then  stoo< 
Fort  St.  Charles,  on  ground  now  occupied  by  the  Branch  Mint  building  Before  the  gates  o 
the  fort  he  took  his  station,  waiting  to  see  the  troops  pass  on  their  way  to  the  vicinity  of  th 
enemy's  position,  and  to  give  his  final  orders  to  the  various  commanders. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  175 

Drawn  up  near  him,  in  imposing  array,  was  one  of  the  two  regiments  of  regulars,  the  44th 
Infantry,  Colonel  Eoss,  mustering  three  hundred  and  thirty-one  muskets.  Around  the  General 
were  gathered  his  six  aids,  Captain  Butler,  Captain  Reid,  Captain  Chotard,  Edward  Livingston 
Mr.  Davezac,  Mr.  Duplessis.  The  other  regiment  of  regulars,  the  7th  Infantry,  Major  Peire,  four 
hundred  and  sixty-five  muskets,  had  already  marched  down  the  road,  to  guard  it  against  the 
enemy's  advance.  With  them  were  sixty-six  marines,  twenty-two  artiUerymen  and''  two  six- 
pounders,  under  Colonel  McRae  and  Lieutenant  Spotts,  and  the  regalar  artillery.  Captain  Beal's 
famous  company  of  Xew  Orleans  riflemen,  composed  of  merchants  and  lawyers  of  the  city  were 
also  below,  defending  the  high  road.  A  cloud  of  dust  on  the  levee,  and  the  thunder  of  horses' 
feet,  soon  announced  to  the  expectant  General  the  approach  of  cavalry. 

Col.  Hinds,  of  the  Mississippi  Dragroons,  emerged  from  the  dust  cloud  galloping  at  the  head 
of  his  troops,  whom  he  led  swiftly  by  to  the  designated  spot.  Coffee,  with  his  Tennesseeans,  v^-as 
not  far  behind.  Halting  at  the  General's  side,  he  conversed  with  him  a  few  minutes,  and  then 
rejoining  his  men,  gave  the  word,  "Forward,  at  a  gallop,"  and  the  long  line  of  back'woodsmen 
swept  rapidly  past.  Next  came  In  view  a  parti-colored  host  on  foot,  at  a  run,  which  proved  to 
be  Major  Plauche's  fine  battalion  of  uniformed  companies.  "Ah!"  cried  Jackson  to  his  Aid 
Davezao,  "  Here  come  the  brave  Creoles."  They  had  run  all  the  way  from  Fort  St.  John  and 
came  breathless  into  the  General's  presence.  In  a  moment  they  too  had  received  their  orders 
and  were  again  in  motion.  A  battalion  of  colored  freemen,  under  Major  D'Aquin,  and  a  small 
body  of  Choctaw  Indians,  under  Capt.  Jugeaut,  arrived,  halted,  passed  on,  and  the  General  had 
seen  his  available  force  go  by. 

The  number  of  troops  that  went  that  afternoon  to  meet  the  enemy  was  two  thousand  one 
hundred  and  thirty-one,  of  whom  considerably  more  than  half  had  never  been  in  action  The 
commanders  of  the  differ,  nt  corps  had  all  received  the  same  simple  orders  :  To  advance  as  far  as 
the  Rodriguez  Canal,  six  miles  below  the  city  and  two  miles  above  the  Yillere  plantation ;  there 
to  halt,  take  positions,  and  wait  for  orders  to  close  with  the  enemy.  The  Rodriguez  Canal  was 
no  more  than  a  wide,  shaDow  ditch,  which  extended  across  the  firm  ground  from  the  river  to 
the  swamp. 

During  the  bustle  attending  the  departure  of  the  troops,  the  city  seemed  still  confident  and 
cheerful.  As  the  men  hurried  along  the  levee,  the  windows  were  crowded  with  ladies  waving 
their  handkerchiefs  and  hiding  with  smiles  the  anxiety  that  rent  theu-  hearts.  Husbands 
fathers,  brothers,  nephews,  friends,  were  recognized  in  the  moving  masses  of  soldiers. 

Wives,  mothers,  sisters  were  discerned  at  the  familiar  windows.  The  salutations  then 
hurriedly  given  were  the  last  that  were  ever  exchanged  between  some  of  those  panting  soldiers 
and  those  they  loved. 

The  result  of  the  affair  of  December  23d  was  the  saving  of  Louisiana,  for  it  cannot  be 
doubted  that  the  enemy,  had  he  not  been  attacked  \\ith  such  impetuosity  when  he  bad  hardly 
effected  his  disembarkation,  would  that  very  night  or  early  next  morning,  have  marched  against 
the  city,  which  was  not  then  covered  by  any  fortification,  and  was  defended  by  hardly  five 
thousand  men,  mostly  militia,  who  could  not,  in  the  open  field,  have  withstood  disciplined 
troops,  accustomed  to  the  use  of  the  bayonet,  a  weapon  with  which  most  of  the  militia  were 
inprovided. 

The  troops  engaged  in  the  action  of  the  23d,  in  the  plain  of  GentUly,  were  as  follows  : 
"The  right,  commanded  by  Gen.  Jackson  in  person,  was  composed  of 

V  detachment  of  marine?  under  command  of  Lieut.  Bellevue 66 

i  detachment  of  artillery  with  two  slx-pounders,  under  the  immediate  command  of  Col. 

McRae  and  Lieut.  Spotts '    09 

'th  Regiment,  Ma  j  or  Peire 4^5 

4th,  commanded  by  Capt.  Baker 331 


176  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Major  Plauche's  Battalion  Carabineers,  Capt.  Eoche 86 

Dismounted  Dragoons,  Major  St.  Geme 78 

Louisiana  Blues,  Capt.  White 31 

Francs,  Capt.  Hudry 33 

Chasseurs,  Capt.  Guibert 59 

287 

The  Battalion  of  San  Domingo  men  of  colore  Major  D'Aquin 210 

Choctaws,  Capt.  Pierre  Jugeaut 18 

228 

The  left,  commanded  by  Gen.  Coffee,  was  composed  as  follows  : 

Tennessee  Volunteer  Mounted  Riflemen,  forming  Gen.  Coffee's  Brigade 563 

Orleans  Rifle  Company,  Capt.  Beale 62 

Mississippi  Dragoons,  Major  Hinds 107 

732 

Total 2,131 

When  New  Orleans  was  threatened  by  the  British  the  Legislature  passed  a  special  law, 
authorizing  the  formation  of  a  battalion  of  free  men  of  color,  which  shortly  took  the  field 
under  Major  Lacoste,  a  gallant  officer,  subsequently  killed  in  a  duel.  Another  battalion  of  free 
men  of  color  was  afterward  formed  under  the  direction  of  Col.  Michel  Fortier,  a  brave  soldier 
and  prominent  citizen.  Col.  Savary,  of  San  Domingo,  organized  this  new  corps,  the  members 
of  which  were  refugees  from  that  island.  Its  command  was  confided  to  Major  D'Aquin,  of  the 
Second  Regiment  of  Militia.  These  colored  troops  did  excellent  service  in  the  field,  and  on  the 
8th  of  January  were  posted  to  the  left  of  Plauche's  Battalion. 

Plauche's  Battalion  of  Volunteers  and  Capt.  Beale 's  Company  of  Orleans  Riflemen  contrib- 
uted very  largely  to  the  success  of  Americans  in  the  affairs  of  the  2.3d  and  28th  December,  and 
the  engagements  of  January. 

The  Plauche  Battalion  was  composed  mostly  of  Frenchmen  by  birth— merchants,  lawyers, 
clerks— the  flower  of  the  population,  and  in  the  defense  of  New  Orleans  they  displayed  the  per- 
sonal valor,  martial  ardor  and  enthusiasm  characteristic  of  the  French  nation. 

Jackson's  lines  on  the  eighth  of  January,  within  five  miles  of  the  city's  limits  at  that  day, 
ran  along  the  limits  of  Rodriguez's  and  Chalmette's  plantations,  from  the  river  bank  to  the 
swamp.  The  parapet,  mainly  of  earthwork,  revetted  with  plank,  in  some  places  twenty  feet 
thick  and  five  high,  extended  nearly  a  mile,  being  situated  on  the  brink  of  an  old  saw-mill  race, 
or  coulee.  Without  entering  into  details,  the  disposition  of  the  troops  was  as  follows :  The 
redoubt  on  the  river,  in  front  of  the  extremity  of  the  line  on  the  right,  was  manned  by  a  com- 
pany of  the  Seventh  Regiment,  Lieut.  Ross.  Within  the  line,  on  the  right,  was  Capt.  Beale's 
volunteer  company ;  Seventh  Regiment  Regulars,  Major  Peire  ;  Major  Plauche's  battalion  of 
volunteers;  Major  Lacoste's  battalion  of  men  of  color;  Major  D'Aquin's  battalion  of  San 
Domingo  men  of  color ;  the  Forty-fourth  Regiment  Regulars,  Capt.  Baker;  the  troops  of  Gen. 
Carroll,  supported  by  the  Kentuckians  under  Gen.  John  Adair  ;  and  on  the  rest  of  the  line,  to 
the  swamp,  Gen.  Coffee's  brigade.  The  batteries  were  stationed  at  intervals.  Including  100 
artillerists,  the  line  was  defended  by  3,200  armed  men,  800  of  the  available  forces  having  been 
distributed  in  various  detachments  for  the  defense  of  the  camp,  the  Piernis  Canal  and  the  out- 
skirts of  the  woods.  Of  this  force  two  of  the  regiments  were  regular  troops,  and  the  balance 
volunteers  and  militia. 

The  British  Army  of  Invasion  aggregated,  according  to  Eaton  and  Latour,  14,450  men.  It 
seems  certain  that  at  least  12,000  advanced  to  the  siege  of  New  Orleans. 

The  attack  began  at  dawn,  on  the  left  of  the  line,  and  by  8  o'clock  the  enemy  had  been 
repulsed  with  fearful  loss,  estimated  by  the  best  authorities  at  nearly  3,000  soldiers,  in  killed, 
wounded  and  missing.  The  casualties  in  the  American  line  were  six  killed  and  seven  wounded 
during  the  action.    The  entire  casualties  in  the  American  forces,  on  both  sides  of  the  river, 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS,  177 

January  8.  were  13  killed  and  39  wounded,  19  missing.  Of  the  kUled,  3  privates  were  serving  at 
the  battenes,  1  sergeant,  1  corporal  from  the  Seventh  Eegiment,  1  private  in  Gen.  Coffee's 
brigade,  1  sergeant,  3  privates  in  Carroll's  division,  1  private  in  the  Kentucky  mUitia,  i  private 
of  the  colored  volunteers,  1  private  in  Gen.  Morgan's  mUitia. 

The  loss  of  the  British,  according  to  their  ofScial  reports,  was,  in  killed,  2  maior-generals 
Pakenham  a^d  G,bbs).   1  lieutenant-colonel,  2  majors,  5  captains,  2  lieutenants    2  ensign 
Jlin'Tf "'       ™T'''f ' '^^^  '^^  ^^^'  ^°"^^^^'   '  ^ajor-general  (Keane),  3  lieutenan 
r^lT!t  ^r^'^  •''  •  '  ^?*^^^«'.^«  lieutenants,  9  ensigns,  1  staff,  54  sergeants,  9  drummers,  1,126 
WP.  .  hf^^'  '  T"^^^'  3  captains,  13  lieutenants,  13  sergeants,  4  drummers,  452  rank  and  file.    It 
?he  chlf  effoVt    f  th'       '''•'•    ^^?.*^^^^-^--«  loss  in  their  ranks  speaks  for  their  bravery. 

melTft^^  er  il'g^r^Jllbr  ""^^  ^^"  '^  '''  ^^^^  ^-^^^  ^^  -^^-  ^^^l^ 
,  ■J't  ^?  fu^'^^  ""^'^-^'^  ""^  January  21,  General  Jackson,  in  thanking  the  troops,  paid  special 
tributes  to  the  Louisiana  organizations,  and  made  particular  mention  of  Capts.  Dornfque  and 

fac  a  4;te  Sen^t  "'  ^T^'Z'-  '"  f  ''"  "^^^^'^^^  ^^^"^^^^^^ '  ^'  ^— '  Garrique  drFlan 
jaca  State  Senator,  and  brigadier  of  militia,  who  served  as  a  volunteer  ;  of  Majors  Plauche 
S  .  Geme.  Lacos  e,  D'Aquin  Captain  Savary,  Colonel  De  la  Ronde,  General  Humbert,  DonTuan 
tJ'T.  ^'^;S'^\^'']^-''"'^'^^"''    Major-GeneralViUere  and  General  Morgan,  the  En^^ 

neersLatour  and  Blanchard ;  the  Attakapas  dragoons.  Captain  Dubuclay ;  the  ca;alry  Som 
the  Felicianas  and  the  Mississippi  territory.  General  Labattut  had  command  of  the  town^ 
which  Nicolas  Girod  was  then  the  mayor.  ' 

The  troops  on  the  right  bank  were  less  successful  in  resisting  the  enemy  owing  to  the  inade 
luacy  of  the  line  of  defense  on  the  Cazelard  plantation,  the  right  of  which  was  turned  The 
^oops  on  the  nght  bank  were  :  the  Second  Regiment  Louisiana  MUitia,  ColonerZenon  Caval^e 

rt  ^Graf ir 'f^Sir  ^^^  ^^^-^^  ^  ^^^^^^  ^^^--  ^^  — -^'  -^  ---- 

JACKSON'S  HEADQUARTERS. 

.f  Jm  M  M^Ior.  «f^^.^f-lJaf«on  during  the  battle  of  New  Orleans  was  the  residence 
>n^  th^AT  T^  ^x;^"''''^'''^^^"*'^^^P°''"'^^d  ^  suburban  villa  just  below  the  city 
ZfZnr^Tr?  r"^"''"'^''^'^'''''  °^"^^^  '"^  *^^  «ld  Marigny  Mansion  on  Victory 
oved  bvTre  lo  [r  'tf '''  ''"  '"'l''^  '^'  '''^''^  -altitudes.  The  house  has  since  been  des^ 
rHi  h  '  T  ^^^Vt^.f^^'^^erous  buildings  pointed  out  to  strangers  as  Jackson's  headquar- 
3rs  are  bogus,  being  buildings  where  he  probably  spent  an  evening  or  so.  ^eaaquar 

THE    ANCIENT    BATTLEFIELD. 
Taking  its  course   from  the  city  through  Elysian  Fields  and  Goodchildren  streets    the 

wT;  ZT:  ""  '""  r^?  ^  ^^^'  ^^^^^^  ^^^^^-^  P^--  ^^-  abattoir  Ld  the  ie^^s 
.nol    r  af  Pe^^^ed;   the  Chalmette  Cotton  Mills,  the  ancient  battlefield  where  the 

pposmg  lines  swept  back  and  forth  on  that  memorable  day  when  New  Orleans  was  slved  from 

dSL  Of  iTsVitv  an'd  "'^^"^"^  '^"^'^^•^'  ^^^^^^^^^^  ^^^  ^°-^  ^'  l,500™os:  wtoZ 
.ro  of  that  field  ««"«P^<^^ous  upon  a  tall  mound  the  stUl  unfinished  monument  to  the 


178  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

It  is  the  battlefield  also  where  private  wrongs  were  avenged  ;  the  old  duelling-ground,  when 
in  the  chilliness  of  the  early  morning  air  many  men  have  felt  cold  thrills  which  were  not  al 
owing  to  the  mists  of  morning,  but  had  some  relation  to  the  small  dark  hole  in  the  end  of  i 
pistol  or  the  gleam  of  keen  steel. 

Cabbage  gardens  are  sprinkled  about  through  these  whilom  bloody  fields,  and  humbb 
flourish  regardless  of  tragedy,  and  orange  groves  are  being  planted. 

THE  CAPTUEE  OF  NEW  ORLEANS  BY  FARRAGUT. 

The  capture  of  New  Orleans  by  the  Union  Army  in  1862  being  confined  mainly  to  the  fleet 
its  story  can  be  briefly  told. 

When  the  news  reached  New  Orleans  that  the  fleet  had  passed  the  forts  and  was  approachinj 
the  city,  the  popular  frenzy  was  unrestrainable  and  the  wildest  devastation  followed. 

Thenceforth  there  was  no  hope.  Nothing  but  -s^ild  confusion,  tumult,  frenzy,  reckles 
destruction  of  property.  The  order  to  burn  all  the  cotton  in  the  city  to  prevent  it  falling  int< 
the  hands  of  the  Federals,  was  executed  with  some  deliberation.  Ten  or  twelve  thousand  bale; 
were  rolled  out  of  the  cotton  yards  into  the  streets,  or  carted  to  the  levee  and  set  on  fire,  an( 
guarded  by  soldiers  until  it  should  be  totally  destroyed.  There  was  no  demur  to  this  gram 
sacrifice  of  this  valuable  staple.  All  assented  to  it  as  an  indispensable  burnt  offering  on  th< 
altar  of  patriotism.  It  was  the  property  which  the  enemy  most  needed  ;  it  was  that,  the  wan 
of  which  might  impel  European  powers  to  intervene  on  their  behalf.  Not  a  pound  of  it  shouh 
they  get.  Foreigners  and  natives  subscribed  to  this  policy.  He  who  should  oppose  or  protes 
against  such  destruction  w^ould  have  been  in  great  danger  of  popular  violence. 

A  vast  deal  of  other  property  was  burned  as  well  as  cotton.  Some  over-zealous  patrio 
endeavored  to  set  fire  to  the  tobacco  and  the  sugar  in  the  warehouses.  Next  the  ships  at  th« 
wharves,  already  freighted  with  cotton,  were  consigned  to  the  flames,  cut  adrift,  and  sent  dowi 
the  stream  to  announce  to  the  coming  enemy  the  desperate  resolves  wh  ch  prevailed  in  Nev 
Orleans.  Then  the  steamboats,  all  that  were  unable  to  get  up  steam,  were  delivered  to  the  fierj 
demon,  until  the  river,  for  the  whole  extent  of  the  city  front,  was  fringed  on  both  sides  witl 
solid  and  continuous  belts  of  bright  and  lofty  flames,  while  a  vast  and  dense  volume  >^f  smoke 
spread  over  the  broad  levee,  a  heavy,  massive  curtain  of  Cimmerian  darkness.  Beneath  that 
canopy  and  in  the  glare  of  those  flames  could  be  seen  thousands  of  men,  women  and  children, 
engaged  in  a  wild  and  reckless  struggle  for  the  spoils  and  plunder^  to  which  they  were  invited 
by  the  general  recklessness,  and  instigated  by  hunger  as  well  as  by  avarice.  Hogsheads  of 
sugar,  barrels  of  molasses,  of  pork,  tierces  of  bacon,  were  broken  open  and  their  contents 
borne  off  in  baskets,  bags,  buckets,  and  in  the  aprons  of  women  and  children.  Ever 
pieces  of  iron,  of  machinery,  and  half-burned  cotton  bales— everything  of  any  value  withir 
their  reach  was  seized  upon  by  this  wild  mob  and  dragged  to  their  hovels  in  the  purlieus  of  the 
city.  The  great  extent  of  the  levee,  which  stretches  a  length  of  five  or  six  miles  in  front  of  the 
city,  favored  this  general  depredation.  The  gutters  of  the  streets  ran  molasses.  The  granite 
pavements  were  plastered  with  a  thick  coating  ef  fine  brown  sugar.  Children  were  seen  run- 
ning about,  sweating  and  groaning  under  the  weight  of  large  masses  of  bacon,  and  stout  womer 
rolled  parcels  along  the  sidewalks  and  in  the  middle  of  the  streets. 

So  universal  was  the  spirit  of  plunder  and  depredation,  and  so  absorbed  were  the  bettei 
part  of  the  community  in  the  great  calamity  that  had  overtaken  them,  that  these  scenes  had 
gone  on  for  some  time  without  check  or  interruption  from  the  authorities  and  good  citizens. 
New  Orleans  was  being  sacked  by  her  own  people. 

At  last  the  foreign  brigades  attempted  to  suppress  the  general  lawlessness  and  plunder. 
They  had  to  do  it  at  the  point  of  the  bayonet. 

Frequently  the  rogues  and  ruffians  would  defy  them,  showering  upon  them  all  kinds  oi 
abuse,  as  Yankees  in  disguise  who  wanted  to  keep  the  provisions  for  that  abhorred  people. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  179 

The  soldiers  were  compelled  to  keep  in  ranks  for  fear  of  assassination.  They  succeeded,  how- 
ever, after  awhile,  in  arresting  the  violence  and  in  clearing  the  levee  of  the  worst  part  of  this 
rabhle.  The  plunder  ceased  in  a  great  measure,  probably  as  muoh  from  the  want  of  material 
as  from  a  fear  of  the  soldiers.  ^ 

The  levees  and  wharves  had  been  swept  of  almost  everthing  except  a  few  dismounted 
cannon,  and  the  debris  of  broken  and  condemned  machinery.  The  conflagation  of  the  public 
material  still  continued.  The  basement  of  the  Custom-house  had  been  used  since  the  secession 
of  the  State,  as  a  military  workshop  for  the  construction  of  gun-carriages,  and  the  repair  of 
cannon.  There  was  a  great  deal  of  material  in  these  rooms  which  would  be  useful  to  the 
enemy.  It  was  all  brought  out  and  thrown  into  a  grand  pile  in  the  middle  of  Canal  street,  and 
with  several  pieces  of  artillery  already  mounted,  was  thoroughly  saturated  with  turpentine  and 
than  set  on  fire.  It  made  a  huge  pyramid  of  fire,  which  burned  for  many  hours,  and  required  the 
care  of  a  strong  detail  to  keep  it  alive  and  ensure  the  total  destruction  of  the  whole  mass.  Other 
property  that  would  prove  useful  to  the  enemy  must  be  placed  beyond  their  reach.  Timber  and 
wood-yards  were  then  condemmed  to  the  flames,  and  the  work-shops  on  the  opposite  bank  of 
the  river  were  stripped  of  their  machinery,  and  of  the  tools  used  in  repairing  vessels,  which 
were  thrown  into  the  river.  The  large  and  valuable  docks  in  Algiers,  which  cost  millions  of 
dollars  to  construct,  which  had  afforded  employment  to  hundreds  of  laborers,  and  were  indis- 
pensable to  the  commerce  of  the  city,  were  sunk. 

The  evening  of  the  twenty-fourth  closed  with  two  incidents,  which,  for  a  while,  engaged  the 
popular  attention.  These  were  the  departures  of  the  Governor,  his  staff  and  various  State  and 
Confederate  officials  and  their  families,  the  families  of  Gen.  Lovell  and  staff,  some  furloughed 
officers,  some  of  the  planters  from  the  country  and  their  families,  making  in  all  two  good  loads 
for  the  steamers  "Magenta  "  and  "  Pargoud." 

A  more  inspiriting  scene,  and  one  which  produced  a  momentary  thrill  of  enthusiasm  among 
the  people  now  engaged  their  attention,  the  sound  of  drums  was  heard  and  of  a  military  band 
playing  the  Confederate  airs,  and  a  long  column  of  dusty  soldiers  appeared  marching  to  the 
field  of  battle.  This  was  the  brigade  of  Brigadier-General  Buisson,  en  route  for  the  plains  of 
Chalmette  (Jackson's  old  battle-field),  to  execute  the  orders  of  General  LoveU  to  make  all 
possible  resistance  to  a  hostile  fleet  of  twenty  ships,  carrying  nearly  200  cannon  of  the  largest 
calibre,  and  steaming  along  the  surface  of  a  stream  several  feet  above  the  level  of  the  plain  in 
which  General  Buisson's  brigade  would  be  compelled  to  operate.  Tbis  was  certainly  a  forlorn 
undertaking,  but  the  men  marched  along  so  spiritedly  and  bravely  that  the  populace  could  not 
refrain  from  cheering  them. 

And  thus  closed  the  never-to-be-forgotten  24th  of  April,  18G2,  a  day  fraught  with  the  bitterest 
memories  and  the  saddest  scenes  which  the  history  of  New  Orleans  has  ever  recorded.  The  25th 
dawned  upon  a  city  "  clothed  in  sack-cloth  and  ashes."  The  fires  which  had  been  lighted  early 
on  the  day  before  were  not  yet  burned  out,  and  the  smoke,  cinders  and  ashes  filled  the  atmos- 
phere and  diffused  an  offensive  and  oppressive  odor. 

The  call  was  not  responded  to  by  more  than  a  hundred  madmen. 

Early  in  the  day  there  was  a  commotion  and  a  rush  of  the  crowd  toward  the  levee.  It  is 
not  the  enemy.  They  have  not  yet  passed  the  English  Turn  and  the  Chalmette  batteries.  What 
is  it?  The  groans  and  lamentations  of  the  vast  multitude  which  stretched  for  miles  along  the 
levee  announced  some  new  and  fresh  disaster.  Those  who  were  in  front  soon  discovered  the 
nature  of  it  from  actual  observation  ;  others  far  down  the  streets  and  beyond  the  view  of  the 
river  intuitively  divined  it.  Here  came  a  vast,  heavy,  massive,  but  symmetrically-shaped  hull, 
blazing  from  stem  to  stern  with  a  conflagration  that  seemed  to  occupy  half  the  width  of  the 
river,  sweeping  everything  before  it,  and  roaring  and  tottering  like  some  supernatural  monster 
in  its  last  agonies.  "  There  goes  the  Mississippi,"  was  the  wailing  cry  of  the  crowd.  And  so  it 
was— this  immense,  costly,  ingenious  structure,  upon  which  so  much  skill,  labor  and  money  had 
been  expended,  from  which  such  mighty  results  were  expected,  which  lacked,  its  builders 


180  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

asserted,  but  a  few  days  to  render  it  complete  and  effective,  after  many  vain  attempts  with  all 
the  power  that  could  be  commanded  to  tow  her  up  the  river,  was  now,  by  order  of  her  com- 
mander, Captain  Sinclair,  of  the  Confederate  navy,  committed  to  the  flames  and  sent  down  the 
stream  to  announce  her  own  destruction  to  the  approaching  enemy. 

Active  measures  were  faken  to  insure  the  peace  of  the  city.  Gen.  Juge,  an  old  citizen  and 
gallant  French  veteran,  had  been  placed  by  the  mayor  in  charge  of  the  peace  and  order  of  the 
city— which  duty  he  performed  with  great  zeal  and  success,  arresting  pillage  and  tumult,  and 
restoring  peace  and  quiet.  The  mayor,  by  his  various  proclamations— inviting  the  traders  to 
open  their  stores,  the  people  to  resume  their  ordinary  avocations,  promising  to  have  the  free 
market  opened  with  an  abundance  of  fresh  provisions,  fiercely  denouncing  the  treason  of  those 
who  refused  to  receive  the  paper  money  of  the  Confederacy,  and  assuring  all  classes  that  the 
honor  and  interests  of  the  city  and  of  the  Confederacy  were  in  good  hands,  succeeded  in  a  great 
measure  in  calming  thf^  popular  passions. 

During  all  this  tumult  and  excitement  in  the  city,  Farragut's  squadron  was  slowly  steaming 
up  the  river  in  quest  of  the  innumerable  batteries  which  he  was  led  to  believe  lined  the  shores. 
He  was  surprised  to  discover  the  banks  of  the  river  for  over  sixty  miles  entirely  bare  of  men 
and  of  batteries,  save  a  few  idle  negroes  and  now  and  then  a  white  man  in  peaceful  garb,  who 
contented  themselves  with  derisive  shouts  and  impotent  execrations.  Thus  without  opposition 
Farragut  anchored  before  tke  city,  and  New  Orleans  was  practically  captured. 


GUIDE  TO  NEW  ORLEANS.  181 


CHAPTER  XVIII.— UNDER  THE  OAKS. 

DUELLING  WITH  RAPIERS  AND  PISTOLS— SOME  CELEBRATED  AFFAIRS— A  SPECIMEN  DUELIST 
— A  FIGHT  OVER  AN  UNKNOWN  CAUSE — THE  MISSISSIPPI  RIVER  AS  A  REASON  FOR 
A  CHALLENGE. 

The  "  code,"  as  it  is  called,  the  duello,  was  universally  recognized  in  New  Orleans  before  the 
war,  and  even  to  this  day  duels  occur,  although  growing  rarer  every  year.  The  man  who  would 
not  fight  "in  the  days  before  the  war"  was  regarded  as  not  entitled  to  the  treatment  due  a 
gentleman  and  was  socially  tabooed,  and  liable  to  the  grossest  insults. 

All  the  efforts  of  the  religious  portion  of  the  community  to  stop  duelling  proved  a  failure 
and  aroused  the  most  bitter  prejudice.  An  Article  was  inserted  in  the  Constitution  of  the 
State  in  1848,  disfranchising  duellists.  The  Creoles  complained  bitterly  of  this,  which  they 
claimed  was  an  attempt  to  drive  men  of  courage  from  the  State,  and  so  vigorous  was  the  oppo- 
sition raised— for  nearly  all  the  leading  men  found  themselves  disfranchised  by  this  provision- 
that  the  anti-duelling  article  v/as  repealed  four  years  later,  and  duellists  restored  to  favor  again. 

In  the  early  Creole  days,  the  rapier  or  colechemarde  was  the  weapon  most  in  favor  in  duels, 
but  broadswords  and  sabres  were  sometimes  used.  The  Americans  introduced  the  pistol,  rifle 
and  shot  gun,  which  made  dueling  much  more  fatal.  With  the  rapier,  a  slight  wourd  was  sufll- 
cient  to  satisfy  honor,  whereas  with  the  shot  gun  or  rifle  one  of  the  principals  was  nearly 
always  seriously  wounded.  In  fact,  in  a  majority  of  the  duels  in  which  the  shot  gun  was  used, 
one  or  more  deaths  ensued. 

There  was  no  excuse  for  refusing  to  "fight."  No  matter  how  high  your  position,  you  must 
accept  any  challenge  sent  you  by  a  gentleman.  Thus,  the  first  American  Governor,  Claiborne, 
left  the  gubernatorial  mansion  to  fight  Daniel  Clarke,  the  State  representative  in  Congress,  an 
encounter  which  resulted  in  the  severe  wounding  of  Clarke.  This  duel  took  place  at  the  mouth 
of  Bayou  Marechal. 

In  the  annex  of  the  Old  Basin  street  division  of  the  St.  Louis  Cemetery  may  be  seen  a  neat 
marble  shaft,  erected  over  the  remains  of  W.  C.  C.  Claiborne,  the  first  Governor  of  Louisiana, 
and  the  Protestant  members  of  his  family.  On  one  of  the  four  sides  of  this  shaft  there  is  the 
following  epitaph : 

Sacred  to  the  Memory  of 

Micajah  Lewis, 

Brother-in-law  and  Secretary  of 

Governor  W.  C.  C.  Claiborne, 

who  fell  in  a  duel,  January  14, 1804, 

Aged,  24  years. 

Young  Lewis's  death  resulted  from  political  antagonism,  which  provoked  a  bitter  personal 
assault  upon  the  Governor,  whose  wife,  the  sister  of  young  Lewis,  had  recently  died. 

Lewis  called  to  the  field  the  author  of  this  slanderous  assault,  and  at  the  first  exchange  was 
shot  through  the  heart.  He  was  a  young  man  of  great  promise  and  elevated  sentiments,  and 
his  death  gave  infinite  sorrow  to  the  Governor  and  all  his  friends.  The  tomb  at  the  time  it  was 
constructed  was  a  very  costly  and  tasteful  one.  The  epitaph  was  directed  by  the  Governor  him- 
self, who  recognized  the  authority  of  the  code  at  that  period. 

Gayarre,  in  his  history  of  Louisiana,  tells  a  story  of  a  duel  which  occurred  between  six 
young  French  noblemen  promenading  on  the  green  sward,  on  the  very  spot  where  New 
Orleans  now  has  its  centre  of  trade.  One  of  them  exclaimed,  "Oh,  what  a  beautiful  night !  what 


182  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

a  splendid  level  ground  for  a  .ioust !  Suppose  we  pair  off,  draw  our  swords  and  make  this  night 
memorable  by  a  spontaneous  display  of  bravery  and  skill !"  Upon  the  word  they  drew,  paired 
off,  and  under  the  clear  light  of  the  moon  their  shining  blades  gleamed  in  courteous  and  deadly 
encounter,  and  such  valor  was  displayed  as  would  have  immortalized,  in  reasonable  battle,  these 
giddy-headed  and  light-hearted  heroes.  Two  of  them  remained  on  the  field,  pale  and  bloody 
corpses,  victims  of  a  foolish  but  heroic  bravado. 

A  very  similar  story  is  that  of  the  duel  between  Major  Henry,  of  Mcaraguan  fame,  and 
Major  Joe  Howell,  renowned  among  all  those  who  remember  the  o'd  Louisiana  traditions  for 
coolness  and  daring.  Howell  and  Henry  had  met  in  a  coffee-house  at  the  corner  of  Canal  and 
St.  Charles  streets  (where  Joe  Walker  now  keeps  the  Crescent  Hall),  and  had  had  a  difficulty 
which  wound  up  in  a  challenge  to  fight  that  evening  at  the  Half- Way  House.  It  was  impossible 
for  the  seconds  to  find  out  what  was  the  origin  of  the  trouble,  Howell  himself  not  recollecting 
anything  about  it.  It  seems  that  he  and  Major  Henry— a  noted  brave  of  the  Nicaraguan  army 
—who  had  served  with  Walker,  had  had  a  mal-entendu  in  Nicaragua,  and  cherished  no  friend- 
ship for  one  another.  They  met,  and  Henry  invited  Joe  to  drink.  Both  were  under  the  influence 
of  liquor.  Unfortunately  two  newsboys  came  in  and  commenced  to  fight.  According  to  the 
theory  of  the  times,  Joe  bet  on  one  and  Henry  backed  the  other.  Henry's  newsboy  caved  in, 
when  he  then  remarked  that  the  fight  would  have  been  very  different  if  he  and  Joe  had  been 
engaged  instead  of  the  boys.  Joe  nodded  "Yes."  "Well,  then,"  put  in  Nicaragua  Henry, 
"suppose  we  do  have  it."  Joe  whipped  out  his  six-shooter,  for  short  answer.  "Hold  on,  old 
boy,  I'm  not  ready ;  let  us  meet  at  five  o'clock  this  evening  at  the  Half- Way  House  ;  bring  your 
navy;  I  will  have  mine."  "All  right,"  answered  Joe,  and  the  whisky  straights,  which  had 
been  losing  some  of  their  lightning  by  evaporation,  instantly  disappeared  in  well-accustomed 
channels  ;  not,  however,  before  the  glasses  had  violently  tinkled  against  each  other.  Just  then 
two  policemen  put  in  an  appearance,  and  both  belligerents  were  taken  to  the  station.  Mutual 
friends,  actuated  as  much  by  a  desire  to  see  the  sequence  as  by  any  other  Christian  motive,  soon 
obtained  their  release.  Henry  kept  on  drinking,  and  Joe  went  to  sleep,  as  some  great  generals 
have  done  before  him  on  the  eve  of  mighty  battles. 

Both  parties  were  known  as  men  of  indomitable  pluck  and  desperate  courage.  Major 
Henry's  reputation  was  proverbial ;  further  on  we  vrill  give  some  particulars  of  his  eventful 
career.  Joe  Howell  was  a  brother-in-law  of  Jefferson  Davis,  stood  six  feet  seven  inches  in  his 
boots,  was  admirably  proportioned,  and  his  body  was  covered  with  scars  caused  by  wounds 
inflicted  with  knife,  arrow  and  bullet. 

At  414  o'clock  Joe  woke  up,  took  one  cocktail,  and  without  the  least  nervousness  or  concern 
bid  his  friends  au  revoir  and  jumped  into  the  carriage.  Dr.  Sam  Choppin,  acting  surgeon  on  the 
occasion,  followed. 

On  the  way,  as  is  customary  in  the  fulfillment  of  his  duty,  Howell's  second  offered  some 
advice  to  his  man.  He  told  him  to  endeavor  to  get  the  first  shot  in  on  his  antagonist,  to  fire 
low  and  to  cock  with  his  right  hand  without  lowering  his  pistol. 

His  answer  was,  after  driving  a  cloud  of  smoke  from  his  cigarette  :  "  Tut,  tut,  my  boy,  teach 
your  grandmother  how  to  suck  eggs  !  " 

The  second  said  no  more. 

When  the  grounds  were  reached  300  persons  were  found  there.  All  the  hacks  and  cabs  had 
been  engaged  as  soon  as  the  news  flashed  over  the  city  that  these  two  men  were  about  to  meet 
in  mortal  combat.  Not  less  than  fifty  Nicaraguans  were  there;  but  these  were  clustered 
around  Henry,  who  could  be  seen  some  two  hundred  yards  out  in  the  field,  resting  on  one  elbow 
in  a  dry  hollow. 

Joe  Howell  had  also  many  friends  among  the  spectators  and  gayly  chatted  with  them. 

All  efforts  to  settle  the  affair  failed. 

"  Will  you  please  give  me  your  version  of  the  cause  of  this  difficulty,"  Howell's  second  asked. 

"  It  don't  matter;  we  are  here  to  fight,"  was  the  sharp  answer  from  Henry's  second. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  183 

"  Well,  but  brave  men  don't  fight  like  children,  for  nothing.  We  want  to  know  what  we  are 
going  to  fight  about ;  if  we  are  wrong  we  may  apologize,  or  vice  versa." 

"We  don't  know  anything  about  it ;  but  if  there  is  to  be  an  apology,  Major  Howell  must 
make  it." 

•'But  if  you  are  ignorant  of  the  origin  and  cause  of  this  difiiculty  how  can  you  point  out 
our  wronsT?" 

"Wait ;  we  will  see  Major  Henry." 

And  off  they  went  to  the  ditch  where  Henry  sat  leisurely  resting. 

In  less  than  three  minutes  the  Xicaraguans  were  back. 

"Well  ?"  asked  Howell's  man. 

"  Well,"  Major  Henry  says,  "if  Joe  Howell  will  apologize  it's  no  fight." 

"Apologize  for  what?"  asked  the  other  with  some  animation. 

"Don't  know,  and  don't  care,"  was  the  laconic  reply. 

"Then  there  is  no  possible  way  of  arranging  this  matter  amicably.  Suppose  both  parties 
approach  each  other  half  way  and  shake  hands  without  a  word?  Will  you  see  Major  Henry 
and  tell  him  the  proposition  comes  from  our  side?" 

After  some  discussion  they  consented  to  this,  but  very  reluctantly. 

This  time  the  seconds  remained  fully  ten  minutes  by  the  side  of  their  principal.  There  was 
animated  discussion  and  much  gesticulation  among  them,  but  they  returned  and  said  :  "Major 
Henry  says  Joe  ought  to  apologize,  aid  then  they  can  shake  hands." 

"  Then  it  means  fight.  Load  your  navy,  we  will  do  likewise ;  ten  paces ;  six  barrels  loaded ; 
fire  at  will,  and  advance." 

The  line  of  fire  was  a  narrow  path,  flanked  on  either  side  by  a  small  ditch.  Howell  stood 
six  feet  seven  inches  in  his  boots,  and,  contrary  to  advice,  wore  white  pants  and  an  alpaca  coat, 
making  him  a  dangerously  conspicuous  target. 

The  command  -was  given  : 

"  Gentlemen,  are  you  ready  ? " 

Joe,  who  was  facing  the  woods,  answered  firmly,  "Ready!"  but  kept  his  eye  looking 
steadily  along  the  barrel  of  his  cocked  pistol.  Henry,  in  a  nonchalant  fashion,  threw  his  head 
on  one  side,  his  pistol  dangling  at  his  arm,  and  in  a  lazy  tone  said,  "Ready."  The  word  was 
then  given:  "Fire!"  Both  raised  simultaneously,  fired,  and  missed.  Howell  cocked  with  his 
right  thumb  and  fired  again  before  Henry  was  ready  for  his  second  shot.  Howell's  ball  pierced 
Henry's  left  forearm,  when  Henry  again  fired  and  missed.  Howell  now  came  in  with  his  third 
shot,  striking  Henry  in  the  abdomen.  To  this  Henry  responded  with  a  shot  which  threw  up  the 
dirt  right  at  Howell's  feet.  The  latter  then  advanced  one  step,  and,  taking  deliberate  aim, 
pulled  the  trigger.  Seeing  that  Henry  was  done  for,  Howell's  second  rushed  up  and  threw  up 
Joe's  pistol  with  his  hand.  The  shot  flew  away  up  in  the  air,  that  certainly  would  thpn  and 
there  have  killed  Henry. 

The  other  side  having  cried  "  Stop  !  "  according  to  agreement,  in  case  of  either  party  being 
badly  wounded,  uttered  shrill  cries  of  "Foul!  Foul!"  and  immediately  whipped  out  their 
revolvers.  Then  followed  a  scene  of  confusion,  and  for  a  long  time  it  looked  as  if  a  wholesale 
duel  would  foUow ;  but  the  crowd  interfered,  and  prevented  the  fight.  The  wounded  man  was 
taken  to  the  Halfway  House,  where  he  remained  for  some  weeks  before  he  could  be  transported 
to  the  city. 

Major  Henry  was,  what  is  known  in  the  vernacular  of  the  ordinary  novelist,  a  character. 
Retinng  in  disposition,  little  given  to  talk,  of  a  melancholy  temperament,  he  gave  no  external 
evidence  of  the  power  and  determination  of  the  man  beneath.  Those  who  knew  him  intimately 
and  who  were  with  him  in  the  most  desperate  of  dangers  say  that  he  was  one  of  the  few  men 
they  knew  who  had  no  appreciation  of  the  word  fear.  He  would  face  what  appeai-ed  to  be 
almost  certain  death  with  an  equanimity  that  was  startling.  Joining  Gen.  Walker's  filibuster- 
ing expedition  to  Nicaragua,  as  an  ofificer  in  the  battles  there,  he  was  noted  for  his  daring  and 


184  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

coolness.  Without  caring  whether  he  was  followed  or  not  he  would  charge  single-handed  \n\>, 
the  enemy's  ranks,  cutting  and  shooting,  right  and  left,  himself  receiving  wound  after  wound. 
He  seemed  to  bear  a  charmed  life,  for,  nothwithstanding  the  fact  that  his  body  was  covend 
with  scars,  he  received  new  wounds  without  blenching,  and  so  great  was  his  vitality  that  he 
recovered  in  a  very  short  time. 

He  served  for  many  years  as  an  enlisted  soldier  in  the  Seventh  Regiment  Infantry,  United 
states  army ;  was  made  quartermaster-sergeant  of  the  regiment  during  the  Mexican  war  on 
account  of  gallant  conduct,  and  at  the  close  of  the  war  was  promoted  to  a  lieutenancy.  In 
this  capacity  he  was  stationed  for  a  long  time  in  the  Cherokee  Nation,  where  his  taciturn  dis- 
position made  him  very  unpopular  with  the  men,  but  his  daring  and  recklessness  in  amorous 
exploits  caused  him  to  be  quite  a  favorite  with  the  squaws. 

This  came  very  near  being  the  cause  of  his  death,  for  one  night  at  a  ball  he  found  himself 
suddenly  environed  by  a  crowd  of  Cherokee  braves,  and  when  they  dispersed  he  was  lying  on 
the  ground  in  a  pool  of  his  own  blood,  with  seven  stabs  in  his  body.  No  other  man  would  have 
recovered,  but  he  did. 

In  the  assault  and  taking  of  Monterey,  during  the  Mexican  war.  Major  Henry  accomplished 
a  feat  which,  for  reckless  daring,  has  scarcely  a  parallel  in  the  annals  of  military  venture. 

It  will  be  remembered  that  Monterey,  like  its  sister  city  of  Spain,  the  immortal  Saragossa, 
was  defended  foot  by  foot  and  inch  by  inch.  Every  window  was  a  fortalice  from  which  mur- 
dei'ous  shots  were  fired,  and  every  terrace  a  fortress  dealing  death  and  destruction  to  the 
advancing  foe. 

Major  Henry,  in  the  hottest  of  the  fight,  wagered  a  dinner  with  his  friends  of  the  regiment 
that  he  would  ride  three  squares  on  a  mule,  at  a  slow  pace,  through  the  cross-fire  of  the  Mexican 
patriots  and  return.  And  so  indeed  he  did.  The  mule  did  not  come  back,  however,  having 
fallen  pierced  by  a  dozen  balls,  a  victim  to  the  temerity  of  its  rider.  Major  Henry  returned  on 
foot,  and  won  his  wager  somewhat  the  worse  for  his  experience,  vnth  three  bullets  in  his  body. 

During  the  Nicaraguan  war  this  remarkable  fighter  distinguished  himself  on  every  occasion, 
and  was  much  admired  and  respected  as  a  soldier.  His  temper,  however,  was  not  such  as  would 
permit  him  to  live  in  peace  with  his  fellow-officers.  He  was  noted  for  several  brilliant  duels 
during  that  eventful  campaign— among  which,  one  with  Col.  Jules  Dreux,  was  fought  at  Mes- 
siah. He  was  major  of  the  regiment  of  which  Dreux  was  colonel,  and  they  had  a  misunder- 
standing.   Dreux  waived  his  rank,  and  they  fought  with  navy  revolvers  at  twelve  paces. 

It  was  in  1843  that  a  very  violent  political  campaign  occurred  in  this  State  between  the  Whig 
and  Democratic  parties.  The  contest  was  for  Eepresentatives  in  Congress.  Each  party  had 
brought  forward  its  strongest  candidates.  The  journals  of  the  two  parties  were  especially 
vigorous  and  aggressive  in  their  assults  upon  the  nominees  of  the  adverse  party.  Personality 
and  virulent  criticism  were  never  before  carried  to  such  a  pitch  in  this  State.  The  Tropic,  a 
daily  newspaper,  conducted  with  great  vigor  and  savagery  by  Col.  McArdle,  infused  a  fiercely 
belligerent  tone  into  the  party  and  its  press  throughout  the  State.  Many  personal  confliets  and 
affairs  of  honor  resulted  from  this  bellicose  spirit.  These  quarrels  of  individuals  were  adopted 
by  their  parties,  and  the  fights  assumed  the  character  of  faction  fights  instead  of  personal  affairs 
of  honor.  One  of  the  most  unhappy  and  tragic  of  these  combats  was  that  which  resulted  in  the 
death  of  Hueston,  the  editor  of  the  Baton  Rouge  Gazette.  Hueston  was  of  Northern  birth,  and 
had  recently  assumed  editorial  charge  of  the  paper,  which  had  previously  maintained  the  repu- 
tation of  a  prudent,  sedate  and  cautious  Whig  journal.  Hueston  gave  an  entirely  new  character 
to  the  Gazette.  The  Tropic  had  innoculated  the  Gazette  with  its  partisan  virus,  and  its  editorials 
bristled  with  sarcasms  and  offensive  personalities.  One  of  the  most  offensive  and  unjusti- 
fiable of  these,  which  led  to  the  tragic  scene  we  have  to  relate,  was  contained  in  a  review  of  the 
Congressional  candidates.  The  Democratic  candidates  in  the  Fourth  and  Second  Congressional 
districts  were  Gen.  Bossier  and  the  Hon.  Alcee  La  Branche.  Both  gentlemen  were  highly 
honored  and  admired  by  their  party  and  large  circles  of  personal  friends.    They  were  Creoles. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  185 

Mr.  La  Branche  haa  been  Speaker  of  our  House  of  Representatives ;  was  the  first  Charge 
d'Aflfaires  to  Texas,  and  in  all  his  relations  was  greatly  esteemed  as  a  gentleman  of  great  propriety 
and  dignity  of  behavior.  So  far  from  being  a  duelist,  as  has  been  charged,  he  was  one  of  the 
few  public  men  in  Louisiana  who  had  never  been  engaged  in  an  "affair." 

General  Bossier  on  the  other  hand,  the  Democratic  candidate  in  the  Fourth  district,  had  had 
several  affairs  of  that  character,  in  one  of  which,  a  sword  combat,  he  slew  General  Gaiennie,  the 
great  Whig  leader  of  his  district.  Now,  the  Baton  Rouge  Gazette,  referring  to  these  charac- 
teristics of  the  two  Democratic  candidates,  taunted  the  Democrats  of  the  Second  district  with 
a  preference  for  a  man  destitute  of  spirit  and  manhood,  and  those  of  the  Fourth  district  ^vith  a 
selection  of  a  candidate  who  had,  by  bis  superior  physical  power,  killed  his  antagonist.  This 
article  was  regarded  by  Mr.  LaB.'s  friends  as  an  insult  of  the  grossest  character  to  himself, 
his  party  and  his  friends.  Shortly  after  the  appearance  of  this  article,  Hueston  visited  New 
Orleans  where  he  was  received  by  the  fighting  men  of  his  party  as  a  "lion."  His  arrival  was 
announced  in  one  of  the  papers  with  a  flourish.  Thereupon  Mr.  LaBranche  sought  him  in  the 
St.  Charles  billiard-room,  and  demanded  some  reparation  for  the  gross  insult  offered  him. 
Receiving  a  defiant  response,  he  struck  Hueston  with  a  cane  or  billiard-cue  several  blows, 
knocking  him  down  and  disabling  him.  Hueston  was  taken  to  his  rooms.  A  surgeon  was  sent 
for,  who  attended  to  his  wounds.  Next  friends  (political  friends)  were  called  in,  and  from 
them  two  of  the  most  experienced  in  such  affairs  were  selected  to  make  arrangements  for  the 
earliest  possible  meeting  at  the  Oaks.  These  friends  were  Colonel  "W.  H.  McArdle  and  Richard 
Hagan,  both  of  whom  had  been  engaged  in  several  affairs  of  a  serious  and  sangviinary  character. 
Hueston's  wounds  were  of  a  more  serious  character  than  was  at  first  imagined.  His  .surgeon 
remonstrated  against  his  going  out  for  several  days.  But  Hueston  with  an  obstancy  which 
characterized  his  whole  conduct  in  this  affair,  insisted  upon  the  meeting  taking  place  within 
three  days.  Accordingly  the  arrangements  were  made.  Mr.  La  Branche's  friends  were  General 
John  L.  Lewis  and  Jos.  Genois.  The  weapons  selected  were  double-barreled  shotguns,  both 
barrels  loaded  with  ball.  Promptly  the  parties  came  to  time  at  the  Oaks  at  break  of  day.  A 
crowd  of  spectators  had  been  attracted  to  the  scene.  In  consequence  of  this  interruption  and* 
the  rumored  approach  of  the  police,  the  parties  changed  the  ground  to  a  more  remote  locality. 
They  could  not  elude  the  intruders,  of  whem  nearly  two  hundred  reached  the  spot  selected 
The  seconds  proceeded  rapidly  with  their  arrangements.  The  ground  was  measured.  Forty 
yards  was  the  distance  agreed  on  The  words  were:  '"Fire — one,  two,  three,  four,  five."  The 
combatants  must  fire  both  barrels  between  the  words  "fire"  and  "five."  The  weapons 
were  ordinary  shot-guns,  loaded  with  ball.  General  Lewis  loaded  Mr.  LaBranche's  gun 
and  Colonel  Hagan  Mr.  Hueston's.  The  wor  1  was  given  by  Colonel  McArdle.  Both  parties 
were  cool  and  determined.  It  was  observable,  however,  that  Mr.  Hueston  still  bore  marks  on 
his  face  of  his  recent  scuffle. 

At  the  first  fire  both  parties  discharged  their  pieces  nearly  simultaneously.  One  of  the  balls 
from  Mr.  LaBranche's  piece  passed  through  Hueston's  hat,  another  through  his  coat.  Those  of 
Hueston  flew  wide  of  the  mark.  It  was  obvious  to  the  seconds  and  the  spectators  that  Mr. 
LaBranche  had  the  advantage  of  greater  quickness  and  skill  in  handling  his  weapon. 

The  seconds  of  Mr.  LaBranche  approached  those  of  Mr.  Hueston  with  the  usual  inquiry 
whether  their  principal  was  satisfied.  These  gentlemen  consulted  Hueston.  He  shook  his  head 
with  great  positiveness,  and  requested  them  to  load  up. 

A  second  exshange  was  then  had.  with  similar  results  to  the  first.  The  two  balls  of 
LaBranche  whizzed  close  by  the  head  of  Hueston,  who  again  fired  wild. 

There  was  another  interview  of  the  seconds  and  a  repetition  of  the  emphatic  shake  of  the 
head  by  Mr.  Hueston.  His  seconds  remonstrated  and  apologized  to  the  seconds  of  the  other 
side  for  the  persistency  of  their  principal,  Col.  Hagan  remarking  that  after  the  next  fire  the 
distance  should  be  shortened  or  the  parties  retired. 

The  spectators  manifested  the  same  sentiment  by  crying  out  that  the  affair  should  end 


186 


HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


there.    But  Hueston  was  immovable,  and  with  cool   jocularity  requested  that  the  guns  b« 
reloaded.    His  obstinacy  prevailed. 

There  was  a  third  exchange.  As  the  smoke  cleared  away  the  combatants  were  observec 
m  the  same  position,  apparently  unhurt.  One  of  the  balls  from  LaBranche's  gun  had  bareh 
missed  the  skull  of  Hueston,  passing  through  his  hair  and  slightly  puncturing  the  skin  causint 
blood  to  flow.  '  ^ 

At  the  third  interview  of  the  seconds  it  was  suggested  that,  Mr.  Hueston  being  wounded 
the  combat  should  there  end.  This  suggestion  appeared  to  inflame  the  obduracy  of  Hueston 
"Feel  my  pulse,"  he  asked  of  the  surgeon,  "and  say  whether  it  does  not  beat  steady  anc 
regular."  The  surgeon  felt  his  pulse  and  declared  that  there  was  no  irregularity,  but  addec 
that  the  affair  ought  to  end  there.  So  thought  and  declared  everybody  else  but  Hueston  m 
was  inflexible  in  his  resolution  to  kill  or  be  killed.  With  manifest  sorrow  and  indignatior 
arrangements  were  made  for  the  fourth  exchange  of  shots. 

At  the  word  the  parties  fired,  as  before.  Each  discharged  both  barrels.  At  the  dischargt 
of  LaBrauche's  first  barrel,  this  being  his  seventh  shot,  Hueston  reeled  and  fell.  He  had  dls 
charged  both  barrels  of  his  gun.  LaBranche's  second  barrel  was  discharged,  being  the  eightb 
shot,  before  he  could  perceive  the  effect  of  the  last.  His  friends  and  surgeon  advanced  tc 
Hueston,  who  was  prone  on  the  ground,  lifted  him  into  a  carriage,  and  bore  him  to  the  city 
An  examination  discovered  that  he  had  been  shot  through  the  lungs,  and  had  but  a  few  momentg 
to  live.  He  was  taken  to  the  Maison  de  Sante,  where,  after  the  most  intense  agony,  during 
which  he  begged  one  of  his  friends,  as  the  last  kindness  he  could  render  him,  to  fire  a  ball 
through  his  head  and  end  his  torture,  he  died. 

Colonel  S.  L.  Oakey  came  to  this  city  from  New  York  early  in  the  thirties.  He  engaged  at 
first  in  the  wholesale  dry  goods  business,  and  afterward  in  the  commission  business  for  the  sale 
of  planters'  products. 

In  any  pursuit  in  which  he  was  embarked  he  displayed  great  activity,  zeal  and  earnestness 
a  strong  will  and  dauntless  valor  and  determination.  With  these  he  combined  a  courtly  and 
knightly  bearing,  a  love  of  the  drama,  a  taste  for  military  display,  an  intense  Democracy  and 
an  ardent  patriotism. 

AsiUustrative  of  these  qualities  in  184-3.  he  assumed  the  championship  of  the  cotton  factors 
of  the  city  against  certain  very  bitter  and  denunciatory  charges  which  had  appeared  in  letters 
from  this  city  in  the  Vicksburg  Se/ititiel,  then  conducted  by  that  famous  polemical  editor,  Hagan 
who,  on  account  of  similar  articles,  was  involved  a  short  time  after  in  a  combat,  in  which  he 
was  killed  by  the  late  General  D.  W.  Adams. 

The  letters  from  this  city  were  traced  to  an  English  cotton  buyer,  named  Wright  As  the 
house  of  Colonel  Oakey  was  involved  in  the  slanders  published  by  the  Sentinel,  the  colonel 
sought  the  writer  and  caUed  him  to  account  for  the  same.  A  personal  rencontre  ensued  which 
was  deferred  to  the  field  of  honor.  Wright  had  boasted  much  of  his  skill  as  a  marksman  The 
rifle  was  the  weapon  selected  by  him.  Colonel  Oakey  had  never  fired  a  rifle  in  his  life  and 
refused  even  to  practice  with  the  weapon.  The  parties  met  across  the  lake,  in  Mississippi 
Wnght  was  a  large,  stout  man  ;  Oakey  was  a  small,  insignificant-looking  man,  of  calm,  cool  and 
determined  manner,  not  vaunting,  boastful,  or  demonstrative.  The  combatants  were  sup- 
ported by  gentlemen  of  prominence  in  the  community.  The  distance  was  sixty  yards  Oakey 
chose  the  Yager,  known  afterwards  as  the  Mississippi  rifle  ;  Wright  used  a  highly-finished  Eng- 
lish rifle.  At  the  word  Wright  fired  precipitately  ;  Oakey  received  and  returned  the  fire  with 
great  coolness  His  adversary  fell  at  his  discharge-shot  on  a  line  through  the  heart  The  par- 
ties returned  to  the  city  that  evening  on  the  same  steamer  bearing  the  unfortunate  victim  of  a 
duel  conducted  with  the  strictest  punctilio. 

The  Creoles  of  New  Orleans  were  always  very  spirited  and  courageous,  but  sometimes 
fought  on  provocations  which  the  Americans  would  not  have  resented  in  a  manner  so  deadly. 

The  Creole  element  was  impatient  of  dissent,  and  resorted  to  small  arms  on  all  occasions  of 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  187 

differences  even  among  themselves.  One  paper  was  especially  provocative  of  Fuch  disputes. 
The  writers  were  Americans,  who  expressed  their  opinions  without  much  circumlocution,  and 
so  provoked  the  fiery  native  greatly.  There  was  one  article  upon  a  performance  at  the  opera. 
This  critique  occasioned  three  duels,  and  upon  reading  it  carefully  one  will  be  at  a  loss  to  find 
material  to  have  justified  one,  even  conceding  that  rational  people  should  peril  life  at  aU  on  a 
question  of  singing  or  dancing. 

There  appeared  in  New  Orleans,  some  forty  years  ago,  a  very  learned  savant  and  acade- 
mician, from  whom  there  was  no  appeal  on  any  question  of  science,  known  as  the  Chevalier 
romasi.  Tomasi  published  a  communication  on  the  hydraulics  of  the  Mississippi.  He  would 
jither  stop  the  river,  or  make  it  deeper,  or  restrict  it  within  boundaries  specified  by  science. 
The  style  of  the  article  was  dogmatic  and  dictatorial.  The  Academy  of  Sciences  in  Paris 
was  declared  as  omnipotent  in  physics  as  the  Sorbonne  had  been  in  ethics.  Americans  were  an 
gnorant  tribe  expelled  from  Europe  for  stupidity  or  other  crimes.  To  cite  a  Creole  authority 
)nly  provoked  a  grimace  or  a  sarcasm.  It  is  proper  to  say  that  there  was  a  vehement  ft  ud 
between  the  Creoles  and  French.  Men  grew  tired  of  the  society  of  their  superiors,  and  to  have 
Paris  eternally  thrown  in  their  teeth,  with  a  word  now  and  then  about  the  Jitles  de  cassette  and  an 
issumption  of  general  superiority,  would  disturb  the  equanimity  of  the  most  phlegmatic,  much 
ess  of  the  most  mercurial  people. 

So  Tomasi  was  descanting  to  a  Creole  upon  the  perfection  of  the  system,  whatever  it  was. 
vhena  Creole  associate  ventured  to  remark  that  the  Mississippi  was  a  very  headstrong  stream, 
ind  that  possibly  the  basis  of  calculation  assumed  for  the  smaller  rivers  of  Europe  would  not 
)e  found  applicable  to  so  mighty  a  stream.  At  this  Tomasi  merely  employed  a  gesture  of  con- 
empt,  and  added  with  a  sneer,  "  How  little  you  Americans  know  of  the  world.  Knowthat  there 
ire  rivers  in  Europe  so  large  that  the  Mississippi  is  a  ifiere  rill,  figuratively  speaking."  To  this 
he  enraged  Creole  replied,  "  Sir,  I  will  never  allow  the  Mississippi  to  be  insulted  or  disparaged 
nmy  presence  by  an  arrogant  pretender  to  knowledge."  This  he  accompanied  with  ttie  flirt  of  a 
jlove  in  the  face  of  the  Chevalier.  A  challenge  was  the  consequence,  and  Professor  Tomasi  was 
vounded,  as  is  supposed,  mortally.  A  day  or  two  afterwards,  however,  the  Chevalier  appeared 
n  the  streets  wearing  what  the  surgeons  call  a  T  bandage  about  his  face  and  jaw.  He  wore 
luite  a  ghostly  aspect,  and  when  asked  about  it,  remarked,  ''c'est  rien  ;  tine  egratigniire  eeule- 
nent;'  and  stripped  away  the  bandage,  to  show  that  the  sword  of  his  antagonist  had  duly  vindi- 
cated the  dignity  of  the  Mississippi  by  passing  entirely  across  the  mouth  of  the  defamer  from 
)ne  cheek  to  the  other.  "  But,"  said  the  Chevalier,  as  he  replaced  his  bandage,  "  I  should  have 
:illed  my  antagonist  but  for  the  miserable  character  of  yoffr  American  steel.  My  sword,  sir, 
loubled  like  lead.  Had  it  been  a  genuine  colichemarde  he  would  have  fared  properly  for  having 
)rutally  outraged  the  sensibilities  of  a  French  gentleman.  He  here  opened  a  lecture  on  the 
iarbonization  of  iron,  which  could  nowhere  be  effected  properly  except  with  wood  cut  in  a 
certain  forest  of  France.  This  lecture  was  delivered  with  pain  and  contortion  of  visage,  but  no 
loubt  gave  him  great  relief,  as  all  his  premises  and  deductions  were  accepted  without  dispute. 

But  to  merely  recount  the  duels  that  have  taken  place  at  New  Orleans  would  fill  a 
arge  volume.  The  Oaks,  the  favorite  meeting  place  of  the  old  days,  and  which  now  lie  in  what 
s  styled  the  Lower  City  Park,  just  back  of  the  cemeteries,  between  Canal  and  Esplanade  streets, 
lave  witnessed  hundreds  of  fatal  duels.  Since  the  war  dueling  has  not  been  quite  so  much  in 
avor  as  it  was  a  quarter  of  a  century  ago,  but  hostile  meetings  are  still  frequent,  and  not  a  few 
)f  them  have  terminated  fatally. 


188  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER   XIX.— LAFITTE,   THE  PIRATE. 

THE    TRUE     STORY     OF     THE     BARATARIA    PIRATES — THE     WARNING    THAT     SAVED    NEV 
ORLEANS    FROM   CAPTURE   BY   THE   BRITISH— PIRATICAL   DELUSIONS    OF   LATER   DAYS. 

Opposite  the  Sixth  district  of  New  Orleans,  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Mississippi,  is  a  small 
canal,  now  used  by  fishermen  and  hunters,  which  approaches  to  within  a  few  hundred  yards  C)f 
the  river  bank.  The  small  craft  that  ply  on  this  canal  are  taken  up  by  cars  which  are  taken  intu 
the  water  by  an  inclined  plane.  Following  this  canal,  which  runs  nearly  due  west  for  five  or  six 
miles,  you  reach  a  deep,  narrow  and  tortuous  bayou.  Descending  this  bayou,  which  for  forty 
miles  pursues  its  sluggish  course  through  an  impenetrable  swamp,  you  pass  into  a  large  laku 
girt  with  sombre  forests  and  gloomy  swamps,  and  resonant  with  the  hoarse  croakings  of  alliga- 
tors and  the  screams  of  swamp  fowls. 

From  this  lake,  by  a  third  and  larger  bayou,  you  pass  into  another  lake,  and  from  that  t 
another,  until  you  reach  an  island,  on  which  are  discernible,  at  a  considerable  distance,  several 
elevated  knolls,  and  where  a  scant  vegetation  and  a  few  trees  maintain  a  feeble  existence.  At 
the  lower  end  of  the  island  are  some  aboriginal  vestiges,  in  the  shape  of  high  mounds  of  shells 
which  are  thought  to  mark  the  burial-place  of  an  extinct  tribe.  The  lake  or  bayou  finall 
empties  into  the  Gulf  in  two  outlets,  between  which  lies  the  beautiful  island  of  Grand  Terre 
Here  may  be  found  the  foundations  of  houses,  the  brick  work  of  a  rude  fort,  and  other  evi 
deuces  of  an  ancient  settlement.  This  is  the  spot  whi  ,h  has  become  so  famous  in  the  literatur 
and  romances  of  the  Southwest  as  the  "Pirate  Home,"  the  retreat  of  the  dread  corsair  of  th' 
Gulf,  whom  the  genius  of  Byron  has  immortalized  as  one  who 

"  Left  a  corsair's  name  to  other  times, 

Linked  with  one  virtue  and  a  thousand  crimes." 

Jean  Lafitte,  the  pirate,  was  a  blacksmith  from  Bordeaux,  France,  who  kept  his  forge  at 
the  corner  of  Bourbon  and  St.  Philip  streets,  in  a  building  which  remains  to  this  day.  He  had 
an  older  brother,  Pierre,  who  was  a  seafaring  character,  and  had  seryed  in  the  French  navy. 

Shortly  after  the  cession  of  Louisiana  to  the  United  States,  a  series  of  events  occurred 
which  made  the  Gulf  of  Mexico  the  arena  of  a  most  extensive  and  profitable  privateering  First 
came  the  war  between  France  and  Spain,  which  afforded  the  inhabitants  of  the  French  islands 
a  good  pretence  to  depredate  upon  the  rich  commerce  of  the  Spanish  possessions,  the  most  val- 
uable and  productive  in  the  New  World.  The  Gulf  of  Mexico  and  the  Caribbean  swarmed  with 
privateers.  Shortly  after  this  the  United  States  of  Columbia  declared  its  independence  of  Spain, 
and  invited  to  its  port  of  Carthagena  all  the  privateers  and  buccaneers  of  the  gulf.  Commis- 
sions were  promptly  given  or  sold  to  them  to  sail  under  the  Columbian  flag  and  prey  upon  the 
commerce  of  poor  old  Spain.  The  privateers  selected  as  their  headquarters  the  little  bay  or 
cove  of  Grand  Terre.  It  was  called  Barataria.  and  several  huts  and  storehouses  were  built 
there,  and  cannon  planted  on  the  beach.  Here  rallied  the  privateers  of  the  Gulf  with  their  fast- 
sailing  schooners  armed  to  the  teeth  and  manned  by  fierce-looking  men,  armed  with  cutlasses- 
desperadoes  of  all  nations. 

Besides  its  inaccessibility  to  ressels  of  war,  the  Bay  of  Barataria  recommended  itself  by 
another  important  consideration.  It  was  near  to  New  Orleans,  where  the  spoils  of  the  privateers, 
or  as  they  can  well  be  styled,  pirates,  could  be  disposed  of.  A  regular  organization  was  estab- 
blished,  officers  chosen  and  agents  appointed  in  New  Orleans  to  enlist  men  and  negotiate  the 
sale  of  goods- 


^ 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  189 

Among  these  agents  was  the  blacksmith  Jean  Lafitte,  who  by  his  address,  enterprise  and 
guccess  soon  obtained  such  ascendancy  over  the  lawless  congregation  at  Barataria  that  they 
elected  him  their  captain  or  commander. 

There  is  a  tradition  that  tnis  choice  gave  great  dissatisfaction  to  some  of  the  more  warlike 
of  the  pirates,  and  particularly  to  one  Gambio,  a  savage,  grim  Italian  wlio  did  not  scruple  to 
prefer  the  title  and  character  of  pirate  to  the  puling  hypocritical  one  of  privateer ;  and  Lafitte 
found  it  necessary  when  one  of  Gambio's  followers  resisted  him  to  shoot  him  through  the  heart 
before  the  whole  band.  His  vigor  and  determination  gave  him  supreme  command  of  the  pirates 
and  he  certainly  conducted  his  administration  with  energy  and  ability.  A  large  fleet  of  small 
vessels  rode  in  the  harbor,  besides  others  that  were  cruising  in  the  Gulf.  Their  store-houses  were 
filled  with  valuable  goods.  Hither  resorted  merchants  and  traders  from  all  parts  of  the  country 
to  purchase  goods  which,  being  cheaper  obtained,  could  be  retailed  at  a  large  profit.  A  number 
of  small  vessels  were  employed  in  transporting  these  goods  to  New  Orleans,  into  which  city  they 
were  carried  by  night  and  disposed  of  by  the  agents  of  the  pirates  there. 

Several  attempts  were  made  to  break  up  the  band  and  the  L^.  S.  Grand  Jury  more  than  once 
indicted  Lafitte,  but  the  government  could  never  arrest  him.  At  the  very  time  when  a  Federal 
force  was  being  equipped  to  descend  upon  the  settlement  of  Barataria,  the  pirates  were  able  to 
do  the  United  States  a  great  service,  which  saved  New  Orleans  from  capture  by  the  British,  and 
won  for  Lafitte  the  title  of  the  "pirate  patriot."  When  the  British  were  arranging  their  expedition 
against  the  city,  they  prepared  to  advance  on  it  by  way  of  Barataria,  and  sent  a  man-of-war  to 
the  island,  to  make  terms  with  Lafitte  and  secure  the  co-opei*ation  of  the  pirates  in  capturing 
New  Orleans,  offering  as  a  bribe  a  large  sum  of  money  and  to  Lafitte  personally  a  commission 
as  captain  in  the  British  navy. 

Lafitte  affected  acqueiscence  in  these  proposals,  but  at  the  same  time  warned  Governor 
Claiborne  of  the  approach  of  the  British,  and  thus  enabled  the  United  States  to  take  steps  for 
the  defence  of  the  city  and  to  send  General  Jackson  there. 

Notwithstanding  Lafitte's  services,  an  expedition  was  fitted  up  against  the  pirates  and  the 
settlement  captured.  The  Baratarians  were  ironed  and  committed  to  the  Calaboose  at  New 
Orleans,  and  their  spoils,  consisting  of  an  immense  amount  of  valuable  goods,  money,  etc., 
seized  and  conveyed  to  the  city. 

At  the  battle  of  New  Orleans,  General  Jackson  bemg  short  of  gunners,  appointed  several  of 
Lafittes  men  to  the  artillery,  where  they  did  good  service. 

After  the  expedition  against  Barataria,  the  pirates  were  scattered  in  every  direction.  Some 
of  them  fled  the  country,  and  may  have  fallen  into  loose  ways  and  sought  to  trade  upon  the 
name  of  Lafitte,  thereby  giving  circulation  to  the  fictitious  stories,  and  multiplying  the  name 
and  form  of  the  pirate.  Others  remained  In  New  Orleans  and  took  to  honest  and  regular 
pursuits,  and  several  prospered  and  became  rich  and  important  personages.  Two  of  them,  who 
were  famous  fighting  men.  You  and  Bluche,  managed  to  secure  the  admiration  and  respect  of 
General  Jackson  to  such  a  degree  that  he  gave  the  latter,  Bluche,  a  high  certificate  and 
recommendation,  which  procured  him  an  appointment  to  the  command  of  the  fleet  of  one  of 
the  South  American  republics,  and  the  other,  old  Dominique,  was  the  first  person  the  General 
inquired  for  on  his  last  visit  to  the  city.  He  lived  to  an  advanced  age,  in  great  poverty,  but 
With  undiminished  pride  in  his  achievements  as  a  warrior,  and  at  his  death  was  buried  in  the 
St.  Louis  Cemetery,  where  a  pompous  tomb  was  erected  over  him,  and  a  quotation  from 
Voltaire's  "Henriade  "  testifies  to  his  greatness  as  a  hero  and  warrior,  "  The  victor  in  a  hundred 
.fehts  on  sea  and  land." 

V  Lafitte  himself  returned  to  his  old  pursuits,  and  being  unable  to  remain  at  Grand  Terre, 
removed  to  Galveston  (then  known  as  Campeachy)  island  in  1817.  Here  he  built  a  small  town, 
having  his  quarters  in  a  commodious  house,  painted  red,  where  he  was  visited  in  1819  by  Col. 
W.  D.  C.  Hall,  in  the  endeavor  to  secure  his  co-operation  with  Gen.  I<ong  in  his  expedition  to 
Mexico,  but  without  success, 


190  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Lafitte's  person  is  thus  described :  He  was  a  well-formed,  handsome  man,  about  six  feet  tw 
inches  in  heig^ht,  strongly  built,  "with  large  hazel  eyes  and  black  hair,  and  generally  wore 
moustache.  He  dressed  in  a  green  uniform  and  otter-skin  cap.  He  was  a  man  of  polite  ani 
easy  manners,  of  retired  habits,  generous  disposition,  and  of  such  a  winning  address  that  hi 
influence  over  his  followers  was  almost  absolute.  He  located  his  town  on  the  ruins  of  Aury' 
village,  built  a  house  which  he  painted  red,  and  threw  up  around  it  a  fort. 

While  Lafitte  was  located  on  the  island  he  had  five  or  six  armed  vessels,  and  a  large  number  c 
followers.  In  1819  the  island  was  visited  by  a  severe  storm,  and  several  of  the  vessels  wer 
driven  ashore  on  the  mainland.  Shortly  after  the  occupation,  one  of  Lafitte's  men  stole  a  squa"* 
from  the  Caranchua  tribe  of  Indians,  who  often  resorted  to  the  west  end  of  the  island,  and  ker 
possession  of  her.  This  so  enraged  the  Indians  that  they  attacked  a  hunting  party  of  th 
buccaneers  and  killed  two  of  them.  In  return  the  Indians  were  attacked  by  Lafitte  with  tw 
hundred  men  and  two  cannon,  and  a  skirmish  ensued,  lasting  two  days,  when  the  Indians  wer 
forced  to  flee  to  the  mainland,  after  having  thirty  warriors  slain. 

While  at  Grand  Terre,  Lafitte  had  dealt  largely  in  negroes  taken  from  Spanish  slavers,  an^ 
continued  the  business  during  his  stay  here,  and  it  was  not  a  great  many  years  since  ther 
were  living  witnesses  that  the  price  of  an  able-bodied  negro  was  at  that  period  only  $40.  I 
1819  a  desperado  named  Brown  plundered  an  American  vessel  and  was  pursued  to  Galvesto 
by  the  United  States  revenue  cutter  "Lynx,"  Captain  Madison.  Brown  arrived  before  the  cuttei 
and  Lafitte  getting  wind  of  the  affair,  had  him  hung  on  a  little  island  near  the  present  harbc 
improvement  works,  then  known  as  "Little  Campeachy,"  and  separated  from  the  large 
island  by  a  channel  seven  or  eight  feet  in  depth.  He  also  hung  another  of  his  men  name 
Franc^ois  for  engaging  in  a  plot  to  rob  and  murder  a  Mr.  Kuykendall,  who,  it  is  quite  probabk 
visited  the  island  for  the  purpose  of  purchasing  a  few  of  Capt.  Lafitte's  likely  Africans. 

The  L'nited  States  becoming  tired  of  Lafitte's  establishment,  owing  to  the  numerous  con 
plaints  of  depredations  on  American  vessels,  determined  to  break  it  up,  and  dispatched  a  nava 
force  under  Lieut.  Kearney,  vdth  orders  to  see  that  Capt.  Lafitte  left.  The  pirate  chief  receive- 
the  officer  courteously,  entertained  him  sumptuously  at  the  Red  House,  and  issued  instruction 
to  his  followers  to  prepare  to  depart.  The  buccaneers  having  everything  in  readiness,  Lafitt 
ordered  the  town  to  be  set  on  fire,  and  embarking  on  the  "Pride,"  his  favorite  vessel,  sailec 
from  the  island  on  the  twelfth  of  May,  1820,  never  to  return.  After  cruising  in  the  Caribbeai 
Sea  for  several  years  he  located  on  the  island  of  Mugeres,  off  the  coast  of  Yucatan,  where, 
according  to  the  traveler  Stevens,  he  died  in  1826,  leaving  a  widow  and  a  hecatomb  of  turth 
shells  to  honor  his  memory. 

Twenty-five  years  ago  piratical  panics,  alarming  stories  of  bloody  deeds  on  the  Gulf,  similai 
to  those  the  novelists  and  story-mongers  have  related  of  their  heroes  of  the  Morgan,  Kiddanc 
Lafitte  class,  were  periodically  put  in  circulation,  and  the  whole  community  was  agog  witl 
excitement  and  alarm  therefrom.  Generally  these  sensational  stories  and  panics  resulted  ii 
some  ludicrous  exposures,  and  no  more  harm  was  done  than  to  bring  much  laughter  an( 
ridicule  upon  the  parties,  who  had  yielded  with  too  easy  a  credulity  to  such  exciting  fictions 

But  occasionally  these  piratical  stories  caused  some  trouble. 

There  was  in  New  Orleans  of  old,  a  retired  sea-captain  of  the  name  of  Bossiere,  who  tc 
gratify  his  unconquerable  love  for  the  sea  had  constructed  or  purchased  a  beautiful  yacht,  tr 
which,  during  vacation,  he  was  accustomed  to  cruise  around  the  mouth  of  the  river,  visiting  th( 
islands  of  the  Gulf,  and  boarding  the  vessels  bound  for  the  city. 

His  yacht  was  a  long,  low,  black,  raking  schooner.  His  crew  was  composed  of  amateui 
sailors,  friends  from  the  city,  who,  investing  themselves  in  tarpaulin  hats,  red  flannel  shirts  and 
light  duck  pants,  affected  the  airs  and  swagger  of  regular  salts  and  relieved  themselves  of  theii 
surplus  sportiveness  by  playing  piratical  pranks  on  the  peaceful  merchant  and  fishing  vesseh 
plying  in  the  Gulf,  such  as  displaying  a  black  flag  with  a  skeleton  and  cross  bones.  Unfor- 
tunately, the  humor  of  their  pranks  were  not  perceived  or  appreciated.    They  were  accepted  as 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  191 

certain  indications  of  the  real  piratical  character  of  the  little  yacht,  and  even  reported  in  the 
;ity,  with  much  exaggeration,  as  infallible  evidences  of  the  existence  of  a  formidable  pirate 
vessel,  manned  by  some  of  the  legitimate  descendants  or  successors  of  Lafitte  and  the  other 
amous  pirates  of  the  early  days  of  the  city.  These  stories  had  a  large  circulation  throughout 
he  countiy,  and  were  gulped  down  with  marvelous  avidity  by  seafaring  people.  The  packets 
)]ying  between  this  and  the  northern  cities  were  warned  to  look  out  for  the  long,  low,  black, 
aking  vessel  hovering  off  the  mouth  of  the  river.  Captain  Bossiere  was  insensible  or  indifferent 
o  these  pranks  of  his  amateur  crew.  Perhaps  he  enjoyed  the  jocularity  of  the  thing,  but  was 
oo  intent  on  his  enjoyment  of  his  favorite  pleasure  and  recreation  to  give  any  heed  to  the 
:enuine  and  real  alarm  his  little  vessel  was  exciting.    So  he  continued  without  apprehension 

0  approach,  haU  and  board  the  packets  bound  for  the  city,  with  a  view  of  interchanging 
ivilities,  news  and  articles  of  luxury,  and  indulging  in  conviviality  with  passengers  who  had 
•een  a  long  time  at  sea. 

It  happened  that  one  day  Bossiere,  descrying  a  large  packet  which  he  recognized  as  a  vessel 
ormerly  commanded  by  an  old  friend,  shaped  his  yacht,  and  sailed  swiftly  toward  her.  Anchoring 
ear  the  packet,  and  receiving  no  response  to  his  hail,  Bossiere  leaped  into  his  small  boat  and, 
nth  four  of  his  amateurs  at  the  oars,  rowed  over  to  the  packet.  As  he  approached  the  packet 
e  could  perceive  no  movement  on  board  to  indicate  any  consciousness  of  his  approach  or  any 
isposition  to  extend  to  him  the  hospitalities  he  expected  to  enjoy.  Reaching  the  side  of  the 
acket,  Bossiere  leaped  from  his  boat,  and,  climbing  up  the  ladder,  jumped  over  the  taff-rail  on 
3  the  deck  of  the  packet.  In  his  impetuosity  he  did  not  discover,  until  too  late,  that  he  had 
;aped  into  a  crowd  of  infuriated  men,  armed  with  marline  spikes  and  every  imaginable  weapon 
'•hich  could  be  obtained  from  a  merchant  vessel,  and  who  fell  upon  him  with  the  utmost  fury, 
nocking  him  down,  breaking  his  ribs  and  fearfully  bruising  him,  until  he  lay  upon  the  deck 
pparently  dead. 

The  men,  the  amateur  pirates  of  Bossiere's  yacht,  hearing  the  din  and  tumult  on  deck, 
omediately  put  back  to  the  yacht,  on  reaching  which  they  unfurled  their  canvas,  and  made, 
1th  all  the  sail  they  could  carry,  for  the  mouth  of  the  river.  Bossiere,  insensible  and  so  terri- 
ly  bruised,  was  taken  into  the  cabin,  where  he  was  attended  by  some  of  the  lady  passengers 
ad  a  few  of  the  men,  who  proceeded  to  bathe  his  wounds,  and  sought  to  revive  his  vitality  by 
During  brandy  down  his  throat.  At  last  .he  revived,  and,  glancing  around  at  the  spectators, 
3  overheard  some  of  the  young  ladies  remark  :  "What  a  handsome  pirate  he  is  1  Poor  fellow, 
3W  he  has  suffered  for  his  crimes  !  " 

As  soon  as  he  could  gather  strength  enough  to  speak,  Bossiere  asked  for  the  captain.  He 
-scovered  he  was  not  his  old  friend,  who  had  been  superseded  in  command  of  the  packet. 
What  do  you  mean  by  this  cowardly  and  brutal  treatment  of  a  peaceful,  unarmed  citizen?" 
J  asked.    "You  can't  pass  that  chaff  on  me.    We  have  heard  of  your  doings  around  these 

irts.    We  set  a  trap,  and  caught  the  vilest  d d  pirate  that  ever  depredated  on  peaceful 

jssels  and  people." 

"  You  are  a  liar,  scoundrel  and  coward,"  replied  the  prostrate  and  half-dead  old  sailor.  "  I'U 
ake  you  pay  for  this  when  you  get  to  the  city." 

Bossiere  kept  his  word.    He  was  kindly  nursed  by  the  passengers,  his  bones  were  set,  and 

1  reaching  the  city,  the  still  incredulous  captain  sending  for  the  police  to  deliver  over  to  them 
le  body  of  the  bloodiest  pirate  ever  captured,  experienced  a  sudden  and  violent  revulsion  of 
eling  when  the  policeman  exclaimed,  as  his  eyes  fell  upon  his  prisoner  :  "Why,  this  ain't  no 
rate.    This  is  Captain  Bossiere,  a  port  warden  and  a  quiet  citizen  !  " 

It  was  a  long  time  before  Bossiere  recovered  from  the  injuries  received  in  this  adventure, 
is  first  task  after  regaining  his  strength  was  to  hunt  up  the  captain  of  the  packet  and  to  inflict 
5on  him  a  severe  caning,  at  the  same  time  offering  to  respond  to  any  invitation  to  any  field  or 
ode  of  combat  to  satisfy  the  just  vengeance  due  for  his  inhospitable  and  cowardly  treatment. 


]^92  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

The  challenge  was  declined.  Bossiere  then  employed  Col.  John  R.  Grymes  to  institute  an  action 
of  damages  for  a  large  amount  against  the  captain  and  owners  of  the  ship  upon  whose  decks  he 
had  been  so  inhospitably  and  brutaUy  used.  It  was  on  the  trial  of  this  action  that  the  f  oregomg 
facts  were  brought  out.  j.,    j.      ,.  , 

But  the  most  interesting  incident  connected  with  Captain  Bossiere  was  that  which,  many 
years  a-o.  was  quite  familiar  to  many  of  our  citizens.  This  was  the  fact  that  his  vessel  the 
"Seraphine,"was  built  for  a  special  purpose,  and  a  large  sum  of  money  was  made  up  m  ^ew 
Orleaus  and  in  Charleston  to  carry  out  that  object,  and  complete  her  in  a  style  that  would 
render  her  the  fastest  vessel  in  the  world,  the  staunchest  and  most  manageable. 

Bossiere  was  the  chief  agent  of  che  parties  engaged  in  this  plot.  To  him  was  assigned  the 
supervision  of  the  building  and  equipment  of  the  vessel.  When  launched  in  the  great  enterprise 
to  which  she  had  been  dedicated,  Bossiere.  with  a  picked  crew,  was  to  command  her. 

The  obiect  of  the  parties  thus  enlisted  in  the  adventure  in  question  was  the  rescue  of  the 
Emperor  Napoleon  from  his  rocky  prison  in  the  island  of  St.  Helena.  The  plot  was  well  laid. 
Several  old  French  residents  of  New  Orleans  engaged  warmly  in  it.  Among  these  was  Nicholas 
Girod  mayor  of  the  city  for  several  terms,  the  same  who  received  Jackson  on  his  entrance  into 
the  city  in  1814.  and  of  whose  gallantry  and  efBciency  Jackson  bore  eloquent  testimony  in  his 
general  orders.  He  was  a  sturdy,  patriotic,  and  philanthropic  old  gentleman,  and  at  his  death 
made  the  handsome  bequest  to  the  city  known  as  the  Girod  legacy. 

Mr  Girod  was  an  intense  and  devoted  friend  and  admirer  of  the  great  Napoleon  and  a  vig- 
orous hater  of  the  British.  He  never  tired  in  his  denunciation  of  the  brutality  of  imprisoning  so 
iUustrious  a  man  in  that  miserable  island,  and  with  other  old  Napoleonists  was  constantly 
engaged  in  devising  plans  for  his  escape,  and  never  lost  faith  in  his  eventual  safe  transportation 
to  New  Orleans.  As  a  proof  of  his  confidence  in  this  expectation  he  had  erected  what  was  then 
re-arded  the  finest  building  in  the  city,  at  the  comer  of  St.  Louis  and  Chartres  streets,  which 
he"intended  to  donate  to  the  Emperor  as  his  future  residence  in  this  city.  There  are  strong  rea- 
sons to  believe  that  the  plan  of  Napoleon's  rescue  was  deliberately  and  carefully  drawn  up  m 
communication  with  the  confidential  friends  and  staff  officers  of  Napoleon,  who  accompanied 
him  into  his  exile.    Girod  was  deep  in  this  plot  and  pledged  the  largest  portion  of  his  fortune  to 

secure  its  success.  ...         -,  ^i     ^    j.       j.v  * 

It  was  in  co-operation  ^^ith  him  and  other  old  Napoleonists  in  this  city  and  Charleston  that 
Bossiere  proceeded  with  great  energy  in  constructing  and  equipping  his  clipper  When  com- 
pleted she  proved  to  be  a  beauty,  a  model  of  a  fast  sailing  and  strong  clipper  of  about  200  tons. 
The  crew,  too,  had  already  been  engaged  and  thoroughly  drilled.  They  were  picked  sailojs 
and  fighters,  men  of  the  most  desperate  character.  Bossiere  had  been  provided  witn  the  most 
accurate  maps  of  the  harbor  and  plans  of  the  fortifications,  with  the  stations  and  armaments  of 
the  various  ships  of  war  guarding  the  island,  and  with  the  regulations  of  the  military  force  and 

^^'' Bo°s^iere's  whole  soul  was  in  this  enterprise.  He  was  a  Frenchman  by  descent.  His  father 
was  an  officer  in  the  army  of  Count  Eochambeau,  which  co-operated  with  Washington  s  army 
in  the  siege  of  Yorktown.  and  led  the  French  force  which,  with  a  column  of  Americans  under 
Col  Alexander  Hamilton,  escaladed  the  principal  fort  defending  the  position  of  Lord  Cornwallis. 
Bossiere's  mother,  too,  was  of  French  descent,  from  the  island  of  San  Domingo. 

He  thought  and  dreamed  of  nothing  but  the  glory  of  scaling  the  precipitous  heights  of  St. 
Helena,  with  his  cutlass  between  his  teeth,  his  trusty  pistols  in  his  belt,  and,  followed  by  his 
desperadoes,  rushing  upon  thQ  guard  and  breaking  into  Napoleon's  chamber  securmg  his 
person,  and  bearing  it  to  a  chair,  attached  with  a  rope  to  block  and  tackle,  and  lowering  him 
upon  the  deck  of  the  "Seraphine,"  which,  taking  advantage  of  a  dark  night,  had  eluded  the 
guardships  and  crept  noiselessly  into  the  position  assigned  in  the  carefully-drawn  plan.  When 
once  deposited  on  the  deck  of  the  "Seraphine"  he  could  trust  to  her  heels,  and  defy  pursuit 


^  GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  "^  193 

by  the  whole  British  navy.  This  was  the  plan  which  for  months  engaged  the  thoughts  and 
faculties  of  Bossiere,  and  was  rehearsed  by  him  every  night  before  going  to  bed,  and  again 
before  rising  in  the  morning. 

Alas !  alas  !  alas !  Man  proposes.  God  disposes.  Three  days  before  that  which  had  been 
fixed  for  the  departure  of  the  "  Seraphine  "  the  news  reached  America  of  the  death  of  the  great 
Napoleon  on  the  fifth  of  May,  1821.  Never  was  a  man  stricken  with  more  poignant  grief  and 
disappointment  than  Bossiere  by  this  sorrowful  intelligence. 

That  the  plot  which  we  have  described  was  known  to  and  authorized  by  Napoleon's  staff  at 
St.  Helena  was  long  afterwards  acknowledged  by  Dr.  Antomarchi  and  Marshal  Bertrand,  who 
visited  the  city  some  years  after  the  death  of  their  chief.  Dr.  Antomarchi  testified  his  apprecia- 
tion of  the  generous  impulses  and  sentiments  of  the  people  of  New  Orleans  by  presenting  a 
marble  bust  or  cast  of  Napoleon  after  his  death,  which  was  long  preserved  in  the  old  city  hall. 
Marshal  Bertrand,  who  visited  the  city  in  the  forties,  and  was  accompanied  by  young  Ney,  the 
Due  de  Moskowa,  was  received  with  great  eclat  and  with  the  most  enthusiastic  demonstrations 
by  the  old  Napoleonists,  often  referred  to  the  plot  which  had  been  concocted  in  New  Orleans, 
and  which  he  believed  would  have  been  successful;  and  repeated  Napoleon's  frequent  expres- 
sions of  his  great  desire  to  spend  the  remainder  of  his  days  in  that  great  and  free  country,  and 
among  the  noble  republican  people  of  the  United  States  of  America. 

It  was  in  the  summer  of  1^42,  in  the  midst  of  that  calm  and  indolence  which  are  wont  to 
possess  New  Orleans,  and  when  there  always  exists  a  susceptibility,  rather  a  longing,  indeed,  for 
some  event  or  intelligence  of  a  startling  and  sensational  character,  that  some  one  brought  to 
the  city  an  appalling  and  frightful  story  of  the  capture  of  the  ship  Charies  in  the  Gulf  by  pirates, 
and  the  murder  of  her  crew  and  passengers,  and  the  plunder  and  rifling  of  her  cabin  and  cargo. 
After  this  foul  deed,  the  bloodthirsty  pirates  had  tried  to  scuttle  and  sink  the  vessel,  but,  being 
loaded  with  slaves,  this  proved  impracticable.  She  was  found  floating  in  the  Gulf,  evidently 
without  direction  or  crew,  and  on  boarding  her  the  awful  reality  was  demonstrated  by 
unmistakable  signs.  There  were  distinct  marks  of  the  fray.  The  decks  were  stained  with  the 
blood  of  the  unfortunate  crew.  Trunks  were  found  broken  open  and  emptied  ;  old  clothes 
were  scattered  around ;  bottles,  which  had  evidently  recently  contained  spirits,  wine  and  beer, 
strewed  the  deck.  Nothing  of  any  value  was  left  on  the  vessel ;  even  her  charts,  chronometer, 
and  all  her  portable  furniture  had  been  removed. 

The  intelligence  was  soon  diffused  through  the  whole  city,  and  produced,  of  course  a 
violent  ferment,  a  wild  excitement.  The  City  Council  met  to  consider  the  matter,  and  popular 
meetings  were  held.  It  was  determined  to  organize  a  force  of  volunteers,  to  charter  a  steamer, 
and  proceed  immediately  in  pursuit  of  the  daring  freebooters.  That  gallant  and  judicious 
military  commander,  General  Persifer  F.  Smith,  was  placed  in  command  of  the  expedition, 
which  was  quickly  under  way  down  the  river.  It  was  a  fine  body  of  citizen  soldiers— of 
gentlemen  of  heroic  mould,  who  tore  themselves  from  the  embraces  of  anxious  wives  and  timid 
nothers,  and  hastened  to  engage  in  the  perilous  cruise  against  the  successors  to  the  bloody 
Duccaneers  of  the  Gulf,  who  had  perpetrated  this  great  outrage  and  insult  upon  our  peaceful 
3ommunity. 

The  steamer  reaching  the  Gulf,  proceeded  to  cruise  through  the  sound,  keeping  a  close 
watch  of  the  islands  and  inlets,  where  it  was  suspected  the  pirates  had  taken  refuge  to  conceal 
:heir  spoils.  Every  vessel,  every  fishing  smack,  was  overhauled  and  examined,  and  every  per- 
son who  could  be  found  on  the  islands  was  closely  inspected,  cross-examined  and  required  to 
iccount  for  his  presence,  and  treated  generally  as  suspicious  and  a  probable  confederate  of  the 
5loody  pirates.  The  Dagoes  who  frequent  these  little  sand  islands  for  fishing  were  especially  sub- 
jected to  the  most  rigorous  inquisition.  Doubtless  they  had  good  grounds  for  apprehension 
:hat  they  had  in  some  way  or  other  become  offenders  against  the  legal  authority,  and  seeing 
mch  an  army  of  armed  men,  deemed  it  most  prudent  to  submit  to  a  thorough  search,  and  to 
jmploy  any  chances  of  evasion  and  misinformatiou  to  get  rid  of  their  visitors.    They  favored 


194  HISTORICAL  SKETCH   BOOK. 

and  encouraged  the  piratical  rumors,  and  they  designated  certain  places  where  the  pirates 
might  be  found,  and  which  they  frequented.  One  particular  island  of  the  Chandeliers  was 
marked  out  as  a  suspicious  locality.  There  was  an  encampment  on  that  island  of  unknown 
and  suspicious  persons.  Let  the  expedition  make  for  that  island,  surround  and  arrest  the 
parties,  and  there  was  every  prospect  of  the  capture  oi  the  bloody  villains  who  murdered  the 
crew  and  plundered  the  ship  "  Charles."    This  story  was  confirmed  by  other  accounts. 

Accordingly,  General  Smith  directed  his  steamer  toward  the  suspicious  locality.  As  he 
neared  it  a  telescope  betrayed  the  presence  of  a  tent  and  of  persons  on  the[island.  It  was  then 
dark.  But  the  impatient  valor  of  the  heroic  volunteers  would  not  brook  delay.  It  was  urged 
to  make  a  nocturnal  attack.  Arrangements  were  accordingly  made  therefor.  And  about  9  o'clock 
the  several  boats  of  the  steamers  were  launched  and  all  filled  with  gallant  volunteers  heavily 
armed.  They  made  for  the  island  sUently  and  gloomily,  General  Smith  in  the  bow  of  the  fore- 
most boat.  Landing  near  the  tent  the  men  leaped  on  the  beach  and  advanced  in  column  of 
attack,  General  Smith  In  front.  When  within  forty  steps  of  the  tent  there  was  a  cry  of  qui  va  la? 
The  reply  of  General  Smith  was,  "  Surrender:  lay  down  your  arms,"  at  the  same  time  rushing 
towards  the  front  of  the  tent.  He  was  answered  by  a  rifle  shot,  whistling  near  his  head.  But 
this  did  not  arrest  the  General,  who  was  some  paces  in  advance  of  his  men,  when  suddenly  he 
stumbled  over  the  tent  ropes  and  fell  prostrate.  The  person  who  had  fired  the  gun  then  rushed 
to  the  fallen  General  and  endeavored  to  slay  him  by  cutting  him  with  a  knife,  inflicting  several 
wounds  on  his  person,  not,  however,  of  a  very  serious  character.  In  the  meantime,  the  General's 
force  had  reached  the  scene,  and  seeing  their  prostrate  commander,  discharged  a  volley  of  mus- 
ketry at  his  assailant,  and  then  rushed  into  the  tent.  The  enemy  had  fled,  and  was  pursued  to  a 
lagoon,  where  he  was  captured  by  Captain  George  Washington  Eeeder,  a  famous  little  light 
comedian  and  excellent  newspaper  reporter  of  his  day.  The  prisoner  proved  to  be  badly 
wounded,  and,  alas  1  alas  1  instead  of  a  pirate,  a  most  respectable  Creole  gentleman  of  New 
Orleans,  Mr.  Lucie,  who,  with  his  brother  and  son,  a  little  boy,  had  pitched  their  tent  upon  this 
desolate  island  to  enjoy  a  little  fishing  and  other  marine  pleasures.  The  brother  and'son  were 
found  in  the  tent  asleep.  Mr.  Lucie  had  heard  of  the  piratical  rumors,  and  of  course,  assailed  in 
the  manner  he  had  been  at  night  by  armed  men,  took  General  Smith  and  his  party  for  the  blood- 
thirsty, plundering  ruffians,  and  determined  to  sell  his  life  as  dearly  as  possible.  Hence  his 
manly  resistance  and  the  lamentable  result.  His  wound  was  mortal,  and  he  died  that  night,  to 
the  heart-rending  grief  of  his  little  son  and  brother,  and  the  bitter  chagrin  and  sorrow  of'  his 
unfortunate  slayers. 

This  tragical  result  brought  all  parties  to  their  senses.    They  began  now  to  see  that  they 
had  permitted  a  senseless  panic  to  confuse  their  faculties  and  mislead  their  judgments.    Further 
reflection  created  a  doubt  as  to  the  whole  story,  which  had  begot  their  expedition,  and  led  them 
on  so  desperate  a  wild  chase.    From  credulity  they  rushed  to  the  other  extreme  of  thorough 
skepticism  of  the  whole  story  about  the  ship  "Charles."  Accordingly,  General  Smith  directed  the  | 
captain  of  the  steamer  to  take  the  expedition  back  to  New  Orleans  as  rapidly  as  possible.    The  j 
dead  body  of  Mr.  Lucie  and  his  mourning  relatives,  and  all  his  effects  were  put  aboard,  and  the  i 
steamer  directed  her  course  to  the  city.    It  was  a  melancholy  trip  ;  aU  the  valorous  enthusiasm 
of  our  gallant  volunteers  had  evaporated ;  their  hopes  of  being  received  by  their  friends  and 
families  in  the  city,  as  conquering  heroes  returning  from  the  war,  had  given  way  to  a  profound 
despondency  and  disgust.    Arriving  safely  in  the  city  at  night.  General  Smith  disbanded  his 
command,  and  each  man  slunk  home  with  more  of  the  feeling  of  defeat  and  dismay  than  that  of 
pride  and  triumph. 

A  few  days  afterward,  the  roll  of  the  expeditionary  party  disappeared,  and  it  was  always 
very  difficult  ever  afterward  to  discover  who  were  the  members  of  it,  though,  when  it  started, 
they  were  all  well-known  citizens. 

This  modesty  was  due  to  two  events. 

The  next  day  after  the  return  of  the  expedition,  capias  was  issued  by  the  Criminal  Court  of 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS, 


195 


New  Orleans  for  the  arrest,  on  a  charge  of  murder,  of  General  P.  S,  Smith  and  George  Washing- 
ton Reeder,  the  two  actors  in  the  affair,  who  could  not  disguise  their  connection  with  it.  It 
required  a  very  thorough  investigation  before  these  gentlemen  could  release  themselves  from 
this  anno/ing  involvement.  The  second  fact,  which  stripped  this  expedition  of  all  the  glory  and 
renown  which  it  was  expected  to  achieve,  was  the  intelligence  which  came  from  the  North,  of 
the  safe  arrival  of  the  crew  and  passengers  of  the  ship  "  Charles,"  who,  finding  the  vessel  in  a 
sinking  condition  as  they  imagined,  concluded  to  abandon  her,  and  hailing  a  passing  vessel, 
bound  for  New  York,  took  passage  on  her,  taking  good  care  to  remove  all  their  baggage  and  all 
the  portable  effects.  The  mysterious  blood  stains  on  the  deck  were  caused  by  the  butchering  of 
some  chickens  or  the  emptying  the  contents  of  claret  bottles. 

In  fact,  it  was  shown  that  there  had  never  been  so  senseless  a  panic  as  that  created  in  New 
Orleans  by  the  mysterious  abandonment  of  the  ship  "  Charles." 

It  proved  a  good  lesson.  We  have  never  since  heard  of  any  piratical  exploits  or  deeds  in  the 
Gulf.    That  ancient  disturbance  of  our  slumbers  has  never  visite    our  couches. 


196  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XX.— THE  FILIBUSTERS. 

THE  SEVERAL   EXPEDITIONS   FROM   NEW   ORLEANS   AGAINST  CUBA— THE  EXPLOITS  OF  THE 
FILIBUSTERS -DEATH    OF   LOPEZ    AND   CRITTENDEN— THE   NEW    ORLEANS   CUBAN   RIOT. 

It  was  from  New  Orleans  that  the  various  filibustering  expeditions  which  invaded  the 
possessions  of  Spain  and  other  South  American  states  sailed.  This  filibustering  spirit  may  be 
s.Hid  to  be  the  legitimate  sequence  of  Lafitte's  expeditions  against  the  Spanish  mam,  for  Lafitte 
was  in  reality  more  filibuster  Than  pirate.  ,  ,  .     ^^       ^,  tt.„. 

From  early  in  the  thirties,  the  filibustering  spirit  was  all-powerful  m  New  Orleans.  Hun- 
dreds of  men  went  from  the  city  to  take  part  in  the  Texan  War  of  Independence,  and  to  engagr 
in  the  various  expeditions  into  Mexico.  Later  William  Walker,  the  "blue-eyed  man  of  destiny, 
who  had  been  editor  of  a  New  Orleans  paper,  organized  the  expedition  to  Central  America, 
which  was  composed  mainly  of  Louisianian*  and  Mississippians.  The  success  of  this  filibustering 
exploit  was  so  great,  Walker  being  dictator  and  in  absolute  control  of  Nicaragua  for  some  yean- 
that  it  incited  a  number  of  other  expeditions  of  hke  nature,  ^v  ^  , .  , 
But  the  most  popular  of  all  the  filibustering  movements  from  New  Orleans  was  that  whicl^ 
sought  to  free  Cuba  from  the  dominion  of  Spain.  ■,     ,  r^ 

In  1849  the  first  Cuban  Junta  was  established  in  New  York.  It  was  composed  of  Gen 
Narcisso  Lopez,  president;  Juan  Manuel  Macias,  Jos6  Maria  Sanchez.  Yznaga,  Cirilo  Villaverd. 
and  Ambrosio  Gonzales.  The  military  commission  of  Cuba  at  once  took  the  matter  m  hand,  anr 
the  sentence  of  death  by  the  garrote  was  duly  passed  upon  its  members. 

A  season  of  inactivity,  for  utter  want  of  means,  then  ensued  until  the  early  part  of  1*50.  unti 
at  a  levee  of  President  Zachary  Taylor,  Gen.  Gonzales,  who  had  throughout  represented  the  Cuban; 
in  Washington,  was  asked  by  a  lady  to  be  introduced  to  her  friend.  Gen.  John  Henderson  ex 
Senator  from  Misssissippi  and  a  prominent  lawyer  of  New  Orleans,  a  friend  of  Cuba.  After  a  shor 
conversation  he  was  encouraged  by  Gen.  Henderson,  if  ever  he  thought  of  moving  in  behalf  o: 
Cuba  to  come  to  New  Orleans  and  see  him.  Some  days  after  some  young  gentlemen  from  Ken 
tucky  hearing  in  Washington  of  Gen.  Gonzales  being  a  representative  of  Cuba,  called  on  him 
They  had  served  as  officers  in  the  Mexican  war.  They  were  Col.  Theodore  O'Hara,  editor  of  th( 
Louisville  Democrat,  author  of  the  "Bivouac  of  the  Dead,"  commander  of  Fort  McRae,  in  Pensa 
cola  and  inspector-general  to  Sidney  Johnston,  at  Shiloh,  in  the  civil  war  ;  Col.  Pickett 
afterward  consul  and  acting  minister  to  Mexico,  and  Major  Hawkins.  They  asserted  then 
ability  and  willingness  to  raise  at  their  own  expense  and  bring  down  to  New  Orleans  a  regimen' 
of  Kentuckians,  as  fine  material  as  could  be  found  anywhere,  if  the  authority  were  given  them 
Comin-  to  New  Orleans,  the  Cubans  found  a  large  number  of  persons  very  enthusiastic  ovei 
the  proposeji  expedition  to  Cuba,  and  had  no  difficulty  in  raising  the  men  and  money  the: 

^^°With  the  money  collected,  about  $40,000,  the  little  steamer  Creole,  that  had  been  plyini 
between  New  Orleans  and  Mobile,  was  purchased,  repaired,  coaled,  officered,  manned  am 
provisioned,  arms  and  uniforms  were  procured,  and  the  bark  Georgina  was  chartered  as  a  trans 

^"""^Authority  was  given  to  Col.  Bunch  and  Lieut.-Col.  Smith,  son  of  Justice  C.  Pinkney  Smith,  o 
Mississippi,  to  raise  in  that  State  a  skeleton  regiment.  At  this  .iuncture,  Col.  Robert  Wheat  wh. 
had  served  in  the  Mexican  war,  presented  himself,  begging  to  be  allowed  to  go.  He  was  told  tha 
there  was  no  transportation  for  him,  but  he  removed  the  objection  by  offering  to  procure  it  if  h 
was  only  given  the  authority  to  form  also  a  skeleton  regiment  of  Louisianians.  This  being  done 
he  obtained  money  from  young  gentlemen  friends  of  his,  to  charter  the  brig  Susa^a  Loud 
provison  her,  etc.,  all  for  the  mere  privilege  of  going. 

Such  were  the  men  who  went  to  Cuba-men  of  family,  position  and  means. 


GUIDE    TO    XEW    ORLEANS.  IQy 

non.^  oca.  o,  .ueatan  ;  t.e  .a»e  is>a  jr;Sr?or :£^^^^^^^^^^ 

Havana,  ow.er"of:L%^rc:n\ra.r.r^^^^^  t^-  " 

vessels  promptly  appeared  and  carried  them  off  to  Cuba     ^hesewefe  the  well  r™ 
'•Contoy  Prisoners"  whom  the  Spaniards  wanted  to  hang  for  havi^  de  erted    'hP^lh     . 
who  were  sent  to  Spain,  and  whom  the  U.  S.  Minister  Mr  Barnn^  r  nf  ^ZTn        ■  ^^^^''f  ^^ 

mander  Randolph,  who  demanded  them,  and  beine  refused  ^v^Lv.r^  7  '^"^.^"y-  ^o«i- 
superior  force,  when  Captain  Tatnall.  cominrup  from  Tey  W^Tn  the  •' SarL'  '"  "^T!? 
him  and  consented,  to  avoid  complication,  t^o  their  befnt'cIrTied  off'  T^e    •  "'eole' " [7  he 

rdrrXTL7ti%rt:?^L=^^^ 

^as^h^af  aTtt'-'r^J'^       '"'"'''J'?'  '''''^''^^^'^'y'  to  a  wharf  in  Cardenas,  wherethe  water 

.gunneland  unsteady.    Fassoux.  wet  to  the  skin,  salon  thrXtn^eatdrTTede^ 

leflse'  FcL7in?h  '"''  ?'.  "'"'^  ""^  ''''^'  ""^  *^^  ^^^^^^^  ^^^  timf  to  prepare  'or 
Se  ft  bv  fntp     '      ^^^P;^tation  of  surprising  the  place,  the  filibusters  were  constraTned  to 

oulv'andTpn'  7^'   «^^\t«  the  skirts  of   the  town   to  cut  off  communication  with  the 
Zrll       t^         T^  ^°^  *^^  ""^'^  ^^  the  expedition  moved  in  solid  columns  toward  the 
On  I^nrnf  r''.^"'  "',''"""•  ^''  ""  ^^^^"^^'^  ^^^^ed,  a  species  of  fortr""  ''' 

Cuh«  ,f  PP^^^^^^h^^^them  a  line  of  Spanish  soldiers  formed,  and  as  Gen.  Lopez  answered 
Cuba      to  their  challenge,  a  volley  was  fired,  which  wounded  Colonels  wfeL    O'Hara 

IXV  t'/^^'^"""'^'  '^'^  '"'''^'''^  ^°*^  ^^^  ^'^^^d-^-  -d  fi-<l  upon  the  filibusters 
irough  the  grated  wmdows.    After  a  time  means  were  devised  to  batter  down  the  gate     The 

Lr  door    ^"^^^°^'^^^'  ^^^  ^^^  ^'"h--  troops   rushed  in  and  the  Spaniards  evacuated  by  a 

n  f^rj  ""^  ^^^  Spanish  troops  in  the  garrison  deserted  to  Lopez,  threw  off  their  uniforms  nut 
a  the  blouses  of  the  Cubans  and  came  over  with  Lopez  to  the  United  States.  They  returned 
ith  him  to  Cuba  in  1851,  and  perished  by  his  side  there  returned 

i.l^li.'^'^?!^"  ^^^'"^  ^f  ^"  ^^^'^  "'^^  ^"  h^^^^^'  steamed  away  to  the  eastern  portion  of  the 
land  where  they  expected  assistance  from  the  natives.    When  a  short  distance  frorcardenas 

^t  then  the  31  ^"  '."""'  '?  '"'  '''  ^'^  ^^^^^^  "^^  ^^^  ^-^  "^  his  wound  in  th  nigh  .' 
•markablenLflZ^^  "Pizarro,"  came  in  sight.    Then  ensued  one  of  the  most 

markable  naval  chases  ever  witnessed,  but  the  "Creole"  succeeded  in  reaching  Key  West  and 
sembarkmg  her  men  there  just  as  the  •'  Pizarro  "  came  up  with  her 


jgg  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

This  ended  the  first  MibusterioK  expedition  to  Cuba.    '''ZZ^SV'^^t^lT"''' 

--=7boeo-tard-,or.r^^^^^^^^ 

officer  m  fie  bpanisn  army,     x  etcnriinc,  and  habits     They  were  commanded  b: 

Military  Academy,  and  by  Col.  Donovan,  of  Georpa,  with  Major  J.  A.  Keily   ana 
nt"V"atr"Ci:S;wraS"^^^^^^^^^^^ 

the  way  a  coasting  vessel,  from  which  Gen.  Lopez^talned  two  pilots. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  199 

Gen.  Lopez  landed  and  left  Crittenden  with  his  battalion  of  120  men  on  the  coast  to  guard 
the  baggage  and  ammunition  while  he  proceeded  inland.  Crittenden  was  attacked  and  repulsed 
the  Spaniards,  but  was  worsted  in  the  next  onset,  when  his  men  were  dispersed,  and  he  and 
fifty  more  took  to  the  boats  to  escape.  He  was  met  by  the  steamer  "  Habanero  "  and  captured 
and  taken  to  Havana. 

Here  after  a  short  imprisonment  Crittenden  and  his  entire  party  were  all  shot  in  the  back, 
on  the  slope  of  the  Castle  of  Atares,  at  the  bottom  of  the  Bay  of  Havana.  They  were  sentenced 
by  a  drum-head  court-martial,  on  board  the  frigate  "Esperanza."  Havana  correspondents  of 
American  newspapers  North  and  South  reported  their  bodies  to  have  been  mutilated  and  thrown 
pele-mele  into  a  ditch. 

Gen.  Lopez,  after  leaving  Crittenden  on  the  coast,  proceeded  inland  with  his  300  and  odd 
men  to  a  village  called  Las  Pozas,  where  he  was  attacked  by  a  Spanish  column  of  800  or  1,000 
men,  which  he  defeated,  killing  Cols.  Justez,  Nadal,  etc.,  but  losing  most  of  his  staff  and  ofBcers. 
He  then  retreated  to  Cafetal  de  Trias,  formerly  belonging  to  his  wife's  family,  where  he  was 
attacked  by  Major-Gen.  Enna,  second  in  command  of  the  island  of  Cuba,  with  a  very  large  force  of 
infantry,  cavalry  and  artillery.  The  small  band  left  him  received  the  attack  at  an  avenue  of 
mango  trees,  and  then  took  a  position  by  a  stone  fence.  Their  fire  was  so  murderous  and  the  loss 
ijiflicted  upon  the  enemy  so  great  that  Gen.  Enna,  his  troops  being  demoralized,  was  himself  com- 
pelled to  head  a  charge  with  a^ew  men.  He  fell,  mortally  wounded,  and  Gen.  Lopez  is  said  to 
have  exclaimed  :  "  Oh !  for  fifty  horses,  and  there  would  not  be  one  of  them  left '.  "  Then  came  a 
fearful  hurricane,  which  added  to  his  difficulties.  The  successor  of  Gen.  Enna  adopted  the 
policy  of  surrounding  the  patriots  and  starving  them  out.  Probably  4,000  men,  in  separate 
columns,  confronted  in  every  direction  the  100  and  odd  remaining.  Gen.  Lopez's  horse  was 
killed  for  food,  and  the  General  then  asked  his  men  to  seek  their  safety  and  leave  him  to  his 
fate.  Finally  he  left  them,  accompanied  by  one  faithful  friend.  Wounded  in  the  shoulder, 
faint  and  exhausted  from  fatigue  and  loss  of  blood,  he  wandered  about  until  at  last  he  was 
pursued  with  bloodhounds  and  captured  by  some  sixteen  Catalans.  He  surrendered,  exclaim- 
ing: "'Kill  me,  but  pardon  my  men  !  "  When  captured  he  had  scarcely  the  strength  to  stand 
erect.  He  was  taken  to  Bahia  Honda  and  kept  there  until  the  garrison  could  be  reinforced  by 
drawing  men  to  that  place. 

On  the  31st  he  was  taken  in  the  "  IMzarro  "  to  Havana  and  the  order  of  his  execution  issued. 
When  he  arrived  there  he  was  so  weak  that  he  could  scarcely  sit  up.  On  the  day  of  his  exe- 
cution a  large  military  force  was  drawn  up  and  all  the  cannons  of  the  fort  fully  manned  and 
directed  to  the  place  for  execution.  When  the  general  was  taken  from  the  steamer  and  placed 
on  shore,  to  the  surprise  of  his  guards,  he  stood  up  erect  and  marched  to  the  place  of  execution 
with  a  bold  and  manly  port.  His  demeanor  evinced  the  utmost  coolness,  manliness  and 
dignity. 

Just  before  his  death  he  made  a  short  address,  in  which  he  stated  that  his  intentions  looked 
to  the  advancement  and  happiness  of  the  people  of  Cuba ;  that  the  imputation  of  plunder  and 
piracy  was  a  calumny ;  that  he  had  meditated  no  greater  crime  than  that  of  seeking  to  secure  a 
free  institution  for  that  people,  and  he  was  willing  to  meet  his  fate.  Before,  however,  he  had 
concluded,  he  was  forced  into  the  garrote,  and  his  last  words,  which  were  uttered  in  a  loud 
tone,  were  :  "Adios,  Cuba  Querida  "—"  Adieu,  dear  Cuba." 

When  the  news  of  the  shooting  of  Crittenden  reached  New  Orleans  it  produced  the  wildest 
excitement.  A  meeting  called  to  denounce  the  outrage  wound  up  in  a  serious  riot,  and  the 
mob,  marching  through  the  principal  streets,  attacked  all  the  dagoes  (Spaniards)  that  coidd  be 
found,  and  wrecked  whatever  property  it  could  lay  its  hands  on,  the  principal  victims  being  the 
keepers  of  several  cigar  stores. 

The  shooting  of  Crittenden  and  Lopez  had  the  effect  of  destrojing  all  filibustering  enthusi- 
asm, and  with  their  death  died,  for  a  time  at  least,  the  idea  of  freeing  Cuba  by  means  of  a  mili 
tary  expedition  from  New  Orleans. 


200  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK^ 


CHAPTER  XXI.— FLATBOATING  DAYS. 

FLATBOATS  AND  KEELBOATS — THE  LONG  VOYAGE  DOWN  THE  RIVER — THE  SCUFFLES 
BETWEEN  THE  FLATBOATMEN  AND  THE  GENS  D'ARMES. 

The  river  commei'ce  of  the  older  days,  before  steamboats  were  invented,  and  when  all  the 
produce  of  the  Mississippi  Valley  came  to  New  Orleans  in  flatboats,  was  much  more  picturesque 
than  it  is  to-day,  and  just  as  profitable.  There  were  several  varieties  of  boats  in  use  then,  the 
flatboat,  just  what  it  is  now,  being  the  favorite. 

The  barge  was  of  the  size  of  an  Atlantic  schooner,  with  a  raised  and  outlandish  looking 
deck.  It  had  sails,  masts  and  rigging  not  unlike  a  isea  vessel,  and  carried  from  fifty  to  one 
hundred  tons.  It  required  twenty-five  or  thirty  hands  to  work  it  up  stream.  On  the  lower 
courses  of  the  Mississippi,  when  the  wind  did  not  serve,  and  the  waters  were  high,  it  was 
worked  up  stream  by  the  operation  that  is  called  "warping,"  a  most  laborious,  slow  and 
difficult  work  of  ascent,  and  in  which  six  or  eight  miles  a  day  was  good  progress.  It  consisted 
in  having  two  galleons,  the  one  in  advance  of  the  other,  carrying  out  a  warp  of  some 
hundred  yards  in  length,  making  it  fast  to  a  tree,  and  then  drawing  the  barge  up  to  that  tree  by  a 
warp.  When  that  warp  was  coiled,  the  galleon  in  advance  had  another  laid,  and  so  on  alternately. 
From  ninety  to  one  hundred  days  was  a  tolerable  passage  from  New  Orleans  to  Cincinnati.  In 
this  way  the  Intercourse  between  Pittsburgh,  Cincinnati,  Louisville,  Nashville  and  St.  Louis,  for 
the  more  important  purposes  of  commerce,  was  kept  up  with  New  Orleans.  One  need  only 
read  the  journal  of  a  barge  on  such  an  ascent  to  comprehend  the  full  value  of  the  intervention 
of  steamboats. 

The  keel  boat  was  of  a  long,  slender  and  elegant  form,  and  generally  carried  from  fifteen  to 
thirty  tons.  Its  advantage  lay  in  its  small  draft  of  water  and  the  lightness  of  its  construction. 
It  Is  still  used  on  the  Ohio  and  Upper  Mississippi  in  low  stages  of  water,  and  on  all  the  boatable 
streams  where  steamboats  do  not  yet  run.  Its  propelling  power  is  by  oars,  sails,  setting  poles, 
the  cordelle,  and  when  the  waters  are  high,  and  the  boats  run  on  the  margin  of  the  bushes, 
bushwhacking,  or  pulling  up  by  the  bushes.  Before  the  invention  of  steamboats,  these  boats 
were  used  in  the  proportion  of  six  to  one  at  the  present  time. 

The  ferryboat  was  a  scowboat,  and  when  used  as  a  boat  of  descent  for  families,  had  a  roof 
or  covering.  These  were  sometimes,  in  the  vernacular  phrase,  called  "  sleds."  The  Alleghany, 
or  Mackinaw  skiff,  was  a  covered  skiff,  carrying  from  six  to  ten  tons,  and  much  used  on  the 
Alleghany,  the  Illinois,  and  the  rivers  of  the  Upper  Mississippi  and  Missouri.  Pirogues  were 
sometimes  hollowed  from  one  very  large  tree,  or  from  the  trunks  of  two  trees,  united  and  fitted 
with  a  plank  rim.  They  carried  from  one  to  three  tons.  They  were  common  skiffs,  canoes  and 
dugouts  for  the  convenience  of  crossing  the  rivers  ;  and  a  select  company  of  a  few  travelers 
often  descended  in  them  to  New  Orleans.  Hunters  and  Indians,  and  sometimes  passengers, 
made  long  journeys  of  ascent  of  the  rivers  in  them.  Besides  these  were  a  number  of  anomalous 
water  crafts,  that  can  hardly  be  reduced  to  any  class,  used  as  boats  of  passage  or  descent ; 
such  as  flatboats  worked  by  a  wheel,  which  was  driven  by  cattle,  that  they  were  convejdng  to 
the  New  Orleans  market. 

There  were  horse-boats  of  various  constructions,  used  for  the  most  part  as  ferryboats,  but 
sometimes  as  boats  of  ascent.  Two  keel-boats  were  connected  by  a  platform.  A  pen  held  the 
horses,  which  by  circular  movement  propelled  the  wheels.  United  States  troops  frequently 
ascended  the  river  by  boats,  propelled  by  tread-wheels;  and  more  than  once  a  boat  moved 
rapidly  up  stream  by  wheels,  after  the  steamboat  construction,  propelled  by  a  man  turning  a 
crank. 


"^  GUIDfl    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  201 

But  tbe  boats  of  passage  and  conreyance  that  were  most  in  fashion  were  keel-boats 
and  flats.  The  flatboats  were  called  in  the  vernacular  phrase,  " Kentucky  flats  "  or  "broad 
horns."  They  were  simply  an  oblong  ark.  •v\'ith  a  roof  slightly  curved  to  shed  rain.  They  were 
generally  about  fifteen  feet  wide,  and  from  fifty  to  eighty,  and  sometimes  an  hundred  feet  i  ^ 
length.  The  timbers  of  the  bottom  were  massive  beams,  and  they  were  intended  te  be  of  great 
strength,  and  carry  a  burden  of  from  two  to  four  hundred  barrels.  Great  numbers  of  cattle, 
hogs  and  horses,  were  conveyed  to  market  in  them.  Family  boats  of  this  description,  fitted  up 
for  the  descent  of  famUies  to  the  lower  country,  were  fitted  with  a  stove,  comfortable 
apartment,  beds  and  arrangements  for  commodious  habitancy,  and  in  them,  ladies,  servants, 
cattle,  horses,  sheep,  dogs  and  poultry,  all  fioating  on  the  same  bottom,  and  on  the  roof,  the 
looms,  plows,  spinning-wheels,  and  domestic  implements  of  the  family,  were  carried  down  the 
river  to  New  Orleans. 

Along  the  river  front,  about  where  St.  Mary's  market  now  stands,  moored  to  posts  in  the 
levee,  were  hundreds  of  these  rude  craft,  lying  side  by  side,  so  that  one  could  walk  almost  a 
mile  on  their  curved  decks  without  going  ashore.  In  their  capacious  hulls  they  held  cargoes  of 
Western  products  from  Kentucky  and  other  river  States,  and  they  were  manned  by  a  class  of 
men  who  were  fearless  in  danger,  and  as  thoughtless  of  the  morrow  as  any  of  the  pioneers  who 
threaded  the  forests  of  the  West.  Strong,  courageous  and  full  of  vitality,  they  sought  to  get  out 
of  their  fare  what  there  was  in  it,  and  so,  when  their  journey  was  ended,  and  the  boats  tied  up 
in  New  Orleans,  they  made  the  upper  section  of  the  city  quite  as  lively  as  some  frontier  towns 
of  the  present  day. 

On  the  front  street,  where  the  flatboats  lay,  was  a  row  of  saloons  where  they  congregated, 
and  in  the  rear  of  these,  in  the  furthermost  end  of  the  room,  were  the  faro  and  roulette  tables. 
Gambling  was  then  not  prohibited  or  licensed,  and  there  was  no  attempt  to  conceal  it.  In  fact, 
from  the  sidewalk  one  could  hear  the  roulette  roller  calling  out:  "Twenty-eight  on  the  red," 
"  Eagle  bird  by  chance."  Up-stairs  were  boarding-houses  for  the  accommodation  of  this  float- 
ing population.  Away  back  on  Girod  street,  near  where  the  cemetery  now  is,  there  was  a  col- 
lection of  buildings  which,  from  the  low  situation,  was  known  as  "  The  Swamp."  This  was  a 
great  rendezvous  for  the  flatboatmen,  and  here  they  reigned  supreme,  the  city  police  never  car- 
ing to  invade  those  precincts.  The  double-acting  Colt  or  Tranter  were  then  unknown,  but  it 
seems  the  flint-lock  pistol  of  the  date  was  equally  efficacious  in  puttinp^  out  the  light  of  an  antag- 
onist, and  desperate  affrays  here  were  not  uncommon. 

The  men  usually  stayed  here  until  they  had  spent  or  gambled  the  result  of  their  tnp  away, 
and  then  left  for  home  by  land.  The  captains  or  owners  of  the  flatboats  were  of  the  more 
provident  sort,  but  the  hired  men  seldom  cared  to  save  their  money.  When  the  leathern  purse 
was  growing  light,  three  of  them  would  club  together  and  purchase  a  horse,  and  prepare  to  start 
on  their  long  journey  through  the  woods.  After  securing  transportation  across  Lake  Pont- 
chartrain,  one  would  mount  the  horse  and  ride  for  two  hours,  leaving  the  rest  trudging  on 
behind.  When  his  time  had  expired,  the  mounted  man  would  dismount,  tie  the  animal  to  a 
tree,  and  start  ahead  on  fc^t.  When  the  one  whose  turn  it  was  to  ride  second  came  along  to 
where  the  horse  was  tied,  he  would  take  him  and  push  along  for  his  two  hours,  leaving  him  for 
the  third  man.  Thus  the  journeys  were  made  in  this  "whip-saw"  fashion,  as  it  was  called. 
Through  Mississippi  and  Tennessee  the  trail  used  by  these  hardy  fellows  is  known  even  to-day, 
and  tales  of  some  of  the  wildest  of  these  men  are  still  told  along  the  route. 

Probably  no  one  was  better  known  either  on  the  river  or  on  the  trail  homewards  than  Bill 
Sedley,  one  of  the  curious  characters  of  these  times.  Standing  six  feet  two  inches  in  his  russet 
brogans,  with  shoulders  of  a  Hercules,  he  was  reported  to  be  the  most  skillful  man  with  a  sweep 
and  the  quickest  man  in  a  fight  of  anybody  visiting  that  select  neighborhood,  known  as  "  The 
Swamp."  "  His  heart  was  a  big  as  an  apple  bar'l,"  they  used  to  say ;  but  when  "  he  was  agen 
yer,"  look  out !  There  was  one  occasion  when  he  was  evidently  "agen  "  somebody,  for  even 
until  to-day  one  can  sometimes  hear  on  the  river  about  "the  Sedley  fight  of  '22." 


202  HISTORICAL   SKETCti    BOOK. 

Old  Mother  Colby,  a  dame  of  about  50  winters  and  200  pounds,  kept  a  boarding-house  and 
caravansary  in  "  The  Swamp,"  known  as  the  "  Sure  Enuf  Hotel,"  the  lower  floor  of  which  was 
occupied  as  a  saloon,  with  a  gambling-room  just  behind,  The  old  woman  was  a  great  favorite 
with  the  boys,  and  she  was  considerably  ahead  of  the  world  by  their  patronage.  She  rented  the 
saloon  to  two  Mexican  brothers  by  the  name  of  Contreras,  one  of  whom  dealt  faro,  whilst  the 
other  attended  the  bar. 

Whether  it  was  from  the  defeat  at  cards,  received  from  one  brother,  or  the  "  fire  juice" 
received  from  the  other  cannot  be  definitely  stated,  but  the  fact  remained  that  Bill  Sedley  walked 
out  of  the  bar-room  one  afternoon  as  savage  an  individual  as  could  be  found  in  "The  Swamp." 
"I  be  danged,"  said  he,  "  whether  I  know  if  it's  the  whiskey  or  I  seed  it  right,  but  I  am  a  yellow 
bantam  pullet  but  I  thought  I  saw  Rafe  Contreras  deal  a  keerd  from  his  sleeve." 

The  boys  standing  around  said  nothing,  and  drinks  were  called  for  again.  Whatever  may 
have  been  Sedley's  doubts  before,  this  additional  "cocktail,  stiff,  you  bet,"  which  he  ordered, 
settled  them,  and  with  a  loud  cry,  "  I'm  a  child  of  the  snapping-turtle,  and  raised  with  the  pain- 
ters," he  walked  in  the  back-room  where  Eafe  Contreras  was  about  starting  from  the  table  to 
go  to  dinner.    Some  high  words  followed,  and  a  pistol  shot  was  heard. 

The  crowd  rushed  into  the  street,  and  immediately  Juan  Contreras,  who  attended  bar, 
closed  and  barred  the  door,  shutting  on  the  inside  Bill  Sedley,  his  brother  and  himself. 

The  crowd  gathered  close  to  the  door  on  the  outside  to  listen.  Aleck  Masters,  a  short, 
thick-set  Kentuckian,  suggested  that  somebody  give  him  a  lift  on  the  back  fence,  as  he  wanted 
to  get  inside  to  see  fair  play.  But  nobody  paid  any  attention  to  him,  as  just  then  the  report  of  a 
pistol,  followed  by  another,  was  heard.  A  crash  of  glasses  in  the  bar  followed,  and  above 
everything  then,  "  I'm  a  child  of  the  snapping  turtle,  I  am."  Tables  were  being  thrown  around 
the  room,  chairs  broken,  and  a  pandemonium  of  sound  followed. 

In  a  few  minutes  the  excited  listeners  heard  some  one  taking  down  the  bar  to  the  front 
door,  and  soon  it  was  thrown  open. 

"Gentlemen,  walk  in;  it's  free  drinks  to-day.  The  American  eagle  has  lit  on  the  Alle- 
ghanies." 

There  stood  Bill  Sedley  covered  with  blood,  but  smiling.  His  left  hand  hung  powerless  at 
his  side  and  a  ruby  stream  ran  down  from  a  wound  near  the  temple.  His  shirt  was  cut  in 
several  places,  with  a  bloody  spot  to  each  cut. 

"Gentlemen,"  said  he,  "  the  proprietor  of  this  here  place  has  gone  on  a  journey,  and  left 
me  in  charge.    Help  yourselves,  and  drink  hearty," 

Behind  an  overturned  table  was  Juan  Contreras,  knife  in  hand,  in  death  agonies,  and  in  the 
back  room  Rafe  was  lying  on  the  fatal  faro  table,  a  bowie-knife  wound  in  his  left  breast  tell- 
ing the  tale. 

Sedley  was  hurried  over  the  lake,  and  he  was  soon  on  the  trail,  bound  for  Kentucky,  and 
though  he  never  returned,  it  is  said  he  lived  to  a  good  old  age. 


GUlDf  TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  20  . 


CHAPTER  XXII.— THE  GREEN  CLOTH. 

SPORTING    MEN    OF    "  AULD  LANG  SYNE  " — HIGH-TONED    GAMBLING— SALOONS    AND    THE 
FORTUNES  MADE   AND  LOST  IN  THEM. 

Until  about  the  year  1827  or  1828,  no  extensive  gambling  houses  had  been  opened  to  the 
public  in  New  Orleans,  and  any  gambling  whatever  before  that  period  was  on  a  small  scale  and 
very  private.  At  the  time  designated  by  the  above  dates,  the  first  two  establishments  were 
opened  by  John  Davis,  Sr.,  the  impresario  of  the  old  Opera  House,  on  Orleans  street,  and  the  first 
impresario  in  the  United  States.  One  of  these  gaming  resorts  was  at  the  corner  of  Orleans  and 
Bourbon  streets,  and  the  other  on  Bayou  St.  John,  The  latter  place  was  intended  more  espe- 
cially for  Saturday  night  and  Sunday  games,  which  were  favorite  days  at  that  period  for  such 
indulgences,  and  dinner  was  always  provided  for  the  Sunday  players.  The  Orleans  street 
branch  was  for  daily  or  nightly  operations.  At  this  place  arge  crowds  congregated,  the  games 
being  faro,  roulette,  and  vingt-et-un,  and  the  betting  heavy  At  these  public  games,  however, 
the  elite  and  notabilities  of  that  day  did  not  as  a  rule  participate  to  any  great  extent.  For 
these,  especial  and  private  rooms  were  set  apart  in  which  brag  nd  ecarte  were  played  almost 
exclusively.  Large,  very  large  sums,  were  won  or  lost  in  these  private  rooms,  and  the  game- 
sters were  business  and  professional  men,  who  kept  regular  memorandum  books,  in  which 
were  entered  their  dally  gains  or  losses. 

As  a  confirmation  of  these  facts,  years  after  the  occurrence,  one  of  the  players  at  this  resort, 
in  an  unguarded  moment,  related  that  he  lost  in  one  year  upwards  of  thirty  thousand  dol- 
lars at  ecarte ;  that  this  loss  was  covered  by  his  winning  at  brag,  which  had  exceeded  fifty 
thousand.  It  was  well  known  that  Colonel  Ghrymes,  the  most  distinguished  lawyer  and  advo- 
cate at  the  New  Orleans  bar,  not  excepting  Edward  Livingston,  notwithstanding  his  large 
professional  income,  never  accumulated  ;  but  on  the  contrary  was  frequently  in  an  open  impe- 
cunious condition,  although  living  in  no  extravagant  style.  This  abnormal  condition  in  so 
remarkable  a  man,  was  only  accounted  for  by  his  contemporaries  upon  the  hypothesis  of  heavy 
losses  at  Davis's,  while  the  rapid  accumulation  of  a  large  fortune  by  another  by  no  meai^ 
brilliant  professional  man  of  the  same  period,  within  a  career  of  less  than  ten  years,  and  while 
keeping  up  an  expensive  style  of  living,  was  attributed  to  his  enormous  gains.  This  success 
was  probably  achieved  by  the  same  shrewd  and  machiavellian  methods,  which,  added  to  the 
powerful  backing  of  a  patriarchal  family,  finally  and  in  the  face  of  bitterest  opposition,  won 
him  the  political  success  he  had  long  vainly  struggled  for. 

Davis  was  very  successful,  made  money  fast,  and  no  one  envied  his  success  and  good  fortune, 
for  with  the  money  thus  acquired  he  was  enabled  to  cater  to  the  musical  taste  and  to  the 
attractions  of  our  city  by  introducing  the  opera. 

True,  he  only  brought  out  at  first  such  operas  as  "La  Dame  Blanche,"  "Le  Cheval  de 
Bronze,"  "L'Eclair,"  "Lucie,"  "La  Favorite,"  "Le  Postilion  de  Lonjumeau,"  and  other 
light  gems ;  but  he  was  at  the  same  time  lajing  the  foundation  and  creating  the  resources 
which  were  thereafter  to  enable  his  brilliant  son,  John  Davis,  Jr.,  or  "  Toto  "  Davis  as  he  was 
famiharly  called,  to  bring  out  in  our  city,  and  in  advance  of  any  and  all  impresarios  in  America, 
the  chef  d'oeuvres  of  the  great  masters— such  operas  as  "Robert,"  the  "Huguenots,"  "Moise," 
"LaJuive,"  "Don  Giovanni,"  " Le  Prophete,"  "Trovatore,"  in  short,  the  entire  repertoire  up 
to  his  times.  This  John,  or  "  Toto  "  Davis,  was  one  of  the  most  talented  and  accomplished  men 
ever  in  Louisiana.  Apart  from  a  thorough  classical  education,  acquired  in  one  of  the  royal 
colleges  of  France,  he  had  also  gone  through  a  complete  course  of  musical  studies,  an  artistic 


204  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

training  which  was  of  great  service  to  him  in  the  selection  and  formation  of  his  opera  companies 
in  Europe. 

Davis's  success  in  his  gambling-room  ventures  soon  prompted  others  to  follow  in  his  foot- 
steps, and  by  1832  not  less  than  fourteen  large  gambling  establishments  had  sprung  into 
existence.  To  effect  this,  however,  legislative  sanction  was  required,  and  an  appeal  having 
been  made  to  the  Legislature,  an  act  was  passed  by  that  body  authorizing  the  opening  and 
running  of  gambling  houses  in  New  Orleans  upon  payment  by  each  to  the  State  of  an  annual 
license  of  $7,500.  Under  the  enabling  clause  of  this  law  the  fourteen  houses  above  referred  to 
went  into  operation.  These  were  owned  and  managed  by  the  following  named  parties  :  Hicks 
and  Hewlett  opened  at  the  corner  of  St.  Louis  and  Chartres  street ;  Duval,  on  Chartres,  between 
Conti  and  Bienville  ;  St.  Cyr,  on  Chartres,  between  St.  Louis  and  Conti ;  Toussaint,  on  Chartres, 
between  St.  Louis  and  Conti ;  Charton,  on  Canal,  between  Camp  and  St.  Charles ;  Elkin,  on 
Canal,  near  St.  Charles,  and  Pradat,  also  on  Canal,  corner  of  Camp,  in  the  building  at  present 
occupied  by  Moses  as  a  photograph  gallery.  The  remaining  seven  were  distributed  between  the 
two  old  municipalities,  the  First  and  Second. 

These  houses  were  public  in  the  full  sense  of  the  term,  open  to  all  by  day  and  by  night,  as 
similar  houses  have  been  under  more  recent  administrations;  and  they  were  rssorted  to  by  all 
classes,  but  more  especially  by  strangers  from  all  parts  of  the  world,  who  flocked  to  New 
Orleans  at  that  period,  as  if  to  an  El  Dorado,  in  quest  of  wealth  which  they  supposed  could 
be  grasped  without  effort,  and  which  only  required  the  pains  of  picking  up.  Those  were  lively 
times,  not  unlike  those  of  San  Francisco  in  1849  and  1850,  and  all  these  gamblers  and  gambling- 
houses  did  what  is  so  forcibly  expressed  by  the  term,  a  "land  office"  business  ;  but  in  1836  all 
these  institutions,  like  many  others  of  a  more  legitimate  character,  came  to  grief.  Their  end 
was  an  act  passed,  accelerated  by  the  repeal  of  the  Act  of  1832,  at  the  instigation  and  upon 
the  motion  of  Mr.  Larrimore,  Representative  of  the  parish  of  St.  Tammany.  As  a  matter  of 
course,  they  ceased  to  keep  open  houses,  in  compliance  with  the  legislative  mandate,  but  they 
continued  their  operations  in  a  clandestine  manner.  Out  of  the  whole  number  of  individuals 
engaged  in  the  gambling  business  as  far  back  as  1828,  and  of  those  who  owned  and  operated 
a  house  under  the  Act  of  1832,  there  still  lives  in  our  midst  one  old  man,  the  only  survivor  of 
the  thousands  who  witnessed  and  participated  in  those  exciting  times.  This  is  old  St.  Cyr, 
aged  eighty-six  years,  but  with  all  those  years,  still  possessed  of  health,  vigor  and  memory. 
This  same  octogenarian  was  also  a  member  of  Plauche's  celebrated  battalion,  which  distm- 
guished  itself  at  the  battle  of  the  8th  of  January,  and  won  the  applause  and  commendation  of 
General  Jackson. 

After  the  suppression  of  the  houses  under  the  law  of  1836,  and  in  consequence  of  the  great 
panic  wh  ^h  ensued,  and  the  consequent  scarcity  of  money,  the  business  did  not  flourish  as  it 
had  in  the  years  described,  and  continued  to  languish  until  1846.  With  the  breaking  out  of  the 
Mexican  war,  which  brought  thousands  of  soldiers  and  officers  to  our  city,  then  the  base  of 
operations  and  supplies,  and  the  great  California  mining  fever,  which  concentrated  tens  of 
thousands  of  emigrants  for  the  land  of  gold  in  our  midst,  another  bright  era  dawned  upon  the 
sporting  element.  Under  the  stimulating  effects  of  two  so  powerful  agencies  as  an  immense 
and  reckless  transient  population,  all  of  them  by  nature  and  temperament  bold  speculators, 
ready  to  stake  anything  or  everything  on  the  throw  of  the  dice,  and  the  plethora  of  money  pro- 
duced by  such  causes  it  will  not  be  wondered  at  that  the  gambling  furor  again  broke  out  in 
New  Orleans.  Gambling  houses  were  now  opened  in  all  directions,  all  over  the  city,  near  the 
St.  Mary's  Market,  near  the  steamship  landings,  near  the  hotels,  the  boarding  and  lodging 
houses,  wherever  returning  soldiers  or  emigrants  quartered  or  congregated.  At  that  time  certain 
houses  were  licensed  by  city  ordinance,  such  as  carried  on  the  games  of ' '  rondeau  "  and  "  loto ;' ' 
and  all  through  the  night,  from  "dusky  eve  to  early  morn,"  in  every  frequented  thoroughfare, 
could  be  heard  the  deep  and  sonorous  voice  of  the  game  keeper  as  he  called  time  and  game  at 
rondeau.    None  of  these  establishments,  nor  of  those  which  had  preceded  them,  assumed  any 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  205 

pretensions  to  luxury  or  elegance.  It  was  not  until  the  fifties,  that  elegantly-furnished  houses, 
where  sumptuous  dinners  and  suppers  were  supplied  to  visitors  and  patrons,  were  introduced 
in  New  Orleans  and  the  new  departure  was  first  brought  to  perfection  by  a  trio  comprising  three 
notable  men. 

McGrath,  Sherwood  and  Perritt  were  men  of  marked  individual  character,  with  strong  dis- 
tinctive personal  points,  and  all  of  them  self-made  men.  In  all  their  dealings  and  in  all  their 
intercourse  in  New  Orleans  or  elsewhere— and  these  were  not  confined  to  sporting  business 
and  sporting  circles,  but  extended  in  many  directions  and  embraced  many  sections  of  legit- 
imate trade— those  three  men  ever  enjoyed  a  name  and  reputation  for  fair  play,  for  strict 
honesty  and  integrity  in  all  transactions  of  whatever  nature.  Price  McGrath,  one  of  tne  part- 
ners, upon  the  breaking  out  of  the  war  between  the  States,  closed  up  his  establishment  and 
went  North,  but  finally  settled  down  in  Kentucky,  established  a  stock  farm,  and  turning  his 
attention  to  racmg  and  blooded  stock,  became  one  of  the  most  successful  turfmen  of  latter 
days,  and  the  owner  of  many  winners,  among  them  the  famous  Tom  Bowling.  McGrath  died 
some  years  ago  on  his  farm  in  his  native  State,  Kentucky. 

Henrj^  Perritt,  one  of  the  trio,  in  his  pride  and  devotion  to  his  adopted  State,  and  for  the 
South,  at  his  own  expense  organized,  equipped,  and  sent  to  the  battlefields  of  Virginia  one  of 
thefi:estmilitary  commands  which  set  out  from  New  Orleans  in  1861,  known  as  the  "Perritt 
Grttards." 

The  firm  of  McGrath  &  Company  had  established  itself  at  No.  4  Carondelet  street,  after- 
ward the  domicile  of  the  "  Boston  Club,"  which  they  had  purchased  and  fitted  up  at  a  cost  of 
nearly  seventy  thousand  dollars.  This  establishment  was  patronized  and  visited  by  leading  men 
not  only  of  this  State  and  city,  but  by  prominent  men  of  the  West  and  North,  and  especially 
was  it  the  headquarters  of  all  Southern  and  Western  turfmen.  All  the  pools  on  the  races  of  the 
period,  and  particularly  those  on  the  races  of  the  grand  Old  Metairie,  were  sold  at  McGrath 's  ; 
and  on  these  occasions  the  house,  thronged  with  merchants,  planters,  lawyers,  looked  more  like 
a  club,  or  an  exchange,  than  a  gambling-house.  It  would  be  superfluous,  with  such  patronage  and 
so  much  popularity,  to  speak  of  Its  success.  It  coined  money,  and  no  one  begrudged  this  well- 
deserved  success. 

James  Sherwood  was  bom  in  North  Carolina,  of  a  poor  but  respectable  family,  and  enjoyed 
few  opportunities  of  early  education  ;  but  gifted  with  lively  mental  qualities,  those  of  imagina- 
tion, imitation  and  observation,  he  contrived  most  successfully  in  after  life  to  overcome  the 
disadvantages  and  deficiencies  of  his  youth.  In  h^s  composition,  egotism  and  selfishness  found 
no  lodging  place.  He  had  drifted  unconsciously  into  this  line  of  life,  though  born  with  tastes, 
inclinations  and  abilities,  which  in  the  sphere  for  which  nature  had  fitted  him,  would  have 
placed  him  on  the  highest  pinnacle.  Had  Sherwood  gone  upon  the  stage  and  devoted  himself 
to  the  study  of  comedy,  he  must  have  ranked  with  George  Holland,  the  Placides,  Chippendale, 
and  Owens.  As  a  rff«?nfe2/r  he  had  few  equals,  and  columns  could  be  filled  In  reproducing  the 
amusing  stories  aid  anecdotes  with  which  he  kept  his  friends  or  listeners  in  a  perpetual  state  of 
merriment.  So  great  was  his  enjoyment  of  social  pleasures  that  he  often  invited  friends  and 
acquaintances  to  his  palatial  parlors  %\ith  the  express  understanding  that  no  game  should  be 
played,  entertaining  them  with  a  sumptuous  feast,  at  which  the  wit  was  as  sparkling  as  the 
wine. 

It  was  in  the  beginning  of  the  late  war,  and  during  the  early  stages  of  that  conflict,  that  he 
fairly  exhibited  the  shining  quaUties  of  his  loyal  and  generous  nature.  Ill  health  and  a  delicate 
constitution  not  permitting  him  to  undergo  the  fatigues  and  hardships  of  camp  and  military 
life,  he  more  than  compensated  for  this  exemption  by  aiding  several  organizations  of  New 
Orleans,  supplying  them  with  money,  clothing  and  equipments.  Nor  did  his  good  and  loyal 
deeds  stop  there,  for  he  contributed  generously  to  the  families  of  those  who  remained  at  home. 

At  the  same  period  that  the  popular  house  of  Sherwood  &  McGrath  flourished,  there  were 
several  other  large  and  elegantly  appointed  gaming  houses  which  attempted  to  compete  with  it 


20(5  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

for  popularity.  One  of  these  was  owned  and  conducted  by  Lauraine  and  Cassidy.  They,  u 
doubt  were  very  popular,  and  secured  some  share  of  success,  as  they  had  made  their  establi- 
ment  very  attractive  by  profuse  liberality  in  their  entertamments.  Their  supper  service  wa.s  .„ 
massive  embossed  silver,  and  formed  a  feature  of  the  house.  At  this  establishment  it  was  that 
a  prominent  Greek  merchant,  the  representative  of  a  large  Greek  commercial  firm  having 
branches  in  all  the  large  commercial  cities  of  Europe  and  America,  lost  very  large  sums,  which 
embarrassed  his  firm  and  led  to  his  recaU  from  the  city.  The  loss  at  one  nighrs  Play  was 
reported  at  the  time  to  have  been  eighty  thousand  dollars.  This  establishment,  hke  that  of 
McGrath,  closed  its  doors  in  1861.  ,      ^.  ^  .     •, 

One  of  the  partners,  Charles  Cassidy,  who  went  to  New  York,  where  he  died,  was  a  facile 
and  entertaining  writer,  particularly  on  racing  and  turf  matters.  For  awhile  he  was  corre- 
spondent of  the  Spirit  of  the  Times,  reporting  to  that  valuable  sporting  journal  the  spring  and 
fall  races  at  New  Orleans,  under  the  «or/i  (Z^iJ^wme  of  "  Larkin." 

Augustus  Lauraine.  his  partner,  also  left  New  Orleans  in  1861,  and,  after  swingmg  all  around 
the  country,  finally  settled  in  the  flourishing  city  of  Dallas,  Texas.  There,  however,  he  feU  from 
grace  in  the  estimation  of  his  brother  professionals  in  New  Orleans  on  account  of  certain  infrac- 
tions of  their  rules.  It  must  be  understood  that  among  these  sporting  men  there  exists  a  code  as 
ri-id  and  exacting  as  any  enforced  on  any  exchange  and  stock  board.  A  debt  between  one  and 
another  is  a  sacred  obligation-one  which  is  never  proscribed  and  never  sued  upon.  If  loss  and 
mi-^fortune  befall  any  of  them,  they  are  ever  ready  to  assist  the  unfortunate  and  contribute  to 
hlssupport  They  never  oppress  with  lawsuits,  but  at  the  same  time  they  do  require  and  exact 
by  their  code  that  if  one  retrieves  his  fortunes  he  shall  come  up  like  a  man  and  take  up  his  old 
obligations.  This,  it  is  claimed,  Lauraine  has  not  done,  and  that  he  has  failed  m  gratitude, 
espe'cially  to  one,  a  veteran  of  the  fraternity  in  this  city,  the  man  and  brother  who  had  started 
and  staked  him  in  his  first  ventures  in  New  Orleans.  ^ 

A  number  of  other  establishments  existed,  among  them  that  kept  by  Sam  Levy  and  Count 
Lorenzo  Lewis,  called  count,  on  account  of  his  urbane  and  polite  manners  and  faultless 
dressing  Then  Montiro,  game  and  plucky  little  Montiro,  who  was  located  on  Canal  street,  near 
Eyrich's.  He  followed  our  boys  to  Virginia,  opened  a  house  in  Eichmond,  where  he  received 
fed  and  succored  many  a  sick  and  wounded  New  Orleans  soldier.  Who  of  the  ojd  ones  will 
forget  the  episode  of  Montiro's  wounding  and  checking  the  boldest  and  most  daring  burglar 
ever  in  New  Orleans,  the  notorious  Charles  Alexander  Gordon  ? 

There  was  also  a  quaint  establishment  at  M  corner  of  Toulouse  and  Chartres  streets,  kept 
by  a  Frenchman,  with  the  Roman  name  of  Curtias.  called  by  courtesy  a  club,  which  is  worthy  of 
description  on  account  of  those  who  frequented  the  place,  and  were  considered  babitues,  or 
members.  It  was  a  hightoned  place.  There  was  no  initiation  fee,  but  every  player  paid  fifty 
cents  an  hour.  This  entitled  him  to  refreshments  free  of  cost,  and  also  to  a  solid,  substantial 
and  well  cooked  dinner,  with  claret  ad  libitum.  The  games  played  were  Boston  poker,  and 
che.s  There  was  a  limit  to  the  betting  at  poker,  not  more  than  $100  being  allowed  as  a  bet  on 
one  single  hand.  It  was  not  public,  and  a  formal  introduction  by  an  old  member  and  mdorse- 
ment  of  character  were  required  before  admission.  .,  ^^^ 

There  were  also,  in  olden  times,  a  class  of  traveling  gamblers,  who  .lourneyed  up  and  down 
our  western  rivers,  among  whom  there  were  characters  worthy  of  a  pen  picture. 

It  was  during  the  winter  of  1850,  that  New  Orleans  was  honored  by  the  visit  of  a  trio  of 
titled  and  peripatetic  gamblers,  who  might  with  more  propriety,  be  called  adventurers  and 
mpostors.  'Thetr  names  were  the  Duke  de  Calabritto,  an  Italian,  and  the  Counts  de  Biennene 
and  de  Frienge,  both  Hungarians,  hailing  from  Pesth,  who  fleeced  the  whole  town,  especially 
the  Jeunesse  dorie,  very  thoroughly. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  207 


CHAPTER  XXIIL— EXECUTIONS. 

WHY    HANGINGS    ARE    PRIVATE    IN    NEW     ORLEANS-HORRORS     OF     THE     EARLY     PUBLIC 
HANGINGS— MUMFORD's   FATE. 

In  former  years  all  or  nearly  all  executions  were  public ;  but  the  last  one  was  that  of  Delisle 
and  Adams,  the  former  a  Creole  and  tbe  latter  a  Frenchman,  who  were  convicted  of  raurderinff 
a  woman  in  what  is  now  known  as  the  Third  district.  They  saw  the  woman  secrete  a  bag  con- 
tammg  what  they  thought  was  specie,  and  they  killed  her  to  obtain  possession  of  it  when  to 
.heir  consternation,  the  bag  was  found  to  contain  pecans.  The  circumstances  surrounding 
Iv^nTth  ul"","  '"^  ^^''^j?^'  ''^^^  ^  "°^  ^^'  imminent.  It  is  said  that  they  appeared-  -to  the 
.yes  ofthe  multitude  assembled  m  the  neutral  ground  on  Orleans  street-on  the  small  gall-rv 

rfpnTf  wt^hT''  *^',  ^^^^^."l  ''''''"^  ^"'"^^'^  *^^  ^"^^  buildings,  the  male  and  female  depart- 
nents,  which  form  the  Parish  Prison. 

Delisle  was  violent  and  demonstrative,  ^^hilst  Adams  was  subdued  and  quiet,  and  wished  to 
)recipitate  matters.  The  ropes  were  adjusted  around  their  necks,  Delisle  expostulating  loudly 
.1  tne  time.  The  weather  was  dark  and  gloomy,  a  sombre  cloud  overspread  the  face  of  the 
.lue  sky,  angry  flashes  of  lightning  lit  up  the  scene  with  short  lurid  darts  of  flame,  followed  by 
he  dull,  rolling  noise  of  thunder  in  the,  distance. 

The  trap  fell,  and  at  the  same  instant  a  blinding  flash  of  lightning,  almost  instantaneously 
Dllowed  by  a  loud  clap  of  thunder,  almost  frightened  the  people  into  spasms.  The  rain  poured 
own  m  torrents,  drenching  all.  Many  fled  the  terrible  scene,  rendered  doubly  terrible  by  the 
mmous  appearance  of  the  heavens.  When  the  fear,  which  was  only  momentary  with  most  of 
lose  present,  had  somewhat  subsided,  the  ropes  were  seen  dangling  and  swaying  loosely  in  the 
ind,  for  there  was  nothing  at  the  lower  end. 

On  the  flagging  beneath  the  gaUows  two  forms  were  seen  lying  on  the  pavement;  they  were 
le  bodies  of  Delisle  and  Adams.  The  former  started  to  crawl  away  on  hands  and  feet,  and  the 
tter  lay  moaning  with  pain.    His  arm  was  broken.    Pity  for  the  two  men  became  predominant 

the  hearts  of  the  multitude;  but  the  law  was  inexorable,  and  its  servants  were  compelled  to 
jrtorm  their  horrible  duty.  The  two  men  were  picked  up  and  conducted  back  to  their  former 
>sitions  on  the  scaffold,  despite  the  torrents  of  rain  which  fell;  and  in  defiance  of  what  seemed 

the  terror-stncken  people  to  be  an  intervention  of  Providence,  they  were  hung 

The  police  force  at  that  time  was  under  the  command  of  Steve  O'Leary,  and  he  with  a 
hich  ensued  ^^"^  ^''''^^®^  °^®"  ^^^  great  difficulty  in  quieting  the  mob  during  the  confusion 

This  execution  was  viewed  with  so  much  abhorrence  and  indignation  throughout  the  city 
at  the  Legislature  at  its  next  session  passed  a  law  prohibiting  public  executions. 

Up  to  this  time  hangman's  or  execution  day  was  a  gala  day;  for  the  morbid  curiosity  so 
mmon  to  human  nature  then  had  an  opportunity  for  gratification,  and  there  were  but  few 
rsons  who  remained  at  home. 

Many  persons  are  yet  living  in  this  city  who  remember  when  the  condemned  criminals 
^re  conducted  under  strong  military  escort  to  the  Place  d'Armes,  or  Congo  square,  the  corner 
Orleans  and  Rampart  street,  or  the  neutral  ground  in  front  of  the  Parish  Prison  In  1843  or 
sreabouts.  a  man  was  executed  somewhere  in  the  vicinity  of  Dryades  and  Felicity  streets 
an  known  as  Gormley's  Pond.  His  crime  was  the  attempted  assassination  of  Recorder  Baldwin 

A  number  of  instances  where  condemned  criminals  sought  to  cheat  the  hangman  by  suicide 
n  be  cited.    One  was  the  case  of  a  German  who  had  murdered  a  child,  and  who  sought  to  cut 


208  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

his  throat  with  a  piece  of  tin-plate  or  spoon ;  but  the  most  notable  and  successful  attempt  wa 
that  of  a  man  named  Costello.  He  and  a  man  named  Pat  Kennedy,  both  convicted  of  murdei 
were  doomed  to  die  on  the  same  day.  Kennedy  had  been  respited  on  a  previous  occasiou 
although  fully  prepared  then  to  meet  his  doom.  When  Costello  was  sentenced  his  execution 
was  fixed  for  the  same  day.  Several  days  previous  to  that  fixed  for  the  execution,  the  elothe 
which  were  to  be  worn  by  the  condemned  men  were  brought  to  them.  In  the  cuff  of  Costello' 
shirt  was  concealed  a  small  package  of  strychnine. 

On  the  morning  of  the  execution  Costello  said  to  Kennedy:  "Are  you  going  to  let  tha 
howling  crowd  see  you  dance  on  nothing  ?" 

Kennedy  did  not  answer  ;  whereupon  Costello  tore  open  the  wristband  of  his  shirt  and  pre 
duced  a  package  containing  the  poison.  Facing  Kennedy  he  said  :  "Here  you  can  have  half  c 
this ;  there  is  enough  for  two." 

Kennedy  asked  him  what  he  was  going  to  do,  when  Costello  opened  his  mouth  ani 
dropped  the  contents  of  the  package  on  his  tongue  and  swallowed  it.  Kennedy  gave  th 
alarm,  but  too  late,  for  half  an  hour  afterwards  Costello  was  in  convulsions  and  beyon 
the  reach  of  human  skill  or  science.  Kennedy  died  quietly,  confident  that  his  sins  had  bee 
forgiven. 

During  what  is  now  called  Know-]Slothing  times.  Antoine  Cambre,  who  was  under  sei 
tence  of  death,  suicided  by  poison  in  the  condemned  cell.  He  had  been  convicted  of  murdei 
having  wantonly  shot  and  killed  a  lamplighter,  who  was  in  the  act  of  extinguishing  a  lamp  on 
morning  in  the  Third  district. 

On  June  the  16th,  1858,  the  first  private  execution  under  the  law  of  the  Legislature  too 
place  in  the  criminal  yard  of  the  Parish  Prison,  and  James  Nolan,  a  young  man  of  22  years,  wa ; 
launched  into  eternity  from  the  same  trap-door,  which  up  to  the  present  day  has  performed  it 
ghastly  offices,  and  which  has  ever  since  been  brought  into  requisition. 

On  March  the  8th,  1869,  a  triple  execution  took  place  and  Joseph  Lindsey,  Peter  Smith  am 
Henry  Haus  paid  the  penalty  for  the  crime  of  murder  at  one  and  the  same  time.  Lindsey  wa 
a  young  boarding-house  runner,  who  killed  a  mate  in  a  diflficulty  on  shipboard,  Henry  Haus  ; 
German,  who  killed  a  fellow-prisoner  in  the  lock-up,  and  Peter  Smith,  a  backsliding  minister  o 
the  gospel,  who  murdered  his  mistress  and  threw  her  body  into  a  well. 

On  July  29,  1859,  James  MuUen  expiated  the  crime  of  murder  on  the  gallows.  For  weeks 
previously  Mullen  used  his  coffin  to  sleep  in.  He  passed  his  time  in  decorating  this,  his  las 
home ;  and  on  the  day  of  execution  had  it  ornamented  with  fringe,  metallic  crosses  and  othei 
trimmings.  I 

On  May  7, 1862,  W.  B.  Mumford  was  executed  in  front  of  the  United  States  Mint  oi 
Esplanade  street,  charged  with  tearing  down  the  Federal  flag  from  that  building.  The  trail 
door  was  built  out  in  front  of  the  middle  of  the  landing  at  the  head  of  the  double  flight  o.j 
stairs  leading  up  on  each  side.  A  strong  military  escort,  both  cavalry  and  infantry,  wa 
present,  and  kept  the  large  crowd  back  from  the  fence.  Mumford  died,  apparently  withou- 
a  struggle.  The  next  execution  was  also  a  public  one,  and  was  carried  into  effect  on  the  levee 
between  the  Reading  and  Vicksburg  Cotton  Presses.  The  victim  in  this  case  was  a  soldiei 
named  Francis  T.  Scott,  who  foully  murdered  Major  Pullen,  of  the  28th  Maine  Regiment 
Father  Diiffo  ministered  to  his  spiritual  wants,  and  was  with  him  at  the  last  moment.  Scoti 
was  shot  to  death. 

In  the  spring  of  1866  a  negro  named  Polydor  was  hung  for  rape  in  the  Parish  Prison, 

In  1870  a  Malay  named  Bazar  was  on  the  scaffold,  the  rope  was  around  his  neck,  the  bla(A 
cap  had  been  dra^\Ti  down  over  his  eyes.  The  executioner  stood  in  cell  No.  9  arrayed  in  his 
black  domino,  with  his  face  covered  by  the  sombre-hued  mask.  The  nervous  fingers  of  the 
hangman  had  already  grasped  the  handle  of  the  keen-edged  axe,  the  arm  was  uplifted  and 
about  to  fall,  when  a  commutation  of  sentence  stayed  proceedings,  and  Bazar's  sentence  was 
commuted  to  imprisonment  for  life. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  20S 

Another  case  where  a  reprieve  was  granted  at  the  last  moment,  almost,  was  that  of  six 
Confederate  soldiers:  Abraham  McLane,  Daniel  Doyle,  Edward  C.  Smith,  Patrick  Kane 
George  L.  Williams  and  WiUiam  Stanley.  They  had  been  captured  at  Fort  Jackson  by  the 
Federal  troops  and  paroled,  and  afterward  endeavored  to  organize  a  company  of  Confederates 
m  the  city,  called  the  Monroe  Life  Guard,  armed  and  equipped  to  force  their  way  through  the 
mes.  They  were  sentenced  to  be  shot  on  the  4th  of  June,  1862,  by  Gen.  Butler,  but  their  sen- 
tence was  commuted  to  imprisonment  on  Ship  Island. 

Pedro  Alriel  and  Vincent  Bayonne  died  cursmg  the  persons  who  had  assembled  to  witness 
,  execution.  They  were  Spaniards,  and  proudly  proclahned  their  nationality  ere  the  fatal 
loor  fell  from  under  them.    They  were  executed  for  nmrder  on  the  13th  of  May,  1871 

Six  years  elapsed  ere  the  trap  door  was  once  more  swung  on  its  hinges,  and  on  the  15th  of 
rune,  1877  George  Norris,  Adrian  Eveque  and  Joaquino  Florenza,  a  Chinese  or  Malay,  were 
.xecuted  for  murder  at  one  and  the  same  time.  The  few  executions  since  the  date  given  do  not 
)0ssess  any.special  dramatic  interest. 


210  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXIV.— THE  CARNIVAL— MARDI  GRAS. 

HOW  IT  IS   CELEBRATED    IN    NEW    ORLEANS — THE    PROCESSIONS    AND    PARADES   OF  FORMJ 
DAYS — ORGANIZATION    OF    THE   CARNIVAL    SECRET    SOCIETIES. 

'Tis  known— at  least  it  should  be— that  throughout 

All  countries  of  the  Catholic  persuasion, 

For,  some  say,  ere  Shrove-Tuesday  comes  about, 

The  people  take  their  fill  of  recreation. 

With  fiddling,  revels,  feasting,  fun  and  masking. 

And  other  things  *  *  *  * 

—Byron's  Beppo. 

One  of  the  most  graphic  papers  of  the  celebrated  Parisian  critic  and  newspaper  writ 
Jules  Janiu,  is  an  article  published  many  years  ago,  entitled  "  Le  Carnaval."  Combining  v^ 
erudition,  philosophy  and  social  ethics,  the  sketch,  graced  with  all  the  fascinations  of  t" 
inimitable  feuilletoniste'' s  style,  would  be  as  truthful  and  readable  now  as  it  was  when,  soi 
forty  years  ago,  it  presented  a  dazzling  kaleidoscope  of  the  Mardi  Gras  celebration  in  Paris, 
the  height  of  that  city's  splendor  and  gayety,  in  Louis  Philippe's  time. 

■  Those  were  the  days,  too,  of  the  prosperity  of  Louisiana,  when  her  wealthy  planters  a 
merchants,  descendants  of  the  adventurous  Frenchmen  who  colonized  the  delta  of  t 
Mississippi,  looked  to  the  motherland  for  their  fashions,  their  amusements  and  their  literatui 
and  sent  scores  of  their  sons  to  Paris  to  complete  their  education.  These  young  Creo. 
returned  home  with  Parisian  ideas  and  tastes  so  engrained  in  them  that  is  was  natural  thp 
should  seek  to  transplant  to  New  Orleans  the  theatrical,  operatic,  terpsichorean  and  otB 
amusements  of  the  great  metropolis  on  the  Seine. 

It  was  in  1827,  sometime  before  the  elder  Davis  opened  the  old  Orleans  Theatre  Ball-roo: 
that  a  number  of  young  Creole  gentlemen,  some  of  them  just  returned  from  finishing 
Parisian  education,  organized  the  first  grand  street  procession  of  masqueraders  in  New  Orleai 
One  more  splendid  still,  and  still  larger  in  numbers,  took  place  on  the  Mardi  Gras  of  1837 ;  ai 
another,  still  more  brilliant,  in  1839. 

The  French  side  of  the  Bee,  of  Tuesday,  13th  February,  1839,  had  a  very  gay  and  wit 
article  on  the  day's  celebration,  written  by  one  of  its  assistant  editors,  Hans  Boussuge, 
talented  young  Frenchman,  a  new-comer  from  Paris,  who  died  a  year  or  two  after,  of  yellc 
fever.    This  article  concludes  thus  : 

"  The  persons  who  are  to  take  part  in  the  mascarade  are  requested  to  meet  at  the  Theal 
d'Orleans,  at  3J^  o'clock  p.  m.,  at  the  latest. 

ORDEB  OF  MARCH. 

From  the  Theatre  d'Orleans,  Eoyal  street,  St.  Charles,  Julia,  Camp,  Chartres,  Conde,  Esp. 
nade,  Koyal." 

We  very  well  remember  the  appearance  of  this  long  and  brilliant  cavalcade  as  it  passed 
St.  Charles  street,  near  Lafayette  square,  one  of  the  most  conspicuous  figures  being  an  immen 
chicken  cock,  six  feet  high,  who  rode  in  a  vehicle  and  whose  stentorian  crow,  as  he  flapped  1 
big  wings,  elicited  cheers  of  admiration  and  applause  from  the  crowds  on  the  sidewalks.  A  d 
tinguished  physician,  then  quite  a  young  man,  it  was  understood,  bore  this  admirably  render 
disguise. 

A  grand  mask  and  fancy  dress  ball  in  the  old  St.  Louis  Hotel  Ball-room,  and  one  in  the  Sa' 
d'Orleans  (next  to  the  theatre)  wound  up  the  famous  Mardi  Gras  of  1839. 


GUIDE  TO  NEW  ORLEANS.  211 

from  1840  to  1845,  several  of  these  brilliant  day  displays  took  place.  They  were  in  the  hands 
of  gentlemen  representing  all  the  respectable  element  of  the  city's  heterogeneous  population,  and 
were  conducted  in  the  same  thorough  style,  and  with  the  same  taste  and  liberal  expenditure 
that  have  made  the  later  displays  of  the  Mistick  Krewe,  the  Twelfth  Xight  Revelers,  and  the 
Knights  of  Momus  memoratle  gala  nights  in  the  history  of  Xew  Orleans. 

The  lapse  of  years  and  changes  of  fortune  brought  many  changes,  also,  in  the  social 
characteristics  of  New  Orleans  ;  and  the  day  celebration  of  Mardi  Gras  lapsed  into  oblivion. 
The  last,  most  brilliant  and  most  successful  of  all,  delighted  and  amused  the  town,  after  several 
years'  quiescence  and  neglect,  on  the  Mardi  Gras  of  1852. 

A  number  of  New  Orleans'  first  young  men  determined  to  get  up  a  procession,  on  the 
occasion  alluded  to,  that  would  equal  in  numbers,  in  order,  variety,  elegance  and  piquancy  of 
costumes,  any  that  the  chronicles  of  Mardi  Gras  in  this  country  could  record.  The  announce- 
ment of  this  intention,  through  the  press,  excited  universal  curiosity  ;  and  when  the  memorable 
day  came,  New  Orleans  boasted  of  an  accession  to  her  population,  in  the  shape  of  visitors  from 
the  North,  West  and  South,  that  has  not  been  surpassed  since. 

The  procession  traversed  the  leading  streets  of  the  city,  which  were  positively  jammed  with 
admiring  throngs,  and  at  night  the  old  Orleans  Theatre  was  the  center  of  attraction  for  all  that 
the  Crescent  City  held  of  beauty  and  fashion.  The  maskers  of  the  day  there  received  their 
friends ;  and  that  bewildering  ball  was  long  remembered  as  the  gem  of  many  such  jewels 
clustering  in  the  diadem  of  the  Queen  of  the  South. 

In  these  days,however,  the  celebration  of  Mardi  Gras  was  confined  mainly  to  a  number  of  mask- 
ers who  walked  or  rode  around  the  streets.  It  was  a  great  day  with  the  boys,  also,  who,  clothed  in 
old  dominoes  and  masks,  with  a  stout  hickory  club  in  their  hands  and  a  bag  of  flour  by  their 
sides,  would  march  around  the  streets,  looking  for  an  available  victim  on  whom  they  could  throw 
their  flour,  and  whom,  if  they  resisted,  they  would  punishlvith  their  shillelaghs.  Some  of  the  wilder 
boys,  conceived,  however,  the  idea  of  substituting  lime  for  flour,  and  as  this  on  more  than  one 
occasion  came  very  near  producing  blindness,  the  police  had  to  step  in  and  arrest  the  boys.  This 
iurveillance  was  kept  up  for  several  years,  until  both  the  flour  and  the  lime  disappeared.  The 
lour  throwing  was  evidently  a  relic  of  the  Roman  habit  of  throwing  little  confetti  made  of  paste 
Dr  plaster  at  maskers. 

But,  although  for  many  years  Mardi  Gras  was  celebrated  by  the  appearance  of  many  maskers 
3n  the  streets,  there  was  no  attempt  at  a  general  procession  or  celebration  such  as  we  have 
x)-day. 

Mobile  first  inaugurated  the  idea  of  presenting  scenes  on  floats  moving  around  the  streets, 
;he  Cowbellions  of  that  city  having  had  a  parade  as  early  as  1831.  The  first  entertainment  of  this 
iind  in  New  Orleans  was  given  in  1857.  The  affair  had  been  well  worked  up,  and  there  was  so 
nuch  secrecy  about  it  that  not  even  the  wives  of  those  who  were  engaged  in  it  knew  aught  of  it. 
ill  that  the  public  was  aware  of  was  that  an  organization,  known  as  the  Mistick  Krewe,  would 
ippear  on  the  streets  at  night,  representing  various  tableaux.  The  consequence  was  that  the 
streets  were  crowded  with  people,  who  welcomed  this  display  with  shouts  of  applause.  Its 
jomplete  success  was  assured,  and  as  a  consequence  the  Mistick  Krewe  has  not  since  ceased  to 
3arade  on  Mardi  Gras  except  when  war  or  pestilence  forbade. 

The  following  is  a  description  of  first  appearance  of  the  Mistick  Krewe  procession  on  our 
streets,  from  a  paper  of  that  date: 

This  Krewe,  concerning  whose  identity  and  purposes  there  had  been  such  tortures  of 
curiosity  and  speculation,  made  their  dibict  before  the  public  in  a  very  unique  and  attractive 
Banner.  They  went  through  the  streets  at  nine  o'clock  with  torchligiits,  in  a  guise  as  much 
•esembling  a  deputation  from  the  lower  regions  as  the  mind  could  possibly  conceive.  The 
nasks  displayed  every  fantastic  idea  of  the  fearful  and  horrible,  their  effect  being,  however, 
ioftened  down  by  the  richness  and  beauty  of  the  costumes,  and  the  evident  decorum  of  the 
ievils  insida 


212  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

After  going  through  the  principal  streets,  and  calling  upon  Mayor  Waterman  for  the 
purpose,  we  suppose,  of  obtaining  a  license  to  "  raise  the  supernatural "  in  the  Gaiety  Theatre, 
they  proceeded  to  that  elegant  establishment  in  order  to  entertain  the  hosts  of  guests  they  had 
summoned. 

The  interior  of  the  theatre  was  decorated  with  a  profusion  of  hanging  wreaths  and  festoons 
of  flowers.  In  a  short  time  after  the  doors  were  thrown  open,  aU  the  space  inside,  apart  from 
the  floor  and  stage,  was  jammed  with  an  audience  composed  of  the  elite  of  Louisiana  and  the 
adjacent  States— none  being  in  mask  but  the  Krewe. 

In  due  time  the  Mistick  Krewe  appeared  on  the  stage  in  the  full  glare  of  the  lights.  If  we 
may  so  speak,  they  were  beautiful  in  their  ugliness-charming  in  their  repuls.veness.  There 
were  upwards  of  a  hundred  of  them,  and  no  two  alike,  whilst  all  were  grotesque  to  the  last 
degree.  They  represented  the  different  characters  with  which  religion,  myth  > logy  and  poesy 
have  peopled  the  Infernal  Regions,  and  which  Milton  has  aggregated  in  his  "Paradise  Lost." 

Four  tableaux  were  given.  The  first  represented  Tartarus,  the  second,  the  Expulsion,  the 
third,  the  Conference  of  Satan  and  Beelzebub,  and  the  fourth,  and  last,  the  Pandemonium. 

At  the  conclusion  of  the  tableaux,  the  barriers  were  removed,  and  the  brilliant  audience 
crowded  upon  the  dancing  floor.  The  Mistick  Krewe  having  disbanded,  dispersed  among  the 
crowd  and  joined  in  the  dance  in  a  manner  which  showed  them  to  be  very  gentlemanly  and 
agreeable  devils. 

Since  then  the  other  processions  have  followed  in  this  order : 

1858— MYTHOLOGY. 

First  came  Comus  leading  the  Krewe  ;  following  him  came  Momus  ;  then  Taurus,  in  a  car 
attended  by  the  Four  Seasons  ;  Flora,  Goddess  of  Flowers,  in  a  car  wreathed  with  flowers  and 
drawn  by  butterflies,  attended  by  a  PomtTua  and  Vertumnus  ;  Ceres  in  a  car  drawn  by  oxen,  and 
followed  by  Pan  and  Fanus  ;  Bacchus  in  a  leopard-drawn  car,  and  after  him  his  intoxicated 
preceptor,  Silenus,  scarce  able  to  retain  his  seat  on  his  donkey.  After  them  followed  all  the 
principal  mythological  characters. 

1859— THE    ENGLISH    HOLIDAYS. 

Comus  selected  this  year  for  representation  the  four  great  English  festivals  :  Twelfth  Night, 
attended  by  the  Lord  of  Misrule  and  the  Abbot  of  Unreason  ;  May-Day,  with  its  attendants, 
Jack-in-Green  and  Robin  Hood,  and  his  merry  archers  of  Sherwood  forest ;  Midsummer  Eve, 
with  Titania  and  her  fairy  attendants,  Pease-Blossom,  Mustard-Seed  and  Moth,  and  Christmas, 
well  represented  by  the  various  dishes  and  drinks  of  a  Christmas  dinner— Plum  Pudding,  Mince- 
Pie,  the  Wassail-Bovd,  Ale,  Port  and  Champagne. 

1860-THE    HISTORY    OF    AMERICA. 
With  his  graphic  pen,  Comus  sketched  rapidly  the  history  of  America  from  its  discovery  to 
the  Missouri  compromise 

1861— SCENES    FROM    LIFE. 
The  procession  this  year  was  in  five  sections.  Childhood,  Boyhood,  Youth,  Manhood  and  Old 
Age,  while  Death  followed  in  the  rear. 

Then  came  the  war,  and  Comus  for  a  brief  period  ceased  to  please  the  people  with  his 
pageants.  During  the  four  years  of  that  struggle— 1862-5,  Mardi  Gras  was  without  any  celebra- 
tion whatever  here.  With  peace,  however,  Comus  again  appeared,  and  in  1866  renewed 
his  parades. 

1866-THE    PAST,     THE    PRESENT    AND    THE    FUTURE. 
The  Past  was  represented  by  strife,  destruction,  want,  grief  and  terror ;  the  Present  by 
Washington,  surrounded  by  industry,  commerce,  science,  agriculture,  history  and  art,  while 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  213 

peace  and  plenty  attended  the  Future.    Behind  these  came  Comus,  attended  by  his  followers  in 
the  form  of  animals. 

1867— THE  FEAST  OF  EPICURUS. 

The  procession  this  year  was  simply  a  personification  of  the  various  dishes,  wines,  etc.,  that 
go  to  make  up  a  grand  dinner. 

The  Heralds  of  Appetite— sherry,  absinthe  and  bitters,  with  their  special  aids,  oysters,  and 
Johannisbergei— led  the  van.  The  Lords  of  the  Ladle  followed  with  the  soups,  and  the  Knights 
of  the  Shell— shrimp,  crab  and  crayfish.  Then  came  the  Rulers  of  the  Roast,  attended  by  mac- 
caroni  a  Ultalienne,  canard  gi-ecque,  patedes  oiseaux,  snipe,  sausage,  etc.  Lettuce  followed 
in  the  company  of  the  salad  fork  and  castor,  and  behind  them  artichoke,  asparagus  and  cauli- 
flower. Ice  cream  and  strawberries  attended  by  the  Court  Ushers— macaroon  and  meringue- 
came  next,  and  the  various  fruits— pineapple,  orange,  melon  and  grapes  ;  then  came  the  Triflers 
—nuts  and  confections  ;  and  last  of  all  the  Peacemakers— coffee  and  segars. 

1868— LALLA  ROOKH. 

This  procession  was  led  by  a  cavalcade  of  horsemen,  bearing  aloft  the  blazing  insignia  of 
Oriental  royalty,  armed  with  the  flying  javelin,  the  vengeful  scimitar  and  twanging  bow. 

1869-THE  FIVE  SENSES. 
Each  sense  was  represented  by  an  antique  statue.  Phoebus  represented  sight,  Ceres  taste, 
Flora  smell,  and  Venus  touch.  These  emblematic  representations  gave  the  Krewe  an  oppor- 
tunity of  representing  in  a  fantastic  and  amusing  manner  the  various  species  of  animals, 
insects,  fruits  and  flowers  of  the  earth.  The  tableaux  corresponded,  in  number  and  character, 
with  the  senses. 

187(>-THE  HISTORY  OF  LOUISIANA. 

The  procession  this  year  contained  sixteen  floats,  each  giving  a  picture  from  the  history  of 
>ur  State.  The  first  car  contained  Louisiana  with  her  attendants— Pelican,  Justice  and  Union, 
md  old  Father  Miche  Sebe  as  her  companion.  The  other  floats  represented  the  following 
icenes  :  De  Soto  and  his  followers  in  America,  De  Soto's  march  from  Florida  to  Louisiana  ;  the 
Mscovery  of  the  Mississippi ;  the  French  priests  preaching  the  gospel  to  the  Indians  ;  La  Salle, 
:onti  and  Hennepin  ;  Iberville  and  the  French  settlers  ;  Bienville  and  his  followers  ;  the  priests 
Q  Louisiana ;  the  Spanish  Governors  of  Louisiana  ;  the  cession  of  Louisiana  to  the  United 
states ;  the  heroes  of  January  8,  1815  ;  Lafitte,  the  pirate  ;  Gen.  ViUere,  and  the  Louisiana 
'reoles,  who  fought  under  Jackson. 

1871-SPENSER'S  FAERIE  QUEEN. 
It  was  a  pity  that  so  few  persons  had  read  this  exquisite  poem  of  Edmund  Spenser,  because 
ery  few  of  the  lookers-on  could  fully  appreciate  the  procession,  although  they  all  knew  it  was 
eautiful. 

1872-HOMER'S  TALE  OF  TROY. 
A  Doric  temple  was  in  the  lead,  in  which  was  placed  the  bust  of  Homer.    Helen  and  Paris 
aUowed  in  their  chariot ;   then  came  the  Court  of  Agamemnon,  Achilles,  Ajax,  Patroclus,  Men- 
laus,  etc.,  and  last  the  Trojans,  headed  by  Priam,  surrounded  by  Cassandra,   Hilenus   and 
.ector. 

Scenes  from  the  Odyssey  were  also  given,  and  from  Homer's  comic  poem,  the  "  Battle  of 
16  Frogs  and  Mice. ' ' 

187.3-THE  MISSING  LINKS. 

Comus  appeared  in  a  chariot  drawn  by  Shetland  ponies.  Following  him  came  the  Krewe, 
^presenting  the  gradual  development  of  man  from  the  original  zoophyte,  to  which  Darwin 
•aces  our  ancestry,  to  his  present  condition. 


214:  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

1874-COMUS'  GREETING  TO  THE  NATIONS. 
The  five  Rreat  divisions  of  the  world,  Europe,  Asia,  Africa,  America  and  Australasia,  werf 
here  represented,  together  with  the  various  countries  they  contain.    The  last  tableau,  tht 
Arctic  world,  represented  the  Polar  Queen  seated  on  an  immense  iceberg,  with  a  large  white 
bear  lying  at  her  feet. 

In  consequence  of  the  political  troubles  in  which  Louisiana  was  just  then  involved,  Comu- 
gave  no  parade  in  1875. 

1876— BIBLICAL  HISTORY. 

The  five  thousand  years  of  Biblical  history  as  illustrated  by  Comus  has  always  been  con 
fessed  to  be  the  finest  and  most  elegant  show  of  the  kind  ever  given  here  by  any  of  our  carniva 
organizations.  The  materials  and  dresses  used  were  much  finer  than  ever  before  seen,  and  th( 
floats  ware  the  grandest  in  design  placed  on  our  streets. 

1877-THE  ARYAN  RACE. 

The  development  of  the  great  Aryan  race,  to  which  aU  of  us,  English,  German  and  Irish 
belong,  its  civUization,  fashions  and  future,  was  the  subject  of  Comus's  procession  this  year 
Comus's  chariot  formed  the  figure  of  an  immense  swan,  garlanded  with  flowers,  in  which  he  sat 
wine-glass  in  hand,  surrounded  by  his  followers.  Then  followed  twenty-three  pictures  of  ou 
progress  toward  perfection  :  the  fea?t  of  Isis  in  ancient  Egypt ;  a  tragic  scene  in  the  ancien 
theatre  of  Dionysius  at  Athens  ;  a  picture  of  Rome  in  its  warlike  and  republican  days ;  anothe 
of  Rome  under  the  empire-a  feast  worthy  of  Lucullus  ;  the  Dark  Ages  standing  in  the  midst  o 
a  ruined  and  broken  temple ;  the  baptism  of  King  CI o vis  ;  Charlemagne  mounted  on  his  throne 
holding  the  globe  of  empire  in  his  hands  ;  the  Crusaders  en  route  to  the  Holy  Land  ;  a  court  o 
justice  in  the  Middle  Ages,  wherein  two  knights  are  settling  a  disputed  point  with  sword  a.n< 
battle-ax ;  a  picture  of  domestic  life,  a  hunting  party  and  a  dinner  party  of  the  iNUddle  Age^ 
with  all  quaint  costumes  of  that  epoch  ;  a  gondola  party  at  Venice  ;  a  fashionable  call  in  th 
fifteenth  century  ;  the  tournament ;  the  Renaissance  ;  a  church  scene  in  the  sixteenth  century 
the  era  of  mighty  muffs  and  ruffs ;  a  scene  in  the  garden  of  Versailles  during  Louis  Quatorze" 
reign  ;  a  soiree  of  the  last  century  and  a  view  of  Boston  Common  at  the  time  of  the  Revolii 
tionar'y  War.  Our  present  century  was  represented  by  two  floats,  a  promenade  in  the  earl 
half  of  the  century,  when  mutton-leg  trousers  and  crinolines  were  fashionable,  and  a  party  o 
ladies  of  to-day  who  have  just  come  out  of  the  nwdiste's  arrayed  in  all  the  finery  of  long  trains 
high  bonnets,  etc.  In  the  last  tableau  Comus  glanced  forward  a  century  and  gave  his  view  o 
what  would  be  the  styles  of  1976.  The  statue  of  Minerva  stands  as  patroness  in  the  centre 
around  whom  the  weaker  sex  are  congregated  in  Bloomer  costumes,  carrying  on  aU  the  trade 
and  professions  now  usurped  by  man,  while  the  men,  in  hoops  and  skirts,  are  nursing  the  cbi 
dren  or  attending  to  household  duties. 

1878-THE  METAMORPHOSES  OF  OVID. 
This  year  comus  selected  the  Metamorphoses  of  Ovid,  which  were  represented  in  the  fori 
of  statues  on  twenty-one  floats.    There  was  no  procession  in  1879. 

1880— THE  ROMANCE  OF  MEXICO. 
A  number  of  scenes  were  given  from  the  history  and  customs  of  the  ancient  inhabitants 
Mexico— the  Aztecs.  Unfortunately,  in  the  procession,  several  of  the  handsomest  floats  can:, 
fire  and  were  destroyed.  Among  the  finest  tableaux  were  the  following :  The  Administratis 
of  Justice  in  Mexico  ;  the  sacrifice  of  human  victims  to  the  god,  Qualtzoacoatl ;  the  floatir 
gardens  of  the  lake  Tezcuco;  an  ancient  Aztec  marriage  ;  the  meeting  of  Cortez  and  Mont ^ 
zuma ;  the  defeat  of  the  Spaniards  on  the  Noche  Triste  ;  and  finaUy  a  scene  of  the  present  d u 
in  the  plaza  of  the  city  of  Mexico. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  215 

1881— THE  MYTHS  OF  NORDLAND. 

From  the  story  of  Sigurd,  the  Viking,  Comus  gave  pictures  of  the  ancient  history, 
Mythology  and  tradition  of  the  Norwegians.  The  handsomest  tableaux  were  the  Workshop  of 
he  Dwarfs;  Elfland:  the  voyage  of  the  Nihelungs;  the  Norwegian  Hell ;  and  Ragnaroc  or  the  end 
)f  the  world. 

1882— THE  WORLD'S  WORSHIPS. 

The  floats  represented  various  scenes  from  different  worships,  the  worship  of  the  Sun,  of  the 
acred  bull,  Moses  receivmg  the  laws,  the  Druids,  the  Vestal  Vu-gins  bringing  the  religious  wor 
hip  down  to  the  Mormons  of  to-day. 

There  was  no  procession  in  1883. 

1884— IRELAND. 

Comus  told  the  legendary  history  of  Ireland  beginning  with  the  invasion  of  Partholan,  2855 
ears  before  Christ,  and  coming  down  to  the  great  councU  of  Irish  chiefs  held  just  before  the 
attle  of  the  Boyne. 

In  1870  another  organization,  styling  themselves  The  Twelfth  Night  Revelers,  sprang  into 
xistence  and  paraded  our  streets  on  Twelfth  Night  (January  6).  They  continued  this  for  several 
ears,  but  in  1877  the  club  which  gave  this  entertainment  disbanded,  and  these  parades  ceased. 

1871— MOTHER  GOOSE'S  TEA  PARTY. 
Mother  Goose  led  off,  drawn  by  Humpty  Dumpty.  Behind  her  came  the  ^eat  Giant  Fa-fe- 
-fo-fum,  with  Jack,  the  celebrated  slayer  of  giants  and  ogres.  Little  Bo-Peep,  Jack  Frost  and 
;r.  and  Mrs.  Spratt,  occupied  the  next  float ;  then  came  Jack  and  Jill,  Jack  Horner  and  Daffy 
own  Dilly;  Little  Boy  Blue  escorted  Miss  Red  Riding  Hood;  the  Old  Woman  who  lived  in  a 
loe,  and  Saddle  My  Cock  and  Saddle  My  Hen.  Behind  these  come  various  other  friends  of  the 
lUdren:  Beauty  and  the  Beast,  Tom  Tucker  and  Johnny  Grace,  Tom  the  Piper's  Son,  Robin 
ood  and  his  Merry  Men,  Richard  and  Robin,  Cinderella  and  her  Fairy  Godmother,  the  Cow 
at  Jumped  over  the  Moon,  King  Cole,  Mother  Hubbard,  her  Dog  and  Puss  in  Boots,  the  entire 
eart  Family— King,  Queen  and  Knave— Pease-Porridge  Hot,  the  Lion  and  Unicorn,  Cock  Robin 
id  Jenny  Wren,  and  last  of  all,  famous  Old  Santa  Claus. 

1873— ENGLISH  HUMOR. 
The  Lord  of  Misrule's  next  picture  was  of  English  humor,  representing  pictures  from  the 
Drks  of  the  leading  English  humorists.  The  Wife  of  Bath  and  the  Clerke  of  Oxforde,  repre- 
nted  Chaucer ;  Sir  John  Falstaff,  Shakespeare ;  the  Alchemist  and  Boabdil,  Ben  Jouson ; 
idibras,  Samuel  Butler  ;  Captain  Macheath  and  Polly  and  Lucy,  John  Gay  ;  Gulliver  in  Lilliput, 
nathan  Swift ;  Tristram  Shandy,  Lawrence  Sterne ,  Moses  at  the  Fair,  Oliver  Goldsmith  ; 
)minie  Sampson  and  Dandy  Dinmont,  Walter  Scott;  Rip  Van  Winkle  and  Ichabod  Crane, 
ashington  Irving ;  the  Two  Wellers,  SUas  Wegg.  Captain  Cuttle  and  Mr.  Bumble,  Charles 
ckens  ;  and  the  Heathen  Chmee,  Bret  Harte. 

1873— THE  BIRDS  OF  AUDUBON. 
Taking  the  work  of  our  celebrated  Louisiana  naturalist  as  a  basis,  the  Lord  of  Misrule  pro- 
eded  to  give  a  thorough  review  of  the  ornithological  kingdom.  The  grouping  of  the  birds 
IS  excellent,  and  nearly  every  float  contained  a  picture  that  was  at  once  instructive,  beautiful 
d  laughable.  There  was  a  barn-yard  meeting,  over  which  Sir  Chanticleer  presided,  and 
lere,  of  course,  his  trusty  hens  and  the  duck  and  goose  were  present ;  the  Woodpecker's 
orkshop,  where  the  partridge,  woodpecker,  and  others  were  busy  at  work  with  saw,  ham- 
iT  and  chisel ;  the  Birds  of  War,  the  eagle  of  France,  and  his  double-headed  brother  of  Russia; 
3  Bird  Club,  mostly  birds  of  a  sporting  character,  snipe,  woodcock  and  grouse  ;  the  Mocking 
.'d  Choir,  composed  of  all  the  song  birds,  presided  over  by  the  gifted  singer  of  the  South ;  the 


216  •  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

birth  of  Tomtit ;  the  Grand  Turk-ey,  represented  as-a  pasha,  swelled  with  pride  and  rage  ;  the 
Crows  in  Council ;  the  Bird  Ball,  where  are  congregated  the  peacock,  pheasant,  and  all  the  orna- 
mental birds  ;  closing  with  the  Pelican,  emblematic  of  Louisiana. 

1874— DOLLY  AND  HER  TOYS. 
The  Lord  of  Misrule  again  came  forth  with  a  show  to  amuse  and  delight  the  children  ai 
well  as  their  gro\sai-up  friends,  who  were  only  too  delighted  to  be  recalled  to  the  happy  daysol 
infancy.  This  time  he  gave  a  picture  of  Dolly  with  all  the  treasures  of  her  nursery  The  del 
was  seated  before  a  table  covered  with  a  small  tea-set.  Her  escort  was  a  body  of  woodei 
soldiers,  just  such  as  come  out  of  Christmas  boxes.  Behind  her  came  her  cabinet  a  so  of  carvec 
wood,  and  looking  supernaturally  wise,  but  rather  stiff  for  all  that.  The  ark  followed,  fiUec 
with  angular  birds  and  beasts.  Then  came  a  parlor,  and  a  kitchen,  and  a  stable  scene;  8 
children's  band  rattling  drnms,  bugles,  whistles  and  other  devices  for  making  a  dm.  The  stag* 
was  represented  by  Punch  and  Judy.  The  Christmas  feast  followed  with  Santa  Claus  drivmg  i 
sleigh  filled  to  its  very  brim  with  the  choicest  toys  and  candies.  The  last  two  floats  were  occu 
pied  by  "  citizens,"  among  whom  could  be  distinguished  Messrs.  Jiimping  Jack,  Jack-m-the-Bo» 
Hobby  Horse  and  others.  ,^,^^^^  .i^^CH  OF  AGES. 

The  Revellers  turned  out  with  the  g-reatest  number  ever  presented  in  any  parade  in  thi 
city  Float  Xo.  1  told  of  the  Birth  of  Time.  Then  came  the  Age  of  Fire,  with  Vulcan,  Vest: 
and'the  Cyclops  ;  the  Age  of  Water,  with  Xeptune  ;  the  Nebulae  the  first  Birth  of  Light,  then  th- 
Sun  Moon  and  Stars.  Chaos  followed,  and  behind  him  Creation.  The  Primeval  Age  vras  thei 
represented,  with  man  in  his  first  stage.  The  Age  of  Stone  followed,  and  then  the  Golden  Age 
where,  under  the  protection  of  Cybele,  all  the  beasts  lay  down  together,  and  war  and  troubl. 
were  unknown.  The  Dark  Ages  came  next,  then  the  Biblical  Age,  the  Bronze  Age,  that  o 
Semiramis,  Queen  of  Assyria,  the  Silver  Age,  that  of  Solomon,  tb^J^«^/f '  «^<^;^^!^^  J^' 
sword  of  ^he  Roman  Republic  rules.  Then  the  Age  of  Chivalry,  with  St.  George  fightmg  th. 
dragon,  and  the  Knights  of  the  Round  Table  met  at  the  Court  of  King  Arthur ;  the  Age  o 
Adventure,  when  Columbus  and  his  followers  crossed  the  Atlantic  m  search  of  new  worlds  th 
Present  Age,  represented  by  a  man  bowed  down  by  incessant  study,  and  ^Ji.  enormous  Krup] 
gin!  The  Future  Age,  if  the  Lord  of  Misrule  is  to  be  believed,  will  be  the  tnumph  of  woman 
for  here  is  a  gallant  army  of  Amazons  congregated  around  their  Queen,  Pallas  Athene^  ^iM 
promising  her  the  aid  and  support  of  their  strong  right  arms.  Last  of  all  comes  Eternxty-d^P 
mysterious  Eternity-a  broken  column, with  Saturn  (Time)  asleep,  the  hour-glass  empty,  the  diai 
of  time  broken,  and  the  sun  obscured  by  dark  clouds. 

In  1872  a  number  of  gentlemen  in  this  city  organized  the  Knights  of  Momus,  celebrating  th« 
event  with  a  procession,  which  appeared  on  the  streets  on  the  last  day  of  the  year. 

1872— THE  TALISMAN. 

Momus  selected  for  its  first  procession  Scott's  beautiful  story  of  the  Talisman  the  scene  o 
which  is  laid  in  Palestine  during  the  Crusades.  All  of  the  leading  crusaders.  Richard  Coeur  d. 
Lion,  Philip  of  France,  Leopold  of  Austria,  and  others,  were  present,  as  were  likewise  thai 
Saracen  enemies,  led  by  the  great  Saladin. 

1873— THE  COMING  RACE. 

The  second  theme  selected  by  Momus  was  The  Coming  Race.  The  procession  took  place 
as  thelo  mer  one  had  done,  on  the  last  day  of  the  year.  It  was  a  cunous  picture  such  as  on. 
might  wen  imagine  aft.r  a  too  hearty  meal  of  mince  pie,  Welsh  rarebit  or  somethmg  very  indi 
^estibir  Led  by  the  great  naturalists,  Darwin.  Cuvier,  Humboldt  and  others,  came  their  cunou 
SmPlogs  with  tortoise-sheU  heads,  men  with  heads  like  lobsters' claws-everything  absurd 
ridiculous  and  impossible. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  217 

In  neither  1874  nor  1875  did  Momus  arrive.  It  had  been  determined  to  change  the  time  for 
the  Momus  procession  so  as  to  bring  it  nearer  to  Mardi  Gras.  This  was  done  to  make  the  car- 
nival as  attractive  as  possible,  and  present  all  the  displays  near  together  during  the  gay  season, 
ft  was  determined,  therefore,  that  Momus  in  future  should  turn  out  during  the  week  before 
Mardi  Gras.  When  that  day  came  around,  however,  the  political  complications  just  then 
affecting  us  were  so  unpleasant  that  Comus  declined  to  parade,  and  Momus  followed  the  exam- 
ple of  his  illustrious  brother. 

1876— LOUISIANA  AND  HEK  PRODUCTIONS. 

In  1876,  however,  Momus  came  with  his  display,  far  exceeding  anything  he  had  hitherto 
ittempted,  a  picture  of  our  own  beloved  State. 

Louisiana  led  off,  a  gorgeously  attired  lady,  with  Bienville  as  her  protector,  and  sur- 
•ouuded  by  Union,  Confidence,  Justice  and  our  Pelican.  Spring  was  heralded  by  Flora,  behind 
,vhom  followed  Magnoha,  Acacia  and  all  the  flowers  of  our  clime.  Ceres  led  the  van  of  Sum- 
ner, with  King  Carrot,  Corn,  Lettuce,  Cauliflower,  Tomato,  Cucumber,  Garlic,  Turnip  and 
)thers.  A  kitchen  scene  followed,  wherein  the  Irish  and  Sweet  Potato  were  wrangling  in  a  pot, 
he  Squash  courting  the  Egg  plant,  and  the  other  denizens  of  the  kitchen— Leek,  Beet  and  Onion 
-were  attending  to  various  culinary  duties. 

Pomona  followed  as  Autumn,  with  a  court  of  Grapes,  Strawberries,  Melons,  Pineapples  and 
tther  fruits. 

Irene  led  the  last  division,  Winter,  and  behind  her  followed  the  Royal  Agricultural  Family  of 
iOuisiana— Princess  Rice,  Queen  Sugar  on  a  throne  of  hogsheads,  and  King  Cotton  on  a  dais 
•f  cotton  bales.    The  procession  occupied  nineteen  floats, 

1877— DEMONOLOGY. 

The  fourth  representation  of  Momus  occurred  on  Thursday,  February  8.  The  subject  chosen 

ras  one  which  would  have  delighted  good  Kin^  James  of  Scotland  and  England— a  history  of 

he  demons,  witches  and  monsters  of  the  lower  world— behind  which  was  conveyed  a  deep, 

olitical  satire,  for  the  faces  worn  by  tho.se   demons  were  fac-similes  of  those  of  the  leading 

adical  politicians  just  then  engaged  in  oppressing  Louisiana.    Verdelet  and  Leonard  (Babcock 

nd  Boss  Shepherd),   two  inferior  imps,   led  tie  procession  ;  then  came  the  Depaitment  of 

tate,  with  Adramelech  (Fish)  at  its  head  ;  the  chariot  of  Mars,  with  Baal,  Camer  and  Chamos 

,  ?hermau,  Sheridan  and  Grant) ;  the  Department  of  Justice,  Lucifer  in  a  landaulet  (Williams) ; 

I  Qd  so  on  through  the   entire  book  of    demonology,    Blaine,   I'ackard,   Kellogg  and    all  the 

I  'ading  Radicals  of   the  country  being  represented  by  some  favorite  of  the  demon  world. 

here  were  the  Dukes  of  Debauch,  the  Kniglits  of  the  Black  League,  with  Sabnack  (Packard) 

riving  the  dragon,  whose  face  was  that  of  a  cornfield  darkey ;  the  Counts  of  the  Returning 

oard,  with  the  well  recognized  faces  of  Tom  Anderson,  Wells  &  Co.,  the  whole  winding  up 

ith  the  Ship  of  State  going  down  in  a  sea  of  fire. 

1878.— SCENES  FROM  THE  REALMS  OF  FANCY. 

From  the  realms  of  Hades,  Momus  leaped  to  the  heights  of  fantisy,  giving  us  one  of  the 
'ettiest  pictures  ever  seen  here.    The  floats  were  sixteen  in  number.    Momus,  himself  led  off 

a  grand  coral  chariot,  resting  on  the  clouds.  Queen  Mab  followed  him  in  her  chariot, 
•awn  by  four  butterflies.  And  then  came  various  pictures  from  our  fairy  tales,  such  as  the 
ince  awaking  the  Sleeping  Beauty  from  her  century-long  sleep  ;  the  combat  between  Yalen- 
ae  and  Orson  ;  the  Knight's  combat  with  the  Yellow  Dwarf,  etc. 

In  1879,  in  consequence  of  the  presence  of  yellow  fever  here  during  the  previous  summer, 
e  great  cost  to  which  it  had  put  our  citizens  and  societies,  and  the  large  number  of  persons  in 
ourning,  it  was  resolved  both  by  Comus  and  Momus  to  have  no  public  celebration,  but  to 
ive  Mardi  Gras  to  Rex  alone. 


218  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

1880.-A  DREAM  OF  FAIR  WOMEN. 

Momus  showed  this  year  the  most  famous  women  the  world  has  produced,  among  them 
Semiramis  going  to  battle ;  Sappho  flying  with  Phaon  ;  Samson  In  the  arbor  of  Delilah ;  Aspasi* 
and  Pericles-  Judith  before  Holofernes;  Cornelia  and  her  jewels;  Cleopatra  saihng  uuwn  the 
Cvdnus  in  her  galley  ;  Boadicea  harrauguing  the  Britons  ;  Fair  Rosamond  and  Eleanor  ;  Queen 
Isabella,  the  Catholic;  Mary  Stuart  going  to  execution;  Queeu  Elizabeth  and  her  Court;  and 
Maria  Theresa  being  crowned  Queen  of  Hungary. 

1881-POPULAR  SUBJECTS. 

Momus  presented  curious  pictures  from  popular  novels  and  stories.  There  were  Robinson 
Crusoe  on  his  desert  island  ;  Hans  Christian  Andersen's  story  of  Little  Totty  ;  the  marriage  of 
Hoho  of  the  Golden  Belt;  Baroa  Munchausen,  William  Tell,  The  Ancient  Mariner,  Paul  and 
Vu-ginia,  Hiawatha,  and  many  other  creations  of  the  poet  and  novelist. 

1883— THE  RAMAYANA. 

The  tableaux  of  Momus  this  year  was  highly  Oriental,  and  taken  from  the  great  epic  of 
Hindostan.  Among  other  scenes  were  the  Nuptials  of  Rama ;  the  Council  of  the  Gods;  the 
Banishment  of  Rama  ;  Rama  invoking  the  Ocean  ;  and  the  combat  of  Rama  and  Ravanna. 

1883— THE  MOORS  IN  SPAIN. 

Momus  appeared  on  Mardi-Gras  night  this  year  (Comus  not  parading),  re-prc^^ting  cnriotra 
scenes  from  the  rise  and  fall  of  the  Moorish  power  in  Spain. 

18M— THE  PASSIONS. 

The  various  evil  passions  which  escaped  from  Pandora's  box  were  given,  each  represented 
by  some  celebrated  historical  personage,  Jealousy,  by  Amertus,  Xerxes'  wife;  Ambition  by 
Alexander  the  Great,  Licentiousness  by  Sardanapalus. 

REX 
made  his  first  entry  m  our  city  in  1872.  He  came  then  attended  by  a  body-guard  of  Arabs. 
This  organization  was  started  for  the  purpose  of  showing  all  the  maskers  in  the  ciiy  combined 
in  a  procession  to  pass  before  the  Grand  Duke  Alexis,  who  was  a  guest  of  the  city,  and  reviewed 
the  procession  at  the  City  Hall.  It  was  brought  prominently  before  the  public  and  became 
popular  through  a  series  of  edicts  emanating  from  Arabia,  which  were  published  almost  daily 
in  the  public  press.  It  was  through  the  influence  of  Rex  that  Mardi  Gras  became  a  legal  holiday 
in  New  Orleans,  and  business  was  suspended,  so  that  all  classes  could  join  in  the  general 

festivities.  ,  ,        ^  ^  t* 

The  next  year  he  appeared  in  still  grander  style,  and  so  on,  each  subsequent  year.  It 
was  not  until  1877,  however,  that  he  emulated  his  brothers,  Comus  and  Momus,  and  presented 
us  with  a  parade  representing  scenes  and  tableaux. 

1877— THE  MILITARY  PROGRESS  OP  THE  WORLD. 
In  twenty-four  floats,  Rex  represented  the  gradual  development  of  military  science  from  the 
prehistoric  ages  to  the  present  day,  briefly  reviev/ing  the  various  wars  by  which  the  world  has 
been  afflicted.  The  procession  began  \\ath  the  warriors  of  the  prehistoric  age  ;  then  followed  an 
Egyptian  army  marching  to  conquest:  the  Israelites  and  Philistines  engaged  in  war;  the 
Assyrians  and  Babvlonians  accoutred  for  conquest ;  Greece  500  years  before  Christ,  and  Rome  at 
the  Christian  Era; 'the  Ancient  Britons  preparing  to  resist  the  Romans;  the  Huns,  Goths  and 
Vandals ;  the  Danes  and  Anglo-Saxons  in  their  war  vessels,  preparing  for  a  descent  on  the 
the  British  coast :  the  Moslems  invading  Europe  and  Asia  ;  the  Crusaders  about  to  march  against 
them;  the  famous  battering  ram  of  the  medieeval  ages  :  the  Spanish  in  Mexico  :  the  Thirty  Years' 
War ;  the  conquest  of  India  by  the  English ;  the  War  of  Independence  ;  the  battle  of  Waterloo; 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  219 

the  Crimean  war ;  the  late  war  between  the  States,  with  the  Confederate  and  Federal  soldiers 
^'ZTr' '  1" ^^^^^^-P^^^^i-^  ^ar.  and  lastly,  the Turco-Servian  war-which  was  wag  ngat 
4be  very  tune  the  procession  was  marching  through  our  city. 

1878-MYTHOLOGY. 
Rex  burlesqued  this  year,  and  he  chose  for  his  theme  the  Immortal  Gods  of  Greece  The 
procession  was  a  long  and  exhaustive  one,  containing  no  less  than  twenty-eight  floats  Jupiter 
iZTni  ""  "  led  off  in  their  appropriate  chariots.  Minerva  was  an  ancient  and  wrinfkd 
b  a  ;tand  vrn^::'\'"'  ^,/\^  ^^'l  ^"^  ^^^^^^^^^^  ^^^^^^  ^-^  ^^^  ^--  ^ad  organized  a 
her  f.n      M  Jr  ff  "''^"'''^  ""^^  ^'"'"^^  outrageously,  ogling  every  passer-by,  behind 

aLnn.  r  7^'  ""^T*'^  ^"  ^  °^^^^*^  "^°^^"-  ^^^^«"^>'-  ^'  a  xnerchant,  was  iberally 
Sw"!  Tl'^.'^'r  '"'^  '""''""^^  ^"'  ''''''''''^-  ^'^^«^"  ^^«  ^^^^5^  "taking  horseshoes.  Then 
followed  the  Fates,  Janus  and  the  Months,  .Eolus  and  the  Winds,  the  Vestal  Virgins  Silenus 
Bacchus  gorgeously  drunk,  the  Sirens,  Circe,  the  Harpies,  the  Furi;^,  Momus,  Com^s  'Pomona 
:be  Supreme  Court  of  Hell,  the  Heroes  of  Homer's  poems,  Paris  and  Helen  fleeing  from  the 
^rath  of  Menelaus  m  a  steam  yacht,  the  Trojan  Horse,  and  lastly  the  Wheel  of  Fortune. 

1879— HISTORY. 

In  twenty-six  cars,  Rex  gave  a  burlesque  history  of  the  world. 

1880-THE    FOUR    ELEMENTS. 
Rex  appeared  this  year  as  the  King  of  Hamuth,  surrounded  by  an  army  of  Assvrians     ThP 

zi7or7nTTrf:r''  ^^  t^  ^'^^^^'  ^^^^^^  ^^^  Air.Ld  were  ofints rmia^; 

.nd  color.    All  the  fish  of  the  sea  and  the  birds  of  the  air  appeared,  while  Oxygen  Carbon 
-oroaster  and  Thunder,  and  other  tableaux  represented  the  yJL  divisions  aSffrms  of  ^e.' 

1881-THE  ARABIAN  NIGHTS. 

J:ss™XarsXt:r;f '^''•"^  '■"°  °'  ^^  "-^'^°  N..ht.  accompanied  b.  tbe 
The  tableaux  were  various  scenes  from  that  great  collection  of  Oriental  romances. 

1882-THE  PURSUIT  OF  PLEASURE. 

B^tZTVrHlr^^^^^n^  ^^!u   "j^'''}"^^''  ^  P^^^i^'  Surf  Bathing,  Hunting,  the  Circus,  Fishing 
aseball.  Dmner.  the  Opera,  the  Gaming  Table,  and  all  the  other  forms  that  pleasure  ^an  tak^! 

1883— ATLANTIS. 
The  habits  customs  and  life  of  the  lost  continent  of  Atlantis  were  given  by  Rex     The 
-bleaux  were  the  Hanging  Gardens  of  Atlantis  ;  Nuptial  Ceremonies  of  the  nLTvcs   the  Courts 
:  Justice ;  Theatrical  Amusements ;  the  Feast,  etc.  i^auves ,  the  Courts 

1884-THE  SEMITIC  RACE. 

ightTnL^fPrTl'''  ^l  ^'"^^''"^'  renewed;  the  History  of  the  Semitic  Race;  Nimrod,  the 
Sonir^ndl^otmmT^"^^'  Sardanapalus.  Nebuchadnezzar,  Moses.  Samson,  David! 
KNIGHTS    OF    PROTEUS. 
The  Knights  of  Proteus,  a  new  organization,  appeared  in  1882.  the  day  before  Mardi  Gras 

Thoth'anTNil'uTtrM^      '  """^T.^^  ^^^*'  ^^'^^^^"^  *^^  ^^"^^  ^^'l^^-^  deiLes  oS  ,' 
ts,  I  hoth  and  NUus  :  the  Mourning  of  the  Egyptians,  an  Egyptian  Wedding,  etc. 


220  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

•  1883-THE    HISTORY    OF    FRANCE. 

Proteus  produced  various  pictures  from  the  liistory  of  France,  Hesus,  the  god  of  the  Druids 
Charlemagne,  the  Normans'  Landing  on  the  Coast  of  France,  the  Crusaders,  Francis  the  First. 
Marie  Antoinette  and  the  guillotine,  and  Napoleon  crowning  Josephine  Empress. 

1884— THE    ^XEID. 

This  was  decidedly  the  handsomest  display  of  the  year.  Vergil's  classic  was  magnificently 
illustrated,  and  tableaux  of  the  Gates  of  Ivory,  Palace  of  Picus,  the  Judgment  of  Rhadamanthus 
and  others  were  among  the  best  ever  seen  in  New  Orleans. 

HOW  THE  PARADES  ARE  PREPARED. 

The  Carnival  celebration  in  New  Orleans  has  of  late  years  surpassed,  in  extent  and  grandeur, 
all  similar  events  occurring  either  in  Europe  or  this  country.  Beside  it  the  carnivals  of  the 
Corso  of  Rome  and  the  canals  of  Venice  are  tame  affairs,  lacking  the  exquisite  order  and  organ! 
zation  with  which  the  Americans  have  endowed  it.  Though  frequently  described  in  letters  and 
by  the  public  press,  it  yet  has  to  be  seen  to  be  appreciated,  and  few  enjoy  that  privilege 
once  without  thereafter  making  an  annual  pilgrimage  to  the  Crescent  City  during  its  festiv( 
season. 

Few  understand  the  admirable  and  thorough  system  of  organization,  through  which  alone 
such  grand  successes  can  be  achieved— a  system  as  complete  in  its  little  way  as  that  of  an  armi 
or  an  established  government. 

In  fact,  it  does  embrace  a  phantom  government,  ruled  over  by  the  mythical  Rex,  whose  reigr 
is  absolute  for  twenty-four  hours,  during  which  his  flag  is  alone  permitted  to  fly  ;  and  whos« 
edicts  are  as  implicitly  obeyed  as  were  those  of  an  Alexander  or  a  Nero.  The  central  power  ig 
contributed  to  and  supported  by  several  secret  societies,  each  independent  within  itself,  but  al 
co-operating  to  a  single  end.  Outside  of  Rex's  court  there  are  other  and  some  older  secrc 
associations,  such  as  the  Mistick  Krewe,  the  Twelfth  Night  Revelers,  the  Knights  of  Momus,  etc 
Each  of  these  has  its  own  distinct  gala  night  devoted  to  its  street  procession  and  its  tableai 
balls,  to  which  the  tickets  are  invariably  complimentary. 

The  expense  of  one  of  these  displays  ranges  in  cost  from  $12,000  to  $18,000,  and  sometimes 
higher.  In  one  instance  Rex's  display  cost  $28,000.  Each  association  owns  its  twenty  floats 
its  ladders  and  lights,  housings  for  the  draft-horses  and  disguises  for  the  torch-bearers,  bu 
none  of  them  have  any  known  permanent  meeting-place,  which  changes  constantly  and  is  kepi 
sacredly  secret. 

Each  association  numbers  from  150  to  200  men,  generally  club  men,  some  of  them  grand 
fathers.  One  hundred  are  generally  selected  to  appear  in  the  display,  while  the  others  an 
utilized  in  other  duties  which  are  much  more  onerous  than  is  generally  supposed.  Tht 
preparation  for  a  display  occupies  almost  an  entire  year,  and  the  torchlights  of  one  hardly  di« 
out  before  work  is  on  foot  for  its  successor,  all  of  which  is  conducted  with  the  greatest  secrecy 

The  first  step  taken  after  ]Mardi  Gras  is  a  meeting  for  the  election  of  a  design  committee  fo: 
the  ensuing  year,  over  whom  is  elevated  "  the  captain,"  with  absolute  power,  experience  bavins 
demonstrated  imperial  power  and  blind  obedience  to  be  the  main  essentials  of  the  system. 

Next  the  artist  is  summoned  for  consultation.  Each  member  of  the  committee  now  propose.' 
one  or  more  subjects  foi.  treatment,  the  best  half-dozen  of  which  are  delivered  to  the  artist  U 
reproduce  in  rough  crayon  sketches  throughout.  When  completed,  the  committee  meets  agaii 
for  consultation,  and  a  final  selection  is  made.  This  is  always  the  most  difficult  problen 
encountered,  and  generally  consumes  an  entire  month,  after  which  the  work  begins  in  earnest. 

The  artist  at  once  commences  the  preparation  of  accurate  water  color  sketches  of  each  o: 
the  hundred  characters,  upon  cardboards  about  the  size  of  an  imperial  photograph.  These  ar« 
finished  to  the  minutest  detail  and  carefully  colored  for  the  use  of  the  costume  manufacturer 
the  material  of  which  every  part  of  tne  dress  is  to  be  made  being  incribed  upon  it. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEAXS.  221 

These  completed  to  the  satisfaction  of  the  desi^  committee— no  easy  task,  by  the  by,  and 
one  requirinff  a  couple  of  months  for  execution— the  cast  of  characters  is  then  made  in  harmony 
with  the  individual  characteristics  of  the  members,  who  from  that  time  forward  lose  their 
identity  and  are  designated  only  by  numbers  which  are  inscribed  upon  the  separate  character 
cards.  These  cards  also  bear  upon  their  reverse  the  height,  girth,  weight,  size  of  foot,  head 
and  hand,  together  with  a  record  of  the  physical  peculiarities  of  the  individual  who  is  to  assume 
the  indicated  role. 

This  done,  the  artist  at  once  commences  upon  a  duplicate  series  of  eighteen  or  twenty  larger 
ind  much  more  elaborate  water  color  designs  in  which  all  the  characters  appear  grouped  in  the 
•espective  emblematic  tableaux  they  are  to  exhibit  upon  the  floats  in  the  street  procession, 
;ogether  with  the  float,  designs,  decorations  and  accessories,  each  one  being  a  little  scene 
ivithin  itself. 

When  completed,  one  set  of  these— each  figure  duly  numbered— is  posted  upon  the  walls  of 
•,he  club-room,  or  "  The  Den,"  as  it  is  generally  called,  for  the  members'  close  scrutiny  and  study 
luring  the  balance  of  the  year. 

The  other  set,  together  with  the  individual  character  cards,  are  then  either  taken  or  sent  to 
'aris,  where  the  costumes  are  maufactured  and  numbered  to  correspond.  These  preliminaries 
ire  generally  consummated  by  July  1,  and  a  short  breathing  spell  ensues,  during  which  time  the 
ocal  papier-mache  maker  is  busy  moulding  the  properties  which  are  required  to  decorate  the 
loats. 

By  December  1st  the  costumes  generally  arrive  in  New  Orleans.  They  are  at  cnce  removed 
o  "  The  Den,"  where  they  are  ranged  upon  long  tables,  each  costume  being  surmounted  v\ith 
ts  appropriate  picture.  Here,  during  a  period  of  six  or  eight  weeks,  the  members  come  in 
egular  detail  to  be  fitted  with  their  dresses  by  a  corps  of  tailors,  armorers  and  milliners  in 
onstant  attendance  for  that  purpose. 

This  task  completed  to  perfect  satisfaction,  each  costume  is  placed  in  one  of  a  hundred 
oxes,  duly  numbered  with  the  cast  number,  which  is  locked  up  and  laid  aside  in  waiting  for 
be  eventful  night.  Meanwhile,  the  Float  Committee,  with  the  duplicate  set  of  designs,  has 
een  engaged  for  weeks  at  some  out-of-the-way  place,  generally  the  yard  of  a  cotton  press, 
uilding  up,  with  the  aid  of  carpenters,  painters,  carvers,  gilders  and  papier-mache  makers,  the 
'onderful  structures  upon  which  the  figures  are  to  pose  during  the  street  procession.  Another 
ammittee  is  at  work  preparing  for  the  ball,  which  takes  place  at  the  Opera  House,  and  is 
enerally  preceded  by  three  tableaux,  the  last  embracing  all  the  characters,  the  large  and 
aborate  designs  for  which  have  consumed  most  of  the  artist's  leisure  time  up  to  thejiolidays. 

As  the  eventful  day,  or  rather  night,  approaches  nearer,  everybody  is  at  work— some 
reparing  the  lights  for  the  procession,  some  engaging  horses,  others  drilling  the  torch  bearers, 
ho  are  forced  to  discharge  their  duties  with  military  precision  ;  others  arranging  matters 
ith  the  authorities,  so  that  the  streets  will  be  in  order  and  all  obstructions  removed— all  this 
3ing  accomplished  with  such  thorough  system  and  secrecy  that  not  until  the  display  is  actually 
pen  the  street,  are  the  public  aware  of  either  its  subject  or  where  it  will  first  appear. 

A  few  days  prior  to  the  great  event  the  boxe^  containing  the  costumes  and  other 
roperties  are  moved  at  dead  of  night  to  some  building  in  the  immediate  vicinity  of  the  yards 
here  the  floats  have  been  prepared.  The  front  of  this  building,  generaUy  a  warehouse,  is 
3pt  closed  and  the  windows  darkened.  Temporary  entrances  are  improvised  by  cutting 
irough  the  wall  into  adjoining  houses,  so  that  it  can  be  reached  from  two  or  three  different 
reets  by  members  of  the  association,  who  alone  are  in  the  secret. 

The  processions  usually  move  about  9  o'clock  at  night,  but  as  early  as  2  p.m.,  upon  the 
^pointed  day,  the  members  commence  straggling  into  the  Den,  all  in  full  evening  dress.  This 
ley  remove  and  deposit  in  their  numbered  boxes  in  place  of  the  costume  in  which  they  array 
lemselves.  About  7  o'clock  in  the  evening,  when  all  are  dressed,  the  roll  is  called ;  the 
laracters  ;all  masked)  take  their  places  in  line,  and  a  final  inspection  takes  place. 


222  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

About  this  time  a -squad  of  police  arrives  upon  the  scene,  and  after  clearing  the  street  in 
front  of  the  building,  cordon  all  the  cross  streets  for  four  or  five  squares.  Into  the  left  of  this 
reserve  space  shortly  file  the  torch-bearers  under  guidance  of  ofBcers,  who  silently  take  up 
the  places  along  the  curbs  for  the  entire  distance.  In  a  few  moments  the  floats  follow  and 
drive  in  regular  order  up  to  the  door  of  the  warehouse.  When  the  first  arrives  the  hitherto 
sealed  doors  are  thrown  open,  and  a  long  bridge  is  run  out  over  the  sidewalk.  As  the  captam 
calls  the  numV  ers  each  man  steps  out  and  takes  his  appointed  place  upon  the  floats,  which  are 
driven  off  expeditiously  until  all  are  in  line.  The  bands  are  then  marched  to  position,  and 
everything  is  in  order  in  a  remarkably  short  space  of  time. 

The  proceedings,  so  far,  have  been  conducted  in  utter  darkness.  The  captain  then  rides 
rapidly  along  the  lines,  and,  finding  everything  in  order,  gives  an  appointed  signal.  In  a 
moment  all  the  torches  flash  out  into  a  blazing  paraUelogram  of  light,  securely  inclosing  the 
procession,  and  guarded  outside  at  regular  intervals  by  the  police,  who  have  quietly  taken  up 

position.  ^  ■       .  .  1. 

The  procession  thus  formed  marches  rapidly  until  it  reaches  the  nearest  prominent  thor- 
oughfare, when  the  bands  strike  up,  the  bombs  explode,  the  rockets  fly,  and  port  fires  of 
every  color  blaze  brilliantly  along  the  line,  over  which  hangs  a  heavy  cloud  of  smoke,  reflecting 
th  •  many-hued  tints  of  a  monstrous  fantastically  illuminated  canopy,  which  lends  an  inde- 
scribable weirdness  to  the  unnatural,  yet  artistic  scene. 

After  traversing  the  route  appointed,  which  is  generally  short  and  hemmed  m  by  throngs 
of  admiring  and  wonder-stricken  people,  the  floats  finally  arrive  at  the  stage-door  of  the  Opera 
House  where  they  unload  their  Uving  freight,  and  drive  rapidly  away  in  the  darkness. 

Meanwhile  the  boxes  containing  the  clothing  of  the  members  have  been  taken  by  express 
wagons  to  the  Opera  House,  and  are  all  arranged  in  order  in  the  dressing  rooms. 

The  tableaux  generallv  occupy  the  time  up  to  11  o'clock,  after  which  the  characters  are 
permitted  to  mingle  with  the  guests  upon  the  dancing  floor,  under  no  restrictions  save  that  of 
keeping  their  individuality  unrevealed. 

Precisely  at  12  o'clock  the  captain's  shrill  whistle  sounds,  and  from  that  moment  they  grad- 
ually disappear,  until  long  before  the  next  hour  strikes  every  one  has  vanished  and  the  mem- 
bers are  mingling  unnoticed  among  the  guests,  save  where  they  are  occassionally  found  explain- 
ing their  absence  for  the  day  to  unsuspecting  wives  or  daughters,  with  the  most  unconscionable 
excuses,  and— not  to  put  too  fine  a  point  upon  it— lies. 

They  have  merely  slipped  into  the  dressing  rooms,  exchanged  their  costume  for  ordinary 
everyday  dress,  and  long  before  the  ball  closes  in  the  wee  sma'  hours  the  express  wagons  have 
carried  the  entire  paraphernalia  bick  to  the  den  and  packed  it  away  securely.  When  the 
actor  gets  up  in  the  morning  it  is  all  over,  as  fleeting  and  illusive  as  the  dreams  from  which  he 

The  Mardis  Gras  of  the  six  coming  years  will  fall  on  the  following  days : 
1885 ... .  February  17.  1888 ....  February  14. 

t;  1886.... March  9.  1889...  March  5. 

^  1887. . .  .February 23.  1890. . .  .February  18.  ) 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  223 


CHAPTER   XXV.-ALL  SAINTS'   DAY. 


DECORATING    THE    TOMBS     OF    THE     ILLUSTRIOUS    DEAD    BURIED    IN   THE    NEW    ORLEANS 
CEMETERIES— Mo  DONOGH's    TOMB. 

The  day  of  All-Saints,  Hallowmas  or  All  Hallows  has  from  very  early  times  been  celebratPd 
as  a  festival  by  the  church.  In  pa.an  times,  before  the  Christian  era,  thTpeoplLf  various 
nations^  particularly  those  of  the  Celtic  race,  were  accustomed  to  celebrate  the  1st  of  May 
when  the  earth  was  crowned  with  flowers,  and  the  1st  of  November,  when  the  fall  of  the  eS 
heralded  the  death  of  nature.  The  church,  wisely  choosing  rather  to  adopt  and  uMlize  thesf 
popular  festivals  than  to  destroy  them,  incorporated  them  into  the  calendar 

The  death  ot  the  flowers  and  the  approaching  dissolution  of  nature  as  represented  in  the 
vegetab  e  kingdom,  naturally  suggests  to  a  poetical  fancy  the  death  of  friends  and  To4d  ones 
andso  the  1st  of  November  became  a  day  when  the  dead  were  remembered  and  thel  tombs 
adorned  with  the  floral  offerings  of  the  living.  *^^ 

The  cemeteries  of  New  Orleans  are  in  many  respects  different  from  those  of  mo'^t  other 
countries  and  cities.    Built  in  a  marsh  the  city  has  neither  cellars  for  the  houses  ofX  IMng 

Z'2Z]:';t^^''-  ^7,^^^.^^^^^^-^----tbebuiItabovetheground.andsiTO^^ 
with  the  city  of  the  hvmg  is  the  city  of  the  dead.    In  fact,  the  older  cemeteries  such  as  the  St 

^hX'  ''r^''^''''T  '"'  ^''^^^  which  were  once  the  outskirts  of  the  town  are  no^t 
tit  tw  h  i'  P^/^l^!^^Pf  ts  of  the  city,  and  every  consideration  of  public  sanitat  on  demlnds 
that  they  be  closed  against  further  interments.  '^"ituuts 

The  old  cemeteries  of  New  Orieans  are  rich  in  engraved  annals  which  include  neariy  all 
SnLth"  TTfr'''  the  founding  and  growth  of  the  city.  Inscriptions  in  the  French 
Spanish  and  Enghsh  tongues  show  the  successive  nationalities  that  have  dominated  th^ 
ancient  municipality,  while  the  Latin  epitaph  marks  the  last  resting-place  of  tTe  pr^st  o^ 
prelate,  representing  the  Church  which  belonged  to  every  age  and  to  which  all  nLona  ities 
were  as  one,  since  people  of  all  races  were  its  children.  "ciuonaiities 

The  weather  is  always  bright,  crisp  and  delightful.    On  All  Saints'  Day  that  is  proverbial 
ind  a  rainy  November  1st  is  almost  unknowTi.  pioveroiai, 

>f  msTe^l^Tffl^!''T''""^^^^^^  of  the  most  poetic  and  tender  traditions 

V^A  ^l  T^'  I  ^""^^"^  *°'^'  °^  ^^'^  ^'^^  ^^5^  ^^  November,  has  from  time  immemorial 
^osedal  her  places  of  toil  or  trade  and  gone  forth  by  thousands  and  hundreds  of  thoTsands 

^ew  Orleans  m  November,  flowers  in  the  fields,  on  the  walls  and  in  the  hedges,  wild  and  tame 
ZT.l  r'r  T^'l^^'-/''^  '^  *^^^  P^^^^-1- ^-^ ''  -  -^  ^  all  the^e  flowers  gathered 
hP^/Tn     .     r^?^'^''^''^^  P"""^  ^^"^^^°'  ^^^  '''  °"t  t^  decorate  the  graves  of  the 

:nd  beantff^f  .-if ''''  77  ''T  ?"  """"  ""'^^""^  ^^  ^  ^^^^^'  ^«^^^»^  ^^'^  ^^  f^-^^^-t  flowers 
.^d  beautiful  children.  And  all  this  is  sincere.  No  idle  sentimentality  about  it;  but  each  one 
vho  bears  flowers  has  some  memory  of  cherished  kindred  to  hold  sacred  ank  beautify  ^th 
lowers,  as  has  been  the  custom  here  for  generations  out  of  mind  oeauury  witn 

Avast,  flat  field,  with  trees  here  and  there,  some  stately  and  venerable  oaks  with  mos« 
r.T/  Tl  ''  he  ground;  a  field  of  tombs,  withlanes  and  avenues,  a  painful  monoto^oJ 
ounded  sepulchres  that  constantly  reminded  one  of  the  white  covered  wagons  in  a  great  camp 
or  the  dead  are  buried  above  ground  here,  laid  in  tiers  inside  these  great  white  wf  Uncovers 
hat  dot  he  vast  level  field  of  green  grass  and  mossy  oaks  and  orange  trees.  The  floraf  offering 
re  mostly  immortelles  wrought  into  anchors,  harps,  crosses  and  cro'wns,  and  other  emblemS 
gures.    A  very  pretty  design  represents  a  sickle  embracing  a  sheaf  of  wheat  which  it  has  cut 


224  HISTORICAL  SKETCH    BOOK. 

down  Of  fresh  flowers,  white  chrysanthemums  are  used  in  great  numbers  and  with  beautiful 
effrt'    The  large  trumpet  flowers  of  the  white  dotura  are  also  seen  in  numbers 

A  sin^laTpretty  si^   as  you  enter  this  home  of  the  dead  is  that  of  a  heavdy  laden  orange 
Asinguiarjyyi«uty  aK  j  and  monotonous  tombs.    The  apples  of 

^ZVZ?:XZl::io,Z^Z\ll^^^^^  and  .reen.  tMs  Hfe  against  death  this 
gold  an  tne  r^rv"">  J;  gainst  the  cold  white  tomb,  making  a  marked  and  a  remarkable  picture, 
"^'rethonhrmany?^^^^^^^  ^-veyards  of  New  Orleans  on  All  Saints'  Day 

sitstsUen^nun  or^ste^-  of  charity  in  her  snowy  habit  of  purity,  with  little  orphans  at  her  s.de^ 
These  are  her  flowers;  their  fathers,  mothers,  are  up  the  avenue,  further  on,  resting  with  the 
Ld     I  httle  Xte  s  ts  by,  and  each  person  as  he  enters  the  cemetery  drops  something  mto  it. 
InMetaMe  cl^^^^^^^  marks  where  the  famous  old  Metairie  race-course  once  was, 

the  irmy  of  I^^^^^^^  ^^^«  ^  ^^^^  surmounted  by  a  column  bearing  a  statue  of  Stone- 

wall jXna,^  the  Washington  Artillery  monument  is  crowned  by  a  statue  of  their  old  com- 

"^t:S  a'slhe  gate^strered  the  new  tomb  of  the  Army  of  Tenne.^^^^^^^^^^^         Itis  a  GotMc 

:?:r^:r^=n=r^trr:=^^ 

of  S^nSbertSidney  Johnston,  the  statue  to  be  executed  by  Alexander  Doyle,  the  sculptor. 

The  foUowing  is  the  epitaph  inside  the  vault ;  ^_^^^, 

."  ALBERT  SIDNEY  JOHIsSTON, 

A  General  in  the  Army  of  the  Confederate  States, 
Who  feU  at  Shiloh,  Tenn,,  on  the  6th  day  of  AprU,  1862. 
A  man  tried  in  many  high  offices  and  critical  enterprises 

And  found  faithful  in  all : 

His  life  was  one  long  sacrifice  of  interest  to  conscience. 

And  even  that  life,  on  a  woful  Sabbath, 

Did  he  yield  as  a  holocaust  at  his  country's  need. 

Not  wholly  understood  was  he  while  he  lived, 

*  But  in  his  death  his  greatness  stands  confessed 

i  In  a  people's  tears. 

Resolute,  moderate,  clear  of  envy,  yet  not  wanting 
In  that  finer  ambition  which  makes  men  great  and  pure. 
In  his  honor— impregnable ; 
In  his  simplicity— sublime ; 
No  country  e'er  had  a  truer  son,  no  cause  a  nobler  champion ; 
,        i  No  people  a  bolder  defender,  no  principle  a  purer  victim 

i  Than  the  dead  soldier. 

His  fame,  consigned  to  the  keeping  of  that  time  which 

Happily  is  not  so  much  the  tomb  of  virtue  as  its  shnne. 

Shall,  in  the  years  to  come,  fire  modest  worth  to  noble  ends. 

In  honor  now,  our  Great  Captain  rests  : 

A  bereaved  people  mourn  him  ; 

Three  commonwealths  proudly  claim  him  ; 

And  History  shall  cherish  him  among  those  choice  spirits  who. 

Holding  their  conscience  unmixed  with  blame. 

Have  been,  in  aU  conjunctures,  true  to  themselves. 

Their  people  and  their  God  I 

His  Statue  surmounts  this  structure, 

Erected  by  the  Ass'n  Army  of  Tenn.,  La.  Div.,  C.  S.  A., 

To  his  Memory  and  in  Honor  of  their  Brave  Comrades  who  fell  with  Him, 

And  in  the  Cause  he  fought  for. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  225 

On  a  block  of  stone  near  the  entrance  is  to  stand  in  marble  an  orderly  sergeant  ••  callin<.  tlie 
S'ociation  '      '  "    '""''  "'  ™""'  '"''"■'"'  **''*^  "^'^  t"^  "--^^  omfbatUes  of  tte 

,h»  ^^  ""t™™*  o'  *e  vault  is  surmounted  by  a  trophy  of  arms  and  Sags,  such  as  aonears  on 

to  J  l^  .'""""■^  "'  "*""""  J''''^''  '^  '»'•  °'  taterest.    It  has  a  number  of  fine 

rr:/orzt^a;traror;f;isftr^°"^-  ^^-  --  --^""^  —  -"  -t  ^h: 

'        StMStetrar^Sra-^^^^^^^^^^^ 

"oZi^frunrn°r;rdre?sr  ^^*"  ^^'^"-'^^  ---  -»-  he'in*:tet;'Lct 

Irad  Ferry,  the  heroic  fireman,  who  lost  his  life  in  saving  that  of  a  ohiiH   is  ^^i^v..  +  a  v 
MenM  marble  column.    He  died  January  4.  ,8Sr,  wbUe  refcr/aSutlrf^'Xnt^ 

The  Bakers'  society  tomb  is  also  in  that  cemetery. 

In  Greenwood,  the  societies  of  the  Swiss,  of  the  Typographers  inaugurated  i„  ras-  ., 
of  the  Association  of  Alsace  and  Lorraine,  in  ,874,  are  eonspicuous  ^St  th  "SaTt  ful "nd  artltt 
monunient  dedicated  to  the  Confederate  dead,  under  which  sleep  near  five  hunted  so  dte! 
Tn  the  ^X"'  ""  "'"'  "  """"'  """"'^' "'"  ^'"'^  ™*^'''  "^  °-  °'  the  toesuotb" 
.,-  /."°°f*'"^''°'ed  characters  whose  tombs  were  noticed  were  Mayor  A  D  Grossman  who 
died  m  1857,  and  D.  S.  Woodruff,  ex-foreman,  and  Wm.  McLeod,  foreman  of  Miss  ssTnri' m™ 
company  No.  >.  who  lost  their  lives  at  a  Are  on  Natchez  street,  M;rch  >r.854  wS  inThe  hne 

Dan  C.  Byerly,  a  gaUant  soldier  and  journalist,  who  fell  in  one  of  th^  hp^f^/i  ^^r^-  . 
conflicts  Which  grew  out  of  the  bitterness  of  the  day^  of  reconltiucrn,  peaceful^^^^^^^^^ 

th.        K^^.^'-^^^^'"'^-'-'^"  ^^^'^'  ^^  the  cemeteries,  are  seen  almost  in  ^•uxtapo^tTon 
the  tombs  of  Benedics  Van  Pradelles,  an  officer  of  the  Revolution  with  Lafavette  Iho  T.? 
1808  and  of  Paul  Morphy,  the  world's  greatest  chess  player,  who  d"d  in  June  1884  " 

and'somrarmtsStJg::ht'.  '^'"'  *^"'^  ^"  ''  '''''''''''  ^^^^  ^^^^  ^-^^'^^  ^^-"^ed 
..  '^T^^!tl  "^^^^^^^^«  monuments  are  those  of  benovolent  societies,  such  as  the  Portuguese 
erected  m  1848  ;  the  Italian,  in  1857 ;  the  Orleans  Artillery,  the  French  iutual  LXthe  STa' 
\olunteers.  These  tombs  are  large  and  handsome  structures  of  substantiaf  masonry  faced 
with  marble  and  decorated  with  statuary  and  carving.  masonry,  taced 

In  St  Louis  No.  2,  the  various  historic  stratifications  appear  in  strong  contrast,  but  closelv 
of  thTot  J^^^^-.t^-^^f  «-•  J-B.Plauche,  the  friend  of  Gen.  Jackson,  the  Commlndt 
of  the  Orleans  Battalion  m  the  war  of  1812-14,  and  one  of  the  defenders  of  New  Orleans  in  the 
famous  victory  over  the  British,  tells  of  the  early  history  of  the  city.  The  veteran  was  subse- 
quently Lieutenant-Governor  of  the  State. 

Dominique  You,  one  of  Lafltte's  pirates,  another  defender  of  New  Orleans  in  that  samP 
memorable  battle,  sleeps  in  a  plain  brick  tomb  not  far  off.  The  tablet  bears  no  date  but  dTs! 
fi?rof  romln"^  H  ?'  New  Bayard,  the  intrepid  warrior  and  patriot."  His  was  a  hLory 
mil  of  romance  and  strange  adventure. 

Alexander  Milne,  the  philanthropist,  born  in  Scotland,  but  long  a  resident  of  this  citv 
sleeps  under  a  massive  granite  pillar.  He  died  at  the  age  of  94  in  1838,  and  left  a  large  fortune 
to  endow  the  Milne  Asylum  for  orphan  boys  in  New  Orleans 

Francis  Xavier  Martin.  Chief  Justice  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  the  State,  and  author  of  a 
earlvl'iH^r'''"'"' ''  represented  by  a  granite  column.    He  graced  the  Supreme  bench  as 


226  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Pierre  Soule,  Senator  of  the  United  States,  jurist,  diplomat  and  orator,  sleeps  there.  A 
native  of  France,  he  attained  the  highest  distinction  in  Louisiana,  and  he  rests  in  the  bosom  of 
his  adopted  country. 

On  all  hands  are  the  tombs  of  men  who  were  identified  with  the  history  of  the  city  from  the 
earliest  times  to  the  present,  and  to  mention  their  names  would  be  to  fill  a  volume.  A  relic  of 
the  days  of  reconstruction  is  the  tomb  of  Oscar  J.  Dunn,  colored,  Lieut.-Governor  of  the  State 
under  Warmoth. 

Of  Society  tombs  those  of  the  Iberian  Society  erected  in  1848 ;  the  Spanish  Cazadores  erected 
in  1836,  are  most  distinguished. 

St.  Louis,  No.  3,  at  Bayou  Bridge,  contains  many  interesting  tombs.  Those  of  the  Menor- 
quina  Society,  established  in  1859 ;  the  Young  Men's  Benevolent  in  1866  ;  the  Slavonian  in  1876, 
are  noticeable. 

Col.  Charles  D.  Dreux,  one  of  the  first  Southerners  to  give  his  life  for  his  country,  sleeps 
there.    He  fell  at  Bethel,  Va.,  July  5, 1861. 

A  tomb,  bearing  an  inscription  which  tells  that  James  Gallier,  architect,  and  his  wife,  Marie, 
were  lost  at  sea,  Cct.  31,  1866,  w^hen  the  steamship  Evening  Star  foundered  with  all  on  board,  in 
a  hurricane  off  the  coast  of  Florida,  brings  up  a  thrill  of  sympathetic  horror  as  the  dreadful 
event  is  recalled. 

Girod  Cemetery  is  old  and  dilapidated.  It  does  not  bear  the  marks  of  constant  attention 
seen  elsewhere,  but  it  had  many  visitors,  and  its  tombs  are  interesting.  Prominent  is  the  monu- 
ment to  Col.  W.  W.  S.  Bliss,  a  son-in  law  of  Gen.  Taylor,  and  chief  of  staff  of  the  army  com- 
manded by  him  in  the  Mexican  war.  He  survived  all  its  battles  and  died  peacefully.  The 
monument  was  built  by  his  friends  of  West  Point. 

The  monument  of  the  Marine  Association  and  the  splendid  temple  of  the  New  Lusitanos  are 
also  prominent.  Many  colored  societies  have  large  and  weU  constructed  receptacles  for  the 
dead,  but  an  item  of  more  than  ordinary  interest  is  recorded  on  a  marble  tablet  of  a  slave,  an 
old  family  servant.  It  reads  as  follows  :  "  Mammy,  aged  84,  a  faithful  servant.  She  hved  and 
died  a  Christian."  Nothing  could  be  more  simple,  nothing  more  touching.  It  was  a  gleam  of 
light  from  the  days  of  slavery,  showing  tbat  the  ties  of  a  common  humanity  were  not  destroyed 
by  that  institution. 

Lafayette  Cemetery  contains  many  fine  and  historic  tombs. 

Henry  W.  Allen,  the  war  Governor  of  Louisiana,  sleeps  here  beneath  a  lofty  column.    Gen. 
John  B.  ilood  and  Gen.  Harry  T.  Hays,  distinguished  figures  on  the  Southern  side  in  the  civil 
war,  are  there  also,  besides  many  lesser  officers  and  soldiers. 
S.  J.  Peters,  who  died  in  1855,  rests  there. 

Lafayette  No.  2  is  a  new  cemetery  ;  but  prominent  among  its  monuments  are  those  of  the 
French  Society  of  Jefferson,  built  in  1872,  and  that  of  the  Butchers'  Association,  built  in  1868. 
The  last-named  is  very  large,  containing  room  for  eighty  corpses.  It  was  much  visited  by  ladies. 
The  Valence  Street  Cemetery,  better  known  as  the  City  Cemetery  of  Jefferson  City,  is 
situated  at  the  far  end  of  Valence  street.  The  associated  tombs  of  the  cemetery  are:  St. 
Joseph's  sepulchre  of  the  male  and  female  associations  of  the  Sixth  District ;  Jefferson  Lodge 
No.  191,  F.  and  A.  M.;  Pioneer  Steam  Fire  Company  No.  1,  erected  in  1869,  and  Odd  Fellows'  Rest 
of  Helvetia  No.  44.    Both  white  and  colored  use  this  cemetery  as  a  burial  place  for  their  dead. 

St.  Vincent  No.  1  is  comparatively  a  new  cemetery,  and  it  is  one  of  the  most  beautifully- 
arranged  in  the  city.  On  entering  tlie  main  gate  are  seen  on  both  sides  of  the  centre  avenue 
handsome  and  well-kept  tombs,  showing  that  those  who  sleep  within  their  portals  are  well 
remembered.  The  sepulchre  of  the  Society  of  the  Holy  Family,  and  that  of  Altarverein  der  St. 
Heinrichs  Kirch  are  situated  in  this  cemetery. 

There  are  four  cemeteries  m  Algiers— St.  Bartholomew,  St.  Mary,  Olivier,  and  the  Firemen'i 
Charitable  Association  of  the  Fifth  District.  All  Saints'  Day  is  always  observed  over  in  Algiers, 
and  flowers  and  wreaths  are  profusely  strewn  over  the  graves  of  the  dear  departed. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  227 

o.^^t'  ^^^*!^°^^f  ^^  Cemetery  occupies  the  square  bounded  by  De  Armas.  Verret  Lapevronse 
TmI^Vs  onthr  '  'f  -H  ''.'  °^'"'  cemetery  in  Algiers,  having  beer;  esrabUshedrS 
St.  MaiT  s  on  the  opposite  side  of  De  Armas  street,  was  opened  recently  as  a  receptacle  on 
account  of  the  overcrowded  condition  of  St.  Bartholomew  Cemetery  receptacle,  on 

At  the  corner  of  Market  and  Verret  streets  is  situated  the  Olivier  Cemeterv  established 
and  used  by  the  wealthy  and  numerous  family  of  that  name  and  their  descrnrnt^lfc^ve^^^ 
near  y  a  square  of  ground,  surrounded  by  a  high  plank  fence,  which  is  always  kept' n  exceUent 
repair  and  well  whitewashed.  On  the  grounds  there  has  been  a  house  bSyM  SuvTr  and 
his  brother,  m  which  reside  the  keepers  of  the  cemetery.  A  small  chapel  adjoin  t^fa'tar  of 
wh^ch  IS  always  festooned  withflowers.  and  on  either  side  are  the  portLts  ofrmbe/of  thi 

p.o^^^'T'"''  ?"'^"^  ^'^'"''^  ^'  ^^  ^^^'*^"  ^^^""^-  "^as  purchased  but  a  few  years 
ago,  and  as  yet  contains  only  a  few  tombs.  ^ 

In  the  rear  of  the  town  of  Gouldsboro,  which  was  formerly  called  McDonoghville  in  a 
field  near  the  Morgan  Railroad  track,  is  an  empty  sarcophagus,  in  which  once  rerdth^ remains 
of  he  philanthropist  John  McDonogh.  It  is  built  of  marble,  and  is  about  four  feet  high  ten 
^et  long  and  six  feet  wide,  and  is  in  a  good  state  of  preservation,  although  brown  wifwe 
The  remams  were  removed  to  Baltimore  some  years  since,  and  his  tomb  in  that  cityls  said  to  be 
fromthlw'uf.'^''  '\'''""'  ^^^'^^^^^  ^^  ^''''''''  remembrance  for  the  bn  fits  deived 
Srm^tTarl'ctt^^^^^^^^^^  ^^"^^^^^^  -^^^    ^^^  ^--^P^^ons  on  the  tomb  pTot 

On  the  east  front  appears  the  following : 

Sacred  to  the  Memory  of 

of 

JOHN  McDONOGH, 

Bom  in  Baltimore,  State  of  Maryland, 

December  the  29th,  1779  ; 

Died  in  the  Town  of  McDonogh,  State  of  Louisiana. 

October  the  26th,  1850. 

"Written  by  Himself." 

one- of  the  rnitl"!?  ^^.t  "^  Vf ""  '^^^°^^^^'  ^^  *^^  ^^^y  of  New  Orleans,  in  the  State  of  Louisiana, 
one  of  the  Lnited  States  of  America;  the  son  of  John  and  Elizabeth  McDonogh  of  Baltimore 
■n  he  State  of  Maryland,  also  one  of  the  United  States  of  America  ;  awaiting  ii  firm  Ind  fuU 
[he  world  '  ''°''°^^'  ""''  ^'^""^^  ^°^^'  Bedeemer.  and  Master  to  Judge 

Inscription  on  north  side  : 

Rules  for  My  Guidance  in  Life,  1804. 
I' Remember  always  that  labor  is  one  of  the  conditions  of  our  existence 
^^  Time  IS  gold,  throw  not  one  minute  away,  but  place  each  one  to  acconnt. 

Do  unto  all  men  as  you  would  be  done  by. 
•|  Never  put  off  till  to-morrow  what  you  can  do  to-day. 
"  Never  bid  another  do  what  you  can  do  yourself. 
"  Never  covet  what  is  not  your  own. 

••  Never  think  any  matter  so  trivial  as  not  to  deserve  notice. 
"Never  give  out  that  which  does  not  first  come  in. 
"Never  spend  but  to  produce.    * 

"Let  the  greatest  order  regulate  the  transactions  of  your  life 
"  Study  in  your  course  of  life  to  do  the  greatest  possible  amount  of  good."-McDoNoaH, 


228  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Inscription  on  south  side: 

( Continued.) 

"  Deprive  yourself  of  nothing  necessary  to  your  comfort,  but  live  in  an  honorable  simplicity 
and  frugality. 

"  Labor  then  to  the  last  moment  of  your  existence. 

♦'Pursue  strictly  the  above  rules,  and  the  Divine  blessing  and  riches  of  every  kind  will  flow 
upon  you  to  your  heart's  content ;  but  first  of  all,  remember,  that  the  chief  and  great  study  of 
our  life  should  be  to  tend,  by  all  the  means  In  our  power,  to  the  honor  and  glory  of  our 
Divine  Creator.— John  McDonogh. 

"New  Orleans,  March  2nd,  1804." 

"  The  conclusion  at  which  I  have  arrived,  is  that  without  temperance  there  is  no  health  : 
that  without  virtue,  no  order  ;  without  religion,  no  happiness ;  and  that  the  sum  of  our  being  is, 
to  live  wisely,  soberly  and  righteously  " 

There  are  other  graves  in  the  field  where  once  did  rest  the  remains  of  McDonogh.  Some  are 
old  and  dilapidated,  and  some  well  kept. 

In  Gretna  there  is  the  Cemetery  of  William  Tell  Hook  and  Ladder  Company.  This  cemetery 
was  first  made  a  resting  place  for  the  dead  in  1858,  and  each  year  the  graves  are  decorated 

with  care.  ^       i.    * 

The  Bisbee  graveyard,  as  it  was  once  known,  is  the  oldest  in  Gretna,  and  was  named  out  of 
respect  to  the  memory  of  Judge  D.  W.  F.  Bisbee,  who  is  buried  there.  It  has  recently  been  pur- 
chased by  the  Catholics,  and  called  after  St.  Joseph. 

The  National  Cemetery  at  Chalmette  is  in  charge  of  the  Quartermaster's  Department. 

This  beautiful  resting-place  of  the  dead,  is  situated  on  the  left  bank  of  the  Mississippi  River, 
a  little  over  one  mile  below  the  Jackson  Barracks.  The  ground  was  donated  by  the  city  in  1865, 
and  was  laid  out  by  Captain  Chas.  Barnard. 

There  are  12,192  graves— 6,913  of  these  are  classed  as  "Known."  and  5,279  are  marked  as 
"Unknown." 

The  following  named  States— twenty-three  in  number— have  contributed  their  quota  to 
swell  the  grand  aggregate  :  Maine,  631,  New  Hampshire,  120,  Vermont,  294,  Massachusetts,  446. 
Rhode  Island,  69,  Connecticut,  233,  New  York,  626,  New  Jersey.  8,  Pennsylvania,  41,  Maryland,  24, 
Ohio,  108,  Indiana,  265,  Illinois,  293,  Iowa,  149.  Michigan,  226,  Wisconsin,  240,  Minnesota,  14,  Ken- 
tucky, 22,  Tennessee,  14,  Missouri,  151,  Kansas,  3,  Louisiana,  830,  and  Texas,  19. 

The  Regular  Army,  39i5,  Navy,  233,  Quartermaster's  Department,  64,  Commissioned  Officers, 
67,  U.  S.  Army,  1.670,  colored,  miscellaneous  known,  167. 

The  beautiful  custom  of  decorating  the  Soldiers'  Graves,  takes  place  annually  on  the  30th 

day  of  Mav.  , 

The  monument  in  the  cemetery  was  donated  by  Joseph  A.  Merves  Post,  No.  1,  G,  A.  R.,  bemg 
turned  over  to  the  cemetery  authorities  in  1883. 


GUlt)E  to  NEW   ORLEANS.  ^29 


CHAPTER   XXVI.-ST.  JOHN'S  EVE-VOUDOUISM. 

THE  VOUDOU  MEETING  ON  LAKE  PONTCHARTRAIN  -THE  QUEEN  OF  THE  VOUDOUS,  AND 
THEIR  QUEER  RELIGIOUS  DANCES. 

St.  John's  eve  is  specially  devoted  to  the  worship  of  the  Voudous.  It  is  on  that  night 
that  they  congregate  at  some  secret  meeting-place  on  Lake  Pontchartrain— changed  from  time 
to  time— and  hold  their  religious  dances  and  impious  ceremonies  of  worshipping  the  prince 
of  evil,  for,  in  their  theology,  the  devil  is  God,  and  it  is  to  him  they  pray.  Voudouism  is  rapidly 
dying  out,  even  among  the  negroes  of  Louisiana,  but,  for  all  that,  a  negro  is  frightened  to  death 
if  he  is  "hoodooed,"  and  with  reason.  The  secret  magic  of  the  Youdous  was  nothing  more  than 
an  acquaintance  with  a  number  of  subtle  vegetable  poisons,  which  they  brought  with  them  from 
Africa,  and  which  caused  their  victims  to  fade  gradually  away,  and  die  of  exhaustion. 

Every  St.  John's  eve  thousands  of  persons  visit  the  lake  ends  in  the  hope  of  commg  upon 
the  Voudous,  but  few  succeed  in  finding  them. 

On  St.  John's  eve,  last  year,  the  night  was  dark,  and  on  the  eastern  sky  hung  a  black  cloud, 
from  which  now  and  then  burst  flashes  of  lightning,  which  lit  up  the  road,  the  bayou  and  the 
surrounding  swamp  with  a  lurid  glow,  in  fit  introduction  to  what  was  to  follow.  The  scene  on 
the  lake  coast  from  Spanish  Fort  to  MUneburg,  was  one  which  cannot  easily  be  forgotten.  All 
along  the  shore,  at  intervals  scarcely  more  than  300  yards,  groups  of  men  and  women  could  be 
seen  standing  around  blazing  pine-knot  fires,  their  dark  copper-colored  faces  weirdly  gilded 
by  the  red  flames  and  their  black  forms  thus  illuminated  appearing  gigantic  and  supernatural 
against  the  opaque  background  of  the  lake  and  sky  on  one  side  and  the  mystical  darkness  just 
tinged  with  starlight  of  the  seemingly  limitless  swamps  on  the  other.  Some  of  the  men  were 
stripped  to  the  waist,  and  all  were  gesticulating  with  animation,  or  seemed  to  be  in  waiting  for 
something.  Along  the  road  at  various  intervals  were  negresses  standing  by  small  tables  where 
gombo  and  coffee  were  dispensed. 

Between  Spanish  Fort  and  Mihieburg,  the  shore  was  crowded  wifh  negroes,  who  seemed  to 
be  enjoying  themselves  laughing,  talking  and  romping  like  children,  but  the  music  which  came 
from  the  shanty  where  a  dance  had  evidently  been  started,  sounded  like  that  of  an  ordinary 
negro  ball. 

As  soon  as  the  purlieus  of  Milneburg  were  left,  the  way  down  the  Lake  shore  toward  the  now 
brilliant  bonfires  was  dicBcult,  for  in  the  darkness  one  had  to  pick  his  steps.  Between  the 
Lake  on  the  one  side  and  the  swamp  on  the  other  there  was  a  belt  of  land  not  more  than  fifty 
feet  across,  and  in  some  places  this  was  diminished  by  more  than  half,  by  the  encroachment  of 
Pontchartrain's  waves.  There  was  no  roadway,  but  simply  a  devious  by-path  which  wended 
around  stumps  and  mud  holes  in  a  most  irregular  manner. 

After  some  ten  minutes'  walk  there  came  to  the  ear  the  faintest  sound  as  of  a  drum  beaten 
rhythmically,  and  on  listening  a  chorus  of  voices  could  be  heard. 

Behind  the  hundreds  of  small  watchfires  along  the  shore  twinkled  like  stars  in  the  distance, 
and  where  they  were  built  upon  little  points  of  land  they  were  reflected  i;i  the  water  so  brightly 
the  duplication  added  a  peculiar  weirdness  to  the  scene. 

Pursuing  the  same  path  was  a  party  of  Creole  negroes,  the  men  carrying  musical  instruments 
and  the  women  laden  with  coffeepots  and  tin  buckets  of  gombo.  They  were  not  inclined  to 
talk,  and  when  asked  where  the  Voudou  dance  was  to  take  place  answered  that  they  knew 
nothing  about  it. 

Passing  around  a  little  willow  copse  that  grew  almost  in  the  lake  there  opened  to  the  view 
a  scene  J)ot€  would  have  delighted  to  paint.    The  belt  of  land  here  was  about  100  feet  in  width, 


230  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

and  In  the  middle  of  this  little  plot  was  burning  a  huge  fire.  Grouped  around  it  were  some  thirty 
or  forty  negroes,  the  rising  and  falling  of  the  firelight  giving  a  grotesqueness  t  >  their  figures  that 
was  as  curi"ous  as  it  was  entertaining.  Their  shadow^,  stretched  out  over  the  rushes  and  reeds 
of  the  swamp,  and  their  faces  brought  out  in  effect  looked  wild  enough  to  satisfy  any  lover  of 
the  wild  and  mysterious. 

Built  half  over  the  swamps  and  half  on  the  land  stood  a  small  hut  or,  to  give  it  all  its 
pretensions,  a  house  of  two  rooms.  It  was  like  most  of  the  fishermen's  cabins  seen  along  the 
Lake,  but  rather  more  roomy. 

Through  the  open  window  there  came  quite  a  flood  of  light,  and  a  song  was  heard  chanted, 
it  seemed  by  some  eight  or  ten  voices. 

It  was  about  three-quarters  of  a  mile  below  Milneburg,  and  the  place  was  appropriately 
selected,  for  certainly  no  more  dismal  and  dreary  spot  could  have  been  found.  Citywards  the 
swamp,  with  its  funereal  cypress,  stretched  in  gloomy  perspective,  while  in  front,  lapping  the 
rushes  and  stumps,  the  ripples  in  the  Lake  came  in,  the  water  appearing  almost  black  from  the 
vegetable  matter  held  in  suspension. 

Near  the  fire  were  two  or  three  tables  laden  with  gombo  and  dishes  of  rice,  while  on  the 
embers  hissed  pots  of  coffee. 

When  the  group  near  them  was  approached  they  gave  evidence  of  uneasiness  at  the  appear- 
ance of  the  party,  there  being  no  white  persons  present. 

A  few  words  in  Creole  patois  made  the  negroes  feel  more  at  ease,  and  when  a  cup  of  coffee 
was  purchased  they  ceased  to  look  suspiciously  on  the  new  arrivals. 

The  music  in  the  house  began  with  renewed  vigor  at  this  time,  and  there  was  by  general 
consent  a  movement  thither.    It  was  nearly  midnight. 

The  wide  gallery  on  the  front  was  soon  thronged,  and  it  was  noticed  but  few  were  allowed 
to  enter  the  large  room  which  formed  the  eastern  side  of  the  building.  The  door  was  closed, 
and  a  stout  young  negress  guarded  it  on  the  inside. 

A  few  words  from  Chief  Bachemin  in  Creole  proved  an  open  sesame,  and  the  door  was  opened 
just  wide  enough  to  permit  the  party  to  enter  one  at  a  time.  With  their  entrance  the  music 
ceased  and  all  eyes  were  turned  upon  the  new  comers. 

A  bright  mulatto  man  came  forward  and,  in  good  English,  said  that  if  the  gentlemen  desired 
to  remain  they  would  have  to  obey  the  orders  that  had  Been  given.  It  would  spoil  the  charm 
if  they  did  not  take  off  their  coats. 

Accordingly  the  coats  were  removed. 

Seated  on  the  floor  with  their  legs  crossed  beneath  them  were  about  twenty-five  negro  men 
and  women,  the  men  in  their  shirt  sleeves,  and  the  women  with  their  heads  adorned  with  the 
traditional  head  handkerchief  or  Hgnon. 

In  the  centre  of  the  floor  there  was  spread  a  small  tablecloth,  at  the  corners  of  which  two 
tallow  candles  were  placed,  being  held  in  position  by  a  bed  of  their  own  grease. 

As  a  centre-piece,  on  the  cloth,  there  was  a  shallow  Indian  basket  filled  with  weeds,  or,  as 
thej  csdl  them,  hej'bes.  Around  the  basket  were  diminutive  piles  of  white  beans  and  corn,  and 
just  outside  of  these  a  number  of  small  bones,  whether  human  or  not  could  not  be  told.  Some 
curiously  wrought  bunches  of  feathers  were  the  next  ornamentations  near  the  edge  of  the 
cloth,  and  outside  of  all  several  saucers  with  small  cakes  in  them. 

The  only  person  enjoying  the  aristocratic  privilege  of  a  chair  was  a  bright  cafe  au  lait  woman 
of  about  forty-eight,* who  sat  in  one  corner  of  the  room  looking  on  the  scene  before  her  with  an 
air  of  dignity.  She  said  but  little,  but  beside  her  two  old  and  wrinkled  negresses  whispered  to 
her  continually.  She  was  of  extremely  handsome  figure,  and  her  features  showed  that  she  was 
not  of  the  class  known  in  old  times  as  field  hands.  She  was  evidently  raised  about  the  planta-  ^ 
tion  house.  She  was  neatly  attired  in  a  blue  calico  dotted  with  white,  and  on  her  head  a  brill- 1 
iant  tignon  was  gracefully  tied. 

On  inquiry  it  was  learned  that  her  name  was  Malvina  Latour,  and  that  she  was  the  queen. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  231 

As  soon  as  the  visitors  had  squatted  down  in  their  places  against  the  wall  an  old  negro  man, 
whose  wool  was  white  with  years,  began  scraping  on  a  two-stringed  sort  of  a  fiddle.  The  instru- 
ment had  a  long  neck,  and  its  body  was  not  more  than  three  inches  in  diameter,  being  covered 
with  brightly  mottled  snake  skin.  This  was  the  signal  to  two  young  mulattoes  beside  him,  who 
commenced  to  beat  with  then-  thumbs  on  little  drums  made  of  gourds  and  covered  with  sheepskin. 

These  tam-tams  gave  forth  a  short,  hollow  note  of  peculiar  sound,  and  were  fit  accompani- 
ments of  the  primitive  fiddle.  As  if  to  inspire  those  present  with  the  earnestness  of  the  occa- 
sion, the  old  darkey  rolled  his  eyes  around  the  room  and  then,  stamping  his  foot  three  times, 
exclaimed:  ^  A  present  commencez  ! '''' 

Rising  aad  stepping  out  toward  the  middle  of  the  floor  a  tall  and  sinewy  negro  called  the 
attention  of  all  to  him.    He  looked  a  Hercules,  and  his  face  was  anything  but  attractive. 

Nervous  with  restrained  emotion,  he  commenced  at  first  in  a  low  voice,  which  gradually 
became  louder  and  louder,  a  song,  one  stanza  of  which  ran  as  follows  : 

Mall^  couri  dan  deser, 
Malle  marche  dan  savane, 
Malle  marche  su  piquan  dore, 
Malle  oir  9a  ya  di  moin  ! 

Sange  moin  dan  I'abitation  ci  la  la  ? 

Mo  gagnain  soutchien  la  Louisiana, 

Malle  oir  <ja  ya  di  moin  ! 
Which  can  be  translated  as  follows  : 

I  will  wander  into  the  desert, 
I  will  march  through  the  prairie, 
I  will  walk  upon  the  golden  thorn— 
Who  is  there  who  can  stop  me  ? 

To  change  me  from  this  plantation? 
I  have  the  support  of  Louisiana— 
Who  is  there  who  can  resist  me  ? 

As  he  sang  he  seemed  to  grow  in  stature  and  his  eyes  began  to  roll  in  a  sort  of  wild 
frenzy.    There  was  ferocity  in  every  word,  boldness  and  defiance  in  every  gesture. 

Keeping  time  to  his  song  the  tam-tams  and  fiddle  gave  a  weird  and  savagely  monotonous 
accompaniment  that  it  was  easy  to  believe  was  not  unlike  the  savage  music  of  Africa. 

When  it  became  time  for  all  to  join  in  the  refrain  he  waved  his  arms,  and  then  from 
every  throat  went  up  : 

"  Malle  oir  (^a  ya  di  ynoin  !  " 

He  had  hardly  ended  the  fourth  stanza  before  two  women,  uttering  a  loud  cry,  joined 
their  leader  on  the  floor,  and  these  three  began  a  march  around  the  room.  As  the  song 
progressed,  an  emaciated  young  negro  stepped  out,  and,  amid  the  shouts  of  all,  fell  in  behind 
the  others. 

The  last  addition  to  the  wild  dancers  was  most  affected  of  all,  and  in  a  sort  of  delirium  he 
picked  up  two  of  the  candles  and  marched  on  with  them  in  his  hand.  When  he  arrived  opposite 
the  queen  she  gave  him  something  to  drink  out  of  a  bottle.  After  swallowing  some  he  retained 
a  mouthful  which,  with  a  peculiar  blowing  sound,  he  spurted  in  a  mist  from  his  lips,  holding  the 
candle  so  as  to  catch  the  vapor.  As  it  was  alcohol  it  blazed  up,  and  this  attempt  at  necromancy 
was  hailed  with  a  shout. 

Then  commenced  the  regular  Voudou  dance  with  all  its  twistings  and  contortions.  Two  of 
the  women  fell  exhausted  to  the  floor  in  a  frenzy  and  frothing  at  the  mouth,  and  the  emaciated 
young  man  was  carried  out  of  the  room  unconscious, 


232  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXVIL— ROWING  IN  LOUISIANA. 

ITS    INCEPTION    AND    HISTORY — THE    OLD    CLUBS    AND   WHAT    BECAME    OF    THEM— FAMOUS 
REGATTAS    OF    HALF   A   CENTURY    AGO. 

The  first  rowing  club  of  New  Orleans  was  organized  nearly  half  a  century  ago.  It  was 
composed  of  many  of  the  best  young  men  of  the  time,  but  few  of  whom  are  left  by  the  ravager 
Death.  The  late  Mr.  Joseph  Walton  was  elected  president,  and  a  boat-house  was  erected  on  the 
New  Basin,  about  the  spot  where  the  Magnolia  Bridge  now  stands.  The  first  boat,  the  "  Wave" 
by  name,  was  presented  to  the  club  by  Mr.  J.  B.  Walton,  who  brought  her  from  New  York,  and 
in  honor  of  her  the  club  received  the  name  of  the  Wave  Boat-Club.  This  boat  was  one  of  the 
then  fashionable,  sharp,  deep,  gunwale-rigged  gigs,  and  had  been  winner  of  a  number  of  races 
in  the  waters  about  New  York.  What  a  contrast  there  is  between  the  racing  gig  of  that  time 
and  the  needle-like  "  shell "  of  the  present  1 

The  boats  were  generally  six-oared,  and  rowed  long  ash  oars,  nowadays  classed  as  "sweeps." 
Built  of  white  pine  or  cedar  they  were  usually  about  40  feet  in  length,  from  48  to  54  inches  beam 
and  of  a  model  somewhat  resembling  a  plank  set  edgewise  with  a  weather-board  laid  flat  on  top 
of  it.  Their  depth  was  generally  about  20  inches,  and  their  sides  flared  out  from  the  keel  to 
gunwale  ;  and,  consequently,  they  drew  almost  as  much  water  as  a  steamboat.  They  were  very 
crank— the  result  of  the  flaring  sides— and  when  the  crews  were  getting  in  the  greatest  care  had 
to  be  observed  to  keep  them  on  an  even  keel.  The  thwarts  were  made  of  oak,  and  they  together 
with  the  entire  inside  of  the  boat  were  scraped  after  its  completion  to  save  weight,  the  looks 
being  the  last  consideration.  The  oars,  too,  w^ere  scraped,  that  they  might  respond  to  the  effort 
of  the  oarsmen  by  bending  almost  double ,  and  they  were  pulled  with  a  jerk  at  the  end  of  the 
stroke,  commonly  called  the  "fisherman's  dig." 

THE  FIRST  CLUB'S  COUESE. 

The  Wave  Club  had,  from  their  boat-house  to  the  lake,  a  splendid  course  of  almost  straight 
water,  nearly  five  miles  in  length,  which  was  always  smooth  and  to  be  depended  upon.  The 
club  owned,  besides  the  "  Wave,"  a  number  of  soft-cushioned,  comfortable  ladies'  barges ;  and 
rowing  parties  and  parties  for  a  row  and  a  dinner,  at  the  then  flourishing  restaurant  at  the  old 
Spanish  Fort,  were  the  order  of  the  day.  Indeed,  the  members  of  this  club  seem  to  have 
devoted  themselves  to  this  sort  of  sport,  as  we  have  no  record  of  their  ever  having  rowed  a 
race. 

It  was  not  for  want  of  competitors  that  the  Wave  Club  never  rowed  a  race,  for  within  a 
year  after  its  formation  a  second,  and  shortly  after  a  third  rowing  club  appeared  on  the  waters 
of  our  city. 

The  Lady  of  Lyons  Club  was  the  second  organization  of  the  kind,  and  was  formed  in  1836. 
They  scorned  the  quiet  waters  of  the  canal,  and  chose  the  mighty  bosom  of  the  Father  of  Waters 
for  their  practice  ground.  Their  boat-house  was  situated  a  few  hundred  yards  above  the  point 
on  the  Algiers  side  of  the  river.  They  had  numerous  boats,  which  were  named  after  the  char- 
acters in  the  famous  play  from  which  the  club  took  its  cognomen. 

The  formation  of  the  Algerine  Club  followed  that  of  the  Lady  of  Lyons  but  a  few  months. 
In  the  course  of  the  next  few  years  four  clubs  made  their  appearance  on  th3  whilom 
untroubled  waters.  The  Knickerbocker,  the  Locofoco,  and  the  Edwin  Forrest  were  succes- 
sively organized,  an  1  a  short  time  after,  the  Washington  Club  joined  the  now  large  fleet  of  boats, 
which  were  seen  each  evening  on  the  placid  surface  of  the  river. 


1     ~  GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  233 

The  first  race  of  which  we  have  been  able  to  find  any  record  is  reported  April  8,  1839.  The 
race  was  rowed  by  professionals,  for  a  stake  of  $1,000,  and  the  course  rowed  was  from  opposite 
the  Second  Municipality,  up  stream  about  two  miles  and  return.  The  contestants  were  the 
Mobile  boat  "Celeste"  and  the  Orleans  boat  "Thos.  M.  Hamblin."  An  immense  crowd  turned 
out  to  see  the  race.  The  day  was  all  that  could  be  wished  for,  and  the  river  was  as  smooth  as 
glass.  A  capital  start  was  had,  both  boats  getting  away  at  the  word,  on  an  even  keel  and  with 
a  steady  stroke,  and  the  race  up  to  the  turoing  stake  was  most  exciting.  The  "  Hamblin  "  took 
a  slight  lead  at  the  start,  but  failed  to  open  water,  and  the  "  Celeste,"  calling  up  a  spurt,  grad- 
ually gained  on  her,  and  at  the  mile  and  a  half  showed  her  nose  in  front,  and  led  her  to  the 
stake  by  about  three-quarters  of  a  length.  Getting  away  from  the  stake  the  "  Celeste  "  had  a 
decided  lead,  but,  the  "  Hamblin's  "  crew  responding  to  the  call  for  a  jump,  she  failed  to  hold 
her  advantage,  and  the  "Hamblin"  passed  her  with  a  rush,  winning  the  race  by  about  a  clear 
length.  New  Orleans  was,  of  course,  jubilant  over  the  success,  and  the  Mobilians  departed 
vowing  vengeance. 

The  second  event  of  which  we  have  record  was  a  regatta  at  Madisonville  on  the 
Tchefunecta  Elver,  August  11th,  1839.  The  extant  reports  of  the  regatta  are  decidedly  meagre, 
but  from  what  we  can  gather  from  the  accounts  of  the  oldest  inhabitants,  we  should  judge  it 
was  rather  an  interesting  affair.  The  boats  "  Pauline,"  "  Gen.  Damas  "  and  "  Thos.  Hamblin  " 
started,  but  the  "Hamblin"  fouled  the  "  Damas"  almost  at  the  start,  and  while  a  war  of  words 
was  passing  between  these  boats,  the  "  Pauline  "  rowed  quietly  over  the  coarse,  winning  the  race 
with  ease.  A  general  row  was  the  unfortunate  result  of  the  day's  unsatisfactory  sport,  in  which 
the  coxswain  of  the  "  Hamblin  "  received  a  severe  mauling. 

The  following  year,  1840,  boating  matters  seem  to  have  taken  a  more  brilliant  start  than  at 
anytime  previously.  Early  in  the  season,  while  the  river  was  stUl  running  high  and  full, of 
driftwood,  a  regatta  was  held  on  it  opposite  Gretna.  The  day— April  26th— was  lovely,  and  the 
crowd.in  attendance  was  the  largest  ever  seen  on  the  banks  of  the  river.  The  prize  was  a 
handsome  solid  silver  cup  in  the  design  of  a  boat  supported  on  rests.  There  were  four  entries— the 
boat  "St.  Nicholas"  of  the  Knickerbocker  Club,  " Gen.  Jackson "  of  the  Locofoco  Club,  the 
'  Gladiator  "  of  the  Edwin  Forrest  Club,  and  the  "Algerine  "  of  the  Algiers  Club.  The  Knicker- 
bockers were  prime  favorites  previous  to  the  start,  and  a  large  amount  of  money  was  staked 
upon  them.  The  start,  which  was  a  poor  one,  was  made  at  half  past  four,  and,  after  a  most 
exciting  race,  the  "Algerine  "  came  home  winners  in  23  minutes,  and  carried  off  the  handsome 
prize.  The  distance  of  the  race  has  not  been  handed  down,  but  it  must  have  been  about  two 
miles. 

This  affair  was  followed  on  the  17th  of  May  by  a  grand  regatta  at  the  Prairie  Cottage,  the 
terminus  of  the  projected  Nashville  Railroad,  situated  on  the  shore  of  the  Lake,  about  thirteen 
niles  from  the  City.  The  prize  was  a  magnificent  silver  goblet  of  a  beautiful  design.  There 
were  four  entries :  the  boat  "  Gladiator,"  Edwin  Forrest  Club  ;  boat  "  Algerine"'  Algerine  Club  ; 
Doat  "Water  Witch,"  Lady  of  Lyons  Club ;  and  the  boat "  Maid  of  Orleans,"  Knickerbocker  Club — 
ill  of  which  put  in  an  appearance  at  the  stake-boat  for  a  start.  The  sky  was  overcast,  but  the 
;  Lake  was  in  a  most  splendid  condition,  An  immense  crowd  went  over  from  the  city  by  special 
1  ;rain.  The  boats  had  an  excellent  send-off,  but  the  "  Maid  of  Orleans  "  had  the  misfortune  to 
Dreak  a  thwart  almost  at  the  start,  and  in  consequence  lost  much  ground.  The  "  Gladiator  "  took 
'  :he  lead,  closely  pressed  by  "  Witch,"  who  was  leading  the  "Algerine  "  by  a  scant  half  length. 
I  rhe  pace  was  hot,  but  there  was  no  material  change  in  the  position  of  the  boats  up  to  the 
■  iuming  stake,  from  which  point  to  the  finish  the  race  was  most  exciting. 

The  boats  were  almost  abreast,  and  rowing  a  spurting  stroke.    It  seemed  for  a  time  as  if 

\  :hey  must  all  cross  the  line  together  ;  but  within  a  few  hundred  yards  of  the  finish  the  splendid 

( ;rew  of  the  "  Water  Witch ' '  let  out  their  reserve  link  and  drew  away  from  their  opponents,  cross- 

Dg  the  score  winners  by  two  lengths,  amid  the  vociferous  cheers  of  their  friends  on  shore. 

^ter  turning  the  stake  the  Knickerbockers  broke  another  thwart  and  lost  an  oar,  and  conse^ 


234  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

quently  brought  up  the  rear,  much  to  the  disgust  of  the  betting  men,  with  whom  they  were  the 
favorites  previous  to  the  start.  This  day's  racing  may  be  considered  as  the  most  successful 
event  of  this  epoch. 

Tiie  name  of  the  Lady  of  Lyons  has  been  handed  down  to  us  as  that  of  the  crack  club  of 
this  period,  and  their  boats,  boat-house,  etc.,  are  cited  as  being  the  finest  in  the  city,  if  not  in 
the  South. 

On  the  Sunday  following  another  regatta  took  place  at  the  Prairie  Cottage,  which,  though 
not  as  great  a  success  as  the  first  one,  drew  a  larger  crowd  to  Lake  shore.    The  Edwin  Forrest, 
Knickerbocker,  Algerine  and  Locofoco  Clubs  participated,  the  inducement  being  a  silver  tea-  i»i 
bowl.    There  was  a  heavy  sea  on  at  the  time  of  the  start,  and  the  boats  found  great  difficulty  in  I;' 
manoeuvering.    A  fair  start  sent  the  boats  out  through  the  roll-irs,  among  which  they  were  at  | 
times  almost  lost  to  view.    The  "  Algerine  "  was  the  first  to  reach  the  stake,  situated  dead  to  wind- 
ward, but  on  the  way  home  she  was  overhauled  by  the  "Gladiator,"  of  the  Forrest  Club,  which 
came  in  winner  by  some  lengths,  in  an  almost  swamped  condition.    The  winners  were  received 
on  shore  with  hearty  cheers  from  the  spectators,  and  the  affair  was  highly  enjoyed  by  all  except 
the  men  in  the  boats. 

THE  EEGATTA  AT  WILLOW  GROVE. 

The  next  event  was  a  regatta,  open  to  all  amateurs,  which  took  place  on  Sunday,  June  31, 
1840,  opposite  the  Willow  Grove  Hotel,  Algiers.  The  prize  was  an  elegant  liquor  stand  and 
salver,  and  the  race  was  to  be  rowed  in  one  and  a  half  mile  heats,  best  two  in  three.  This  called 
forth  the  "Water  Witch,"  of  the  Lady  of  Lyons  Club,  the  "Jackson,"  of  the  Locofoco  Club,  the 
"  Fairy  "  and  the  "  Maid  of  Orleans,"  of  the  Knickerbockers,  and  resulted  in  an  uninteresting 
victory  for  the  "  Water  Witch." 

This  was  the  last  regatta  for  some  time.  The  older  and  more  staunch  organizations  con- 
tinued to  row  in  the  river,  and  though  a  good-natured  spurt  between  some  of  their  different 
boats  was  of  an  almost  nightly  occurrence,  they  did  not  measure  oars  in  a  bona  lide  race  for  the 
space  of  nearly  two  years. 

The  year  1841  seems  to  have  been  barren  of  anything  in  the  way  of  aquatic  sport,  but  the 
papers  of  the  following  spring  contain  a  notice  of  a  regatta  at  Gretna  for  a  silver  prize.  The 
distance  rowed  was  five  miles  and  the  entries  were  confined  to  four-oared  boats.  But  the  result 
of  the  race  is  unknown.  This  was  the  sole  event  of  that  year  and  it  was  followed,  in  the 
spring  of  1843,  May  16th,  by  a  regatta,  of  the  particulars  of  which  we  are  but  little  better 
informed.  The  Algerine  and  the  Lady  of  Lyons  Clubs,  as  well  as  several  other  clubs,  entered, 
and  it  is  recorded  that  the  Lady  of  Lyons  was  victorious,  carrying  off  the  prize,  a  silk  fiag,  upon 
which  the  Algerines  had  set  their  hearts.  This,  too,  was  the  only  affair  of  its  season,  and, 
indeed,  the  last  race  rowed  by  clubs  in  Louisiana  for  many  years. 

The  few  clubs  that  survived  the  dearth  of  interest  had  been  drawn  together  by  associa- 
tion till  they  all  had  their  houses  within  a  stone's  throw  of  each  other,  on  the  batture  of  Algiers; 
and  the  majestic  river,  on  whose  bosom  they  had  entrusted  their  frail  craft  with  implicit  confi- 
dence turned  traitor  at  last,  and  by  a  single  effort  swept  them  from  the  gaze  of  men. 

The  Mississippi,  in  the  spring  of  1844,  began  to  rise  early  and  rapidly,  and  for  more  than 
a  month  rushed  by  the  city  brimful,  threatening  devastation  on  all  sides.  About  the  first  of 
May  the  waters  began  to  decrease,  having  exhausted  their  supply,  and  in  the  course  of  a  few 
weeks  safety  seemed  insured,  when,  on  the  afternoon  of  the  30th  of  May,  the  bank  above  the 
point  at  Algiers  caved  in,  carrying  with  it  a  number  of  small  shanties  and  sheds,  and  some 
cotton.  Below  this  spot  stood,  besides  the  boat-houses,  a  large  salt  and  produce  warehouse 
and  a  tavern,  but  no  one  for  a  moment  supposed  that  these  buildings  situated  some  distance 
from  the  water  were  in  danger.  The  evil  was  thought  to  be  past,  but  that  evening,  at  about 
half -past  nine,  while  most  of  fhe  residents  of  Algiers  were  at  church,  the  alarm  was  sounded 
that  the  whole  point  was  going  down  into  the  river.    In  an  instant  the  church  was  deserted; 


I  •  GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  235 

all  flocked  to  the  river  just  in  time  to  see  the  roof  of  the  old  warehouse  whirled  away  by  the 
angry,  seething  flood,  into  the  darkness  of  the  stormy  night.  "^Vhen  the  morning  broke,  not 
a  vestige  of  the  boat-houses,  or  the  other  buildings  near  them  remained,  and  on  the  spot 
where  they  had  stood,  the  lead  found  nine  fathoms  of  water.  Xotliing  in  any  of  the  buildings 
was  saved,  except  a  canary  in  its  cage,  which  was  rescued  from  the  Algerine  boat-house  by 
Mr.  Clark,  one  of  the  club.  In  the  Lady  of  Lyons  boat-house  was  a  perfecUy-new  race-boat, 
tho  "Claude  Melnotte,"  just  from  the  builder,  and  a  number  of  prizes,  etc.,  all  of  which  were 
irretrievably  lost.  So  the  great  Father  of  Waters  struck  the  death-blow  to  the  rowing 
interests  of  our  city,  and  no  attempt  was  made  to  resuscitate  the  clubs,  or  to  replace  the  lost 
boats,  etc.,  and  after  being  successfully  practiced  for  nearly  ten  years,  rowing  for  pleasure 
became  a  thing  of  the  past,  about  our  shores. 

EIGHTEEN  YEAES   OF  INACTION. 

The  period  of  inaction  in  rowing  matters  lasted  for  more  than  eighteen  years,  during 
which  yachting  took  the  place  of  the  more  athletic  water  sport.  Many  fine  races  were  sailed 
on  the  adjacent  waters  of  our  city,  by  the  large  fleet  of  graceful  yachts  then  in  existence,  but 
of  rowing  there  was  none. 

In  1859  the  long  dormant  spirit  of  rowing  was  awakened,  and  a  few  gentlemen  athletically 
disposed,  joined  their  efforts  and  funds  for  the  formation  of  a  club.  The  result  was  the  appear- 
ance on  Lake  Pontchartrain  of  a  four-oared  barge,  from  the  hands  of  that  veteran  builder,  John 
Mahony,  manned  by  members  of  the  Monona  Boat  Club.  Their  roll  was  not  very  long,  but, 
nevertheless,  they  erected  a  small  but  neat  boat-house  on  the  railroad  wharf,  just  beyond  the 
lighthouse,  so  arranged  that  the  boats  could  be  hoisted  and  lowered  through  a  well-hole  m  the 
floor.  For  some  time  they  held  absolute  sway  over  the  waters  of  the  lake,  but  in  the  winter  of 
1859-60  their  example  was  followed  and  another  club  was  organized,  strangely  called  the  Pioneer 
Club  because  it  was  formed  last.  This  club  also  located  their  headquarters  at  the  lake  end,  and, 
as  may  be  supposed,  was  the  sworn  rival  of  the  other  club  from  its  inception.  Both  clubs 
turned  out  several  boats,  and  it  was  but  a  short  time  ere  the  savage  debate  as  to  the  respective 
merits  of  the  clubs,  encouraged  by  nightly  brushes  between  their  different  boats  made  a 
race  as  indispensable  as  it  was  inevitable.  A  challenge  was  finally  made  and  accepted,  and  the 
30th  of  August  was  the  date  fixed  for  the  race.  The  crews  were  selected  with  great  care,  and 
went  into  training  on  the  old  fashioned  principles  of  rare  beef  and  stale  bread.  The  Pioneers 
ordered  a  boat  from  Pittsburer,  and  John  Mahony  was  intrusted  with  the  building  of  a  gig  for 
the  Mononas,  which  trust  he  discharged  in  a  most  creditable  manner. 

Excitement  in  the  city  ran  high,  and  the  betting  was  exceedingly  active,  but  the  clubs  were 
considered  so  well  matched  that  neither  could  be  called  the  favorite.  They  came  to  the  judge's 
boat  in  splendid  form,  except  that  the  boat  of  the  Pioneers  was  slightly  logged  amidships,  both 
rowing  out-riggers  of  a  rather  nondescript  model,  and  not  at  all  similar  to  each  other. 

The  Monona's  boat,  the  "Delta,"  was  the  first  on  the  course,  her  crew  dressed  in  the  club 
colors,  white  shirts  and  red  caps. 

Their  opponents  appeared  shortly  afterward  dressed  in  blue  jackets  and  white  caps. 

The  course  was  from  the  pier  head  to  a  stake  boat  off  the  pickets  at  Bayou  St.  John,  about 
\%  miles  and  return,  making  in  all  about  two  and  two-third  miles. 

The  "  Delta  "  won  the  race  by  from  eighteen  to  twenty  lengths  in  22  minutes  45  seconds,  the 
"  Pioneer  "  making  23:30.    This  was  the  only  race  rowed  during  this  period. 

Both  clubs  lay  upon  their  oars  for  the  rest  of  the  season,  looking  forward  to  a  meeting  in 
the  summer  of  '61 ;  but  the  war  came  in  the  spring,  and  the  oar  was  deserted  for  the  musket, 
and  instead  of  the  friendly  contest  of  boats  the  members  of  the  clubs  hurried  away  to  face  the 
enemy  on  the  battlefields  of  Virginia.  No  one  cast  a  thought  on  the  boathouses  or  boats— they 
were  left  to  whomsoever  might  take  possession.    The  great  struggle  engrossed  the  attention  of 


236  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 

a]l,  and  again  the  rowing  interests  of  Louisiana  disappeared  under  force  of  circumstances. 
When  the  war  was  over,  other  things  than  boating  had  to  be  thought  of— for  the  pocket  was 
empty  and  the  storeroom  bare.  And  then,  too,  many  of  the  old  members  had  fallen  in  battle.  All 
minds  turned  to  rebuilding  their  ruined  fortunes,  and  rowing  was  never  mentioned,  even  if 
thought  of. 

So  it  remained  until  the  spring  of  1869,  when,  one  April  day,  a  little  white  yawl  was  launched 
on  the  old  Bayou  St.  John,  in  which  was  the  nucleus  of  a  new  era.  Within  a  few  days  following 
her  advent  a  rowing  club  was  suggested,  and  the  project  was  so  eagerly  pursued  that  in  the  first 
days  of  May  a  meeting  of  about  seventy  of  the  best  young  men  in  the  city  resolved  itself  Into 
the  now  flourishing  St.  John  Rowing  Club. 

The  inauguration  of  the  St.  John  Club,  the  formation  of  the  Pelican  Club,  and  subsequently 
of  the  Orleans,  Riversides  and  Howard  Clubs,  brings  us  down  to  the  celebrated  regatta  of 
Sept.  14th,  1874,  which  occurred  at  Carrollton  at  the  same  minute  that  the  bloody  conflict  was 
going  on  between  the  police  and  citizens  on  the  levee,  and  which  resulted  in  nought  but  disputes 
and  recriminations  among  the  participants,  and  was  followed  almost  immediately  by  the  disso- 
lution of  the  Louisiana  State  Rowing  Association,  under  whose  auspices  it  was  given. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  237 


CHAPTER  XXVIII.-STEAMBOAT  RACES  ON  THE  MISSISSIPPI. 

FAST    TIME    ON   THE   MISSISSIPPI— THE   BEST   RECORD    TO     ST.     LOUIS    AND    CINCINNATI— 
THE    FAMOUS    CONTESTS    BETWEEN    THE    "  LEE"     AND     "NATCHEZ." 

"  Back  in  the  thirties,"  is  often  referred  to  by  old  boatmen  as  the  period  when  steamboat 
races,  either  with  each  other  or  against  time,  were  most  exciting.  There  being  no  parallel 
Imes  of  railroad,  passengers  depended  on  steamboats  for  rapid  transit,  and  the  boat  that  could 
make  the  quickest  time  in  her  particular  trade  was  the  most  popuiar  with  fie  traveling  public. 
Racmg  on  the  rivers  was  so  common  an  occurrence  as  to  attract  the  attention  of  only  those  who 
happened  to  be  on  board  the  contesting  boats,  except  when  one  or  both  lowered  the  record  of 
previous  performances.  The  runs  against  time  were  usually  to  test  a  boat's  capacity  for  speed, 
and  by  tois  means  improvements  were  suggested  from  time  to  time  by  which  greater  speed 
was  continuaUy  being  obtained,  until  the  building  of  a  railroad  rendered  great  speed  unne- 
cessary. 

The  quickest  time  ever  made  from  New  Orleans  to  Cincinnati  was  5  days  and  18  hours,  in 
1843,  by  the ''Duke  of  Orleans."  The  "Diana"  made  a  quick  trip  2  years  later,  but  no  farther 
effort  to  make  fast  time  was  made  by  any  steamboat  till  the  "  Charles  Morgan  "  in  June  1877 
left  New  Orleans  24  hours  later  than  the  "Robert  Mitchell,"  passed  the  latter  at  Hawesville,  and 
made  the  time  to  Cincinnati  in  6  days  and  11  hours,  having  made  42  landings  and  lost  33^  hours 
In  getting  through  the  canal  at  Louisville.  In  April  of  the  same  year  the  "  Thompson  Dean  " 
made  the  run  in  6  days  and  19  hours,  having  lost  14  hours  in  the  canal  and  17  hours  at  way  land- 
ings. The  "  R.  R.  Springer,"  in  1881,  came  through  from  New  Orleans  to  Cincinnati  in  5  days,  12 
hours  and  45  minutes'  running  time,  which  was  the  quickest  made  since  the  trip  of  the  "  Duke 
of  Orleans."  Her  best  time  was  made  while  in  the  Mississippi  river.  From  the  time  she 
reached  the  mouth  of  the  Ohio  until  she  arrived  at  Cincinnati  her  speed  decreased.  She  con- 
sumed 22  hours  and  5  minutes  more  time  from  New  Orleans  to  Cairo  than  did  the  "  R.  E.  Lee" 
m  1870.  In  March,  1881,  the  "  WiU  S.  Hays  "  made  the  run  in  6  days.  17  hours  and  10  minutes  from 
port  to  port,  having  made  51  landings  to  discharge  nearly  3,000  packages,  and  met  with  several 
unusual  detentions. 

_  To  illustrate  further  the  idea  which  initiates  this  article,  that  speed  has  been  steadily 
mcreasing  where  speed  was  an  object,  it  may  be  mentioned,  that  in  1817  the  "Enterprise" 
made  the  trip  from  New  Orleans  to  Louisville  in  25  days,  2  hours  and  4  minutes,  and  the 

Washmgton  "  in  25  days.  Two  years  later  the  "  Shelly  "  made  it  in  20  days,  4  hours  and  20 
mmutes.  In  1828  the  "Paragon  "  went  up  in  18  days  and  10  hours.  Within  the  next  five  or  six 
years  the  advancement  in  speed  was  more  rapid,  as  the  "  Tecumseh,"  in  1834,  was  only  8  days 
and  4  hours  from  port  to  port.  Three  years  later  the  "  Sultana  "  made  the  run  in  5  days  and  15 
hours,  and  the  "  Express  "  in  6  days  and  15  hours.  In  1842  the  "  Ed.  Shippen  "  was  claimed 
to  have  covered  the  distance  in  5  days  and  14  hours,  which  time  was  not  beaten  till  1849,  when 
tbe  '  Sultana  "  cut  it  down  to  5  days  and  12  hours,  and  this  was  again  cut  down  by  the  "Bos- 
tona,"  in  1851,  to  5  days  and  8  hours,  and  further  reduced  by  the  "  Belle  Key,"  the  next  year  to 
4  days  and  20  hours,  and  by  the  "Reindeer  "in  1858  to  4  days,  19  hours  and  45  minutes,  the 

Jichpse  "  to  4  days,  9  hours  and  31  minutes,  and  the  "  A.  L.  Shotwell"  to  4  days,  9  hours  and 
19  minutes.  In  1838  the  steamer  "  Diana "  received  from  the  post-office  department  of  the 
United  States  a  prize  of  $500  in  gold,  which  had  been  offered  to  the  first  boat  that  would  make 
the  run  from  New  Orleans  to  Louisville  inside  of  six  days.  Her  time  was  5  days,  23  hours  and 
15  minutes. 

Steamboat  racing  did  not  end  with  the  decade  of   the  thirties.    On  the  contrary,  many 


238  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

exciting  races  have  siuce  been  engaged  in  when  boats  pointed  in  the  same  direction  happened 
to  leave  port  at  the  same  time.  The  prevalent  notion  has  been,  and  still  is,  that  on  these  occa- 
sions awful  explosions  of  boilers,  by  which  the  river  was  strewn  with  killed  and  mangled, 
were  of  frequent  occurrence.  Such  calamities  may  have  occurred,  but  if  they  did  no  record 
of  the  fact  exists.  To  generate  steam  rapidly  it  was  common  practice  while  racing  to  feed 
the  furnace  under  the  boilers  with  pine-knots  and  tar,  but  the  popular  notion  that  on  such  occa- 
sions the  captain  would  not  hesitate  to  give  the  command.  "  Throw  in  another  nigger !"  is 
a  fallacy.  That  explosions  did  not  occur  when  racing  is  accounted  for  by  the  fact  that  on 
such  occasions  the  engineer  was  more  than  usually  watchful  and  careful.  With  the  progress 
of  enlightenment  steamboat  racing  has  almost  entirely  ceased. 

Among  the  races  of  former  years  there  was  none  more  exciting  than  that  between  the 
"Baltic  "  and  "  Diana  "  from  New  Orleans  to  Louisville,  some  time  in  the  fifties— perhaps  about 
1854.  During  that  period  a  number  of  handsome  steamers  were  engaged  in  the  trade  from 
Louisville  to  New  Orleans,  which  would  arrive  fully  laden,  take  enough  freight  for  ballast  and 
all  the  passengers  that  wanted  to  go,  and  hurry  back  to  Louisville  for  another  cargo.  They 
kept  out  of  the  way  of  each  other  as  much  as  possible  by  leaving  Louisville  on  different  days, 
but  sometimes  it  would  happen  that  two  would  leave  New  Orleans  on  the  same  day.  Th€ 
"Baltic  "and  "  Diana"  left  New  Orleans  together,  the  "Baltic"  slightly  in  the  lead.  Capt. 
Frank  Carter  commanded  the  "Baltic,"  and  Capt.  E.  T.  Sturgeon  the  "Diana."  Neither  of  the 
boats  had  ever  exhibited  remarkable  speed,  and,  while  this  was  what  might  be  called  a  slow  race, 
it  was  the  longest  race  that  ever  was  contested,  and  very  exciting  to  the  passengers  and  crews. 
The  distance  is  1,3S2  miles,  and  there  was  not  an  hour  of  the  time  occupied  by  the  trip  that  the 
two  boats  were  not  in  sight  or  hearing  of  each  other.  An  artist  who  was  on  board  the  "  Baltic ' 
at  the  time  as  a  passenger,  immortalized  the  event  by  transfen-ing  to  canvas  a  night  scene,  in 
which  were  depicted  the  two  imposing  steamers  in  the  foreground  vdth  the  furnace  fires  burning 
so  brightly  that  they  cast  a  red  light  on  the  surrounding  water.  One  bank  of  the  broad  Missis- 
sippi is  showm,  and  the  sky  is  partially  clouded,  but  the  moon  is  peeping  between  the  clouds 
showing  the  huge  columns  of  black  smoke  that  issue  from  the  chimneys  and  stretch  away 
far  behind.  The  "Baltic  "  is  only  a  short  distance  ahead  of  the  "  Diana."  So  near  together  are 
they  that  passengers  and  crews  would  chaff  each  other  as  one  boat  would  momentarily  gain  on 
the  other.    Chromo  imitations  of  the  picture  were  afterward  made  and  met  with  a  rapid  sale. 

The  "Baltic"  won  the  race,  more  by  reason  of  mismanagement  on  board  the  "Diana" 
than  because  she  was  the  faster  of  the  two. 

To  further  illustrate  the  speed  gained  by  steamboats  as  the  years  rolled  by,  it  may  be 
noted  that  in  1844  the  quickest  trip  from  New  Orleans  to  Cairo  recorded  up  to  that  time  was 
made  by  the  "J.  M.  White,"  in  3  days,  6  hours  and  44  minutes;  in  1852  by  the  "Reindeer," 
in  3  days,  12  hours  and  45  minutes;  in  1853  by  the  "Eclipse,"  in  3  days,  4  hours  and  4  min- 
utes, and  by  the  "A.  L.  Shotwell,"  in  3  days,  3  hours  and  40  minutes.  This  time  was  not 
shortened  till  1870,  when  the  "R.  E.  Lee"  (her  second  run)  "set  the  pegs"  at  3  days,  1  hour 
and  1  minute,  which  remains  the  quickest  time  to  this  day.    The  distance  is  1,013  miles. 

From  New  Orleans  to  Natchez— distance,  272  miles— the  quickest  time  made  in  1814  was  5 
days  and  10  hours,  by  the  "  Comet "' ;  in  1815  the  "Enterprise  "  occupied  4  days,  11  hours  and 
20  minutes  in  making  the  same  trip,  and  this  was  cut  down  two  years  later  to  3  days  and  20 
hours,  by  the  "Shelby."  Two  years  later  still  the  "Paragon"  made  it  in  12  hours  less  time 
and  set  the  pegs  for  the  next  nine  years,  when,  in  1828,  the  "Tecumseh"  consumed  only  3 
days,  1  hour  and  20  minutes.  This  time  was  first  beaten  in  1834,  when  the  "Tuscarora"  made 
the  trip  in  1  day  and  21  hours,  and  it  was  cut  down  four  years  later  by  the  "Natchez  "  to  1 
day  and  17  hours.  In  1840  the  "Edward  Shippen"  reduced  the  time  to  1  day  and  8  hours. 
In  1844  days  were  no  longer  needed  in  stating  the  time  necessary  for  the  trip,  as  the  "  Sultana" 
made  it  in  19  hours  and  45  minutes,  which  was  not  beaten  till  1853,  when  the  new  "Natchez" 
again  shortened  it  to  17  hours  and  30  minutes.    The  "Princess"  made  the  same  time  in  1856. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  239 

In  their  great  race  from  New  Orleans  to  St.  Louis  in  1870  the  "Natchez"  and  "Robert  E. 
Lee  "  both  set  the  pegs  at  16  hours,  36  minutes  and  47  seconds. 

No  steamboat  race  ever  excited  so  much  interest  throughout  the  civilized  world  as  that 
which  took  place  between  the  "Robert  E.  Lee"  and  "Natchez"  in  June,  1870,  from  New 
Orleans  to  St.  Louis.  On  the  24th  of  that  month  Capt.  T.  P.  Leathers  telegraphed  Capt.  Perry 
Tharp  of  this  city,  that  the  "  Natchez  "  had  arrived  at  St.  Louis,  having  overcome  the  distance 
from  New  Orleans,  1,278  miles,  in  3  days,  21  hours  and  58  minutes.  From  the  time  that  she  was 
built  at  Cincinnati  much  rivalry  in  regard  to  speed  had  been  exhibited  between  her  and  the 
"Robert  E.  Lee,"  which  was  built  at  New  Albany  during  the  war,  and  was  towed  across  the 
river  to  the  Kentucky  side  to  have  her  name  painted  on  the  wheel-houses,  a  measure  of  safety 
that  was  deemed  prudent  at  that  exciting  time.  Capt.  John  W.  Cannon  commanded  the 
"Lee,"  and  Capt.  Thomas  P.  Leathers,  owner  of  the  present  "Natchez"  and  her  half-dozen 
ormorepredecessorsof  the  same  name,  commanded  the  "Natchez"  of  that  time.  Both  were 
experienced  steamboatmen,  but,  as  the  sequel  proved,  Capt,  Cannon  was  the  better  strategist 
While  each  boat  had  its  special  corps  of  friends,  the  name  of  the  " Robert  E.  Lee"  was  the 
most  honored  and  most  popular  along  the  Mississippi  river. 

Before  the  return  of  the  "Natchez"  to  New  Orleans,  Capt.  Cannon  had  determined  that 
the  "Lee  "should  beat  the  record  of  her  rival,  the  fastest  that  had  ever  been  made  over  the 
course.  He  stripped  the  "  Lee  "  for  the  race  ;  and  removed  all  parts  of  her  upper  works  that 
were  calculated  to  catch  the  wind,  removed  all  rigging  and  outfit  that  could  be  dispensed  with 
to  lighten  her,  as  the  river  was  low  in  some  places  ;  engaged  the  steamer  "  Frank  Pargoud  "  to 
precede  her  a  hundred  miles  up  the  river  to  supply  coal ;  arranged  with  coalyards  to  have 
fuel-flats  awaiting  her  in  the  middle  of  the  river  at  given  points  to  be  taken  in  tow  under  way 
until  the  coal  could  be  transferred  to  the  deck  of  the  "Lee,"  and  then  to  be  cut  loose  and 
float  back.    He  refused  all  business  of  every  kind,  and  would  receive  no  passengers. 

The  "Natchez  "  returned  to  New  Orleans  and  received  a  few  hundred  tons  of  freight  and 
also  a  few  passengers,  and  was  advertised  to  leave  again  for  St.  Louis,  June  30.  At  5  o'clock 
in  the  afternoon  the  "  Robert  E.  Lee  "  backed  out  from  the  levee,  and  five  minutes  later  the 
"Natchez  "  followed  her,  but  without  such  elaborate  preparation  for  a  race  as  has  been  made 
on  the  "Lee,"  Capt.  Leathers  feeling  confident  that  he  could  pass  the  latter  within  the  first  100 
allies. 

A  steamer  had  preceded  the  racing  boats  up  the  river  many  miles  to  witness  all  that  could 
oe  seen  of  the  great  race  that  was  to  be.  The  telegraph  ioformed  the  people  along  both  banks 
3f  the  nver  and  the  world  at  large  of  the  coming  great  struggle  for  supremacy  in  point  of 
ipeed,  and  the  worid  looked  on  with  as  much  interest  as  it  would  had  it  been  an  event  local 
;o  every  part  of  it.  Wherever  there  was  human  habitation  the  people  coUected  on  the  bank  ^ 
)f  the  mighty  river  to  observe  the  passage  of  the  two  steamers.  The  "Lee"  gained  slightly 
^very  hundred  miles  as  the  race  progressed,  which  gain  at  Natchez,  three  hundred  miles 
rom  the  stari:ing  point,  amounted  to  ten  minutes,  attributable  more  to  landings  that  had 
)een  made  by  the  "Natchez  "  for  fuel  than  anything  else.  The  people  of  the  whole  city  of 
Natchez  viewed  the  race.  At  the  bend  at  Vicksburg,  although  the  two  steamers  were  ten 
niles  apart  by  the  course  of  the  river,  the  smoke  of  each  was  plainly  discernible  from  the 
.ther.  Thousands  of  people  were  congregated  on  the  bluffs.  At  Helena  and  other  points  it 
eemed  that  the  population  for  mUes  back  from  the  river  had  turned  out  to  witness  the 
neatest  race  of  this  or  any  other  age. 

At  Memphis  ten  thousand  people  looked  at  the  passing  steamers,  neither  of  which  landed 
he  Natchez  "  by  this  time  having  adopted  the  "Lee's  "  method  of  receiving  fuel  At  every 
.oint  where  there  was  a  telegraph  instrument  the  hour  and  the  minute  of  the  passing  steamers 
vere  ticked  to  all  points  of  America  that  could  be  reached,  and  newspapers  throughout  the 
ountry  displayed  bulletins  denoting  the  progress  of  the  boats. 

The  time  of  passing  Memphis,  Vicksburg  and  Cairo  was  cabled  to  Europe.    When  Cairo  was 


240  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

reached  the  race  was  virtually  ended,  but  the  "  Lee  "  proceeded  to  St.  Louis,  arriving  there  ii 
three  days,  eighteen  hours  and  fourteen  minutes  from  the  time  she  left  New  Orleans,  beating  b: 
thirty -three  minutes  the  previous  time  of  the  "  Natchez."  The  latter  steamer  had  grounded  am 
run  into  a  fog  between  Memphis  and  Cairo,  which  detained  her  more  than  six  hours. 

When  the  "Lee"  arrived  at  St.  Louis,  thirty  thousand  people  crowded  the  wharf,  tlv 
windows  and  the  housetops  to  receive  her.  No  similar  event  had  ever  created  so  much  excite 
ment.  Capt.  Cannon  was  tendered  a  banquet  by  the  business  men  of  the  city,  and  was  general! 
lionized  while  he  remained  there.  It  was  estimated  that  more  than  $1,000,000  had  been  wagerei 
on  the  race  by  the  friends  of  the  two  steamers.  Many  of  the  bets  were  drawn,  on  the  groum 
that  the  "Lee  "had  been  assisted  the  first  one  hundred  miles  by  the  power  of  the  "FranJ 
Pargoud"  added  to  her  own;  and  men  of  the  coolest  judgment  have  ever  since  regardel  th 
"Natchez  "  as  the  faster  boat,  but  out-generaled  by  the  commander  of  the  other. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  241 


I  CHAPTER  XXIX.— HORSE  RACING. 

THE     OLD     RACE-COURSES— SPORTING      RECOLLECTIONS     OF     THE     FIFTIES— THE     FAMOUS 
CONTESTS ^OF  LEXINGTON   AND   LECOMPTE,    AND  THE  RACE   AGAINST  TIME. 

The  old  Metairie  race-course,  which  now  figures  in  the  Metairie  Cemetery,  was  thirty  years 
ago  the  most  famous  course  in  the  United  States.  The  rules  governing  it  were  generally  accepted 
throughout  the  Union,  and  were  adopted  by  all  the  other  Southern  courses  in  circuits. 

The  brightest  episodes  of  the  history  of  the  turf  in  Xew  Orleans  occurred  before  1855,  pre- 
dous  to  which  there  were  five  courses,  upon  all  of  which  the  music  of  flying  feet  was  regularly 
Qeard  with  each  succeeding  year.  There  was  the  Eclipse  Course  at  Carrollton,  which  has  not 
^een  used  since  l&i5  ;  the  Metairie,  famed  as  the  scene  of  Lexington's  great  victory ;  the  Binga- 
|nan  Course,  over  in  Algiers  ;  the  Louisiana  Course,  on  the  Hopkins  plantation,  about  twelve 
niles  below  the  city  ;  and  the  Union  Course,  now  the  Louisiana  Jockey  Club  Course,  and  the 
)nly  one  now  in  existence  as  a  course. 

Each  year,  just  previous  to  the  spring  and  fall  meetings,  people  from  Ml  parts  of  the  South 
md  West  flocked  to  New  Orleans  to  participate  in  the  excitements  of  the  races  and  the  gayeties 
ind  festivities  which  were  incident  thereto.  In  those  days  the  rotunda  on  the  ground  floor  of 
he  old  St.  Charles  Hotel  was  the  general  rendezvous  where  gentlemen  met  to  discuss  the 
aerits  of  the  different  horses  and  to  make  their  bets— pool-selling  not  having  been  invented. 

Among  the  throng  who  nightly  gathered  there  were  Colonel  Wm.  Johnson,  the  Napoleon 
f  the  turf ;  Colonel  A.  L.  Bingaman,  Colonel  Jeflf .  Wells,  Dr.  Merritt,  Y.  N.  Oliver,  Duncan  F. 
Cenner.  Captain  W.  J.  Minor,  the  brothers  Lecompte  (Goldsby  and  Kirkman),  Colonel  McWhorter, 
Colonel  Westmore,  Jim  Valantine,  Dr.  J.  W.  Weldon,  John  L.  Cassidy,  Alexander  Porter,  James 
|age,  H.  P.  McGrath,  Captain  T.  G.  Moore,  old  Dr.  Burke.  John  G.  Cox,  Dick  Ten  Broeck,  Bondy 
'omdexter,  Scruggs,  and  a  host  of  others,  most  of  whom  are  lying  under  the  green  turf. 
_  As  may  be  imagined,  there  was  a  delightful  babel  in  the  rotunda  every  evening,  and  what 
rith  anecdotes,  horse  talk,  bets  and  coruscations  of  wit— for  some  of  the  gentlemen  named 
bove  were  fine  scholars  and  brilliant  conversationalists— the  hours  wore  pleasantly  away. 

In  these  good  old  ante-bellum  days,  when  horse-racing  was  pursued  purely  as  an  amuse- 
lent,  and  not  as  a  means  for  accumulating  fortunes,  turfmen,  unlike  the  proprietors  of  the 
qume  heroes  of  to-day,  took  a  personal  interest  in  rearing  blooded  stock,  and  were  thorough 
adges  of  horse-flesh  and  accomplished  riders. 

At  one  of  the  race  meetings  at  the  Metairie.  a  discussion  arose  as  to  the  merits  of  some 
f  the  horses  that  participated  in  a  race  the  previous  day,  and  one  of  the  owners  of  a  beaten 
orse,  Colonel  Wells,  remarked  if  he  had  ridden  his  horse  he  could  have  won  the  race.  Duncan 
.  Kenner,  who  owned  the  winner,  being  somewhat  nettled  at  this  statement,  proposed  that 
ley  should  enter  the  same  horses  for  a  sweepstake  of  $1,000  each,  two  mile  heats,  gentlemen 
'■ders,  Kenner  stipulating  that  he  would  ride  his  horse  if  Colonel  Wells  would  ride  his.  This 
roposition  was  eagerly  accepted  and  the  race  was  duly  arranged  ;  a  third  horse  to  be  ridden 
y  an  English  gentleman.  Mr.  HoUand,  being  entered,  making  the  stakes  S3. 000. 

The  day  fixed  for  the  race  arrived,  and  as  each  of  the  gentlemen  had  hosts  of  friends  in 
le  city,  there  was  an  immense  and  excited  concourse  present  to  witness  the  performance  of 
leir  favorites.  Betting  ran  high,  and  there  was  much  chaffing  and  fun  at  the  expense  of  the 
ders  among  the  throng  that  swarmed  upon  the  quarter  stretch. 

Old  Dr.  Burke,  who  always  took  the  long  chances  on  betting,  observing  the  English  gentle- 
lan,  with  a  fine  jockey  suit  of  crimson  jacket,  white  corduroys,  patent  leather,  tasseled-top 
oots,  etc.,  remarked  in  his  quaint  way  and  loud  enough  to  be  overheard  by  the  gentleman  him- 


242  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

self  :  "  I'll  bet  five  dollars  to  a  hundred  that  the  fellow  with  the  shiny  boots  falls  off,"  The  En; 
lishman,  with  true  British  pluck,  strode  up  to  the  Doctor  and  said,  "I'll  take  that  bet,  sir."  an 
offered  to  put  up  the  money.  The  Doctor  responded  and  handed  his  five  over,  saylnpr :  "  You  ho; 
the  stakes,  sir." 

A  good  send-off  was  had,  and  the  three  contestants  dashed  down  the  quarter  stretch,  eac 
rider  sitting  his  horse  quite  gallantly,  until  making  the  turn,  when  the  Englishman's  insi( 
stirrup  breaking,  he  fell  from  his  horse,  which  galloped  round  without  him.  Dr.  Burke,  wl 
was  intently  watching  the  race,  drew  a  long  breath,  and,  turning  to  the  crowd,  raised  h 
spectacles  until  they  rested  on  his  wrinkled  brow,  and  exclaimed,  to  the  amusement  of  tl 
bystanders  :  ''  I knowed  it  P''  as  if  he  had  previously  arranged  the  affair,  and  the  result  was 
matter  of  course. 

The  heat  was  won  by  Colonel  Wells,  and  both  riders  being  pretty  well  used  up,  they  retire 
to  the  weighing  room,  where  they  stretched  themselves  on  benches  to  recuperate.  Graves,  tl 
well-known  trainer  of  Kenner's  stable,  and  a  famous  rider  in  his  day,  upbraided  Mr,  Kenner  f 
not  riding  with  more  skill,  and  said  :  "  If  you  can't  do  better,  I'll  get  up  and  ride  myself." 

Old  Hark,  trainer  of  Colonel  Wells'  stable,  and  who  afteiwards  trained  the  celebrat» 
Leco^pte,  congratulated  his  employer  on  his  success,  and  remarked,  in  his  patronizing  wa: 
"All  you  got  to  do.  Colonel,  is  to  hold  your  horse  well  together,  and  you  wins  this  "ac 
sure." 

Wells,  who  was  still  puffing  and  blowing  from  the  unwonted  exertion,  said,  "  Don't  bothi 
me,  Hark;  I  wouldn't  ride  another  heat  for  $10,000."  Kenner,  who  was  pretty  well  exhaustt 
himself,  and  who  had  not  the  remotest  idea  of  riding  another  heat,  thought  this  an  excelle: 
opportunity  to  try  a  little  game  of  bluff,  and  springing  nimbly  up,  he  said,  "  I'm  ready  now  I 
the  next  heat,"  thinking  to  get  a  walk-over. 

After  considerable  diplomacy  on  both  sides,  it  was  agreed  to  postpone  the  race  to  sor 

future  day,  and  when  it  came  off,  it  was  finally  won  by  Kenner's  Richard  of  Tork— old  jocke 

riding.  « 

LEXINGTON  AND   LECOMPTE. 

The  enthusiasm  and  excitement  in  race  matters  culminated  during  the  celebrated  cont€ 
between  those  giants  of  the  turf,  Lexington  and  Lecompte,  both  foaled  in  Kentucky,  ne 
that  famous  centre  of  the  Blue  Grass  country,  Lexington.  Lecompte  was  brought  South 
soon  as  weaned,  and  raised  on  Colonel  Jeff.  Wells'  plantation,  on  the  Red  River,  whi 
Lexington  was  raised  by  Dr.  Warfield,  near  Lexington.  Both  were  winners  of  colt  stak 
when  two  years  old,  Lexington  running  under  the  name  of  "Darley.'*  In  their  subseque 
encounters  they  made  such  fame  for  themselves  that  the  friends  of  each  looked  forwa- 
eagerly  to  their  meeting  in  the  great  Post  Stake  State  race  over  the  Metairie,  for  which  th 
were  both  entered  as  representatives,  respectively,  of  Kentucky  and  Mississippi,  Highland 
being  entered  for  Alabama  and  Arrow  for  Louisiana. 

The  city  was  crowded  with  people  who  came  from  all  sections  to  witness  this  gre 
contest  between  the  most  noted    thoroughbreds  in  America.      Each  horse  had  its  host 
friends  and  backers,  and  the  night  previous  to  the  race  the  rotunda  of  the  St,  Charles  Hoi 
resembled  a  vast  bee-hive.     Betting  ran  up  to  enormous  figures,  and  the  whole  town  m 
perfectly  ablaze  with  excitement.     Even  the  newsboys  made  their  little  wagers,  based 
prospective  sales,  and  livery  stable-keepers  and  cabmen  were  in  a  seventh  heaven  of  ecstasy. 

The  prices  for  cabs  and  carriages  were  enormous,  and  it  is  safe  to  assert  that  not  a  hum: 
being  who  could  possibly  help  himsjlf  remained  in  town  when  the  momentous  Saturdi 
arrived.    The  track  was  quite  sloppy  from  recent  rains,  and  hence  slow  time  was  ^ticipated 

Highlander  having  come  here  with  immense  reputation,  $10,000  having  been  paid  for  him ' 
the  Alabama  party,  expressly  for  this  race,  had  the  call  in  the  betting,  though  no  odds  we 
offered. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  243 

Lexmgton  was  the  second  favorite,  and  there  was  considerable  betting  as  between  him  and 
hiigDianaer. 

«oJnn^'"^''l'I^'  four-mile  heats,  twelve  subscribers,  three  for  each  State,  $5,000  p.  p.-total 
$20,000  ;  each  horse  to  get  $1,000,  if  not  distanced. 

The  drum  tapped  at  a  good  start,  Lexington  taking  the  lead,  never  was  headed,  and  finished 
winmngeasi  ybyfourlengths,  with  something  to  spare;  Lecompte  second.  Highlander  third 
and  Arrow  distanced^  Time,  8.08K.  The  result  of  this  heat  caused  a  perfect  furore  and  con  d: 
able  change  in  the  bettmg,  $100  to  860  being  offered  on  Lexington  against  the  field;  High- 
landers friends,  ho wever,  still  sanguine,  believing  that  he  had  not  been  put  to  his  metti; 

Or,  ZT  VT.  t'^^'.?^"^^^^^"'  '^^^  '^^  ^^^^^'  ^^d  fo^^'ed  the  running:  Lexington  close  up. 
On  the  back  stretch,  m  the  second  mile,  Lecompte  took  the  lead,  and  kept  it  throughout  the 
third  mile;  Lexington  second. 

ino^^^  !^tJr'^^  '^.""•j^.^f"  ^^'^  '*''*'^'  *^^  Kentucky  champion  went  up  and  ran  dead- 
ocked  with  Lecompte.  Highlander  distanced  well  up  in  the  home  stretch,  Lexington  winning 
he  heat  and  race  by  several  lengths,  amid  tremendous  cheering ;  time  8.04.  The  last  mile  was 
[rack         '  "^^^^  '"^  ^■^^'  ^^''""^  ""^^  excellent,  considering  the  wretched  condition  of  the 

The  varying  chances  of  this  race,  the  immense  amount  at  stake,  and  the  interest  manifested 
DY  every  one  present-among  whom,  by  the  way.  was  ex-President  Fillmore-rendered  it  one  of 
:he  most  remarkable  in  turf  annals.    The  1st  of  April,  18^,  will  not  soon  be  forgotten  by  any  of 
he  vast  concourse  that  assembled  to  witness  the  contest  of  the  two  illustrious  sons  of  Boston. 
The  result  of  this  race  caused  a  vast  deal  of  speculation  as  to  the  next  meeting  of  Lexington 

;^lpnfT/^i  r'  ^"i^^^P^^^^  ^'^  *h^  succeeding  Saturday,  the  great  four-mile  day.  a 

)urse  of  S2,000  having  been  advertised  by  the  Metairie  Jockey  Club. 

These  anticipations  were  realized,  and  when  Saturday,  the  8th  of  April  came,  the  two  rivals 
ind  Rube  appeared  to  contest  the  honors.  Lexington  was  largely  the  favorite,  and  much  money 
vas  bet  on  time,  7.32  being  the  lowest  marked.  The  track  was  in  tip-top  condition.  To  the 
rtter  amazement  of  all  and  consternation  of  many,  Cplonel  Wells'  gallant  steed  won  the  heat 
vith  ease,  takmg  the  lead  from  the  start  and  keeping  it  throughout,  Lexington  a  good  second 
^e  time  was  unprecedented-7.26,  being  six  seconds  and  a  half  better  than  Fashion's  celebrated 
une  when  she  ran  with  Boston. 

In  the  second  heat  Lexington  forced  the  running,  taking  the  lead  for  two  miles,  but  Lecompte 
.assed  him  going  into  the  third  mile,  which  was  made  in  1.46.  It  may  be  noted  just  here 
hat  Lexington  lost  his  stride  going  into  the  fourth  mUe,  being  checked  up  by  his  rider  who 
nought  the  race  was  over.  He  immediately  recovered,  and  closing  the  gap  which  had  been 
•pened  on  him.  made  a  splendid  struggle  for  the  heat,  which,  however,  Lecompte  won  by 
eyeral  lengths,  thus  scoring  a  victory  over  his  great  rival  in  7.38f.  making  the  two  best  conse- 
utive  heats  on  record.  Fashion's  being  7.32^  and  7.45.  and  George  Martin's  7.33  and  7  43 

After  the  above  extraordinary  race,  Mr.  Ten  Broeck,  who  had  purchased  Lexington  imme- 
lately  after  the  Post  Stake,  being  much  nettled,  offered  to  run  Lexington  against  Lecompte's 
.26  time  for  Sl0,G00,  race  to  take  place  between  the  1st  and  15th  of  April,  1855,  over  the  Metairie 
■ourse,  he  to  have  two  chances  ;  Arrow  to  be  substituted  should  Lexmgton  be  out  of  fix 

This  challenge  was  accepted  by  Colonel  Calvin  Green  and  Captain  John  Belcher,  of  Virginia 
he  race  accordingly  came  off  on  the  2d  of  AprU,  1855,  the  track  being  in  superb  condition,  and 
he  greatest  crowd  present  that  ever  assembled  at  the  Metairie. 

When  Lexington  appeared,  with  Gilpatrick  on  his  back,  he  looked  the  very  picture  of  a  race 
orse,  and  Ben  Pryor,  his  trainer,  received  and  deserved  many  compliments  for  the  horse's 
ondition.    The  betting  changed  from  $100  to  $80.  to  two  to  one,  in  favor  of  Lexington. 

The  great  antagonist  against  time  took  a  running  start  from  the  draw-gates,  and  passed 
he  stand  under  full  headway,  with  the  horse  Joe  Blackburn  to  urge  him  on.  At  the 
econd  mile  Blackburn  waa  withdrawn,  and  Arrow  was  shot  after  him,  running  two  miles 


244  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

when  Blackburn  took  up  the  chase,  but  nerer  got  near  enough  for  Lexington  to  hear  him.  Ae 
the  magnificent  horse  sped  onward,  and  it  became  apparent  that  he  would  win,  the  excitement 
was  immense,  and  finally  when  he  dashed  under  the  string  in  the  marvelous  time  of  7.19},  tht 
welkin  fairly  rang  again,  and  Lexington  regarded  the  tumultuous  throng  with  something  ol 
pardonable  pride.    The  first  mile  was  1.47},  the  second  1.52},  the  third  1,5U,  and  the  fourth  1.48} 

This  exploit  of  Lexington's  aroused  the  pride  of  the  Red  River  party,  who  still  thoughi 
Lecompte  the  better  horse,  and  they  proposed  that  the  two  horses  should  start  in  the  clul 
purse,  $1,000,  with  an  inside  stake  of  $2,500,  to  come  off  on  the  following  Saturday,  April  14th 
1855,  which  was  eagerly  accepted  by  Mr.  Ten  Broeck. 

The  story  of  this  race,  which  aroused  more  excitement  than  any  of  the  previous  contests 
and  which  caused  more  bitter  discussions  and  hard  feelings  than  any  turf  event,  is  soon  told. 

Lexington  was  the  favorite  at  odds  of  100  to  90,  which  odds,  however,  were  eagerly  takei 
by  Lecompte's  backers.  At  the  start  Lexington  had  the  track,  and  for  two  miles  and  thre 
quarters  they  ran  side  by  side,  amid  tremendous  cheering.  Coming  down  the  stretch  in  th 
third  mile,  Lexington  went  to  the  front  and  passed  the  string  in  the  lead.  Lecompte  graduall; 
closed  on  him  in  the  back  stretch,  but  at  the  half-mile  post  Lexington  drew  away  from  hin 
opening  a  wide  gap  to  the  finish,  and  winning  with  great  ease  in  7.23 ?4. 

Lecompte,  after  the  heat,  looked  very  much  distressed,  had  cut  his  hocks  and  pasterns  wit 
his  plates,  and  his  owner.  Colonel  Wells,  asked  and  received  permission  to  withdraw  him.  Th 
friends  of  the  beaten  horse  asserted  that  he  had  been  out  of  condition,  and  there  were  ugl 
rumors  of  poisoning,  which,  however,  were  never  substantiated. 

Mr.  Ten  Broeck  subsequently  bought  Lecompte  under  the  following  circumstances  : 

Colonel  Wells,  after  the  defeat  of  Lecompte,  was  thoroughly  impressed  with  the  idea  tha 
his  horse  had  been  poisoned,  and  named  a  filly  he  had  by  Sovereign,  out  of  Reel,  the  dam  c 
Lecompte,  "  Poison,"  as  an  expression  of  that  idea.  After  a  race  over  Mr.  Ten  Broeck's  course 
in  which  Poison  was  the  winner,  Mr.  Ten  Broeck  offered  Colonel  Wells  $15,000  for  Poison  am 
Lecompte,  which  offer  was  accepted,  and  the  name  of  the  filly  was  changed  at  once  to  Pryoress 
In  compUment  to  Ben  Pryor.  the  trainer  of  Lexington.  They  were  both  taken  to  Englanc 
where  Lecompte  died  shortly  after  his  arrival. 

Lexington  subsequently  went  blind,  and  was  sold  to  Mr.  R.  A.  Alexander,  of  Kentucky,  fo 
$15,000.  His  purchaser  was  twitted  for  buying  a  blind  horse,  but  replied  that  he  would  sell  on 
of  Lexington's  get  for  more  money,  and  in  the  spring  of  1864  he  sold  Norfolk  to  Mr.  Winter,  o 
California,  for  $15,000. 

The  blind  old  monarch,  whose  royal  blood  courses  in  the  veins  of  thousands  of  the  bes 
racehorses  in  America,  and  who  numbers  among  his  progeny  such  turf  heroes  as  Tom  Bowling 
Monarchist,  Harry  Basset,  Asteroid,  Norfolk,  Lightning,  Preakness,  Bayonet,  Kentucky,  Idle 
wild,  Bettie  Ward  and  Annie  Bush,  lived  to  over  twenty  years  of  age. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  245 


CHAPTER  XXX.— ROD  AND  GUN. 

PORT  IN  THE  IMMEDIATE  VICINITY  OF  THE  CITY — WHERE  TO  GO  HUNTING  AND   FISHING — 
HUNTING  ALLIGATORS — DUCK  SHOOTING — RED  FISH  AND  GREEN  TROUT. 

Both  hunting  and  fishing  are  favorite  amusements  in  New  Orleans.  No  city  in  the  Union 
an  offer  such  advantages  as  the  Crescent  City  in  this  respect.  Surrounded  as  it  is  on  all  sides 
'y  an  uninhabited  swamp,  such  game  as  ducks  and  snipe,  and  all  varieties  of  fish,  both  fresh 
nd  salt  water,  are  to  be  caught  within  the  city  limits. 

A  favorite  sport  is  alligator  hurting.  There  are  not  as  many  alli.rators  in  the  suburbs  of 
J^ew  Orleans  as  there  were  before  the  skins  of  the  mighty  saurians  became  commercial  com- 
lodity,  and  hunters  went  to  work  to  kill  them  as  a  profession  ;  but  there  are  still  enough  to 
umish  the  sportsman  with  plenty  of  good  game.  You  will  have  no  difficulty  in  finding  as  many 
lligators  as  you  want  in  the  innumerable  bayous  and  lakes  just  back  of  Algiei-s.  The  discovery 
7ill  do  you  little  good,  however,  unless  you  know  exactly  how  to  hunt  the  alligator.  Hunt  them  by 
ight  in  a  pirogue— a  boat  hewn  from  a  solid  log— paddled  by  a  skilled  swamper.  The  boat  glides 
oiselessly  through  the  water.  A  torch  throws  a  glare  of  light  ahead  and  shows  you  the  spark- 
ng  eye  of  the  alligator.  Fire  straight  at  it,  and  if  you  are  any  marksman  the  game  is  bagged, 
ad  the  "bull,"  after  frotliing  the  water,  will  roll  with  its  white  belly  upward. 

The  scene  is  impressive,  and  will  fix  itself  indelibly  in  your  memory.  A  small  canoe,  pro- 
elied  by  the  paddle  of  a  brawny  African,  is  gliding  noiselessly  through  the  water,  stagnant  and 
overed  with  a  thick,  green  scum.  The  mournful  decaying  cypresses,  fit  emblems  of  death,  dip 
leir  gray  moss-threads  in  the  water.  All  around  is  gloom  and  melancholy,  desolation  and  dark- 
ess,  but  ahead  upon  the  stygian  waters  flickers  here  and  there  a  star.  It  is  the  eye  of  an  alli- 
ator  ;  and  as  you  get  nearer  you  discern  the  ugly  head  of  the  repulsive  animal.  Dore  never 
rew  anything  more  striking  than  this  picture  would  be. 

There  is  no  game,  however,  more  constant  and  more  attractive  than  the  duck.  The  Gulf 
aast  and  the  shores  of  Lake  Pontchartrain  are  his  natural  winter  home.  Here  everything  is 
fared  him  and  in  profusion,  seaweed,  insects,  aquatic  plants  in  such  abundance,  that  the  greedy 
ird  often  falls  a  victim  to  his  gluttony. 

When,  last  winter,  one  of  the  lagoons,  deemed  by  thejewiesse  de  la  chasse  an  especially  good 
ace  for  ducks,  was  found  covered  with  several  hundred  of  these  dead  bodies,  a  cry  of  indigna- 
on  went  up  against  the  professional  hunters,  who  were  charged  with  having,  Borgia-like, 
iisoned  the  ducks  in  order  to  spoil  the  sport  of  the  amateur,  until  it  was  discovered  that 
le  ducks  had  actually  choked  themselves  to  death  with  seaweed— there  was  so  much  of  it. 

Of  the  ducks  which  frequent  the  waters  of  Louisiana,  there  is  an  endless  variety :  buffle- 
3ads,  canvas-backs,  harlequins,  mallards  or  French,  the  largest,  choicest  and  most  hunted, 
mtails,  teal— fishy  and  not  often  palatable — spoonbills,  grey  ducks,  widgeons,  wood  ducks  and 
jrhaps  a  half  a  hundred  more. 

And  you  can  hunt  them  in  as  many  different  ways.  Many  sportsmen  have  little  hunting 
dges  of  palmetto  leaves  and  swamp  grass  scattered  among  some  favorite  lagoons,  and  looking 
>  much  like  the  surrounding  marsh  that  even  the  most  suspicious  and  knowing  of  the  web- 
'Oted  race  would  never  detect  them.  To  this  cabin  the  hunter  repairs  over  night,  whUe  the 
icks  are  snoi-ing  way  in  the  bulrushes,  and  here  reclining  comfortably  upon  a  bed  of  straw  he 
aits  patiently  until  daylight  offers  him  a  good  shot.- 

Decoys  are  generally  used  to  attract  the  wary  birds,  and  every  good  hunter  has  a  bag  of 
lem.    As  soon  as  these  wooden  ducks  are  sent  swimming  in  the  water  a  flock  of  their  brethren 


246  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

of  tbe  air  swoop  down  among  them,  gobbling  and  quacking ;  and  just  as  they  alight  upon  the 
water,  and  before  they  have  time  to  discover  the  character  of  the  decoys,  fire  is  opened  upon 
them  with  deadly  effect. 

Knowing  Nimrods  have  their  own  boats,  decoys,  etc.,  and  a  paddler,  in  readiness  upon 
their  arrival.  Frequently  they  take  with  them  two  live  tame  (puddle)  ducks,  which  they  put 
down  in  the  water  and  tie  by  the  leg  to  a  bush  nearby,  which  proves  a  decoy  dangerous  to  the 
most  wary  of  tbe  veterans  of  the  lagoons,  who  learn,  towards  the  end  of  the  season,  how  to 
distinguish  between  wooden  ducks  and  live  ducks.  A  good  sportsman  thus  equipped  on  a  fair 
day  will  get  fifty  to  seventy-five  shots. 

On  the  prairies  near  Opelousas  and  Vermillion ville,  La.,  there  are  innumerable  small  ponds 
to  be  found,  in  which,  during  the  winter  months,  are  to  be  seen  great  numbers  of  ducks.  Nc 
trees  or  cover  of  any  kind  to  conceal  the  sportsman  exists,  and  the  hunter  procures  an  old  ox 
trained  for  the  purpose,  and  to  stand  fire.  Getting  on  the  off  side  of  the  ox— that  is,  placing 
the  ox  between  the  ducks  and  himself— the  sportsman  is  enabled  to  get  within  gunshot  of  th( 
game  quite  easily.  He  gives  a  loud  whoop  when  the  ducks  take  to  wing,  and  then  gives  then 
both  barrels ;  and  should  the  ducks  be  teal  or  of  the  smaller  varieties,  he  will  get  out  of  a  larg< 
flock  some  twenty-five  to  fifty  ducks. 

Fire  hunting  is  also  very  successful  with  the  ducks.  A  lighted  torch  attracts  them  as  { 
candle  does  the  moths,  and  they  are  so  dazzled  and  bewitched  that  they  allow  the  hunters  t< 
approach  within  very  close  range  of  them. 

Still  another  mode  of  catching  the  ducks— one  much  used  of  old  in  the  Chandeleurs,  an( 
still  occasionally  employed  there— is  by  means  of  nets,  stretched  at  nightfall  from  bay  to  ba; 
and  point  to  point,  directly  in  the  course  of  the  ducks'  flight,  and  into  which  they  plunge  ii 
their  rapid  flight  to  some  favorite  lagoon,  and  are  caught. 

Nearly  every  sportsman  has  his  special  hunting  ground,  but  all  Lower  Louisiana  is  good- 
the  best  points  being  the  Chandeleurs,  and  neighboring  islands,  the  gulf  coast  of  St.  Bernan 
and  Plaquemines,  Lakes  Pontchartrain  and  Catherine,  and  the  various  bayous  and  lagoons  sui 
rounding  New  Orleans  on  every  side. 

The  snipe  grounds  are  much  the  same,  but  the  best  snipe  are  killed  at  Barataria,  the  haun 
of  Lafitte,  the  pirate  and  patriot ;  the  jack-snipe  from  that  locality  being  deemed  as  much 
delicacy  as  Baltimore  terrapin  and  canvas  back.  Beside  these,  are  the  grey,  red-breasted,  red 
back— which  hover  around  a  companion  when  shot,  giving  the  hunter  a  splendid  opportunity  t' 
open  on  them  again  with  his  reserve  fire  ;  the  Creole  snipe,  sunderling,  hulet  and  stone  snipe 
not  to  mention  the  grassets,  papabottes  and  woodcock. 

On  the  prairie,  west  of  New  Orleans,  nearly  all  varieties  of  grouse,  generally  called  CreoL 
quails,  in  Louisiana,  are  to  be  found— the  heather  cock  orpine  grouse,  very  much  like  the  Alpin 
auerhahn,  a  fine  table  bird  mth  a  slight  pine  flavor,  which  adds  to  its  gamey  taste,  the  ruffle^ 
grouse,  and  the  prairie  hen— but  grouse  hunting  not  being  as  exciting  as  hunting  ducks,  is  fa 
less  popular. 

Within  one  hundred  miles  from  New  Orleans,  on  any  of  the  railroads,  bear,  turkey,  squirre 
deer  and  quail  can  be  found,  and  on  application  to  any  of  the  gun  stores  in  the  city  the  locatio 
will  be  given  you,  when  to  go,  and  all  the  information  in  regard  to  outfit,  etc.,  etc. 

FISHING. 

Fishing  is  in  equal  favor,  and  during  the  season  every  train  takes  out  large  parties  of  fishei 
men.  Along  the  line  of  the  Mobile  road  there  are  many  places  where  good  sport  can  be  hac 
One  can  pack  up  his  little  kit  containing  lunch,  bait,  rod  and  line  the  night  before  and,  risin 
with  the  sun,  can  board  the  train  and  in  two  hours  be  on  his  fishing  grounds,  ready  for  worl 
There  is  much  diversity  among  amateurs  as  to  the  respective  merits  of  the  several  places  o 
the  Mobile  road,  and  it  is  safe  to  put  down  that  they  are  all  good,  if  wind  and  weather  be  favo; 
able.    The  first  place  that  merits  the  reputation  it  has  so  long  had  is  Chef  Menteur,  twent 


I  GUIDE   TO    NEW   ORLEANS,  24? 

aiiles  from  the  city,  on  the  route  to  Mobile.    The  sportsmen,  upon  arrival  there,  can  call  upon 
my  of  the  professional  fishermen  in  the  neighborhood  -there  are  two  or  three  living  imme- 
iiately  at  the  station— and  secure  a  boat  and  meals  for  Si.    A  nej?ro  truide  or  paddler  will  charge 
ibout  Sl.50  for  a  day's  work,  and  this  is  all  the  expense.    Trout  and  red  rish  abound  at  the  mouth 
)f  the  Chef,  and  bite  well.    Sheephead  and  croakers  are  also  plentiful,  and  along  the  edges  of  the 
)ayous  there  the  perch  bite  almost  as  fast  as  the  hook  is  dropped  into  the  water.    The  accom- 
nodations  are  good,  and  the  amateur  will  be  well  repaid  for  his  visit.    The  next  place  is  Miller's 
Jayou,  twenty-seven  miles  from  here,  on  the  same  road.    Here  Mrs.  Miller,  the  widow  of  the 
amous  professional  hunter,  keeps  a  lodge,  where  one  can  make  his  headquarters  comfortably, 
i-good  boat,  with  meals,  costs  only  $1,  and  if  the  sportsman  does  not  know  how  to  paddle  a 
•irogue  or  row  a  skiff,  a  guide  can  be  had  for  $1.50  per  day,  who  will  carry  him  to  the  best 
■laces.    In  Lake  Catherine-only  200  yards  from  Mrs.  Miller's  house-redfish  and  sheephead  are 
bundant.    The  next  favorite  place  is  Lookout  Station,  about  thirty-seven  miles  from  the  city. 
Lt  this  spot  are  erected  the  fishiog  and  hunting  boxes  of  the  wealthy  private  clubs,  and  a  visitor 
lust  carry  aU  his  accommodations  with  him,  as  none  can  be  had  on  the  spot.    One,  perchance, 
light  get  a  boat  and  guide  there,  but  it  is  not  at  all  certain,  as  the  private  clubs  occupy  most 
f  the  waters.    A  few  miles  this  side  of  Lookout  is  another  place  that  merits  notice.    It  is  the 
trait  connecting  Lake  Pontchartrain  with  the  sound  called  the  Rigok  ts,  which  is  thirty-one 
iiles  on  the  same  road.    Very  good  fishing  is  to  be  had  here.    There  is  no  place  to  secure  boats 
lere,  and  the  amateur  must  content  himself  with  fishing  off  the  bridge.    One  can  secure  meals 
t  the  station  master's,  just  this  side  of  the  bridge,  but  they  are  not  prepared  for  many  guests, 
he  Rigolets  was  once  a  famous  place  for  hook  and  line,  and,  barring  the  lack  of  facilities  ?s 
:ill  a  fine  locality  for  sport. 

Beyond  these  places  come  Bay  St.  Louis,  Pass  Christian,  Mississippi  City,  Biloxi,  and  Ocean 
prings,  well  knowm  to  all  as  good  grounds  for  fish,  but  too  far  distant  for  one  to  enjoy  sport 
ad  return  the  same  day. 

Taking  next  the  Jackson  road,  the  seeker  after  a  day's  enjoyment,  should  get  off  at  Pass 
anohac  bridge,  where  he  can  get  a  boat  to  carry  him  out  into  North  Pass,  which  connects 
ake  Maurepas  with  Lake  Pontchartrain,  where  magnificent  trout,  perch  and  sackalait  and 
nped  bass  can  be  had.  There  are  no  accommodations  there,  and  the  party  must  carry  their 
'ovisions  with  them.  Near  the  above  is  Middle  Bayou,  which  excels  North  Pass  in  the  quan- 
ty  of  the  finny  tribes  found  there.  It  is  four  miles  from  North  Pass  bridge,  and  affords  all  the 
•orts  one  could  desire.  After  a  day  there,  one  catches  the  evening  train,  with  a  well  filled 
isket.    The  only  drawback  is  the  lack  of  comfortable  quarters. 

In  that  direction,  that  is  on  the  western  shore  of  Lake  Pontchartrain.  is  the  Tangipahoa 
iver,  which  can  only  be  reached  by  sailboat  from  here  ;  at  least,  that  portion  of  it  where  the 
ihing  is  superb. 

It  is,  to  use  an  old  fisherman's  phrase,  "the  boss  place  around  these  diggings,"  for  green 
out.  In  low  tides  artificial  baits  work  well  here.  The  mouth  of  the  river  enters  the  lake 
)out  thirty-five  miles  north-northeast  from  the  West  End,  and  a  party  starting  in  a  sailboat 
e  evening  before  reaches  the  spot  in  time  to  make  a  good  catch  and  get  back  the  next  after- 
)on.  There  are  no  accommodations  there,  so  that  everything  will  have  to  be  taken  on  board 
fore  starting. 

Coming  nearer  home  we  have  Bayou  Laurier,  about  four  and  a  half  miles  to  the  westward 
West  End,  where  sheephead,  trout,  perch  and  sacalait  can  be  found.  Of  late,  however,  fish- 
men  have  been  in  the  habit  of  gill  netting  here,  and  the  fish  are  not  as  abundant  as' they 
ould  be.  One  need  not  expect  to  find  any  quarters  there.  Next  is  Bayou  Labarre.  two  and 
half  miles  from  West  End,  which  is  of  the  same  character  as  Bayou  Laurier,  and  then 
iarer  is  Bayou  Tchoupitoulas,  a  sister  stream  to  the  others.  A  skiff  or  sailboat  is  taken  to 
ach  the  above. 

Across  the  river  there  is  Harvey's  Canal,  to  be  reached  by  the  ferry  at  the  head  of  Louisi- 


248  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

ana  avenue,  a  well  known  resort  of  the  largest  perch.  A  boat  and  a  man  to  pull  one  down  thi 
canal  to  Bayou  Barataria  costs  $2  50  a  day.  Below  the  city  Is  the  Ship  Island  Canal,  twelV' 
miles  from  the  slaugrhter-house.  It  runs  from  a  spot  close  to  the  river  out  into  Lake  Borgne 
and  at  its  mouth  redflsh,  sheephead,  trout  and  croakers  abound. 

Bait  for  all  of  our  fish  can  readily  be  had.  They  consist  of  minnows  and  shrimp,  and  oral 
if  the  two  former  are  not  at  at  hand.    All  of  them  will  take  either  of  the  above  greedily. 

The  outfit  can  be  as  expensive  as  one  likes.  For  $2  55  a  very  handsome  get-up  can  be  hac 
consisting  of  jointed  rod,  hooks,  sinkers,  floats  and  fifty  yards  of  excellent  line.  For  seventj 
five  cents  a  cheaper  outfit  can  be  had,  a  Japan  pole  taking  the  place  of  the  more  costl 
jointed  rod. 

With  these  data  before  him,  the  seeker  after  a  quiet  day  cannot  go  wrong. 

The  Gulf  of  Mexico,  the  Mississippi  river,  the  lakes  and  bayous,  abound  in  fish  of  the  greate.' 
variety  ;  and  Louisiana  produces  not  only  the  greatest  abundance  of  delicious  fish  for  hon: 
consumption,  but  she  has  also  sufficient  to  establish  a  large  export  trade.  Amongst  the  importar 
varieties  of  fish  found  in  the  waters  of  Louisiana  may  be  mentioned  :  Eockfish,  grouper,  blacl 
fish,  trout,  maw-mouth,  perch  and  chub,  flying  fish,  yellowtail,  bass,  whiting,  drum,  young  drur 
croaker,  sheephead,  porgee,  angelfish,  Spanish  mackerel,  spring  mackerel,  pompano,  muUe 
salt  water  catfish,  fresh  water  catfish,  plaice  and  flounder,  salt  water  eel  and  fresh  water  eel. 

To  give  an  idea  of  the  mode  of  fishin-,  let  us  select  representative  specimens  of  the  tw 
varieties  of  fish,  fresh  and  salt  water,  such  as  the  red  fish  and  green  trout. 

The  redfish  belongs  to  one  of  the  divisions  of  the  drum  species.  Of  this  species  the  commc 
drumfish  is  the  largest  found  in  Southern  waters,  while  the  familiar  little  croaker  is  tl 
smallest  cousin  of  the  family,  The  species  is  named  from  a  singular  noise  made  by  all  thes 
fish,  which  is  a  weak  croak  in  the  diminutive  croaker,  while  when  uttered  by  the  larger  spec 
mens  it  is  precisely  similar  to  a  distant  drum-beat. 

Drumfish,  redfish  and  croakers  commence  their  strange  drumming  immediately  after  the 
are  caught.  They  also  often  practice  their  music  when  swimming  in  schools,  and  sound  it  as 
note  of  alarm  when  fleeing  from  larger  fish.  Certain  mysterious  noises,  which,  issuing  froi 
the  sea,  long  puzzled  and  perplexed  the  inhabitants  of  the  Louisiana  coast,  have  finall 
and  most  plausibly  been  attributed  to  the  croaking  and  drumming  of  immense  schools  of  fis 

of  this  species. 

The  greatest  size  attained  by  the  redfish  is  a  matter  of  dispute.  The  largest  probably  ev€ 
seen  near  New  Orleans,  was  a  specimen  captured  in  East  Bay,  a  few  miles  from  the  South  Pas 
lighthouse,  in  the  latter  part  of  April,  1876.  The  dimensions  of  this,  as  nearly  as  could  be  est 
mated  after  a  close  inspection,  were,  length  over  four  and  a  half  feet,  breadth  about  oue  foo' 
and  weight  certainly  over  seventy-five  pounds.  This  fish  was  captured  by  a  veteran  pr( 
fessional,  who  called  it  "  a  long  ways  the  biggest  red  fish"'  he  ever  saw.  Such  of  these  fish  as  ar 
caught  out  in  deep  water  average  a  larger  size  than  those  captured  in  the  numerous  bayous  an 
indentations  of  our  coast.  Usually  a  thirty  pounder  is  considered  a  pretty  fair  specimen  of  th 
fish  in  any  waters.  A  fish  of  that  weight  is  generally  a  little  more  than  three  feet  in  lengtl 
When  of  this  size,  however,  the  meat  is  tough  and  coarse ;  hence  favorite  sizes  of  the  fish  ai 
those  varying  from  five  to  fifteen  pounds  in  weight. 

The  colors  of  the  redfish  are  at  times  very  brilliant,  and  are  always  very  variable,  bein 
affected  by  the  same  causes  which  change  the  hues  of  many  other  fish.  These  causes  ai 
generally  considered  to  be  presence  of  foreign  matter  in  the  water,  variations  in  temperatur 
and  seasons,  and  various  degrees  of  activity  on  the  part  of  the  fish.  When  the  fish  are  a 
their  best,  and  when  their  suiToundings  are  particularly  favorable,  or  the  water  clear,  bottoi 
hard  or  shelly,  and  feeding  grounds  good,  the  red  on  their  backs  and  sides  assumes  a  beautifi 
brilliancy,  and  the  white  becomes  exceedingly  bright.  At  times  the  coloring  of  the  male 
simply  magnificent,  and  the  crimson  of  the  back  merges  into  rich  golden  lines  along  the  sides 
Following  the  same  rule  as  that  set  down  in  the  creation  of  other  fishes,  the  female  Is  muc 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  249 

less  prominently  and  distinctly  marked  than  is  the  male.  The  fishes  of  both  sexes  have  a  jet 
black  spot  on  each  side  near  the  tail,  while  occasional  specimens  have  been  caught  with 
several  of  these  spots  on  them  in  a  line  from  the  pectoral  fins  to  the  tail.  Some  of  our 
amateur  fishermen  have  decided  this  to  be  the  fish  from  whose  mouth  the  Apostles  obtained 
pieces  of  money.  It  is  stated  tbat  when  these  ancient  fishermen  picked  up  the  fishes  by  the 
tails  and  shook  the  money  from  their  mouths  they  left  the  noted  black  spot  on  the  tail  of 
each  fish  as  a  mark  for  succeeding  generations  of  fishes  to  reverentially  note  and  praise.  We 
cannot  vouch  for  the  truth  of  the  foregoing  assertion,  and  do  not  wish  to  impose  it  on  the 
skeptically  inclined  as  a  matter  of  fact  without  presenting  with  it  sufficient  corroborative 
vidence  to  make  it  worthy  of  general  credence.  After  its  capture  the  colors  of  the  redfish 
rapidly  fade.  Hence  those  that  have  only  seen  them  hanging  up  on  hooks  in  the  fish-stalls 
can  form  no  idea  of  the  beauty  of  these  same  specimens  Avhen  first  taken  from  their  native  element. 

The  habitat  of  this  fish  seems  to  be  confined  to  southern  latitudes.  In  all  the  bays  and  inden- 
tations of  the  Gulf  and  in  the  salt-water  bayous  near  the  sea  they  are  to  be  found  at  nearly  all 
seasons  of  the  year  in  great  abundance.  Near  most  of  the  Gulf  islands  they  are  numerous,  but 
shell  reefs  and  shell  banks,  which  abound  in  numerous  places  along  and  near  the  seaboard,  are 
their  favorite  haunts,  and  to  these  places  the  professional  fishermen  usually  resort  to  secure 
most  of  the  redfish  which  are  sold  in  our  markets. 

The  capture  of  redfish  is  effected  by  various  methods,  according  to  the  inclination  or  purpose 
Df  their  captors.  Some  of  the  professionals  have  stock  ownerships  in  immense  seines,  which  are 
used  in  the  shoal  water  near  the  coast  islands  or  in  the  shallow  land-locked  bays.  This  seining 
business,  though  successful  for  a  time,  has  almost  succeeded  in  driving  the  redfish  away  from 
50me  of  our  bays  which  were  formerly  their  favorite  resorts.  At  one  time  the  fishing  near  Grand 
LSle,  Grand  Terre  and  other  coast  islands  was  almost  ruined  by  the  frequent  and  persistent 
reining  there  carried  on.  Where  other  professionals  follow  the  fishing  business  singly,  or  in 
jmaU  squads,  they  use  long  trot  lines,  which  often  contain  several  hundred  hooks  baited  with 
small  mullet.  This  is  a  much  less  destructive  way  of  fishing  than  seining,  while  it  is  often  made 
I  source  of  greater  profit  to  those  who  follow  it. 

The  amateur  fisherman  is  supposed  to  be  actuated  in  the  enjoyment  of  this  recreation,  as 
veil  as  of  all  others  simOar  to  it,  by  his  pure  love  for  sport,  while  he  is  naturally  not  endowed 
vlth  the  bump  of  destructiveness.  At  all  events,  most  of  them  who  go  fishing  are  in  the  habit 
)f  leaving  enough  fish  in  the  water  to  breed  from.  Hence,  with  commendable  abhorrence,  he 
eschews  the  barbarous  business  of  seine-dredging,  or  the  dull  routine  of  relieving  self- impaled 
ish  from  the  numberless  hooks  of  a  trot  line.  If  he  chooses  to  fish  in  open  sea  water,  following 
he  example  of  other  successful  anglers,  he  generally  provides  himself  with  about  fifty  fathoms 
>f  reliable  hempen  Ime,  of  about  one-sixth  of  an  inch  in  diameter.  At  the  end  of  this  is  attached 
.  light  lead  to  throw  and  anchor,  whUe  above  the  lead  are  two  or  three  hooks  of  a  proper  size, 
leatly  baited  with  prawn,  or  sea  shrimp,  if  obtainable.  In  the  absence  of  prawn,  pieces  of  crab 
.r  young  mullet  will  answer  very  well  for  bait.  In  procuring  these  different  baits  a  light  cast- 
LCt  is  almost  indispensable,  as  is,  also,  the  presence  of  a  party  who  is  proficient  in  throwing  it, 
^^hich  proficiency  is  only  acquired  after  long  and  patient  practice.  A  novice  in  the  use  of  the 
astnet  either  catches  himself  at  every  attempt  to  throw  or  else  batters  his  head  most  merci- 
3ssly  with  the  net  leads  until  he  is  compelled  to  desist  and  wait  to  learn  by  degrees.  In  throw- 
ig  the  line  of  fifty  fathoms  it  is  impossible  to  pay  out  its  full  length  ;  but  the  part  of  the  coil 
v'hich  remains  in  shore  or  on  board,  as  the  case  may  be,  should  be  made  snug  and  ready  to  pay 
way  in  case  of  emergency.  This  emergency  arises  when  an  extra  heavy  fish  has  struck ;  if  a 
hark,  which  is  often  the  case,  three  will  be  no  need  of  assistance  in  paying  out ;  but  if  a  thirty- 
I  ound  redfish  strikes,  a  little  paying  out  is  often  necessitated,  as  the  pull  is  heavy  and  the  pace 
ard.  Thoroughly  scientific  fishermen  sometimes  add  a  short  rod  and  a  reel  to  this  long-line 
ackle,  but  others  well  up  in  the  art,  and  equally  successful,  deem  these  additions  too  cumber- 
ame  and  altogether  unnecessary. 


250  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

In  fishing  in  our  deep  salt-water  bayous  for  redfish,  the  best  tackle  to  use,  according  t< 
anglers  of  considerable  experience,  consists  of  a  tough,  light  and  elastic  rod  of  about  eighteei 
feet  in  length,  to  which  is  fastened  a  slender,  strong  line  about  twenty  feet  long.  The  line  i 
provided  with  a  movable  float,  and  at  the  end  is  a  single  hook,  baited  with  any  of  the  thre 
baits  previously  mentioned.  This  tackle  is  good  for  either  boat  or  shore  fishing.  It  is  used  b 
some  of  the  most  successful  anglers  with  telling  effect,  as  many  as  twenty-five  redfish  bavin 
been  caught  with  one  line  thus  rigged  in  a  few  hours,  while  in  the  interval  between  bite 
numerous  sheephead  and  sea  trout  were  landed.  In  following  the  sport  after  this  manner 
novice  would  probably  make  poor  headway,  as  much  skiU  is  required  in  handling  the  tackle,  t 
prevent  the  breaking  of  either  hook,  line  or  rod.  With  this  fishing  apparatus,  properly  managet 
twenty-five  pound  redfish  are  often  safely  landed.  The  average,  however,  of  these  fish  that  ru 
in  the  salt  bayous  is  not  of  more  than  ten  or  twelve  pounds  in  weight.  They  are  yet  rather  to 
small  to  brave  the  dangers  of  open  water,  and  an  incidental  meeting  with  sharks  and  porpoise 
which  are  the  special  enemies  of  their  kind. 

The  pleasure  of  enjoying  this  sport  is  great,  as  is  also  that  to  be  found  in  the  capture  < 
many  other  species  of  splendid  salt-water  fish.  It  cannot  be  styled  an  expensive  recreation  ;  f( 
a  week's,  or  even  a  month's  cruise  among  the  coast  islands,  could  be  enjoyed  at  such  a  cost : 
would  be  entaUed  in  the  renting  of  a  four-ton  lugger,  the  hire  of  a  navigator  and  a  cook,  tl 
purchase  of  a  tent  and  camp  equipage,  with  the  necessary  tackle  and  solid  and  liquid  provision 
Altogether  an  unexpensive  outfit  for  a  cruise,  yet  all  that  is  required,  with  the  proper  health  at 
disposition  to  enjoy  such  an  one.  If  an  occasional  run  out  in  blue  water  is  desirable,  a  larg. 
boat  would  be  safer,  but  for  coasting  an  ordinary  lugger  is  large  enough.  In  a  cruise  of  th 
kind  the  sport  of  fishing,  which,  at  the  start,  may  have  been  the  primary  object  of  the  excursio: 
would  soon  come  to  be  considered  as  only  one  of  many  pleasures  afforded.  Those  who  go  om 
will  always  have  cause  to  remember  and  to  long  for  the  perpetual  sea  breezes,  the  music  « 
cool  foamy  billows,  the  soft  radiance  of  moonlight,  mingled  with  phosphorescent  waves,  ar 
much  more  that  there  was  to  refresh  and  delight  the  senses ;  while  the  younger  angler  will  nev 
forget  the  gorgeous  flash  and  glitter  that  rose  struggling  at  the  end  of  his  line,  while  landing  h 
first  redfish. 

Green  trout  is  a  misnomer  for  the  splendid  fish  which  is  so  called  in  New  Orleans.  Oi 
famous  "  green  trout "  are  not  trout  at  all-in  fact,  they  are  in  no  wise  connected  wath  any  ( 
the  genus  salmo  save  in  being  members  of  the  fish  kind.  In  the  ponds  and  streams  of  oth< 
Southern  States  it  lives  under  the  more  appropriate  cognomen  of  pond  bass,  and  is  esteeme 
properly  as  the  finest  fresh- water  fish  of  the  Southern  States.  It  is  found  in  abundance  in  tl 
mill  ponds,  beaver  ponds,  and  clear  streams  of  the  Gulf  States,  but  attains  its  greatest  size  an 
beauty  in  the  bayous  and  lakes  of  Lower  Louisiana,  from  which  waters  specimens  of  the  fis 
weighing  over  six  pounds  are  sometimes  taken. 

Waters  that  are  slightly  brackish  (though  with  not  enough  salt  in  them  to  prevent  tl 
growth  of  fresh- water  grasses)  seem  to  be  best  suited  to  our  "  green  trout."  In  these  wate 
where  the  lotus,  or  "  grandevole,"  duckweed  and  water  lily  grow  in  profusion,  these  fish  ai 
found  in  the  greatest  abundance.  Most  of  the  bayous  and  streams  tributary  to  Lake  Pontcha 
train  are  well  stocked  with  them,  as  are  also  the  network  of  bayous  west  of  the  city,  which  a. 
entered  by  Harvey's  and  "the  Company's"  canal.  Thus  the  habitat  of  this  fish  is  easi 
accessible  to  the  amateur  fishermen  of  this  city  ;  though  the  same  may  not  be  said  of  the  fii 
itself ,  as  all  of  our  refiective  "Waltons"  are  not  possessed  with  the  skill  and  proficiency: 
angling  requisite  to  the  capture  of  this  wily  denizen  of  the  waters. 

In  the  clear  waters  of  the  currentless  bayous,  the  green  trout  acquires  its  greatest  beau 
in  coloring  and  markings.  In  common  with  a  great  many  other  species  of  fish,  this  has  tl 
chameleon-like  power  of  modifying,  even  almost  entirely  changing,  the  hues  of  its  ski 
Whether  this  modification  is  effected  by  the  fish's  volition  or  by  the  surroundings,  it  is  impossib 
to  determine.    However,  in  the  fishing  season  proper,  when  the  hues  of  the  fish  are  near 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  251 

•apidly  loses  its  rich  hues.    Its  baok  turns  W  dill  brow     Z  ^'\  '^^""^  ^'"^  '^'  "^"'*'  *^^  ^^^ 
>r  entirely  disappears,  and  the  br^rwh  te  of  U^ 

carcely  ever  rise  to  the  ottoanuns^^^^^^^^^  ""'■  """  "'" 

f  the  City  they  are  caught  by  'c:^.^^^!^^^)^:-^^::::^.    rT^T'^^'r' 
)ng  rod,  on  the  end  of  which  is  a  short  linp  Hoif.^  i-'^^  rouow mg  n.anner  .    The  fisherman  has  a 

unchof  mallard  ortealfe^tVe^^ttroi't^o^^^^^^^^  ^^  ^Vr"^'  ^^'  ^  ^'^^^ 

ow  of  a  pirogue  ;  another  man  in  the  stern  of  thr4m'  boaf  lir       h    fi^^^^^rman  sits  in  the 
raft  with  a  paddle.    The  two  hayin-  started  ont  w.  ^  ^""^  noiselessly  propels  the 

=^^=i:-=rHHar=€^ 
rsrs^irrLt::^^^^^^^^^^^^ 

iptures  several  dozens  otrZ'tlidi^^^^^^^^  """""^  ""  "''"'"«  A^'"'™''-'  °fte„ 

wmmmmm 

■tam?finsTf  theT  ^°  ^""''''"^  "^'^"^  '^  °"^^  successfully  used  in  this  fishing     The  little 


252  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK.  ^ 


CHAPTER  XXXT.— THE  FLORA. 

THE  PLANTS  THAT  THRIVE  BEST— THE  MEDICINAL  HERBS  MOST  IN  FAVOR,  AND  THE 
DISEASES  THEY  CURE— A  FLOWER  GARDEN— ROSES  AND  HYACINTHS— THE  MYSTERY 
OF   THE  SWAMPS. 

If  we  are  to  believe  the  early  French  naturalists  who  wrote  on  Louisiana,  the  country 
around  Xew  Orleans  produced  the  greatest  botanical  wonders  the  world  has  ever  known.  V 
was  in  medicinal  plants  that  it  most  luxuriated,  and  for  every  disease  that  prevails  in  Louisiana, 
a  veijetable  remedy  was  to  be  found  close  at  hand. 

Among  the  medicinal  plants,  MM.  Bossu  and  Perrin  du  Lac,  both  bear  testimony  to  th( 
miraculous  cures  of  the  viperine,  rcKine  a  UgmU  goat's  tongue,  or  fritter-root.  The  plant  stil 
flourishes  in  the  forests  around  New  Orleans,  but  has.  somehow,  lost  its  curative  properties  anc 
no  longer  bids  the  sick  man  "  take  up  his  bed  and  walk."  unless  it  be  the  constituent  of  th. 
many  panaceas,  and  patent  medicines  and  bitters  that  now-a-day  cure,  so  iUogically,  the  mos 
contradictory  diseases.  , 

Both  of  these  gentlemen,  "and  they  are  all.  all  honorable  men,"  give  instances  of  th. 
almost  miraculous  cures  worked  by  this  root.  It  was  only  necessary  to  drop  a  little  of  it 
jaice  upon  a  wound,  and  it  closed  up  immediately,  leaving  scarcely  a  scar  to  recall  its  memory 
M.  Du  Lac  narrates,  in  particular,  how  an  Indian,  wounded  in  a  battle-knowing  that  if  h. 
halted  he  would  fall  a  victim  to  the  enemy's  cruelty,  kept  on  retreating  despite  his  wounds 
chewing,  as  he  ran,  this  root,  and  occasionally  putting  some  of  it  upon  his  many  wounds.  Thu 
he  continued,  running  over  sixty  miles  before  he  stopped,  and  when  at  last  he  halted,  it  was  t- 
find  his  wounds  completely  healed. 

Not  only  was  l;he  poor  savage  protected  against  wounds,  but  he  could  even  defy  fire 
in  fact,  seemed  free  from  all  the  weaknesses  of  humanity. 

M.  Du  Lac  and  several  others  tell  us  of  the  virtues  of  the  savoyanne  root.  The  savoyann 
had  pretty  much  the  same  peculiarities  as  the  fabled  salamander— only  a  little  more  so.  It  wa 
a  safeguard  and  a  cure  for  all  burns,  scalds,  etc.  Bathed  in  its  .iuice,  one  could  boldly  put  hi 
arm  into  the  fire,  like  Sctevola,  or  walk  around  like  Mesheck  in  the  fiery  furnace,  without  tb 
least  unpleasant  result. 

This  was  no  "  Grecian  fable";  no  second-handed  story  picked  up  by  him  ;  M.  Du  Lac  ha« 
seen  its  wonders  himself.  He  was  invited  to  a  council  of  the  Indians.  Proceedings  were  ccm 
menced  with  a  friendly  pipe  all  around.  When  this  was  completed,  the  Grand  Sun,  the  grea 
chief  ordered  enormous  goblets  of  boUing  bear's  grease,  on  fire,  brought  in,  which  Plutonia 
liquid  the  savages  swallowed  with  great  gusto,  rolling  their  eyes  and  winking  knowingly,  as  i 
they  mightily  enjoyed  this  novel  pousse-caf e.  A  course  of  red-hot  coals  followed,  which  the 
chewed  up  \suth  apparent  gusto,  gazing  all  the  while  at  the  Frenchman  to  see  it  he  was  suff 
ciently  astounded  at  them  and  their  eccentric  diet. 

They  had  succeeded.  The  Frenchman  was  absolutely  horrified  and  begged  for  an  explauj 
tion  It  was  the  Great  Manitou,  the  savages  insisted,  that  enabled  them  to  be  fire-eaters,  an 
they  proposed  that  he  should  at  once  adopt  their  faith  and  discard  his  former  religion  an 
breeches.    This,  however,  he  politely  declined,  with  thanks. 

This  so-called  Manitou  he  subsequently  identified  as  a  root,  savoyanne,  whose  juice  pn 
tected  a  man  from  any  injury  by  fire.  , 

He  found  also  another  plant  of  the  same  order  which  had  the  effect  of  solidifying  watc 
This  plant,  M.  Baudry  des  Lozieres  (First  Voyage  to  Louisiana,  page  175),  also  saw,  so  that  ther 
can  be  no  question  about  its  actual  existence  and  power,    M.  des  Lozieres  calls  it  a  grass,  an 


Jock's  ][ega 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  253 

says  it  was  known  to  the  Creoles  here  by  the  name  of  semper  virens,  or  evergreen,  and  that  a 
single  drop  of  its  juice,  dropped  into  a  cup  of  water,  immediately  froze  it. 

But  greatest  of  all  in  the  vegetable  kingdom— as  man  is  greatest  in  the  world— was  the  man- 
plant  {Jiomme-plante).  This  plant  was  only  once  seen  in  Louisiana,  or,  for  that  matter,  only  once 
seen  in  the  world.  M.  B.  des  Lozieres,  who  gives  the  only  account  extant  of  it,  did  not  see  it 
iiimself,  but  got  the  story  direct  from  Don  Martin  Xovar,  Governor  of  Louisiana. 

Some  Galician  laborers  were  digging  a  ditch  near  the  city,  when  suddenly  one  of  them 
turned  up  with  his  spade  something  white.  A  closer  glance  at  it  showed  him  and  his  comrades 
:hat  it  was  a  corpse,  the  body  of  one  who  had  evidently  once  been  a  beautiful  girl.  The  laborers 
vvere  quite  horrified  when  a  dozen  more  bodies  of  men,  women  and  children  were  uneaithed, 
ill  in  a  perfect  state  of  preservation.  Alarmed  at  this  discovery  of  what  they  supposed  to  be 
he  victims  of  Indian  barbarity,  the  laborers  ran  off  for  help.  What  was  their  surprise  when 
:hey  returned  to  find  visible  and  unmistakable  signs  of  life  in  the  bodies.  They  had  been  buried 
ilive  : 

Restoratives  were  about  being  applied  when  one  of  the  men,  who  had  been  more  inquisitive 
;han  the  others,  announced  that  they  were  not  bodies  after  all,  but  simply  plants,  and  so  it 
jroved  ;  and  the  Spaniards  cannibalistically  devoured  these  roots,  with  the  exception  of  a  few 
;ent  to  New  Orleans  as  curiosities,  and  declared  them  excellent. 

"These  strange  plants."  writes  M.  Baudry  des  Lozieres  (Second  Voyage  to  Louisiana,  vol.  2, 
)ages  304  seq.),  "bore  some  resemblance  to  an  Irish  potato  or  white  truffle,  but  were  much 
arger  than  the  largest  yam.  They  had  the  perfect  shape  and  face  of  a  human  being,  with  the 
eatures  of  the  face  clearly  marked,  a  neck,  shoulders,  and  a  well  defined  body.  Some  of  the 
'lants  were  small,  others  large  ;  some  had  male,  others  female  features.  They  seemed  to  form 
I  regular  colony  or  settlement,  and  quivered  when  touched,  and  even  seemed  to  move  away, 
,s  if  they  intended  to  defend  themselves.  They  received  at  once  the  name  of  man-plant 
homme-plante).'''' 

Never  since  has  the  man-plant  been  seen ;  it  is  a  mystery  that  will  probably  never  be 
olved. 

There  are  a  hundred  other  plants  of  old  Louisiana  that  might  be  mentioned,  equally  wonder- 
iil  in  their  history  and  cures  as  these.  The  hair  plant,  the  oil  tree,  the  button  tree,  the  wax 
ree,  the  fever  bush,  the  absynthe,  the  water  tree. 

Where  are  all  these  wonders  now?  Where  is  the  rattlesnake  and  frog  potato,  the  angel's 
■aim,  the  bite  of  the  devil,  the  get-up- earl v-in-the-morning  plant,  the  mouse's  eye,  the  dog's 
ooth,  the  boiling  root,  and  a  hundred  others  that  flourished  in  the  forests  around  New  Orleans 
nee  ?    All  lost  now,  gone  like  the  ten  tribes  of  Israel. 

NEW  ORLEANS   GARDENS. 

So  gradual  has  been  the  improvement  in  things  horticultural  around  New  Orleans,  it  is  a 
ttle  difficult  to  appreciate  how  great  a  change  has  been  wrought  within  the  past  fifteen  years, 
he  planting  of  rare  trees  here,  the  development  of  beds  there,  has  been  going  on  steadily 
iroughout  the  city  during  all  this  time,  until  now,  when  you  look  around,  you  discover  t'.iat 
aere  has  been  developed  more  of  a  taste  for  the  beautiful  in  nature  than  one  would  at  first 
appose.  It  is  not  to  say  that  flowers  were  not  always  highly  appreciated  in  New  Orleans;  but 
■hat  forces  itself  upon  the  attention  is  that  this  taste  has  become  more  general,  and  more  time 
nd  study  have  been  devoted  to  the  improvement  of  the  flower  garden  than  formerly. 

In  former  days— and  by  former  days  some  ten  or  twelve  years  ago  is  meant— a  few  clipped 
ushes,  a  bit  of  lawn,  with  angular  flower-beds  dotting  it,  here  and  there  a  few  white  and  red 
^ses,  constituted  what  was  called  a  pretty  garden  in  the  city.  The  varieties  of  roses  seldom 
sceeded  half  a  dozen,  and  some  of  these  most  mediocre,  to  which  were  added  a  Grand  Duke 
asmine,  a  mignonnette,  trimmed  pitospomm  or  lygustrum  nepalensis.  These  constituted  the 
ontents  of  the  average  garden. 


254  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Now  all  this  is  changed,  and  in  a  short  peregrination  anywhere  out  of  the  central  portioi 
of  town  you  can  find  delightful  little  gardens,  overrunning  with  the  choicest  roses  and  verdan 
with  choice  palms,  coleus,  hibiscus  abutilus,  etc.  The  lawns,  too,  have  come  in  for  a  share  o 
the  work  of  improvement,  and  are  now  artistically  kept,  with  neat  borders  and  velvety  swar(] 
A  number  of  green-houses  have  been  erected  to  add  their  beauties  to  the  floral  display,  aiu 
even  the  public  squares,  so  long  waste  places  for  rank  grass  to  thrive  until  it  was  knee  deep 
now  have  put  on  a  more  cheerful  dress,  with  their  beds  of  exotics  and  trimmed  lawn. 

Jackson  square,  ever  attractive,  has  brightened  its  face  with  new  and  lovely  roses  and  goi 
geously  colored  plants,  thanks  to  the  commissioners.  Lafayette  square,  keeping  pace  with  th' 
good  work,  is  now  a  delicious  place  of  rest  and  siesta.  New  trees  have  been  planted  in  it,  am 
beds  of  rich  exotics  attract  the  eye,  while  fountains  and  classic  urns  add  to  the  picture. 

Coliseum  square,  with  its  battalion  of  water  oak  trees,  sweep  of  lawn,  and  pretty  beds,  ha 
altered  the  appearance  of  the  whole  neighborhood,  and  is  now  one  of  the  most  pleasant  spot 
in  the  city.  Annunciation,  Clay  and  Washington  squares  likewise  show  the  good  results  froi 
careful  attention,  until  each  and  all  of  them  have  become  a  source  of  pride  to  those  living  i 
their  localities. 

Of  late,  Margaret  place,  at  the  junction  of  Camp  and  Prytania  streets,  has  become  an  inte: 
esting  place  of  resort,  and,  young  as  it  is  as  a  public  spot,  its  garden  already  has  attracts 
attention. 

The  Lake  shores  have  been  wonderfully  transformed  into  gardens  of  beauty.  Spanish  For 
with  its  park  of  oaks,  beds  of  flowers,  groves  of  umbrella  china  trees,  ponds  and  grotto,  is 
surprising  change  from  the  shabby  orange  grove  that  once  occupied  this  ground. 

West  End,  with  its  long  parterres  on  the  revetment,  its  rockeries,  puzzle  labyrinth,  leaf 
arcades  and  lily  ponds  is  in  marked  contrast  with  the  rough  and  wild  picture  the  revetmer 
levee  once  presented.  Of  private  gardens  there  are  many  worthy  of  a  long  inspection.  Prj 
tania,  St.  Charles,  Esplanade  and  numerous  streets  offer  an  afternoon's  study  to  those  delightin 
in  floral  beauty  and  artistic  gardening. 

The  old  and  rigid  style  of  angular  precise  beds  has  passed  away,  and  even  where  the  spac 
is  small  there  are  gratifying  attempts  at  landscape  gardening  that  has  added  an  attractivenes 
not  known  before. 

It  is  possible  to  have  flowers  in  the  open  air  all  the  year  round  in  New  Orleans,  for  it  i ' 
seldom  too  cold  or  too  hot  for  something  to  blossom,  and  the  gardens  of  city  residences  ar' 
nearly  all  large  enough  to  have  the  variety  necessary  to  accomplish  this  result. 

In  order  to  bridge  over  the  interval,  when  more  bare  ground  than  plants  is  seen  in  the  col 
season,  some  things  must  be  learned  and  some  popular  errors  forgotten.  It  is  a  common  belie 
that  Louisiana  winters  are  as  severe  upon  plant  life  as  in  the  North ;  that  seed  must  not  b 
planted  till  spring,  and  that  though  large  plants  and  trees  may  survive  the  cold  winds  of  winte^ 
it  would  not  be  possible  for  such  little  things  as  the  daisy  or  phlox  to  endure  them. 

Now  as  to  the  facts  :  Some  of  the  plants  in  New  Orleans'  gardens  are  occasionally  killed  r 
injured  by  cold,  but  after  all  a  very  small  proportion,  and  so  little  penetrating  effect  has  th 
cold  that  there  have  been  geraniums,  and  even  more  delicate  plants  saved  by  a  covering  of 
few  newspapers.  That  orange  trees  in  the  same  garden  were  killed  proves  nothing,  for  it : 
easy  to  cover  our  small  flowering  plants,  while  to  protect  the  orange  tree  would  be  a  difficu 
matter.  As  to  the  time  for  planting  seed,  October  and  November  might  really  be  called  sprin 
months,  that  is  to  say,  the  influence  of  this  climate  during  those  months  upon  the  germinatio 
of  seeds  and  the  growth  of  young  plants  of  many  kinds  is  equivalent  to  the  real  spring  tim 
further  north.  It  is  also  provided  by  nature  that  such  as  should  be  planted  shortly  before  th 
advent  of  cold  weather  are  sufficiently  hardy  to  withstand  the  coming  winter,  and  few  will  b 
killed,  though  afforded  no  protection  whatever.  Reference  is  made  to  a  number  of  annuals  an 
perennials  whose  proper  season  for  bloom  in  this  climate  is  from  the  first  of  January  to  the  en 
of  April.    So,  under  the  impression  that  spring  is  the  time  for  planting,  many  persons  wait  unt 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  ^gg 

n  shallow  boxes  or  pans,  in  soil  enJlched  with  n^^^^^  -  '^''-"'^'  '''''''  ^""^°''  ^''^'^^  ^  ^°^ 

and  ;  sow  very  thin  (a^  ormlrTpaper^f  ^  T  ^^^'  ''^^*  ^"^  *^^  ^d^^««^  of 

urface  from  two  to  four  feetTquare)  s^t  fine  soi  J  \l  ^""Z^  '''"  '^^^^^  ^^  '^''^^  over  a 
i^ht,  then  water  with  a  fin  e  toTsIXIIZZL^J^  l^  '!f  '^^''^^*  ^^^^  ^«  ^^^^^  ^^  f  ^o^ 
eater  is  injurious.  Place  the  boxes  wh^r^th  '''^"^^^  ^^^P  ^^'  ^arth  slightly  moist ;  too  much 
he  sun  andshield  from  lavy  ^aL^^^^^^^^^^^^  shade  from  the  direct  rays  of 

riven  in  the  ground  and  rub  chalk  aroundT.  ^f  ^"^^^^^^  .^^^  ants  raise  the  boxes  on  stakes 
nd  the  ants  will  .ot  cHmb  up  '  "'^^''  ^'  °^°^^*^°  ^^^°^  ^^^  ^o^^  oil  frequently, 

ays't:ri?rr^:rstiir^^^^^^^^  *^  ^f^  ^^  ^^  -en  to  twelve 

ir  or  have  been  sown  too  thilk  ^ey  are  iS w  2  *^  «^^^J^  ^^5--  If  they  lack  sufficient 
iseased  at  the  surface  of  the  «  fXvt  and  L  X5^^  '"'  ""^^  ^^^"'^  ^^^^^^ 

It  It  IS  desired  to  keep  a  succession  of  annuals  in  bloom  nt,f  il  i'ot„  i„  ,i,„ 
w  marlsolds,  petunia,  phlox,  candytuft,  and  a  numbe  "f  other,  t  T»!    ^™T'Jr  °^'' 

.priitrbrsrettrL^bror^^r^^^^^^^ 

rore'eiT:eit,rVn-:;rs^^^^^ 

;;rcTtner,r^-reis~^ 

r^L^:^ «™ '—  --  - — --  o'  ^r™:/:rthf Lfp^s^^e^f 

auary,  February  and  March  with  fli,  nrTnLl  f  *  "^  "*  may  be  continued  through 
>ot  as  early  after  the  flfteentrof  Noverber  Is^possiwr'^Rose?  Tf.  */  ^'''  '^^""=' 
.rch  usually  give  poor  satisfaction.  ar°rroften  a  totai  losso  P"'-^,^''/"''^ 'he  last  of 
!h  late  planting     They  make  »ll  tdr^ZZV-  .    }    .  °'  ""=  P'"°'^  '*  *«  result  of 

oter  months,  and  do  ye"  mtr"roo    gro^S  taTot  w        '^r"-°'  "°°'  ^*^"'"°'  °" 

The  money  spent  in  the  purchase  in  New  Orleans  of  such  bulbs  as  the  Tulip,   Croesus,  Ane- 


256  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

mone  Sdttas,  Snowdrops,  Banuneulus,  Ixia,  CdcMcum,  is  simply  wasted,  as  they  do  little  or  no 
good'  either  in  the  open  ground  or  as  pot  plants,  in  latitudes  so  low  as  New  Orleans. 

Southern  ladies  visiting  Northern  cities  are  struck  ^ith  the  beauty  of  the  beds,  etc.,  of  these 
handsome  flowers,  and  often  wonderingly  ask  why  it  is  that  they  cannot  be  grown  here  as  well 
as  in  New  York,  and  seem  incredulous  when  told  that  they  will  not  bloom  here,  and  are  not  sat- 
isfied of  the  fact  imtil  they  have  spent  a  small  fortune  in  their  purchase. 

The  Si/adn^A^  and  Jongwt75  are  the  only  winter  flowering  bulbs  that  can  be  relied  upon  to 
bloom  in  the  climate  of  New  Orleans.  Of  these  there  are  a  great  multitude  of  varieties,  single 
and  double,  tall  and  low  growing  sorts,  that  make  a  very  pretty  effect  when  grown  in  beds  in 
the  garden,  and  are  invaluable  for  house  culture  in  pots,  jars,  fancy  boxes  and  baskets,  and  m 
fact  may  be  grown  in  anything  that  may  suit  the  fancy. 

The  later  part  of  October  is  the  proper  season  for  planting  Hyacinths  and  other  bulbous- 
rooted  flowering  plants. 

It  is  useless  to  attempt  to  save  Hyacinth  bulbs  for  a  second  season,  as  they  wiU  never  bloom 
again-even  should  they  escape  the  rot  during  the  following  summer-and  may  just  as  well  be 
thrown  away  when  they  are  done  blooming. 

THE  SPANISH  MOSS. 
The  Spanish  moss,  "  tillandsia  neneoides,"  of  the  botanists,  has  its  own  history,  and  is  a. 
veritable  "  arcanum  naturse."  Its  biographical  records  are  very  meagre,  in  spite  of  all  learned 
men  of  botanical  science.  Many  botanists  sent  as  emissaries  from  the  NewEngland  universities' 
might  have  passed  under  those  moving,  swinging  and  dropping  garlands  without  seeing  more 
than  its  peculiar  growth. 

The  native  habitat  of  the  Spanish  moss  is  on  the  tops  and  branches  of  living  trees  which  grow- 
in  the  gloomy  swamps  or  along  their  borders.  It  revels  in  the  darkest  recesses  of  the  deep  and 
dismal  cypress  groves,  above  the  exhalations  of  everlasting  swamps,  and  covers  as  with  a. 
mantle  the  broad-armed  live  and  native  oaks  which  fringe  the  ridgy  margins  of  the  lakes  and 

bayous.  mv.    -u-  v. 

It  even  drifts  away  from  the  tops  of  the  cypress  and  tupelo,  and  encroaches  on  the  higli^ 
lands  adjacent  to  the  swamps,  and  festoons  with  its  gray  drapery,  the  sweet  gum,  elm  and  ash. 
Associated  as  it  is  by  false  report  and  preconceived  ideas,  with  malarial  fevers  and  swamp 
ague  the  stranger  when  he  first  views  the  long  pendulous  pennants  of  the  gray  moss,  solemnly 
swaying  in  the  breeze,  cannot  resist  the  impression  that  he  is  looking  on  the  waving  plumes  of 
a  hundred  hearses. 

But  prone  as  the  imagination  is  to  this  delusion,  it  is  now  well  settled  that  this  long  moss  i» 
the  salvation  of  the  swamp  residents.  ,      ,  ,        , 

Many  a  home  along  the  dark  margins  of  extensive  swamps  enjoys  as  perfect  health  and 
great  immunity  from  disease  as  those  do  which  are  located  in  the  mountains. 

This  moss  needs  the  tree  simply  to  keep  it  in  the  air.  It  is,  therefore,  an  epiphyte.  It  is  nd 
a  parasite,  because  it  does  not  derive  any  sustenance  from  the  tree  ;  but  it  feeds  on  the  malan 
ous  elements  in  the  atmosphere,  and,  consuming  them,  purifies  the  surrounding  air,  whicl 
would,  for  human  lungs  and  skin,  be  otherwise  loaded  with  poison,  from  the  rapid  decay  o. 
exuberant  vegetation.  ^  i..  ,    .x    ^     j  m 

It  cannot  live  on  a  dead  tree,  because  the  bark,  among  the  crevices  of  which  its  tendnli 
creep  has  slipped  off.  When  the  tree  dies,  the  moss  soon  turns  black,  and  drapes  itself  ii 
mourning  as  if  for  the  tree,  its  dead  mother. 

No  scenery  in  nature  can  convey  a  more  solemn  and  impressive  feeling  to  the  traveler  thai 
a  moss-covered  swamp.  As  one  pushes  his  pirogue  through  the  lofty  wreaths  and  verdam 
arches  of  the  silent  swamp,  the  tall  columns  of  cypress  rise  up  on  every  side  like  huge  stalag 
mites,  upholding  the  leafy,  living  cavern  above,  from  the  roof  of  which  depend  long  masses  o 
moss  like  innumerable  gray  stalactites,  so  shutting  out  the  sua  as  to  make  it  twilight  at  nooj] 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  257 


258  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXXIL-THE  FRENCH  MARKET. 

SCENES   ABOUT   THE   MARKET   FROM   THREE    IN    THE    MORNING    UNTIL    LATE   AT  NIGHT— 
THE   MARKET   PEOPLE   AND   THEIR   MODE   OF  SERVING. 

The  French  market  has  become  a  traditional  curiosity  to  visitors  to  New  Orleans,  as  one  of 
the  most  original  features  of  the  city,  and  it  is  considered  one  of  the  first  duties  of  a  stranger  to 

^"^'as  you  near  Jackson  square  a  stream  of  busy-looking  people  appears,  laden  with  baskets 
and  bundles.  Following  this  current  of  life,  you  are  whirled  forward  to  the  comer  opposite 
the  market.  Here  a  stout  old  lady  of  heavy  build,  ornamented  with  a  bonnet  like  a  basket  ot 
vegetables,  dashes  across,  followed  by  her  daughter,  a  rosy-faced,  stout-shouldered,  masculine 
young  woman.  Business  is  everything  to  them,  and  as  they  pass  over  the  oozy  mud  they  lift 
their  dresses  high,  high  enough  to  attract  the  attention  of  the  neighboring  men.  You  follow  m 
their  footsteps  into  the  market ;  at  its  entrance  is  a  marble-topped  stand,  over  which  hangs  the 
title  and  sign  of  the  Cafe  Rapide,  with  a  painting,  illustrative  of  the  title,  of  many  persons 
devouring  their  food  with  dangerous  and  terrifying  celerity.  Here  you  take  your  seat  for  a 
cup  of  coffee  or  chocolate,  and  glance  around  you. 

A  man  might  here  study  the  world.  Every  race  that  the  world  boasts  is  here,  and  a  good 
many  races  that  are  nowhere  else.  The  strangest  and  most  complicated  mixture  of  Indian 
negro  and  Caucasian  blood,  with  negroes  washed  white,  and  white  men  that  mulattoes  would 
scorn  to  claim  as  of  their  own  particular  hybrid.  

The  dresses  are  as  varied  as  the  faces  ;  the  baskets  even  are  of  every  race,  some  stout  and 
portly  others  delicate  and  adorned  with  ribbons  and  ornaments  ;  some,  again,  old.  wheezy  ana 
decayed  through  whose  worn  ribs  might  be  seen  solemn  and  melancholy  cabbages,  turnips  and 
ToLtoes.  crammed  and  jostled  together  in  ruthless  imprisonment.  The  butchers  -o-  to  use 
all  those  blandishments  that  the  lower  grades  of  market  society  make  use  ^^  ^j^  f^^^f  ^^^^ 
chasers.  Like  Mahomet,  the  mountain  must  come  to  them.  From  the  ceiling  hang  endle.. 
ropes  of  spider'B  webs,  numberless  flies,  and  incalculable  dirt  ^^^^  ^^aUs  are  deeply  worn  by 
the  scrapin- process;  in  some  yawn  pits,  apparently  bottomless ;  and  lastly,  the  floor  of  the 
Lrket TnSt  at  all  clean,  but  covered  with  mud  and  dirt  from  the  feet  of  its  patrons.  Through 
Teciwd  lurk  some  skeleton-dogs,  vainly  hoping,  by  some  happy  accident,  to  secure  a  dainty 

"^""luhe  end  of  the  market  lie,  sleep,  eat  and  trade  a  half-dozen  Indians.  In  olden  days  these 
KatthezChoetaws  and  Creeks  were  numbered  by  the  thousands,  but  they  have  pelted  ^^ 
Tnto  Mulattoes.  The  lazy,  unstudied  attitude  of  these  Red  Roses,  these  daughters  of  the  forest 
ifnof  exacUy  in  accordance  with  the  poetic  idea  one  used  to  drink  in.  in  his  earher  day..  Jh 
Indian  females  are  formless,  and  the  bag  that  they  wear  has  no  pretensions  to  fi"mg,  J?^^  " 
add-on  they  have  hung  around  them  bundles,  beads,  babies,  and  other  curiosities,  they  fail  t< 

"TmHor.^ng  th^drift  of  the  crowd,  you  enter  the  Bazaar  market,  the  newest  of  this  batcl 
of  oM  bundings  that  are  collectively  honored  with  the  title  of  market.  It  is  in  a  tolera^^y  g^^^^^ 
state  of  preservation.  The  architect  had  high  and  ambitious  views,  evidenced  by  two  tin  cupo 
IslhatrTselikedomesfromthemarket-house.  The  flush  days  of  the  Bazaar  market  are  fled;  n< 
longer  Ire  fortunes  to  be  gained  there ;  gloom  and  melancholy  lurk  within ;  -any  ^f  the  sho^ 
are  boarded  up,  and  even  those  that  are  occupied  see  few  purchasers.  ^  «\"^^^,^f  J^^^'^J"^ 
merchants  stretched  across  the  street  from  the  Bazaar  to  the  vegetable  ^-^I'-J^^""'^, 
dozenorsoyearsofage.  they  have  learned  all  the  "tricks  ofthe  trade."  and  overwhelm  yoi 
with  good  bargains,  and  almost  extort  your  money  from  you. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  259 

At  the  angle  of  the  vegetable  market  is  the  chicken  repository.    The  dead  chickens  hane 

mamr"  '^'  '""' '  '''  '''''  ""'^  ^''  ^°°P^^  "P'  ^^'l  ^^-^  -^dless  rounds  of  IsTc  Thi? 
market  is  the  most  cosmopolitan  of  all.  The  air  is  broken  by  every  language-En^I^h  French 
I  ahan  and  German,  varied  by  gombc  languages  of  every  shade  :  languages  whose  whole  vocab 
tt'LTaths'"  '"'  '  ''"  "'^''^  "^^'^'  '^'  "^^"^^  ^'''  ''  -^^^^  -^  exprerstTemphatlc  and 
Nor  are  the  materials  for  sale  less  varied.    Piles  of  cabbages,  turnips  and  strange  vegetables 

bfu^nat'e^c  wMle'n'^H'%^''r"^  ^""^  '^^™  every  corner;  the  walls  are  feloned^^^^^ 
bananas,  etc.  while  fish,  bread,  flour,  and  even  alligators,  have  each  appropriate  tables  The 
bnght  sun  leaks  drowsily  through  the  spider  webs,  producing  a  sad,  sleepy  St  the  monoto 
nouscnes  of  theboys  Jn,  a  ai. sous^  "two  cents  apiece,  Ldame>  keep  S  a^^ndS^^^^^^^ 
Tennyson's  brook  and  the  crowd  jostles  you  with  baskets  and  bundles  until  you  dro^into  some 
neighboring  stall  for  a  bite,  or  make  your  way  altogether  out  of  the  market 

If  you  wait  a  little  while  until  the  press  of  trade  slackens  somewhat  and  the  market  oeonle 
begm  so  go  home,  you  will  have  an  opportunity  to  study  the  queer  habits  of  the  'dagoes ''-the 
marked  '""°  '"''"'  ""'  ""''  "^  ^°  ''^'''''''  '^^  picturesque  an  elem'ent  in  the 

A  dark-skinned  woman  is  going  out  of  the  empty  market  alone.  She  wears  a  soiled  faded 
calico  dress ;  but  in  her  eye  there  is  Madame  Dufarge  boldness,  which  attraS  the  attntfon 

streetTro  fh  fn  '"^'  "  "^l  ''^'  '"^"^"'  "'^^"'^^ ''  ^^  '^^^^^^  ^'  «^^  -<>--  the  mudd  "  sloppy 
street  through  the  ram.     \Vhen  she  reaches  the  curbstone  she  stamps  her  bare,  brown  feet  on 
the  banquette-they  are  wonderfully  formed  feet-and  gives  herself  a  shake  to  get  the  mud  and 
water  off  to  an  extent.    She  gathers  and  crumples  her  calico  dress  in  her  hands  once  more 
and  walkmg  a  short  distance,  disappears  down  a  narrow,  dark  alley.    Thither  she  ^s  followed 
by  more  fastidious  feet,  through  the  puddles  of  water  on  the  old,  cracked  flagstone  pavemrnt 
by  heaps  of  garbage  and  vegetable  refuse,  damp  and  decaying,  till  the  entrance  oTadTngv 
crowded  courtyard  IS  reached.    This  courtyard  is  surrounded  on  every  side  by  narrow  dreary- 
ooking  buildings  two  stories  high.    Rickety,  crazy  steps  lead  up  from  the  yard  to  thegaUeries  of 
n^ttlTn    .?T   v"  '?  ^^^'^^'-I'^'^king  place  as  the  drizzling  rain  falls  on  the  mouldy  posts  and 
patters  on  the  broken  flagstones.    It  seems  a  fit  spot  for  Poverty  to  hold  her  court,  or  for  the 
phantom  forms  of  disease  to  lurk.    There  is  a  hydrant  in  this  courtyard.    Near  its  base  four 
5pouts  are  let  m.  which,  when  open,  pour  their  water  into  a  circular  stone  basin  about  ei-ht 
^eet  in  diameter.    The  iron  column  that  rises  above  this  basin  performs  three  separate  dutfes 
r^.^^.  '^if     ..         Z^!.T  '  ^  ^^°^P-P«^^t,  supporting  a  big  glass  lamp,  at  the  top  ;    and  an 
)rnament  altogether.    While  this  column  and  the  circular  stone  basin  below  present  a  verv 
landsome  appearance,  they  are  in  strange  keeping  with  their  surroundings,  for  the  yard  is  filled 
vith  tubs,  buckets,  barrels,  hogsheads,  crates  and  coops,  all  old.  besides  many  other  things  that 
n  amount  seem  almost  impossible  to  crowd  into  a  courtyard  fifty  by  sixty  feet     There  are  wet 
aothes  strung  on  many  lines  stretched  across  this  yard  from  building  to  building  •  they  dismaUy 
lap  and  flutter  about  in  the  drizzly  rain  which  is  ever  falling.    The  lower  story,  surroundin-  the 
ourtyard,  contains  fourteen  rooms,  while  the  upper  has  a  like  number.    In  these  dim  chambers 
wenty-eight  in  all,  fifty  families  are  living  and  breathing.    This  is  their  home  through  winter 
■nd  summer,  heat  and  cold-their  home,  whether  pestilence,  a  terrible,  unseen  spectre  stalks 
■bout  among  them,  or  whether  pity  from  heaven  turns  away  the  dire  scourge  of  disease 

Many  children  are  gathered  about  the  dark  doors.  They  look  out  vaguely  at  the  ram  or 
alk  and  quarrel  in  the  many  dialects  of  their  dark-skinned  parents.  Most  of  these  children 
eem  old  and  pinched  about  their  faces,  as  though  life  were  for  them  already  exhausted  Dark- 
isaged  men  and  women,  descendants  of  the  old  Pelasgic  race,  are  gathered  in  numbers  in  these 
wenty-eight  rooms.  The  men  have  come  in  off  the  wharf,  where  their  boats,  or  their  business 
ave  oqcupied  them  all  day,  and  are  sitting  in  the  doorways,  smoking  their  pipes,  while  thev 
loomily  look  out  on  the  gloomy  weather. 


260 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


The  red  flannel  ..«,  and  blue  trousers  -Woh     ey  .euera  ly  -^  ^^^^^  h^^^ 

dark  eye  and  raven  hair  a  -™:P'f '''''^^f '^^""/f^la.^arot  £o  w  L^^^^^^  The  women  are 

ruled,  a  king,  over  fiercer  subjects  o"  the  -an^y  -sland    o'  ^  ^^  ^^^^^^.^  ^^^^^ 

inside  the  rooms,  passing  backward  and    °;™™;„P;™,.,piafj,.,poken  languages.    They  have  a 
while  now  and  then  they  address  the  men  m  their  man^  .ap     >    f  ^^^^^  ^^^^  ^^^^^^^^ 

soft  dialect,  these  women,  while  a  great  '^^11°'''^^°^^^  Z,,  even  beautiful.    But,  with 
the  gentle  touch  of  wealth  «.«!  reflnernentw onldtave  made         ^^  ^  ^.^^^^^^  ^  ^^^^^^^^  ^^ 

nf:rnrSery.ntofthe..n^a^^^^^^^^^^^ 

Strips  of  maccaroni  are  hanging  up  Bear  the  ^e      °  ^^  ^.^^  Americans  without  their 

fathersa  fondness  for  this  article  ;.Nithoutw^^^^^^^^  ^^  many  of  the  feathered 

wheat  bread.    Issuing  from  their  ^^^^  ^/^J^^  Lliingof  guinea  hens  and  crowing  of  cocks, 
tribe,  the  gobbling  ^^  turkeys  auacU.g  of  ^^^^^^^^^  ^g^  tastes  of  the  men  withtbered 

The  very  fowls  seem  to  .f^^^  ^ J^^^J  ^'^^.^^.^^  i,  ^j  not  such  an  ^  that  gobbling,  quacking 

shirts,  and  the  women  with  the  faded  ^lesst  s  is  oi  n  ^^^^  ^ith  the  idea,  that  of  all 

cackling,  and  crowing  .iar  on  their  ner^^^^^^^  ^„,  ,,,y  ,,,,  emulate 

occupants  of  the  P^^^f.  t^%^^^\'^"  ^l^f  ^^^^^^^  fowl  discourse.    As  night 

thejabberingandrattlmgofmanyDago  lang^^^^^^^^^^^  ealico-clad  inhabitants  is  toned 

approaches  the  lingo  from  these  feath^^^^^^^^^  Mrds  of  evil  tuck  their  heads  under 

down  to  a  subdued  hum-drum.    The  birds  ^i  P  ^^^  ^ ^^^  preparmg  to 

their  wings  and  are  silent.  The  -^^^^^^^^Xn'ren  d^^^^^^^  their  scant  suppers  of  maccaroni 
foUow  their  example.    The  men  women  and  chuare^^^  ^^  ^^^^^^  ^^^^^  ^^^ 

and  unseasonable  --ket  stuff  hen  d-P  'l^'J""^'^ .Znl  is  heard  save  the  noise  made  by  th. 
crates  and  the  coops  m  ^^^^  ^^"^^^.^.^^^'^"^^/fJ'^Vthe  dull,  dark  sky  :  the  water  off  the  roof 
elements.  The  drizzling  ^^^^:'''''\'f^l''Zo^n  Tone.,  ory^ea^^^  with  loud  thumps  or 
dripping  down  with  a  pattering  noise  on  t^^  broken  st         ,  ^^        ^^  ^^^^^  .^  ^j^^ 

the'bottom  of  the  tin  ^P-f^  J^f^f  ^/.^^J^^  deslrted.    Eed  shirts  and  fadec 

privation  and  toil.  stirring  are  heard  in  the  twenty-eight  rooms.    I 

At  three  in  the  mornmg  the  first  sound,  o    sum  the  wall;  then  others;  sooi 

is  dark,  but  soon  a  faint  streak  ^om  a  match  ^«  ^|:^^.fl;^P^^^^^^,;^,,,ending  the  rickety  stairs  tha 
almost  all  of  the  rooms  are  dimly  l.ghted  ^^J^f^^l^^  ^.^  ^^ess  being  the  same  in  which  b 
lead  down  to  the  stones  of  the  yard  It  ^^^fjl^^^\^,,^,,,^  above  the  circular  basin.  H 
retired  last  night.    This  boy  goes  up  ^^^le    amp  post  ^^  ^^^^  ^^^^^  ^^  ^^.^^  ^.^    j 

has  a  candle  in  one-hand,  whi  e  he  ^^^^^ lll^:\^^l'^Ze  he  comes  down  and  stands  on  th 

;r:n^a^^o=.^and.ca,..^^^^^ 
..red:Ss^:^rf=^^^ 

'of  the  community.    At  last  all  the  figures  ha^^^^  other  down  the  crazy  steps.    The 

the  sleepy  crowd  of  men  ^^^^^'^^^f'^Tm^'^^^^  niatutinal  votaries,  who  are  assemWe 
form  around  the  iron  hydrant  ^^ '^^^^e^'^ey^^^^^  before  an  idol.  They  throng  around  th 
1^^:^^:^^^:^^^^  -e  basiu.    They  are  allbarefooted  an 


GUIDE    TO    NEAV    ORLEAKS.  261 

bareheaded ;  some  even  have  bare  shoulders,  but  none  are  completely  nude  These  olive-corn 
Plexioned  people  roll  up  their  blue  trowsers,  tuck  up  their  faded  skirts  and  go  into  the  bi^  bash, 
fl^^^^r^^Z^:-'-  ''--'-^  ^--^  — •  --  -oterthe^^Ltds^rnd 
The  water  that  runs  down  into  the  basin  where  they  stand,  has  still  another  part  to  perform 
But  dunng  the  fulfillment  of  its  first  duties,  men,  women  and  children,  all  iabberh^fat  once"; 
iTffleTVrr'  ?""/'"''' ""^^'^^^  P^^^^  a  perfect  pandemonium.    They  bustle  and 

tL  cold  d^l  .to         .T^  T"'n  ^'""^  ^'^  ""  ^^  *^^  ^^^^"'  ^'"'^  b-*^  ^-^  pattering  on 
the  cold,  damp  stones,  but  m  time  all  get  washed  and  wide  awake. 

The  boys  then  run  up-stairs  to  get  the  coops  of  poultry,  which  they  bring  down  and  deposit 

tenderly  on  the  stone  pavement.    Then  they  are  off  a-ain  after  the  baskets  anS  crateTof 

vegetables  which  they  bring  down  and  pile  in  heaps  just  outside  of  the  big  basin     At  the  first 

to  wash  and  get  them  clean  before  offering  them  for  sale.  To  do  this  they  roll  up  their  bl^e 
breeches  above  the  knees  and  step  into  the  circular  basin,  whose  waters,  afiex  havinTperformed 
the  duty  for  human  heads  and  faces,  are  now  going  to  cleanse  cabbage  heads  aJd  potatoes 
The  women  pour  m  piles  of  parsnips,  beets,  radishes  and  potatoes,  and  the  boys  manipu  ate  or 
pedipu^ate  these  roots  under  the  water,  where  all  the  dirt  is  trodden  off  them,  and  they  are 
taken  out  looking  bright,  nice  and  clean,  all  ready  to  be  ranged  in  rows  on  the  market  stTnds 
The  four  spouts  of  the  hydrant  are  kept  running  all  the  time,  while  the  water  tLtbrmso 'e^^ 
the  basm  runs  out  mto  the  gutter  beyond  through  overflow  conduits 

The  men  and  women  are  constantly  jabbering  while  this  operation  is  going  on,  about  the 

first  at  the  market.  In  the  meantime  the  coops  of  proud  and  noisy  poultry  are  being  carried 
ou  by  other  boys,  who  run  constantly  backward  and  forward  from  the  yard  to  the  market 
After  a  while  the  .labbermg  is  less  loud,  for  many  of  their  number  have  their  vegetables  washed' 
and  the  carriers,  many  of  whom  are  women,  have  gone  out  down  the  alley,  most  of  them  stag- 
gering under  wagon  loads  of  comestibles. 

A  few  old  women  are  still  left  washing  their  stuffs  in  this  basin  of  all  uses.    Their  shrill 

frZ^r  Tr  Z"  ^T^  '"'•"!,'  ^''  '^'""^^-  "^'^^  *^^  ^*°^^  ^^^^^'  "^'^^  Its  iron  hydrant; 
amppost,  and  light  at  the  top,  is  deserted.  A  few  of  the  oldest  crones  are  left  to  take  care  of 
the  very  youn^  children.  All  children  who  are  not  mere  infants  have  gone  out  to  work  These 
shriveled  old  women  keep  up  for  a  short  time  a  slight  show  of  converse;  a  child  or  two  cries 
as  If  unable  to  account  for  the  cessation  of  the  noise,  and  soon  all  is  quiet 

The  dingy  posts  of  the  galleries  make  long  shadows  on  the  wall  from  the  light  of  the  lonely 
lamps  below.  The  many  little  rooms,  which  a  short  time  before  were  all  bustle  and  confusion 
are  as  quiet  as  the  dim  post  shadows  on  the  wall.  Bats  flit  silently  past  the  twenty-eight  dark 
ioorways  ;  rats  go.about  creepmg  over  the  damp  stones  below.  It  is  little  reck  where  they  go 
Dr  whence  they  come.  Thus  it  is  with  these  children  of  want,  who  live  and  die  unheeded  in  the 
leart  of  a  gay  busy  world. 

The  courtyard  people  are  only  a  part  of  the  numbers  who  sell  vegetables  in  the  market  There 
.ire  many  others  engaged  in  the  busmess,  who  bring  their  vegetables  in  various  ways  and 
conveyances.  There  is  a  large  class  of  people  who  raise  their  own  vegetables  and  brm<^  them 
:o  this  place  for  sale  in  carts.  At  about  two  or  three  o'clock  in  the  morning  the  sounds  of  many 
oaded  carts  are  heard  jolting  on  the  streets.  They  travel  generally  at  that  pace  commonly 
)racticed  at  fashionable  funerals.  They  creak  and  rumble  in  a  characteristic  manner  as  thev 
:o  up  the  street,  for  their  drivers  are  ostentatiously  plodding  and  methodical.  These  drivers 
ook  sleepy;  the  horses  and  mules  look  about  half  asleep  ;  even  the  carts  seem  as  though  they 
.bjected  to  being  pulled  out  of  their  sheds  and  d-agged  through  the  darkness  at  that  unheard- 
)!  hour.    Of  these  drivers,  some  are  men  and  some  are  women. 

On  the  arrival  of  the  loads  of  vegetables  at  the  market,  the  carts  back  up  to  the  curbstones, 


(2Q2  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

the  sleepy  drivers  descend,  and  the  work  of  unloading  and  arranging  the  ^^getables  on  the  stall 
the  sleepy  anverb  ue  ,  petticoats  and  dresses,  damp  with  the  dews 

:?  th  .rnr  gat^^^^  ^i-' '  --«^-  ^^^  -^-^^^^^  ^^  ^^r '"'%  d 

rn^^h  irnun^r^^^^^^^  unost^entatiouslyheneath  the  stands 

f.^f  the^were  no  people  in  the  world  who  had  any  regard  for  squash. 

TLlLTedar^^^^^^^^^  and  girls,  the  raven-haired  women  in  the  faded  cahco  skirts. 

The  htt  e  aarK  SKinne  >  courtyard  where  they  washed  their  vegetables  under  the 
"'  w^rTt'  ?hf  caircontTnue  com'^  in  from  the  gardens  on  the  outskirts  of  the  city 
Th  Jx^[vaTisn?tonTanadli^  of  vegetables  on  hand,  but  it  helps  to  sweU 

^'^  r^r^sgaTe  iUs'slidlia?  ^^fe^'' heavenly  gift  divine-the  power  of  speech  "-is  a  faculty 
habiturilv  abused  Here  the  abuse  is  more  flagrant,  for  not  "kmg's  English  '  alone  is 
^ub  ected  to  pret  y  rough  handling,  but  every  language  spoken  on  the  globe  is  slanged, 
locked  or TnsXd  by  uncivilized  innovations  on  its  original  purity.  This  commingling  of 
docked,  o^i^smteQ  uy  .       ^.^^^  ^^^  market-goers  begin  to  arrive. 

Srti^oTdtnt  eUrwTh  th^^^^^^^^^^  polished  manners  and  boots  puffed  in  and 

ou  fat  females  with  fat  baskets  hanging  on  their  fat  arms,  waddle  to  and  fro;  footmen 
waiiers  maSs  and  small  boys  come  and  go  away.    Nearly  all  trades,  professions,  colors  and 

nrrel^bT 'trk^r^^^^^^^  -nd,  busily   tilling  the  baskets  of  many 

tr^Prs     Her  short  stubby,  harsh-looking  broom  is  standing  idle  up  agamst  one  of  the 

customers     Her  J^^^*  ^^^^^^  ^^^^  it,  l^^rsh,  yellow  straws  wiU  grate  once  more 

S^st  tLT4g  stont  ofth:  pLce,  as  it  sweeps  the  broken  cabbage  leaves  and  carrot  tops 

'^'''iiZ^::ZT:^^^^^^^^^  different  parts  of  the  market ;   four-legged 

stool  are  ttanding  in  rows  alongside  of  these.  Many  little  white  cups  and  saucers  are  m  a  line 
stools  are  stanaing  ^^^^^^     ^  ^.^  steaming  urn,  with  a  faucet  to 

it'is  ^thfcen  r?  f  eth  i^^^^^^  various  dishes,  containing  bread,  beefsteaks  even  bacon 

andc^reens  are  cattered  over  the  marble  top.  These  are  not  very  neat-looking  tables,  for  some 
n?th1.^r  narts  are  not  in  keeping  with  the  others.  Thus  the  marble  top  looks  white  and  nicely 
poS  t^e  ~^  saucers  rook  bright  as  porcelain,  but  the  legs  and  bodies  of  the  tables  are 

"''Xra"re'rakeT:\th  grease,  or  the  polish  is  worn  off  at  regular  intervals  where  the  stookj 
r    J Vinr,.. tide  of  them     The  legs  might  look  better;  stray  cabbage  leaves  and  othei 
;;^tratetrs  an^^^^^^^^  ^-^  ^^-^  '^^^  ^  half-unclean,  negligent  appearance 

r.t  bonders  on  depravity.  But  then  this  is  the  market,  and  the  wilted  cabbage  leaves  are  f 
.rrtorthe  Place  Thr  tall  stools,  too.  have  this  semi-negligent  aspect.  They  are  bnghtlj 
po  L  donihe  top  of  their  seats  unavoidably,  but  their  rungs  and  legs  are  scratcb  dam 
Lraped  by  Von  shoepegs,  or  .iust  the  least  bit  discolored  by  mud  J  i  h  the  odors  of  tb 
aromatic  coffee,  steaming  from  the  urns,  is  mingled  a  pecuhar  market  smell. 

The  keepers  of  th^  are  semi-neat   looking,  too.    Their  shirts  are  as  white  as  th< 

marble  tops  of  the  tables,  their  buttons  as  bright  as  the  little  cups  and  saucers,  and  their  coun 

Snances  fresh  and  healthv-looking  as  the  steaming  dishes  of  bacon  and  greens.    The  r  pant 

!wthev  hive  been  in  contact  with  the  grease-spots  on  the  table,  or  vice  versa.    Their  shoe 

avlbeen  treading  too  much  about  among  the  wilted  cabbage-leaves  to  lay  claim  to  a  respect 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  263 

^^LTnrTrfn  ^^* /."°^,f  ^y  ^^°^y  °^^^  ^re  not  too  fastidious,  and  they  don't  mind  a  little 
ZTZZ  ^^*"^,.°^f  '""J^^  gentlemen  who  seU  coffee  at  "five  cents  a  cup,"  and  the  accom- 
Crr..  rr^  ^""^  I-  ^^''  °'  '^^'^  coffee-vendors  have  the  power  of  imitating  all  the 
anguages  spoken  m  the  place,  to  a  certain  extent.  They  make  themselves  understood  to  al! 
who  .n.^i°J^'''*r^  ''?°'  thoroughly  posted  in  favorite  slang  phrases  of  the  would-he  fast  men 
Jn^r  there  to  drmk  coffee.  They  are  acknowledged  as  the  elite  of  market  society  by  the 
wpn^n  .nT'r  '  ''/  ^'^°'^^''  neighbors,  of  the  vegetable  and  poultry  trades ;  and  they  act 
Zl  ..  ^M'^'^^'^VJ  *^''  ^^""'"^^  acknowledgment.  They  are  condescending,  however,  to 
those  around  them  They  seem  to  feel  a  pity  for  those  poor  vegetable  sellers ;  for  some  of  them 
were  once  vegetable  men  themselves  and  they  can  appreciate  the  position.  They  are  propor- 
tionately urbane  as  their  customers  are  respectable.  They  pour  out  their  coffee  in  dignified 
sUence  for  the  poor  market  men  and  women  who  come  up  and  lean  their  elbows  on  the  marble 
tops  of  the  tables.  When  monsieur  from  the  steamboats,  or  his  desk,  or  his  loafing  place  at  the 
comer,  comes  up  to  get  his  breakfast,  the  coffee- vendor  is  all  politeness. 

Strangers  who  come  into  town  late  at  night,  bringing  into  the  city  with  them  their  rural 
tastes  and  appetites,  like  to  get  a  bite  of  something  early  in  the  morning.  So  they,  too,  often 
patronise  the  coffee  stands.  Some  of  these  have  a  rural  lack  of  assurance  which  they  failed  to 
leave  at  their  homes,  and  they  look  very  modest  when  they  climb  the  high  stools.  They  hesitate 
m  answering  to  the  question  whether  they'll  take  ^^  cafe  an  lait^^  or  "m/e  noir  r^  they  believe 
however,  they'll  take  "the  first."  The  respectable  keeper  of  the  coffee  stand  has  a  pitying 
look  m  his  eye  for  the  ignorance  of  country  people.  The  stranger  of  this  class  gets  throu-h 
fumbles  awkwardly  in  his  pocket  for  the  necessary  pay ;  then  gives  place  to  the  man  of  display, 
who  pulls  in  on  his  purse  here  to  gratify  a  taste  for  the  ornamental  somewhere  else. 

He  IS  a  regular  patron  of  the  coffee  dealer,  and  goes  about  his  cheap  breakfast  very  patron- 
izmgly.  He  is  particularly  cautious  not  to  let  his  fine  clothes  come  in  contact  with  the  greasy 
woodwork  of  the  table.  When  he  gets  through  he  shakes  these  clothes,  and  wending  his  way  up 
town,  resumes  the  strolling  avocation,  from  which  he  rested  last  night,  and  a  good  many  nights 
before.  Little  errand  boys  come  up  quietly  to  the  stands,  demurely  eat  their  breakfasts,  and 
silently  go  away.  The  keeper  of  the  stand  is  generally  kind  to  such  unobtrusive  little  fellows 
He  seems  to  know  that  their  coarse  little  jackets  cover  hearts  that  are  braver  and  better  than 
many  which  beat  beneath  velvet  and  broadcloth. 

Sometimes  old  rich  men  come  here  to  get  cheap  breakfasts  ;  for  certainly  black  coffee,  "five 
cents  a  cup,"  and  warm  beefsteaks,  are  as  nourishing  and  wholesome  as  broUed  mutton  chops 
soft  boiled  eggs,  and  the  thigh  of  a  spring  chicken,  even  if  it  is  the  least  bit  noisy  down  here' 
and  smells  more  like  a  market  than  a  restaurant. 

The  red-legged  woman  with  the  short,  harsh  broom,  and  the  dark-eyed,  raven-haired  resi- 
dent of  the  courtyard,  say  that  they  all  have  to  pay  fifteen  cents  a  drawei  and  twenty  cents  a 
comer  a  day  for  their  stands,  besides  a  city  license  of  ten  dollars  a  year.  A  drawer  is  the  space 
between  two  posts  on  a  shelf,  and  a  corner  is  a  shelf  where  two  of  the  passage-ways  of  the 
market  cross  each  other.  When  the  collector  comes  around,  they  dive  their  hands  down  into 
the  pockets  of  their  damp,  faded  dresses,  puli  out  their  small  change,  and  silently  hand  it  over 
But  some  of  the  sellers  of  vegetables  are  inspired  with  a  spirit  of  liberty  and  independence 
They  are  very  jealous  of  then-  rights,  and  this  kind  don't  see  monev  matters  in  the  same  li-ht  as 
do  most  people  in  the  world.  They  pay  up  squarely  when  the  collector  steps  up,  but  they'think 
forty-five  cents  a  day  a  very  high  rent  to  pay  for  the  intervals  of  a  stall  between  four  posts. 

The  Indian  women,  with  their  bead  works,  bay  leaves  and  sassafras,  are  the  only  profes- 
sional "dead  heads"  in  the  place.  They  lie  on  the  stones  at  full  length,  or  sit  on  their  feet 
unheeding  and  unheeded  by  the  crowd  who  are  continuaUy  passing  backward  and  forward 

Some  of  the  skiffmen  from  Algiers  are  would-be  "dead-heads."  They  endeavor  to  sell  at 
the  wharf  in  front  of  the  market  without  coming  uuder  the  provisions  of  the  market  license,  but 
the  collectors  generally  levy  upon  them. 


264  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXXm.— UNIVERSITIES,  LIBRARIES,  ETC. 

THE   TULANE   UNIVERSITY — ^THE   EARLY   HISTORY  OF   THE   UNIVERSITY   OF  LOUISIANA — ITS 
FOUNDATION    AND   GROWHTH — LIBRARIES    AND  READING    ROOMS. 

The  grounds  uow  partly  occupied  by  tlie  buildings  formerly  known  as  the  University  of 
Louisiana,  but  recently  passed  by  legislative  enactment  to  the  custody  and  control  of  the 
administrators  of  the  Tulane  University  of  Louisiana,  have  an  historic  past. 

In  the  year  1812,  when  the  State  of  Louisiana  emerged  out  of  the  Territory  of  Orleans,  a  period 
when  the  enterprise  of  the  citizens  of  New  Orleans  overreached  its  upper  dividing  line,  it  began 
in  the  broad  fields  which  had  been  cleared  by  the  Jesuit  farmers,  to  erect  spacious  and  elegant 
buildings.  Among  other  movements  of  this  kind  was  that  of  the  commissioners  of  the  Charity 
Hospital,  now  under  State  control,  who  acquired  the  entire  square  bounded  by  Canal,  Baronne, 
Philippa  aiid  Common  streets,  on  the  Canal  street  half  of  which  and  fronting  that  thoroughfare, 
they  erected,  in  1815,  along,  two-storied  yellow  stuccoed  brick  building  of  the  Tuscan  style  of 
architecture,  which  then  predominated.  The  space  intervening  between  Canal  street  and  the 
building  was  beautifully  adorned  with  shrubbery.  This  square  and  building,  in  1834,  was  pur- 
chased by  the  State  for  $125,000.  The  hospital  was  transformed  into  a  State  House.  The  rooms 
formerly  occupied  by  the  sick  and  dying  became  the  Senate  Chamber,  and  the  adjacent  rooms, 
headquarters  for  the  State's  oflficial  dignitaries.  A  wing  was  added  on  its  Baronne  street  side 
for  the  accommodation  of  the  House  of  Kepresentatives,  the  lower  story  of  which  was  appro- 
priated as  an  armory  and  office  of  the  Adjutant- General  of  the  State.  This,  for  seventeen  years, 
was  the  centre  of  State  legislative  power. 

It  was  in  the  fall  of  1834  that,  through  the  private  enterprise  of  seven  resident  physicians, 
the  Medical  College  of  Louisiana  was  organized,  and  a  charter  was  granted  to  the  Medical 
College  by  the  Legislature  April 2,  1835,  "and  in  March,  1836,  the  first  degrees  in  science  ever 
conferred  in  Louisiana  were  conferred  by  the  professors  of  the  unendowed  Medical  College.  This 
remarkable  epoch  in  the  scientific  history  of  the  State  was  succeeded  by  seven  years  of  unre- 
quited and  unaided  professional  labors  by  the  faculty  for  the  advancement  of  medical  science." 
October  20,  1838,  the  faculty  established  a  school  of  pharmacy  for  conferring  the  degree  of 
"Master  of  Pharmacy."  Its  session  began  in  January,  1835,  and  continued  four  months.  Its 
founders  and  first  faculty  were  :  Dr.  Thomas  Hunt,  professor  of  anatomy  and  physiology; 
Dr.  John  Harrison,  adjunct  demonstrator  in  anatomy ;  Dr.  Charles  A.  Luzenberg,  professor  of 
surgery  ;  Dr.  J.  Munro  Mackie,  professor  of  practice ;  Dr.  Thomas  R.  Ingalls,  professor 
of  chemistry  ;  Dr.  Aug.  H.  Cenas,  professor  of  midwifery;  Dr.  Edwin  Bathurst  Smith,  professor  of 
materia  medica.  Dr.  Edward  H.  Barton,  professor  of  materia  medica  was  substituted  for  Dr.  E. 
A.  Smith,  who  withdrew  from  the  faculty  before  the  opening  of  the  first  session. 

Through  the  illness  of  Dr.  John  Harrison,  which  incapacitated  him  from  serving.  Dr.  Warren 
Stone  occupied  his  chair  and  continued  uninterrupted  association  with  the  college  until  his 
death,  occupying  five  important  positions  in  the  faculty,  receiving  his  first  appointment  to  a 
professorship  in  1837. 

In  1834  Governor  Roman  granted  for  the  medical  faculty  during  its  first  session  a  large  room 
in  the  State  House  above  referred  to.  Its  secon  1  c  urse  of  didactic  lectures  was  delivered  at 
No.  40  Royal  street ;  the  succeeding  four  courses  at  the  Charity  Hospital,  excepting  the  chem- 
ical lectures,  which  were  delivered  at  No.  14  St.  Charles  street  :  the  next  three  courses,  carrying 
the  history  of  the  faculty  to  1843,  at  239  Canal  street.  The  Legislature  of  that  year  passed  a  biU 
granting  a  lease  of  a  lot  for  ten  years ,  corner  of  Common  and  Dryades  streets  (then  Philippa). 
to  the  faculty  of  the  Medical  College,  for  the  purpose  of  erecting  a  building  thereon.    The  con- 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  '  265 

ditions  of  the  lease  consented  to  by  the  self-sacrificing  faculty  were  ten  years'  service  as 
physicians  and  surgeons  to  the  Charity  Hospital,  without  compensation.  This  condition,  which 
was  faithfully  complied  with,  saved  the  State  $24,000  at  the  rate  previously  paid  for  such  ser- 
vice. Also,  the  faculty  agreed  to  receive  as  students,  with  free  tuition,  a  person  from  each 
parish  in  the  State  Up  to  1871  about  200  students  had  been  educated  at  a  cost  of  $56,000. 
Another  condition  acceded  to  was,  that  at  the  expiration  of  the  ten  years'  lease,  the  building 
was  to  revert  to  the  State.  When  so  transferred  the  estimated  value  was  $15,000.  This  building 
was  designed  and  erected  by  Mr.  Darkin,  an  architect  of  high  repute.  It  is  now  known  as  the  Law 
Department  of  the  University.  In  addition  to  its  present  form  there  were  attached  to  both 
its  sides  one-story  brick  wings.  There  the  tenth,  eleventh,  twelfth  and  thirteenth  courses,  from 
October,  1843  to  1S47,  were  delivered. 

In  1847  a  lot  adjacent  to  this  buUding,  150  front  on  Common  street  by  200  feet  deep,  between 
Dryades  and  Baronne  streets,  was  appropriated  by  the  Legislature,  with  S 40, 000  to  erect  upon 
it  a  suitable  building  for  the  medical  department.  This,  the  central  one  of  the  three  University 
Buildings  containing  three  large  lecture-rooms  and  an  extensive  museum),  has  been  occupied 
by  the  faculty  from  the  fourteenth  session,  1847-1848,  to  the  present  time.  On  March  20,  1861, 
the  Legislature  transferred  from  the  academic  to  the  medical  department,  the  third  one  of  the 
University  Buildings,  designated  as  the  east  wing,  at  the  comer  of  Common  and  Baronne  streets. 
Since  1865  a  cross-wing  has  been  erected,  which  unites  the  east  wing  with  the  central  building, 
and  these  imposing  and  commodious  edifices  are  devoted  to  the  medical  department,  which  finds 
in  them  the  most  ample  accommodation  for  all  of  the  many  requisites  necessary  for  medical 
education.  These  two  buildings,  with  the  amphitheatre  of  the  Charity  Hospital,  and  its  wards 
containing  a  daily  average  of  about  800  patients,  will  continue  to  furnish  in  the  future,  as  at 
present,  accommodations  for  as  large  a  class  of  medical  students  and  as  many  conveniences 
for  their  instruction  as  any  similar  institution  in  this  country. 

The  conditional  aid  first  furnished  by  the  State  in  1843  has  been  stated.  The  next  public 
recognition  of  the  services  of  the  faculty  was  by  the  convention  which  framed  the  Constitution 
of  1845,  which  directed  that  "An  University  shall  be  established  in  the  City  of  New  Orleans  ;" 
it  shall  be  called  the  " University  of  Louisiana,"  and  the  "Medical  College  of  Louisiana," 
as  at  present  organized,  shall  constitute  the  Faculty  of  Medicine. 

This  provision  was  not  carried  into  execution  until  1847,  when  the  first  Legislature  elected 
nnder  the  Constitution  of  1845  was  in  session  and  passed  the  Act  No.  49,  February  16,  1847, 
which  legally  transformed  the  "Medical  College  of  Louisiana  "  into  the  " Medical  Department 
of  the  University  of  Louisiana  "  and  provided  for  its  government. 

The  Constitutions  of  1852,  1864  and  1868,  contain  articles  similar  to  those  of  1845,  providing 
for  the  organization  and  maintenance  of  the  University  of  Louisiana,  with  medical  and  other 
departments. 

In  addition  to  the  aid  furnished  by  the  State  which  has  been  referred  to,  $25,000  was  given 
in  1850  and  $6,000  more  in  1853  to  furnish  the  medical  department  with  a  museum,  and  such 
chemical  and  other  apparatus,  etc.,  as  are  needed  for  medical  instruction.  Other  appropri- 
ations have  been  made  from  time  to  time  for  repairs  and  improvements  of  the  University 
buildings,  the  property  of  the  State,  but  none  for  any  other  purposes  whatever. 

On  the  other  hand,  the  pecuniary  benefits  conferred  upon  and  the  value  of  the  property 
transferred  to  the  State  by  the  faculty  of  the  medical  department  may  be  fairly  estimated  as 
follows : 

Attendance,  by  contract,  upon  the  Charity  Hospital  for  ten  years,  $24,000 ;  amphitheatre  in 
the  same  hospital,  $2,500  ;  west  wing  of  the  University  buildings,  $15,000 ;  libraiy,  apparatus, 
preparations  in  the  museum,  etc.,  $2.5,000;  repairs,  insurance,  etc.,  on  the  property  of  the 
State,  $25,000;  education  of  indigent  students,  $58.000— amounting  in  all  to  $147,500. 

Beside  these  contributions  to  the  cause  of  medical  education  and  to  the  establishment  and 
advancement  of  the  medical  department  of  the  University  of  Louisiana,  the  faculty  have 


266 


HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


matriculated  7.522  students  and  have  2.199  alumni.  ^^"^'^  ^^'^^ «•  ^  tf  ,  w^o^dM^^^  , 
nection  with  the  college  there  have  been  4,636  students  matriculated,  to  1,491  of  whom  dTplomas  , 
hafebeeTpresented.  They  have  supplied  more  than  seyenteen  professors  to  various  medica 
Stutfons  and  a  much  larger  number  of  public  instructors.  One-third  of  its  own  corps  of  , 
rachers  harbeen  supp^^  by  its  graduates,  while  about  one-third  of  the  practxcmg  1 
plyslTansof^ew^^^^  a'large  proportion  of  the  profession  m  Louisiana.  Mississi^^^^^^ 

Texas  and  Alabama  received  their  parchment,  from  the  dean  of  ^^^^/^^f  ^f  ^^-^/j/^^^^J^f, 
number  of  its  alumni  occupied  important  positions  in  the  late  war.  In  the  ^^f  y;^^;^^^  J 
succeeding  its  beginning,  this  institution  had  augmented  its  class  from  eleven  students  to  a 
Tmberwhich  elevated^it  to  the  third  in  numerical  rank  among  the  -Ueges  of^he  Um^^^ 
States  This  result  was  in  a  large  part  due  to  the  learning,  marked  capacity  and  wide-spread 
repSation  of  th^  members  of  fhe  faculty,  who.  from  the  foundation  of  f^^^l'^'^^^J^J^^ 
zealous  labor  for  many  consecutive  years  to  its  prosperity.  It  is  rare  indeed,  to  A^d  a  acuity 
consisting  of  men  of  so  much  ability,  and  permitted  to  prosecute  their  duties  con,ointly  and 
uninterruptedly  for  so  long  a  series  of  years  as  was  given  to  its  faculty.  x^rofessors 

The  following  list  shows  the  noted  gentlemen  who  have  been  elected  deans  and  professors, 

and  the  duration  of  their  connection  with  the  faculty  : 

Prof.  Tbomas  Hunt,  1835  to  1867. 

Prof.  Edward  H.  Barton,  1835  to  1840. 

Prof.  Augustus  H.  Cenas,  1835  to  1866. 

Prof.  Charles  A.  Luzenberg,  1835  to  18.37. 

Prof.  John  Hoffman  Harrison,  1835  to  1849. 

Prof.  James  Jones,  1836  to  1866. 

Prof.  Gustavus  Adolphus  Nott,  1839  to  1867. 

Prof.  William  M.  Carpenter,  1842  to  1848. 

Prof.  A.  J.  Wedderburn,  1842  to  1856. 

Prof.  Tobias  Gibson  Eichardson,  1858  to  1865. 
Encouraged  by  the  success  of  the  Medical  College,  the  Law  Department  of  the  University  of 
Louisiana  was  organized  in  May,  1847.    The  late  Judge  Isaac  T.  Preston,  as  chaim^an  of  th 
committee  of  administrators,  reported  a  plan  of  organization,  and  the  ^'^\^^J' ^^^^^"^^iJJ'f] 
constituted  In  the  following  manner:    First  law  professor.  Judge  Henry  A.  Bu^^lard;  second.  | 
Richard  Henry  Wilde  ;  third.  Judge  Theodore  H.  McCaleb  ;  fourth,  Randell  Hunt. 

For  many  years  the  lectures  of  this  department  were  delivered  annually  by  the  four  pro- 
fessors in  the  United  States  District  court-room,  and  until  the  Medical  Faculty  had  repaired 
and  extended  the  buildings  formerly  occupied  by  it,  thus  providing  sufBciently  for  their  owa 
and  the  Law  Department,  which  in  1867  took  possession  of  the  present  building,  known  as  Law 
Department  of  the  University. 

The  course  of  lectures  given  by  the  able  members  of  the  Law  Faculty  have  emljraced  the 
civil  law,  common  law  and  equity,  admiralty,  commercial,  international  and  constitutional  law, 
and  the  jurisprudence  of  the  United  States.  The  large  number  of  students  who  have  received 
the  degrees  of  Bachelor  of  Laws,  and  the  graduates  of  this  department  constitute  a  considerab  e 
proportion  of  the  most  prominent  and  distinguished  members  of  the  bar  of  the  State.  Several 
have  reached  high  public  honor,  and  have  filled  the  offices  of  district  attorney,  attomey-genera , 
judges  of  District  Courts,  justices  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Louisiana,  and  members  of  Congress. 

LIBRARIES  AND  READING-ROOMS. 

In  the  Art  Gallery  of  the  Southern  Art  Union,  the  lower  walls  of  which  are  covered  with 
shelves  well  filled  with  choice  books,  there  are  over  3,600  volumes.  Until  recently  it  has  sup- 
plied over  500  readers  with  helpful  literature  free  of  cost.    In  order  to  make  this  branch 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  267 

self-supporting  trie  executive  committee  of  the  Southern  Art  Union  determined  to  loan  books 
only  to  those  payin":  an  annual  subscription  of  sixty  cents. 

The  saion  of  this  library  is  open  Mondays,  Wednesdays  and  Fridays  from  9  a.m.  to  4  p.m., 
during  which  hours  it  is  free  to  visitors,  who  have  the  privilege  of  perusing  not  only  the 
books,  but  the  numerous  magazines  wdth  which  the  tables  are  supplied. 

The  Fisk  Library  is  a  free  library  for  the  use  of  visitors.  Its  rooms  are  lofty,  airy,  and 
well  lighted.  The  librarian  receives  his  guests  from  9  a.m.  to  5  p.m.  Here  the  public  have 
free  access  to  all  the  most  important  periodicals  of  the  day,  the  latest  dictionaries  and  encyclo- 
ptedias,  and  the  works  of  many  of  the  standard  authors.  This  library  is  growing  at  the  rate 
of  500  volumes  a  year.  The  books  added  are  selected  by  the  faculty  of  the  academical  depart- 
ment of  the  Tulane  University. 

The  State  Library  contains  40,000  volumes,  about  5,000  of  which  are  in  foreign  languages. 
Lawyers,  physicians  and  students  have  special  privileges  in  this  library ;  no  others  are  per- 
mitted to  take  books  from  the  rooms.    It  is  open  daily,  Sundays  excepted,  from  9  a.m.  to  3  p.m. 

The  Y.  M.  C.  A.  Library  and  Free  Reading-Room  is  the  only  public  library  in  the  city,  free  to 
everybody,  where  the  daily  papers  of  all  the  important  cities  of  the  United  States  are  kept  on 
file.  Its  tables  are  well  supplied  with  popular  periodicals  ;  in  its  book-cases  are  to  be  found 
many  valuable  works.    The  rooms  are  open  from  9  a.m.  to  10  p.m. 

The  City  Library  is  located  in  a  large  room  in  the  City  Hall.  There  are  to  be  found  a  well- 
classified  selection  of  valuable  books.  Possibly  no  library  in  the  city  is  more  valuable  for  refer- 
ences as  to  ancient  matters  than  this.    The  library  is  open  daily,  Sundays  excepted,  from  9  a.m. 

to  3  P.M. 


268  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXXIV.-CRESCENT  CITY  JOURNALISM  FIFTY  YEARS  AGO. 

THE   FIRST   PAPER   FOUNDED    BY   A   SAN    DOMINGAN    REFUGEE— GOOD    AND    BAD   FORTUNES 

OF   THE   PRESS. 

In  glancing  over  the  early  papers  published  in  the  city  of  New  Orleans,  one  is  likely  to  l^ve 
a  train  of  interesting  thought  awakened  in  his  mind  as  he  is  carried  back  to  the  consideration 
of  events  of  bygone  times  ;  and  he  is  apt  to  regard  with  a  smile  many  trivial  matters  that  at 
one  time  were  the  caase  of  deepest  concern  in  the  breasts  of  our  good  ancestors  Half  a  cen- 
tury ago,  journalism,  as  it  is  now  understood,  was  an  unknown  profession.  The  bnef  chroni- 
clers of  the  time  conducted  gazettes,  which  were  the  forerunners  of  journals.  The  gazette 
noticed  the  movements  of  crowned  heads,  the  arrival  and  departure  of  armies,  and  gave  some 
attention  to  the  utterances  of  statesmen.  When  it  attempted  to  discuss  a  public  question 
which  was  not  often,  it  was  apt  to  be  one-sided  and  inclined  to  support  the  rich  and  powerful 
against  the  existing  demands  of  a  growing  democracy.  The  gazette  man  of  the  olden  time 
was  thought  to  be  doing  his  duty  if  he  gave  news  that  was  six  months  old,  or  went  to  press  with 
nothing  more  important  in  his  readable  columns  than  complunentary  allusions  to  those  persons 
who  were  at  the  time  making  use  of  his  advertising  space.  Some  of  the  old  correspondents 
fully  equaled,  if  they  did  not  surpass,  the  letter-writers  of  the  present  day  in  graphic  power. 
But  on  the  whole  the  letters  in  the  public  prints  were  dull,  and  impersonalism  was  pushed  to  a 
degree  that  leaves  us,  who  read  the  old  papers,  in  utter  ignorance  as  to  the  persons  aUuded  to. 
Any  letter  written  by  an  American  sea-captain  while  in  a  foreign  port,  when  received  was  freely 
accorded  the  post  of  honor  under  the  editorial  head,  though  it  related  to  events  one  or  two 
years  old  This  dull  form  of  letter  usually  related  to  the  sailing  of  vessels,  the  discharging  of 
cargoes,  or  other  trite  subjects  of  no  interest  to  any  one  but  ship-owners.  If  the  editor,  after 
making  his  rounds,  weekly  or  semi-weekly,  and  visiting  the  merchants  of  the  city,  failed  to  find 
"a  letter  from  abroad,"  he  was  not  averse  to  clipping  one  from  the  last  New  York  or  London 
gazette  at  hand.  To  sit  down  with  a  judicial  mind  and  examine  and  write  out  a  valuable 
opinion  on  any  pressing  pubUc  question  ;  to  mark  out  the  course  on  which  right  actions  ought  to 
proceed ;  or  make  a  careful,  well-written  record  of  the  events  of  the  day,  he  must  have  consid- 
ered occupation  unworthy  of  his  attention.  As  to  the  local  news,  which  is  of  so  much  import- 
ance to  the  newspaper  of  the  present  day,  he  must  have  thought  it  an  utter  waste  of  time  to 
print  local  items  that  every  city  reader  could  knew  all  about  by  simply  inquiring  at  the  nearest 
coffee-house.  Nothing  short  of  a  sweeping  conflagration  or  other  calamity  seemed  sufhcient  to 
impel  the  pen  of  the  local  chronicler.  ,    ^     ,^    ..        ^    , 

The  first  newspaper  was  issued  in  New  Orleans  in  1794,  being  entitled  La  Momteur  de  la 
Louisiane,  and  was  printed  in  the  French  language.  Some  of  the  early  volumes  are  still  pre- 
served in  the  city  archives,  and  can  be  seen  by  persons  who  are  curious  concerning  such  mat- 
ters.   It  was  started  by  a  refugee  from  San  Domingo.  ^     ^      .. 

Another  old  newspaper,  whose  early  volumes  may  still  be  consulted,  is  the^  Louisiana 
Gazette,  begun  by  John  Mowry,  July  27, 1804,  and  issued  in  the  English  language  twice  a  week. 
It  was  badly  printed  on  a  folio  sheet,  say  10x16  inches.  The  chief  business  of  most  writers 
appeared  to  be  to  abuse  Napoleon,  who  so  unfeelmgly  disturbed  what  was  called  the  balance 
of  power  in  Europe.  The  statesmen  of  the  early  days  of  our  republic  received  some  attention, 
but  not  much.  General  Wilkinson,  Daniel  Clarke  (the  father  of  Myra  Clarke  Games)  Aaron 
Burr,  and  others,  attracted  local  attention,  and  were  greatly  praised  or  blamed  for  the  part 
they  took  in  public  affairs.  They  were  represented  as  sending  everything  to  rum;  but  tne 
ruin  did  not  come  in  their  time  or  by  them. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  269 

The  Louisiana  Gazette  had  a  checkered  existence,  but  a  good  deal  of  vitality.  It  was  first 
printed  in  the  house  of  C.  Norwood,  No.  36  Bienyille  street.  Its  motto,  for  a  long  time,  was 
"American  Commerce  and  Freedom."  When  it  was  several  years  old  the  sub-title  of  New 
Orleans  mrcanVde  Advertiser  was  added.  The  paper  was  published  in  the  centre  of  the 
busmess  part  of  the  town.  At  one  time  it  issued  from  21  Conti  street ;  later  it  was  moved  to 
No.  26  on  the  same  thoroughfare.  In  1812  the  publication  office  was  moved  to  51  Chartres 
street;  in  1818  it  was  removed  to  Conti ;  in  1823  to  31  Custom-house  ;  and  next  year  a  permanent 
home  was  thought  to  have  been  found  for  it  at  22  Bienville  street.  On  the  fifteenth  of  April, 
1817,  the  paper  was  first  printed  in  French  and  English.  The  same  year  it  was  enlarged,  and 
again  increased  in  size  the  following  year,  when  it  became  a  six-column  folio.  The  proprietor 
made  many  vigorous  attempts  to  establish  a  daily  paper  in  the  Crescent  City.  The  first  daily 
edition  was  issued  April  3,  1810.  At  that  time  Mr.  Mo  wry  sold  an  interest  in  his  paper,  and 
promised  to  give  the  latest  intelligence.  In  1814  the  paper  was  issued  tri-weekly  by  David 
McKeehan,  who  had  bought  out  the  former  proprietor.  Later  the  paper  passed  into  the 
hands  of  G.  B.  Cotten,  who,  in  January,  1816,  sold  it  to  William  Burner.  In  1817  Burner  was 
joined  by  Charles  W.  Duhy,  who  later  on  became  a  conspicuous  figure  in  New  Orleans  jour- 
nalism, Burner  withdrew  from  the  paper,  and  in  July,  1820,  Mr.  Duhy  was,  as  sole  proprietor, 
engaged  in  issuing  the  paper  in  an  enlarged  form  as  a  daily.  By  1824  the  paper  began  to 
assume  the  appearance  of  a  modern  newspaper.  Mr.  Duhy  had  retired,  and  Mr.  R.  D. 
Richardson  was  the  owner  and  publisher.  In  November  of  that  year  James  McKaraher 
became  the  proprietor  of  the  paper,  In  May,  1825,  R.  D.  Richardson  and  A.  T.  Penniman  (a 
printer  from  Boston)  purchased  the  paper  and  also  the  material  of  the  defunct  Orleans  Gazette, 
and  announced  themselves  as  the  proprietors  of  a  very  large  job  office,  having  four  hand- 
presses.    The  subscription  price  of  the  paper  was  $10.00  a  year. 

The  Louisiana  Advertiser  was  issued  as  early  as  1820.  In  1825  the  Advertiser  was  published 
by  James  Beerdslee  at  No.  37  Bienville  street.  It  was  a  six-column  folio  of  small  size  and  fur- 
nished at  SIO  a  year.  He  was  followed  in  the  ownership  by  John  Penrice  in  18-30,  who  in  turn 
sold  out  to  Stroud  &  Jones. 

James  Beerdslee,  February  14,  1824,  started  a  new  paper  which  he  called  the  Louisiana  Weekly 
Advertiser.  On  December  23, 1&33,  John  Gibson,  "the  faithful  and  bold,"  who  did  so  much  towards 
developing  journalism  in  New  Orleans,  became  its  proprietor  and  editor.  In  1835  the  name  of 
the  paper  was  changed  to  The  True  American,  which  ran  into  the  forties.  Gibson  made  the 
A.meincan  a  very  lively  paper,  and  paid  attention  to  local  news  and  politics.  He  left  the  old- 
time  newspapers  so  far  behind  that  they  died  out,  for  the  most  part,  one  after  another,  and 
gave  place  to  journals  of  a  higher  grade  like  the  Picayune,  Crescent  and  Delta.  Gibson  was 
opposed  to  "  nuUification  in  all  its  shapes."  He  exposed  abuses  in  the  administration  of  local 
affairs.  He  backed  James  H.  Caldwell  in  his  attempt  to  introduce  local  improvements.  Cald- 
well, not  satisfied  with  building  the  St.  Charles  theatre  and  sustaining  it  in  the  grand  style  of  a 
European  theatre  and  opera-house,  labored  to  beautify  and  adorn  the  city.  He  it  was  who 
gave  the  streets  in  the  upper  districts  their  mythological  and  classical  names. 

The  Daily  Tropic  was  begun  October  1,  1842,  by  AJden  S.  Merrifield,  and  was  issued  from  No. 
44  St.  Charies  street.  It  was  a  bright,  well-printed  six-column  folio  paper,  and  advocated  Whig 
principles,  and,  of  course,  sustained  Henry  Clay.  It  was  probably  the  successor  of  the  True 
American.  The  Tropic  was  very  well  written  and  showed  a  marked  improvement  over  the 
papers  that  had  gone  before  it.  P.  Besanoon,  B.  F.  Flanders  and  others  were  connected  with  it 
in  an  editorial  capacity. 

Another  old  newspaper  still  remembered  with  pleasure  was  the  Courier.  This  journal,  after 
an  active  and  useful  life  of  half  a  century,  came  to  its  death  by  natural  causes,  May  29,  1859. 
Commenced  in  the  eariy  days  of  journalism,  it  had  been  improved  from  year  to  year  by  its 
successive  managers  till  it  became  one  of  the  best  papers  In  the  country.  It  represented  the 
conservative  sentiments  of  the  Democratic  party  m  Louisiana.    The  party  became  divided  on 


270  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

questions  of  great  moment  to  the  South,  and  when  new  hands  tried  to  force  the  C'^J^^f' jj^to  a 
new  and  untried  position  it  could  not  bear  the  shock  and-died.  A  good  dea  of  local  history  i> 
bound  up  in  an  old  newspaper  called  The  Friend  of  the  Laws  and  Journa^  du  ^^J^^^^f^^^^ 
printed  in  English  and  French.  The  first  copy  now  to  be  found  bears  ^f^l^'^^^'f^^l.^;^^'^' 
being  a  part  of  volume  seven  and  number  1,281.  On  the  twentieth  of  September,  1822  the  name 
was  altered  to  The  Lomsianian  and  Friend  of  the  Laws.  At  first  it  was  a  small  four-column  foho. 
and  was  early  published  as  a  daily.  At  the  period  named  it  was  published  by  Michel  De  Armas 
and  J  B.  Maurian.  On  the  fifteenth  of  April,  1824.  the  paper  then  being  owned  and  published  bj 
Manuel  Crozat,  ceased  to  appear  under  the  name  of  The  Lomsianian,  but  four  days  later,  that 
13  on  the  nineteenth  of  April,  it  made  its  re-appearance  under  the  name  of  The  Argm.  ^\ie  Uv^ 
aid  material  were  the  same  as  used  in  the  previous  issue,  the  advertisements  were  the  same 
and  to  all  intents  and  purposes  it  was  the  same  journal.  The  paper  was  a  small  folio  of  fiv. 
columns,  printed  in  English  and  French,  and  served  to  subscribers  at  ^^  P^^^^^^'  P^J^' 
seventh  of  August.  1834.  the  New  Orleans  Argus  became  the  Louisiana  Whig,  being  Whig  n 
politics,  and  was  issued  from  No.  70  Chartres  street.  During  the  year  the  paper  was  enlargec 
L  a  siz^column  folio.  On  the  first  of  March,  1835.  the  name  of  The  Whig  was  changed  to  Th^Bee 
This  paper  is  still  published  and  is  the  organ  of  the  French  and  Creole  population  of  Louisiana 
By  Rowell  &  Co.'s  "American  Newspaper  Directory "  it  will  be  seen  that  the  proprietors  o 
the  Bee  set  down  the  date  of  the  establishment  of  their  journal  as  1827.  The  5..  is  the  continua 
tion  oi  the  om  Friend  of  ths  Laws,  ^n^  consequently  it  may  justly  claim  to  be  the  oldest  °ewc 
paper  in  Louisiana,  for  the  first  number  of  the  Friend  of  the  Laws  could  not  ^^.^^e  been  issue, 
later  than  1809.  These  old  newspapers  will  illustrate  the  growth  of  journahsm  m  New  Orieans 
At  first  the  papers  were  mere  advertising  sheets,  containing  little  if  any  news.  The  developrnen 
of  newspapers  in  other  cities  naturaUy  moved  our  conservative  editors  to  do  somethmg  worth, 
of  consideration  in  their  field.  ,     ^  „  ♦v 

Probably  the  most  noteworthy  journalist  of  the  old  school  was  J  C.  De  Romes,  who  was  th 
editor  of  the  Cauner  for  a  period  of  thirty  years,  and  who  retired  from  tbe  editorial  career  o^ 
the  twelfth  of  April,  1843,  having  disposed  of  the  paper  to  Jerome  Bayon.  De  Romes  was  not 
g  eat  writer  nor  a  remarkable  manager,  but  he  so  conducted  his  paper  as  to  retam  the  good 
S^l  of  the  people  he  catered  to,  and  after  neariy  a  third  of  a  century  of  hard  work,  he  retir^ 
^enioy  in  his  old  age  the  fruits  of  his  long  continued  industry.  The  two  decades  just  previou 
to  ?he  war  saw  the  successful  establishment  of  a  number  of  journals  that  justly  took  rank  witl 

the  chief  newspapers  of  the  world.  .     ^  ^,        v,  -i    « ^-^  -h 

During  the  Mexican  war  Lumsden  and  Kendall  often  surprised  the  whole  country  b, 
the  rapidity  with  which  they  collected  the  news  about  the  war.  and  presented  the  de  ai 
of  the  several  battles  to  readers  everywhere  through  the  agency  of  their  paper.  The  tek 
graph  wire  was  extended  to  New  Orleans  in  1848,  and  that  event  put  a  stop  to  the  pon 
'  express,  by  which  the  editors  often  got  news  from  twenty-four  to  forty-eight  hours  ahead  o 
the  mails.  The  "gold  fever,"  as  the  rush  to  Calif ornia  was  called  in  1849,  helped  the  newspaper 
wonderfully,  and  the  i)6/<a  and  Crescent  sold  enormous  editions  containing  news  from  the  gol 
fields.  The  late  war  injured  all  the  newspaper  property  of  the  city  that  it  did  not  destroy,  an 
it  is  only  now,  after  all  these  years,  that  the  New  Orieans  daily  papers  have  been  able  to  regai 
the  ground  that  was  so  suddenly  and  so  unexpectedly  lost.  In  a  sketch  of  this  sort  it  is  impo^ 
sfble  to  mention  all  the  Timeses,  Posts,  Suns,  Advertisers,  Journals,  Tribunes  Heralds^  News. 
Standards  2.ne.  &a^«^  that  have  flourished  for  a  longer  ^^  f'^^'^^'fr  y.  rr^f^-^Ztl 
excellent  papers  while  they  lasted,  but,  as  a  rule  they  died  with  the  political  party  or  sett 

n"he''rL::i>t^t:?^^^^^^^^^^^  CUvItem,  ^.(French),  Starts  Zeitung  ,^.rr.^ 

and  Price  Current  constitute  to-day  the  press  of  New  Orieans.    Their  foundation  together  wit 
their  trials  and  tribulations  during  the  political  contests  incident  to  the  reconstruction  time. 

from  1864  to  1874,  would  fill  a  volume. 


GUIDE  TO  NEW  ORLEANS.  271 


CHAPTER  XXXV.— HOW  COTTON  IS  HANDLED. 

THE  VARIOUS   PROCESSES  A  BALE   OF    COTTON  HAS   TO   GO   THROUGH  BEFORE  IT  REACHES 

THE   COTTON    MILLS. 

To  follow  through  its  intricate  changes  the  long  white  staple  bursting  from  its  s^ell  of  fairy 
make  in  some  Louisiana  field,  to  see  it  torn  from  the  boll,  rushed  through  the  relentless  gin, 
crowded  into  almost  nothingness  in  the  press,  and  then  hurried  forward  to  the  mart,  is  to  watch 
the  birth  and  generation  of  one  potent  source  of  the  city's  commercial  wealth. 

Soft  and  well-nigh  intangible  as  it  seems,  each  cobweb  fibre  draws  with  delicate  but 
irresistible  tension  upon  the  great  driving-wheel  of  trade,  movmg  the  merchant  navy  across  the 
Atlantic,  pulling  at  the  pistons  of  thousands  of  factory  engines,  and  dragging  onward  to  higher 
stages  of  civihzation  the  destinies  of  commonwealths  and  peoples. 

We  are  all  more  or  less  acquamted  with  the  rude  outline  of  the  process  of  transferring  cotton 
from  the  field  to  the  factory,  but  there  are  few  outside  the  business  who  have  more  than  the 
crudest  knowledge  of  the  varied  manipulations  through  which  a  bale  passes  before  it  is  ready 
for  shipment  to  the  looms  of  Europe  or  the  North. 

Let  us,  then,  to  gain  a  more  exact  acquaintance  with  the  subject,  take  the  product  of  some 
fertile  patch  of  ground— say  in  Ouachita  parish— and  follow  it  currente  ccUamo  to  the  side  of  a 
vessel  in  our  port. 

A  thrifty  young  planter,  after  overcoming  all  the  threatening  calamities  of  overflow,  worms, 
wet  weather  and  dry,  has  at  last,  with  pardonable  pride,  had  his  few  acres  of  cotton  picked, 
and  in  piles  of  almost  transparent  whiteness  the  result  lies  on  his  gin-house  floor.  The  shirr  of 
the  gin-saw  is  next  heard,  and  basketful  after  basketful  disappears  within  the  capacious  maw 
of  the  gin,  to  come  out  in  the  lint-room  beyond  in  a  snow  storm  of  feathery  flakes. 

From  the  lint-room  it  is  but  a  step  to  the  packing-room,  where  through  the  center  of  the 
floor  protrudes  the  upper  portion  of  a  press  box.  Here  the  cotton  is  thrown  into  the  box,  whose 
horizontal  size  is  that  of  the  future  bale.  A  stout  negro  tramps  it  down  as  solidly  as  he  can, 
and  when  the  box  contains  enough,  the  screw  is  revolved  and  the  platen  descends.  Mule  or 
steam  power  is  applied,  and  with  seemingly  irresistible  force  the  platen  descends  until  the  con- 
tents of  the  box  are  pressed  into  a  hard,  compact  mass.  The  bagging  is  drawn  up,  the  ends  and 
sides  sewed,  and  the  iron  bands  tightened  and  fastened,  and  until  they  are  loosened  at  the 
factory  that  bale  has  an  entity  and  individuality.  The  scattered  cotton  of  the  patch  has  become 
a  commercial  unit.  In  company  with  a  number  of  its  like  it  is  rolled  out  to  the  river  bank  op 
railroad  station,  there  to  await  transportation  to  New  Orleans. 

No  guard  or  watch  is  placed  over  the  bales.  Too  large  to  handle  conveniently,  they 
protect  themselves.  A  passing  steamer  of  tbe  regular  line  of  boats  in  the  trade  on  her 
downward  trip  rounds  to,  and  our  bale  is  taken  on  board.  No  receipt  is  left,  or  given 
the  planter,  for  he  knows  the  character  of  those  engaged  in  the  carrying  business,  and  he  trusts 
them  implicitly.  The  carriers  know  to  whom  the  planter  consigns  his  cotton  should  there  be 
no  mark  on  the  bale  to  indicate  to  whom  it  is  sent. 

The  bale  has  always  on  one  end  what  is  known  as  the  planter's  mark,  which  may  be  his 
initials,  or  any  other  convenient  sign,  as  "J.  A.  B." 

If  the  bale  was  raised  by  one  of  the  hands  on  the  place  and  is  his  individual  property,  and  he 
desires  it  shipped  with  the  planter's  cotton,  it  has  the  planter's  mark,  "  J.  A.  B.,"  and  beneath, 
or  on  the  other  end,  a  special  or  counter-mark,  as  "L.,"to  show  it  is  not  of  the  planter's 
own  crop. 

On  a  trip   down  to   New  Orleans,  a  manifest,  containing  the  number  of  bales  and  the 


272  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

* 

names  of  their  consignees,  is  made  out  by  the  clerk  of  the  boat  and  hung  conspiculously  in  the 
cabin. 

Up  to  this  time  the  factor  to  whom  the  cotton  has  been  shipped  knows  nothing  of  the  con- 
signment. When  the  boat  arrives  at  ;Xew  Orleans  a  discharging  clerk  takes  charge  of  the 
unloading  of  the  cargo,  and  here  begins  an  interesting  operation.  The  same  modes  obtain  where 
cotton  is  shipped  by  rail.  Steamboat  transportation  is  taken  as  an  illustration  only  because  ol 
its  simplicity. 

If  it  is  in  the  height  of  the  season,  the  steamer  is  piled  up  to  the  hurricane  roof  with  tiers  ol 
bales,  and  presents  to  the  eye  nothing  but  a  floating  wall  of  cotton,  with  smokestacks  rising 
above. 

Before  she  has  rounded  to,  a  large  gathering  of  negroes  on  the  wharf  takes  place  neai 
the  spot  where  she  vrill  make  a  landing,  all  eager  to  go  to  work  rolling  and  trucking  tht 
cotton  out. 

A  negro  forman  in  the  employ  of  the  discharging  clerk  stands  on  a  truck  or  any  elevation 
and  is  immediately  surrounded  by  the  laborers,  clamoring  for  work  tickets.  The  foremar 
selects  the  requisite  number,  sometimes  as  many  as  200,  and  gives  them  their  tickets.  By  thif 
time  the  boat  has  lauded,  and  after  considerable  labor,  stages  are  placed  from  the  cotton  tier: 
to  the  wharf.  Then  begins  the  discharging.  The  clerk  stands  at  the  lower  end  of  the  stage 
ready  to  place  the  cargo  in  lots  on  the  wharf,  according  to  the  shipments,  each  consignee  having 
his  lot  to  himself. 

This  labor  would  require  a  very  great  expense  of  time  were  it  done  in  the  ordinary  way  o: 
examining  marks,  etc.,  and  ordering  the  laborers  to  truck  Mr.  Smith's  bale  to  Mr.  Smith's  lot 
The  ignorant  negroes  would  inevitably  make  confusion  in  the  arrangement.  But  theii 
knowledge  of  ordinary  objects  is  utilized,  and  flags  with  familiar  emblems  are  used.  The  dis 
charging  clerk,  who  has  thoroughly  engraved  on  his  memory  the  names  of  every  consignee 
orders  a  bale  out,  and  on  it  is  placed  on  an  iron  rod  a  flag  with  a  white  ball  on  a  black  ground 
That  marks  the  place  for  every  bale  of  that  consignee.  Another  bale  of  another  consignee  1; 
marked  with  a  red  diamond  flag.  These  the  negroes  understand.  The  work  then  commence.' 
in  earnest,  and  the  bales  go  by  the  discharging  clerk  almost  as  fast  as  he  can  call  out,  "B]u( 
Anchor  I"  "  Black  Cross  !"  "White  Flag  !"  "  Red  Ball  1"  and  so  on.  He  must  at  a  glance  take  ii 
the  mark  on  the  bale  and  remember  what  flag  denotes  this  consignee's  lot,  a  work  of  tht 
memory  which  is  remarkable,  especially  when  sometimes  there  are  sixty  flags  fljdng  or 
different  lots. 

The  moment  the  cotton  touches  the  landing,  and  even  during  the  process  of  landing,  i1 
comes  under  the  protecting  segis  of  the  Cotton  Exchange  of  New  Orleans.  Its  levee  inspector? 
protect  it  from  theft,  see  that  it  is  covered  from  the  weather,  not  rolled  in  the  mud,  and  other 
wise  overlook  it  that  no  damage  may  accrue  to  it.  A  chief  levee  inspector  and  his  assistants 
look  to  this,  making  careful  reports  to  the  Exchange.  By  these  means  both  planter  and  facto 
are  secure. 

Nowhere  in  the  world  is  freight  handled  so  expeditiously  as  on  the  levee  at  New  Orleans 
and  the  manner  in  wliich  the  cotton  is  discharged  from  boats  reads  as  remarkable  to  thos( 
unacquainted  with  this  rapid  mode  of  taking  off  freight.  As  a  sample,  the  steamer  "J.  M 
White  "  arrived  in  port  a  little  after  6  o'clock  one  morning  with  6,000  bales  of  cotton  and  4,00( 
sacks  of  cotton  seed  on  board.  At  11.45  this  immense  cargo  was  discharged,  and  that  evenini 
at  5  o'clock  the  magnificent  steamer  was  on  her  way  up  the  river  with  another  load. 

But  to  return  to  our  bale  of  Ouachita  cotton.  With  a  number  of  its  brothers,  it  was  trucked 
out  on  the  shelled  levee  to  a  lot,  over  which  fluttered  a  blue  diamond  flag,  marking  the  con- 
signment of  the  house  of ,  cotton  factors  here. 

A  drayman  drove  up  and  it  was  rolled  on  his  float,  to  be  transported  to  one  of  the  citj 
presses.    Here  a  little  digression  is  necessary  to  fully  illustrate  this  disposition  of  our  bale. 

Each  cotton  factor  in  New  Orleans  has  his  favorite  cotton  press,  to  which  all  consignments 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  273 

are  carried  on  arrival.  Each  of  these  presses  has  its  boss  drayman,  who  is  acquainted  thoroughly 
with  the  cotton  houses  storing  the  staple  in  his  press.  The  boss  draymen  have,  some  twenty 
some  ten,  floats  engaged  in  the  business,  and  in  the  city  there  are  nearly  350  floats  employed 
solely  in  handling  cotton. 

The  drayman  of  a  press,  on  the  arrival  of  a  steamboat,  Inspects  her  manifest  hanging  up  in 
the  cabm  and  sees  exactly  how  many  bales  are  in  the  cargo  belonging  to  the  constituents  of  his 
Dress.  These  draymen  are  all  men  of  integrity,  and  implicit  confidence  is  placed  in  them  both 
oy  the  boat  and  the  press.  ' 

As  soon  as  he  sees  that  in  the  cargo  there  are,  say,  300  bales  consigned  to  houses  storing  at 
us  press,  he  directs  the  drivers  under  him  to  go  to  the  different  flags  marking  the  consi^ees' 
ots  and  haul  the  bales  to  the  press.  " 

A  receipt  is  given  to  the  discharging  clerk  by  the  drayman  for  the  cotton.  The  drayman  is 
tnown  to  represent  the  press  and  his  drivers  load  up,  and  our  bale  after  a  joltin-^over  the 
tones  of  Tchoupitoulas  street  reaches  the  cotton  press.  The  clerk  of  the  boss  drayman  has  by 
his  tmiemade  out  a  list  of  the  cotton  bound  for  his  press  and  sends  it  up  to  the  yard  clerk  so 
hat  he  will  know  what  he  is  receiving.  ' 

Alot,  amongst  which  is  our  bale,  arrives  at  the  press,  and  is  taken  in  charge  by  the  yard 
lerk  employed  there. 

If  the  lot  is  a  large  one  he  gives  it  over  to  two  or  three  gangs  of  vard  men  who  are 
mployed  to  handle  and  care  for  the  cotton  while  it  is  in  the  charge  of  the  press.  If  the  lot  is 
small  one  it  is  divided  up  among  the  gangs,  so  as  to  divide  the  labor  equally,  giving  to  each  a 
ertam  set  of  marks.  For  instance,  one  gang  may  be  given  to  handle  all  the  cotton  marked 
A.  B.,  L.  C.  &  S.T.,"  and  another  all  marked  "P.  S.,  J,  G.  &  M.  K." 

A  cotton-yard  gang  consists  of  three  men-a  chief  and  two  subordinates.  In  the  press  the 
)aee  between  the  posts  supporting  the  roof  is  called  a  store,  each  store  holding  between  80 
Qd  100  bales,  and  to  each  man  in  a  gang  is  given  one  of  these  "  stores  "  or  piles.  No  one  but 
mself.  assisted  by  his  gang,  can  touch  a  bale  in  his  pile.  He  knows  exactly  what  cotton  is  in 
s  "  store,"  and  when  a  certain  bale  is  wanted  gets  it  out. 

On  arrival  at  the  press  each  lot  is  separated  to  itself  by  the  yardmen  and  ranged  in  rows  for 
mvenience.  The  sampler,  who  is  employed  by  the  factor,  now  appears  upon  the  scene,  and 
akmg  a  cut  m  the  bale,  withdraws  therefrom  a  six-ounce  sample  of  the  cotton,  taking  care 
at  It  fairly  represents  the  contents  of  the  bale.  This  sample,  with  the  marks  of  the  bale  on  its 
tper  wrapper,  is  now  sent  dovm  to  the  factor's  ofiBce,  and  this  is  the  receipt  of  the  press  to  the 
ctor. 

When  the  sample  of  cur  bale  reaches  the  factor's  office  it  is  spread  out  on  his  sales-table  for 
spection. 

Cotton  buyers  here  are  represented  by  their  brokers  in  making  purchases.  The  broker, 
ter  examming  the  sample  and  being  satisfied  with  the  factor's  price,  accepts  it. 

To  complete  the  transaction  another  trip  is  necessary,  however.  The  purchasing  broker 
ads  up  to  the  press  his  weigher  to  reweigh  the  cotton,  so  as  to  verify  the  weight,  and  also  his 
isser,  who  resamples  it  and  classes  it  according  to  recognized  standards  as  ordinary,  good 
iinary,  low  middling,  etc.  The  seller's  weigher  is  present  when  the  re  weighing  takes  place  and 
rforms  the  act  of  re  weighing.  Everything  l.eing  satisfactory,  the  bale  is  then  "  ship-marked  " 
markedforthevessel,  which  marks  may  be  the  initials  of  buyer,  consignee,  or  any  other 

E.  E.  O.  I  ^y  the  series  of 
when  it  is  opened 


•n,  and  with  this,  a  number,  either  of  some  series  or  arbitrary,  as 
irkings  through  which  the  bale  has  passed,  should  it  be  found 
the  spinners'  in  Europe  to  contam  foreign  substances,  such  as 
n,  it  can  be  immediateiy  traced  to  the  plantation  whence  it  came. 

In  the  first  place  the  "  ship-mark  "  would  identify  the  bale  as  having  been  part  of  a  lot 
pped  from  New  Orleans  on  such  a  steamer,  the  number  indicxting  the  bale.     On  inquiry  at 


274  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

plantation  o,r  place  it  was  raised,  and  if  counter-marked  whether  it  was  the  planter's  ov 
raisin?:,  or  raised  by  some  one  on  his  place,  or  purchased.  Thus  by  this  system,  the  identl 
cation  of  the  bale  is  perfect. 

Thus  from  Manchester  to  Ouachita  parish  could  be  traced  this  bale  of  cotton,  and  the  charg 
laid  directly  at  the  door  of  the  guilty  party. 

Our  bale,  which  had  been  but  ordinarily  pressed  at  the  gin-house,  is  entirely  too  bulky 
take  on  shipboard  in  that  form  In  order  to  afford  as  much  storage  room  as  possible  on  boa 
ship  it  is  necessary  to  reduce  its  size,  and  here  the  mammoth  steam  compresses  step  in  to  > 
the  work,  which  is  for  the  benefit  and  at  the  expense  of  the  ship.  Our  bale,  having  been  "  shi 
marked,"'  is  trucked  up  to  the  press-room  proper,  where  a  gang  of  men  stands  ready  to  recei 
it.  Two  or  three  rolls  and  it  is  resting  on  the  low  platen  or  lower  jaw  of  a  gigantic  monst 
that,  at  the  movement  of  a  lever,  closes  his  mouth  upon  it,  squeezing  the  bale  until  it  has  be 
diminished  from  three  feet  in  thickness  to  about  eight  inches. 

Iron  bands  are  tightened,  new  ones  are  put  on  when  necessary,  and  when,  with  a  snort,  tl 
Titan  loosens  his  .i^^vw,  a  flat,  uninteresting  mass  of  solid  cotton  has  taken  the  place  of  o 
formerly  symmetrical  bale. 

With  a  jerk  by  cotton  hooks  the  bale  is  sent  out  of  the  door  to  the  drays  waiting 
carry  it  to  the  slip.  The  drayman  is  given  a  receipt  by  the  shipping  clerk  for  the  mate  or  t 
representative  of  the  vessel  to  sign  on  its  delivery,  and  our  bale  is  driven  off  to  the  wha 
where  the  steamer  awaits  it. 

The  Cotton  Exchange  never  relaxes  its  vigilant  watch  over  a  bale  of  cotton  from  the  til 
it  arrives,  until  it  is  in  the  ship's  hold. 

On  its  arrival,  in  the  press,  and  on  the  wharf,  where  it  is  to  be  taken  by  the  ship's  tackle,  11 
protected  and  watched. 

Where,  in  old  days,  Tchoupitoulas  street  was  white  with  loose  cotton  that  had  dropped  fn 
bales  in  transit,  now  not  a  flake  can  be  seen.    In  the  presses,  like  scrupulous  care  is  taken. 

A  chief  supervisor  is  chosen  by  the  Board  of  Directors  of  the  Exchange,  and  with  html 
necessary  number  of  assistants.  The  chief  visits  all  the  presses  to  see  that  the  work  of  sup* 
vision  is  properly  carried  on.  The  assistants  see  that  all  loose  cotton  is  gathered  up  a 
weighed;  all  samples  taken  from  the  bales  by  the  factors'  samplers  and  brokers'  classers! 
also  weighed  and  a  record  kept  of  the  same. 

When,  after  compression,  the  cotton  is  sent  to  the  ship,  it  comes  under  the  charge  of  t 
chief  levee  inspector  and  his  assistants. 

These  protect  it  from  weather  and  depredations,  and  prevent  its  being  placed  on  board  ii 
damaged  condition  without  the  knowledge  of  the  master ;  and  when  the  vessel  clears^  at  t 
Custom-House  the  chief  levee  inspector  draws  up  a  certificate  settmg  forth  the  condition* 
which  the  cargo  was  taken  on  board. 

When  our  bale  arrives  at  the  wharf  the  drayman's  receipt  is  signed,  the  bale  rolled  off  1 
float,  and  the  stevedore's  men  take  hold  of  it  and  in  a  moment  it  is  in  the  hold.  Here  a  gang 
screwmen,  with  their  powerful  jackscrews,  in  spite  of  all  its  solidity,  force  it  into  a  remarkal 
small  space  between  other  bales,  and  there  it  rests  until  the  cargo  is  broken  in  Liverpool 
Havre. 

It  may  return  in  French  calico  or  bobbinet  mosquito  bars.  It  may  turn  up  as  la^ 
for  dainty  dresses  for  the  spring  wear  of  society  belles,  or  as  Balbriggan  half -hose  for  the  sten 
side  of  humanity. 

Its  identity  is  lost,  however,  and  the  fleecy  fibres  that  grew  together  in  the  patch  on  i 
banks  of  the  Ouachita  may  be  distributed  from  the  harem  of  the  Shah  to  the  jungles  of  i 
Amazon. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  275 


CHAPTER   XXXVI.— MONUMENTAL. 

THE   MONUMENTS    AND    STATUES    IN     AND     AROUND    NEW   ORLEANS— LEE,  JACKSON,    CLAY 

AND   FRANKLIN. 

The  monuments  of  New  Orleans  are  numerous  and  handsome.  While  the  founder  of  the 
city  is  without  one.  if  we  may  except  a  bas  relief  in  the  central  room  of  the  Customhouse  ;  while, 
indeed,  not  one  of  the  many  of  the  native  Creoles  who  have  obtained  hi^h  positions  in  the 
world  of  literature  and  art  has  received  recognition,  the  city  has  raised  memorials  to  more 
than  a  dozen  persons. 

Another  case  of  neglect,  fully  as  great  as  that  shown  Bienville,  is  the  decayed  condition  of 
the  monument  erected  in  honor  of  the  battle  of  New  Orleans. 

The  Jackson  monument,  as  this  is  called,  on  the  plains  of  Chalmette,  named  in  honor  of  the 
old  bachelor  planter  who  owned  the  grounds— Chalmette— is  situated  about  a  mile  below  the 
slaughter-house.    You  reach  it  via  the  Levee  &  Ban-acks  cars  and  a  walk  along  the  levee. 

The  monument  is  in  a  very  dilapidated  and  forlorn  condition.  The  base  is  of  brick,  sup- 
porting a  shaft  of  brick,  faced  with  marble.  The  steps  within  are  of  iron,  but  many  of  them 
are  gone.  The  roof,  of  wood,  is  very  nearly  fallen  in,  rain-stained  and  sun-scorched.  Time, 
wind  and  rain  have  played  havoc  with  it,  and  there  is  really  very  little  roof  left,  and  what  there 
is,  is  in  a  shaky  condition  arid  liable  to  be  blown  down  in  the  first  heavy  storm.  Over  all  the 
walls  are  scratched  the  names  of  venturous  souls  who  hope  to  make  their  names  also  immortal. 

The  monument  was  begun  between  1830  and  1840,  the  Legislature  making  appropriations 
jufficient  to  cover  the  first  expense.  The  appropriation,  however,  was  not  renewed,  and  the 
monument  was  left  in  its  present  neglected  condition. 

On  the  other  hand.  New  Orleans  can  claim  some  credit  for  raising  the  only  monument  to  a 
woman  ever  erected  in  the  United  States.  In  a  little  grassy  plot  of  ground  at  the  intersection 
3f  Camp  and  Prytania  streets,  stands  the  white  marble  figure  of  a  woman,  inscribed  with  the 
simple  name,  "  Margaret."  Seated  in  a  chair  with  a  shawl  around  her  shoulders  and  one  arm 
;hrown  around  the  neck  of  a  child,  is  the  figure  of  the  deceased  Margaret  Haughery,  "  the 
orphans'  friend."  The  location  is  well  selected,  for  it  faces  the  Female  Orphan  Asylum,  toward 
;he  establishment  of  which  Margaret  did  so  much.  The  woman  whom  it  is  intended  to  honor, 
was  unable  either  to  read  or  write,  but  by  her  energy  acquired  a  considerable  fortune,  all  the 
ncome  from  which  was  given  to  the  various  orphan  asylums  of  New  Orleans,  without  regard  to 
nect ;  and  at  her  death  a  few  years  ago,  the  whole  of  her  fortune  was  bequeathed  for  their  sup- 
Dort, 

Clay  Statue  on  Canal  street  where  Koyal  and  St.  Charles  meet,  is  the  oflBcial  centre  of  the 
jity,  all  the  distances  being  computed  from  that  point.  The  corner  stone  was  laid  by  the  Clay 
i5tatue  Association  on  April  12th,  1856.  The  inauguration,  which  called  out  one  of  the  grandest 
I  md  largest  public  gatherings  that  ever  took  place  in  New  Orleans,  was  on  the  12th  of  April, 
1860.  On  that  occasion  Col.  J.  B.  Walton  acted  as  Grand  Marshal  and  Col.  J.  O.  Nixon  as  First 
l\ssistant-Marshal.  Joel  T.  Hart,  of  Kentucky,  the  artist  who  gave  form  and  proportions  to 
i:he  Clay  Statue,  was  present  at  the  inauguration,  and  Wm.  H.  Hunt,  Esq.,  was  the  orator  of 
;he  day. 

A  circle  of  fifty  feet  in  diameter,  surmounted  with  an  iron  railing,  and  a  flight  of  hexagon 
jhape  granite  steps,  each  one  smaller  than  the  one  on  which  it  rests,  forms  the  foundation  on 
which  the  pedestal  and  statue  rest.    The  pedestal,  like  the  foundation,  is  of  granite. 


276  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

The  statue  itself  is  a  perfect  likeness  of  the  illustrious  statesman.  Its  heiprht  is  about  fifteen 
feet.    This,  with  the  foundation  circle,  steps  and  pedestal,  makes  it  stand  some  forty  feet  high. 

The  marble  statue  of  Franklin  in  the  centre  of  Lafayette  square  is  connected  with  the  story 
of  the  great  American  sculptor,  Hiram  Powers,  the  author  of  the  "Greek  Slave."  When  Powers 
first  went  to  Italy  to  study  art,  a  number  of  New  Orleans  people,  in  order  to  assist  him,  ordered 
from  him  a  statue  of  Benjamin,  for  which  they  paid  five  thousand  dollars  in  advance;  while 
the  State  of  Louisiana  gave  him  fifteen  thousand  for  a  statue  of  Washington.  This  was  in  1844, 
before  Powers  had  won  the  reputation  he  afterwards  enjoyed.  The  statue,  however,  was  not 
completed,  and  the  war  intervening,  the  original  gift  to  Powers  was  forgotten,  until  1869,  when 
the  matter  was  brought  up  again.  Powers  then  agreed  to  complete  the  statue,  which  was  dor.e 
in  1871,  and  it  was  given  to  the  city  upon  the  condition  that  a  granite  base  should  be  erected 
A  series  of  contretemps  followed.  The  statue  arrived,  but  by  some  mistake  was  advertised  for 
sale ;  the  granite  for  the  pedestal  was  shipped  from  Boston,  but  lost  at  sea  ;  a  second  lot  was 
never  heard  of,  and  it  was  not  until  1873  that  the  statue  was  finally  erected  on  its  present 
location. 

The  statue  of  General  Robert  E.  Lee,  in  Lee  circle,  at  the  intersection  of  St.  Charles  avenue 
and  Delord  street,  was  unveiled  during  the  carnival  of  1883,  in  the  presence  of  an  immense 
multitude,  and  while  a  severe  rain  and  wind  storm  was  raging.  The  statue  stands  on  a  pillar, 
which  rises  in  the  center  of  a  large  mound.  The  pillar,  which  is  ICO  feet  high,  is  hollow,  and  a 
stairway  In  the  center  gives  access  to  a  small  chamber  at  the  top  immediately  under  the  statue, 
from  which  a  view  of  the  city  can  be  obtained.  The  statue  is  a  colossal  of  bronze  representing 
Lee  with  folded  arms  surveying  the  scene  of  battle. 

The  Jackson  monument,  in  Jackson  square,  is  the  first  equestrian  statue  ever  produced 
representing  the  horse  in  the  act  of  rearing.  This  peculiar  attitude  was  the  invention  of  Clark 
Mills,  who  designed  the  statue,  and  is  rendered  possible  by  making  the  fore  part  of  the  animal 
hollow,  while  the  remainder  is  solid. 

The  monument  was  erected  in  1851,  the  money  for  this  purpose  being  raised  by  popular 
subscription,  the  largest  contribution  coming  from  Madame  Pontalba,  who  owned  the  rows  of 
buildings  opposite,  and  who  placed  the  square,  the  old  Place  d'Arraes,  in  which  the  statue 
stands,  in  its  present  condition.  At  the  cemeteries  are  a  number  of  statues  memorial  of  the 
war,  which  have  been  described  in  a  previous  chapter. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  277 


CHAPTER  XXXVII. —FLOODS   AND    OVERFLOWS. 

FHE   DANGER   FROM    CREVASSES — HIGH   WATER    FROM    THE    LAKE — THE    INUNDATION    OF 
1884   IN    THE   WESTERN    SUBURBS    OF   THE   CITY. 

The  topographical  featur3s  of  New  Orleans  are  peculiar  to  lower  Louisiana.  The  land  is 
lighest  on  the  immediate  bank  of  the  rivers  and  bayous,  and  consequently  the  rain-water 
lows  from  the  river  to  the  swamp,  as  the  low  back-lands  are  styled  before  they  are  cleared 
md  drained. 

New  Orleans  was  laid  out  and  settled  in  1718.  The  plan  showed  a  front  of  eleven  blocks 
from  Custom  House  to  Barrack  streets)  on  the  Mississippi  River,  by  a  depth  of  only  five  blocks 
Tom  the  river  to  Burgundy  street. 

Small  ditches  led  the  rain-fall  into  the  swamp.  The  swamp  drained  slowly  into  Lake 
Pontchartrain,  by  the  Bayou  St.  John  and  some  smaller  bayous. 

This  rough  natural  drainage  existed  many  years  without  change  (except  a  few  private 
janals),  until  Louisiana  was  purchased  by  the  United  States  in  1803.  New  Orleans  began  to 
ncrease,  as  appears  by  the  petition  of  the  City  Council  on  the  20th  July,  1805,  to  the  Governor, 
isking  to  have  the  fortifications  demolished  and  the  ditches  filled  up. 

Up  to  the  19th  March,  1835,  the  street  gutters  were  gradually  extended  into  the  swamp, 
md  a  few  draining  canals  had  been  made,  viz.:  The  Melpomene,  from  St.  Charles  to  Willow 
itreets,  the  Canal  Gravier,  on  Poydras  from  Baronne  street  to  a  branch  of  Bayou  St.  John, 
:;anal  street  from  Claiborne  street  to  a  branch  of  Bayou  St.  John,  and  Orleans  street  from 
Llaiborne  street  to  Bayou  St.  John ;  St.  Bernard  from  St.  Claude  street  to  Bayou  St.  John,  and 
he  old  Marigny  canal  from  Elysian  Fields  street,  via  Marigny  avenue,  to  the  Bayou  St.  John ;  in 
;!laiborne,  from  Canal "Carondelet  to  Ursuhnes  street. 

A  draining  machine  was  built  by  the  city  at  Bayou  St.  John,  at  the  junction  of  the  draining 
lanal  on  Orleans  street,  about  18-30. 

The  upper  suburbs  drained  into  New  Orleans  canal,  which  had  cut  off  the  drainage  of 
Jayou  St.  John. 

By  an  act  of  the  Lsjjisiature,  approved  19th  March,  1835,  a  draining  company  was  organized 
o"  drain,  fill  up,  and  improve  the  territory  from  the  river  to  Lake  Pontchartrain,  between 
larmony  street  above,  and  the  Fishermen's  canal,  below  the  citj';"  and  went  to  work  as 
equired,  by  cutting  down  the  forest  between  the  city  and  the  Metairie  Ridge,  and  digging  sev- 
ral  draining  canals,  viz.:  Claiborne,  Galvez,  Broad,  Hagan,  Carrollton. 

By  an  act  of  the  Legislature  of  20th  March,  18.39,  a  special  district  for  drainage  was  formed 
•etween  Claiborne  street,  Carondelet  Canal,  Metairie  (2)  Ridge,  Bayou  (1)  St.  John,  and  N.  O. 
:anal. 

By  Act  18th  Marcfi,  1858,  three  draining  districts  were  created,  each  with  a  separate  adminis- 
ration,  viz.  : 

First  District— All  lands  within  the  river,  Julia  street,  N.  O.  Canal,  La've  Pontchartrain, 
Jayou  St.  John,  Carondelet  Canal,  and  St.  Peter  street. 

Second  District— All  lands  within  the  river,  Julia  street,  N.  O.  Canal,  the  Lake,  Jefferson 
i  Lake  Pontchartrain  Railroad,  to  the  river  bank. 

Third  District— All  lands  within  the  river,  St.  Peter  street,  Carondelet  Canal,  Bayou  St. 
I'ohn,  the  Lake,  Lafayette  avenue,  to  the  river-bank. 

Fourth  District— River,  Florida  avenue,  Lafayette  avenue,  and  Fishermen's  CanaL 

Under  these  different  acts,  the  whole  of  the  territory,  from  the  upper  line  of  Carrollton  to 
.<afayette  avenue,  has  received  more  or  less  improvements  in  its  drainage. 


278  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

In  1871  further  improvements  were  made  and  seven  draininj?  machines  constructed,  with  a 
capacity  of  3,000,000  gallons  per  hour  for  each  wheel,  at  a  lift  of  seven  feet. 

In  the  year  1804,  when  the  city  extended  only  from  about  Canal  street  to  Esplanade  and 
from  the  river  to  about  Burgundy  street,  there  were  no  sidewalks  or  gutters,  but  only  ordinary 
ditches  ■  the  city  was  irrigated  by  means  of  wooden  pipes  laid  through  the  levee  at  the  head  of 
each  and  every  street  perpendicular  to  the  river,  and  which  flushed  the  ditches  only  during  high 
water,  say  for  about  four  months,  from  April  to  the  beginning  of  August. 

Lator,  the  city  being  more  densely  populated,  the  necessity  of  a  larger  supply  of  water  was 
felt ;  wooden  curbs  and  gutters  having  been  laid,  the  City  Council,  in  1813,  contracted  with  a 
French  civil  engineer  named  Latrobe,  to  construct  and  erect  a  "  pompe  a  f  eu  "  (steam  pump)  a1 
the  corner  of  Old  Levee  (now  Decatur)  and  Ursulines  streets,  and  to  lay  the  necessary  pipes 
(wooden)  on  said  Decatur,  from  Esplanade  to  Canal  streets.  The  site  of  the  "  pompe  a  feu  "  h 
where  the  fish  market  now  stands.  The  "pompe  a  feu"  within  a  few  months,  was  completed 
and  set  to  work.  The  wooden  pipe  being  found  of  insufficient  size  and  capacity  was,  in  1815 
taken  up,  and  a  twelve-inch  cast-iron  pipe  substituted.  This  pipe  is  still  in  existence,  but,  nc 
doubt,  in  very  bad  condition.  The  "  pompe  a  feu  "  was  in  constant  daily  use  from  the  time  o 
its  erection  to  about  1840  or  1841.  when  it  was  abolished  for  the  erection  of  the  fish  market. 

In  1844  the  necessity  of  flushing  the  gutters  as  an  important  factor  in  the  sanitation  o 
the  city  being  more  and  more  keenly  felt,  the  council  of  the  first  municipality,  through  its  sur 
veyor,  had  a  steam  pump  erected  on  the  site  of  the  present  fruit  market,  using  the  old  twelve 
inch  iron  pipe,  which  had  been  laid  years  before.  Said  pipe,  from  its  insufficient  strength 
bursting  in  innumerable  places,  the  steam-pump  was  abandoned  and  the  fruit  market  erectet 
on  its  site. 

Again,  in  1858,  the  indispensable  necessity  of  flushing  the  gutters  asserting  itself,  man^ 
reports  made  by  the  city  surveyor  on  this  all-important  question  brought  the  council  to  th( 
decision  of  having  the  proper  pipes  laid  and  the  necessary  building  and  steam-pumps  erected 
The  work  was  immediately  begun,  and  contracts  were  entered  into  for  furnishing  the  necessan 
outfit,  etc.  A  thirty-inch  pipe  was  laid  on  Delta,  from  Canal  to  Claiborne  streets,  an  iroi 
building  to  contain  the  steam-pumps  erected  at  the  head  of  Canal  street,  and  the  contract  foi 
furnishing  and  erecting  the  pumps  entered  into  with  a  St.  Louis  firm.  The  war  broke  out  a^ 
that  time,  and  the  project  was,  perforce,  abandoned. 

But  despite  these  canals,  draining  machines,  levees,  etc.,  New  Orleans  is  often  the  victim  o: 
overflow.    It  can  be  flooded  in  three  ways  : 

By  a  heavy  rainfall,  peculiar  to  tropical  countries,  and  which  is  too  great  for  the  gutters  anc 
canals  to  carry  off  ;  by  Lake  Pontchartrain,  when  the  level  of  the  lake  is  raised  by  contrarj 
winds,  its  waters  flooding  the  rear  of  the  city,  and  by  the  Mississippi  river,  from  crevasses  o) 
breaks  in  the  levees. 

In  1718,  the  year  after  the  selection  of  the  site  of  the  city  of  New  Orleans,  there  was  ai 
extraordinary  rise  of  the  Mississippi,  which  greatly  discouraged  the  new  settlers.  A  great  floo( 
occurred  in  1735,  which  inundated  the  city.  The  flood  of  1735  was  continuous  for  an  unusua 
length  of  time,  from  late  in  December  to  late  in  June,  and  the  succeeding  low  water  wa: 
remarkably  low.  The  records  of  the  flood  years  from  1735  to  1770  are  wanting,  but  in  the  latte: 
year  a  great  flooi  occurred,  with  its  usual  inundations.  In  1782  there  was  a  flood  which  it  wa; 
said  exceeded  any  remembered  by  the  oldest  inhabitants.  Great  floods  occurred  in  1785, 179t 
and  1799,  and  during  each  of  these  years  New  Orleans  was  inundated. 

The  noted  overflow  of  1816  commenced  on  the  sixth  of  May  and  subsided  in  twenty-five  days 
The  suburbs  and  rear  portions  of  the  city  were  submerged  from  three  to  five  feet.  One  coult 
travel  in  a  skiff  from  the  corner  of  Chartres  and  Canal  streets  to  Dauphine,  down  Dauphine  U 
Bienville,  down  Bienville  to  Burgundy,  thus  to  St.  Louis  street,  and  from  St.  Louis  to  Rampar 
and  throughout  the  rear  suburbs.    No  increase  of  disease  was  referred  to  that  overflow. 

In  1831,  the  waters  of  an  inundation  reached  the  line  of  Dauphine  street,  the  fifth  from  th( 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  279 

iver  front,  the  result  of  a  violent  storm  in  Lake  Pontchartrain.  A  similar  event  occurred  in 
837.  In  1844,  a  storm  backed  the  lake  waters  up  to  Burgundy  street,  sixth  from  the  river  front, 
nd  the  same  disaster  happened  again  in  1846.  The  overflow  of  1849,  following  the  Sauve 
revasse,  of  the  third  of  May,  has  been  regarded  as  the  most  serious  overflow  with  which  New 
)rleaus  has  ever  suffered. 

The  water  reached  its  highest  stage  on  the  thirtieth  of  May.  The  line  of  the  flood  ran  along 
Jacchus  (Baronne)  street,  sometimes  reached  to  Carondelet,  from  the  upper  limits  of  Lafayette 
o  Canal  street,  covered  that  street,  between  Carondelet  and  St.  Charles  street,  and  thence  to 
he  Old  Basin.  About  220  inhabited  squares  were  flooded,  more  than  2,000  tenements  surrounded 
ly  water  etc.,  a  population  of  12,000  souls  either  driven  from  their  homes,  or  leading  a  life  of 
•rivations  and  suffering. 

During  the  high  water  of  1884,  Algiers,  Gretna,  and  all  the  western  suburbs  of  New  Orleans 
s^ere  badly  flooded  from  the  Davis'  crevasse,  which  occurred  some  miles  above  the  city  in  St. 
'harles.    A  visit  to  the  overflowed  portion  of  town  revealed  a  scene  of  great  devastation. 

As  far  as  the  eye  coald  penetrate  there  extended  one  vast  sheet  of  water,  swallowing  up 
,11  the  small  farms  upon  which  New  Orleans  largely  depended  for  its  supply  of  vegetables, 
icres  of  corn-fields  were  ruined ;  the  houses  were  tipping  from  side  to  side ;  an  occasional 
ace  looked  out  at  a  broken  window  as  if  beseeching  bread  and  meat ;  on  every  hand  were 
aarks  of  suffering  and  son'ow.  One  deserted  house  toppling  about  in  the  slow  sweeping 
urrent  had  left,  as  the  last  vestige  of  its  former  habitation,  a  flower-pot  holding  a  geranium 
'lant  upon  the  pig-pen  which  still  bobbed  about  in  the  back  yard. 

A  small  stern-wheel  craft  was  for  several  weeks  used  as  a  hearse,  and  was  seen  moored 
.gainst  a  tall  board  fence. 

The  graveyard  was  entirely  submerged,  except  a  few  rows  of  the  top  vaults.  Potter's 
Meld  was  invisible.    The  colored  graveyards,  St.  John  and  St.  Mary,  were  both  under  water. 

On  the  race-track  in  the  rear  of  Gretna  the  water  was  about  six  feet  deep,  and  the  old 
trooklyn  stock-yard  was  completely  submerged.  Two  solitary  trees  and  a  lonely  grave  gone 
drift,  still  surrounded  by  its  palings,  were  all  that  indicated  that  terra  firma  existed  in  the 
jcality. 

On  the  line  of  the  Morgan  road  was  found  an  old  house  and  saw-mill,  crowded  with  negroes, 
a  one  room  there  were  a  woman  and  six  children  ;  in  another  a  mother  with  a  family  of  four  ; 
Itogether  there  were  twenty  human  beings  in  the  one  old  rookery.  They  were  completely 
arrounded  by  water,  and  without  means  to  procure  provisions.  They  had  been  living  on 
rawfish  for  two  days.  Their  little  patches  of  garden  "  sass  "  and  vegetable  truck  had  disap- 
eared  forever. 

In  the  rear  of  Algiers  it  was  the  same  story,  gardens  flooded  and  houses  rumed  or  washed 
way  altogether  from  the  foundations. 

At  the  graveyards,  where  seven-foot  pickets  formed  a  fence,  but  about  seven  inches  appeared 
hove  the  water. 

St.  Joseph's  Catholic  Cemetery  was  all  submerged,  and  coffins  were  seen  floating  away  in 
arious  directions. 

In  many  houses  people  were  living  and  cooking  in  the  garrets  such  food  as  they  could 
rocure. 


280  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XXXVIII.— BRICK  AND  MORTAR. 

SOME  OF  THE  MORE  IMPORTANT  PUBLIC  BUILDINGS  OF  THE  CITY — THE  COTTON  AND 
SUGAR  EXCHANGES— THE  MARBLE  ROOM  OF  THE  CUSTOMHOUSE — A  VIEW  FROM  THE 
SHOT    TOWER. 

THE  COTTON  EXCHANGE. 

The  Cotton  Exchange,  at  the  corner  of  Carondelet  and  Gravier  streets,  is  considered  bj 
many  the  handsomest  and  most  graceful  building  in  the  city.  The  building  is  of  the  omat( 
Italian  style  of  architecture,  elaborately  carved  and  ornamented. 

The  Exchange  Room  proper  is  situated  on  the  ground  floor  of  the  building,  and  extendi 
from  Carondelet  street  back  to  Varieties  alley,  a  distance  of  100  feet,  with  a  width  of  50  feet 
There  is,  perhaps,  no  room  on  this  side  the  Atlantic  on  the  embellishment  of  which  so  much  time 
and  pains  have  been  expended. 

On  first  entering,  the  visitor  is  surprised  at  the  wealth  of  decoration,  and  the  eye  is  for  th< 
moment  dazed  with  elaborate  design  and  prodigality  of  fresco.  The  interior  is  of  the  Renais 
sance  style  throughout,  and  is  one  of  the  most  gorgeous  illustrations  of  Lienard's  school. 

Entering  from  Carondelet  street,  the  ceiling  is  ornamented  with  three  medallions  in  gold 
In  the  rear  of  these,  and  bordering  the  four  beautiful  oil  paintings,  are  medallions  of  mos 
delicate  tracery.  The  coloi's  are  of  the  rarest  shades,  from  Vermillion  to  pale  lilac,  and  th< 
figures  wi'ought  in  these  panels  are  exquisite. 

Surrounding  a  beautiful  centre-piece,  gold,  crimson  and  lilac,  are  four  paintings,  represent 
ing  Do  Soto's  first  view  of  the  Mississippi,  a  view  of  the  jetties  at  South  Pass,  with  steamer- 
passing  up,  La  Salle  taking  possession  of  Louisiana,  and  a  cotton  field  with  the  cotton  ready  foi 
picking. 

To  describe  the  ornamentation  of  the  walls  would  be  difficult.  Panels  with  griffins'  heads 
and  ornate  borders;  rich  friezes  and  rosettes  with  gold  predominating;  fruit  and  flowers,  wreaths 
and  festoons,  everywhere  meet  the  dazzled  eye. 

Supporting  the  ceiling  four  double  columns,  resting  on  pedestals,  rise  in  beautiful  symmetrj 
in  the  perfection  of  the  Renaissance  style.  The  lower  third  of  the  columns  is  adorned  with 
rosettes  of  a  rich  pattern,  and  give  to  these  shafts  an  Indian  type,  although  the  style  is  French. 

Near  the  entrance  on  Varieties  alley  is,  perhaps,  the  chef  cfmivre  of  art  in  the  building.  It  is  a 
young  Triton  blowing  a  conch  shell,  and  stands  in  the  centre  of  the  fountain's  bowl.  Th€ 
figure  is  of  a  bronze  color,  and  the  attitude  is  full  of  life. 

Around  the  walls  there  are  set  in  large  slabs  of  slate,  on  which  the  quotations  of  the  markel 
and  movements  of  cotton  will  be  noted.  These  slabs  are  of  unusual  size,  and  were  quarriec 
for  the  Exchange. 

As  a  recess  from  the  large  Exchange  room,  is  the  space  devoted  to  the  officers  of  the  institu- 
tion. Here  all  that  taste  could  suggest  has  been  done  to  make  it  par  excellence  the  model  business 
office  of  the  city.  An  artistic  rail  and  screen  separates  it  from  the  main  room,  and  the  worL 
is  handsomely  finished  in  oil. 

The  building  is  four  stories  high,  and  an  elevator  near  the  rear  entrance  transports  passen- 
gers to  the  upper  story,  from  which  a  stairway  of  easy  ascent  leads  to  the  roof.  This  is  inclosed 
by  a  handsome  iron  railing,  so  that  parties  can  walk  around  with  perfect  safety.  From  this 
lofty  altitude  a  view  of  the  city  and  its  surroundings  can  be  had,  scarcely  to  be  obtained  from 
any  accessible  building  in  the  city.  In  clear  weather  Lake  Pontchartrain  can  be  distinctly  seen, 
and  the  windings  of  the  Mississippi  for  miles,  both  above  and  below  the  city.  On  this  roof  are 
hung  the  large  bells,  which  strike  both  quarters  and  hours. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  281 

I  ■ 

The  Sugar  Exchange  Hall  proper  is  of  magnificent  proportions,  being  60x110  feet  and  54  feet 
high  from  floor  to  skylight.  It  is  lit  on  three  sides  by  plate-glass  windows,  13x24  feet,  and  a 
skylight  23  feet  square.  The  wing  building  is  120x33  feet,  and  is  two  stories  high.  On  the  first 
floor  there  is  a  public  vestibule,  telegraph  offices,  offices  of  the  Exchange,  stair-hall,  lavatory 
and  water-closets,  and  a  board  room.  On  the  second  floor  a  library,  12x19,  reading-room  and 
museum,  77x20,  lavatory,  etc.,  and  two  committee  rooms.  The  ventilation  is  through  the  cornice 
of  the  skylight,  and  the  acoustics  perfect.  The  entrances  to  the  hall  are  covered  by  porches, 
and  a  Schilliuger  pavement  has  been  laid  on  three  sides,  and  on  the  yard  in  the  rear  as  well. 

Great  taste  has  been  employed  by  the  architect  in  both  the  exterior  and  interior  finish.  Free- 
hand ornamentation  has  been  judiciously  applied  wherever  practicable.  Between  the  Exchange 
and  the  sugar  sheds  was  formerly  a  triangular  islet  of  city  property  used  as  a  general  dumping 
ground  for  worn-out  machinery,  lumber  and  trash.  This  islet  the  Council  set  aside  for  a  public 
park,  and  appointed  its  commissioners  from  the  members  of  the  Sugar  Exchange.  On  it  trees 
and  shrubs  have  been  planted,  the  surface  sodded  and  walks  laid  out,  and  the  whole  surrounded 
by  a  high  dressed  curb,  with  a  Schillinger  banquette  at  the  Bienville  street  side,  the  base  of  the 
triangle. 

THE   CUSTOM-HOUSE. 

Thirty  years  ago,  the  First  Municipality  of  New  Orleans  offered  the  United  States  its  choice 
of  several  squares,  to  be  conveyed  in  fee  simple,  provided  a  Custom-house,  worthy  of  the  grow- 
ing commerce  of  the  city,  would  be  erected  on  the  ground  chosen.  The  United  States  accept- 
ing the  proposition,  the  Secretary  of  the  Treasury  selected  the  "  Custom-house  Square  "  as  the 
most  eligible  of  those  offered,  and  in  a  short  time  thereafter  the  plans  of  A.  T.  Wood  were 
adopted,  November  22d,  1847,  and  the  work  commenced  October  23d,  1848.  The  work  was  car- 
ried on  with  greater  or  less  expedition,  according  to  the  means  at  disposal,  till  the  war,  when, 
for  a  time,  it  was  entirely  suspended.  After  the  war,  work  was  begun  again,  and  is  still  going 
on.  In  the  centre  of  the  Custom-liouse  is  the  finest  hxisiness  room  in  the  xoorld.  The  size  of  the 
entire  room  is  125  x  95  feet ;  the  height  -from  floor  to  glass  dome  or  ceiling— fifty-four  feet. 
Fourteen  lofty  columns  are  placed  so  as  to  give  the  central  part  of  the  room,  a  space  of  45  x  65 
feet,  for  the  use  of  the  general  public,  and  outside  of  that  for  the  accommodation  of  the  officers 
and  clerks.  The  columns  are  of  the  Corinthian  order  with  Attic  bases  ;  the  lower  portion  of  the 
shafts  plain  and  polished  ;  the  capitals  varied  to  allow  designs  indicative  of  the  purposes  of  the 
room.  At  the  top  of  each  capital  is  a  basso-rilievo  of  Juno,  and  another  of  Mercury,  and  designs 
Df  cotton  and  tobacco  plants.  These  are  so  arranged  that  each  faces  its  opposite  on  every 
column,  and  by  looking  at  four  capitals  from  any  position,  all  the  designs  can  be  comprehended 
it  a  glance.  The  floor  is  laid  out,  in  pattern,  of  black  and  white  marble,  in  tiles,  each  two  feet 
square,  with  borders  in  black  marble  from  column  to  column.  Sixteen  light  holes  are  cut  in 
:he  floor,  four  feet  six  inches  in  diameter,  floored  with  glass  one  inch  thick,  cast  on  a  hammered 
surface  to  break  the  rays  of  light,  and  ground  to  a  smooth  surface,  presenting  the  appearance 
)f  green  marble .  Each  plate  is  the  centre  of  a  star,  handsomely  inlaid  with  black  marble.  The 
room  is  heated  by  steam,  the  steam  coils  being  suspended  in  the  floor  from  the  arches,  and 
shielded  by  hexagon  pedestals  with  marble  tops.  In  this  hall  is  to  be  seen  a  marble  figure  in 
)asso-rilievo  of  Bienville,  the  (ir-.ly  monument  of  its  founder,  the  city  possesses  ;  one  of  Jackson 
ind  of  some  othei*s  connected  with  the  history  of  New  Orleans. 

THE    LOUISIANA    JOCKEY    CLUB    BUILDING. 

The  Louisiana  Jockey  Club  was  chartered  May  15,  1871,  for  the  purpose  of  establishing  a 
•acecourse  for  the  advancement  of  racing  and  improving  the  breed  of  horses,  and  the  erection 
ir  the  purchase  and  equipment  of  a  club  house  for  the  social  enjoyment  of  the  members.  The 
5tock  of  the  Association  was  fixed  at  $100,000 in  1,000  s'sare?.  By  agreement  with  the  Fair  Grounds 


282  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

Association,  the  Club  was  given  the  exclusive  use  of  the  racecourse,  for  four  weeks  before 
and  during  each  Spring  and  Fall  meeting,  for  the  period  of  twenty  years,  upon  condition  of 
erecting  upon  the  grounds  a  Public  Stand  of  the  value  of  S~0,000,  which  is  to  revert  to  the 
Association  at  the  end  of  the  period  of  the  lease,  without  incumbrance. 

The  Club  bought  the  property  adjoining  the  Fair  grounds,  which  was  once  the  residence  of 
Mr.  Luling,  for  $60,000.  It  has  a  front  of  500  feet  on  Esplanade  street,  by  2,500  deep,  with  an 
area  of  nearly  30  acres,  situated  on  the  Metairie  Ridge  and  exempt  from  overflow.  The  grounds 
are  well  arranged  and  thickly  set  with  choice  shrubbery.  The  family  mansion  has  been  con- 
verted into  a  club  house.  It  is  a  substantial  and  handsome  three-story  brick  edifice,  with  a 
gallery  extending  entirely  around  it  at  each  story.  The  lofty,  wide  and  airy  rooms  are  employed 
for  reception  and  dining  rooms,  parlors,  library,  reading  and  billiard  rooms,  restaurants,  etc., 
all  very  handsomely  and  liberally  furnished,  most  of  the  oaken  furniture  being  elaborately 
carved  by  hand.  The  other  buildings  on  the  premises  are  in  keeping  with  the  main  house, 
consisting  of  bowling  alley,  pavillion,  kitchen,  and  ten  costly  stables,  with  ample  room  for  a 
hundred  horses. 

The  flower  garden  contains  an  extensive  collection  of  indigenous  and  exotic  plants  and 
flowers  comprising  all  the  rarer  varieties  to  be  found  in  the  temperate  zone  or  within  the 
tropics.  The  adjoining  Park  has  a  great  number  of  forest  trees  of  every  kind,  and  orchards  of 
orange,  peach  and  apple  trees,  and  grapevines,  all  bearing  plentifully  in  their  proper  seasons. 
In  the  centre  of  the  Park  is  a  lake  of  pure  fresh  water  surrounding  a  small  island.  Here  the 
Club  gives  during  the  summer  and  fall,  its  famous  promenade  concerts  where  are  collected  each 
night  several  thousand  of  the  leading  people  in  New  Orleans. 

THE  SHOT  TOWER. 

The  highest  building  in  New  Orleans  is  the  Shot  Tower,  situated  on  the  comer  of  St.  Joseph 
and  Foucher  streets.  A  visit  to  its  summit  will  give  one  the  best  idea  of  New  Orleans  topog- 
raphy, and  decidedly  the  best  view  obtainable  of  the  city. 

A  wonderful  readjuster  of  one's  topography  is  tins  shot  tower.  Old  canals  known  from 
childhood,  when  looked  down  upon  from  above,  insist  upon  running  in  tangents  to  their  sup- 
posed course.  Streets  curl  up  and  decline  in  almost  semicircles  that  were  hitherto  regarded  as 
the  most  strict  and  straight-laced  thoroughfares,  and  the  river  itself,  weary  with  its  long  run  from 
the  Rockies  down  to  our  cane  fields,  staggers  about  in  loops  and  curves  like  those  of  an  unrolled 
ribbon  on  a  careless  milliner's  counter. 

An  elevator  capable  of  carrying  three  or  even  four  persons,  jogs  along  heavenward,  without 
perceptible  vibration,  and  the  higher  one  goes  the  more  comforting  the  thought  that  if  the  steel 
rope  breaks  the  fall  will  not  be  more  than  three-quarters  of  an  inch. 

Speaking  of  this  elevator  recalls  the  remark  made  by  the  gentleman  in  charge  of  the  works 
relative  to  the  behavior  of  those  who  take  the  trip.  He  said  that  ladies  show,  by  far,  the  most 
nerve  in  going  up.  There  is  no  danger,  of  course,  but  some  of  the  sterner  sex  feel  that  there  is, 
and  get  up  a  shaky  feeling  on  the  subject,  while  the  ladies  get  on  the  elevator  and  ascend  with- 
out apparent  concern.  One  able-bodied,  blustering  fellow  said  his  life  was  too  valuable  to 
trust  it  to  a  little  steel  rope  like  that. 

Several  gentlemen  have  weakened  after  going  up  a  floor  or  two,  while  the  ladies  "  enlist  for 
the  war  "  and  go  through  it  bravely. 

At  an  easy  pace  one  passes  up  through  the  floor  of  the  polishing  and  sacking  room,  up  by 
the  caldrons  for  the  larger  shot,  which  require  but  a  short  distance  to  fall,  on  up  through  a 
long  vacant  space  until,  at  last,  the  topmost  room  is  reached,  214  feet  from  the  starting  point. 
In  the  brisk  southeast  wind  one  fancies  he  feels  a  little  vibration  to  the  tower,  but  this  fancy 
soon  passes  away,  and  the  immediate  surroundings  are  forgotten  in  the  broad  level  landscape 
that  stretches  away  to  the  deep  green  rim  of  the  cypress-fringed  horizon. 

The  Crescent  CJity  lies  at  our  feet,  but  no  more  a  city  of  the  crescent.    It  stretches  out 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  283 

rather  "with  a  duplicate  horn,"  and  in  the -winding  sweep  of  the  river  has  a  double  crescent, 
one  vrith  the  concave  and  the  other  with  the  convex  side  toward  this  shore— a  long  irregular 
letter  S  with  the  top  at  Carrollton  and  the  last  curling  at  the  Slaughter-House.  The  Mississippi, 
diminished  hy  the  elevation,  looks  reduced  to  one-quarter  its  size,  while  the  New  Canal,  running 
lakewards,  modestly  contracts  int.i  a  good-sized  ditch.  Streets  become  narrow  aUeys,  and 
broad  avenues,  like  Canal,  Claiborne,  Rampart,  and  Esplanade,  sink  into  long  lines  of  green- 
mere  borders  of  box  growing  between  slated  house-tops. 

The  Oriental  eye  would  find  no  pleasure  in  looking  down  upon  our  roofs.  Instead  of  the 
tropical  level  terraces,  the  flat  tiling  and  afternoon  resorts,  there  stretches  away  in  broken  sur- 
faces as  irregular  as  the  liva  beds  one  monotone  of  slate.  Stiff  and  inartistic  chimneys  crop 
out  like  bits  of  basalt  all  over  the  picture,  and  leveeward  tall  smoke-stacks  of  sugar  refineries 
and  factories  cover  the  Second  district  with  a  sombre  veil  of  coal  black.  Lee  Statue  and  its  circle 
is  a  pretty  little  picture,  the  mound  and  walks  shining  out,  delicate  arabesque  engraving  on  the 
emerald  of  the  grass. 

Annunciation  and  Prytania  streets  lead  directly  away  from  the  observer,  and  one  can  watch 
the  lazy  street  cars,  white-backed  little  beetles,  struggling  along  the  two  metal  webs  of  track 
out  into  the  distance. 

The  Custom-House  is  a  parallelogram  of  gray  ;  the  Hotel  Royal  a  deeper  strip,  from  which 
the  dome,  balloon-like,  seems  to  be  rising. 

One  of  the  most  noticeable  features  of  the  city  landscape  is  the  prevalence  everywhere  of 
foliage.  In  preainbu'.ating  the  streets  of  New  Orleans  one  sees  quite  a  number  of  trees,  it  is 
true,  but  then  there  appear  lorg  stretches  where  not  a  leaf  is  seen  from  the  sidewalks.  Not 
so,  however,  when  aloft.  There  every  backyard  gives  its  contribution,  and  trees  unseen  from 
the  street  stand  out  in  soft  relief.  There  is  green  everywhere,  and  not  a  section  of  the 
city  but  what  has  its  quota  of  waving  branches.  From  Carrollton  away  off  to  the  westward, 
up  in  a  bend  of  the  river,  down  to  the  Second  district,  and  thence  to  the  Barracks,  every  square 
seems  to  possess  a  sylva  of  its  own,  all  adding  much  to  the  restf  ulness  of  the  picture. 

Knowing  that  one  goes  lakewards  by  v/ay  of  Canal  street,  the  eye  naturally  seeks  a  view  of 
Lake  Pontchartrain  by  following  out  that  avenue.  In  vain  are  the  dark  cypresses  in  that 
direction  scanned  for  a  glint  of  the  water.  Miles  of  tree  tops  meet  the  eye,  but  no  lake.  The 
mind  is  puzzled  until  a  glance  is  taken  in  the  direction  straight  down  Magazine  street,  following 
this  line  up  to  the  horizon.  Then  the  broad  surface  of  the  lake  opens  upon  the  vision.  One 
forgets  that  it  lies  directly  north  of  the  city  in  taking  the  cars,  and  its  discovery  away  over  to 
'±e  northward  is  a  surprise.  Looking  over  the  Hotel  Royal,  the  shores  and  the  far  distant  Point 
iUx-Herbes  are  seen  jutting  out.  iMilneburg  and  Spanish  Fort  can  be  barely  distinguished 
:hrough  the  noisome  smoke  of  the  factories  that  are  making  a  Pittsburg  of  the  Second  district. 
^  ^  A  st2p  upon  the  elevator,  a  pull  on  a  rope,  a  sinking  as  it  were  into  the  earth,  and  a 
•ising  upwards  of  the  tower,  and  soon  the  earth  comes  up  to  meet  us,  and  we  are  once  more 
ipon  solid  ground.  Sublunary  things  seem  to  have  gone  on  about  as  usual  since  we  left  terra 
irma,  and  one  gets  a  severe  shock  to  his  egotism  to  see  how  well  the  world  got  along  without 
lim  for  the  past  hour. 

PUBLIC  BUILDINGS,  SQUARES  AND  MARKETS. 
AcADEHT  OF  Music— St.  Charles,  opposite  Perdido. 
Annunciation  Square— Annunciation,  between  Race  and  Orange. 
Beble  House  Building— 163  Camp. 
Brown's  Hall— 130  Melpomene. 
Carroll  Hall— Elysian  Fields,  corner  of  Dauphine. 
Chamber  of  Commerce— 120  Common. 
City  Hall— St.  Charles,  opposite  Lafayette  Square, 
City  Park— Metairie  road,  between  Canal  and  Bayou  St.  John. 


284  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

City  Workhouse— Perilliat,  opposite  Locust. 

Claiborne  Hall— Adams,  between  Hampson  and  Second,  7th  District. 

Claiborne  Market— Claiborne,  between  Common  and  Gasquet. 

Clay  Square— Between  Chippewa  and  Annunciation,  Second  and  Third. 

C0LISEU3I  Hall— 51  Bienville. 

Coliseum  Place— Camp,  between  Melpomene  and  Felicity. 

Congo  Square— North  Piampart,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann. 

Court  House— Chartres,  between  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann. 

Crescent  Hall— Canal,  s.  corner  of  St.  Charles. 

Custom  House— Canal,  between  Decatur  and  Peters. 

Des  Francs  Amis  Hall— X.  Robertson,  between  St.  Anthony  and  Bourbon. 

Douglas  Square— Between  Howard  and  Freret,  Third  and  Washington  avenue. 

Dryades  Market— Dryades,  spanning  Melpomene. 

Eagle  Hall — Prytania,  corner  of  Felicity. 

Economy  Hall— 218  Ursulines. 

Fair  Grounds— Gentilly  road,  east  of  Esplanade  street. 

Fillmore  Square— Between  Howard  and  Freret,  Third  and  Fifth. 

Franklin  Temperance  Hall— X.  Eampart,  corner  of  Spain. 

French  Market— X.  Peters  and  Decatur,  from  St.  Ann  to  Ursulines. 

Germania  Masonic  Hall— 316  St.  Louis. 

Grunewald  Hall— Baronne,  between  Canal  and  Common. 

Heptasoph  Hall— Corner  of  Bienville  and  Exchange  alley. 

Hermitage  Hall— Tchoupitoulas,  near  Jackson. 

Immaculate  Conception  Hall— 194  St.  Anthony. 

Jackson  Square— Between  Decatur  and  Chartres,  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann. 

Jefferson  City  :^LvRKET— N.  IMagazine,  between  Xapoleon  avenue  and  Berlin. 

Lafayette  Square— Between  Camp  and  St.  Charles,  North  and  South. 

Lawrence  Square— Between  Magazine  and  Camp,  Napoleon  avenue  and  Berlin. 

LusiTANiAN  Portuguese  Benevolent  Society's  Hall— 203  Bayou  road. 

Lutheran  Hall— S.  Gravier,  between  Howard  and  Freret. 

Magazine  Market— Between  Camp  and  Magazine,  St.  Andrew  and  St.  Mary. 

Masonic  Hall— St.  Charles,  opposite  Commercial  place. 

Masonic  Temple— St.  Peter,  corner  of  St.  Claude. 

McCarthy  Square— Between  Burgundy  and  N.  Rampart,  Pauline  and  Jeanne. 

Minerva  Hall— 138  Clio. 

New  Opera  House— Bourbon,  corner  of  Toulouse. 

Ninth  Street  Market— Magazine,  between  Ninth  and  Harmony. 

Odd  Fellows'  Hall— Camp,  between  Lafayette  and  Poydras. 

Parish  Prison— Orleans,  between  N.  Liberty  and  Marais. 

Perfect  Union  Hall — N.  Eampart,  betwee^i  Dumaine  and  St.  Philip. 

Perseverance  Masonic  Hall— Dumaine,  corner  of  St.  Claude. 

Philharmonia  Hall— Patterson,  between  Olivier  and  Yerret,  5th  dist.  (Algiers). 

Pilie  Market— Poydras,  between  S.  Rampart  and  S.  Basin. 

PoNTALBA  Buildings— St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann,  between  Decatur  and  Chartres. 

Polar  Star  Hall— N.  Rampart,  corner  of  Kerlerec. 

Port  Market— N.  Peters,  between  Marigny  and  Elysian  Fields. 

Poydras  Market— Poydras,  between  Baronne  and  S.  Rampart. 

Second  Street  Market — Second,  comer  of  Dryades. 

SoRAPARU  Market— Soraparu,  between  Tchoupitoulas  and  Rosseau. 

St.  Anthony  Place— Royal,  between  St.  Ann  and  St.  Peter. 

St.  Bernard  Market— St.  Bernard  avenue,  comer  of  N.  Claiborne. 


GUIDE   TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


285 


St.  Charles  Theatre— St.  Charles,  between  Commercial  place  and  Poydras. 

St.  Maby's  Hall— Short,  corner  of  Hampson,  7th  dlst.  (Carrollton). 

St.  Stephen's  Hall— Napoleon  avenue,  corner  of  Chestnut. 

Stonewall  Jackson  Hall— 27  Elyslan  Fields. 

Temperance  Hall— 67  Josephine,  4th  dist. 

Tetjtonia  Hall— 23  Exchange  alley. 

Treme  Market— Orleans,  between  Marais  and  N.  Robertson. 

Union  Hall— 5  Commercial  place,  comer  of  Camp. 

United  States  Barracks— South  of  city  limits. 

United  States  Branch  Mint  and  SrB-TREAsuRY— Esplanade,  corner  of  N.  Peters. 

United  States  Custom-House— Canal,  between  Decatur  and  N.  Peters. 

University  Buildings— Common,  between  Baronne  and  Dryades. 

Washington  Market— Chartres,  corner  of  Louisa. 

Washington  Square— Between  Royal  and  Dauphine,  Frenchmen  and  Elyslan  Fields. 

MAYORS  OF  NEW  ORLEANS. 


The  following  is  a  list  of  the  Mayors  of  New  Orleans  who  have  occupied  the  office  since  the 
acquisition  of  Louisiana  by  the  United  States  in  the  year  1803.  Previously  the  office  correspond- 
ing to  that  of  mayor  was  held  under  appointment  by  the  French  government,  and  it  was  by  the 
first  Legislature  that  met  in  1804,  that  the  office  of  mayor  was  created. 

Pitot,  James,  — Mayor  from  10th  of  June,  1804  to  1806 
Watkins,  John from  180G  to  1807 


Mather,  Jos " 

Girod,  N " 

McCarthy,  Aug.,  " 

Kouffignac,  J., " 

Prieur,  Denis, " 

Genois,  C " 

Freret,  Wm  , " 

Montegut,  E., " 

Crossman,  A.  D " 

Lewis,  John  L  , " 

Waterman,  Chas.  M " 

Stith,  Gerard, " 

Monroe,  John  T 

Shepley,  G.  F.,  (acting  military),  May, 
Weitzel,  G.,  "  ''  July, 

French,  Jonas  H., '•  "  August, 

Deming,  H.  C,       "  "  Sept'ber, 

Miller,  Jas.  F.,       "  "  Nov'ber, 

Hoyt,  Stephen,      "  "  July, 

Quincy,  S.  M.,       "  "  May, 


1807  to  1812, 
1812  to  1815 
1815  to  1820, 
1820  to  1828 
1828  to  1838. 
1838  to  1840, 
1840  to  1844, 
1844tolS46. 
1846  to  1854 
1854  to  1856, 
1856  to  1858, 
1858  to  1860. 
1860  to  1862, 
1862 
1862 
1862 
1862 
1862 
1864, 
1865 


Kennedy,  H., from  1865  to  1866. 

Monroe.  J.  T "  1866  to  1866. 

Heath,  E.,  military  appointee,^ 1866. 

Conway,J.R "  186(Ud  1868. 

Flanders,  B.F "  1868  to  1872. 

Wiltz.L.  A "  1872tol874. 

Leeds.  C.  J., "  1874  to  1876. 


286  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Patton,  Isaac from  1876  to  1878. 

^ "     1878tol880. 

Shakspeare,  Jos., "     1880  to  1882. 

Behan,W.J., "     1882  to  1884. 

Guilotte,  J.  v., "     1^^- 

FOREIGN  CONSULS  AND  CONSULAR  AGENTS  AT  NEW  ORLEANS. 

Argentine  REPiTBLic-WaUace  Ogden,  consul,  179  Common. 

Austria-Hungary— Baron  Meysenbug,  consul,  71  Carondelet. 

Bolivia— Joseph  P.  Macheca,  consul,  7  S.  Front. 

Brazil— Allain  Eustis,  vice-consul,  53  N.  Rampart. 

Costa  Rica— J.  A.  Quintero,  consul,  66  Camp. 

DEN3IARK— H.  F.  Klumpp,  consul,  42  Union,  1st  dist. 

France— Paul  d'Abzac,  consul,  92  Royal. 

German  Empire— John  Kruttschnitt,  consul,  63  Carondelet. 

Great  Britain— A.  de  G.  de  Fonblanque,  consul,  13  Carondelet. 

Greece— N.  M.  Benachi,  consul,  44  Perdido. 

Guatemala— E.  Martinez,  consul,  256  Customhouse. 

Honduras— L.  M.  Avendano,  consul,  155  Common. 

Italy— A.  Greppi,  consul,  69  Bourbon. 

Mexico— J.  Francisco  de  Zamacona,  consul,  room  1,  28  Natchez. 

Netherlands— Adolph  Schreiber,  consul,  31  Perdido. 

Norway  and  SwEDEN-George  Gerdes,  vice-consul,  173  Common. 

Russia— J.  F.  Schroder,  consul,  62  Baronne. 

Spain— Jose  Sanchez-Bazan,  consul. 

SwiTZERLAND-X.  Weissenbach,  consul,  169  Gravier. 

United  States  of  CoLUMBL«.-Em.  Martinez,  consul,  256  Customhouse. 

VENBZUELA-Em.  Martinez,  consul,  256  Customhouse. 


GUIDE   TO   NEW   ORLEANS.  287 


CHAPTER  XXXIX.-ALGIERS-THE  DOCKYARDS. 

HOW   THE   NAME  AROSE— FROM   A  SUGAR   PLANTATION    TO   A   CITY— THE   DUVERJE    MAN- 
SION AND  MC  DONOGH'S  TOMB— THE  ALGIERS  DOCKYARDS  AND  THEIR  HISTORY. 

The  little  town  over  the  river,  foi-merly  known  as  Algiers,  now  incorporated  as  a  part  of 
the  city  of  New  Orleans  under  the  title  of  the  Fifth  district,  has  a  history,  and  an  interest- 
ing one. 

Many  are  the  queries  as  to  when,  why  and  by  whom  the  peculiar  name  came  to  be  given  to 
the  little  burg.  All  sorts  of  answers  and  explanations  have  been  offered,  some  even  asserting 
that  Lafitte  and  his  pirate  followers,  having,  in  the  very  teeth  of  the  authorities,  made  the  town 
an  occassional  rendezvous,  it  was  likened  to  the  whilom  resort  of  pirates  and  corsairs  on  the 
Afncan  coast  of  the  Mediterranean,  and,  accordingly,  dubbed  Algiers.  However  plausible  this 
story  may  appear,  no  authenticity  is  attached  to  it,  but  it  has  been  definitely  settled  that  the 
baptism  was  as  novel  as  the  name. 

It  appears  that  somewhat  over  fifty  years  ago  there  was  in  the  employ  of  a  worthy  and 
venerable  townsman.  Captain  Peter  Marcy,  at  that  time  largely  interested  in  shipyards  and 
docks,  a  young  carpenter  known  to  every  one  simply  by  his  Christian  name  of  Philip  OriginaUy 
from  New  York,  he  was  usually  a  light-hearted,  jolly,  good-natured  fellow,  fonder  of  his  cups 
than  of  his  tools.  Philip  would  occassionally  take  "a  drop  too  much,"  get  on  "a  tear  "  and 
have  a  good  time  generally.  While  on  one  of  these  occasional  sprees,  after  returning  from  the 
city  one  evening  in  a  very  alcoholic,  irascible,  combative  mood,  "he  began  by  inveighing 
agamst  the  village  and  its  people,  and  wound  up  by  applying  the  epithet  of  Algerines  to  the 
Jatter,  intimating  that  they  were  no  better  than  the  piratical  inhabitants  of  the  African 
Algiers. 

From  that  day  to  this  the  appellation  has  clung  with  the  tenacity  of  Algiers  mud  and  the 
place  has  been  popularly  known  by  its  outlandish  name.  Not  even  the  recent  incorporation 
and  legal  change  of  name  was  sufficiently  effective  to  obliterate  the  old  name,  and  it  will  prob- 
ably be  called  Algiers  for  generations  to  come.  Poor  Philip  was  one  of  the  many  victims  of 
the  first  of  the  two  terribly  destructive  cholera  epidemics  of  1832,  said  to  have  been  brou'^ht 
down  from  up  the  river  on  the  steamboat  "Constitution."  He  died  unmourned  and  unsung 
but  hves  in  history  as  the  Father  of  Algiers  ! 

The  corporate  limits  of  Algiers,  as  the  Fifth  district  of  New  Orieans,  extend  lengthwise 
from  McDonoghville,  now  Gouldsboro,  at  the  upper  line  of  Orieans  parish,  right  bank,  inclusive 
of  half  of  the  village,  down  to  the  lower  limit  of  the  parish,  including  the  suburb  of  Tunisburg 
or  Leesburg,  a  distance  of  about  twelve  miles,  and  from  the  river  back  to  the  swamp,  a  distance 
of  about  three  miles.    The  population  is  computed  to  be  ab«ut  10,000  inhabitants. 

The  site  of  Algiers  was  originally  that  of  the  Duverje  sugar  plantation,  and  in  the  infantile 
years  of  the  settlement  it  was  known  as  Bourg  Duverje  or  Duverjeville.  The  plantation 
extended  from  the  point  at  which  Verret  street  is  now  located  to  the  present  site  of  McDonogh- 
ville, a  distance  of  14  arpents  front  on  the  river.  The  first  titles  show  that  this  tract  of  land 
was  originally  granted  to  one  Louis  Borepo,  on  February  3,  1770,  by  the  Spanish  government 
under  the  regime  of  the  celebrated  Celtic  Spaniard,  Don  Alexander  O'Reilly.  On  December  12 
of  the  same  year  Borepo  sold  the  entire  grant  to  one  Jacques  Rixner,  who,  on  October  31,  1777" 
again  sold  it  to  one  P.  Burgaud.  The  latter  left  it  by  will,  dated  February  6,  1786,  to  one  Martial 
Lebeuf.  On  August  0,  1805,  the  plantation  was  purchased  from  Lebeuf  for  $18,000  by  Barthelemi 
Duverje,  the  grandrather  of  the  brothers  Numa  and  Charles  Olivier,  who  are  the  present  heads 
of  the  family.    On  the  14th  of  the  same  month  in  which  the  final  purchase  was  made,  Duverje 


288  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK.  . 

sold  the  upper  four  arpents  front,  adjoining  the  site  of  McDonoghville,  to  one  Toussaint' 
Mossy. 

The  land  comprised  between  what  is  now  Verret  and  Vallette  streets  was  the  property  of  a 
Mme.  Gosselin,  who,  about  the  year  1834,  sold  the  upper  half,  extending  from  Yerret  to  Oliviei 
streets,  to  Mr.  J.  B.  Olivier,  son-in-law  of  Mr.  Duverje  and  father  of  Messrs.  Numa  and  Charles. 
The  lower  half,  from  Olivia  to  Gosselin  (now  Vallette)  street,  was  purchased  from  Mme.  Gosselin. 
in  the  same  year,  by  a  company  of  capitalists.  Through  courtesy  to  Mr.  Francois  Vallette 
one  of  these  capitalists,  the  name  of  Gosselin  street  was  changed  to  that  of  Vallette. 

All  of  the  section  from  Vallette  street  down  to  the  Algiers  slaughter-house  was  then  a  sugai 
plantation,  owned  by  the  widow  of  Barthelemi  Duverje  and  M.  Furcy  Verret.  Upon  the  deatt 
of  Mme.  Duverje  the  property  was  divided,  Mr.  Verret  taking  the  central  portion  and  the  heir; 
receiving  the  upper  and  lower  ends.  The  heirs  afterward  sold  a  small  section  of  the  uppei 
portion,  including  the  site  of  the  present  Vallette  dry-dock  yard,  to  Messrs.  Frangois  VaUettt 
and  Mark  Thomas,  and,  a  short  while  after,  an  adjoining  section,  about  400  feet  front,  extending 
back  about  a  mile,  to  the  Belleville  Iron  Works  Company,  J.  P.  Whitney,  president,  for  $25,000 
one-half  in  company's  stock.  The  name  of  BelleviUe  was  given  to  the  suburb.  Of  the  portioi 
of  the  plantation  owned  by  Mr.  Verret  the  space  from  the  lower  line  of  the  Belleville  Iroi 
Works  property  to  where  the  Morgan  Raikoad  depot  now  stands  was  sold  by  him  for  SSO.OOO  t< 
the  company  of  capitalists  above  mentioned,  who  erected  warehouses  along  the  entire  rive 
front,  principally  for  the  storage  of  salt.  This  suburb  was  called  Brooklyn,  and  the  warehouse 
known  as  the  Brooklyn  warehouses,  one  of  which  is  still  standing,  in  comparatively  good  pre 
servation,  immediately  above  the  Morgan  ferry  landing. 

Next  to  the  Brooklyn  purchase,  about  400  feet  frontage  of  the  land  was  purchased  from  Mr 
Verret  by  the  Opelousas  EaUroad  Company,  for  $25,000,  one-half  in  shares  of  the  company.  0 
the  400  feet  remaining  of  the  Verret  portion,  the  entire  river  front,  extending  back  to  the  publi' 
road,  was  sold  by  his  heirs  to  the  Morgan  Company  for  $20,000,  upon  whixjh  have  since  beei 
erected  the  steamship  wharves  and  cotton-press  of  the  company. 

The  Verret  Canal  was  sold  for  $20,000  to  the  same  company  of  capitalists  who  purchased  th 
Gosselin  and  Brooklyn  tracts.  The  canal,  now  dry  and  long  disused,  had  been  excavated  by  Mi 
Verret  for  the  purpose  of  draining  the  sugar  plantation  jointly  owned  by  him  and  Mme.  Duverje 
It  was  connected  with  the  Mississippi  river  by  a  flood  gate  in  the  levee  long  since  closed. 

Next  to  the  Verret  Canal  was  the  portion,  one  arpent  front,  of  Mrs.  Franklin  Wharton,  nt 
Duverje,  who  also  sold  it  to  the  purchasers  of  the  Verret  Canal  for  $20,000.  Next  was  th 
residence  and  grounds,  one  arpent  front,  of  Mme.  Barthelemi  Duverje,  sold  at  the  same  time  fo 
$8  000  to  Mme.  Mace,  a  well-known  fashionable  modiste  of  the  olden  time.  Her  richly  f urnishe  : 
establishment  was  located  at  the  corner  of  Chartres  and  Customhouse  streets,  and  she  wa 
consideted  the  Mme-  Olympe  of  those  days,  the  latter  having  been  a  graduate  of  Mme.  Mace- 
establishment,  ^     .  .        XT- 

Ri"ht  below  the  Verret  estate  was  the  property  of  Mr.  J.  B.  Olmer,  occupymg  three  an 
two-thirds  arpents  frontage  by  a  depth  of  35  arpents.  Fronting  on  the  pubUc  road  was  Mi 
Olivier's  fine  summer  residence,  his  family  spending  the  winters  at  his  mansion  on  Esplanad 
street  and  the  summers  in  Algiers.  At  the  breaking  out  of  the  war  the  Algiers  mansion  wa. 
taken  possession  of  by  the  Federal  government  and  used  as  a  contraband  or  negro  hosplta 
The  house  had  been  completely  furnished  with  all  comforts  and  conveniences,  and  when  th 
hospital  was  discontinued  and  the  property  returned  to  the  owner,  it  was  found  that  ever: 
thing  had  been  taken  away  and  the  grounds  and  out-houses  completely  ruined.  Not  even 
Ifence  was  left  and  the  woods  in  the  rear  of  the  estate  had  been  burnt  down.  The  land  m  th 
rear  of  the  residence  had  been  used  as  a  burying  ground,  and  when  the  remains  were  tranferre 
to  Chalmette  after  the  war,  it  was  found  that  1,500  negro  soldiers  had  been  buried  there. 

The  large  imposing  brick  buUding  on  Villere,  between  Seguin  and  Barthelemy  streets, 
short  distance  from  the  Canal  street  ferry  landmg,  and  now  used  as  the  Court  House  and  eight 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  289 

precinct  police  station,  was  buUt  in  1812  by  Mr.  Barthelemi  Duverje,  the  founder  of  Algiers,  and 
occupied  as  a  residence  until  his  death  in  1820.  His  widow,  some  yearb  afterward  removed  to 
the  residence  below  Verret's  Canal,  afterward  sold  to  Mme.  Mace.  The  mansion  was  built  vnth 
the  strength  of  a  fortress,  and  \nn  last  for  centuries.  From  Algiers,  th.e  entire  distance  down 
to  Tunisburg  is  lined  with  beautiful  residences,  delightfully  situated,  amid  orange  and  peach 
orchards,  flowers  and  shrubbery. 

Although  the  highest  pomt  along  the  river  south  of  Baton  Rouge— this  is  so  of  the  land  from 
the  Planter's  Oil  Works  to  the  Third  District  Levee— Algiers  has  been  badly  flooded  at  times, 
particularly  by  the  Bell  crevasse  of  1856.  and  the  Davis  crevasse  of  1884,  which  submerged  the 
entire  rear  portion  of  town  and  compelled  the  building  of  a  protection  levee  several  squares 
back  from  the  river  to  prevent  the  front  portion  being  flooded. 

Near  the  line  of  Jefferson  parish  is  an  historical  building,  whose  site  has  rarely  been  visited 
even  by  New  Orleans  people. 

We  refer  to  the  residence  of  the  late  John  McDonogh,  wherein  millions  of  dollars  were 
saved  and  accumulated  by  that  eccentric,  but  strangely  large-hearted  old  miser.  He  was  a 
miser,  but  his  will  proved  him  to  have  been  a  man  of  wide  philanthropic  views,  which  he  left 
to  others  to  execute  after  his  death. 

The  old  McDonogh  house  was  submerged  by  an  inundation  on  the  twenty-third  of  December, 
1861.  The  cause  of  the  crevasse  was,  that  a  few  days  previous,  the  house,  used  as  a  powder 
magazine  by  the  Confederate  troops,  was  shaken  to  its  very  foundations  by  an  explosion, 
brought  about  in  some  mysterious  way.  The  concussion  shook  the  building  terribly  and 
weakened  the  levee  in  front  of  it. 

In  this  antiquated  building,  on  the  29th  of  December,  1838,  was  written  that  famous  will  of 
John  McDonogh.the  meaning  of  which  all  the  lawyers  and  courts  of  Louisiana  failed  to  understand. 
The  will  had  to  be  sent  to  the  "Cour  de  Cassation"  at  Paris  to  be  interpreted.  Coin-Delisle, 
Delangly  Giraud,  Morcade,  and  other  famous  French  jurists,  wrestled  with  that  will,  and  finally 
made  a  report  on  it  to  the  "Cour  de  Cassation."  The  funds  were  eventually  divided  between 
Baltimore  and  New  Orleans,  and  the  manner  in  which  the  interest  on  the  money  was  adminis- 
tered can  now  be  seen  in  the  half-score  of  magnificent  schoolhouses  built  with  the  McDonogh  fund. 

Within  a  half  mile  from  the  McDonogh  mansion  is  the  tomb  of  McDonogh.  Therein  his  body 
lay  for  some  time,  until  its  removal  to  Baltimore.  lie  died  on  the  29th  of  October,  1850,  leaving 
the  most  valuable  succession  ever  administered  in  the  State  of  Louisiana.  His  tomb 'is  inscribed 
all  over  with  maxims,  especially  Franklin's  maxims,  which  can  still  be  deciphered.  One  of 
McDonogh's  requests  in  his  will  was  that  every  year  children  should  come  to  scatter  flowers  and 
hang  garlands  over  his  grave.  Has  this  simple  provision  been  carried  out  by  those  who  have 
handled  his  ducats  ?  No  ;  few  know  where  McDonogh's  tomb  is,  or  that  his  remains  have  been 
carried  to  Baltimore.  But  his  tomb  is  still  there,  in  Algiers,  and  surely  some  one  should  see  that 
annually  the  children,  those  for  whom  McDonogh  has  done  so  much,  should  scatter  flowers  and 
hang  garlands  over  his  grave. 

One  mile  below  Algiers  is  a  sugar-house  erected  by  the  Spaniards  in  the  time  of  O'ReiUy.  It 
is  still  there,  on  the  Camus  plantation,  and  its  solidity,  massiveness  and  durability  can  well  be 
compared  to  the  pyramids  of  Egypt, 

About  one  mile  brlow,  on  the  Camus  place,  is  the  hamlet  of  Tunisburg,  and  there  stands  an 
old-fashioned  mansioii,  surrounded  by  a  grove  of  cedar  trees,  a  mansion  wherein  Jefferson 
Davis  lived  for  a  time.  He  bought  the  place  from  his  father-in-law,  William  B.  Howell,  Esq., 
then  an  officer  in  the  Custom  House,  on  the  3d  of  January,  1853.  This  property  was  seized  by 
the  United  States]  authorities  and  sold  under  the  Confiscation  Act,  by  Cuthbert  Bullitt,  then 
United  States  marshal,  in  May,  1865.  It  was  bought  by  Jos.  Cazanbou  for  a  nominal  sum.  The 
sale  only  annulled  the  life  interest  of  Jefferson  Davis  in  the  property,  but  did  not  touch  his 
heirs;  therefore,  when  later,  Cazanbon,  for  a  consideration,  obtained  a  title  of  "quitclaim" 
from  Jefferson  Davis,  he  acted  wisely  and  intelligently. 

4 


290  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

The  ship-yards  and  dry-docks  of  Alp:iers  have  always  constituted  its  chief  industries,  and 
at  least  three-fourths  of  the  population  depend  upon  them  for  their  daily  bread.  The  first 
ship-yard,  with  ways,  was  established,  in  1819,  by  Andre  Seguin,  a  native  of  Havre,  France,  on 
the  bend  of  the  river,  nearly  opposite  the  French  Market,  and  at  the  head  of  the  street  since 
named  after  him.  The  ground  was  purchased  from  the  heirs  of  Barthelemi  Duverje,  and  was 
the  first  piece  of  property  sold  by  them.  The  Seguin  ship-yard  was  afterward  operated  by 
Francois  Yallette  as  a  ship  and  spar-yard.  This  was  about  the  year  1837.  After  passing  out  oJ 
his  hands  it  was  occupied  for  a  long  time  by  James  Bass  as  a  saw-mill.  At  the  close  of  the 
war  Messrs.  Yail  &  Follette  operated  the  yard,  and  erected  steam  marine  ways,  the  ruins  oJ 
which  still  remain.  The  marine  ways  passed  into  the  hands  of  Olsen  &  Lawson,  and  from  them 
to  Cothrell,  Brady  &  McLellan.  Since  they  have  given  up  possession  the  site  has  been  onlj 
occasionally  used  as  a  ship-yard. 

Several  attempts  have  been  made  to  establish  a  navy-yard  in  Algiers.  It  is  not  generally 
known;  but  such  is  the  actual  fact  that  the  site  for  a  yard  has  long  since  been  located  am 
purchased  by  the  United  States  Government.  In  1856  a  resolution  was  presented  in  CongreS) 
asking  for  an  appropriation  to  establish  a  navy-yard  and  dry-docks  in  Algiers.  The  appro 
priation  was  granted  and,  in  the  same  year,  a  tract  of  land,  about  half  a  mile  below  the  presen 
Morgan  depot,  with  a  front  of  two  arpents  and  a  depth  of  fifteen  arpents,  was  purchased  fron 
Mr.  Bienaime  Dupeire.  But  the  ground  has  never  been  used  for  its  original  purpose,  and  iti 
now  occupied  by  negroes,  who,  in  consideration  of  a  small  rental,  use  it  for  the  raising  o 
vegetables  for  market. 

Toward  the  end  of  the  war  seven  or  eight  United  States  monitors  were  moored  in  front  o 
this  property  and  lay  there  until  about  six  or  seven  years  ago,  when  the  guns,  ammunition 
etc.,  were  taken  to  the  Pensacola  navy -yard,  and  the  hulls  and  machinery  sold  at  publi- 
auction.  Among  these  hulls,  those  of  the  "Kickapoo,"  "Cherokee  "  and  " Winnebago "  wer 
used  by  their  purchasers  as  hulls  for  the  steamboats  "Henry  Frank,"  "Charles  P.  Chouteau' 
and  "Carondelet." 

The  first  dry  dock  in  Algiers  was  the  Paducah  dock,  so  called  because  it  was  built  a 
Paducah,  Ky.,  in  1837  or  1838,  and  brought  to  Algiers  in  the  same  year.  It  was  owned  by  Messrs 
T\Iatthews,  Gregory,  Burns,  Brown,  Eichardson  and  others,  constituting  the  New  Orleans  Float 
ing  Dry-Dock  Company,  with  a  capital  of  $200,000.  The  dock  was  very  small,  and  intended  fo 
steamboats  only. 

Toward  the  latter  part  of  1839,  Messrs.  Bailey  &  Marcy  constructed  at  Pearlington,  on  Peai 
river.  Miss.,  the  second  dock  brought  to  Algiers,  and  the  first  that  could  accomodate  steamship 
as  well  as  steamboats.  The  dock  was  towed  to  the  mouth  of  the  Mississippi,  and  up  the  river  t 
Algiers.  It  was  called  the  Suffolk  dock,  because  the  first  ship  taken  in  bore  that  name.  I 
was  considerably  larger  than  the  Paducah  dock.  The  two  docks  were  moored  at  the  bend  o 
the  river,  near  Seguin's  ship-yard.  In  1850  Mr.  Bailey  sold  out  his  interest  to  Capt.  Salter,  a. 
old  resident,  the  firm  becoming  Marcy  &  Salter.  Capt.  Salter  had  previously  established  a  shij 
yard  near  Seguin's  and  retired  from  business.  Messrs.  Hyde  &  Mackie,  having  bought  out  th 
interest  of  Capt.  Marcy  in  1852,  the  Suffolk  dock  was  towed  up  to  Gretna,  where  the  busines 
was  carried  on  for  awhile.  Capt.  Marcy  had,  in  1842,  built  and  launched,  on  the  batture  a 
the  point,  the  first  dock  ever  constructed  in  Algiers.  The  Marcy  dock  was  larger  than  eithe 
the  Paducah  or  Suffolk  dock,  the  yard  having  600  feet  front  on  Patterson  street. 

The  tract  of  land  called  Belleville,  where  the  Belleville  Iron-Works  were  afterward  located 
was  originally  bought,  in  the  early  part  of  1846,  by  the  Louisiana  Dry-Dock  Company,  to  looat 
the  first  Louisiana  dry-dock. 

The  Louisiana  dock  >so.  1  was  the  largest  constructed  before  the  war,  and  was  accidental! 
sunk  in  1849.  The  wreck  still  lies  close  in  to  shore  just  below  the  present  Vallette  dry-docj 
yard.  It  was  what  was  called  a  balance  dock,  after  a  New  York  patent.  In  1848  and  1852  th 
company  built  the  Louisiana  docks  Nos.  2  and  3,  on  the  same  patent.    These  were  smaller  thai 


GUIDE    TO    XEW    ORLEANS.  291 

;he  parent  dock,  and  were  sunk  during  the  war  on  the  approach  of  the  Federal  fleet  in  1861, 
liouisiana  No.  3  carrying  down  with  her  the  frame  of  a  1,000-ton  ship  in  course  of  construction. 

The  Crescent  dry-dock,  another  large  dock,  built  in  1853  for  the  Crescent  Dry-Dock  Company, 
jvas  among  those  sunk  during  the  war.  It  was  at  this  dock,  in  the  spring  of  1861,  that  the  merchant 
;teamer  "Havana,"  running  between  thisport  and  the  island  ofCub2,was  altered  into  the  famous 
confederate  cruiser  "  Sumter,"  for  the  Southern  naval  hero,  Admiral  Raphael  Serames,  who 
!ommanded  her  so  bravely  and  brilliantly.  About  the  same  time  Messrs.  John  Hughes  &  Co. 
iltered  the  steamer  Miramon  into  the  Confederate  gunboat  "McRae."  In  the  previous  summer 
hey  had  built  the  famous  Confederate  ram  "Manassas,"  which  successfully  ran  the  blockade  of 
he  Federal  vessels,  several  of  them  fleeing  before  the  strange-looking  cigar-shaped  vessel,  with 
ill  sail  and  a  full  head  of  steam  far  out  into  the  Gulf. 

The  Gulf  Line  dock,  a  small  one  of  200  feet  in  length  over  all,  was  built  in  1857,  and  managed 
)y  them  for  the  Gulf  Line  Dock  Company.  The  management  afterward  passed  Jnto  the  hands 
)f  Messrs.  FoUette,  Yallette  &  Gerard.  At  Gretna,  in  the  following  year,  Mr.  John  F.  Follette, 
enior  member  of  the  firm,  superintended  the  buUding  of  the  largest  dock  ever  constructed  in 
.lOuisiana.  It  was  built  for  a  dock  company  in  Havana,  and  was  300  feet  long  over  all,  90  feet 
vide  in  the  clear,  18  feet  draught,  14  feet  depth  between  working  floor  and  the  bottom,  and  cost 
5450,000.  The  dock  was  taken  to  Havana,  where  it  has  been  in  continuous  use  ever  since,  and 
aid  to  be  in  almost  as  sound  condition  as  when  built. 

At  the  beginning  of  the  war  the  Confederate  government  purchased  the  Gulf  Line  dock  and 
.nother  small  dock  called  the  Atlantic,  to  be  converted  into  floating  batteries.  The  Gulf  Line 
vas  fitted  up  for  the  purpose  by  Mr.  Octave  Yallette,  one  of  her  former  owners,  and  the  Atlantic 
•y  her  former  owner,  James  Martin.  Another  dock  in  existence  before  the  war  was  the 
'ehcan,  a  large  sectional  dock  ;  it  was  sunk  at  the  commencement  of  the  war. 

The  approach  of  the  Federal  fleet  in  the  latter  part  of  April,  1862,  caused  intense  excitement 
,mong  all  classes  of  people  throughout  the  city  and  suburbs.  About  the  very  first  thing  sug- 
■ested  by  over-zealous  patriots  was  the  destruction  of  the  dry  docks  of  Algiers,  so  that  the 
''ederal  fleet  should  be  deprived  of  the  advantages  offered  by  them.  The  sequel,  however, 
bowed  that  this  line  of  policy  was  suicidal  in  the  extreme,  superinducing  widespread  misery 
.mong  the  large  numbers  of  poor  people  directly  interested  in  the  maintenance  of  the  industry. 
Lt  the  time  there  were  in  operation  four  large  docks,  the  Louisiana  No.  3,  the  Crescent,  the 
'elican  and  the  New  Orleans.  At  about  9  o'clock  on  the  night  of  April  23,  1862.  the  approach  of 
he  Federal  fleet  having  been  announced  during  the  day,  a  committee  of  citizens  composed  of 
lessrs.  James  Martin,  James  T.  Anderson  and  T.  G.  Mackie,  owners  and  managers  of  dry  docks; 
bhn  Mahoney,  the  well-known  yacht-builder— all  residents  of  Algiers,  and  the  secretary  of  the 
-'onfederate  naval  commander  at  this  port,  acting  under  orders  of  Gen.  Lovell,  commanding  the 
.epartment,  notified  the  managers  of  the  docks  that  they  had  been  ordered  to  sink  the  docks  at 
nee.  In  spite  of  the  vigorous  protest  of  the  managers  of  the  Louisiana  docks,  and  other 
■arties,  the  committee,  beginning  with  Louisiana  dock  No.  3,  lying  furthest  down  the  river, 
ank  them  in  succession  as  they  proceeded  up  the  stream.  On  the  day  after  the  arrival  of  the 
'ederal  fleet  the  managers  of  the  Louisiana  and  Crescent  docks  made  an  effort  to  raise  them, 
nd  the  Crescent  dock  had  very  nearly  been  raised,  when  the  managers  were  quietly  informed 
hat  if  they  valued  their  lives  they  had  better  desist— and  they  did.  Several  attempts  have  since 
»een  made  to  remove  the  wrecks,  which  still  lie  beneath  the  water  along  the  shore  all  the  way 
rom  below  the  Third  district  ferry  landing  to  the  vicinity  of  the  Planter's  Oil  Works.  An 
-ttempt  was  made  to  blow  them  up,  but  the  concussions  on  shore  were  so  great  that  it  had  to  be 
Iven  up. 

Toward  the  end  of  the  war  a  dock,  brought  to  Algiers  from  up  river,  was  located  in  the 
icinity  of  the  Belleville  Iron  Works,  now  the  Planters'  Oil  Works.  It  was  called  the  Southern 
lock,  and  about  1867  was  accidentally  sunk.  Immediately  after  the  war  Mr.  William  Kelke 
jonstructed  the  Star  dock  out  of  the  hull  of  an  old  steamboat,  called  the   "Illinois,"  plying 


292  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

between  St.  Louis  and  New  Orleans.  The  Star  was  a  small  dock,  intended  only  for  small  vessels 
and  was  used  for  a  lonff  while  as  a  pontoon  at  the  head  of  Canal  street. 

Soon  after  the  building  of  the  Star  dock,  Mr.  Thomas  G.  Mackio  constructed  what  isknowr 
as  the  Ocean  dry-dock,  from  a  hull  bought  in  the  West.  It  was  then  located  at  Ihi  head  o 
Barthelemi  street,  near  the  Second  district  ferry  landing  and  above  the  present  site  of  th( 
Marine  dry-dock,  but  has  since  been  removed  to  a  point  immediately  above  the  Third  distric 
ferry  landing,  between  Olivier  and  Yerret  streets. 

The  next  oldest  dock  is  the  Good  Intent  dry-dock,  located  one  square  above  the  Cana 
street  ferry  landing.  It  was  built  near  Madisonville,  on  the  Tchefunecta  river,  in  1S65,  by  Juliu 
Lang,  one  of  the  original  incorporators  of  the  Good  Intent  Dry-Dock  Company,  and  complete, 
in  May,  1866.    The  dock  is  now  owned  and  operated  jointly  by  the  Red  River  and  Coast  lines 

Next  in  chronological  succession  comes  the  largest  dock  on  the  right  bank,  the  Vallette  dr; 
dock.    In  1866  biie  Yalette  dry-dock  company  was  organized,  with  a  capital  stock  of  $200,000. 

The  Marine  dry-dock,  situated  at  the  head  of  Lavergne  street  was  built  in  1871,  at  a  cost  o 
about  $75,000,  for  the  Marine  Dry-Dock  Company. 

The  last  dock  constructed  in  Algiers  was  the  Louisiana  dry-dock,  built  in  1872.  This  doc 
was  one  of  the  finest  and  most  impori;ant  in  its  day,  all  the  work  of  the  United  States  Lighi 
house  and  Engineers  departments  having  been  done  there.  The  dock  was  a  sectional  om 
arranged  in  such  a  way  that  two  sections  could  be  submerged,  while  the  other  two  were  ke] 
afloat!  In  April,  1881,  the  dock  was  accidentally  sunk,  and  the  yards  are  now  occupied  by  th 
Ocean  dry-dock. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEA.VS.  293 


CHAPTER  XL. -THE  SCENES  OF  CABLE'S   ROMANCES. 

[ADAME    JOHN'S    LEGACY-'SIEUR   GEORGE's-MADAME    DELPHINE'S-CAFE   DES   EXILES- 

A    CREOLE   COTTAGE. 

When  I  first  viewed  New  Orleans  from  the  deck  of  the  ^eat  steamboat  that  had  carried  me 

on^fM^''^   T'''""^'^'V"'"'''''P^^^"^  orange-scented  air  of  the  South,  my  impr^s! 

ons  of  the  cty,  drowsm^  under  the  violet  and  .old  of  a  November  morning,  were  oddly  con- 

?r.r,^  "^'""T-?  °'    '''^"■'•^  Poquelin."    That  strange  little  tale  had  a;peared  prevUisly 

.  the  Century;  and  its  exotic  picturesqueness  had  considerably  influenced  mv  anticipations  of 

:Ll"?/ht^r  7    "r/  ""Tr^  "^  '^  ^^^^"^^  ^^^^^^^^^-^  peculiar  and  s^mi     o'p  ca 

H   f      ?I"    ^^^^,^^^°^^  I  had  left  the  steamboat  my  imagination  had  already  flown 

.yond   he  wilderness  of  cotton-bales,  the  sierra-shaped  roofs  of  the  sugar-sheds  the  mass^e 

Terst  of'sorth-         ^^^^tr'""''  '?  "^"'^^  ^'"  ''^"^  ^^  ^^^  «^^  slavl-trader's'  man'on  or 
;d  tn  Htl 'r'   t'"!? /'T^^^'"'^  It -"built  of  heavy  cypress,  lifted  up  on  pillars,  grim,  solid, 
lunt  ,.,'««     t         '^'^  '^"^^'^  °^^  ''"^^'  '"^  ^^^  ^^^^^  a«'^r  I  had  learned  tha 
tZri'^fL  I  T^  ""r  ^  ^'"^^  ^^'^^"^-^  '^^^^^'  ^^^"^^d  not  by  villas  but  by  ware- 

)uses  ;  that  the  river  had  receded  from  it  considerably  since  the  period  of  the  story  •  and  that 
here  marsh  lands  used  to  swelter  under  the  sun.  pavements  of  block-stone  had  been  laid 
idunng  as  Roman  causeways,  though  they  will  tremble  a  little  under  the  passing  of  cotton: 
>ats.  A  one  time.  I  tried  o  connect  the  narrative  with  a  peculiar  residence  near  the  Bayou 
nfrt  HI  ^  "^  T"'"'"''  ^'^^  ^^'^  verandas,  surrounded  by  shrubbery  which  had  become 
nta  tic  by  long  neglect.  Indeed,  there  are  several  old  houses  in  the  more  ancient  quarteis^? 
■t  Zl  ^^:t  ^^^^*  bave  served  as  models  for  the  description  of  "  Jean-ah  Poquelin's  "  d  weTung 
It  none  o  them  IS  situated  m  his  original  neighborhood-old  plantation  homes  whose  broad 
Qds  have  long  since  been  cut  up  and  devoured  by  the  growing  streets.  In  reconstructing  the 
^w  Orleans  of  1810  Mr.  Cable  might  have  selected  any  of  these  to  draw  from,  and  I  ma7have 
und  his  model  without  knowing  it.  Not.  however,  until  the  Century  appear;d,  with  Us  cur! 
as  article  upon  the  "  Great  South  Gate,"  did  I  learn  that  in  the  early  years  of  thl  nineteenth 
nturysuch  a  house  existed  precisely  in  the  location  described  by  Mr.  Cable.    Reade^^^ 

'  LS''"   P  ."l^''"    ^^^'^  ^"^'  ^^^"    '^P'-^^^^^  hy  the  description  therein    gfven 

Doctor     Gravier's  home,  upon  the  bank  of  the  long-vanished  Poydras  canal-a  picture  o^ 

tt'voTtW  ".^-"^n''.'^!''  testimony  of  early  municipal  c:.ronicles  ;  and  Te  true 
^tory  of  that  eccentric  Doctor  "  Gravier  no  doubt  inspired  the  creator  of  "  Jean-ah  Poquelin  '^ 
1  ancient  cty  map  informs  us  that  the  deserted  indigo  fields,  with  tlieir  wrigglint  a^i^us 
pulation  extended  a  few  blocks  north  of  the  present  Charity  hospital ;  and  ^hat"  Te  planta 
^nhcmse  Itself  must  have  stool  near  the  juncture  of  Poydras  and  Freret  streets-a  region  now 
ry  closely  built  and  very  thickly  peopled. 

2^X^^"l  tw';".^"'"  °'  Mr.  Cable's  description  should  have  convinced  the  readers  of  "  Old 
eo  e  Days  '  that  the  scenes^of  his  stories  are  in  no  sense  fanciful ;  and  the  strict  perfection  of 
^Creolearcbitecture  is  readily  recognized  by  all  who  have  resided  in  New  Odeans  Each 
ected  27;Tr"^  ^T'"""'  "'  Places-veritable  pastels-was  painted  after  some  carefu  ly 
ilTfnri  1.  ''''^''''^?^'°-^P"^^''"^^'^^°'  typifying  fashions  of  building  which  pre- 
.ledm  colonial  days.  Greatly  as  the  city  has  changed  since  the  eras  in  which  Mr  CaMel 
Ties  are  laid,  the  old  Creole  quarter  still  contains  antiquities  enough  to  enable  the  a^M  to 

Zlorl:!^'"'  'r  T^'f  •  ^^^^^^^  ^^^^^  °^^^°-'  -uUlcolored  and  ^1:;  S^^^^ 
eets  one  may  still  wander  at  random  with  the  certainty  of  encountering  eccentric  faoad^^ 
d  suggestive  Latin  appellations  at  every  turn ;  and  the  author  of  "Madame  DelpWne ''mS 


294  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

have  made  many  a  pilgrimage  into  the  quaint  district,  to  study  the  wrinkled  faces  of  thehonses 
or  perhaps  to  read  the  queer  names  upon  the  signs— as  Balzac  loved  to  do  in  old-fashioned  Paris 
Exceptionally  rich  in  curiosities  is  the  Rue  Boyale,  and  it  best  represents,  no  doubt,  the  genera 
physiognomy  of  the  colonial  city.  It  appears  to  be  Mr.  Cable's  favorite  street,  as  there  are  lev 
of  his  stories  which  do  not  contain  references  to  it ;  even  the  scenery  of  incidents  laid  elsewher 
has  occasionally  been  borrowed  from  that  "  region  of  architectural  decrepitude,"  which  is  ye 
peopled  by  an  "ancient  and  foreign-seeming  domestic  life."  For  Louisiana  dreamers,  M] 
Cable  has  peopled  it  also  with  many  delightful  phantoms;  and  the  ghosts  of  Madame  Delicieust 
of  Delphine  Carraze,  of  'Sieur  George,  will  surely  continue  to  haunt  it  until  of  all  the  dear  ol( 
buildings  there  shall  not  be  left  a  stone  upon  a  stone. 

From  the  corner  of  Canal  street  at  Royal— ever  perfumed  by  the  baskets  of  the  flows 
sellers-to  the  junction  of  Eoyal  with  Bienville,  one  observes  with  regret  numerous  evidenci 
of  modernization.  American  life  is  invading  the  thoroughfare-uprearing  concert-halls,  wil 
insufferably  pompous  names,  multiplying  flashy  saloons  and  cheap  restaurants,  cigar-stor- 
and  oyster-rooms.  Gambling  indeed  survives,  but  only  through  metamorphosis  —it  is  ce 
tainly  not  of  that  aristocratic  kind  wherein  Colonel  De  Charleu,  owner  of  "  Belles  Demoisell. 
Plantation,"  could  have  been  wont  to  indulge.  Already  a  line  of  electric  lights  mocks  tl 
rusty  superannuation  of  those  long  disused  wrought-iron  lamp  frames  set  into  the  walls 
various  Creole  buildings.  But  from  the  corner  of  Conti  street-where  Jules  St.  Ange  idled  oi 
summer  morning  "some  seventy  years  ago"-i?w6  i?oya/6  begins  to  display  a  picturesquene 
almost  unadulterated  by  innovation,  and  opens  a  perspective  of  roof  lines  astonishmgly  in 
gular  that  jag  and  cut  into  the  blue  strip  of  intervening  sky  at  every  conceivable  angle,  wi 
gables  cave's,  dormers,  triangular  peaks  of  slate,  projecting  corners  of  balconies  or  verandas 
overtopping  or  jutting  out  from  houses  of  every  imaginable  tint :  canary,  chocolate,  slate-bit 
speckled  gray,  ultramarine,  cinnamon  red,  and  even  pale  rose.  All  have  sap-green  batt. 
shutters ;  most  possess  balconies  balustraded  with  elegant  arabesque  work  in  wrought  iror 
graceful  tendrils  and  curling  leaves  of  metal,  framing  some  monogram  of  which  the  meaning 
forgotten  Much  lattice-work  also  wiU  be  observed  about  verandas,  or  veiling  the  ends 
galleries  or  suspended  like  green  cage-work  at  the  angle  formed  by  a  window-balcony  wi 
some  lofty  court-wall.  And  far  down  the  street,  the  erratic  superimposition  of  wire-hu) 
'igns  advertising  the  presence  of  many  quiet,  shadowy  little  shops  that  hide  their  faces  frc 
the  sun  behind  slanting  canvas  awnings,  makes  a  spidery  confusion  of  lines  and  angles  in  t 

very  centre  of  the  vista.  ,      ..       ^     ^.      xu 

I  think  that  only  by  a  series  of  instantaneous  photographs,  tmted  after  the  manner 
Goupil  could  the  physiognomy  of  the  street  be  accurately  reproduced,  such  is  the  confusi 
of  projecting  show-windows,  the  kaleidoscopic  medley  of  color,  the  jumble  of  infinitesin 
stores  The  characteristics  of  almost  any  American  street  may  usually  be  taken  in  at  o 
glance;  but  you  might  traverse  this  Creole  thoroughfare  a  hundred  times  without  being  able 
ordinate  the  puzzling  details  of  its  perspective. 

But  when  the  curious  pilgrim  reaches  the  corner  of  Royal  and  St.  Peter  streets  (Jtm  Sa 
Pierre)  he  finds  himself  confronted  by  an  edifice  whose  oddity  and  massiveness  compel  spec 
examination-a  four-story  brick  tenement  house,  with  walls  deep  as  those  of  a  medieval  abb. 
and  with  large  square  windows  having  singular  balconies,  the  ironwork  of  which  is  wrouj 
into  scrolls.and  initials.  Unlike  any  other  building  in  the  quarter,  its  form  is  that  of  an  irregu 
pentagon  the  smallest  side  of  which  looks  down  Royal  and  up  St.  Peter  streets  at  once,  a 
commands  through  its  windows,  in  a  single  view,  three  street  angles.  This  is  the  house  wh« 
'S-eur  George  so  long  dwelt.  It  is  said  to  have  been  the  first  four-story  building  erected  in  N. 
Orleans-  and  it  certainly  affords  a  singular  example  of  the  fact  that  some  very  old  buildii 
ob<5tinately  rebel  against  innovations  of  fashion,  just  as  many  old  men  do.  Despite  a  despen 
effort  recentlv  made  to  compel  its  acceptance  of  a  new  suit  of  paint  and  whitewash,  the  v 
erable  structure  persisted  in  remaining  almost  precisely  as  Mr.  Cable  first  described  it    1 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  295 

cornices  are  still  dropping  plaster ;  the  stucco  has  not  ceased  to  peel  off ;  the  rotten  staircases, 
"  hugging  the  bides  of  the  court,"  still  seem  "  trying  to  climb  up  out  of  the  rubbish  ";  the  court 
itself  is  always  "  hung  with  many  lines  of  wet  clothes  ";  and  th3  rooms  are  now,  as  ever,  occu- 
pied by  folk  "who  dwell  there  simply  for  lack  of  activity  to  find  better  and  cheaper  quarters 
elsewhere."  Cheaper  it  would  surely  be  easy  to  find,  inasmuch  as  'Sieur  George's  single- 
windowed  room  rents  unfurnished  at  ten  dollars  per  month.  There  is  something  unique  in  the 
spectacle  of  this  ponderous,  dilapidated  edifice,  with  its  host  of  petty  shops  ox^t^iQTez-de-chaussee 
—something  which  recalls  an  engraving  I  once  saw  in  some  archceological  folio,  picturing  a 
swarm  of  Italian  fruit-booths  seeking  shelter  under  the  crumbling  arches  of  a  Eoman  theatre. 

Upon  the  east  side  of  Rue  Eoyale,  half  a  square  farther  up,  the  eve  is  refreshed  by  a  delicious 
burst  of  bright  green-a  garden  inclosed  on  three  sides  by  spiked  railings,  above  which  bananas 
fling  out  the  watered-satin  of  their  splendid  leaves,  and  bounded  at  its  eastern  extremity  by  the 
broad,  blanched,  sloping-shouldered  silhouette  of  the  Cathedral.  Here  linger  memories  of  Padre 
Antonio  de  Sedella  (Pere  Antoine),  first  sent  to  Louisiana  as  a  commissary  of  the  Holy  Inquisi- 
tion, immediately  shipped  home  again  by  sensible  Governor  Miro.  But  Padre  Antonio  returned 
to  Louisiana,  not  as  an  inquisitor,  but  as  a  secular  priest,  to  vdn  the  affection  of  the  whole 
Creole  population,  by  whom  he  was  venerated  as  a  saint  even  before  his  death.  Somewhere 
near  this  little  garden,  the  padre  used  to  live  in  a  curious  wooden  hut ;  and  the  narrow,  flagged 
alley  on  the  southern  side  of  the  Cathedral  and  its  garden  still  bears  the  appellation,  Passage 
Saint  Antoine,  in  honor  of  the  old  priest's  patron.  The  name  is  legibly  inscribed  above  the  show- 
windows  of  the  Roman  Catholic  shop  on  the  comer,  where  porcelain  angels  appear  to  be  per- 
petuaHy  ascending  and  descending  a  Jacob's-ladder  formed  of  long  communion  candles.  The 
"  Peres  Jeromes  "  of  our  own  day  reside  in  the  dismal  brick  houses  bordering  the  alley  farther 
toward  Chartres  street— buildings  which  protrude,  above  the  heads  of  passers-by,  a  line  of 
jealous-looking  balconies,  screened  with  lattice-work,  in  which  wicket  lookouts  have  been  con- 
trived. On  the  northern  side  of  garden  and  Cathedral  runs  another  flagged  alley,  which  affects 
to  be  a  continuation  of  Orleans  street.  Like  its  companion  passage,  it  opens'  mto  Chartres 
street ;  but  oa  the  way  it  forks  into  a  grotesque  fissure  in  the  St.  Peter  street  block-into  a  mar- 
velous mediaeval-looking  by-way,  craggy  with  balconies  and  peaked  with  dormers.  As  this 
picturesque  opening  is  still  caUed  Exchange  alley,  we  must  suppose  it  to  have  once  formed  part 
of  the  much  more  familiar  passage  of  that  name,  though  now  widely  separated  therefrom  by 
architectural  reforms  effected  in  Ew  Saint  Louis  and  other  streets  intervening.  The  northern 
side-entrance  of  the  cathedral  commands  it— a  taU,  dark,  ecclesiastically  severe  archway,  in 
whose  shadowed  recess  Madame  Delphine  might  safely  have  intrusted  her  anxieties  to  "  God's 
own  banker ;"  and  Catholic  quadroon  women  on  their  daily  morning  way  to  market  habitually 
enter  it  with  their  baskets,  to  murmer  a  prayer  in  patois  before  the  shrine  of  Notre  Bame  de 
Lourdes.  Jackson  square,  with  its  rococo  flower-beds  and  cUpped  shrubbery,  might  be  reached 
in  a  moment  by  either  of  the  flagged  alleys  above  described  ;  but  it  retains  none  of  its  colonial 
features,  and  has  rightly  been  deprived  of  the  military  titles  it  once  bore  :  Place  d'Armes  or 
Plaza  de  Armas.  ' 

There  stands,  at  the  corner  of  St.  Anne  and  Royal  streets,  a  one-story  structure  with  Spanish 
tile  roof,  a  building  that  has  become  absolutely  shapeless  with  age,  and  may  be  torn  away  at 
any  moment.  It  is  now  a  mere  hollow  carcass-a  shattered  brick  skeleton  to  which  plaster  and 
laths  cling  in  patches  only,  Uke  shrunken  hide  upon  the  bones  of  some  creature  left  to  die  and 
to  mummify  under  the  sun.  An  obsolete  directory,  printed  in  1845,  assures  us  that  the  construc- 
tion was  considered  immemorially  old  even  then  ;  but  a  remarkable  engraving  of  it,  which  accom- 
panies the  above  remark,  shows  it  to  have  at  that  time  possessed  distinct  Spanish  features  and 
two  neat  entrances  with  semicircular  stone  steps.  In  1835  it  was  Cafe  des  R'efugies,  frequented 
by  fugitives  from  the  Antilles,  West  Indian  strangers,  filibusters,  revolutionnaxres-K\\  that 
singular  class  of  Latin-Americans  so  strongly  portrayed  in  Mr.  Cable's  "  Cafe  des  Exiles." 

At  the  next  block,  if  you  turn  down  Dumaine  street  from  Royal,  you  wiU  notice,  about  half- 


296  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

way  toward  Chartres,  a  very  peculiar  house,  half  brick,  half  timber.  It  creates  the  impression 
that  its  builder  commenced  it  with  the  intention  of  erecting  a  three-story  brick,  but  changed  his 
mind  before  the  first  story  had  been  completed,  and  finished  the  edifice  with  second-hand 
lumber— supporting  the  gallery  with  wooden  posts  that  resemble  monstrous  balusters.  This  is 
the  house  bequeathed  by  "Mr.  John,"  of  the  Good  Children's  Social  Club,  to  the  beautiful 
quadroon  Zalli  and  her  more  beautiful  reputed  daughter,  'Tite  Poulette.  As  Mr.  Cable  tells  us, 
and  as  one  glance  can  verify,  it  has  now  become  "  a  den  of  Ital'ans,  vrho  sell  fuel  by  day,  and 
by  night  are  up  to  no  telling  what  extent  of  deviltry."  On  the  same  side  of  Dumaine,  but  on 
the  western  side  of  Eoyal  street,  is  another  remarkable  building,  more  imposing,  larger— "whose 
big,  round-arohed  windows  in  the  second  story  were  walled  up,  to  have  smaller  windows  let 
Into  them  again  with  odd  little  latticed  peep-holes  in  their  batten  shutters."  It  was  to  this 
house  that  Zalli  and  'Tite  Poulette  removed  their  worldly  goods,  after  the  failure  of  the  bank  ; 
and  it  was  from  the  most  westerly  of  those  curious  windows  in  the  second  story  that  Kristian 
Koppig  saw  the  row  of  cigar-boxes  empty  their  load  of  earth  and  flowers  upon  the  head  of  the 
manager  of  the  Salle  Conde.  Right  opposite  you  may  see  the  good  Dutchman's  one-story  Creole 
cottage.  The  resemblance  of  'Tite  Poulette's  second  dwelling-place  to  the  old  Spanish  barracks 
in  architectural  peculiarity  has  been  prettily  commented  upon  by  Mr.  Cable;  and,  in  fact,  those 
barracks,  which  could  shelter  six  thousand  troops  in  O'Reilly's  time,  and  must,  therefore,  have 
covered  a  considerable  area,  were  situated  not  very  far  from  this  spot.  But  the  only  fragments 
of  the  barrack  buildings  that  are  still  positively  recognizable  are  the  arched  structures  at  Nos. 
27'0  and  272  Royal  street,  occppied  now,  alas  I  by  a  prosaic  seltzer  factory.  The  spacious  cavalry 
stables  now  shelter  vulgar  mules,  and  factory  wagons  protrude  their  shafts  from  the  mouths  of 
low,  broad  archways  under  which  once  glimmered  the  brazen  artillery  of  the  King  of  Spain. 

A  square  west  of  Royal,  at  the  corner  of  Bourbon  and  St.  Philip  streets,  formerly  stood  the 
famed  smithy  of  the  brothers  Lafitte  ;  but  it  were  now  useless  to  seek  for  a  vestige  of  that  work- 
shop, whose  chimes  of  iron  were  rung  by  African  muscle.  Passing  St.  Philip  street,  therefore, 
the  visitor  who  follows  the  east  side  of  Royal  might  notice  upon  the  opposite  side  an  elegant 
and  lofty  red  brick  mansion,  with  a  deep  archway  piercing  its  rez-de-chaussee  to  the  courtyard, 
which  offers  a  glimpse  of  rich  foliage  whenever  the  ports  cochere\s\ett  ajar.  This  is  No.  253 
Royal  street,  the  residence  of  "Madame  Delicieuse  ";  and  worthy  of  that  honor,  it  seems,  with 
its  superb  tiara  of  green  verandas.  A  minute  two-story  cottage  squats  down  beside  it — a  min 
iature  shop  having  tiny  show-windows  that  project  like  eyes.  The  cottage  is  a  modern  affair ; 
but  it  covers  the  site  of  Dr.  Mossy's  office,  which,  you  know,  was  a  lemon-yellow  Creole  con- 
struction, roofed  with  red  tiles.  What  used  to  be  ths  "  Cafe  do  Poesie"  on  the  corner,  is  now 
a  hat  store.  Further  on,  at  the  intersection  of  Royal  and  Hospital  streets  {Bue  cfHopitaZ, 
famous  in  Creole  ballads),  one  cannot  fail  to  admire  a  dwelling  solid  and  elegant  as  a  Venetian 
palazzo.  It  has  already  been  celebrated  in  one  foreign  novel  ;  and  did  I  not  feel  confident  that 
Mr.  Cable  will  tell  us  all  about  it  one  of  these  days,  I  should  be  tempted  to  delay  the  reader  on 
this  corner,  although  Madame  Delphine's  residence  is  already  within  sight. 

No  one  can  readily  forget  Mr.  Cable's  description  of  "  the  small,  low,  brick  house  of  a  story 
and  a  half,  set  out  upon  the  sidewalk,  as  weather- beaten  and  mute  as  an  aged  beggar  fallen 
asleep."  It  stands  near  Barracks  street,  on  Royal ;  the  number,  I  think,  is  294.  Still  are  its  solid 
wooden  shutters  "  shut  with  a  grip  that  makes  one's  nails  and  knuckles  feel  lacerated"  ;  and  its 
coat  of  decaying  plaster,  patched  with  all  varieties  of  neutral  tints,  still  suggests  the  raggedness 
of  mendicancy.  Even  the  condition  of  the  garden  gate,  through  which  Monsieur  Vignevielle  first 
caught  a  glimpse  of  Olive's  maiden  beauty,  might  be  perceived  to-day  as  readily  as  ever  by  "an 
eye  that  had  been  in  the  blacksmithing  business. "  But  since  the  accompanying  sketch  was  drawn, 
the  picturesqueness  of  the  upper  part  of  the  cottage  has  been  greatly  diminished  by  architectural 
additions  made  with  a  view  to  render  the  building  habitable.  Over  the  way  may  still  be  seen 
that  once  pretentious  three-story  residence  "from  whose  front  door  hard  times  have  removed 
all  vestiges  of  paint,"  a  door  shaped  like  old  European  hall  doors,  and  furnished  with  an  iron 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  297 

knocker.  It  has  not  been  repainted  since  Mr.  Cable  wrote  his  story,  nor  does  it  seem  likely 
to  be. 

Only  a  few  paces  farther  on  yawns  the  dreamy  magnificence  of  aristocratic  Esplanade  street, 
with  its  broad,  central  band  of  grass  all  shadow-flecked  by  double  lines  of  trees.  There  Royal 
street  terminates,  Esplanade  forming  the  southern  boundary  line  of  the  old  French  quarter. 

If  the  reader  could  now  foUow  me  westwardly  along  one  of  the  narrow  ways  leading  to  the 
great  Rite  des  Bemparts,  he  would  soon  find  himself  in  that  quadroon  quarter,  whose  denizens 
still  "  drag  their  chairs  down  to  the  narrow  gateways  of  their  close-fenced  gardens,  and  stare 
shrinkingly  at  you  as  you  pass,  like  a  nest  of  yellow  kittens."  He  would  be  at  once  charmed 
and  astonished  by  the  irregularity  of  the  perspective  and  the  eccentricity  of  the  houses: 
houses  whose  foreheads  are  fantastically  encircled  by  wooden  parapets,  striped  like 
the  foulards  of  the  negresses ;  houses  yellow-faced  and  sphinx-featured,  like  certain  mulatto 
women  ;  houses  which  present  their  profiles  to  the  fence,  so  that  as  you  approach  they  seem  to 
turn  away  their  faces  with  studied  prudery  like  young  Creole  girls  ;  houses  that  appear  felinely 
watchful,  in  spite  of  closed  windows  and  doors,  gazing  sleepily  at  the  passer-by  through  the 
chinks  of  their  green  shutters,  as  through  vertical  pupils.  Five  minutes'  walk  over  banqimttes 
of  disjointed  brick-work,  through  which  knots  of  tough  grass  are  fighting  their  upward  way, 
brings  one  to  Rampart  street,  where  Mr.  Cable  found  the  model  for  his  "  Cafe  des  Exiles."  It  was 
situated  on  the  west  side.  No.  219,  and  the  artist  has  sketched  it  under  a  summersglow  that 
brought  out  every  odd  detail  in  strong  reUef.  But  hereafter,  alas  !  the  visitor  to  New  Orleans 
must  vainly  look  for  the  window  of  Pauline,  "well  up  in  the  angle  of  the  broad  side-gable, 
shaded  by  its  rude  awning  of  clapboards,  as  the  eyes  of  an  old  dame  are  shaded  by  her  wrinkled 
hand."  Scarcely  a  week  ago,  from  the  time  at  which  I  write,  the  antiquated  [cottage  that  used 
to  "  squat  right  down  upon  the  sidewalk,  as  do  those  Choctaw  squaws  who  sell  bay  and  sassafras 
and  life-everlasting,"  was  ruthlessly  torn  away,  together  with  its  oleanders,  and  palmettoes, 
and  pomegranates,  to  make  room,  no  doubt,  for  some  modern  architectural  platitude. 

A  minute's  walk  from  the  vacant  site  of  the  Cafe  des  Exiles  will  bring  you  to  Congo 
square,  the  last  green  remnant  of  those  famous  Congo  plains,  where  the  negro  slaves  once  held 
their  bamboulas.  Until  within  a  few  years  ago,  the  strange  African  dances  were  still  danced, 
and  the  African  songs  still  suug  by  negroes  and  negresses  who  had  been  slaves.  Every  Sunday 
afternoon  the  bamboula  dancers  were  summoned  to  a  wood-yard  on  Dumaine  street  by  a  sort 
of  drum-roll,  made  by  rattling  the  ends  of  two  great  bones  upon  the  the  head  of  an  empty  cask; 
and  I  remember  that  the  male  dancers  fastened  bits  of  tinkling  metal  or  tin  rattles  about  their 
ankles,  like  those  strings  of  copper  gris-gris  worn  by  the  negroes  of  the  Soudan.  Those  whom 
I  saw  taking  part  in  those  curious  and  convulsive  performances— subsequently  suppressed  by 
the  police— were  either  old  or  beyond  middle  age.  The  veritable  Congo  dance,  with  its  extra- 
ordinary rhythmic  chant,  will  soon  have  become  as  completely  foi'gotten  in  Louisiana  as  the 
signification  of  those  African  words  which  formed  the  hieratic  vocabulary  of  the  Voudoos. 

It  was  where  Congo  square  now  extends  that  Bras-Coupe  was  lassoed  while  taking  part  in 
such  a  dance  ;  it  was  in  the  same  neighborhood  that  Captain  Jean  Grandissime,  of  the  Attaka- 
pas,  lay  hiding— secure  in  his  white  man's  skin  "  as  if  cased  in  steel  "—to  foil  the  witchcraft  of 
Clemence ;  and  it  was  there,  also,  that  a  crowd  of  rowdy  American  flatboatmen,  headed  by 
"Possoa  Jone',"  of  Bethesdy  Church,  stormed  the  circus  and  slew  the  tiger  and  the  buffalo. 
Now,  "  Cayetano's  circus  "  was  not  a  fiction  of  Mr.  Cable's  imagining.  Such  a  show  actually 
visited  New  Orleans  in  1816  or  thereabouts,  and  remained  a  popular  "fixture"  for  several 
seasons.  The  Creole-speaking  negroes  of  that  day  celebrated  its  arrival  in  one  of  their  singular 
ditties.*  And  whosoever  cares  to  consult  certain  musty  newspaper  files  which  are  treasured  up 

*  Some  years  ago,  when  I  was  endeavoring  to  make  a  collection  of  patois  songs  and  other 
curiosities  of  the  oral  literature  of  the  Louisiana  colored  folk,  Mr,  Cable  kindly  lent  me  his  own 
collection,  with  permission  to  make  selections  for  my  private  use,  and  I  copied  therefrom  this 
chanson  Creole: 


298  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

among  the  city  archives  may  find  therein  the  quaint  advertisement  of  Senor  Gaetano's  circus 
and  the  story  of  its  violent  disruption. 

But  Congo  square  has  been  wholly  transformed  within  a  twelvemonth.  The  high  railings 
and  gateways  have  been  removed  ;  the  weeds  that  used  to  climb  over  the  moldering  benches 
have  been  plucked  up  ;  new-graveled  walks  have  been  made ;  the  grass,  mown  smooth,  is  now 
refreshing  to  look  at ;  the  trunks  of  the  shade-trees  are  freshly  whitewashed ;  and,  before 
long,  a  great  fountain  will  murmur  in  the  midst.  Two  blocks  westward,  the  sombre,  sinister, 
Spanish  fagade  of  the  Parish  Prison  towers  above  a  huddling  flock  of  dingy  frame  dwellings, 
and  exhales  far  around  it  the  heavy,  sickly,  musky  scent  that  betrays  the  presence  of  innum 
erable  bats.  At  sundown,  they  circle  in  immense  flocks  above  it,  and  squeak  like  ghosts  about 
its  naked  sentry  towers.  I  have  been  told  that  this  grim  building  will  soon  be  numbered  among 
those  antiquities  of  New  Orleans  forming  the  scenery  of  Mr.  Cable's  romances. 

The  scene  of,  perhaps,  the  most  singular  tale  in  "Old  Creole  Days  "—"  Belles  Demoiselle- 
Plantation  "—remains  to  be  visited;  but  if  the  reader  recollects  the  observation  made  in  tht 
very  first  paragraph  of  the  story,  that  "the  old  Creoles  never  forgive  a  public  mention,"  he 
will  doubtless  pardon  me  for  leaving  the  precise  location  of  "Belles  Demoiselles"  a  mystery 
authentic  though  it  is,  and  for  keeping  secret  its  real  and  ancient  name.  I  can  only  tell  hin 
that  to  reach  it,  he  must  journey  far  from  the  Creole  faubourg  and  beyond  the  limits  of  New 
Orleans  to  a  certain  unfamiliar  point  on  the  river's  bank,  whence  a  ferryman,  swarthy  anc 
silent  as  Charon,  will  row  him  to  the  farther  side  of  the  Mississippi,  and  aid  him  to  land  up'u 

C'est  Michie  Cayetane 

Qui  sorti  la  Havane 

Avec  so  chouals  et  so  macacs  I 
Li  gagnin  eiu  homme  qui  danse  dans  sac  ; 
Li  gagnin  qui  danse  si  ye  la  main  ; 
Li  gagnin  zaut'  a  choual  qui  boi'  di  vin  : 
Li  gagnin  oussi  ein  zeine  zolie  mamzelle 
Qui  mont6  choual  sans  bride  et  sans  sella ; — 
Pou  di  tou'  ga  mo  pas  capabe,— 
Mais  mo  souvien  ein  qui  val6  sab*. 
Ye  n'en  oussi  tout  sort  betail : 
Ye  pas  montre  pou'  la  negrail 
Qui  ya  pou'  dochans— dos-brules 
Qui  fe  tapaze— et  pou'  birle 
Ces  gros  mesdames  et  ^os  michi^s 
Qui  m^nein  la  tons  p'tis  ye 

'Oir  Michie  Cayetane 

Qui  Vive  la  Havane 

Avec  so  chouals  et  so  macacs. 

•"Tis  Monsieur  Gaetano 

"WTio  comes  out  from  Havana 

With  his  horses  and  bis  monkeys  ! 
He  has  a  man  who  dances  in  a  sack ; 
He  has  one  who  dances  on  his  hands  ; 
He  has  another  who  drinks  wine  on  horseback  ; 
He  has  also  a  pretty  young  lady 
Who  rides  a  horse  without  bridle  or  saddle  : 
To  tell  you  all  about  it  I  am  not  able.— 
But  I  remember  one  who  swallowed  a  sword. 
There  are  all  sorts  of  animals,  too  ;— 
They  did  not  show  to  nigger-folk 

What  they  showed  to  the  trash— the  burnt-backs  {poor  whites) 
Who  make  so  much  noise— nor  what  they  had  to  amuse 
All  those  fine  ladies  and  gentlemen. 
Who  take  all  their  little  children  along  with  them 

To  see  Monsieur  Gaetano 

Who  lives  in  Havana 

With  his  horses  and  his  monkeys." 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  ^99 


wtTrmpXd  ditch  Where  all  kinds  of  marvelous  wild  things  are  growing,  and  where  one 

to  you  heaX  sweet  with  blossom-scents,  and  shrill  with  vibrant  music  of  cicadas  and  of  b^ds^ 
Fancy  Ihe  wreck  of  a  vast  garden  created  by  princely  expenditure-a  garden  once  filled  ^ith 
all  varlTJesoTexotic  trees,  wi'th  all  species  of  fantastic  shrubs,  with  ^^^  l^^^f^^^^^^^^^^^ 
of  both  hemispheres,  but  left  utterly  uncared  ^^^  during  a  generation  so  that  he  groves  ha^^ 
heen  made  weird  with  hanging  moss,  and  the  costly  vmes  have  degenerated  into  parasites,  ana 
rM^TuU^red  plants  returned' to  their  primitive  wM  forms.  ;^'^l^^-XS ^^.u^^^^ 
with  dead  leaves  •  and  all  is  so  profoundly  beshadowed  by  huge  trees  that  a  strange  twiugm, 
^  vau:ler::;n'under  a  noonday  sun.  The  lofty  hedge  is  ^-H-oned  wiUi^s^^^^^^^^^^^^ 
in  whose  degenerate  petals  still  linger  traces  of  former  high  cultivation.  ^^  ^  ^^^^  fj^ 'r^ 
int^that  hedge  you  can  enter  the  opulent  wilderness  within,  and  pursue  a  winding  path 
SweefinSt^rrks  that  lean  atal^^^^^ 

about  to  faU     Crackling  of  twigs  under  foot,  leaf  whispers.  caUs  of  birds  and  cries  of  tree-fiog^ 
"only  sounds;  L  soft'gloom   deepens  as  you  advance  under  the  swaymgmoss^a^^^ 
snaky  festoons  of  creepers  ;  there  is  a  dimness  and  calm,  as  of  a  place  ^«^«f;;*_^^^,^^^f  ^/^ 
But  for  their  tropical  and  elfish  drapery,  one  might  dream  '^^;'^^^^'JZ'T^l'J^^^^ 
even  with  the  passing  of  the  fancy,  lo !   at  a  sudden   turn  of  the  narrow  way,  in  a  grand 
g'wrilht,^^^^  tke  Temple  appears,  with  splendid  peripteral  of  fluted  ^^olunms  rismg  bold  y 
from  ?he  Li  1    Four  piUared  facades-east,  west,  north,  and  south-four  superb  Porches  with 
LrT  of  gaSeries  suspended  in  their  recesses  ;  and  two  sides  of  the  antique  vision  -cry-  -^^^^^^^ 
by  the  sun.    Impossible  to  verbally  describe  the  effect  of  this  ^^^^^1^^%^ ^'^  ,f  .^^^^X^J 
feudal  splendors,  that  seems  trying  to  hide  itself  from  the  new  era  ^^^^^^^^^fff  f/^f ^^ 
and  groves.     It   creates  such  astonishment  as   some  ^^^^f  .^^^^^^^^^f  ^'^  .^'"]' J'e" 
suddenly  to  come  upon  the  unknown  ruins  of  a  Greek  temple  m  ^^^  ^^^^^^f^^^/^^^^^l^^ 
torial  forest ;  it  is  so  grand,  so  strangely  at  variance  with  it.  -""^l^'om  ^emfn  pC 
of  columns  are  not  of  chiseled  marble,  and  the  stucco  has  broken  ^^^^/j^^^^^^'!^^^^  ^^t^t  ;rin 
the  severe  laws  of  architecture  have  not  been  strictly  obeyed  ;  ^^^^^^^^f  ^  ^"^^^^^f^Xuse  in 
admiration  of  the  buUding's  majesty.    I  suspect  it  to  ^//^^^^^^^^ff^,^/?  ^Ttt^^^^^^ 
Louisiana ;  I  am  sure  there  is  none  more  quaintly  beautiful.    When  I  last  beheld  the  grand  old 
mansion,  tke  evening  sun  was  resting  upon  it  in  a  Turneresque  column  of  yellow  ^  ^^^'^^^  ^he 
oaks  reaching  out  to  it  their  vast  arms  through  ragged  sleeves  of  moss,  and  beyond,  upon 
SerTderecrepuscular  dimness  of  the  woods,  with  raregoldenlumino^^^^^^^^^ 
through  the  serpent  knot-work  of  lianas,  and  the  heavy  mourning  of  mosses    and  the  great 
d^oping  and  clinging  of  multitudinous  disheveled  things.    And  all  this  sul)sists  only  becau  e 
the  old  Creole  estate^as  never  changed  hands,  because  no  ^P^-lating  utilitarian  could  buy  up 
the  plantation  to  remove  or  remodel  its  proud   homestead  and  condemn  its  odojo^^/J^;^^ 
to  the  saw-mill.    The  river  is  the  sole  enemy  to  be  dreaded,  but  a  terrible  one  r  it  is  ever  gnaw- 
ng  the  levee  to  get  at  the  fat  cane-fields  :  it  is  devouring  the  roadway  ;  it  is  ^ -rowing  nearer 
and  nearer  to  the  groves  and  the  gardens  ;  and  while  gazing  at  its  ravages  I  could  ^ot  en  com  age 
myself  to  doubt  that,  although  his  romantic  anticipation  may  not  be  '^^f^^l^'ZlT^' 
Mr.  Cable  has  rightly  predicted  the  ghastly  destiny  of  "  Belles  Demoiselles  Plantation. 


300  HISTORICAL   SKETCH   BOOK. 


CHAPTER  XLI.— PERSONAL  RECOLLECTIONS. 

FAMOUS  CHARACTERS  ABOUT  NEW  ORLEANS —THE  BARONESS  PONTALBA— JOHN  Mo  DONOGH, 
HIS  LOVE  AND  HIS  WILL— JUDAH  TOURO'S  CHARITY — ADAH  ISAACS  MENKEN — MRS. 
MYRA  CLARK  GAINES,  THE  FAMOUS  LITIGANT — PAUL  MORPHY,  THE  CHESS  KING— 
DIRECTOR-GENERAL   E.    A.    BURKE. 

THE  BARONESS  PONTALBA. 

One  of  the  most  extraordinary  women  of  New  Orleans  was  Madame  la  Baronne  Pontalba, 
whose  name  is  identified  with  so  many  important  events  in  the  city's  history. 

Her  maiden  name  was  Michasla  de  Almonaster  y  Roxas,  and  after  her  marriage  to  young. 
Xavier  Delfair,  Baron  de  Pontalba,  she  was  always  known  and  styled,  in  this,  her  native  State, 
as  Madame  de  Pontalba.    In  France  she  received  and  enjoyed  the  title  of  Baroness. 

In  the  old  Cathedral  her  father  lies  buried  with  this  tablet  above  him  : 

Here  lie  the  remains 
of 
DON  ANDRES  ALMONASTER  y  ROXAS, 
a  native  of  Mayrena, 
in  the  Kingdom  of  Andalusia. 
He  died  in  the  city  of  New  Orleans  on  the  26th  day  of  April,  1798, 
Being  73  years  of  age. 
A  Knight  of  the  Royal  and  Distinguished  Order  of  Charles  III, 
Colonel  of  the  Militia  of  this  Department, 
Alderman  and  Royal  Lieutenant  of  this  Corporation, 
Founder  and  Donor  of  this  Holy  Cathedral , 
Founder  of  the  Royal  Hospital  of  St.  Charles  and  of  its  Church, 
Founder  of  the  Hospital  for  Lepers, 
Founder  of  the  Ursuline  Convent, 
Founder  of  the  School  for  the  Education  of  Girls, 
Founder  of  the  Court  House- 
All  of  which  he  had  built  at  his  own  expense  in  this  city. 
Reqxdescat  in  Pace. 

Old  Almonaster  was  an  Andalusian,  who  came  to  Louisiana  when  it  was  a  Spanish  colony, 
and  managed  by  thrift,  industry  and  enterprise  to  accumulate  a  large  estate.  Called  to  the 
highest  positions,  chiefly  then  relating  to  the  administration  of  the  revenues  of  the  colony,  he 
discharged  all  the  trusts  confided  to  him  with  great  integrity,  but  at  the  same  time,  to  the  great 
augmentation  of  his  estate,  so  that  at  his  death,  in  1798,  he  was  by  far  the  richest  man  in  the 
colony.  A  few  years  before  his  death  he  had  married  a  Creole  lady,  by  whom  he  had  a  single 
daughter,  who  became  the  heiress  of  his  large  possessions. 

Michaela  Almonaster  was  raised  with  great  care,  but  before  she  had  completed  her  educa- 
tion, leaving  the  convent  of  the  Ursulines  to  fulfill  a  sort  of  family  arrangement,  she  married  the 
son  of  an  old  ex-ofl&cer  of  the  Spanish  army,  who  was  also  very  wealthy,  of  the  name  of  Pontalba. 

This  marriage  was  a  great  even*  in  the  colony.  No  man  was  ever  held  in  as  great  reverence 
and  affection  in  this  coloay  as  the  good  old  Don  Andres,  whose  piety,  benevolence  and  munifi- 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  301 

cence  are  so  eloquently  set  forth  in  the  foregoing  epitaph,  and  for  the  repose  of  whose  soul 
prayers  have  never  ceased  to  be  offered  up  on  every  Saturday  in  the  old  Cathedral  of  St.  Louis. 
The  young  people  departed  from  the  colony  immediately  after  the  marriage  ceremony,  and 
reaching  Paris,  established  themselves  in  that  city.  They  were  both  young,  handsome  and 
exceedingly  rich.  It  could  not  be  expected  that  a  coupla  thus  marrying  in  haste,  especially  in 
the  then  condition  of  Parisian  society,  would  escape  all  the  breakers  which  so  often  interrupt 
the  peaceful  voyage  of  matrimony.  After  some  years  of  comparatively  harmonious  domestic 
hfe,  dissensions  arose  between  them,  and  the  husband  and  wife  separated,  each  resuming  the 
possession  and  enjoyment  of  his  and  her  estate.  The  father  of  the  young  Poutalba  had  followed 
his  son  and  daughter-in-law  to  France,  and  had  established  himself  in  a  chateau  near  the  city 
Here  he  led  the  life  of  a  morose,  ascetic,  proud,  old  aristocrat,  having  but  little  sympathy  or 
interest  in  the  affairs  of  the  outside  world.  It  appears  that  the  separation  of  his  son  from 
his  wife  had  produced  great  chagrin  and  indignation  in  the  heart  of  the  old  man  He 
visited  his  wrath  upon  the  daughter-in-law,  and  regarded  her  conduct  as  the  source  of  all  his 
mfehcity  and  of  the  humiliation  of  his  son  and  of  his  familv  pride.  Hence  the  startling  tracredv 
which  followed. 

There  were  three  or  four  children  of  the  marriage  of  Miss  Almonaster  to  young  Pontalba. 
After  the  separation  these  children  remained  in  charge  of  the  mother,  with  the  obligation  on 
her  part  to  consult  their  grandfather  in  the  direction  of  their  education. 

_  Visiting  the  elder  Pontalba  at  his  chateau,  on  a  certain  occasion,  for  the  purpose  of  obtain- 
ing his  views  m  regard  to  the  management  of  the  chUdren,  Madame  was  invited  into  the 
cabmet  of  the  old  Baron.  After  her  entrance  the  door  was  locked.  No  one  was  present  AU 
that  could  ever  be  learned  by  the  servants  in  the  chateau,  of  what  then  occurred,  was  that  loud 
and  angry  voices  were  heard  proceeding  from  the  cabinet.  These  were  interrupted  by  the  loud 
report  of  a  pistol,  followed  by  a  wild  shriek  of  a  female  voice,  then  by  another  report  of  a 
pistol,  and  then  there  was  profound  and  ominoi.s  silence. 

The  servants  rushed  to  the  cabinet  and  found  it  locked.  No  answer  was  given  to  their  cry 
to  open  the  door.  A  bar  and  axe  were  obtained  and  the  door  was  forced  open.  The  room 
revealed  a  ghastly  spectacle.  Within  a  few  feet  of  each  other  lay  the  bleeding  bodies  of  Mme 
Pontalba  and  of  the  grandfather  of  her  children.  He  was  beyond  all  doubt,  dead.  The  pistol. 
Which  he  still  clutched  in  his  hand,  had  discharged  a  large  bullet  through  his  head,  scattering  his 
brains  over  the  fine  Brussels  carpet.  The  lady  still  breathed  ;  she  had  swooned,  but  her  wound 
was  a  dreadful  one.  The  ball  had  entered  her  breast,  passing  through  her  hand,  which  had 
been  raised  for  the  defence  of  her  heart,  and  severing  one  of  her  fingers.  She  lay  in  a  pool  of 
blood.  Surgical  attendance  was  quickly  called  in,  the  lady  was  removed,  and  everything  done 
for  her  which  art  and  wealth  could  command.  After  a  long  and  lingering  illness,  she  recovered 
from  the  wound,  and  resumed  her  duties  as  a  mother  and  lady.  But  nothing  ever  transpired 
as  to  the  cause  and  circumstances  of  the  tragedy.  These  have  been  reserved  as  family  secrets. 
The  public  interpretation  of  the  affair  ascribed  the  murderous  action  of  Pontalba  to  a  mono- 
mania arising  from  imaginary  wrongs  and  indignity  to  his  family  pride  and  name.  Madame 
Pontalba  was  not  a  woman  to  yield  her  just  rights  or  summit  to  the  dictation  and  control  of 
others.  She  was  of  an  imperious  temper,  self-reliant  and  dominating.  Her  refusal  to  make 
concessions  to  the  morose  old  father-in-law-  fired  him  to  the  madness  which  produced  this 
tragedy. 

Purchasing  a  square  in  the  most  aristocratic  faubourg  of  Paris,  Madame  Pontalba  invested 
her  large  income  from  New  Orleans  in  the  construction  of  one  of  the  most  costly  of  the  splen- 
did hotels  which  engage  so  much  of  the  admiration  and  interest  of  strangers  who  visit  that 
metropolis  of  the  arts  and  fashions.  Her  ambition  was  to  surpass  in  grandeur  and  luxury  the 
hotels  of  the  pretentious  aristocracy  of  the  ancien  regime,  and  even  of  royalty.  Here,  in  this 
elegant  establishment,  [she  collected  all  the  most  costly  productions  of  art  and  vertu,  and 
here  she  dispensed  a  moat  generous  hospitality.    The  education  of  her  children  was  not  neg- 


302  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

lected.  They  grew  up  iutellig:ent  and  accomplished  young  persons.  The  daughter  married  a 
native  of  New  Orleans,  and  a  member  of  one  of  the  best  families  of  this  State,  The  sons  are 
now  middle-aged  and  solid  men.  But  Madame  Pontalba  always  maintained  her  control  over 
her  property,  and  managed  her  affairs  in  her  own  way.  Her  agents  and  attorneys  were  held  to 
a  strict  accountability,  and  were  frequently  changed.  She  was  a  terror  to  the  lawyers,  whose 
bills  she  always  disputed.  She  had  no  fears  of  lawsuits,  and  always  exacted  what  she  consid- 
ered her  legal  rights,  and  resisted  most  sturdily  any  demand  she  regarded  unreasonable.  She 
had  two  sets  of  politics— one  for  France,  and  one  for  this  country.  Here  she  was  a  bitter  Dem- 
ocrat ;  in  France,  a  strong  Legitimist.  "  Don't  talk  Democracy  to  my  son,"  we  once  heard  her 
say,  "for  he  is  a  Frenchman,  and  Frenchmen  are  no  more  prepared  for  Democracy  than  so 
many  monkeys.    Talk  Democracy  to  me,  for  I  am  a  Jackson  Democrat." 

In  the  revolution  of  1848  Madame  Pontalba  deemed  it  prudent  to  leave  Paris.  She  was 
alarmed  by  the  Socialistic  demonstrations  of  that  epoch,  and  thought  it  a  good  opportunity  to 
visit  her  native  city  and  look  after  her  large  property  there.  She  accordingly  came  there  with 
her  whole  family,  rented  a  villa  at  Pascagoula  and  kept  rooms  in  the  city.  It  was  then  she 
started  the  scheme  of  improving  the  old  Place  d'Armes  by  cutting  down  the  ancient  elms  which 
had  stood  there  ever  since  her  father  donated  the  square  to  the  city.  There  was  great  opposi- 
tion to  this  proposal.  Quite  an  earnest  protest  was  made  by  the  newspapers  against  any  such 
barbarous  and  unsentimental  act.  This  was  about  the  time  Russell's  song  of  "  Woodman,  spare 
that  Tree  "  was  the  rage.  The  sentiment  it  inspired  revolted  at  the  vandalism  of  cutting  down 
the  most  venerable  land-marks  of  the  city,  in  the  shade  of  which  had  passed  all  the  great  polit- 
ical events  in  the  history  of  Louisiana— which  had  witnessed  all  the  changes  of  her  nationality. 
But  it  was  a  great  folly  to  oppose  Mme.  Pontalba  in  any  of  her  projects.  She  carried  her  object. 
The  Council  granted  her  petition.  She  would  improve  the  square  on  her  own  plan  and  at  her 
own  expense.  She  would  tear  down  the  rows  of  old  Spanish  buildings  fronting  the  square  and 
erect  expensive  modern  three  and  four-story  buildings  in  their  stead  if  the  Council  would 
exempt  her  property  from  taxation  for  a  certain  period.  Her  proposal  was  accepted  and  she 
faitlifully  executed  her  obligations.  The  square  was  improved  on  her  plan.  The  rows  of  brick 
buildings  were  erected  at  a  cost  of  several  hundred  thousand  dollars.  Shortly  after  this  change 
in  the  old  square,  she  contrived  to  have  an  act  of  the  Legislature  passed  substituting  the  name  of 
Jackson  for  the  unmeaning  one  of  Place  d'Armes ;  subscribed  liberally  to  the  fund  to  obtain  the 
bronze  equestrian  statue  of  Jackson  by  Clark  Mills,  and  from  the  balcony  of  the  central  edifice 
of  her  splendid  row  of  new  buildings  witnessed  the  grand  ceremony  of  the  unveiling  and  dedi 
cation  of  that  statue. 

Shortly  afterwards,  when  Jenny  Lind  visited  the  city  and  there  prevailed  so  extraordinary  a 
furor  on  her  account,  Mme.  Pontalba  had  the  central  building  of  the  row  on  St.  Peter  street 
gorgeously  furnished,  and  tendered  it  for  Miss  Liftd's  use  and  residence  whilst  fulfilling  her 
brilliant  engagement  at  the  St.  Charles.  The  Swedish  Nightingale  was  a  very  exacting  woman 
in  regard  to  her  domestic  comforts  and  habits  of  exclusiveness,  and  greatly  relished  and  enjoyed 
the  comfort  and  luxury  which  were  thus  afforded  her  by  the  liberality  of  Mme.  Pontalba.  To 
increase  this  enjoyment  and  to  satisfy  one  of  the  most  importunate  of  the  exactions  of  the  great 
songstress,  the  services  of  the  renowned  Boudro  were  obtained  to  supervise  her  cuisine.  When 
the  gustative  Jenny  was  about  to  leave  the  city,  she  declared  that  the  two  persons  whom  she 
would  always  remember  vdth  the  warmest  gratitude  and  the  most  pleasant  associations  were 
Mme.  Pontalba  and  Boudro,  the  cook. 

After  arranging  her  affairs  in  this  city,  and  when  the  accession  of  Louis  Napoleon  had  given 
an  aspect  of  permanent  order  and  peace  to  France,  Madame  Pontalba  returned  to  Paris,  and 
resided  at  her  splendid  hotel  in  that  city,  surrounded  by  a  large  family  of  children  and  grand- 
children. Her  hospitality  and  beneficence  were  on  a  scale  of  great  liberality  and  magnificence, 
worthy  of  the  heir  of  the  venerable  Don  Andres  Almonaster.  Like  her  father,  too,  she  was  a 
most  vigilant  and  successful  administrator  of  her  large  estate.    Her  investments  in  Paris  proved 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  303 

very  profitable,  and  her  property  in  that  city  exceeded  in  value  that  which  she  held  in  New 
Orleans,  where  she  had  been  for  many  years  regarded  as  the  proprietor  of  the  largest  area  of 
ground  in  the  city. 

JOHN  McDONOGH. 

John  McDonogh  was  born  in  Baltimore,  Maryland,  in  the  year  1778,  of  highly  respectable 
parents  of  Scotch  descent.  He  received  a  good  education,  was  quick  and  apt  at  acquiring 
knowledge,  and  possessed  an  extraordinarily  retentive  memory,  which  seldom  or  never  failed 
him.  Exhibiting  a  turn  for  commercial  pursuits,  he  was  placed  at  an  early  age  in  a  mercantile 
house  m  Baltimore,  doing  an  extensive  business  both  in  this  country  and  Europe.  He  was 
affable  and  pleasing  in  his  manners;  strictly  correct  in  all  transactions.  He  gained  the 
unhmited  confidence  of  his  employers,  who,  in  1800,  sent  him  as  supercargo  in  one  of  their  ships 
to  Liverpool,  with  instructions  to  load  her  with  merchandise  suitable  for  the  Louisiana  market 
and  to  proceed  without  delay  to  New  Orleans.  He  obeyed  his  instructions,  sailed  from  Liver- 
pool, arriving  at  the  Balize  in  the  latter  part  of  September,  1800.  His  ship  sailed  up  the  river  as 
fast  as  winds  would  permit,  and  when  about  twenty  miles  below  the  city  he  came  ashore,  hired 
a  horse,  and  entered  the  city  on  the  evening  of  the  third  of  October,  1800.  The  next  day  pre- 
senting himself  to  his  consignees,  ere  the  ship  reached  port  he  had  disposed  of  the  largest  portion 
of  the  cargo.  Eentiag  a  store,  he  stored  the  balance  of  the  cargo,  which  was  also  disposed  of 
m  a  very  short  time.  He  loaded  the  vessel  for  Baltimore  and  sailed,  and  on  his  arrival  was 
comphmented  by  his  employers  for  the  success  attendant  upon  this  venture. 

Shortly  after,  in  1804,  another  venture  was  made,  giving  McDonogh  an  interest  therein,  and 
he  met  with  far  better  success.  He  determined  upon  making  New  Orleans  his  future  home  He 
soon  became  intimately  acquainted  with  all  the  city  and  government  officers,  merchants  and 
citizens  generally,  entering  into  contracts  with  the  Spanish  officials  to  furnish  goods  for  all  that 
part  of  the  country  east  of  the  Mississippi  and  the  Floridas,  and  giving  general  satisfaction 
to  all. 

After  the  treaty  of  cession,  a  feUow  clerk  and  intimate  friend,  Shepherd  Brown,  arrived 
from  Baltimore.  Aided  by  their  former  employers,  they  formed  a  co-partnership,  and  did  an 
extensive  business  as  John  McDonogh,  Jr.,  &  Co.  After  the  battle  of  New  Orleans  Brown  died  • 
McDonogh  attended  to  the  settlement  of  the  affairs  of  the  firm,  and  carried  on  the  business  in 
his  owTi  name. 

McDonogh  being  fond  of  gaiety  and  parties  and  of  ladies'  society,  in  1809  opened  a  large 
house,  at  the  northwest  corner  of  Chartres  and  Toulouse  streets,  furnished  it  magnificently;  had 
his  coaches  and  horses  ;  gave  balls,  parties  and  dinner  parties,  which  were  attended  by  the 
notabilities  of  the  city.  Mica^la  Leonarda,  daughter  of  Don  Almcnaster,  and  afterwards 
Madame  Pontalba,  was  the  belle,  her  handsome  face  and  money  attracting  many  suitors 
amongst  others  John  McDonogh,  who  in  1810  demanded  her  in  marriage.  Her  friends,  however' 
decbned  the  honor  unless  McDonogh  would  become  a  Roman  Catholic.  McDonogh  of  course 
retired,  and  did  not  renew  the  demand. 

The  Baron  dc  Pontalba  sought  Micasla  and  in  1811  was  accepted.  The  marriage  contract 
was  drawn  by  PhUippe  Pedesclaux,  in  July,  1811,  with  the  strictest  clauses  inserted  therein 
The  contract  was  signed,  the  marriage  consummated  and  the  Baron  and  Baroness  left  for  Paris 
to  participate  in  the  festivities  and  splendor  of  the  nobility.  The  marriage  proved  unhappy  ' 
the  causes  need  not  be  repeated  here,  but  Micaelaw^as  divorced  by  a  decree  of  "La  Cour  de 
Cassation,"  and  she  was  once  more  free.  She  visited  New  Orleans  in  1816  in  relation  to  the  pro- 
jected buildings  on  St.  Peter  and  St.  Ann  streets.  The  Council  of  the  First  Municipality  refused 
to  donate  to  her  the  banquette  in  front  of  her  property,  and  her  plan  would  fail  could  she  not 
obtain  the  number  of  feet  needed  from  the  property  in  the  rear.  McDonogh  owned  the  largest 
portion  on  Chartres  and  on  Jefferson  streets.  She  at  once  thought  of  McDonogh,  and  meeting 
mm  as  If  by  chance  in  the  Louisiana  State  Bank,  approached  him  :  "How  are  you,  McDonogh? 


304  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

Have  you  forgotten  me  ?  I  am  Micjela. "  McDouoprh  professed  to  remember  her,  and  a  conversa- 
tion followed,  during  which  she  made  advances  to  him.  seeming  to  indicate  that  a  proposal  of 
marriage  from  him  would  not  be  unacceptable.  McDonogh  manifested  a  willingness  on  his 
part,  but  they  separated,  and  oSIcDonogh  saw  her  no  more.  Believing  that  she  had  by  this 
manoeuvre  secured  McDonogh's  good  favor,  she  ordered  her  builder,  Samuel  Stewart,  to  take 
possession  and  tear  down  s^ome  15  or  16  feet  of  the  property  of  McDonogh.  She  had  caused  an 
act  to  be  drawn  up,  which  she  believed  ilcDonogh  would  sign,  by  which  he  abandoned  to  her 
this  amount  of  property.  McDonogh,  liearing  of  the  projected  tearing  down  of  his  property, 
at  once  applied  to  the  Fifth  Di:trict  Court  of  New  Orleans,  Judge  A.  M.  Buchanan  presiding, 
and  obtained  an  injunction,  which  resulted  in  Mme.  de  Pontalba  having  to  pay  damages  and 
costs,  besides  repairing  the  walls  which  she  had  already  pulled  down.  Thus  ended  his  love,  if 
it  can  be  so  called,  for  Mme.  de  Pontalba. 

In  1814,  there  resided  in  New  Orleans  a  Mr.  Johnson  and  family,  from  Maryland.  His 
daughter  was  then  just  entering  into  womanhood,  beautiful,  intellectual  and  witty,  far  sur- 
passing Micaela  Almonaster  in  everything  but  money.  McDonogh  paid  his  address  to  this 
youne  lady,  and  was  accepted  by  her,  but  the  father's  consent  was  to  be  had.  McDonogh 
made  the  ''demande  en  mariage''''  in  due  form  and  according  to  etiquette.  The  Johnson 
family  were  strict  Eoman  Catholics,  and  McDonogh  a  Protestant.  Miss  Johnson  made  no 
objection  to  McDonogh  on  the  score  of  religion.  Not  so  the  father,  who  acknowledging  the 
honor  done  to  his  daughter  by  McDonogh,  of  which  he  was  proud,  refused  consent,  unless 
McDonogh  would  join  the  Catholic  church.  McDonogh  declined  doing  this,  stated  that  no 
objection  was  made  by  the  daughter,  and  he  would  wait  some  time  when,  perhaps,  Mr.  John- 
son might  change  his  views.  Miss  Johnson  was  satisfied  with  this,  hoping,  also,  that  her  father 
would  relent. 

New  Orleans  was  invaded.  McDonogh  joined  Captain  Beale's  company  of  rifles,  and  was  at 
the  battle  of  the  8th  of  January,  1815.  After  proclamation  of  peace  McDonogh  again  renewed 
his  application  to  the  father,  with  the  same  result.  Miss  Johnson  then  announced  that  if  she 
were  not  McDonogh's  wife,  she  would  become  a  nun,  and  some  time  after  she  took  the  veil,  in 
the  Trsuline  Church,  on  Ursuline  street. 

Nearly  thirty-five  years  after.  Miss  Johnson  became  the  head  of  one  of  the  religious  institu- 
tions she  had  joined.  McDonogh,  hearing  of  this,  and  being  made  aware  that  her  then  position 
permitted  her  to  receive  visitors,  respectfully  requested  permission  to  pay  his  respects  to  her, 
simply  as  an  old  friend.  She  assented,  and  McDonogh  paid  the  visit,  which  was  most  interest- 
ing to  both,  although  no  allusion  was  made  to  the  love  of  former  days.  And  annually,  up  to  the 
time  of  his  death  in  18.50,  McDonogh,  between  the  1st  and  6th  of  January,  would  make  his 
"  visite  de  bonne  annee,"  the  New  Year's  call.  McDonogh  died  in  1850,  and  in  his  armoir,  care- 
fully preserved,  was  found  a  memento  of  Miss  Johnson,  in  the  shape  of  a  pair  of  beautiful  gold 
embroidered  slippers. 

From  1819  to  1850  McDonogh  never  was  idle  ;  early  and  late  he  was  at  work.  His  business 
called  him  daily  to  the  city.  He  had  his  rents  to  collect,  his  notes  to  pay.  He  attended  the 
auction  sales,  and  bought  real  estate,  and  to  attend  to  this  business  he  would  cross  the  Missis- 
sippi in  a  skiff  manned  by  one  of  his  slaves.  Prior  to  1835  there  were  no  steam  ferries  plying 
between  New  Orleans  and  the  opposite  side.  The  planters  and  the  largest  portion  of  the  inhab- 
itants had  their  own  skiffs,  and  even  after  the  establishment  of  steam  ferries  none  landed 
within  a  half-mile  of  his  residence.  No  weather,  however  threatening  or  tempestuous, 
would  prevent  him  from  crossing  in  this  skiff,  to  fulfill  any  engagement  which  he  had  made. 
He  was  always  punctual  to  the  hour  and  minute.  After  completing  his  business  in  the  city  he 
would  recross,  and  he  was  never  known  after  his  removal  across  the  river  to  have  passed  a 
night  in  the  city. 

McDonogh  corresponded  with  many  of  the  eminent  men  of  the  day,  such  as  Henry  Clay, 
Daniel  Webster,  John  M.  Clayton,  Wm.  M.  Meredith,  Judges  Story  and  McLean,  and   many 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  305 

others,  besides  corresponding  with  the  various  departments,  both  of  the  United  States  and  of 
the  State,  in  regard  to  land  and  other  claims  in  which  he  was  interested.  He  frequently  wrote 
articles  upon  the  important  questions  of  the  day,  which  were  published  in  the  newspapers  here, 
and  republished  in  the  leading  papers  throughout  the  country. 

John  McDono.:?h  was  no  miser.  His  whole  career,  his  will,  refute  the  idea  that  he  was  a  miser. 
He  declined  giving  money  for  frivolous  purposes.  He  refused  to  have  his  biography  written,  as  it 
was  money  the  writer  wanted.  He  declined  being  interviewed,  as  it  is  now  called,  for  money 
was  at  the  bottom  of  it.  Hence  he  was  called  a  miser.  Whatever  may  have  been  his  views  in 
regard  to  the  disposition  of  his  property,  and  the  apparently  ridiculous  mode  he  prescribed  for 
carrying  them  out,  it  was  his  hobby  ;  he  was  entitled  to  it.  He  was  no  "miser.'  He  hoarded 
no  moneys.  At  the  time  of  his  death  he  owed  $160,000,  payable  in  January  and  February,  18.51, 
8100,030  of  which  was  due  the  Citizens'  Bank  of  Louisiana,  the  balance.  $60,000,  for  several 
properties  which  he  had  purchased  from  Destrehan's  estate  and  other  parties. 

He  had  but  $10,500  cash  in  bank  to  meet  this  amount  due.  His  property  he  left  to  the  cities 
of  Baltimore  and  New  Orleans.  Baltimore  has  profited  by  this  legacy  and  reveres  his  name. 
New  Orleans  received  a  similar  legacy. 

:McDonogh  died  at  his  home  on  the  evening  of  the  ioth  of  October,  1850  (Saturday),  and  was 
buried  on  Sunday  evening,  the  26th  of  October,  18.50,  in  the  burial  ground  which  he  had  pro- 
jected. 

His  will  was  opened  and  probated  in  the  Fifth  District  Court  of  New  Orleans,  Judge  A.  M. 
Buchanan  presiding.  The  contest  by  the  heirs  in  the  Federal  courts  lasted  up  to  1855,  when 
the  cities  took  possession.  Some  time  after  this  a  codicil,  in  the  shape  of  a  note  for  $100,000, 
in  favor  of  Francis  Pena,  payable  four  years  after  his  death,  was  presented.  This  was  a  sur- 
prise. On  examination  it  was  found  to  be  wholly  written,  signed,  and  dated  by  McDonogh. 
It  was  not  creasy  nor  unintelligible;  it  was  in  his  bold  handwriting.  It  had  been  in  the  posses- 
sion, for  years  prior,  of  that  highly  respected  fellow-citizen,  R^zin  D.  Shepherd,  who  held  it  for 
safe  keeping,  to  be  handed  Pena  at  the  proper  time. 

The  large  amount  of  money  that  McDonogh  left  to  the  city  of  New  Orleans  for  educational 
purposes  was  quarreled  over  for  many  years,  and  badly  managed.  Of  late,  however,  it  has 
been  paying  the  city  a  handsome  income,  and  no  less  than  nineteen  magnificent  school-houses 
costing  from  $20,000  to  $60,000  each,  have  been  erected  out  of  the  interest  produced  by  it. 

JUDAH  TOURO. 

Touro  started  out  in  the  world  with  a  broken  heart,  having  been  rejected  by  the  family  of 
the  lady  to  whom  he  had  been  promised.  He  went  from  his  home  as  supercargo  to  the  Medi- 
terranean seas.  He  did  but  little  there,  and  returned  to  Boston.  He  next  went  to  Havana, 
having  a  capital  of  only  $100  in  his  pocket,  which  was  stolen  from  him,  leaving  him  penniless. 
He  managed  to  make  enough  to  secure  passage  to  New  Orleans.  Here  he  started  in  general 
business— Yankee  notions— and  as  a  commission  merchant  took  consignments  from  Boston. 
About  the  time  of  the  breaking  out  of  the  British  war  he  had  amassed  an  inJependent  fortune. 
He  lay  eighteen  months  in  bed  on  account  of  the  wound  he  received  at  the  battle  of  New 
Orleans,  and  from  1815  to  1844  he  never  went  out  on  the  streets  except  to  and  from  his  ofiSce. 

At  the  time  he  reached  New  Orleanp,  in  1801,  he  was  considered  a  beau  among  the  ladies, 
but  he  was  very  bashful.  He  once  said  that  he  would  have  given  one-half  of  what  he  possessed 
'.f,  at  a  ball,  a  lady  sitting  right  in  front  of  him  would  have  got  up,  so  that  he  could  have  moved 
from  where  he  was  sitting.  He  desired  to  leave  the  place,  and  he  was  too  modest  to  ask  her  to 
move.  During  the  time  that  he  himself  was  confined  to  his  office  or  house,  from  1815  to  1844,  he 
knew  of  everything  that  was  going  on  in  society  and  business  circles.  He  had  about  a  dozen 
friends  to  call  on  him  daily,  who  would  make  reports  of  everything  going  on. 

In  1832  Mr.  Touro  had  a  store  on  Chartres  street,  near  where  the  St.  Louis  Hotel  now 


oQg  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 


stands ;  at  that  period  the  hotel  was  not  in  existence.  He  afterwards  removed  to  the  corner 
of  Canal  and  Eoyal.  He  finally  moved  his  business  next  to  Christ  Church  which  was  then  on 
the  corner  of  Bourbon  and  Canal.  He  bought  the  church,  tore  it  down  and  erected  a  syna- 
gogue "the  Dispersed  of  Judah,"now  generally  known  as  the  Touro  Synagogue,  and  which 
was  afterwards  removed  to  its  present  site  on  Carondelet  street,  near  Julia. 

Touro  gave  away  over  $400,000  in  charity.  He  gave  $20,000  to  the  Bunker  Hill  Monument; 
$40,00C  to  put  the  Jewish  Cemetery  at  Newport,  R.  I.,  in  good  condition,  and  various  other 

^"'""ItTgrelt'^expense  he  purchased  the  burial-ground  on  Canal  street  for  the  Congregation 
Dispersed  of  Judah  and  had  it  put  in  order  ;  also,  the  Touro  Infirmary,  which  alone  cost  him 
$40  COO  The  church  on  Bourbon  and  Canal  streets,  which  was  built  for  tl.e  Congregation 
Dispersed  of  Judah  he  had  built  himself,  and  the  ground  alone  cost  him  between  $60,000  ancj 

^^^'ile  was  very  close  in  so  far  as  his  personal  wants  were  concerned.  His  clerk  once  bought 
him  a  frock  coat,  and  on  the  same  day  his  friend  Nathan  bought  one  $2  cheaper.  He  made 
the  clerk  return  the  coat,  but  on  the  same  day  gave  $5,000  to  the  sufferers  of  the  Mobile  fire, 
without  any  demand  or  call  upon  him.  ,      ^  ^         v,-    a     4.u     rs  ^ 

A  notable  event  in  the  life  of  Mr.  Touro  occurred  just  two  weeks  before  his  death.  One 
of  the  newspapers  printed  a  lengthy  editorial  which  went  on  to  say  that  Mr.  R.  D.  Shepherd 
hid  saved  the  I'fe  of  Mr.  Judah  Touro  The  consequence  of  this  was  that  a  contemplated 
will  which  had  been  made,  but  not  signed,  was  altered,  and  his  entire  property  amounting  to 
considerably  over  a  million  was  bequeathed  to  f>hepher<L 

Judah  Touro  was  a  temperate  man  and  never  drani  anything  but  water.  He  never  drank 
^vines,  although  he  frequently  tasted  them,  and  was  an  excellent  connoisseur.  He  would  smeU 
and  taste  them  and  give  his  opinion,  but  never  drink  them. 

MR.  PETERS. 

Samuel  J  Peters  was  one  of  the  most  remarkable  men  who  ever  engaged  in  public  and 
commercial  affairs  in  this  city,  or  indeed  in  this  nation.  He  was  a  native  of  Canada  born  of  a^ 
distino-uished  Puritan  lineage.  His  family  had  removed  from  Connecticut  durmg  the  Revolu- 
tionary War  The  blood  of  Hugh  Peters  and  of  Cromwell's  famous  butcher.  General  Harrison, 
mingled  in  his  veins,  and  the  energetic,  self-reliant,  bold,  defiant  and  somewhat  domineering' 
spirit  of  his  regicidal  ancestors  had  been  transmitted  to  their  remote  descendant,  who  emigrated 
to  this  city  about  fifty  years  ago,  and  engaged  as  a  clerk  in  a  store.  The  great  talents  and  strong 
will  of  Peters  secured  him  rapid  advancement  in  mercantile  life.  He  became  a  prosperous 
merchant,  and  the  head  of  the  largest  wholesale  grocery  in  the  South.  But  his  ambition  and 
intellectual  activity  could  not  be  limited  to  even  the  large  scope  of  a  great  commercial  estab- 
lishment He  engaged  in  public  affairs,  became  a  member  of  the  City  Council,  and  afterwards 
of  the  council  of  the  Second  Municipality,  where  he  quickly  took  the  lead  in  every  important 
measure,  and  by  his  admirable  organizing  and  administrative  powers,  infused  great  vigor  and 
system  into  every  department  of  the  municipal  government. 

Finally  he  became  practically  the  autocrat  of  the  wealthiest  and  most  prosperous  of  the 
three  municipalities,  and  for  years  swayed  its  destinies  and  controlled  its  whole  orgamzation 
with  absolute  power  and  extraordinary  ability.  He  communicated  his  spirit  and  energy  to  the 
whole  population;  introduced  every  new  improvement  which  had  proved  successful  m  other 
cities;  organized  the  police  on  a  new  plan,  and  a  fire  department;  ^^^^^^uced  a  system 
of  public  schools  equal  to  the  best  in  New  England;  established  a  large  library,  built  he  pre- 
sent  City  Hall,  raised  the  credit  of  the  municipality  to  par,  and  accomphshed  ^^j^^^^^^ble  oth^ 
public  r^easui^es  and  improvements,  which  contributed  to  render  the  Second  Municipality  as 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  307 

complete  and  thoroughly  organized  a  city  within  itself  as  there  existed  in  the  Union.  And  dur- 
ing the  whole  period  of  nis  long  service  in  the  city  government,  for  which  he  received  not  a 
dollar  of  remuneration,  he  was  president  of  a  large  and  flourishing  bank,  was  a  director  in 
many  other  corporations,  and  for  a  short  time  filled  the  office  of  Collector  of  Customs  under  the 
Federal  Government.  Few  men  in  any  community  ever  crowded  so  much  of  public  service 
into  the  same  period  as  Mr.  Peters.  And  yet,  during  all  that  time,  he  continued  his  connection 
with  the  house  which  he  had  founded.  Finally,  borne  down  by  his  great  labors  and  cares,  his 
physical  powers  yielded,  and  a  paralytic  attack  brought  his  career  to  a  close  before  he  had 
reached  old  age.  And  now  was  realized  the  heavy  penalty  which  is  paid  in  New  Orleans  by  all 
who  engage  in  public  life  and  enterprises. 

Though  abstaining  from  all  speculation  and  enjoying  a  large  income  from  his  prosperous 
and  extensive  commercial  business,  he  left  barely  enough  to  give  his  children  a  good  education, 
whilst  his  partner,  who  died  a  few  years  after,  and  who  had  never  been  known  outside  of  his 
store,  had  never  performed  any  public  labor  in  any  public  sense,  or  promoted  any  public  enter- 
prise, left  a  princely  estate. 

The  differences  between  the  two  estates  represented  the  sacrifice  which  Mr.  Peters  had  made 
by  his  devotion  to  the  interests  and  advancement  of  the  community,  and  the  consequent 
neglect  of  his  own  personalaffairs. 

Mb.  JAMES  H.  CALDWELL 

afforded  the  next  striking  example  of  the  risk  and  loss  of  engaging  in  enterprises  and  public 
works  in  this  city.  Mr.  Caldwell,  more  than  even  Mr.  Peters,  embarked  his  whole  fortune  and 
energies  in  such  enterprises.  He  was  indeed  the  architect  of  the  fortunes  of  the  Second  Munici- 
pahty.  There  was  no  undertaking  that  could  be  proposed— and  he  was  the  author  of  most  of 
those— in  which  he  did  not  co-operate  and  lead.  The  Nashville  Eailroad,  which  anticipated  the 
present  Great  Northern  &  Jackson  by  more  than  twenty  years,  was  conceived,  organized  and 
prosecuted  by  him.  But  for  the  great  financial  crash  of  1836-37,  it  would  have  been  a  brilliant 
success.  The  New  Canal,  the  Waterworks,  the  St.  Charles  and  the  Veranda  Hotels,  were  all 
worked  out  on  his  plans,  and  chiefly  through  his  energy.  The  splendid  and  capacious  old  St. 
Charles  Theatre  was  designed  and  constructed  entirely  with  his  own  means  at  a  cost  of  $350,000. 
He  had  previously  built  the  Camp  Street  Theatre.  He  first  introduced  gas  into  the  city,  and 
founded  the  present  wealthy  corporation  which  furnishes  that  great  comfort  of  urban  life.  He 
was  the  author  of  the  plan  of  square-stone  pavements,  and  imported  the  blocks  from  abroad, 
and  laid  down  the  pavement  at  his  own  expense  to  demonstrate  its  superiority. 

It  would  require  pages  to  detail  all  the  exploits  of  the  wonderful  enterprise  and  public 
spirit  of  this  most  useful  citizen.  Suffice  it  to  say  that,  although  all  these  enterprises  proved 
eminently  practical  and  successful,  and  contributed  vastly  to  the  growth  of  the  munici- 
pality, they  involved  Mr.  Caldwell  in  such  pecuniary  losses  that  he  was  driven  back  to  the 
stage  to  resume  his  old  pursuit  as  an  actor  and  manager,  and  was  for  some  years  a  virtual 
bankrupt.  The  indulgence  of  his  creditors  and  his  own  energies,  and  a  fortunate  investment 
in  gas  property  in  other  cities,  finally  rescued  him  from  complete  insolvency.  But  he  had  lost 
all  his  large  investments  in  the  gas  works  which  he  established  in  New  Orleans.  That  property 
passed  into  other  hands,  and  enriched  all  who  acquired  any  portion  of  it.  Its  founder  was 
impoverished  by  the  very  success  of  his  enterprise. 

ADAH  ISAACS  MENKEN. 

Adah  Isaacs  Menken  was  not  a  Jewess  by  birth.  She  was  born  at  Milneburg,  on  Lake  Pont- 
chartrain,  and  a  part  of  New  Orleans,  June  15,  1835,  and  christened  Adelaide  McCord.    In  1850 


308  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

she  married  Alexander  Isaacs  Menken,  and  out  of  his  name  she  formed  the  co^omen  by  which 
she  became  celebrated.  She  had  a  sister,  Josephine,  and  a  brother,  who  was  a  compositor  at 
Cincinnati.  Her  father  died  when  she  was  only  seven  years  old,  and  her  mother  married  Dr.  J. 
C.  Campbell,  an  army  surgeon.  Then  this  stepfather  also  died,  and  Adelaide  and  Josephine 
went  upon  the  stage  as  dancers,  at  the  French  Opera  House,  Xew  Orleans.  But  Adelaide  was 
ambitious,  studied  tragedy  in  her  leisure  hours,  and  in  1858  made  her  debiit  at  the  Varieties  The- 
atre, New  Orleans,  as  Bianca,  in  "Fazio.''  Then  she  became  a  leading  lady  at  the  Memphis  and 
Nashville  theatres.    A  divorce  quickly  followed  her  marriage  to  Menken. 

In  1859,  the  year  of  her  first  marriage,  the  adventurous  career  of  Adah  Isaacs  Menken  began. 
At  a  road-house  near  New  York,  called  Rock  Cottage,  she  was  married,  by  theEev.  J.  S.  Bald- 
win, to  John  C.  Heenan,  the  pugilist,  by  whom  she  had  a  male  child.  A  quarrel  with  Heenan 
occurred  within  a  year ;  the  news  of  her  mother's  death  simultaneously  arrived,  and,  poor  and 
deserted,  Adah  would  have  died  unknown  in  a  tenement  house  on  Third  avenue,  but  for  a 
solitary  friend. 

The  first  success  of  Menken  as  Mazeppa  w^as  quite  an  accident.  J.  B.  Smith,  a  bill-poster,  had 
taken  the  Albany  Theatre,  and  did  not  know  what  to  do  with  it.  Menken  proposed  to  play 
Mazeppa  and  be  strapped  to  the  horse  instead  of  the  usual  dummy  figure.  There  was  a  rehear- 
sal, and  Menken  and  the  horse  tumbled  from  the  "runs  "  to  the  stage.  The  horse  w.s  frightened, 
but  Menken  was  not.  "I  will  go  up  those 'runs  '  before  I  leave  the  theatre,"  she  cried.  The 
next  attempt  was  successful,  and  so  was  the  performance,  which  afterward  excited  New  York, 
London,  Paris  and  Vienna. 

After  a  sensational  engagement  in  New  York,  as  Mrs.  John  C.  Heenan,  and  a  tour  through 
the  country,  during  which  she  w^as  arrested  at  Baltimore  as  a  Confederate,  Menken  procured  a 
divorce  from  Heenan,  in  order  to  marry  Mr.  Newell,  "  Orpheus  C.  Kerr,"  stipulating  in  her  mar- 
riage contract  to  give  up  the  stage  forever.  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Newell  w-ent  to  live  in  comfort  and 
retirement  ia  New  Jersey  ;  but,  before  a  week  had  elapsed,  the  bride  escaped  by  a  window  and 
returned  to  New  York,  declaring  that  she  could  not  live  without  her  Bohemian  associations. 
Then  she  went  to  California  with  her  husband,  played  at  San  Francisco  and  Sacramento  with 
Tom  Maguire,  and  returned  to  New  Orleans  in  1864  to  start  for  Europe  with  Captain  James 
Barkley,  a  professional  gambler,  who  had  superseded  Newell  and  become  her  fourth  husband. 
In  London  Menken  lived  like  a  princess,  at  the  Westminster  Hotel,  and  gave  breakfasts, 
dinners  and  reunions  there  that  would  break  a  Belmont's  heart  or  purse.  To  'he  exhortations 
to  save  money  for  a  rainy  day,  Menken  replied  :  "When  I  get  so  that  I  have  to  borrow  money, 
I  want  to  die." 

Look  at  the  list  of  people  to  be  met  at  Menken's  rooms,  in  London,  "  Charles  Dickens, 
William  J.  Thompson,  Charles  Eeade,  Thomas  Purnell.  the  Duke  of  Edinburgh,  Henry  Moir 
Feist,  Prince Baorto,  Frederick  Ledger,  the  Duke  of  Wellington,»George  H.  Parker,  the  Duke  of 
Hamilton,  Howard  Paul,  Charles  Fechter,  Belle  Boyd,  Watts  Phillips,  George  Masdick,  John 
Oxenford,  Lieut.  Wylde  Hardynge  and  wife,  Algernon  Swinburne,  Jenny  Lind,  Frank  L.  Down 
ing,  Mme.  George  Sand,  Capt.  W^ebster."  What  a  mixture  !  Yet  Swinburne  supervised  one  of 
Menken's  books,  which  was  dedicated,  by  permission,  to  Charles  Dickens. 

At  this  halcyon  period  Menken  called  herself  the  "  Royal  Bengal  Tiger."  At  Astley's  she 
had  a  Jumbo  success.  She  drove  about  the  London  streets  in  a  four-in-hand,  with  liveried  ser- 
vants, and  a  horse's  head  surmounting  four  aces  for  a  crest,  and  silver  bells  on  the  harness- 
She  toured  the  English  provinces  as  Mazeppa.  In  1865,  she  returned  to  London,  and  produced 
John  Brougham's  "Child  of  the  Sun ;"  but  the  Menken  fraud  was  over,  and  both  she  and  the 
piece  were  failures;  so  she  returned  to  New  York  in  the  autumn,  went  back  to  England  almost 
immediately,  and  revisited  this  country  in  1866,  all  her  engagements,  except  that  in  an  Indiana 
divorce  court,  being  financial  failures.  Here  she  kept  open  house  for  her  Bohemian  friends  in  a 
residence  on  Seventh  avenue,  which  she  called  "Bleak  House,"  and  was  married  to  Captain 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS  309 

Barkley,  who  died  in  California  in  1868.    Two  years  before  his  death  Menken  took  an  overdose 
of  poison,  whether  intentionally  or  by  accident,  has  never  been  ascertained. 

Paris  remained  to  her,  and  at  the  Gaiete  Theatre,  in  a  pantomime  part  in  •'  Les  Pirates  de  la 
Savane,"  she  renewed  her  London  furore.  The  receipts  for  the  first  olshtnij^hts  were  overS72,000. 
Sbe  played  a  hundred  nights;  she  wore  little  more  costume  than  a  statue;  the  Emperor  went  to 
ace  her  ;  Dumas  pere  loved  her  as  a  daughter  ;  her  house  was  a  free  hotel  for  everybody  she  knew, 
and  especially  for  the  Confederates  stranded  in  Paris  ;  she  was  at  the  height  of  her  celebrity. 
Her  descent  was  as  rapid  as  her  rise.  She  ceased  to  draw,  ceased  to  make  money  and,  died,  as 
poor  as  when  she  started  out  on  her  grand  career. 

MYRA    CLAJIK    GAINES. 

On3  of  the  most  conspicuous  and  well-known  persons  to  be  met  with  on  the  streets  of  New 
Orleans,  is  Mrs.  Myra  Clark  Gaines.  Her  lawsuit,  developing  as  it  did  her  most  extraordinary 
energy  and  pertinacity,  and  containing  as  it  did  the  germs  of  a  dozen  romances,  has  become 
in  the  course  of  time  the  greatest  of  American  cases. 

The  Myra  Clark  Gaines  case  began  nearly  half  a  century  ago,  when  the  little  woman,  who 
is  the  heroine  of  ths  suit,  made  her  first  apoearance  in  court— she  was  then  Mrs.  Whitney- 
claiming  the  immense  estate  of  Daniel  Clark,  who  had  died  twenty-three  years  previous,  as  his 
only  child  and  heir.  Her  claim  excited  the  greatest  surprise  and  wonder.  Clark  bad  been  the 
most  prominent  man  in  Louisiana,  its  wealthiest  citizen,  its  representative  in  Congress,  its 
leading  merchant.  He  had  been  a  social  leader,  a  great  favorite  among  women,  and  reported 
engaged  to  half  a  dozen,  among  others,  to  the  Caroline  Caton,  who  afterwards  became  Duchess 
of  Leeds,  but  no  one  dreamed  that  he  had  married  or  left  a  child  behind. 

It  was  in  1836  that  the  Gaines  or  Whitney  suit  begun,  Mrs.  Whitney  claiming  the  property 
let  by  her  father.  For  forty-eight  years  since,  that  suit  has  constantly  been  before  one  court 
or  another.  It  has  occupied  the  time  of  hundreds  of  judges  ;  all  the  original  lawyers  in  it  are 
long  since  dead,  but  the  little  woman  who  began  it  has  outlived  all  of  them,  and  at  the  age  of 
79  still  continues  to  manage  the  case  herself.  During  this  long  period  over  a  million  and  a  half 
dollars  have  been  expended  in  costs  and  lawyers'  fees  ;  the  suit  has  been  decided  again  and 
again,  sometimes  one  way,  sometimes  another,  but  all  the  same  it  goes  on  forever. 

The  facts  involved  in  it  are  alone  sufficient  to  make  it  interesting.  As  recited  by  the  plain- 
tiff, they  were  as  follows  : 

In  1813,  Daniel  Clark,  a  CreoUzed  young  Irishman  living  in  New  Orleans,  who  had  represented 
that  State  in  Congress  and  held  other  high  positions,  and  who  was  one  of  the  richest  men  in 
Louisiana,  just  before  dying  made  a  will  bequeathing  all  his  property  to  his  child,  Myra,  the 
issue  of  a  secret  marriage  with  Zuleme  De  Grange,  a  young  Creole,  half  Provenr-al,  half  gypsy. 
The  little  girl  was  at  that  time  living  in  Philadelphia,  in  the  family  of  a  retired  sea  captain, 
named  Davis,  and  was  generally  believed,  and  even  by  herself  to  be  Daviss  own  child. 

The  w\]l  which  left  her  the  fortune,  was  never  found.  When  Clark  died,  a  search  was  made 
for  it,  but  it  had  disappeared,  and  a  will,  made  two  years  previously  was  probated  and  the 
property  deeded  under  it. 

It  was  not  until  1832,  when  Myra  Clark,  or  as  she  was  generally  knowm  Myra  Davis,  was 
married  to  William  Whitney  that  the  true  facts  of  her  parentage  were  made  known  to  her,  and 
Boon  after  made  known,  she  entered  suit  for  the  recovery  ot  the  property  bequeathed  to  her  by 
her  father.  The  story  told  by  the  numerous  defendants,  for  there  were  several  score  or  more  in 
number,  was  altogether  different  from  this.  There  lived,  they  said,  facing  the  Place  d'Armes 
^Jackson  square),  where  the  Pontalba  buildings  now  stand,  a  confectioner  by  the  name  of 
Jerome  De  Grange,  who  kept  the  leading  confectionery  in  New  Orleans  a  century  ago.  De  Grange 
was  very  ugly  but  seemed  to  have  a  great  fascinating  power  over  the  fair  sex.    He  had  won  for 


3X0  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

wife  Zuleme  Carri^re,  one  of  the  prettiest  Creole  girls  in  the  colony,  who  assisted  him  in 
mindiu-  the  sbop.  Among  his  patrons  were  aU  the  jewiesse  doree  of  the  city.  Clark  being  a  great 
frequenter  of  the  place  and  a  great  admirer  of  Madame  Zuleme.  Clark  pretended  to  become 
very  much  interested  in  De  Grange  and  finally  supplied  him  with  money  to  visit  Europe  to  attend 
to  a  certain  lawsuit.  During  his  absence.  Clark  and  Zuleme  eloped  from  the  city,  going  to 
Philadelphia  where  it  was  claimed  they  were  secretly  married,  and  where  they  pretended  to 
discover  that  De  Grange  had  previously  been  married,  thus  rendering  his  marriage  with  Zuleme 
null  and  void.  It  was  from  this  connection  of  Zuleme  and  Clark  that  Myra  Clark  Gaines  was  born. 
The  will  under  which  Mrs.  Gaines  claimed  Clark's  property  was  read  by  him  to  two  persons, 
friends  of  Mr.  Clark,  to  wit :  Chevalier  De  la  Croix  and  Mrs.  Harper,  but  after  his  death  it  could 

never  be  found.  ■,    ^    v.         •.. 

Efforts  were  made  to  discover  it,  and  when  they  failed  an  attempt  was  made  to  have  it 
probated  as  a  lost  or  destroyed  instrument.  This  attempt  failed,  and  a  previous  will  of  1811, 
wherein  Myra  was  not  recognized  or  created  an  heir,  was  probated  and  executed,  and  all  of 
Clark's  property  was  sold  under  it.  .  ,        ^ 

On  reaching  womanhood  Mrs.  Gaines  commenced  the  prosecution  of  her  claims  as  forced 
heir  and  in  every  imaginable  form  of  proceeding  and  by  every  legal  device  and  strategy  she 
sought  to  establish  her  rights.  The  results  of  these  several  suits  were  various  and  uncertain. 
Sometimes  they  appeared  to  be  in  her  favor,  and  the  little  lady  and  her  numerous  fnends 
became  jubilant  when  this  large  estate  seemed  within  her  grasp,  and  the  newspapers  and 
gossipers  exhausted  their  inventive  powers  in  devising  schemes  and  plans  for  the  investment 
and  disposition  of  the  immense  property  which  would  accrue  to  her. 

Alas  '  a  few  months  and  another  trial  of  the  Gaines  case  would  dissipate  these  rosy  hopes, 
and  the  little  lady  would  be  again  in  the  slough  of  despondency.  The  court  had  gone  back 
on  her  But  there  was  no  such  word  as  fail  in  her  vocabulary-and  never  has  been  either, 
while  a  budding  young  woman,  a  full  blown  matron  or  elderly  lady.  She  was  equal 
to  every  rebuff,  and  wrestled  bravely  with  every  disaster.  A  legion  of  lawyers  embarked  in 
her  case  She  outlived  and  wore  them  all-out.  Her  path  for  fifty  years  was  strewn  with 
the  corpses  of  ambitious  attorneys,  who  were  confident  of  winning  fori-une  and  fame  by 
bringing  the  Gaines  case  to  a  final  judgment.  But  the  plaintiff  never  turned  from  the  path, 
never  wearied  or  paused,  in  her  pursuit  of  the  great  object  and  aim  of  her  life-to  establish 
her  legitimacy  and  vindicate  the  faith  of  her  father  and  the  virtue  of  her  mother.  It  was 
not  extraordinary  that  such  earnestness  and  intensity  should  develop  a  sturdy  and  dauntless 
intrepidity  and  belligerency,  which  involved  her  in  many  episodical  conflicts  with  lawyers 
and  others.  .  . 

It  would  require  a  volume  to  *etch  never  so  superficially  these  various  episodes,  and  the 
suits  and  scenes  in  which  Mrs.  Gaines  filled  the  leading  part.  There  never  was  so  elaborate, 
intricate  and  exciting  a  judicial  and  legal  drama.  _ 

Finally  when  her  case  seemed  to  be  desperate,  two  ingenious  and  able  attorneys  conceived 
a  new  plan  to  revive  her  claim.  Grymes,  John  A.  Campbell,  Keene  and  a  host  of  other  able 
lawyers  had  exhausted  their  powers  iu  the  effort  to  bring  her  case  to  a  favorable  conclusion. 
Undismayed  by  their  failures,  these  young  advocates  resolved  to  embark  on  a  new  voyage  of 
discovery  for  the  long-sought  treasure.  ,     ,  , 

Their  plan  was  to  revive  the  suit  to  probate  the  lost  will.  Since  this  question  had  been 
passed  on.  thirty  years  before,  decisions  had  been  rendered  by  the  highest  courts  in  England 
and  in  this  country,  sanctioning  such  proceeding.  It  was  vigorously  opposed,  but  the  young 
lawyers  finally  succeeded,  and  Mrs.  Gaines  was  permitted  to  prove  the  lost  will. 

The  witnesses  were  then  living  in  extreme  old  age.  They  were  Mrs.  Harper,  the  relict  of  a 
former  judge  of  the  United  States  District  Court  in  this  city,  and  the  Chevalier  De  la  Croix,  an 
octegenarian,  who  was  led  into  court  by  his  son,  himself  an  ol  d  man. 

The  chevalier  was  blind  and  infirm,  but  he  was  a  true  knight,  and  though  the  probatmg  of 


GUIDE    TO    NEW   ORLEANS.  311 

this  will  would  render  null  and  void  the  title  to  nearly  all  the  property  he  held,  he  did  not  hesi- 
tate to  testify  with  distinctness  to  the  existence  of  such  a  will  and  its  contents  shortly  before 
the  death  of  his  friend  Clark. 

By  these  witnessess  the  will  was  established  and  probated,  and  thus  Mrs.  Gaines  was  recog- 
nized as  the  heir  and  universal  legatee  of  Daniel  Clark.  This  proceeding  took  place  a  few 
years  before  the  civil  war. 

Thus  armed  for  the  combat,  she  commenced  various  suits  against  holders  of  the  property 
of  her  father,  which  had  been  sold  under  the  old  and  void  will.  She  had  now  a  standing  in 
court.  These  suits  were  prosecuted  with  increased  zeal  and  vigor  and  various  fortune.  Some- 
times she  obtained  judgments,  and  they  were  appealed  or  their  execution  prevented  by  side 
suits  and  other  contingencies  of  all  lawsuits.  Sometimes  she  was  non-suited,  and  at  times 
appeared  to  be  utterly  routed,  but  again  revived  and  reappeared  in  the  arena,  always  cheerful, 
sanguine  and  untiring. 

Finally,  by  some  crook  of  the  law,  the  judgment  of  the  Court  of  Probate,  admitting  the  will 
of  1813,  was  ordered  to  be  reviewed. 

After  a  long  argument  the  judge  reversed  the  decision  rendered  twenty  years  before  by  the 
Supreme  Court,  and  refused  to  probate  the  will. 

On  appeal  this  decision  was  aflBrmed  by  the  Louisiana  Supreme  Court.  Here  apparently  was 
a  sad  and  fatal  extinction  of  all  of  Mrs.  Gaine.^'  fond  and  bright  hopes  and  dreams,  but  nothing 
daunted,  she  secured  a  transfer  of  her  case  to  the  United  States  Court  and  a  judgment  in  her 
favor.  The  judgment,  which  was  against  the  City  of  Xew  Orleans— for  the  city  had  bought  a 
portion  of  the  Clark  estate  and  sold  it  to  others— was  for  the  large  sum  of  $2,000,000.  An  appeal 
has  been  taken  to  the  U.  S.  Supreme  Court,  before  which  body  the  case  now  is. 

Thus  the  case  stands  to-day,  so  complicated  that  all  the  original  issues  have  been  forgotten, 
and  with  so  extensive  a  transcript  that  it  has  cost  the  city  of  New  Orleans  several  thousand 
doUars  to  merely  copy  the  evidence  in  the  case.  Scores  of  persons  have  been  ruined  by  the 
prosecution  of  this  case.  Mrs.  Gaines  herself  has  gained  nothing  from  it,  indeed  the  large  for- 
tune of  her  second  husband,  the  late  Gen.  Gaines,  U.  S.  A.,  was  expended  in  litigation,  in  court 
charges  and  lawyers' fees,  without  bringing  anything  in  return,  but  she  is  still  in  her  old  age 
looking  forward  to  the  future,  in  the  hope  that  some  day  a  final  judgment  will  give  her  the  great 
fortune  she  has  been  striving  for  a  lifetime.  The  wonderful  litigant  is  still  in  the  enjoyment  of 
good  health,  but  growing,  perhaps,  a  little  feebler  year  by  year.  • 

ALBERT  DELPIT. 

Albert  Delpit,  though  but  thirty-five  years  old,  is  one  of  the  most  illustrious  of  French 
writers.  Singularly  enough,  as  far  back  as  1880,  French  biographical  dictionaries  and  encyclo- 
paedias contain  long  accounts  of  his  iife  and  elaborate  analyses  of  his  literary  works.  Albert 
Delpit  was  born  in  1849  in  the  city  of  New  Orleans.  By  birth,  therefore,  he  is  an  American.  He 
was  sent  to  France  to  be  educated,  and  graduated  from  the  Lycee  de  Bordeaux  at  the  early  age 
of  fifteen.  This  precocity  followed  him  throughout  his  whole  career,  and  the  taste  for  liter- 
ature thus  implanted  was  destined  never  to  be  eradicated.  His  father,  a  rich  tobacconist  in  the 
Creole  city,  strongly  opposed  his  son's  inclinations,  and,  with  the  hope  of  deflecting  him  from  a 
literary  career,  sent  him  traveling  through  the  United  States.  To  this,  young  Delpit  did  not 
strongly  object ;  but  as  soon  as  he  returned  to  New  Orleans  he  commenced  writing  on  the 
French  papers  of  the  city. 

In  1868.  when  only  nineteen,  he  went  to  Paris  ;  he  became  one  of  the  staff  of  the  Elder 
Dumas'  paper,  Le  Mmsquetaire,  and  subsequently  also  collaborated  on  the  staff  of  its  successor, 
L'Ariagnan.  Delpit's  life  now  became  one  of  extreme  hardship,  as  he  had  fallen  out  with  hia 
father,  but  he  struggled  manfully  for  the  conditions  of  literary  and  journalistic  success.    In  a 


312  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

short  while  he  became  a  regular  coiitributor  to  the  Paris  Journal.  About  this  time  M.  Ballande, 
who  was  conducting  a  series  of  literary  matinees  at  the  Gaiete  theatre,  offered  a  ptize  for  the 
best  poem  in  praise  of  the  French  poet,  Lamartine.  This  prize  was  carried  off  by  young  Delpit 
over  all  competitors.  On  the  strength  of  this  success  Delpit  produced  a  one-act  comedy  at  the 
Odeon,  which  was  only  moderately  successful. 

The  Franco-Prussian  war  now  broke  out,  and  although  an  American  citizen,  young  Delpit 
immediately  joined  the  army  and  served  with  marked  distinction  through  the  siege  of  Paris. 
On  the  motion  of  Admiral  Saisset  he  became,  on  the  3d  of  August,  1871,  a  Chevalier  of  the  Legion 
of  Honor.  An  inspiration  of  the  war  was  a  poem  called  "  The  Invasion."  This  work  proved  an 
enormous  popular  success,  running  through  fifteen  editions  in  a  few  months.  All  the  critics, 
even  those  the  most  severe,  opened  their  arms  to  the  new  poet.  "  He  suffered  with  us,"  says 
Francisque  Sarcey,  pathetically  ;  "and  he  utters  our  same  cry  of  sorrow  ;  he  translates  our 
sentiments  in  a  language  all  his  own ;  a  language  if  unequal,  at  least,  sincere,  vivid  and 
young."  In  the  Reinie  des  Deux  Mondes  M.  Louis  Etienne  accorded  him  still  higher  praise. 
"It  is  a  book  w^hich  must  profoundly  move  the  soul,  for  it  is  wiitten  from  the  heart." 
This  is  Delpit's  chief  characteristic— heart ;  but  however  chivalrous  and  sincere  it  must  not  be 
supposed  that  he  is  lacking  complexity.  Nothing  could  be  further  from  the  truth.  No  man  is 
more  varied  in  his  originality,  more  subtle  and  graceful  in  the  expression  of  his  thoughts.  He 
is  a  man  of  the  world  ;  only  he  is  a  gentleman.  "The  Invasion"  secured  from  the  French 
Academy  the  prize  called  "Montyon."  In  the  following  year  another  poem  entitled  "Le 
Repentir,  ou  Kecit  d'un  Cure  de  Campagne  ' '  was  again  crowned  by  the  Academy.  Shortly  after 
these  brilliant  successes,  M.  Delpit  became  one  of  the  editors  of  Le  Gaidois. 

Thus,  having  achieved  the  highest  distinction  in  his  profession,  he  soon  left,  by  his  own 
choice,  the  paths  of  belligerent  journalism  to  engage  in  general  literary  pursuits.  He  next 
directed  his  attention  to  the  stage.  His  first  long  play  was  a  failure.  Shortly  before  its  pro- 
duction, Delpit  became  the  hero  of  an  adventure  which  might  have  found  a  place  in  Major 
Truman's  interesting  book  on  dueling.  A  play  by  Francois  Coppee  and  Armand  D'Artois, 
entitled  "Le  Petit  Marquis"  was  being  performed  at  a  Paris  theatre.  A  well-known  man 
about  town  was  hissing;  and  Delpit,  on  the  other  hand,  was  loudly  applauding,  the  authors  being 
his  personal  friends.  A  violent  altercation  ensued,  in  which  Delpit,  indignant  in  behalf  of  his 
friends,  was  provoked  to  an  overt  act  which  led  to  a  duel.  In  the  conflict  which  ensued 
Delpit  was  severely  wounded.  But,  nothing  daunted,  he  had  hardly  recovered  when  he  began 
writing  again.  He  published  successfully  three  novels  in  the  Moniteur  Universel,  Le  Paris  Journal 
and  in  La  France  Nouvdle.  From  the  last-named  source  he  dramatized  "Jean  Nupieds,' 
which  was  very  successful  on  its  first  representation.  But  the  intense  heat  interfered  seriously 
with  its  Parisian  run.  This  play  made  the  tour  of  all  France,  and  was  everywhere  recv^ived  with 
the  greatest  enthusiasm.  His  later  comedies  and  dramas  have  all  been  successful.  "Le 
Message  de  Scapin,"  at  the  Comedie  Franjaise,  and  "Les  Chevaliers  de  la  Patrie,"  at  the 
Theatre  Eistorique,  both  enjoying  long  runs.  But  his  greatest  popular  success  was  his  play 
"  Le  Fils  de  Coralie,"  which  was  dramatized  from  one  of  his  own  novels.  This  play  made  an 
enormous  sensation  in  Paris,  and  was  translated  into  t  nglish. 

As  a  novelist,  Albert  Delpit,  as  in  everything,  has  taken  first  rank.  An  enumeration  of  the 
works  of  this  prolific  writer  would  be  a  mere  catalogue,  as  we  cannot  give  the  space  to  any 
analysis  of  their  contents.  He  has  long  been  the  bright,  particular  star  of  Le  Bewe  des  Deux 
Mondes,  and  several  stories  from  this  source  have  been  translated  into  English,  and  have  gone 
the  rounds  of  the  American  press.  Besides  all  his  other  vocations,  M.  Delpit  has  traveled  much, 
and  has  written  charmmgly  from  the  experience  of  his  travels.  We  have  given  our  readers  a 
sketch  of  his  life  as  it  now  stands.  But  Albert  Delpit's  life  is  yet  to  be  written.  Most  men  at 
thirty-five  have  but  begun  to  live.  Let  us  hope  that  even  more  distinction,  if  that  be  possible 
is  in  store  for  him. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  313 

MORPHY,  THE  CHESS  KING. 

Paul  Charles  Morphy  was  born  in  the  city  of  New  Orleans  on  the  226.  of  June,  1837.  His 
paternal  grandfather  was  a  native  of  Madrid,  Spain,  and,  emigrating  to  America,  resided  for 
some  years  at  Charleston,  South  Carolina,  in  which  city  Paul  Morphy's  father,  Alonzo  Morphy, 
was  born  in  the  latter  part  of  1798.  The  family  not  long  afterward  removed  to  New  Orleans, 
where  Alonzo  Morphy,  after  receiving  a  collegiate  education,  studied  law  under  that  great 
jurisconsult  Edward  Livingstone,  practiced  his  profession  with  great  success,  and  for  a  number 
of  years  previous  to  his  death  was  an  honored  justice  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  Louisiana.  Judge 
Morphy's  vnfe  was  a  Miss  Le  Carpentier,  one  of  the  oldest  French  Creole  families  of  the  State. 
Paul  was  the  second  son  of  four  children  born  to  his  parents.  He  received  a  good  academical 
education  in  this  city,  and  when  about  thirteen  years  old  was  enrolled  as  a  student  of  St. 
Joseph's  College,  conducted  by  the  Jesuit  Fathers,  at  Spring  HiU,  near  Mobile,  Alabama.  Here, 
after  four  years'  attendance,  he  graduated  with  the  highest  honors  ever  awarded  in  the  insti- 
tution, in  October,  1854,  but  remained  a  year  longer,  occupying  himself  almost  exclusively  with 
the  study  of  mathematics  and  philosophy.  He  was  a  hard,  indeed  a  very  hard  student,  and  his 
intense  application,  combined,  as  it  was,  with  phenomenal  powers  of  mind,  and  especially  of 
memory,  gave  him  such  success  in  his  studies  that  his  classmates  actually  came  to  consider  as 
not  surprising  any  mental  feat,  however  great  or  difficult,  when  accomplished  by  him.  In  1855he 
became  a  student  in  the  law  department  of  the  University  of  Louisiana,  and  again,  in  the  prose- 
cution of  his  legal  studies,  showed  the  same  intensity  of  application  and  notable  success  as  in 
his  college  life.  He  graduated  in  April,  1857,  when  but  twenty  years  of  age,  and  was  pro- 
nounced by  an  eminent  member  of  the  faculty  the  most  dee.  ly  read  and  most  thoroughly  pre- 
pared student  that  had  ever  graduated  from  the  law  school  of  the  University. 

Chess  had  always  been  a  conspicuous  feature  in  the  amusements  of  the  Morphy  family. 
Paul's  maternal  grandfather,  old  Mr.  Le  Carpentier,  was  devoted  to  the  game  ;  Judge  Alonzo 
Morphy  was  a  player  of  fair  strength,  while  his  brother,  Ernest  Morphy,  was  not  only  almost  a 
first-rate  of  his  day,  but  was  also  a  particularly  strong  and  deep  analyst.  Among  a  number  of 
frequent  visitors  who  played  chess  was,  also,  Eugene  Eousseau,  whose  hard-fought  match, 
contested  in  this  city  in  184.5,  with  Stanley,  the  English  player,  is  one  of  the  landmarks  in  the 
early  history  of  American  chess.  Paul  Morphy's  father  taught  him  the  moves  of  the  game  in  the 
latter  part  of  1847,  when  he  was  a  little  over  ten  years  old,  and  though  his  indulgence  in  its 
pleasures  was  then,  as  indeed  all  through  his  boyhood,  limited  to  certain  days  of  the  week,  he 
proved  so  apt  a  pupil  under  the  instructions  of  his  father  and  uncle,  that  almost  from  his  first 
game  he  was  able  to  fight  on  even  terms  against  either.  His  strength  of  play  increased  with 
incredible  rapidity,  and  within  two  years  he  had  defeated  by  overwhelming  majorities  all  the 
strongest  playftrs  in  the  city,  among  them  Rousseau,  who,  out  of  upwards  of  fifty  games  played, 
lost  at  least  nine-tenths  1  But  the  crowning  proof  of  the  young  player's  genius  for  the  game  was 
given  when  in  May,  1350,  he  contested  three  games  against  Lciwenthal,  the  eminent  Hungariaa 
player,  who  was  then  passing  through  New  Orleans,  and  who  not  many  years  previously,  in 
consultation  with  Szen  and  Grimm  at  Buda-Pesth.  had  defeated  the  foremost  players  of  France  in 
a  memorable  match  by  correspondence.  Any  victory  over  such  an  an  antagonist  by  a  mere  child 
of  less  than  thirteen  years  would  have  been  an  astonishing  feat,  but  Paul  Morphy  achieved  it  by 
the  unique  score  of  two  games  won  and  one  drawn  !  His  departure  for  Spring  Hill  in  the 
autumn  of  the  same  year  seems  to  have  caused  a  prolonged  interruption  in  the  youthful 
prodigy's  practice  of  the  game,  for,  excepting  such  play  as  he  may  have  had  at  home  during  his 
brief  vacations,  he  may  be  said  to  have  virtually  abandoned  chess  during  his  collegiate  career. 
It  was  only  in  the  summer  of  1853,  the  year  before  his  graduation,  that,  to  oblige  some  college 
mates  who  had  become  enthusiastic  over  chess,  he  played  with  them  a  number  of  games,  and 
these  at  odds  of  Queens,  or  of  Rook  and  Knight  combined.  .Vfter  leaving  college,  and  during 
his  legal  studies,  from  November,  1855,  to  April,  1857,  he  played  more,  though  still  not  very 


314  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

frequently,  but  nearly  always  yielding  large  odds.  It  was  during  this  period  that  he  contested 
on  two  occasions,  ten  games  with  Judge  A.  B.  Meek,  th^n  the  strongest  player  in  Alabama, 
winning  all,  and  also  two  from  Dr.  Ayers,  another  strong  amateur  of  the  same  State.  It  was 
with  this  practice  and  with  this  experience  that  Paul  Morphy  entered  in  October,  1857,  the  lists 
of  the  first  American  Chess  Congress,  convened  in  New  York— an  assemblage  includina:  the 
strongest  players  of  the  Union,  paladins  and  veterans  of  the  game— but  destined  to  become 
ever  memorable  as  the  occasion  of  the  young  hero's  first  public  appearance  in  that  world  of 
chess,  whose  universal  sceptre  he  was  so  soon  destined  to  sway  with  undisputed  right.  Stanley, 
the  conquerer  of  Rousseau,  Montgomery  of  Philadelphia,  Fiske,  Thompson,  Perrin,  Marache  and 
Lichtenhein  of  New  York.  Paulsen  of  Iowa,  Raphael  of  Kentucky,  and  many  others  were 
opposed  to  him  in  the  tournament  proper,  or  in  side-tilts,  off-hand  or  formal,  during  its  progress, 
but  his  triumph  was  so  absolute,  his  victories  so  overwhelming,  that  the  defeated  felt  not  even 
a  twinge  of  jealousy.  Comparisons  were  simply  impossible,  and  the  idea  of  rivalry  would  have 
been  an  absurdity.  Out  of  about  one  hundred  games  thus  contested  during  the  period  of  the 
congress,  Paul  Morphy  lost  but  three,  only  a  few  more  being  drawn. 

The  discovery  of  such  a  genius  naturally  aroused  the  greatest  enthusiasm  throughout  the 
whole  chess  world  of  the  Union,  and  there  were  not  a  few  members  of  the  then  National  Chess 
Association  who  wished  at  once  to  issue  a  cartel  on  behalf  of  their  champion  to  all  Europe, 
but  overborne  by  the  prestige  clinging  to  the  reputations  of  the  European  masters,  the  more 
timid  sentiments  of  others  prevailed  and  no  action  was  taken.  The  New  Orleans  Chess  Club, 
however,  lacked  no  confidence  in  Morphy's  powers,  and  in  February,  1858,  singling  out  no  less 
a  master  than  Howard  Staunton,  the  champion  of  British  chess,  they  addressed  a  challenge  to 
himtoplay  a  match  of  eleven  games  up,  in  this  city  for  stakes  of  g5,000  a  side,  and  offering 
him  Sl.OOO  for  expenses.  Staunton,  in  reply,  simply  declined  to  come  to  New  Orleans  to  play, 
but  in  terms  clearly  indicative  of  a  willingness  to  contest  the  match  in  London.  Not  to  be 
balked  of  their  desire  that  their  youthful  champion  should  measure  swords  with  the  masters  of 
Europe,  a  deputation  from  the  club  called  upon  Morphy's  family  and  entreated  their  consent 
to  the  plan.  After  some  hesitation  this  was  at  length  accorded,  and  in  May,  1858,  Morphy  set 
out  on  what  proved  to  be  the  most  bewilderingly  brilliant  career  of  successes  recorded  in  the 
history  of  chess  ;  successes  so  numerous,  so  unbroken,  so  dazzling  that  we  can  but  epitomize 
them  here. 

Paul  Morphy  arrived  in  London  on  the  21st  of  June,  1858,  and  met  with  a  most  cordial 
reception  at  the  hands,  not  only  of  the  British  chess  public,  but  of  English  society  at  large,  and 
more  particularly  through  the  medium  of  the  two  great  London  clubs,  the  St.  George's  and 
London,  within  the  precincts  of  which  all  of  his  most  important  contests  in  England  were 
played.  Of  course,  his  first  step,  looking  to  the  principal  object  of  his  journey,  was  to  issue  a 
defl  to  Staunton,  which  the  latter  first  accepted,  then  postponed,  then  clearly  sought  to  evade 
and  finally  peremptorily  declined. 

In  off-hand  play  and  more  or  less  formal  matches,  Morphy,  during  his  stay  of  a  little  over 
two  months  in  England,  met  and  vanquished  nearly,  if  not  every,  strong  player  in  that  country. 
Bird,  Boden,  Medley,  Barnes,  Lowe,  Mongredien,  and  numbers  of  others  all  went  down  before 
his  victorious  lance,  and  al  in  the  same  decisive  style  of  defeat  that  had  marked  his  conquest 
in  America.  Of  his  more  serious  or  notable  contests,  the  most  important  was  his  match  with 
his  old  adversary,  Lowenthal,  whom  he  defeated  by  9  to  3  with  2  draws  ;  his  march  yielding 
Pawn  and  move  to  "Alter"  (Rev.  J.  Owen),  which  he  won  by  the  remarkable  score  of  5  wins 
and  2  draws  ;  his  two  games  won  in  consultation  with  Barnes  against  Staunton  and  "  Alter; " 
and  three  brilliant  exhibitions  of  blindfold  play,  conducting  eight  games  each  time  simul- 
taneously—one at  Birmingham  where  he  won  six,  lost  one  and  drew  one  ;  one  at  the  London 
Chess  Club  where  he  gained  two,  the  other  six  being  abandoned  as  drawn  owing  to  the  lateness 
of  the  hour  ;  and  one  at  the  St.  George's  Club,  winning  five  and  drawing  three.  His  decisive 
victories  over  the  British  chess  players  had  almost  as  thoroughly  convincing  a  result  as  those 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  315 

in  his  American  triumphs.  Nearly  every  feeling  of  doubt  or  of  rivalry  disappeared,  and  when 
he  crossed  the  channel  to  Paris  in  the  early  part  of  September,  1858,  almost  exclusively  the 
good  wishes  of  friends  and  admirers  followed  him  in  his  forthcoming  battles  with  the  Conti- 
nental champions. 

Nor  were  those  good  wishes  disappointed.  His  experiences  in  the  French  capital  were  but 
a  repetition  of  his  preceding  triumphs;  every  French  player  of  note  lowered  his  colors  before 
the  crushing  attacks  of  the  new  monarch  of  the  chess  world,  and  many  even  of  the  best  did 
not  disdain  to  accept,  nor  often  successfully  at  that,  varying  odds  at  his  hands.  His  principal 
victories  m  Pans,  however,  were  that  over  the  famous  Harrwitz,  who  abruptly  abandoned  the 

TH  fTr'^'^'l-T  ?•'? .'""^  ^^^''  '^^  '^^^  ^"^^^^  fi^^  «^t  of  the  next  six,  one  being 
drawn  ,  that  over  his  English  friend,  Mongredien,  by  7  to  0 ;  and  finally,  that  over  the  renowned 
Prussian  master.  Anderssen.  then  the  acknowledged  champion  of  the  world.  The  score  in  thTs 
^tter  contest  was  even  more  surprising  than  that  of  any  of  its  predecessors,  the  result  bein<^  • 

fT7:.v  'Ji''.rT^'''  ^ '  ^"^'^'''  ^-  ^^  "^^^  ^^  ^^"^^'  moreover,  that  perhaps  Morphy's  greate'^t 
feat  of  bhndfold  play  was  given,  taking  into  consideration  the  remarkable  strength  of  the  eight 
players  simultaneously  opposed  to  him,  and  against  whom,  nevertheless,  he  won  six  and  drew 
two.  As  in  LnglaM,  his  stupendous  feats  and  triumphs  caused  a  profound  sensation  in  th^ 
Parisian  world.  He  was,  during  his  stay,  its  greatest  lion  ;  "victories  and  ovation^^Mn  the 
language  of  one  of  his  biographers,  "became  the  monotonous  order  of  his  seven  months' 
residence  m  that  fascinating  city.  His  extremely  modest,  quiet  and  courteous  bearing  under 
the  most  exciting  applause  which  attended  his  unparalleled  achievements  added  to  his  immense 
popularity  as  an  unrivaled  chess  player,  and  he  became  the  courted  favorite  of  every  circle  of 
society  "  Nor  were  his  countrymen  at  home  slow  in  catching  the  same  impulse,  and  on  his 
return  to  Amenca  m  May.  1859,  his  whole  homeward  .iourney  was  simply  a  succession  of  fete! 
entertainments  and  ovations  of  every  description.  In  the  presence  of  a  grand  assembly  in  the 
chapel  of  the  University  of  xNew  York,  he  was  presented  with  a  superb  testimonial  in  the  shape 
of  a  magnificent  set  of  gold  and  silver  chessmen  ;  he  was  given  a  splendid  banquet  in  Boston 
at  which  Longfellow,  Oliver  Wendell  Holmes,  Lowell,  Agassiz  and  many  other  eminent  Se^ 
were  present  to  tender  him  their  congratulations.  Reaching  New  Orleans  not  long  afterward 
and  having  issued,  without  response,  a  final  challenge  offering  to  yield  the  odds  of  Pawn  and 
move  to  any  player  in  the  world,  he  declared  his  career  as  a  chess  player  finally  and  definitely 
closed-a  declaration  to  which  he  held  with  unbroken  resolution  during  the  whole  of  the 
remainder  of  his  life.  Even  in  private  and  among  intimate  friends  his  participation  in  chess 
was  of  rare  occurrence,  and  in  brief  contests  nearly  always  at  considerable  odds  ;  indeed  his 
only  subsequent  games  on  even  terms  were  a  few  contested  with  his  friend  Mr  Arnous  de 
Riviere,  on  the  occasion  of  a  second  visit  to  Paris  in  1862.  He  paid  that  city  a  third  visit  during 
the  world  s  exnibition  of  1867,  and  the  completeness  of  his  abandonment  of  the  game  may  be 
inferred  from  the  fact  that  although  at  that  period  the  great  international  chess  tournament 
battles"^^'  ^'''''^  ''''  '"^  ^^"''  ^^  ''^''^'"  ^^^"^  °°''^  "^"'^^^  *^^  '"'^"^  ""^  't'  exciting  and  splendid 
Morphy  died  suddenly  in  New  Orleans  in  July,  1884,  from  congestion  of  the  brain  induced 
by  a  cold  bath  imprudently  taken  while  overheated  from  a  rapid  walk.  His  servant  discovered 
him  m  a  dying  condition.  ui»i.uvt;ieu 

E.  A.  BURKE,  DIRECTOR-GENERAL  OF  THE  EXPOSITION. 

Major  Burke  is  a  predestined  leader.  Descended  from  a  line  of  soldiers,  he  possesses  by 
heredity  the  combative  instinct  which  insists  upon  conquering  something,  but  which  fallmi 
happily  upon  peaceful  times  and  pursuits,  finds  a  nobler  satisfaction  in  vanquishing  impedi- 
ments to  civic  progress.  "^pcui 


316  HISTORICAL    SKETCH    BOOK. 

He  is  of  Irish  descent,  though  of  the  second  generation  native  to  the  United  States  ;  and 
the  democratic  spirit  of  the  grandfather  who  escaped  to  our  shores  from  the  threatened 
prism  which  would  have  rewarded  his  patriotic  share  in  the  Irish  rebellion,  has  lost  nothing 
in  transmission.  Like  so  many  of  the  men  most  prominent  in  the  affairs  of  our  country, 
Major  Burke  is  not  a  college  man.  He  has  gone  to  school  to  events,  and  in  that  grand 
university,  has  achieved  a  "double  first." 

The  outbreak  of  the  war  between  the  States  found  young  Burke,  a  lad  of  nineteen,  rail- 
roading in  Texas,  whither  that  roving  occupation  had  led  him  from  his  native  city  of  Louis- 
ville It  need  hardly  be  said  that  he  became  a  soldier  of  the  Confederacy.  A  military  career 
beginning  at  that  age  and  lasting  but  foui-  years  in  that  section  of  the  country  could  hardly 
be  expected  to  furnish  many  incidents  for  a  biographical  sketch,  yet  even  here  opportunity 
was  found  for  the  display  of  his  peculiar  aptitude  for  overcoming  the  insuperable.  The 
Trans-Mississippi  department  was  deficient  in  means  of  transportation.  Ko  wagons  had  ever 
been  manufactured  in  Texas  ;  there  was  neither  material  nor  mechanics  adapted  for  the  work, 
yet,  by  the  potent  spell  of  his  own  energy,  he  evoked  all  these  requisites  and  created  an  efficient 
wagon  factory,  as  it  were  out  of  nothing. 

Fortune  did  not  smile  upon  him  in  Texas,  and  shortly  after  the  war  he  came  to  New  Orleans, 
where  he  be-an  life  over,  as  a  stone-cutter  in  a  marble  yard ;  but  soon  resorted  again  to  his 
original  occupation,  in  which  he  graduated  as  general  freight  agent  of  the  Jackson  railroad. 

In  this  position  he  had  room  to  develop  his  marked  ability  as  an  organizer  and  commander, 
and  being  at  the  same  time  a  popular  member  of  the  favorite  company  of  the  volunteer  fire 
department  he  soon  became  well  known  to  the  community  as  a  man  of  high  integrity,  cool 
judgment  and  unfailing  courage.  In  the  year  1872  Major  Burke  was  made  tfee  regular  Demo- 
cratic nominee  for  Administrator  of  Improvements,  but  the  nomination  of  an  independent  can- 
didate divided  the  conservative  vote,  and  so  gave  the  victory  to  the  Republicans. 

In  1874  he  rendered  the  State  the  great  and  much  needed  service  of  revising  the  registra- 
tion, and  being  again  nominated  for  Administrator  of  Improvements,  was  elected  by  a  large 

""^  The^economy  and  thorough  efBciency  of  his  administration  won  for  him  the  esteem  and 
good  will  of  all,  and  he  has  not  since  ceased  to  play  a  conspicuous  part  in  all  the  affairs  of  the 
State  During  the  long  and  unequal  struggle  for  home  rule,  Mr.  Burke  was  the  opponent 
whom  the  Republican  carpet-baggers  most  feared,  and  to  him  probably  more  than  to  any  other 
one  man  is  due  the  credit  of  their  defeat  and  deposition.  It  was  by  his  well  devised  and 
cleverly  executed  plot  that  the  troops  ordered  from  Holly  Springs  on  the  ever  memorable  14th 
of  September,  1874,  were  delayed  long  enough  to  give  the  citizens  the  victory,  which,  although 
not  immediately  effective,  so  crippled  the  carpet-bag  power  as  to  assure  its  speedy  fall 

During  the  hotly  contested  campaign  of  187G,  Major  Burke  acted  as  chairman  of  a  com- 
mittee appointed  to  act  as  a  check  upon  the  Republican  Returning  Board,  and  canvassed  the 
entire  State  returns  with  such  thoroughness  that  he  was  able  to  locate  with  absolute  certamty 
all  the  fraudulent  votes  polled,  as  well  as  the  legal  votes  which  were  suppressed. 

After  the  election  he  went  as  the  representative  of  the  people's  government  to  Washmg- 
ton  where  his  astute  diplomacy  won  from  the  incoming  administration  an  informal  agreement 
that  the  Republican  faction  in  Louisiana  should  be  left  to  stand  or  fall  as  it  could,  unaided  by 
military  support.  This  practicaUy  settled  the  fate  of  the  Packard  faction,  and  gave  the  State 
once  more  into  the  hands  of  its  own  citizens. 

In  1877  he  received  the  appointment  of  State  Tax  Collector,  the  most  responsible  and  lucra- 
tive office  within  the  gift  of  the  government.  This  he  relinquished  the  following  year  t^  accept 
the  State  Treasury,  a  position  he  still  holds.  The  constitutional  convention  of  1879  which  legis- 
lated out  of  office  all  other  incumbents,  not  only  continued  him,  but  extended  his  term  two 
years  in  order  to  make  the  election  for  that  office  coincide  with  other  State  elections,  giving  him 
an  uninterrupted  term  of  six  years,  at  the  expiration  of  which,  in  1884,  he  was  re-elected. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS.  317 

Major  Burke's  reputation  as  a  political  leader  is  not  confined  to  his  own  State.  At  the  Cincin- 
nati Convention  which  nominated  Hancock,  he  led  the  delegation  from  Louisiana,  and  at  Chi- 
cago he  not  only  controlled  his  own  delegation,  which  was,  from  first  to  last,  almost  unanimous 
for  Cleveland,  but  took  an  active  and  influential  part  in  the  discussion  of  all  the  issues  that 
came  before  the  body,  being  one  of  three  appointed  to  draft  the  important  tariff  resolutions. 
In  the  year  1879  Mr.  Burke,  in  company  with  several  others,  purchased  the  New  Orleans  Demo- 
crat, of  which  the  following  year  he  became  sole  proprietor  and  managing  editor.  December  \, 
1883,  he  purchased  the  Times,  and  consolidated  the  two,  forming  the  Tim^s- Democrat. 

The  crowning  work  of  his  life,  however,  is  that  to  which  he  has  devoted  himself  during 
V  he  past  eighteen  mouths  with  all  the  energy  of  his  ardent  nature.  No  one  but  himself  could 
adequately  picture  the  enormous  dithculties  he  has  met  and  surmounted.  Upon  him  has  rested 
ths  great  financial  burden  of  the  undertaking,  a  burden  which  he  has  sustained  with  a  fortitude 
which  nothing  but  a  heroic  devotion  to  the  cause  could  have  inspired. 

He  has  visited  in  its  interest  every  important  city  east  of  the  Rocky  Mountains,  spoken 
before  all  their  Boards  of  Trade,  met  in  conference  all  their  great  capitalists  and  financiers, 
and  fraternized  with  all  the  chiefs  of  the  great  journals,  kindling  their  interest  in  the  gigantic 
enterprise,  at  the  torch  of  his  own  enlightened  enthusiasm. 

Returning  home  he  has  labored  literally  night  and  day,  not  only  mapping  out  the  general 
features  of  the  work,  but  entering  into  all  the  minutia?  of  its  execution. 

He  has  made  himself  master  of  every  trade  and  profession  represented  in  the  work,  and 
to-day  he  is  architect  with  architects,  engineer  with  engineers,  and  horticulturist  andlandscape 
gardener  with  men  of  that  ilk.  in  addition  to  all  the  sheaf  of  innumerable  peculiarities  included 
in  the  title  of  Director-General. 

His  capacity  for  work  is  simply  enormous.  He  wears  out  everybody  about  him;  but 
tiiough  a  thousand  fall  by  the  way,  he  keeps  steadily  on.  Nothing  escapes  him,  nothing  is  neg- 
lected. Not  only  has  he,  by  almost  individual  effort,  raised  the  needed  funds,  but  he  has  largely 
superintended  their  disbursement,  being  an  economist  of  that  rare  order  who  knows  both 
how  to  lavish  and  how  to  withhold. 

Personally  Major  Burke  is  a  man  of  fine  presence,  and  of  affable  and  winning  manners.  He 
is  a  forcible  writer  and  an  eloquent  speaker.  He  is  emphatically  a  man  of  the  people,  and  a 
staunch  upholder  of  the  purest  democratic  principles.  It  is  as  the  people's  champion  that  he 
has  risen  to  his  present  eminence,  and  his  highest  ambition  has  always  been  wide  enough  to 
include  the  interests  of  his  fellow-citizens.  No  man  has  a  higher  record  for  personal  courage 
and  daring.  Although  opposed  in  principle  to  the  "code,"  he  has  not  flinched  from  meeting 
his  adversary  upon  the  field  when  the  exigencies  of  the  case  seemed  to  him  and  his  friends  to 
absolutely  demand  it.  In  his  last  encounter  he  received  a  desperate  wound,  from  which  he 
btill  suffers  occasionally. 

Both  as  private  citizen  and  State  official,  he  is  of  unblemished  reputation,  and  his  public 
virtues  are  beautifully  rounded  out  and  completed  by  a  domestic  life  of  unsurpassed  tenderness 
an  1  devotion.  Between  himself  and  his  noble  wife  the  fullest  sympathy  exists  ;  she  is  his  con- 
fidant and  adviser  upon  all  subjects,  even  those  apparently  most  foreign  to  the  feminine  mind, 
and  with  the  single  exception  of  his  affairs  of  honor,  he  has  pei'haps  never  taken  an  impor- 
tant st^p  without  first  consulting  her.  Her  presence  is  always  an  essential  to  his  complete 
content,  and  her  approbation  his  dearest  reward.  The  little  home  world  is  always  first  in  his 
thoughts  and  affections,  and  in  the  midst  of  the  most  pressing  and  perplexing  cases,  its  f^tes 
and  anniversaries  are  never  forgotten. 

His  social  qualities  make  him  a  charming  host,  and  he  delights  in  dispensing  a  generous 

hospitality.    During  the  gay  season  the  doors  of  his  pretty  white  cottage  are  always  open, 

and  many  of  the  most  notable  men  of  the  day  have  sat  at  his  board.    Among  his  intimate 

r  1 1- una!  friends  is  General  Portirio  Diaz,  President  of  Mexico.     Major  Burke's  courtesy  and 

r.ijs  are  unfaihng  and  are  exercised  toward  all  who  approach  hinj,  the  application  of  the 


318  HISTORICAL   SKETCH    BOOK. 

day-laborer  meeting  as  prompt  aud  punctilious  attention  as  tiie  most  important  communica- 
tion from  higher  sources.  That  he  should  have  some  enemies  is  the  inevitable  consequence  of 
his  success,  but  the  number  is  few,  for  he  possesses  the  magnanimous  art  of  preserving  himself 
frcm  petty  animosities,  and  of  transforming  political  opponents  into  personal  friends. 

Few  men  of  Major  Burke's  age  have  accomplished  so  much  for  the  benefit  of  the  community 
among  which  they  reside.  As  a  politician  he  has  been  largely  instrumental  in  conferring  upon 
his  State  the  boon  of  self-government.  As  a  journalist  he  has  labored  uninterruptedly  for  the 
enlightenment  of  the  people  of  the  South,  and  to  arouse  them  to  an  appreciation  of  the 
immense  resources  of  their  territory,  the  wise  development  of  which  will  form  a  surer  basis  of 
wealth  than  thev  have  ever  yet  enjoyed. 

Taken  altogether,  he  is  a  rare  man,  and  one  whose  name  will  long  be  preserved  in  honored 
and  grateful  remembrance  among  the  citizens  of  Louisiana. 


GUIDE    TO    NEW    ORLEANS. 


CHAPTER  XLII.  -THE  WORLD'S  INDUSTRIAL  AND  COTTON  CENTENNIAL 

EXPOSITION. 

BRIEF    SKETCHES    OF    THE    PRINCIPAL    BUILDINGS,    AND     THE    ORNAMENTATION    OF    THE 

GROUNDS. 

The  National  Cotton  Planters'  Association,  at  its  annual  meeting  in  October,  1882,  by 
resolution,  suggested  the  policy  of  celebrating  by  a  special  Cotton  Exposition  the  centennial 
of  that  now  leading  and  greatest  product  of  Southern  industry. 

The  first  record  of  cotton  as  an  industrial  product  for  export  from  this  country  is  the 
account  of  the  shipment  of  six  bags  (about  one  bale)  from  the  port  of  Charleston,  S.  C,  in  1784, 
to  England.  In  one  century  the  export  has  increased  four  million  fold,  and  the  production 
to  7,000,000  bales,  and  to  a  value  as  an  export  in  excess  of  any  known  product. 

When  the  scheme  was  first  agitated  by  the  Southern  press,  it  found  a  host  of  friends,  some 
of  whom  allowed  their  interest  to  quietly  subside  before  any  lasting  action  was  taken.  The 
great  cost  and  labor  attending  such  an  enterprise  appalled  the  weak-hearted  and  kept  the 
matter  in  abeyance  for  months.  Thus  valuable  time  was  lost  that  might  have  been  turned  to 
good  account.  The  project  was  not  abandoned,  however,  but  made  to  take  a  new  and  better 
shape.  After  a  time  the  design  of  holding  a  cotton  exhibition  simply  was  abandoned,  and  the 
plan  enlarged  so  as  to  embrace  an  industrial  exposition  of  the  first  order.  The  highest 
authority  in  the  land  was  invoked  to  give  the  proposed  exposition  an  official  existence  and 
recognition  among  the  nations  of  the  earth. 

Congress  passed  an  act  creating  the  World's  Industrial  and  Cotton  Centennial  Exposition, 
under  the  provisions  of  which  the  Board  of  Management  was  selected. 

The  preliminary  plans  having  been  adopted,  the  location  of  the  Exposition  was  fixed  at 
New  Orleans,  and  the  exact  site  selected,  the  Upper  City  Park. 

The  wisdom  of  this  selection  is  perceived  in  the  manifold  advantages  offered  on  every  hand. 
It  placed  the  Exposition  upon  the  great  waterway  of  inland  navigation  of  the  United  States, 
the  Mississippi  river,  and  opened  direct  communication  with  the  towns  and  cities  along  20,000 
miles  of  navigable  streams.  By  railway  it  is  connected  with  every  State,  and  Mexico  as  well  as 
Canada.  The  Eads  system  of  jetties  has  opened  the  mouth  of  the  river,  so  that  now  the  largest 
ships  afloat  can  come  to  the  park  and  discharge  their  freight  within  a  few  feet  of  the  Exposition 
Buildings. 

The  park  itself  is  a  level  tract  of  land  containing  249  acres.  It  is  naturally  adorned  by 
liveoak  trees,  whose  giant  forms  add  to  the  picturesqueness  of  the  scene.  The  views  obtained 
from  various  high  objects  embrace  the  metropolitan  city  of  the  fair  South,  the  Father  of  Waters 
rolling  silently  by,  and  a  stretch  of  country  thirty  miles  in  extent  that  is  attractive  at  all  seasons 
of  the  year. 

The  Board  of  Management  began  active  operations  by  opening  popular  subscriptions  to  the 
stock  of  the  Exposition,  and  at  the  same  time  it  urged  citizens  and  corporations  to  make 
donations  to  the  general  fund.  These  efforts  were  crowned  with  success.  Congress  voted  a 
loan  of  $1,000,000,  and  $300,000  for  a  governmental  exhibit.  The  City  of  New  Orleans  appropri- 
ated $100,000,  and  the  State  of  Louisiana  $100,000.  The  popular  subscription  reached  the  sum 
of  $500,000,  and  various  States  appropriated  from  $5,000  to  $30,000.  and  numerous  cities  and 
counties  in  different  parts  of  the  country  have  contributed  from  $500  to  $1,000. 

Among  foreign  nations,  Mexico  has  been  most  generous  with  her  grant  of  $800,000 ;  even 
Liberia  gave  $5,000. 

With  abundant  pecuniary  means  in  hand  the  management  set  about  the  task  of  ereotinjf 


320  HISrORICAT-    SKETCH    BOOK. 

builcliiij^s,  makintf  the  scope  and  general  eharaeteristics  of  tlie  Exposition  known,  and  issuinj^ 
invitations  to  possible  exhibitors. 

The  Main  Building  is  the  largest  ever  erected,  and  covers  thirty-three  acres  of  ground.  It 
is  1,378  feet  long  by  905  feet  wide,  without  courts,  and  has  a  continuous  roof  composed  largely 
of  glass  so  arranged  as  to  afiford  an  abundance  of  light  without  subjecting  the  interior  to  the 
direct  rays  of  the  sun.  Within,  the  view  is  unobstructed,  from  one  side  or  corner  of  the  build- 
ing to  its  opposite,  the  interior  showing  all  the  phases  of  the  exhibit  at  a  glance.  There  are  no 
partitions,  and  the  lofty  pillars,  wide  apart,  supporting  the  roof  structure,  present  no  impedi- 
ment to  one's  vision,  but  only  serve  to  assist  the  eye  in  measuring  the  vast  expanse.  Wide  and 
spacious  galleries,  twenty-three  feet  high,  are  reached  by  twenty  elevators  supplied  with  the 
most  approved  safety  appliances  and  convenient  stairways.  The  view  from  the  ofie  in  the 
central  tower  is  simply  superb. 

The  Machinery  department  occupies  a  space  of  1,378  feet  long  by  300  feet  wide,  within  the 
main  building,  and  has  an  iron  extension  750  feet  long  by  120  wide,  for  factories  and  mills  in 
operation.  From  the  galleries  overlooking  it.  over  two  miles  of  shafting  can  be  seen  rapidly 
revolving,  driving  every  known  character  of  machinery. 

Music  hall,  with  a  seating  capacity,  in  commodious  chairs,  for  11,000  people,  a  platform 
capacity  for  600  musicians  and  a  mammoth  organ  built  to  order  for  the  Exposition,  occupies  the 
centre  of  the  interior. 

The  Main  Building  will  contain  general  exhibits.  It  is  situated  nearly  m  the  centre  of  the 
grounds. 

The  second  building  in  size  is  that  erected  for  the  United  States  Government  and  State 
exhibits.  This  building  is  885  feet  long  by  565  feet  wide.  It  is  one  of  the  largest  exposition  buil- 
dings ever  erected.  At  the  time  of  the  adoption  of  the  plans  it  was  supposed  that  the  main 
building,  having  the  largest  capacity  of  any  building  heretofore  erected,  in  conjunction  with 
the  horticultural  hall  and  such  minor  outside  buildings  as  were  necessary,  would  afford  ample 
space  and  accommodation  for  all  exhibits ;  but  the  interest  in  the  World's  Exposition 
became  so  widespread,  and  the  applications  and  inquiries  for  space  so  numerous,  that  the 
necessity  for  additional  accommodation  became  imperative,  and  the  management  determined 
upon  the  erection  of  this  magnificent  structure  specially  for  the  General  Government  and  State 
exhibits.  It  will  contain  the  exhibits  of  the  general  government.  This  exhibition  will  be  com- 
plete—of itself,  almost  a  mammoth  exposition.  Each  department  will  have  its  distinctive 
exhibit.  In  addition  to  the  government  exhibits,  the  collective  State  exhibits  and  the  general 
educational  display  will  be  located  in  this  building.  The  structure  has  a  beautiful  architecture 
and  presents  a  very  attractive  appearance. 

The  third  building  in  size,  and  a  conspicuous  feature  of  the  group,  is  the  Horticultural  Hall, 
which  is  600  feet  in  length  and  194  feet  wide  through  the  centre.  It  is  the  largest  conservatory 
in  the  world.  It  is  substantially  built  as  a  durable  structure,  becoming,  by  arrangement  with 
the  city,  a  permanent  feature  of  the  park.  It  is  located  on  high  ground,  in  the  midst  of  mag- 
nificent live-oak  groves.  Surmounting  the  centre  is  a  magnificent  tower,  90  feet  high,  roofed 
with  glass.  Beneath  this  tower,  in  constant  play,  is  a  grand  fountain.  Extending  through  the 
centre  of  the  Hall  will  be  exhibited  20,000  plates  of  fruit,  double  the  amount  ever  before 
displayed  at  any  exposition.  Around  the  Hall  wUl  be  arranged  an  infinite  variety,  gathered  from 
every  available  source,  of  rare  tropical  and  semi-tropical  plants,  flowers  and  shrubbery.  Above 
this  display,  on  a  fair  decline,  appears  the  roof,  almost  as  a  solid  plate  of  glass.  In  the  central 
haU,  with  a  much  higher  roof,  part  only  of  glass,  is  located  a  tropical  hot-house,  250  feet  long  by 
25  feet  wide,  in  which  the  most  delicate  flowers  from  the  far  South  will  be  nurtured  and  made 
to  bloom  in  their  most  brilliant  perfection.  Tropical  fruits  in  the  various  stages  of  growth  will 
be  exhibited.  Fruits  of  every  section  and  the  production  of  all  seasons  will,  by  arrangements 
for  stated  supplies  and  through  processes  of  preservation  and  cold  storage,  be  available  for 
exliibit. 


GUIDE    TO    NFW    ORLEANS.  821 

The  Art  Gallery  is  300  feet  ion};  by  100  feet  wide.  It  is  a  structure  built  wholly  of  irou.  The 
building  is  elegant  and  artistic,  so  arranged  for  mounting,  accessibility  and  light  as  to  present 
with  best  effects,  precious  pictures  and  rare  statues  lent  by  connoisseurs  to  the  management. 
Its  interior  arrangements  are  unsurpassed  for  the  mounting  and  lighting  of  pictures,  and  there 
is  every  indication  that  the  collection  will  outrival  any  hitherto  made  on  this  hemisphere. 

Despite  the  enormous  and  at  first  apparently  extravagant  size  of  the  Main  Building,  it  was 
found  necessary  to  extend  the  machinery  department,  which,  as  noted  before,  already  exceeds 
the  entire  space  of  two  great  expositions.  This  extension,  under  the  title  of  the  Factories  and 
.  Mills  Building,  was  at  first  planned  to  be  350  by  120  feet,  but  the  length  has  lately  been  extended 
I  to  570.  This  building  is  made  of  iron,  and  in  it  will  be  especially  exhibited  cotton  in  all  its 
processes,  and  with  all  the  newest  appliances.  Sugar  cane  and  rice  wUI  here  too  be  shown  in 
all  their  stages.  A  continuation  of  this,  in  a  sort,  the  Saw-mill  BuUding,  on  a  stretch  toward 
the  great  river,  is  calculated  to  attract  much  attention,  as  it  will  reveal  the  extraordinary  wealth 
of  the  forestry  of  the  South.  This,  too,  was  at  first  to  be  only  600  feet  long,  but  has  since  been 
doubled. 

The  ornamentation  of  the  grounds  has  been  made  a  matter  of  special  consideration,  and 
the  setting  out  groves  of  orange,  banana,  lemon,  mesquite,  maguey,  etc.,  with  tropical  and 
semi-tropical  plants  attracts  daily  hundreds  of  curious  visitors,  who  watch  the  laying  out  of  the 
winding  walks  and  the  raising  of  the  flower-mounds  from  under  the  shady  shelter  of  the  grand, 
guardian  live-oaks,  whose  great  size,  close  foliage  and  long,  graceful  pendants  of  Spanish 
gray  moss  symbolize  that  combination  of  the  massive  and  the  delicate  which  a  world's  exposi- 
tion should  abundantly  possess.  Fountains  and  miniature  lakes,  all  things,  in  fact,  that  can 
delight  the  eye,  have  been  provided.  In  the  centre  of  Lake  Rubio,  named  after  the  wife  of 
President  Diaz,  of  Mexico,  100  feet  [of  fountain  standpipe  rise,  throwing  out  three  lessening 
circles  of  jets  at  intervals  of  twenty-five  feet.  From  the  top  of  a  spire  rising  fifteen  feet  above 
this  column  an  electric  lamp  of  100,000  candle-power  will  shed  its  radiance  over  the  falling 
jets  of  ihe  fountain  and  across  the  waters  of  the  lake.  In  front  of  five  of  the  principal  entrances 
a  36,000  candle-power  Leavitt-Mueller  electric  light  is  placed  and  in  five  different  sections  of 
the  grounds,  towers.  185  feet  high,  are  each  lighted  by  ten  standard  arc  lights  of  the  Jenny 
system.  Fifty  additional  Jenny  standard  arc  lamps  are  ranged  around  the  grounds  and  steam- 
boat landings  on  the  river  front.  The  systems  represented  in  this  grand  display  of  electric 
lighting  are  the  Edison,  Leavitt-Mueller,  Brush,  Jenny.  Thompson  and  Houston,  aggregating  4,000 
incandescent  and  1,100  standard  arc  lamps,  which  require  1,600  horse-power  of  engines  for  the 
electric  lighting  alone,  or  200  horse-power  more  for  the  service  than  the  great  Corliss  engine 
which  furnished  the  entire  power  for  the  Centennial  building,  and  which  is  now  at  PuUman, 
1,400  horse-power.  This  electrical  combination,  .sayingunto  the  night,  "Let  there  be  light,"  and 
crowning  the  splendid  scene  with  a  mimic  day,  will  constitute  the  finest  exhibition  of  the  con- 
trasts  of  the  different  systems  of  lighting  that  the  world  has  ever  seen. 

There  is  a  another  thing  of  strange  and  striking  beauty  on  the  grounds,  which,  though  not 
provided  by  the  Exposition  Company,  may  be  rightly  deemed  the  result  of  their  endeavors. 
Built  in  iron  compartments  at  Pittsburg  by  the  Mexican  government,  from  the  design  and  under 
tlie  supervision  of  their  architect.  Senor  de  Ybarrola,  this  structure  is  a  triumph  of  taste  and 
architectural  achievement.  A  quadrangle  192  feet  front  by  288  feet  deep  incloses  an  open  court- 
yard 115  feet  by  184  feet,  according  to  the  general  plan  of  a  Mexican  gentleman's  residence, 
except  that  it  has  more  entrances.  Graceful  towers  at  each  corner  and  in  the  center  of  each 
side  save  it  from  any  accusation  of  straight  line  sameness  and  give  ample  chance  for  a  wealth  of 
florid  ornamentation  in  the  most  oriental  style.  The  coloring,  too,  is  ravishing  with  its  cunning 
conspu^cles  of  gold  and  green  and  maroon,  with  touches  of  intense  red  here  and  there. 

The  interior  gallery  running  round  the  courtyard  is  terraced,  and  here  will  be  placed  a  mar- 
vellous museum  of  the  brilliant  birds  and  fantastic  flowers  ot  Mexico,  making  a  kind  of  hanging 
garden  which  will  enchant  all  beholders. 


.^22  HISTORICAL   SKKTCH   BOOK. 

.Ho.etUer  t.e.ost.t.a^ive  feature  Of  t^e^M^^^^^^^^^ 

buUaing  designed  by  Sr.  de  Tbarrola  '"  "^  .^  '^L*  ds  and  will  be  aspectaen  of  the  purest 
MalnBuUding.  in  *emost  consp,o„ous  Partof  the  gro^^^^^  ^^^P^^  thirty-two  feet  in 

Saracenic  architecture  of  the  third  epoch,  =*«"^°^  ""^j^^  „Jo,e  supporting  a  wonderfuUy 
extent,  thus  making  an  area  of  ^^I''? ^S  buHt  eXrty  of  ir^n  "a  combination  of  columns 
exquisite  dome  thirty  feet  high.    It  is  to  be  ^l""''*  ?°X^,f ''°°^^     Viewed  at  a  distance  it 

and  arches,  with  details  of  the  '-o^l^^^^^^e^  anlra^st  PoT/t  lace,  and  the  dome,  owing 
will  give  the  impression  of  bemg  made  of  the^^^^^^^  ^^^^  ^^,.^^^_  ^^  ^^^^^^^ 

::  rn?Si:"-^--^^^^^^^^^^  .": 

irei*'orrcS^er'z=:r^^^^^^^ 

-^Vn'rer^rntr'iCrno^^^^^^^^^ 

ro?r":;:"t?.;ssfoX=^^^^^ 

inserted  for  the  convenience  of  comparison  :  Feet. 

1,400,000 

Crystal  Palace,  London  (1862) •. '  • 989,8&4 

London  Exhibition  (1851) 545.934 

Paris  Exposition  (1855) ..'*'.*.*.......... 456,923 

Paris  Exposition  (1867) " ' ' ' 430,500 

Vienna  Exposition  (1873) 872,320 

Philadelphia  Main  Building  (1876) 107,520 

Atlanta  Exposition  (1881) 677,400 

rw5!rn:';^orsZosition,MaluBuUdiugalone;:::;;;/.^ 

XheMa.uBnil.n.theOoye— ^^^^^^ 

:r7r;ra!^Sdro::vritSn?=^^^^^^ 

stUl  a  young  man,  havtog  just  ce^bratedhis^orty^e^^^^^  ^.^  ^^^,^^^  ^„, 

.e.^b\:s'oVtheCol^=ai^-^^^^^ 

Other  distinguished  people,  formally  opened  ^^^^^f^^P'^^f,^^"  ^ 

rerScrtrmrrySh^itrerror^rr^^ 

Worid's  Industrial  and  Cotton  Centennial  Exposition. 

Its  officers  are  :  ^^^^  Edmund  Richardson. 

Pj-esident •         E.  A.  Burke. 

Director-General • .'.F.  C.  Morehead. 

Commissioner-General - ^^^^^^  j^^len. 

Chief  of  Installation • "**" " 


r 


INDEX 


PAGE 

Antoine,  Pere,  the  Inquisition 11] 

Antoine,  Pere,  his  Date  Palm 114 

Asylums  aud  Convents 127 

Asylums  aud  Convents,  Directory  of 132 

All  Saints'  Day,  Tomb  Decoration 223 

Alligator  Hunting 245 

Anerling  for  Trout , 251 

AJ^ers 287 

Battle  of  New  Orleans 174 

Brick  and  Mortar 280 

Baroness  Pontalba 300 

Burke,  E.  A.,  Director-General 315 

Joffee  Houses 81 

}lubs.  Social 92 

:;athedral,  St.  Louis 103 

Churches,  Catholic 114 

Churches,  Protestant 116 

Jhurches,  Greek 121 

'hurches,  Colored    122 

liurches,  Directory  of 122 

onvents  and  Asylums 127 

'reole  Quarter j49 

reoles  of  Louisiana 150 

'reole  Bride 152 

reole  Songs  and  Patois 153 

reoles,  their  Origin 165 

apture  of  New  Orleans  by  Farragut 178 

amival  and  Pageants  of  Mardi  Gras 210 

omus,  Mistick  Krewe  of 212 

afe  au  Lait  and  Caf^  Noir 263 

otton.  How  Handled 271 

onsuls  and  Consular  Agents 286 

afe  des  ExU^s 293 

reole  Cottage 293 

aldwell,  James  H* 307 

irectory  of  Steamboat  and  Ship  Landings  40 

irectory  of  Streets 43 

ifitances  in  the  City 70 

irectory  of  Churches 122 

Iscalced  Carmelites ,,, 128 


I  9     PASS 

Directory  of  Asylums  and  Convents 132 

j    Drama  and  the  Opera 1.32 

Duelling,  "  Under  the  Oaks  " 181 

Directory  of  Public  Buildings,  Squares,  etc  283 

j    Dockyards 287 

'    Delpit,  Albert,  the  Journalist .311 

I   Edifices,  Historic  and  Romantic 63 

I   Executions,  Private  and  Public 207 

I   Exposition,  its  Dimensions,  etc 319 

I    Free  Lunches,  Menu  of gg 

I   Father  Dagobert,  the  Capuchin 109 

I    Fortifications  of  Early  Days 172 

i   Filibustering  Expeditions  to  Cuba 196 

i   Flatboating  on  the  Mississippi 200 

{    Fast  Time  of  Steamboats 238 

I    Fishing,  When  and  Where  to  Go . .  245 

Flora,  The 252 

I    Flower  Gardens  and  Squares 253 

j    French  Market,  Scenes  around 258 

I    French  Market  Coffee  Stands  262 

I    Floods  and  Overflows 277 


Gambling  Days  of  "  Auld  Lang  Syne ' 
Gaines,  Mrs.  Myra  Clark 


201 


Hotel  Life  and  Incidents 71 

Hospital,  Charity,  History  of 130 


Indians  and  their  Settlements. 
Illustrious  Dead,  their  Tombs. 


I  Jackson's  (Old  Hickory)  Headquarters...  177 

Journalism  of  New  Orleans 968 

Knights  of  Momus 216 

Knights  of  Proteus 219 

King  of  the  Carnival  (Rex) 2I8 

Louisiana  Creoles 150 

La  Belle  Creole lei 

Lafitte,  the  Pirate igg 

Lexington  and  Lecompte , 242 

Louisiana  Jockey  Club. . .-  — 281 


324 


INDEX. 


FAGE 

Marketing  in  New  Orleans,  Cost  of .  00 

Maiden,  The  Creole 151 

Mississippi  River  Causes  a  Duel 187 

Mississippi,  Flatboating  on 200 

Mississippi,  Racing  of  Steamboats 237 

Mississippi,  Fast  Time  upon 238 

Mumford,  Fate  of 207 

Mardi  Gras,  its  Origin  and  Celebration.. . .  210 

Mistiok  Krewe  of  Comus 212 

Momus,  Knights  of :^16 

Mardi  Gras  Days  of  the  Future 222 

McDonogh,  his  Tomb  and  Precepts 227 

McDonogh,  his  Love  and  his  Will 303 

Moss,  Spanish,  its  Peculiarities 256 

Market.  French 258 

Market  Women 259 

Market,  Preparing  for 260 

Monuments  and  Statues 275 

Mayors  of  New  Orleans 2S5 

Madame  John's  Legacy 293 

Madame  Delphine's 297 

Menken,  Adah  Isaacs 307 

Morphy,  Paul,  the  Chess  King 318 

Negroes,  French  and  San  Domingo 167 

New  Orleans,  History  of 1-40 

New  Orleans,  its  Creoles 149 

New  Orleans,  its  Population 6, 165 

New  Orleans,  Battle  of 174 

New  Orleans,  Capture  by  Farragut 178 

New  Orleans,  its  Flora  and  Gardens 252 

New  Orleans  Cotton  Exchange 280 

New  Orleans  Sugar  Exchange 281 

Opera,  The.  and  the  Drama .  134 

Old  Place  d'Armes 142 

Patois  (Creole^  Songs 153 

Pillage  and  Desolation 179 

l^irates  of  Later  Days 190 

Proteus,  Knights  of 21? 

Parades  and  Pageants,  their  Origin 312 


PASK 

Personal  Recollections 30O 

Peters,  Samuel  J . ,  the  Autocrat 307 

Restaurants  and  Eating  Houses 84 

Revolts  and  Conspiracies 160 

Ramparts  and  Fortifications 172 

Revellers,  Twelfth  Night 215 

Rex,  King  of  the  Carnival 218 

Rowing  and  Regattas 232 

Races  on  Mississippi,  between  "Lee"  and 

"  Natchez " 239 

Racecourses  of  Old 241 

Rod  and  Gun 245 

Steamboat  and  Steamship  Landings 40 

Streets,  their  Nomenclature  and  Guide ....  43 

Saints  of  the  "  Crescent  City  " 108 

Synagogues  (Jewish) 121 

Squares  and  Public  Places 142 

San  Dominguais 161 

Spanish  People 167 

St.  John's  Eve,  Voudouism 229 

Spanish  Moss,  Peculiarities  of 256 

Statues  and  Monuments 275 

Shot  Tower,  View  from  top  of 281 

Scenes  of  Cable's  Romances 293 

Sieur  George's 293 

The  San  Dominguais 160 

The  San  Dominguais  introduce  Sugar 162 

The  Creoles  and  Acadians • 265 

The  Spanish  Negroes  and  Indians 169 

Twelfth-Night  Revelers 215 

Tombs  of  Illustrious  Dead 225 

Tomb  Decoration.  All  Saints'  Day 223 

Tomb  and  Precepts  of  John  McDonogh. . .  227 

Touro,  Judah.  the  Philanthropist 305 

"  Under  the  Oaks,"  Duelling.  .• 181 

Universities,  Libraries,  etc 26  • 

Voudouism 229 

Voudou  Songs  and  Dances 231 


B.  H.  HOLMES, 

155     C^lST-i^IL.     STZSEET 


i 


Z4^  assortment  of  Foreign  and  Domestic  Dry   Goo, 
is  unequaled  in  the  South. 

EVERY  VARIETY  OF   NOVELTIES, 

Laces,    Velvets,    Silks,    Fans,    Gloves, 
Parasols,  Etc. 

FROM    THE  FIRST  PARIS  HOUSES 


WE  HAVE  LIKEWISE  AN  UNRIVALED  STOCK  OF 

LADIES',  MISSES'.  AND  CHILDREN'S  SHOES, 

ALSO,  A  MAGNIFICENT  CHOICE  OF 

Porcelains,  Crockery,  and  Glass  Ware, 

From  the  rarest  Object  of  Art  to  the  most  ordinary   Kitchen  TJtei 

:  }^[pimo^lfg[j^[ig[igp[Hip^rfg[HiTOramra!Hi[rgn^[^